Pieter W. van der Horst
Jews and Christians in Their Graeco-Roman Context Selected Essays on Early Judaism, Samaritanis...
40 downloads
741 Views
25MB Size
Report
This content was uploaded by our users and we assume good faith they have the permission to share this book. If you own the copyright to this book and it is wrongfully on our website, we offer a simple DMCA procedure to remove your content from our site. Start by pressing the button below!
Report copyright / DMCA form
Pieter W. van der Horst
Jews and Christians in Their Graeco-Roman Context Selected Essays on Early Judaism, Samaritanism, Hellenism, and Christianity
Mohr Siebeck
Pieter W. van der Horst, born 1946, studied Classical Philology and received a PhD in Theology (1978); from 1969-2006 he was firstly research assistent, then junior and later senior lecturer, and finally full professor in N e w Testament, Early Christian Literature, and the Jewish and Hellenistic world of Early Christianity at the Faculty of Theology of Utrecht University.
ISBN 3-16-148851-2 ISBN-13 978-3-16-148851-1 ISSN 0 5 1 2 - 1 6 0 4 (Wissenschaftliche Untersuchungen zum Neuen Testament) Die Deutsche Bibliothek lists this publication in the Deutsche Nationalbibliographie; detailed bibliographic data is available in the Internet at http://dnb.ddb.de. © 2 0 0 6 Mohr Siebeck Tubingen. This book may not be reproduced, in whole or in part, in any form (beyond that permitted by copyright law) without the publisher's written permission. This applies particularly to repro ductions, translations, microfilms and storage and processing in electronic systems. The book was typeset by Martin Fischer in Tubingen, printed by Gulde-Druck in Tubingen on non-aging paper and bound by GroBbuchbinderei Spinner in Ottersweier. Printed in Germany.
Preface T h e a u t h o r w i s h e s to e x p r e s s his sincere t h a n k s to the f o l l o w i n g p e r s o n s : To P r o f e s s o r s M a r t i n H e n g e l a n d J o r g F r e y for their w i l l i n g n e s s to a c c e p t this c o l lection o f e s s a y s for p u b l i c a t i o n in their series W U N T ; to Dr. H e n n i n g Ziebritzki o f M o h r S i e b e c k ' s p u b l i s h i n g h o u s e for his c a r e in s e e i n g t h e b o o k t h r o u g h t h e p r e s s ; to Dr. G e r a r d M u s s i e s a n d P r o f e s s o r M a r t i e n P a r m e n t i e r for their p e r m i s s i o n to h a v e t h e t w o articles o f w h i c h t h e y w e r e c o - a u t h o r s reprinted; a n d e s p e c i a l l y to m y friend Dr. J a m e s N . P a n k h u r s t for his unfailing r e a d i n e s s d u r i n g so m a n y y e a r s to e m e n d t h e E n g l i s h o f a l m o s t all m y e s s a y s . T h e a u t h o r also t h a n k s the f o l l o w i n g p u b l i s h i n g h o u s e s for their p e r m i s s i o n to reprint the e s s a y s in this v o l u m e : B a r Ilan U n i v e r s i t y P r e s s , Brill A c a d e m i c P u b l i s h e r s , C a m b r i d g e U n i v e r s i t y P r e s s , T. & T. C l a r k International ( C o n t i n u u m ) , Librairie D r o z , M o h r S i e b e c k , N e u k i r c h e n e r V e r l a g s h a u s , E d i z i o n i d e l l ' Orso, Oxford University Press, Peeters Publishers, Kluwer Academic Publishers ( S p r i n g e r Verlag), S c h o l a r s P r e s s , a n d Sheffield A c a d e m i c P r e s s . U t r e c h t , Sept. 2 0 0 5
PWvdH
Table of Contents Preface
V
Abbreviations
Introduction
IX
1
The Jews of Ancient Crete
12
The Jews of Ancient Cyprus
28
T h e J e w s o f A n c i e n t Sicily
37
T h e S y n a g o g u e of Sardis a n d its I n s c r i p t i o n s
43
J e w s a n d B l u e s in L a t e A n t i q u i t y
53
A N o t e o n the Evil I n c l i n a t i o n a n d S e x u a l D e s i r e in T a l m u d i c L i t e r a t u r e
59
" H i s D a y s Shall B e O n e H u n d r e d a n d T w e n t y Y e a r s " . G e n e s i s 6:3 in E a r l y J u d a i s m a n d A n c i e n t Christianity
66
Inscriptiones Judaicae Orientis. A Review Article
71
H u l d a h ' s T o m b in E a r l y J e w i s h T r a d i t i o n
87
P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s on the Afterlife. A R e j o i n d e r to J o h n C o l l i n s
93
P h i l o ' s In F l a c c u m a n d t h e B o o k o f A c t s
98
C o m m o n P r a y e r in P h i l o ' s In F l a c c u m 1 2 1 - 1 2 4
108
P h i l o a n d t h e R a b b i s on G e n e s i s . S i m i l a r Q u e s t i o n s , Different A n s w e r s . .
114
P h i l o o f A l e x a n d r i a on t h e W r a t h o f G o d
128
A n t i - S a m a r i t a n P r o p a g a n d a in E a r l y J u d a i s m
134
J a c q u e s B a s n a g e ( 1 6 5 3 - 1 7 2 3 ) on t h e S a m a r i t a n s . Or: H o w m u c h did o n e k n o w a b o u t the S a m a r i t a n s three c e n t u r i e s a g o in t h e N e t h e r l a n d s ? . .
151
O n c e M o r e : T h e T r a n s l a t i o n o f oi 5e in M a t t h e w 2 8 : 1 7
161
A b r a h a m ' s B o s o m , the P l a c e W h e r e H e B e l o n g e d . A S h o r t N o t e o n djievexdrjvai
in L u k e 16:22
164
VIII
Table of
Contents
" S n o r t i n g T h r e a t a n d M u r d e r " . T h e H e l l e n i s t i c B a c k g r o u n d o f A c t s 9:1
167
" O n l y t h e n will all Israel b e s a v e d " . A S h o r t N o t e on t h e M e a n i n g o f xcd oihcog in R o m a n s 11:26
176
M a c a r i u s M a g n e s a n d the U n n a m e d A n t i - C h r i s t i a n P o l e m i c i s t . A r e v i e w article
181
A N e w E a r l y C h r i s t i a n P o e m on the Sacrifice o f Isaac ( P a p . B o d m e r 3 0 )
190
T h e R o l e o f S c r i p t u r e in Cyril o f S c y t h o p o l i s ' L i v e s o f the M o n k s of Palestine
206
T w e n t y - F i v e Q u e s t i o n s to C o r n e r the J e w s . A B y z a n t i n e A n t i - J e w i s h D o c u m e n t from the S e v e n t h C e n t u r y
216
" T h e M o s t S u p e r s t i t i o u s a n d D i s g u s t i n g o f All N a t i o n s " . D i o g e n e s o f O e n o a n d a on the J e w s
227
T h e S h a d o w in H e l l e n i s t i c P o p u l a r B e l i e f
234
T h e First A t h e i s t
242
S u b t r a c t i v e Versus A d d i t i v e C o m p o s i t e N u m e r a l s in A n c i e n t L a n g u a g e s
250
T h e G r e a t M a g i c a l P a p y r u s o f Paris ( P G M I V ) a n d the B i b l e
269
" T h e G o d W h o D r o w n e d the K i n g o f E g y p t " . A S h o r t N o t e o n an Exorcistic Formula
280
Original places of publication
285
B i b l i o g r a p h y o f P i e t e r W. v a n der Horst, 1 9 7 0 - 2 0 0 5
287
Index of passages
321
Index of modern authors
340
I n d e x o f n a m e s a n d subjects
348
Abbreviations ANRW
A u f s t i e g u n d N i e d e r g a n g d e r R o m i s c h e n Welt
ARW
A r c h i v fur R e l i g i o n s w i s s e n s c h a f t
BAGD
B a u e r - A r n d t - G i n g r i c h - D a n k e r , Greek-English of the NT, 2
BDAG
Lexicon
ed.
B a u e r - D a n k e r - A r n d t - G i n g r i c h , Greek-English of the NT, 3
BZ
n d
r d
Lexicon
ed.
B i b l i s c h e Zeitschrift
CBQ
Catholic Biblical Quarterly
CCSG
C o r p u s C h i s t i a n o r u m Series G r a e c a
CIJ
C o r p u s I n s c r i p t i o n u m J u d a i c a r u m (ed. F r e y )
CPJ
C o r p u s P a p y r o r u m J u d a i c a r u m (edd. T c h e r i k o v e r & F u k s )
CSCO
Corpus Scriptorum Christianorum Orientalium
DDD
D i c t i o n a r y o f D e i t i e s a n d D e m o n s in t h e B i b l e
GLAJJ
G r e e k a n d Latin A u t h o r s on J e w s a n d J u d a i s m (ed. Stern)
GMA
G r e e k M a g i c a l A m u l e t s (ed. K o t a n s k y )
HTR
Harvard Theological Review
HUCA
Hebrew Union College Annual
ICS
Illinois Classical S t u d i e s
IG
Inscriptiones Graecae
IJO
I n s c r i p t i o n e s J u d a i c a e O r i e n t i s (edd. N o y et al.)
JBL
J o u r n a l o f Biblical L i t e r a t u r e
JECS
Journal of Early Christian Studies
JIGRE
Jewish Inscriptions of Graeco-Roman Egypt
JIWE
J e w i s h I n s c r i p t i o n s o f W e s t e r n E u r o p e (ed. N o y )
JJS
Journal of Jewish Studies
(edd. H o r b u r y & N o y )
JNES
Journal of N e a r Eastern Studies
JQR
Jewish Quarterly Review
JSJ
J o u r n a l for the S t u d y o f J u d a i s m
JSNT
J o u r n a l for the S t u d y o f the N e w T e s t a m e n t
JTS
Journal of Theological Studies
LCL
L o e b Classical L i b r a r y
LSJ
L i d d e l l - S c o t t - J o n e s , Greek English
Mnem.
Mnemosyne
Lexicon
X
Abbreviations
NP NT
N e u e Pauly N o v u m Testamentum
NTS
N e w Testament Studies
OLD
O x f o r d Latin D i c t i o n a r y (ed. G l a r e )
OLZ
Orientalistische Literaturzeitung
PG
Patrologia Graeca
PGM
P a p y r i G r a e c a e M a g i c a e (ed. P r e i s e n d a n z )
PL
Patrologia Latina
PW
Pauly-Wissowa
RAC
R e a l l e x i k o n fur A n t i k e u n d C h r i s t e n t u m
RB
Revue biblique
REJ
Revue des etudes juives
SC
Sources chretiennes
TLZ
Theologische Literaturzeitung
TRE
Theologische Realenzyklopadie
TSAJ
Texts a n d S t u d i e s in A n c i e n t J u d a i s m
TUGAL
Texte u n d U n t e r s u c h u n g e n z u r G e s c h i c h t e d e r altchristlichen Literatur
VC
Vigiliae C h r i s t i a n a e
ZNW
Zeitschrift fur d i e n e u t e s t a m e n t l i c h e W i s s e n s c h a f t
ZPE
Zeitschrift fur P a p y r o l o g i e u n d E p i g r a p h i k
Introduction T h i s v o l u m e is the ninth, a n d p r o b a b l y the last, in a series o f v o l u m e s w i t h e s s a y s 1
that I h a v e w r i t t e n o v e r t h e y e a r s . It is p u b l i s h e d o n t h e o c c a s i o n o f m y 6 0
t h
b i r t h d a y in m i d 2 0 0 6 , w h i c h h a p p e n s to c o i n c i d e w i t h m y r e t i r e m e n t as a profes sor at U t r e c h t University. T h a t r e t i r e m e n t is early, a n d s u d d e n , a n d not w h o l l y v o l u n t a r y ; it is d u e partly to drastic financial m e a s u r e s t a k e n b y the F a c u l t y o f T h e o l o g y a n d partly to the drastic d e t e r i o r a t i o n o f m y e y e s i g h t . E v e n so, it s e e m e d to b e a g o o d o p p o r t u n i t y to collect several o f m y m o s t r e c e n t c o n t r i b u tions ( a n d s o m e o f the earlier o n e s , o n w h i c h s e e m o r e b e l o w ) . A s the subtitle i n d i c a t e s , t h e e s s a y s c o v e r a r a t h e r w i d e r a n g e o f subjects, a n d the r e a d e r is entitled to k n o w w h a t t h e u n d e r l y i n g u n i t y o f all this is, if i n d e e d there is a n y such unity. O n e will find studies o n subjects as far apart as the o r i g i n s o f G r e e k a t h e i s m in 5
t h
century B C E Athens and aspects of rabbinic
a n t h r o p o l o g y in T a l m u d i c s o u r c e s o f a l m o s t a m i l l e n n i u m later. O n e will find a s t u d y o f t h e c u r i o u s p h e n o m e n o n o f s u b t r a c t i v e n u m e r a l s in v a r i o u s a n c i e n t l a n g u a g e s b u t also a c o n t r i b u t i o n o n a n e w l y d i s c o v e r e d early C h r i s t i a n p o e m o n t h e sacrifice o f Isaac. O n e will find a s t u d y o f t h e m e a n i n g o f the G r e e k w o r d s hoi de in M a t t h e w 2 8 : 1 7 b u t also o n e o n the f a m o u s H u g u e n o t J a c q u e s B a s n a g e ' s v i e w o f t h e S a m a r i t a n s . A n d so o n e c o u l d g o o n , b u t w h a t is the focus in this v a r i e t y ? T h e focus is t h e cultural milieu o f early C h r i s t i a n i t y in t h e w i d e s t sense of the word. A s a s t u d e n t o f classical G r e e k a n d R o m a n antiquity in t h e sixties o f the p r e v i o u s century, I d e v e l o p e d a s t r o n g interest in the r e l i g i o u s m e n t a l i t y o f 1
The eight volumes that were published previously are partly in Dutch, partly in English. They are (in chronological order): De onbekende God. Essays over de joodse en hellenistische achtergrond van het vroege Christendom (Utrechtse Theologische Reeks 2), Utrecht 1988; Es says on the Jewish World of Early Christianity (Novum Testamentum et Orbis Antiquus 14), Fribourg-Gottingen 1990; (with Gerard Mussies) Studies on the Hellenistic Background of the New Testament (Utrechtse Theologische Reeks 10), Utrecht 1990; Studies over het jodendom in de oudheid, Kampen 1992; Hellenism - Judaism - Christianity. Essays on Their Interaction (Contributions to Biblical Exegesis and Theology 8), Kampen 1994 (a second, much enlarged edition appeared in Leuven in 1998); Mozes, Plato, Jezus. Studies over de wereld van het vroege Christendom, Amsterdam 2000; Japheth in the Tents of Shem. Studies on Jewish Hellenism in Antiquity (Contributions to Biblical Exegesis and Theology 32), Leuven 2002; Joden in de Grieks-Romeinse wereld, Zoetermeer 2003. These volumes contain some 130 essays (160 if those in the present volume are included), which is about half of the articles I have written; those not reprinted are mostly encyclopedia articles and contributions for a wider audience.
2
Introduction
a n c i e n t m e n a n d w o m e n , i n c l u d i n g the early C h r i s t i a n s . S o o n 1 found out that it is not p o s s i b l e to u n d e r s t a n d early Christianity if o n e d o e s not k n o w its J e w i s h h e r i t a g e , so I also b e g a n to s t u d y biblical a n d r a b b i n i c H e b r e w , a n d later on Palestinian a n d B a b y l o n i a n A r a m a i c as w e l l , in o r d e r to e n a b l e m y s e l f to read the H e b r e w B i b l e a n d also the J e w i s h interpretations o f this B i b l e as a n essential part o f that h e r i t a g e . A n d this t u r n e d out to b e a crucial step for the future d i r e c tion o f m y a c a d e m i c career. It w a s in the s u m m e r o f 1968 that I h a p p e n e d to r e a d an article b y W i l l e m C. v a n U n n i k , t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t p r o f e s s o r at U t r e c h t U n i v e r s i t y ( w h o m I did n o t y e t k n o w at that t i m e ) , w h i c h further o p e n e d m y e y e s to the i m p o r t a n c e o f k n o w ing b o t h the a n c i e n t G r a e c o - R o m a n a n d the J e w i s h literature from t h e c e n t u r i e s a r o u n d t h e turn o f the era in o r d e r to e l u c i d a t e difficult p a s s a g e s in the N e w 2
T e s t a m e n t . After that s u m m e r I started to follow a c o u r s e in S y r i a c a n d m u c h to m y p l e a s u r e the t e a c h e r t u r n e d o u t to b e the v e r y s a m e W i l l e m C. v a n U n n i k . S i n c e I w a s the o n l y student in that c o u r s e , w e d e v e l o p e d a close relationship a n d b y t h e e n d o f that a c a d e m i c y e a r h e offered m e a j o b as a r e s e a r c h assistant in his d e p a r t m e n t . It w a s v a n U n n i k w h o e m p h a s i z e d t i m e a n d a g a i n that, h o w e v e r i m p o r t a n t a t h o r o u g h k n o w l e d g e o f G r a e c o - R o m a n c u l t u r e is for t h e u n d e r s t a n d i n g o f t h e d e v e l o p m e n t s in early Christianity, k n o w l e d g e o f J e w i s h c u l t u r e is e v e n m o r e i m p o r t a n t in o r d e r to u n d e r s t a n d this n e w r e l i g i o n in its initial p h a s e s . H i s classic dictum
w a s that after his birth, J e s u s w a s not carried a r o u n d
t h e h e a r t h (as w a s t h e R o m a n c u s t o m ) but c i r c u m c i s e d , a n d that a n y o n e w h o forgot that fact w o u l d n e v e r u n d e r s t a n d the N e w T e s t a m e n t . H i s o w n w o r k w a s , a n d still is, an i m p r e s s i v e e x a m p l e o f h o w o n e c a n b r i n g to b e a r a w i d e - r a n g i n g k n o w l e d g e o f the literature a n d religions o f a n t i q u i t y in its b r o a d e s t s e n s e on t h e s t u d y o f early Christianity. I say ' w i d e - r a n g i n g ' k n o w l e d g e b e c a u s e v a n U n n i k also e m p h a s i z e d t h a t it is m y o p i c to confine o n e s e l f to s t u d y o f first-century s o u r c e s ; o n e s h o u l d cast o n e ' s nets as w i d e l y as p o s s i b l e : P l a t o ' s Timaeus
is as
i m p o r t a n t as t h e r a b b i n i c m i d r a s h , a n d the D e a d S e a Scrolls are as i m p o r t a n t as the patristic interpretations o f the B i b l e . H e h i m s e l f r o a m e d w i d e l y in the a n c i e n t w o r l d , a n d e v e n w e n t as far as p u b l i s h i n g studies on m e d i e v a l S y r i a n c h u r c h 3
h i s t o r y . H i s v i e w w a s that a b r o a d k n o w l e d g e o f the cultural s u r r o u n d i n g s o f early C h r i s t i a n i t y w o u l d a l w a y s h a v e , if not a direct, at least an indirect i m p a c t on the w a y o n e v i e w s t h e m a n i f e s t a t i o n s o f this r e l i g i o n in its early p h a s e s . Van U n n i k w a s m y g r e a t p a r a g o n a n d h e h a d a f o r m a t i v e influence on m y s u b s e q u e n t
2
The article was '"Den Geist ldschet nicht aus" (1 Thessalonicher V 19),' Novum Testamentum 1 0 ( 1 9 6 8 ) 2 5 5 - 2 6 9 . For bibliographical details see my 'Einleitung des Herausgebers' in Willem Cornells van Unnik, Das Selbstverstdndnis der judischen Diaspora in der hellenistisch-rdmischen Zeit, aus dem NachlaB herausgegeben und bearbeitet von Pieter Willem van der Horst, Leiden 1993, 13-50. 3
3
Introduction
scholarly career. N o w o n d e r that u n d e r his g u i d a n c e I w r o t e a dissertation on a J e w i s h a u t h o r w h o w a s v e r y m u c h at h o m e in the G r e e k w o r l d .
4
A n o t h e r m a j o r i m p e t u s c a m e in the s a m e period, w h e n M a r t i n H e n g e l p u b lished his magisterial Judentum
und Hellenismus
5
in 1 9 6 9 . T h i s w o r k h a d a
d e e p a n d lasting influence o n m a n y w h o w o r k e d in the fields o f early J e w i s h a n d C h r i s t i a n studies a n d w a s , o f c o u r s e , ' g e f u n d e n e s F r e s s e n ' for a y o u n g classical p h i l o l o g i s t w h o w a s also e n g a g e d in J e w i s h studies. It inspired m e not o n l y to p u r s u e further t h e line o f r e s e a r c h that v a n U n n i k h a d a l r e a d y p u t m e on b u t also to p a y m u c h c l o s e r attention to t h e m a n y forms o f i n t e r p e n e t r a t i o n b e t w e e n the classical w o r l d o f G r e e c e a n d R o m e a n d the J e w i s h (and C h r i s t i a n ) w o r l d a r o u n d the b e g i n n i n g o f the C o m m o n Era. E v e n t u a l l y m y r e s e a r c h in this field (and also m y l o n g - s t a n d i n g friendly r e l a t i o n s h i p w i t h M a r t i n H e n g e l ) led to a p u b l i c a t i o n on t h e p o s i t i o n o f G r e e k as a l a n g u a g e s p o k e n b y J e w s in P a l e s t i n e on the o c c a s i o n o f the c e l e b r a t i o n o f the 3 0 the 2 5
t h
t h
a n n i v e r s a r y o f H e n g e l ' s b o o k (or rather, o f 6
a n n i v e r s a r y o f its E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n ) in 1 9 9 9 . H e n g e l ' s insights into
t h e t h o r o u g h h e l l e n i z a t i o n o f J u d a i s m , not o n l y in the D i a s p o r a b u t also in the J e w i s h h o m e l a n d , e v e n in the p r e - C h r i s t i a n p e r i o d , h a s o p e n e d m a n y e y e s to the c o n t r i b u t i o n s Hellenistic c u l t u r e has m a d e to the c h a n g i n g face o f J u d a i s m in this f o r m a t i v e p e r i o d and to t h e i m p l i c a t i o n s this h a s for o u r study o f ' H e l l e n i s t i c e l e m e n t s ' in early Christianity. Van U n n i k p u t m e to w o r k on t h e Corpus
Hellenisticum
Novi
Testamenti
7
p r o j e c t . M a n y o f m y early p u b l i c a t i o n s , for that r e a s o n , focus on t h e H e l l e n i s t i c b a c k g r o u n d o f t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t . S o m e 15 o f t h e m h a v e b e e n reprinted in the v o l u m e I p u b l i s h e d in 1990 in c o l l a b o r a t i o n w i t h m y l o n g - t i m e c o l l e a g u e , Dr. G e r a r d M u s s i e s (see n o t e 1). T h e r e a s o n that I h a v e d e c i d e d to reprint here t w o of these e s s a y s is s i m p l y that the b o o k u n f o r t u n a t e l y n e v e r h a d a n y w i d e circulation a n d h a s , therefore, largely b e e n i g n o r e d (it w a s a p u b l i c a t i o n b y the F a c u l t y o f T h e o l o g y in U t r e c h t , but s i n c e this institute h a d n o distribution a p p a r a t u s , the b o o k r e a c h e d v e r y few p e o p l e a n d w a s n e v e r r e v i e w e d a n y w h e r e ) . T h e o n l y t w o s t u d i e s from that v o l u m e w h i c h are r e p r i n t e d h e r e , h o w e v e r , a r e m y v e r y first 8
article, w r i t t e n in 1969 a n d p u b l i s h e d in 1 9 7 0 , a n d t h e r a t h e r p r o v o c a t i v e p i e c e 4
The Sentences of Pseudo-Phocylides, Leiden 1978. Unfortunately, van Unnik died a couple o f months before the public defense of my doctoral thesis in the spring of 1978. Tubingen 1969 and many reprints; English translation (Judaism and Hellenism), London 1974. See also his later books Juden, Griechen und Barbaren. Aspekte der Hellenisierung des Judentums in vorchristlicher Zeit, Stuttgart 1976, and The 'Hellenization 'of Judaea in the First Century after Christ, London 1989. See my 'Greek in Jewish Palestine in Light o f Jewish Epigraphy,' in J.J. Collins & G.E. Sterling (eds.), Hellenism in the Land of Israel, Notre Dame 2 0 0 1 , 1 5 4 - 1 7 4 , reprinted in my Japheth in the Tents of Shem 9 - 2 6 . On the history of this project see my article 'Corpus Hellenisticum' in the Anchor Bible Dictionary 1 (1992) 1 1 5 7 - 1 1 6 1 . It was published in German under the title 'Drohung und Mord schnaubend (Acta IX 1)' in Novum Testamentum 12 (1970) 2 5 7 - 2 6 9 , but is presented here in an English translation. 5
6
7
8
4
Introduction
w r i t t e n b y b o t h M u s s i e s a n d m y s e l f on the s u b t r a c t i v e n u m e r a l s in a n t i q u i t y .
9
In m y o p i n i o n , b o t h articles d e s e r v e a w i d e r circulation t h a n they h a v e r e c e i v e d h i t h e r t o b e c a u s e there is m u c h n e w a n d relevant m a t e r i a l in t h e m . N o w the rel e v a n c e o f a s t u d y o f subtractive n u m e r a l s m a y n o t b e r e a d i l y a p p a r e n t , b u t o n c e the r e a d e r realizes that P a u l u s e s s u c h a n u m e r a l in 2 Cor. 11:24 ('forty s t r o k e s less o n e ' ) , t h e i m p o r t a n c e of p u t t i n g this e x p r e s s i o n in as w i d e a linguistic c o n text as p o s s i b l e will b e c o m e clear. M o s t o f t h e o t h e r c o n t r i b u t i o n s are m o r e r e c e n t a n d t h e y reflect m y i n c r e a s e d interest a n d r e s e a r c h in a n c i e n t J u d a i s m . T h e r e is a c o m p a r a t i v e s t u d y o f t h e c l o s e l y related q u e s t i o n s w h i c h b o t h P h i l o o f A l e x a n d r i a a n d t h e r a b b i s a s k e d a b o u t difficult v e r s e s in the b o o k o f G e n e s i s , w h e r e their different a n s w e r s are also p u t into p e r s p e c t i v e .
10
A p a r t from o t h e r Philonica,
on w h i c h m o r e b e l o w ,
t h e r e is a further s t u d y o f r a b b i n i c m a t e r i a l s in t h e article on the t e n s i o n b e t w e e n G o d ' s p o s i t i v e c o m m a n d m e n t to p r o c r e a t e {peru u-revu)
in G e n . 1:28 on the
o n e h a n d , a n d the often less t h a n p o s i t i v e v i e w the r a b b i s h a d o f sexual d e s i r e , w h i c h they r e g a r d e d as a manifestation o f the evil inclination (yester humans.
1 1
ha-ra *) in
T h e r e is also a recent c o n t r i b u t i o n o n the subject o f m y dissertation,
the Sentences
o f P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s , in w h i c h I c r o s s s w o r d s w i t h the A m e r i c a n
s c h o l a r J o h n C o l l i n s on this J e w i s h p o e t ' s v i e w s on a f t e r l i f e .
12
A s in the p r e v i
o u s v o l u m e s , the r e a d e r will o n c e a g a i n notice that there is also m a t e r i a l on the a n c i e n t S a m a r i t a n s . H e r e a third s c h o l a r is to b e m e n t i o n e d for his influence u p o n m e , A l a n D . C r o w n from S y d n e y . T w e n t y y e a r s a g o , in 1 9 8 5 / 8 6 , h e w a s m y g u e s t at the U t r e c h t F a c u l t y for a c o u p l e o f g u e s t lectures, a n d h e o p e n e d m y e y e s to the d e g r e e to w h i c h the S a m a r i t a n s h a d u n d u l y suffered from n e g l e c t b y s c h o l a r s in J u d a i c r e s e a r c h . T h e S a m a r i t a n s f o r m e d a substantial p a r t o f the J e w i s h p o p u l a t i o n o f P a l e s t i n e ( e v e n t h o u g h they w o u l d n e v e r call t h e m s e l v e s ' J e w s ' b u t r a t h e r ' I s r a e l i t e s ' ) a n d also h a d their o w n large d i a s p o r a .
13
It is m a i n l y
d u e to the g r e a t efforts o f A l a n C r o w n that S a m a r i t a n studies h a v e c o m e to flourish o f l a t e
1 4
a n d t h a n k s to h i m I h a v e b e e n i n v o l v e d in t h e s e d e v e l o p m e n t s ,
albeit on a m o d e s t scale. A g a i n , I focused initially m a i n l y on the interaction b e 9
It was originally published in Illinois Classical Studies 13 (1988) 1 8 3 - 2 0 2 . 'Philo and the Rabbis on Genesis: Similar Questions, Different Answers,' in: A. Volgers & C. Zamagni (eds.), Erotapokriseis. Early Christian Question-and-Answer Literature in Context (Contributions to Biblical Exegesis and Theology 37), Leuven 2 0 0 4 , 5 5 - 7 0 . 'A Note on the Evil Inclination and Sexual Desire in Talmudic Literature,' in U. Mittmann-Richert, F. Avemarie & G.S. Oegema (eds.), Der Mensch vor Gott. Forschungen zum Menschenbild in Bibel, antikem Judentum und Koran (Festschrift fur Hermann Lichtenberger zum 60. Geburtstag), Neukirchen 2 0 0 3 , 9 9 - 1 0 6 . 'Pseudo-Phocylides on the Afterlife: A Rejoinder to John J. Collins,' Journalfor the Study of Judaism 35 (2004) 7 0 - 7 5 . See my 'The Samaritan Diaspora in Antiquity' in my Essays on the Jewish World of Early Christianity 136-147. See, e. g. A . D . Crown (ed.), The Samaritans, Tubingen 1988, the most extensive reference work to date. 1 0
11
1 2
1 3
1 4
5
Introduction
tween Samaritans and Hellenistic culture,
15
b u t later I w i d e n e d t h e s c o p e o f m y
i n v e s t i g a t i o n s as m a y b e a p p a r e n t from the t w o e s s a y s i n c l u d e d in this v o l u m e . 6
M y r e c e n t b o o k De Samaritanen^
is the l o n g - t e r m result o f this i n v o l v e m e n t in
s a m a r i t a n o l o g i c a l research. A g a i n a n o t h e r s c h o l a r w h o h a s e x e r t e d influence on m y scholarly c a r e e r is D a v i d T. R u n i a o f M e l b o u r n e , o n e o f the g r e a t P h i l o n i c s c h o l a r s o f o u r t i m e . After r e a d i n g his m a g i s t e r i a l 1983 dissertation o n P h i l o ' s c r e a t i v e u s e o f P l a t o ' s Timaeus
1 7
in his biblical e x e g e s i s , 1 b e c a m e m u c h m o r e a w a r e o f the i m p o r t a n c e
o f this p a r a g o n o f J e w i s h H e l l e n i s m from A l e x a n d r i a . R u n i a also m a d e v e r y clear to m e h o w g r e a t the i m p a c t o f P h i l o h a d b e e n o n the t h e o l o g y o f m a n y C h u r c h Fathers.
18
volume,
1 9
S o m e o f the fruits o f m y fascination w i t h P h i l o are to b e found in this a l t h o u g h h a l f o f t h e m are n o m o r e than parerga
m e n t a r y o n P h i l o ' s In Flaccum
to m y r e c e n t c o m
w h i c h D a v i d R u n i a a n d G r e g o r y Sterling invited
m e to w r i t e for their n e w P h i l o o f A l e x a n d r i a C o m m e n t a r y Series ( P A C S ) .
2 0
It w a s t h e w o r k on this c o m m e n t a r y , a n d especially t h e i n v e s t i g a t i o n o f t h e c o m p l i c a t e d b a c k g r o u n d s o f t h e s e r i o u s conflict in A l e x a n d r i a in the y e a r 3 8 C E d e s c r i b e d b y P h i l o that led m e to further r e s e a r c h the situations in w h i c h v a r i o u s J e w i s h d i a s p o r a c o m m u n i t i e s h a d lived. N o t o n l y m y earlier study o n the J e w s o f a n c i e n t C r e t e , b u t also t h e r e c e n t o n e s on the J e w s o f C y p r u s , o f Sicily, a n d o f the city o f Sardis h a v e b e e n i n c l u d e d h e r e .
21
T h e y s h o w the great variety in
d e g r e e s o f integration a n d a c c u l t u r a t i o n in t h e s e d i a s p o r a c o m m u n i t i e s a n d t h e y d e m o n s t r a t e h o w difficult it is to say w i t h a n y certainty w h y in s o m e p l a c e s t h e v a r i o u s r e l i g i o u s g r o u p s lived in h a r m o n y , or at least n o t in conflict, w h i l e e l s e w h e r e t h i n g s derailed c o m p l e t e l y . A special c a s e is the story o f the conflicts, 15
See my study of the Samaritan diaspora mentioned in note 13 and the one on 'The Samaritan Languages in the pre-Islamic Period,' Journal for the Study of Judaism 32 (2001) 1 7 8 - 1 9 2 , reprinted in my Japheth in the Tents ofShem 2 3 5 - 2 4 9 . See also my 'Samaritans and Hellenism' in my Hellenism - Judaism - Christianity 4 9 - 5 8 . Kampen 2 0 0 4 (the book is in Dutch). Published as Philo of Alexandria and the Timaeus of Plato, Leiden 1986. See his Philo and Early Christian Literature, Assen-Minneapolis 1993. The article on 'Philo o f Alexandria on the Wrath of God' was originally published in Dutch as 'Philo Alexandrinus over de toorn Gods,' in A. de Jong & A. de Jong (eds.), Kleine encyclopedic van de toorn, Utrecht 1993, 7 7 - 8 2 . For the present volume I have translated it into English. See my Philo's Flaccus: The First Pogrom, Leiden 2003. The parerga reprinted here are 'Common Prayer in Philo's In Flaccum 1 2 1 - 1 2 4 , ' Kenishta: Studies of the Synagogue World, ed. J. Tabory, vol. 2, Bar Ilan 2 0 0 3 , 2 1 - 2 8 ; and 'Philo's In Flaccum and the Book of Acts,' in: R. Deines & K.-W. Niebuhr (eds.), Philo und das Neue Testament. Wechselseitige Wahrnehmungen (Wissenschaftliche Untersuchungen zum Neuen Testament 172), Tubingen 2004, 9 5 - 1 0 5 . The study of Cretan Jewry had already been republished in 1990 in my Essays on the Jewish World 1 4 8 - 1 6 5 , but it is included here again - albeit in an abbreviated form - in order to retain the character o f a trilogy on the Jewish communities of the three great islands in the Mediterranean Sea (Crete, Cyprus, Sicily). About the Jews of the great island of Euboia we know next to nothing (see Philo, Legat. 2 8 2 , and IJO I, Ach57). 1 6
1 7
1 8
1 9
2 0
2 1
Introduction
6
t h r o u g h o u t t h e p e r i o d o f the R o m a n a n d early B y z a n t i n e E m p i r e , b e t w e e n J e w s a n d G r e e n s , a n o t o r i o u s h o o l i g a n - l i k e c i r c u s faction a c t i v e in the great cities, a n d o f the s e e m i n g l y s t r a n g e alliance b e t w e e n J e w s a n d B l u e s , the o p p o n e n t s o f the G r e e n s . H e r e social p s y c h o l o g y t u r n e d out to b e v e r y helpful in s o l v i n g a n anomaly.
22
All t h e s e studies o f details c o n c e r n i n g d i a s p o r a c o m m u n i t i e s fill in
t h e b a c k g r o u n d a g a i n s t w h i c h w e h a v e to u n d e r s t a n d the lives a n d activities o f the early C h r i s t i a n s w h o , as a minority, h a d to m a i n t a i n their p o s i t i o n b e t w e e n these parties.
23
R e l a t e d to this a r e a o f r e s e a r c h is a n o t h e r field in w h i c h I h a v e d o n e w o r k o v e r t h e p a s t 15 y e a r s , early J e w i s h e p i g r a p h y . In a n a t t e m p t to fill a l a c u n a , I p u b l i s h e d in 1991 an i n t r o d u c t o r y w o r k to the s t u d y o f J e w i s h e p i t a p h s ( w h i c h form the b u l k o f the e p i g r a p h i c m a t e r i a l ) .
24
The book received a very w a r m
w e l c o m e s i n c e t h e r e existed n o s u c h w o r k for s t u d e n t s o f a n c i e n t J u d a i s m .
2 5
W h e n I w a s w r i t i n g t h e b o o k ( d u r i n g a s a b b a t i c a l s p e n t at the H e b r e w U n i v e r sity in J e r u s a l e m ) , I c o u l d n o t foresee h o w q u i c k l y t h e situation in this field o f r e s e a r c h w o u l d c h a n g e in t e r m s o f the availability o f n e w critical editions o f t h e e p i g r a p h i c m a t e r i a l a n d o f i n - d e p t h studies. In a h i g h t e m p o , b e t w e e n 1992 a n d 2 0 0 4 , m o s t o f this m a t e r i a l w a s p u b l i s h e d a g a i n in m u c h better editions t h a n the old a n d o u t d a t e d Corpus
Inscriptionum
Judaicarum
(CIJ) by Frey,
26
upon
w h i c h I still h a d to rely b y a n d large in 1 9 9 0 / 9 1 , a n d v e r y m u c h n e w m a t e r i a l w a s a d d e d in t h e s e p u b l i c a t i o n s . In a long r e v i e w article o n the three r e c e n t v o l u m e s Inscriptiones
Judaicae
Orientis
( I J O ) , reprinted in this v o l u m e , I sketch
t h e s e d e v e l o p m e n t s a n d s h o w h o w d r a m a t i c a l l y t h e situation h a s i m p r o v e d . T h e s t u d y o f J e w i s h e p i t a p h s , h o n o r a r y i n s c r i p t i o n s , a n d o t h e r e p i g r a p h i c m a t e r i a l is o f g r e a t i m p o r t a n c e to the s t u d e n t o f early J u d a i s m a n d C h r i s t i a n i t y s i n c e t h e s e s o u r c e s quite often p r o v i d e u s w i t h information a b o u t J e w i s h life a n d t h o u g h t that w e d o n o t find in the literary d o c u m e n t s (for i n s t a n c e , d a t a a b o u t a g e at death and onomastics).
2 2
Published as 'Jews and Blues in Late Antiquity,' in D. Accorinti & P. Chuvin (edd.), Des Geants a Dionysos. Melanges de mythologie et de poesie grecques offerts a Francis Vian, Alessandria 2 0 0 3 , 5 6 5 - 5 7 2 . See also I. Levinskaya, The Book of Acts in Its First Century Setting, vol. 5: Diaspora Setting, Grand Rapids-Carlisle 1996. Diaspora studies have come o f age in recent decades; see John Barclay's Introduction to J.G.M. Barclay (ed.), Negotiating Diaspora. Jewish Strategies in the Roman Empire, London - N e w York 2 0 0 4 , 1-7. Ancient Jewish Epitaphs. An Introductory Survey of a Millennium of Jewish Funerary Epigraphy (300 BCE - 700 CE), Kampen 1991. Even the otherwise excellent book by B.H. McLean, An Introduction to Greek Epigraphy of the Hellenistic and Roman Periods from Alexander the Great down to the Reign of Constantine, Ann Arbor 2 0 0 2 , deals very insufficiently with Jewish material. J.-B. Frey, Corpus Inscriptionum Judaicarum. Recueil des inscriptions juives qui vont du Hie siecle avant Jesus-Christ au Vile siecle de notre ere, 2 vols, Rome 1 9 3 6 - 1 9 5 2 . Vol. I was reprinted in 1975 with an extensive Prolegomenon containing many corrections and additions by Baruch Lifshitz. 2 3
2 4
2 5
2 6
7
Introduction
T h e interpretation of biblical texts in a n c i e n t J u d a i s m a n d early C h r i s t i a n i t y is also a field that has b e e n b l o s s o m i n g in t h e past d e c a d e s .
2 7
M y first steps in
this field w e r e t a k e n s o m e 15 y e a r s a g o in an article w r i t t e n for A d a m v a n der W o u d e ' s Festschrift
on t h e w i d e l y d i v e r g i n g interpretations, b y a n c i e n t J e w s
a n d C h r i s t i a n s , o f the e n i g m a t i c w o r d s in E z e k . 2 0 : 2 5 w h e r e G o d s a y s that h e g a v e Israel ' l a w s that w e r e n o t g o o d ! '
2 8
T h e text in E x . 2 2 : 2 8 as r e n d e r e d in
the S e p t u a g i n t , " T h o u shalt n o t revile the g o d s , " also e v o k e d a w i d e variety o f e x e g e s e s in J e w i s h a n d C h r i s t i a n circles, w h i c h I c h a r t e d b r i e f l y .
29
In t h e p r e s e n t
v o l u m e there are t w o further e x a m p l e s , albeit on a m o d e s t scale, n a m e l y , a study o f the w a y in w h i c h t h e limitation o f the h u m a n life span to 120 y e a r s b y G o d in G e n . 6:3 w a s v a r i o u s l y interpreted b y J e w s a n d C h r i s t i a n s in antiquity, a n d o n e on the w a y J e w i s h interpreters v i e w e d w h a t w a s for t h e m the a m a z i n g activity o f the p r o p h e t e s s H u l d a h in 2 K i n g s 2 2 a n d h o w their v i e w s relate to t h e r a b b i n i c traditions a b o u t the p r e s e n c e o f H u l d a h ' s t o m b in J e r u s a l e m , quite c l o s e to the T e m p l e , o f all p l a c e s . B o t h studies s h o w h o w p a s s a g e s in t h e B i b l e that w e r e r e g a r d e d as p r o b l e m a t i c b y the a n c i e n t r e a d e r s w e r e creatively dealt w i t h . A g a i n a n o t h e r subject that has w i t n e s s e d a n u p s u r g e in scholarly i n t e r e s t
3 0
31
and
h a s fascinated m e intensely since the b e g i n n i n g o f the nineties w a s that o f ancient p r a y e r cultures. It resulted inter alia in a b o o k l e t in D u t c h in w h i c h I p r e s e n t e d an a n n o t a t e d translation of 6 0 a n c i e n t p r a y e r s , 2 0 G r a e c o - R o m a n , 2 0 J e w i s h , a n d 2 0 Christian,
32
and also in an article on the u n c o m m o n a n d s u s p e c t p h e n o m e n o n of
silent p r a y e r ,
33
in a study o f o n e o f the few a n c i e n t t h e m a t i c treatises on prayer,
especially on the question o f w h e t h e r o n e s h o u l d p r a y at all, a n d if so, w h a t for,
2 7
A m o n g the innumerable publications I mention - honoris causa - only James Kugel's magisterial Traditions of the Bible. The Bible as It Was at the Start of the Common Era, Cam bridge MA-London 1998. '"I Gave Them Laws That Were Not Good." Ezekiel 20:25 in Ancient Judaism and Early Christianity,'in J.N. Bremmer & F. Garcia Martinez (eds.), Sacred History and Sacred Texts in Early Judaism. A Symposium in Honour of A.S. van der Woude, Kampen 1992, 9 4 - 1 1 8 , repr. in my Hellenism - Judaism - Christianity 135-156. '"Thou shalt not revile the gods." The LXX-translation of Ex. 22:28 (27), its background and influence, ' Studia Philonica Annual 5 (1993) 1-8, reprinted in my Hellenism - Judaism - Christianity 125-134. The first study appeared in the new annual Zutot ( 2 0 0 2 , 1 8 - 2 3 ) , the second was published in Dutch in Nederlands Theologisch Tijdschrift 55 (2001) 9 1 - 9 6 , and translated by me into English for the present volume. See, e.g., J.H. Charlesworth, M. Harding & M. Kiley (eds.), The Lord's Prayer and Other Prayer Texts from the Greco-Roman Era, Valley Forge 1993; M. Kiley (ed.), Prayer from Alexander to Constantine, London-New York 1997; J.H. Newman, Praying by the Book. The Scripturalization of Prayer in Second Temple Judaism, Atlanta 1999; H. Lohr, Studien zum fruhchristlichen und fruhjudischen Gebet, Tubingen 2003. Many other works could be mentioned as well. Gebeden uit de antieke wereld, Kampen 1994. 'Silent Prayer in Antiquity,' Numen 41 (1994) 1-25, reprinted in my Hellenism-Judaism - Christianity 2 9 3 - 3 1 6 . 2 8
2 9
3 0
3 1
3 2
3 3
Introduction
8
n a m e l y the fifth oration of M a x i m u s o f T y r e ,
3 4
as well as in an investigation o f
w h e t h e r o r n o t a forgotten p r a y e r text in o n e o f the E g e r t o n p a p y r i is J e w i s h o r Christian.
35
In this v o l u m e , the r e a d e r s will find a short c o n t r i b u t i o n on a r e
m a r k a b l e p r a y e r b y t h e J e w s o f A l e x a n d r i a after their p e r s e c u t i o n b y the R o m a n g o v e r n o r F l a c c u s , as r e p o r t e d b y P h i l o in his In
6
Flaccum?
A s far as t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t is c o n c e r n e d , s o m e o f t h e c o n t r i b u t i o n s in this v o l u m e i n t e n d to s h e d light o n l o n g - s t a n d i n g t r a n s l a t i o n p r o b l e m s ( a l t h o u g h often n o t e v e n s e e n as p r o b l e m a t i c ) from i n s i g h t s w o n in classical p h i l o l o g y . T h e q u e s t i o n o f w h e t h e r t h e w o r d s 01 6e ebioxaoav
in M a t t . 2 8 : 1 7 m e a n ' b u t t h e y
d o u b t e d ' or 'but some doubted' or 'but others d o u b t e d ' (which m a k e s quite a difference!) is s o l v e d on t h e b a s i s of strictly p h i l o l o g i c a l c o n s i d e r a t i o n s : it m e a n s ' b u t s o m e d o u b t e d . ' In a s e c o n d c o n t r i b u t i o n , t h e s a m e k i n d o f p h i l o l o g i c a l c o n s i d e r a t i o n s , b u t n o w o f a m o r e lexical n a t u r e , lead t o t h e s u g g e s t i o n that in t h e p a r a b l e o f t h e rich m a n a n d t h e p o o r L a z a r u s t h e w o r d s tyevexo be afto0aveiv x o v jtTcoxov x c d cutevexOfi'vai avxov VTIO x w v ayyekwv
eig xov xoXjtov ' A c a d i a d o n o t
j u s t m e a n that t h e p o o r m a n w a s carried a w a y to A b r a h a m ' s b o s o m b u t that h e w a s c a r r i e d to a p l a c e h e d e s e r v e d or w h e r e h e b e l o n g e d , t h e b o s o m o f A b r a h a m (apo-
in c o m p o s i t a often h a s this force). T h e striking e x p r e s s i o n sujrveoov ajteiXfjg
xcd (povov in A c t s 9:1 is s t u d i e d in t h e light o f e x p r e s s i o n s in G r e e k literature that c i r c u m s c r i b e s t r o n g e m o t i o n s or p a s s i o n s w i t h v e r b s o f b r e a t h i n g o r s n o r t i n g .
37
Finally, in a p h i l o l o g i c a l s t u d y o f t h e e x p r e s s i o n xcd oikcog jidg 'IapafiA. aoo0r|a£Tai in R o m . 1 1 : 2 6 , 1 a r g u e that t h e w o r d s x c d o i k o ) g in this c o n t e x t d o n o t m e a n ' a n d so [or ' t h u s ' ] all Israel will b e s a v e d , ' b u t 'only
then will all Israel b e s a v e d . '
T h a t x c d oikcog c a n h a v e this s e n s e , a l t h o u g h it is n o t r e g i s t e r e d in t h e s t a n d a r d G r e e k l e x i c o n s , is w e l l - k n o w n a m o n g classical p h i l o l o g i s t s , b u t h a r d l y familiar a m o n g t h e o l o g i a n s (a j u s t l y r e n o w n e d c o m m e n t a t o r e v e n s a y s that a t e m p o r a l m e a n i n g o f this w o r d is never
found in G r e e k ! ) .
3 8
These proposals are not
s h a t t e r i n g i n n o v a t i o n s b u t t h e y d o p r o v e that d e t a i l e d k n o w l e d g e o f t h e G r e e k l a n g u a g e c a n h e l p s o l v e N e w T e s t a m e n t e x e g e t i c a l p r o b l e m s , w h i c h s o u n d s like a t r u i s m b u t u n f o r t u n a t e l y still n e e d s to b e said o v e r a n d o v e r a g a i n . It m a y b e a d d e d h e r e that t h e article o n t h e H e l l e n i s t i c p o p u l a r beliefs a b o u t t h e p o w e r o f the s h a d o w 3 4
3 9
w a s u l t i m a t e l y inspired b y t h e s i l e n c e o f t h e N T c o m m e n t a r i e s o n
'Maximus o f Tyre on Prayer. An Annotated Translation o f El 5el ei5xEo0aL (Dissertatio 5),' in H. Cancik, H. Lichtenberger & P. Schafer (eds.), Geschichte - Tradition - Reflexion: Festschrift fur Martin Hengel zum 70. Gehurtstag, 3 vols., Tubingen 1996, Vol. 2: 3 2 3 - 3 3 8 . 'Neglected Greek Evidence for Early Jewish Liturgical Prayer,' Journal for the Study of Judaism 29 (1998) 2 7 8 - 2 9 6 . Originally published as 'Common Prayer in Philo's In Flaccum 1 2 1 - 1 2 4 , ' Kenishta: Studies of the Synagogue World, ed. J. Tabory, vol. 2, Bar Ilan 2 0 0 3 , 2 1 - 2 8 . Since this was my very first publication, written when I was 23, the reader is asked to exercise a certain clemency as regards the woodenness o f the presentation. This note appeared in the Journal of Biblical Literature 119 (2000) 5 2 1 - 5 2 5 . Originally published in German as 'Der Schatten im hellenistischen Volksglauben,' in M. J. Vermaseren (ed.), Studies in Hellenistic Religions, EPRO 78, Leiden 1979, 2 7 - 3 6 . 3 5
3 6
3 7
3 8
3 9
9
Introduction
A c t s 5 : 1 5 , w h e r e L u k e s a y s that t h e p e o p l e o f J e r u s a l e m ' e v e n carried out their sick into t h e streets a n d laid t h e m on b e d s a n d pallets, h o p i n g that as Peter c a m e b y at least his s h a d o w m i g h t fall o n s o m e o f t h e m . ' A n d , finally, the s t u d y on P h i l o ' s In Flaccum
and t h e B o o k o f A c t s h i g h l i g h t s the i m p o r t a n c e o f e a c h o f
t h e s e t w o w o r k s for the s t u d y o f the o t h e r .
40
M y early interest in patristic literature m a y b e s e e n in an article o f 1 9 7 1 , not r e p r i n t e d h e r e , o n A u g u s t i n e ' s v i e w o f suicide as c o m p a r e d to that o f his p a g a n contemporary, the philosopher Macrobius.
41
A later s t u d y dealt w i t h the interest
ing m o t i f o f P l a t o ' s fear o f telling the ( s u p p o s e d l y C h r i s t i a n ) truth in a p o l o g e t i c 42
patristic l i t e r a t u r e . A l t h o u g h n o t at all a patristic s c h o l a r myself, in this v o l u m e I h a v e yet a g a i n i n c l u d e d s o m e studies o f the w o r k s o f C h u r c h F a t h e r s . T h e first is a b y - p r o d u c t o f m y D u t c h b o o k De Woestijnvaders
(The Desert Fathers),
43
in
w h i c h I also translated large parts o f Cyril o f S c y t h o p o l i s ' w o r k o n the Palestin ian m o n k s in t h e desert o f J u d a e a . In this chapter, w h i c h w a s originally p r e s e n t e d as a p a p e r at a J e r u s a l e m c o n f e r e n c e a b o u t S a b a s , the f a m o u s f o u n d e r o f the M a r S a b a m o n a s t e r y in the J u d a e a n d e s e r t ,
44
I investigate v a r i o u s a s p e c t s o f C y r i l ' s
u s e o f S c r i p t u r e a n d c o m p a r e t h e s e to the o t h e r m o n a s t i c a u t h o r s from t h e 4 6
t h
t h
to
century. A n o t h e r u n d e s e r v e d l y less k n o w n a u t h o r is M a c a r i u s M a g n e s , w h o s e
w o r k Monogenes
(or Apokritikos)
is a long refutation of the attacks on Christian
ity b y an u n n a m e d o p p o n e n t w h o s e identity h a s a l w a y s b e e n a n object o f m u c h s p e c u l a t i o n ( w a s he P o r p h y r y ? ) . It is a fascinating w o r k w h i c h h a d l o n g a w a i t e d a n e w critical edition. T h e recent o n e by R i c h a r d G o u l e t g a v e m e the o p p o r t u n i t y to d i s c u s s s o m e o f t h e issues in a r e v i e w article that is r e p r i n t e d h e r e . F u r t h e r the r e a d e r will find a study, c o - a u t h o r e d b y m y c o l l e a g u e M a r t i e n P a r m e n t i e r , o n a r e c e n t l y p u b l i s h e d p a p y r u s , P a p . B o d m e r 3 0 , w h i c h c o n t a i n s a v e r y interesting 4
t h
c e n t u r y p o e m on the sacrifice o f Isaac. T h e article i n c l u d e s the first E n g l i s h
translation o f the G r e e k text a n d a study on b o t h the J e w i s h a n d the Christian b a c k g r o u n d s o f the m a n y n o n - b i b l i c a l e l e m e n t s in this t e x t .
4 0
45
Finally, as far as
'Philo's In Flaccum and the Book of Acts,' in: R. Deines & K.-W. Niebuhr (eds), Philo und das Neue Testament. Wechselseitige Wahrnehmungen (Wissenschaftliche Untersuchungen zum Neuen Testament 172), Tubingen 2004, 9 5 - 1 0 5 . 'A Christian Platonist and a Pagan Platonist on Suicide,' Vigiliae Christianae 25 (1971) 282-288. 'Plato's Fear as a Topic in Early Christian Apologetics,' Journal of Early Christian Stud ies 6 (1998) 1-14, repr. In Hellenism - Judaism - Christianity 2 5 7 - 2 6 8 . Amsterdam 1998. 'The Role o f Scripture in Cyril of Scythopolis' Lives of the Monks of Palestine,'' in J. Patrich (ed.), The Sabaite Heritage in the Orthodox Church from the Fifth Century to the Present, Leuven 2001 [published in 2 0 0 2 ] , 1 2 7 - 1 4 5 . Published as 'A N e w Early Christian Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac,' in A. Hurst & J. Rudhardt (eds.), Le Codex des Visions (Recherches et rencontres 18), Geneva 2002, 1 5 5 - 1 7 2 . This batch of papyri contains several more early Christian poems that deserve much more at tention from patristic scholars; see A. Hurst & J. Rudhardt (eds), Papyri Bodmer XXX-XXXVII: Codex des Visions, poemes divers, Miinchen 1999. For one of my earlier publications (with 4 1
4 2
4 3
4 4
4 5
10
Introduction
C h r i s t i a n s o u r c e s are c o n c e r n e d , w e m o v e to q u i t e a late d o c u m e n t , t h e sev e n t h - c e n t u r y 'E^:ajtoQr|Tixd xecpdXaia xaxd xoov 'Iou5aicov, ' A r g u m e n t s t o c o r n e r the J e w s , ' a s h o r t B y z a n t i n e m a n u a l in the form o f 2 5 q u e s t i o n s w h i c h s h o u l d e n a b l e C h r i s t i a n s in their d i s p u t a t i o n s w i t h J e w s to d r i v e t h e m into a c o r n e r from w h i c h t h e y c o u l d n o t e s c a p e ( n o t e ejtajiopTixixd). In this c o n t r i b u t i o n I p r e s e n t the d o c u m e n t in a first E n g l i s h translation a n d a d d s o m e c o m m e n t s to p l a c e the d o c u m e n t in its historical c o n t e x t .
46
A s t o the p a g a n G r a e c o - R o m a n p a r t o f this v o l u m e , I a l r e a d y m e n t i o n e d the s t u d i e s o n the s h a d o w in H e l l e n i s t i c folklore a n d the o n e o n s u b t r a c t i v e c o m p o s ite n u m e r a l s . A p a r t from t h e s e , the r e a d e r will find an article o n a r e c e n t l y found n e w f r a g m e n t o f the g r e a t p h i l o s o p h i c a l i n s c r i p t i o n in t h e city o f O e n o a n d a ( A s i a M i n o r ) , in w h i c h t h e E p i c u r e a n t h i n k e r D i o g e n e s sets o u t his v i e w o f life a c c o r d i n g to E p i c u r u s (the text is from t h e e a r l y 2
n d
century CE). The fragment
a l s o c h i d e s t h e J e w s as ' t h e m o s t s u p e r s t i t i o u s a n d d i s g u s t i n g o f all n a t i o n s , ' a s t a t e m e n t that I try to p u t into the c o n t e x t o f t h e tradition o f a n c i e n t J u d a e o phobia
4 7
a n d o f c o n t e m p o r a r y history. J e w s a n d C h r i s t i a n s w e r e often c h a r g e d
w i t h a t h e i s m in t h e a n c i e n t w o r l d b e c a u s e t h e y did n o t w o r s h i p the g e n e r a l l y a c c e p t e d g o d s , b u t t h e y w e r e n o atheists in t h e strict s e n s e , a n d t h e r e w e r e v e r y few a t h e i s t s in a n t i q u i t y in g e n e r a l , as far as w e k n o w . N e v e r t h e l e s s , a t h e i s m did o r i g i n a t e in a n c i e n t G r e e c e , b u t w h y a n d w h e n a n d w h e r e ? T h a t is the t o p i c o f a n o t h e r article (originally p u b l i s h e d in D u t c h b u t h e r e p r e s e n t e d in an E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n ) in w h i c h I a r g u e that e v e n t h o u g h t h e w e l l - k n o w n D i a g o r a s ( 5
t h
c e n t u r y B C E ) w a s the first o u t s p o k e n atheist, it w a s in all p r o b a b i l i t y C r i t i a s , a n e p h e w o f P l a t o ' s m o t h e r , w h o first i n v e n t e d a t h e o r y that the origin o f r e l i g i o n w a s b a s e d o n a c y n i c a l lust for p o w e r . Finally, t h e r e are t w o p i e c e s o n m a g i c , a n i n t e r d e n o m i n a t i o n a l or s y n c r e t i s t i c p h e n o m e n o n o f w h i c h t h e d o c u m e n t s are often h a r d to c a t e g o r i z e as p a g a n , J e w ish or C h r i s t i a n . H o w difficult it often is to take such a d e c i s i o n (if p o s s i b l e at all) is d e m o n s t r a t e d in the article o n the g r e a t m a g i c a l p a p y r u s in t h e B i b l i o t h e q u e N a t i o n a l e in Paris ( P G M I V ) a n d t h e B i b l e , as well as in t h e c o n t r i b u t i o n o n the e x o r c i s t i c f o r m u l a ' t h e G o d w h o d r o w n e d the k i n g o f E g y p t , ' w h i c h is o f c o u r s e o f J e w i s h origin b u t w a s also in u s e a m o n g p a g a n m a g i c i a n s .
4 8
A.H.M. Kessels) on a Bodmer papyrus see 'The Vision o f Dorotheus (Pap. Bodmer 29). Edited with Introduction, Translation and Notes,' Vigiliae Christianae 41 (1987) 3 1 3 - 3 5 9 . Originally published as 'Twenty-Five Questions to Corner the Jews: A Byzantine AntiJewish Document from the Seventh Century,' in E.G. Chazon, D . Satran & R.A. Clements (eds.), Things Revealed. Studies in Early Jewish and Christian Literature in Honor of Michael E. Stone (Supplements to the Journal for the Study o f Judaism 89), Leiden 2004, 2 8 9 - 3 0 2 . See P. Schafer, Judeophobia. Attitudes towards the Jews in the Ancient World, Cambridge MA-London 1997. Originally published as "The God Who Drowned the King o f Egypt.' A Short Note on an Exorcistic Formula,' in: A. Hilhorst & G.H. van Kooten (eds.), The Wisdom of Egypt. Jew ish, Early Christian, and Gnostic Studies in Honour of Gerard P. Luttikhuizen, Leiden 2005, 135-140. 4 6
4 7
4 8
11
Introduction
T h e s e b r i e f r e m a r k s hopefully suffice to p u t t h e s e e s s a y s n o t o n l y into the c o n text o f the individual ' W e r d e g a n g ' of a n old-fashioned scholarly recluse, but also into that o f the d e v e l o p m e n t s in b o t h J e w i s h , classical, a n d early C h r i s t i a n stud ies in t h e s e c o n d h a l f o f the 2 0
t h
century. I h a v e left out o f a c c o u n t m y w o r k on
a n c i e n t J e w i s h m y s t i c i s m , w h i c h w a s o n l y p u b l i s h e d in D u t c h a n d i n t e n d e d for a non-academic audience.
49
I h a d to b e selective, as the subtitle o f this v o l u m e
indicates. E v e n so the a u t h o r h o p e s that t h e s e e s s a y s will inspire in m a n y r e a d e r s a desire to w i d e n their h o r i z o n s a n d try to enjoy t h e fascinating p a n o r a m a s to b e s e e n in the multifaceted w o r l d o f the religions o f late a n t i q u i t y .
4 9
50
E. g., my annotated translation o f 3 Enoch or Sepher Hekhaloth published as Het boek der hemelse paleizen (3 Henoch), een joods mystiek geschrift uit de late oudheid (Joodse Bronnen 2), Kampen 1999. The essays have only slightly been updated, mainly in places where it seemed essential (e. g., references to important new editions o f texts or documents). These updating additions are always put between square brackets [...]. Typographical errors have been removed as much as possible. One essay (the one on Cretan Jewry) has been abridged. 5 0
The Jews of Ancient Crete T h e history o f C r e t a n J e w r y in antiquity is largely u n k n o w n to u s . T h i s is d u e not o n l y to the scarcity o f o u r s o u r c e s , but also to the fact that this history s e e m s to h a v e b e e n a r a t h e r uneventful o n e . T h i s is in k e e p i n g w i t h t h e history o f t h e island itself, for it c a n b e said that from t h e late H e l l e n i s t i c p e r i o d to the early M i d d l e A g e s C r e t e e n j o y e d a u n i q u e p e r i o d o f p e a c e a n d h a d practically n o ' h i s t o r y ' i n a s m u c h as until the s e v e n t h c e n t u r y C E ' n o t h i n g r e g a r d e d as w o r t h y o f n o t e b y t h e a n c i e n t a u t h o r s h a p p e n e d . " A l t h o u g h the s c a r c e literary a n d 2
e p i g r a p h i c a l d a t a d o n o t g r a n t u s m o r e t h a n o c c a s i o n a l g l i m p s e s o f the J e w i s h c o m m u n i t i e s in C r e t e , it is n o n e t h e l e s s w o r t h w i l e a s s e m b l i n g the m a t e r i a l avail a b l e in o r d e r to try to m a k e a d o s s i e r as c o m p l e t e as p o s s i b l e , s o m e t h i n g that h a s not b e e n d o n e so far.
3
B e f o r e s u r v e y i n g the e v i d e n c e , let us ask h o w a n d w h e n the C r e t a n d i a s p o r a o r i g i n a t e d . W e c a n o n l y g u e s s at t h e a n s w e r to this q u e s t i o n b u t it m a y b e a n e d u c a t e d s u r m i s e . W e k n o w that d u r i n g the M a c c a b a e a n revolt m a n y J e w s fled from P a l e s t i n e to o t h e r c o u n t r i e s like E g y p t a n d Syria. It is not i m p r o b a b l e that s o m e o f t h e m m a y h a v e t a k e n refuge in C r e t e s i n c e that w o u l d tie in v e r y well w i t h a p a s s a g e in 1 Maccabees
to b e d i s c u s s e d presently. S o m e m a y h a v e
c o m e b y w a y o f E g y p t , for an inscription from C r e t e r e v e a l s that P t o l e m y V I 4
P h i l o m e t o r ( 1 8 0 - 1 4 5 B C E ) sent t r o o p s to G o r t y n in C r e t e in t h e m i d d l e o f t h e sixties o f the s e c o n d century B C E , a n d it is well k n o w n from v a r i o u s s o u r c e s that P h i l o m e t o r u s e d a great m a n y J e w s in his military o p e r a t i o n s , often in l e a d i n g 5
p o s i t i o n s . A d m i t t e d l y , this d o e s n o t c o n s t i t u t e c o m p e l l i n g p r o o f that the C r e t a n
1
I.F. Sanders, Roman Crete. An Archaeological Survey and Gazetteer of Late Hellenistic, Roman and Early Byzantine Crete, Warminster 1982, 1. There are no remains of ancient synagogues in Crete. For incomplete and summary statements on Cretan Jewry see Sanders, Roman Crete 4 3 ; M. Stern, 'The Jewish Diaspora,' in S. Safrai & M. Stern (eds.), The Jewish People in the First Century (CR1NT I 1), Assen 1974, 160; S. Marcus, 'Crete,' Enc. Jud. 5 (1972) 1 0 8 8 - 8 9 ; U. Baumann, Rom und die Juden, Bern & Frankfurt 1983, 240 n. 12; E. Schiirer, G. Vermes, F. Millar and M. Goodman, The History of the Jewish People in the Age of Jesus Christ III 1, Edinburgh 1986, 69. M. Guarducci (ed.), Inscriptiones Creticae, 4 vols., Rome 1 9 3 5 - 1 9 5 0 , IV no. 195. Ptolemy probably sent his troops to assist Gortyn in its war against Cnossos. P.M. Fraser, Ptolemaic Alexandria, 3 vols., Oxford 1972,1 83 with notes in II 1 6 3 - 4 . For other Ptolemaic officials in Crete see ibid. I 66, 101. It is notable that there were also many 2
3
4
5
The Jews of Ancient
13
Crete
d i a s p o r a started in the sixties o f t h e s e c o n d c e n t u r y B C E , b u t it is a h y p o t h e s i s that g a i n s s o m e s u p p o r t from 1 Mace.
15:22-23.
T h i s p a s s a g e i m m e d i a t e l y follows u p o n a letter written in 140 B C E b y L u c i u s , c o n s u l o f R o m e , to P t o l e m y V I I I E u e r g e t e s in w h i c h h e a s k s h i m to refrain from w a g i n g w a r u p o n the J e w s w h o m h e calls ' o u r friends a n d a l l i e s ' ( 1 5 : 1 7 ) . After h a v i n g q u o t e d t h e letter, t h e a u t h o r o f 1 Maccabees
adds:
( 2 2 ) H e wrote the s a m e letter to king D e m e t r i u s and to Attalus, Ariarathus and A r s a c e s , ( 2 3 ) and to all the f o l l o w i n g countries: to S a m p s a m e and the Spartans, D e l o s , M y n d o s , S i c y o n , Caria, S a m o s , Pamphylia, Lycia, Halicarnassus, R h o d o s , Phaselis, C o s , Side, Aradus, Gortyn, Cnidus, Cyprus, and Cyrene.
T h e s e lines form an interesting d o c u m e n t for t h e s p r e a d o f the J e w i s h d i a s p o r a 6
in the m i d d l e o f the s e c o n d c e n t u r y B C E . F o r o u r p u r p o s e it is r e m a r k a b l e that, w h e r e a s in the c a s e o f o t h e r islands the n a m e o f the w h o l e island is m e n t i o n e d ( D e l o s , S a m o s , R h o d o s , C o s , C y p r u s ) , o n l y in t h e c a s e o f C r e t e is the n a m e o f o n e single city m e n t i o n e d , w h i c h h a p p e n s to b e G o r t y n , w h e r e P t o l e m y V I h a d sent his t r o o p s a q u a r t e r o f a c e n t u r y before. T h i s a d d s p r o b a b i l i t y to m y h y p o t h esis that t h e m i l i t a r y o p e r a t i o n o f P h i l o m e t o r m a y h a v e m a r k e d the b e g i n n i n g o f J e w i s h s e t t l e m e n t in C r e t e , e s p e c i a l l y in G o r t y n , w h i c h w a s also the b i r t h p l a c e or r e s i d e n c e o f o n e o f the v e r y few C r e t a n J e w s a b o u t w h o m m o r e is k n o w n t h a n j u s t the n a m e , as will b e seen later (see b e l o w on S o p h i a ) .
7
A l t h o u g h w e will r e s e r v e the e p i g r a p h i c a l e v i d e n c e for C r e t a n J e w r y for the latter part o f this study, it s e e m s a p p r o p r i a t e to deal at this p o i n t w i t h an i n s c r i p tion w h i c h m a y indicate that in a p p r o x i m a t e l y t h e s a m e p e r i o d t h e r e w e r e also S a m a r i t a n s in C r e t e . It is a r e c e n t l y p u b l i s h e d inscription from the island o f D e l o s a n d r u n s as f o l l o w s :
8
T h e Israelites o f D e l o s w h o contribute their offerings to the t e m p l e (of) Argarizin (or: to the sacred mountain o f Garizin) c r o w n with a g o l d e n c r o w n Sarapion, the s o n o f Iason, from C n o s s o s , for his benefaction towards them.
Cretans in Ptolemaic service in Egypt (ibid. 66, 70, 8 1 , 8 8 - 9 , 1 0 1 , 1 8 0 , 6 1 4 - 5 ) , which indicates the strong ties between Egypt and Crete. See the commentary on this passage by J.A. Goldstein, / Maccabees, Garden City 1976, 4 9 6 - 5 0 0 . It is obvious that these lines list not just names of allies, but countries and cities where Jews were living and in danger of being attacked. In a private communication, Professor Martin Hengel suggested that Jewish settlement in Crete may have started as early as the third century BCE, in view of the fact that elsewhere in Greece (Attica, Cyprus) there is evidence of Jewish presence from ca. 300 BCE onwards (see the references in his Juden, Griechen und Barbaren, Stuttgart 1976, 121) and that there is also a third century BCE epitaph (in Gaza) of a Cretan officer in Ptolemaic service (SEG 8 , 2 6 9 ; see Hengel's Judentum und Hellenismus, Tubingen 1969, 26 with n. 77), which may be indicative o f contacts between Crete and Jewish Palestine in that period. Ph. Bruneau, 'Les Israelites de Delos et la juiverie delienne,' Bulletin de correspondence hellenique 106 (1982) 4 6 5 - 5 0 4 . At pp. 4 6 8 - 9 Bruneau presents a photo and a transcription with translation of the inscription. 6
7
8
14
The Jews of Ancient
Crete
T h e r e is n o d o u b t that the Israelites w h o p a y their t e m p l e taxes to the 9
Argarizin
hieron
are the religious c o m m u n i t y o f the S a m a r i t a n s , w h o d e s c r i b e t h e m
selves as Israelites in o r d e r to distinguish t h e m s e l v e s from t h o s e called w h o h a d their o w n s y n a g o g u e n e a r b y on D e l o s .
1 0
Ioudaioi
These Samaritans honour
S a r a p i o n from C n o s s o s in C r e t e for his b e n e f a c t i o n s to t h e c o m m u n i t y . A n earlier S a m a r i t a n inscription, built into the s a m e w a l l o f w h a t m a y h a v e b e e n a S a m a r i t a n s y n a g o g u e , r e c o r d s the h o n o u r i n g o f a certain M e n i p p u s o f H e r a c l e a for h a v i n g e r e c t e d a n d d e d i c a t e d at his o w n cost a b u i l d i n g , p r o b a b l y for t h e S a m a r i t a n c o m m u n i t y . " W h a t S a r a p i o n ' s gift to the c o m m u n i t y w a s , w e d o n o t k n o w , but the r e l e v a n t p o i n t is that h e w a s m o s t likely a S a m a r i t a n b e l i e v e r from C r e t e , w h e t h e r h e w a s o n l y born in C n o s s o s or still lived there w h e n h e a c t e d as a b e n e f a c t o r to the D e l a n S a m a r i t a n s .
12
That he had a very pagan-sounding
n a m e is n o p r o o f that h e c a n n o t h a v e b e e n a S a m a r i t a n believer. T h e J e w i s h p r o s o p o g r a p h y o f P t o l e m a i c a n d R o m a n E g y p t s h o w s that several J e w s b o r e t h e o p h o r i c n a m e s c o n t a i n i n g the e l e m e n t s T s i s ' a n d ' H o r n s , '
1 3
so a S a m a r i t a n
n a m e w i t h the e l e m e n t ' S a r a p i s ' n e e d not b e surprising. O f c o u r s e , the possibility c a n n e v e r b e ruled o u t that the S a m a r i t a n s h o n o u r e d p a g a n b e n e f a c t o r s , b u t it is m u c h m o r e p r o b a b l e that a religious c o m m u n i t y h o n o u r s a co-religionist. In that c a s e , w e m a y a s s u m e that in the s e c o n d c e n t u r y B C E there w e r e S a m a r i t a n s in C r e t e , w h i c h should c a u s e n o a s t o n i s h m e n t in v i e w o f the extent o f the S a m a r i t a n d i a s p o r a in a n t i q u i t y .
14
S i n c e the editor d a t e s t h e inscription b e t w e e n 150 a n d 5 0
B C E on p a l a e o g r a p h i c a l g r o u n d s , a n d since it w a s m o s t p r o b a b l y w r i t t e n before the d e s t r u c t i o n o f the S a m a r i t a n s a n c t u a r y o n M o u n t G a r i z i m in ca. 110 B C E , it is p l a u s i b l e to s u p p o s e that S a r a p i o n lived in C n o s s o s a r o u n d t h e m i d d l e o f t h e second century B C E . 9
For Argarizin = har Garizim = the mountain of Garizim or mount Garizim, see also Pseudo-Eupolemus, fragm. 1, ap. Eusebius, Praep. Ev. 9.17.5. It is written as one word in Samaritan sources (e. g., argarizim in the Greek translation of the Samaritan Pentateuch). Cf. also the use of Argarizin in Josephus, Bell. 1.63, which derives from a Samaritan source; see R. Egger, Josephus Flavius und die Samaritaner, Fribourg - Gottingen 1986, 2 9 4 - 6 . See further C.R. Holladay, Fragments from Hellenistic Jewish Authors, vol. 1, Chico 1983, 183 n. 2 1 , and R. Pummer, 'Argarizin: A Criterion for Samaritan Provenance?,' JSJ18 (1987) 1 8 - 2 5 , who fails to discuss Bell. 1.63. Bruneau, 'Les Israelites' 477, refers to TOURGARIZ1N on the Madaba map (tur being Aramaic for 'mountain'). See Bruneau, 'Les Israelites,'passim. See Bruneau, 'Les Israelites' 4 7 1 - 2 . The inscription is damaged so that w e do not know what Menippus built and dedicated. See Bruneau, 'Les Israelites' 4 8 1 : 'Le plus probable est que Sarapion et Menippos soient eux-memes Samaritains.' This is doubted by A.T. Kraabel, ' N e w Evidence of the Samaritan Diaspora Has Been Found on Delos,' Biblical Archaeologist 47 (1984) 4 4 - 6 . See V.A. Tcherikover, A. Fuks & M. Stern (eds.), Corpus Papyrorum Judaicarum, vol. 3, Cambridge M A 1964, 1 6 7 - 1 9 6 . See A . D . Crown, 'The Samaritan Diaspora to the End o f the Byzantine Era,' Australian Journal of Biblical Archaeology 2 (\91 All 5) 1 0 7 - 1 2 3 ; and my article 'The Samaritan Diaspora in Antiquity,' in my Essays on the Jewish World of Early Christianity, Fribourg - Gottingen 1990,136-147. 1 0
11
1 2
1 3
1 4
The Jews of Ancient
15
Crete
T h e n e x t p i e c e o f e v i d e n c e in c h r o n o l o g i c a l o r d e r dates from m o r e t h a n a c e n t u r y a n d a half later. In the early fourties o f the first c e n t u r y C E , the J e w i s h p h i l o s o p h e r P h i l o o f A l e x a n d r i a w r o t e his Legatio
ad Gaium w h e r e h e q u o t e s at
l e n g t h a letter from A g r i p p a I to the E m p e r o r C a l i g u l a , in w h i c h the former s a y s that J e r u s a l e m h a s settled c o l o n i e s in a l m o s t e v e r y c o u n t r y o f the w o r l d : A n d not o n l y are the mainlands full o f J e w i s h c o l o n i e s , but also the m o s t highly e s t e e m e d o f the islands: Euboia, Cyprus, and Crete (Legat.
282).
T h e difference from t h e earlier t e s t i m o n i e s is striking. H e r e it is n o l o n g e r a few cities that are m e n t i o n e d , like G o r t y n or C n o s s o s : it is stated that t h e greater is lands, C r e t e included, are full of Jewish
settlements.
T h a t the C r e t a n d i a s p o r a h a d
e x p a n d e d c o n s i d e r a b l y in t h e m e a n t i m e is c o n f i r m e d b y a few o t h e r t e s t i m o n i e s from the last q u a r t e r o f t h e first c e n t u r y C E . In o n e o f his m a n y stories a b o u t J e w s w h o h a d b e e n d e c e i v e d b y a n impostor, J o s e p h u s tells a b o u t a J e w i s h fraud w h o p r e t e n d e d to b e the p r i n c e A l e x a n d e r w h o m k i n g H e r o d h a d p u t to d e a t h (Bell.
II 1 0 1 - 1 1 6 ) . T h i s m a n g a v e out that
the e x e c u t i o n e r s sent to kill b o t h h i m a n d A r i s t o b u l u s h a d stolen t h e m a w a y out o f c o m p a s s i o n , substituting in their stead t h e c o r p s e s o f p e r s o n s w h o r e s e m b l e d t h e m . S o , c o n t r a r y to the r u m o u r s , h e w a s still alive. 'With this tale he c o m p l e t e l y d e c e i v e d the J e w s in Crete, and, b e i n g magnificently fur nished with supplies, he sailed across to M e l o s (Bell. II 103).
In M e l o s a n d e l s e w h e r e , a n d finally in R o m e , the P s e u d o - A l e x a n d e r s u c c e e d e d in g a t h e r i n g a large f o l l o w i n g a m o n g the J e w s , b u t the E m p e r o r A u g u s t u s u n m a s k e d h i m as an i m p o s t o r .
15
W h e r e a s this history t o o k p l a c e at t h e b e g i n n i n g o f t h e first century, t h e s a m e J o s e p h u s tells u s in his a u t o b i o g r a p h y that in the s e c o n d h a l f o f the s e v e n t i e s h e d i v o r c e d his w i f e a n d t o o k a n o t h e r : Thereafter I married a w o m a n w h o w a s J e w i s h by birth and had settled in Crete. She c a m e o f very distinguished parents, indeed the m o s t illustrious p e o p l e in that country (Vita
All).
T h e s e t w o p a s s a g e s d e m o n s t r a t e that C r e t a n J e w r y h a d not o n l y b e c o m e n u m e r o u s , as P h i l o h a d a l r e a d y s h o w n , b u t also that s o m e o f t h e m w e r e p r o b a b l y w e l l - t o - d o a n d b e l o n g e d to t h e u p p e r class o f the island. C o n t e m p o r a r y w i t h J o s e p h u s ' t e s t i m o n i e s , t w o p a s s a g e s in the N e w Testa m e n t , t h o u g h n o t v e r y i l l u m i n a t i n g , n e v e r t h e l e s s offer c o r r o b o r a t i v e e v i d e n c e . In a text c o m p a r a b l e to 1 Mace.
15 a n d P h i l o ' s Legat.
282 (discussed above),
the a u t h o r of A c t s e n u m e r a t e s a large n u m b e r o f c o u n t r i e s from w h i c h d i a s p o r a J e w s w e n t o n p i l g r i m a g e to J e r u s a l e m , w h e r e t h e y w i t n e s s e d t h e m a n i f e s t a t i o n s o f the H o l y Spirit. A c t s 2 : 9 - 1 1 : 15
The same story is also found in Josephus, Ant. XVII 3 2 4 - 3 3 8 .
16
The Jews of Ancient
Crete
Parthians and M e d e s and Elamites and residents o f M e s o p o t a m i a , Judea and Cappadocia, Pontus and A s i a , ( 1 0 ) Phrygia and Pamphylia, E g y p t and the parts o f Libya b e l o n g i n g to Cyrene, and visitors from R o m e , both J e w s and proselytes, ( 1 1 ) Cretans and Arabs, w e hear t h e m telling in our o w n t o n g u e s the mighty w o r k s o f G o d ( R S V ) .
In spite o f O t t o Eissfeldt's theory that the p l a c i n g o f ' C r e t a n s a n d A r a b s ' after the s u m m a r i z i n g ' J e w s a n d p r o s e l y t e s ' indicates that t h e s e t w o w o r d s s h o u l d n o t b e interpreted literally b u t as a g e n e r a l s t a t e m e n t m e a n i n g ' ( J e w s a n d p r o s e l y t e s ) 1 6
from W e s t to E a s t , ' 1 still think it legitimate to t a k e the s e n t e n c e at its face v a l u e as m e a n i n g that J e w s lived in C r e t e , t o o . T h i s is w h a t is i m p l i e d in the s e c o n d N e w T e s t a m e n t text, in the p s e u d o - P a u l i n e letter to Titus, w r i t t e n to a C h r i s t i a n c o m m u n i t y in C r e t e , w h e r e w e read in 1 : 1 0 - 1 4 ; There are m a n y insubordinate m e n , e m p t y talkers and d e c e i v e r s , e s p e c i a l l y the circumci sion party; ( 1 1 ) they must b e silenced, s i n c e they are upsetting w h o l e families by teaching for base gain w h a t they have n o right to teach. ( 1 2 ) O n e o f t h e m s e l v e s , a prophet o f their o w n , said: 'Cretans are a l w a y s liars, evil beasts, lazy gluttons.' ( 1 3 ) This testimony is true. Therefore, rebuke them sharply, that they m a y be sound in faith ( 1 4 ) instead o f g i v i n g heed to Jewish m y t h s or to c o m m a n d s o f m e n w h o reject the truth ( R S V ) .
A l t h o u g h t h e p a s s a g e c o n c e r n s J e w s w h o h a v e b e c o m e C h r i s t i a n s , it is also an indirect t e s t i m o n y to J e w i s h p r e s e n c e in C r e t e . T h e a u t h o r o f t h e epistle a c c u s e s w h a t h e calls literally ' t h o s e o f the c i r c u m c i s i o n , ' /. e., J e w i s h c o n v e r t s , o f p e r v e r t i n g t h e truth o f t h e g o s p e l b y t a k i n g n o t i c e o f J e w i s h fables or m y t h s a n d h u m a n c o m m a n d m e n t s , a n d h e tries to b l a c k e n t h e m b y a p p l y i n g to t h e m a q u o t e from a p o e m b y E p i m e n i d e s o f C n o s s o s a b o u t the o b j e c t i o n a b l e c h a r a c t e r o f t h e Cretans.
17
T h i s s h o w s that, as in A s i a M i n o r a n d Syria, t e n s i o n s s o m e t i m e s ran
h i g h b e t w e e n C h r i s t i a n s o f J e w i s h a n d G e n t i l e origin. F o r t h e p r e s e n t p u r p o s e it is n o t n e c e s s a r y to e n t e r into the details o f this c o n t r o v e r s y . W e s h o u l d , h o w e v e r , r e c o r d t h e a p p e a r a n c e a r o u n d the turn o f the first to the s e c o n d c e n t u r y C E o f t h e first signs that C h r i s t i a n i t y m a d e c o n v e r t s a m o n g C r e t a n J e w s . T h i s is t h e b e g i n n i n g o f a p r o c e s s o f w h i c h w e find the sad a p o g e e in the final literary d o c u m e n t concerning Cretan Jewry. B u t b e f o r e d i s c u s s i n g that last t e s t i m o n y , w e will - b y w a y o f interlude - look at a c u r i o u s text from the b e g i n n i n g o f t h e s e c o n d c e n t u r y C E . In the f a m o u s fifth b o o k o f his Historiae,
Tacitus relates the fall o f J e r u s a l e m in 7 0 C E , b u t before
d o i n g so h e m a k e s t h e following r e m a r k : A s I a m n o w to record the final days o f a f a m o u s city, it s e e m s appropriate to inform the reader o f its origins. T h e J e w s are said to have been refugees o f the island o f Crete w h o 1 6
O. Eissfeldt, 'Kreter und hx&ber,'' Kleine Schriften, vol. 3, Tubingen 1966, 2 8 - 3 4 . See also G. Schneider, Die Apostelgeschichte I, Freiburg 1 9 8 0 , 2 5 3 , and R. Pesch, Die Apostelgeschichte I,Neukirchen 1986, 106. On the problem of the attribution of this verse see esp. C. Spicq, Les Epitres Pastorales II, Paris 1 9 6 9 , 6 0 8 - 9 (there lit.), and M. Dibelius & H. Conzelmann, Die Pastoralbriefe, Tubingen 1966,101-3. 17
The Jews of Ancient
17
Crete
settled in the coastal area o f Africa in the stormy days w h e n , according to the story, Saturn w a s dethroned and e x p e l l e d b y the aggression o f Jupiter. This is a deduction from the n a m e Iudaei: that word is to b e regarded as a barbarous lengthening o f Idaei, the n a m e o f the p e o p l e d w e l l i n g around the famous mount Ida in Crete {Hist. V 2 , 1 - 3 ) .
T h i s c u r i o u s p a s s a g e s e e m s to b e the p r o d u c t o f a m i x t u r e o f b l u r r e d historical r e m i n i s c e n c e s , folk e t y m o l o g y , the e q u a t i o n o f S h a b b a t h w i t h t h e d a y o f Saturn u s , and fantasy. T h e r e m i n i s c e n c e s m a y c o n c e r n the very early contacts b e t w e e n Palestine a n d C r e t e in the a g e o f the so-called Sea P e o p l e s (ca. 1200 B C E ) , w h e n m o s t p r o b a b l y the Philistines i n v a d e d P a l e s t i n e from C r e t e . a b l e that the Philistines w e r e e x p e l l e d from C r e t e (Creta
18
It is not i m p r o b
insula profugos,
says
Tacitus) a n d that therefore until late antiquity the g o d M a r n a s in the originally Philistine city o f G a z a w a s identified w i t h Zeus Cretagenes
(Zeus who was born
19
in C r e t e ) . T h i s unhistorical identification o f Philistines w i t h ' J u d a e a n s ' i n d u c e d the f o l k - e t y m o l o g i c a l e q u a t i o n o f Iudaei
a n d Idaei,
a well-known type of 'ae-
t i o l o g i c a l ' e t y m o l o g y o f w h i c h a f a m o u s o t h e r b u t similar e x a m p l e is Vergil's d e r i v a t i o n o f lulus from Ilus, the f o u n d e r o f T r o y ( I l i u m ) , w h i c h is m e a n t to link the f o u n d i n g o f R o m e w i t h that o f T r o y .
20
O n the c o n n e c t i o n b e t w e e n S a t u r n u s
a n d t h e J e w s a n d especially the J e w i s h S a b b a t h , the ' d a y o f S a t u r n u s , ' several a n c i e n t a u t h o r s m a k e their c o m m e n t s . S i n c e t h e s e c a n easily b e found in S t e r n ' s 21
GLAJJ,
they n e e d not d e t a i n us h e r e . All t h e s e e l e m e n t s , p e r h a p s w i t h the
a d m i x t u r e o f the story that C r e t a n s - like J e w s - a b s t a i n e d from e a t i n g p o r k ,
22
m a y h a v e c r e a t e d this fanciful t h e o r y o f the C r e t a n origin o f the J e w s . It d o e s not a d d a n y t h i n g to o u r k n o w l e d g e o f J e w i s h h i s t o r y in C r e t e , h o w e v e r . F r o m the p e r i o d b e t w e e n the b e g i n n i n g o f the s e c o n d to that of t h e fifth c e n tury C E w e h a v e n o literary e v i d e n c e on C r e t a n Jewry. R a b b i n i c literature yields n o d a t a n o r d o Christian s o u r c e s . It is p o s s i b l e only to s p e c u l a t e . T h u s a consider able influx o f J e w s into C r e t e from C y r e n e (ancient L i b y a ) m a y h a v e o c c u r r e d in the y e a r s 1 1 5 - 1 1 7 C E , w h e n the great r e v o l t erupted t h e r e a n d e l s e w h e r e in N o r t h Africa. T h e r e h a d b e e n c l o s e c o n n e c t i o n s b e t w e e n C r e t e a n d C y r e n e e v e r s i n c e R o m e united the t w o a d m i n i s t r a t i v e l y to form o n e p r o v i n c e in t h e sixties o f the first c e n t u r y B C E . It is k n o w n that d u r i n g the revolt m a n y J e w s fled to the islands, a n d it is p r o b a b l e that m a n y o f t h e m w e n t to C r e t e . 1 8
2 3
On this problem see W. Fauth in H. Heubner & W. Fauth, P. Cornelius Tacitus: Die Historien, vol. 5, Heidelberg 1982, 2 0 - 2 (there lit.). On the Sea Peoples E. Noort, Die Seevolker in Paldstina, Kampen 1994. See G. Mussies, 'Marnas, God of Gaza,' ANRW II 18, 4, Berlin & N e w York 1990, 2412-2457. Vergil, Aen. I 2 6 7 - 8 . See A.M.A. Hospers-Jansen, Tacitus over de Joden, Groningen 1949, 112. Other instances in M. Stern, Greek and Latin Authors on Jews and Judaism (= GLAJJ;, vol. 2, Jerusalem 1980, 33. See the references in GLAJJ, vol. 3, Jerusalem 1984, 147. See the references in GLAJJ, vol. 1, Jerusalem 1974, 559. See S. Applebaum, Jews and Greeks in Ancient Cyrene, Leiden 1979, 2 9 2 - 3 , and H.Z. (J.W.) Hirschberg, A History of the Jews in North Africa, vol. 1, Leiden 1974, 39. 1 9
2 0
2 1
2 2
2 3
18
The Jews of Ancient
Crete
N o w w e turn to the final a n d m o s t d r a m a t i c p i e c e o f r e l e v a n t literary e v i d e n c e e x t a n t : the Historia
Ecclesiastica
o f S o c r a t e s , c o m p o s e d in a b o u t 4 4 0 , a w o r k
d e s i g n e d to c o n t i n u e t h e story o f E u s e b i u s ' Historia
Ecclesiastical
and cover
ing the e v e n t s from the a c c e s s i o n o f C o n s t a n t i n e to the y e a r 4 3 8 / 9 . In o n e o f t h e final c h a p t e r s o f the b o o k (VII 38) h e w r i t e s the f o l l o w i n g :
25
At about the s a m e time, m a n y o f the J e w s in Crete b e c a m e Christians b e c a u s e o f the fol l o w i n g incident. A J e w i s h impostor pretended to b e M o s e s . H e said he had b e e n sent from h e a v e n in order to evacuate the J e w s w h o lived on the island by leading t h e m through the sea. For he said he w a s the s a m e person w h o also s a v e d Israel through the R e d S e a l o n g a g o . During a w h o l e year he w e n t around along e v e r y t o w n o f the island, and he tried to persuade the J e w s w h o lived there to b e l i e v e such things. H e exhorted t h e m to l e a v e behind all their m o n e y and p o s s e s s i o n s . For he p r o m i s e d to lead them through the dry sea to the land o f promise. T h o s e w h o let t h e m s e l v e s be cheated with such h o p e s b e g a n to n e g l e c t all their tasks. A n d they also d e s p i s e d what they p o s s e s s e d and let it b e taken a w a y by any c h a n c e person. W h e n the day designated b y the J e w i s h impostor arrived, he h i m s e l f led the w a y and all the others f o l l o w e d with their w i v e s and little children. H e brought t h e m to a promontory that stood as a precipice a b o v e the sea and ordered t h e m to p l u n g e into it. T h o s e w h o first reached the e d g e did s o , and they died straight away, partly b e c a u s e they dashed against the cliffs, partly also b e c a u s e they d r o w n e d in the water. A n d more p e o p l e w o u l d h a v e b e e n killed if not b y G o d ' s p r o v i d e n c e s o m e Christian
fishermen
and merchants w o u l d have been there. T h e s e saved s o m e w h o w e r e drowning by dragging t h e m up. O n l y then, w h e n they w e r e suffering so badly, they realized their folly. T h e y kept the others off from throwing t h e m s e l v e s d o w n by telling them about the deaths o f those w h o threw t h e m s e l v e s d o w n before. Then they too realized the fraud and b l a m e d t h e m s e l v e s for their uncritical belief. But w h e n they eagerly w a n t e d to kill the p s e u d o - M o s e s , they c o u l d not lay their hands o n h i m , for he had disappeared. A n d this raised in m a n y the s u s p i c i o n that he had been an a v e n g i n g d e m o n w h o had taken o n human d i s g u i s e in order to outrage their p e o p l e there. B y this incident m a n y o f the J e w s w h o then lived in Crete took l e a v e o f Judaism and embraced the Christian faith (Hist. Eccl. VII 3 8 ) .
Several e l e m e n t s in this p a s s a g e n e e d to b e d i s c u s s e d .
27
2 6
A s r e g a r d s the reliability
o f t h e story, it s h o u l d b e said that, a l t h o u g h o n the o n e h a n d Christian bias m a y
2 4
See G.F. Chesnut, The First Christian Histories, Paris 1977, 1 6 7 - 1 8 9 . The text translated is that from Migne's Patrologia Graeca 67, 8 2 5 - 8 (with minor cor rections). Unfortunately, the new edition by P. Perichon for the Sources Chretiennes series, although announced long ago (see his article 'Pour une edition nouvelle de l'historien Socrate: les manuscripts et les versions,' Recherches de science religieuse 53 (1965) 112-120), has not appeared so far. See also the old three-volume edition by R. Hussey, Socratis Scholastici Ecclesiastica Historia, Oxford 1853, text in vol. 2, 8 2 2 - 4 ; Hussey has no annotations to this chapter. [In 2004, finally, Perichon published, in collaboration with P. Maraval, the first volume in the Sources Chretiennes, containing only book 1. Also the new edition by G.C. Hansen and M. Sirinjan, published in 1995 in the GCS series, was not yet available when this article was written. Their new text does not make any difference for the translation.] For Latin versions of the same story see, inter alios, Cassiodorus, Historia tripartita X I I 9 (PL 69, 1210-11 or CSEL 7 1 , 6 7 7 - 8 ) . Several other Latin authors are listed by B. Blumenkranz, Juifs et chretiens dans le monde occidental 430-1096, Paris - La Haye 1960, 2 4 4 n. 139. Very brief discussions of this passage are given by M. Seligsohn in Jew. Enc. 9 (1905) 2 5
2 6
2 7
The Jews of Ancient
Crete
19
b e r e s p o n s i b l e for s o m e e x a g g e r a t i o n ( e . g . , many o f the J e w s f o l l o w i n g the im p o s t o r ) , e s p e c i a l l y in the h a p p y e n d i n g (many
o f t h e m b e c o m i n g C h r i s t i a n ) , on
t h e o t h e r h a n d it w a s to b e e x p e c t e d e x a c t l y in this p e r i o d , as w e shall see p r e s ently, that m e s s i a n i c h o p e s w o u l d run high. So t h e r e c a n b e little d o u b t that the kernel o f the story is historical. T h e p e r i o d in q u e s t i o n c a n b e fixed fairly exactly. T h e terminus
ante quern is 4 3 8 / 4 3 9 C E , the final y e a r dealt w i t h b y S o c r a t e s in
this w o r k ; the terminus
a quo is 4 3 1 / 4 3 2 , since the i m m e d i a t e l y p r e c e d i n g story
r e c o u n t s e v e n t s w h i c h took p l a c e d u r i n g the c o n s u l s h i p o f B a s s u s a n d A n t i o c h u s , w h o b e c a m e c o n s u l s in 4 3 1 . S o m o s t p r o b a b l y the t i m e c a n b e p l a c e d in the first h a l f or the m i d d l e of the thirties o f the fifth c e n t u r y C E . Strikingly e n o u g h , this is the first m e s s i a n i c m o v e m e n t k n o w n since the B a r K o c h b a revolt exactly three c e n t u r i e s before. T h a t m e s s i a n i c risings n o l o n g e r o c c u r r e d after the shattering defeat o f t h e s e c o n d r e v o l t ( 1 3 2 - 5 C E ) is n o t surprising, b u t w h y did they recur, in b o t h pacifistic-quietistic a n d in b e l l i g e r e n t w a y s , from ca. 4 3 0 o n w a r d s ? F o r this m o v e m e n t w a s only t h e first in a long series r a n g i n g from o u r p s e u d o - M o s e s to S h a b b e t a i Z w i .
2 8
T h e r e are clear r e a s o n s for t h e r e s u r g e n c e o f m e s s i a n i c e x p e c t a t i o n s in this p e r i o d . First, e v e r since t h e d e s t r u c t i o n o f the T e m p l e in 7 0 C E , J e w s h a d p r a y e d for a n d e x p e c t e d the defeat o f R o m e a n d t h e a s c e n d a n c y o f t h e J e w i s h p e o p l e consequent upon it.
29
' I n t h e fifth c e n t u r y t h e s e h o p e s r e a c h e d their fever point.
T h e E m p i r e w a s b r e a k i n g u p ; the l o n g - a n t i c i p a t e d c o l l a p s e w a s a b o u t to take place.'
3 0
T h e city of R o m e h a d b e e n c o n q u e r e d a n d s a c k e d b y the V i s i g o t h s in
4 1 0 . T h e y e a r s following s a w other i n v a s i o n s in Italy a n d e l s e w h e r e . In 4 3 0 N o r t h Africa w a s o v e r r u n b y t h e V a n d a l s . A n d in 4 3 3 A t t i l a ' s rise to p o w e r in the H u n n i s h k i n g d o m w a s t h e b e g i n n i n g o f a n e w a n d t r e m e n d o u s threat to the p o w e r o f R o m e . S e c o n d , t h e r e w a s a n e n o r m o u s d e t e r i o r a t i o n in the c o n d i t i o n s o f life for t h e J e w s in the first third o f the fifth century. R o m a n , /. e. Christian, o p p r e s s i o n intensified. T h e o d o s i u s II (408^4-50) a b o l i s h e d t h e J e w i s h p a t r i a r c h a t e a n d c l o s e d t h e few r e m a i n i n g r a b b i n i c s c h o o l s . T h i s e m p e r o r , w h o d e p o s e d the patriarch G a m l i e l V I , also forbade t h e c o n s t r u c t i o n o f n e w s y n a g o g u e s a n d o r d e r e d t h e d e s t r u c t i o n o f e x i s t i n g o n e s . In 4 3 8 h e e v e n issued a d e c r e e in w h i c h 64; S.W. Baron, A Social and Religious History of the Jews, vol. 5, N e w York 1957, 168, 367; B. Blumenkranz, Juifs 244. For a list of messianic movements from the fifth through the twelfth centuries see K.H. Bernhardt, 'Zur Eigenart und Alter der messianisch-eschatologischen Zusatze im Targum Jeruschalmi I,' in Gott und die Gotten FS E. Fascher, Berlin n.d. (1958?), 79. For the same period see further A.H. Silver, A History of Messianic Speculation from the First through the Seventeenth Centuries, Boston 1959 (repr. of the 1927 ed.), 2 5 - 8 0 ; H. Ben Sasson, 'Messianic Movements,' Enc. Jud. 11 (1972) 1 4 2 0 - 2 2 . Both Silver and Ben Sasson wrongly date the ap pearance of the Cretan Moses to the middle o f the fifth century. See Silver, History 2 7 - 9 for references. For a general survey of Jewish attitudes toward Rome in antiquity see G. Stemberger, Die romische Herrschaft im Urteil derJuden, Darmstadt 1983. Silver, History 29. 2 8
2 9
3 0
20
The Jews of Ancient
Crete
J e w s , defined as e n e m i e s o f the R o m a n l a w s a n d o f s u p r e m e majesty, w e r e forbidden to h o l d a n y h i g h office. T h u s in the t w e n t i e s a n d thirties o f the fifth century, their civil inferiority a n d d i s c r i m i n a t i o n w e r e legally s a n c t i o n e d . T h i s in itself w o u l d h a v e b e e n a l r e a d y e n o u g h to k i n d l e m e s s i a n i c s e n t i m e n t s .
31
B u t quite apart from t h e s e factors, o l d e r traditions p r e d i c t e d that t h e m e s s i a h w o u l d c o m e s o m e t i m e in the fifth century. A s m a y b e o b s e r v e d in T a l m u d B a v l i (Avoda Zara 9 a - b ; Sanhedrin
9 7 a - b a n d 99a, a n d parallel p a s s a g e s ) , c a l c u l a t i o n s
v a r i e d from 3 6 5 to 4 0 0 (or m o r e ) y e a r s after the d e s t r u c t i o n of the T e m p l e , that is to say, s o m e w h e r e from ca. 4 3 5 o n w a r d s . R a v A s h i , w h o lived in t h e b e g i n n i n g o f the fifth century, e v e n s o u g h t to avert a n y evil c o n s e q u e n c e s w h i c h m i g h t follow u p o n the failure o f this m e s s i a n i c h o p e b y s a y i n g that before the e i g h t y fifth j u b i l e e , i. e. 4 4 0 - 4 9 0 C E , o n e s h o u l d not e x p e c t the m e s s i a h (Sanh.
97b).
3 2
It w a s i n e v i t a b l e that the w o r s e n i n g c i r c u m s t a n c e s fertilized t h e s e m e s s i a n i c s p e c u l a t i o n s e x a c t l y in the thirties o f the fifth c e n t u r y C E . N o w o n d e r , t o o , that in an a g e o f e s c h a t o l o g i c a l ferment s o m e o n e c l a i m i n g to b e a n e w G o d - s e n t M o s e s found a r e a d y a u d i e n c e . T h e n e x t p o i n t to b e n o t e d is that t h e e v e n t d e s c r i b e d follows a pattern w e l l - k n o w n from similar m e s s i a n i c m o v e m e n t s in t h e first c e n t u r y C E .
3 3
A
c o n s t i t u t i v e e l e m e n t in it is the idea that the e s c h a t o l o g i c a l liberation will b e similar to the e x o d u s from E g y p t . ' J e w i s h p r o p h e c y - a n d particularly J e w i s h e s c h a t o l o g i c a l p r o p h e c y - foresees the future as r e - c r e a t i o n o f the p a s t . '
3 4
Already
the p r o p h e t M i c a h h a d said: ' A s in the d a y s w h e n y o u c a m e out o f the land o f E g y p t , I will s h o w t h e m m a r v e l l o u s t h i n g s ' ( 7 : 1 5 , R S V ) . T h i s ' e x o d u s ' m o t i f in e s c h a t o l o g i c a l e x p e c t a t i o n r e c u r s in m o s t m e s s i a n i c m o v e m e n t s o f t h e I m p e r i a l p e r i o d a n d later t i m e s , a n d o f c o u r s e the figure o f a n e w M o s e s w a s integral to 3 1
For the text of the imperial decrees see A. Lindcr, The Jews in Roman Imperial Legisla tion, Detroit & Jerusalem 1 9 8 7 , 2 9 5 - 3 3 7 . See further J. Juster, Les Juifs dans I 'Empire Romain, 2 vols., Paris 1914,1 162-7, II 101 - 3 ; M. Simon, Verus Israel. A Study of the Relations Between Christians and Jews in the Roman Empire, Oxford 1986, 2 2 4 - 3 3 ; A.M. Rabello, 'Theodosius II,' Enc. Jud. 15 (1972) 1101-2. It should be added that Theodosius' measures sometimes had only regional application or were later mitigated. Silver, History 2 6 - 7 . See on these passages also E.E. Urbach, 'Redemption and Repen tance in Talmudic Judaism,' in R.J. Zwi Werblowski & C.J. Bleeker (eds.), Types of Redemp tion, Leiden 1970, 1 9 0 - 2 0 6 . P.W. Barnett, 'The Jewish Sign Prophets 4 0 - 7 0 AD: Their Intentions and Origins,' NTS 27 (1980/81) 6 7 9 - 9 7 ; R. A. Horsley, 'Popular Messianic Movements Around the Time of Jesus,' CBQ 46 (1984) 4 7 1 - 9 5 ; idem, 'Popular Prophetic Movements at the Time of Jesus,' JSNT26 (1986) 3 - 2 7 ; M. Hengel, DieZeloten, Leiden 1976 ( 2 ed.),passim. See now also R.A. Horsley and J.S. Hanson, Bandits, Prophets and Messiahs: Popular Movements in the Time of Jesus, N e w York 1986. Horsley's careful distinction between messianic and prophetic movements is relevant for the study of the various first-century charismatic types, but not for our passage from the fifth century. H. Jacobson, 'Visions of the Past: Jews and Greeks,' Judaism 35 (1986) 468; cf. ibid. 479: 'Jews consistently saw themselves, both in large (i.e., the Jewish nation) and in small (individuals), as rc-cxperiencing, re-creating or rc-living the history of earlier Jews.' Jacobson argues that in this respect there is a striking difference between Jews and Greeks. 3 2
3 3
n d
3 4
The Jews of Ancient
this e x p e c t a t i o n .
35
21
Crete
'It w a s perfectly natural that a p e o p l e w h o s e v e r y identity
h a d b e e n forged in the recitation o f the e x o d u s d e l i v e r a n c e s h o u l d treasure the m e m o r y o f M o s e s a n d look for r e s c u e in their o w n p e r i o d s o f crisis in t e r m s o f a repetition o f the e x o d u s e v e n t s . '
3 6
A s e c o n d e l e m e n t that p l a y e d a role h e r e is the
prediction in D e u t . 1 8 : 1 5 - 1 8 of the a p p e a r a n c e o f a p r o p h e t like M o s e s , a l t h o u g h this m o t i f is less explicit in o u r s o u r c e s . Josephus,
3 8
37
If t h e e v i d e n c e is studied, e s p e c i a l l y in
it will b e s e e n that r e c u r r i n g traits o f t h e s e first-century m o v e m e n t s
are the e x o d u s into t h e desert, the u s u a l l y sizeable following, a n d the e x p e c t a t i o n o f m i r a c l e s p r o m i s e d b y t h e m e s s i a n i c pretender. N o w s i n c e t h e r e is n o d e s e r t in C r e t e , the first c o u l d n o t p l a y a part in o u r story. It w a s therefore r e p l a c e d b y the t h e m e o f b e i n g led d r y s h o d t h r o u g h the sea to Palestine. T h e m i r a c l e o f deliver a n c e is p r e s e n t in the form o f the e x o d u s m i r a c l e par excellence,
the passage
t h r o u g h the sea. T h e large f o l l o w i n g is also i n c l u d e d . A s t h e s e m o v e m e n t s in the first c e n t u r y a p p e a r e d to r e - e n a c t the g r e a t d i v i n e act o f liberation from biblical history, so o u r p r e t e n d e r a n d his followers a c t e d out this p a t t e r n o f liberation a c c o r d i n g to the historical-eschatological t y p o l o g y a n d t h u s participated in the n e w and anticipated divine action.
39
H e n c e w e see that after four c e n t u r i e s the pattern
is still essentially u n c h a n g e d , t h e o n l y real n e w e l e m e n t b e i n g that the p r e t e n d e r called h i m s e l f M o s e s . A n o t h e r difference is, o f c o u r s e , that the m o v e m e n t did n o t e n d in m a s s a c r e b y the r u l i n g authorities, w h i c h w a s the c o m m o n d i s a s t r o u s e n d i n g o f the first-century m o v e m e n t s a c c o r d i n g to J o s e p h u s . T h e r e c u r r e n c e o f this a n c i e n t pattern in the story u n d e r d i s c u s s i o n s u g g e s t s that the C r e t a n J e w s fostered the old traditions o f their p e o p l e . T h e final q u e s t i o n to b e raised in this c o n n e c t i o n is w h e t h e r the e v e n t r e c o r d e d b y S o c r a t e s i m p l i e d the e n d o f C r e t a n Jewry, as the a u t h o r s e e m s to suggest. A s a m a t t e r o f fact, apart from a n inscription w h i c h m a y d e r i v e from the s a m e p e r i o d a n d w h i c h will b e d i s c u s s e d presently, n o reports w h a t s o e v e r exist o n J e w s or J u d a i s m in C r e t e b e t w e e n t h e first h a l f o f the fifth c e n t u r y a n d the e l e v e n t h c e n tury.
40
F u r t h e r m o r e , reports from ca. 1000 C E o n w a r d s s u g g e s t that C r e t a n J e w s
f o r m e d o n l y a v e r y small g r o u p b y then. W h a t h a d h a p p e n e d in the i n t e r v e n i n g five or six c e n t u r i e s , w e d o not k n o w . T h e o n l y C r e t a n C h u r c h father o f s o m e significance, A n d r e w of C r e t e , w h o w o r k e d in t h e first h a l f o f t h e eight century, m a k e s v e r y n e g a t i v e a n d s c a t h i n g r e m a r k s c o n c e r n i n g the J e w s , but t h e s e are so 3 5
See J. Jeremias, 'Moses,' TWNT 4 (1942) 8 5 2 - 7 8 , esp. 8 6 0 - 8 ; D.L. Tiede, The Charis matic Figure as Miracle Worker, Missoula 1972, 1 7 8 - 2 0 7 . Tiede, Charismatic Figure 178-9. Jeremias,'Moses'860-1. E.g., Bell. II 2 5 8 - 2 6 3 ; VI 285; VII 4 3 7 - 4 4 1 ; Ant. XVIII 8 5 - 8 7 ; X X 9 7 - 9 8 , 1 6 7 - 1 7 2 , 188. This formulation is borrowed from Horsley, JSNT 26 (1986) 7 - 8 . For the later Middle A g e s see, e.g., I. L e v i , ' L e s juifs de Candie de 1380 a 1485,' REJ 26 (1893) 1 9 8 - 2 0 8 ; S. Schwarzfuchs, 'Apropos des juifs de Crete et de N e g r e p o n t , ' . K £ / ( 3 ser.) 2 [119] (1961) 1 5 2 - 8 ; L.J. Weinberger, Jewish Poets in Crete, Cincinnati 1985. 3 6
3 7
3 8
3 9
4 0
rd
The Jews of Ancient
22
Crete
m u c h the stock invectives k n o w n from other Christian w r i t e r s that A n d r e w p r o b ably b o r r o w e d t h e m from his p r e d e c e s s o r s . T h e y c a n n o t b e u s e d to s h e d light o n the situation o f the C r e t a n J e w s o f that t i m e .
41
W h e t h e r or n o t t h e e v e n t s related
b y S o c r a t e s m a r k e d the e n d i n g of a n c i e n t C r e t a n J e w r y , w e h a v e to r e c o r d that it c o n s t i t u t e s the last p i e c e o f e x t a n t e v i d e n c e for a v e r y l o n g period. To turn lastly to the e p i g r a p h i c a l m a t e r i a l , o n e p i e c e o f inscriptional e v i d e n c e , t h e r e c e n t l y p u b l i s h e d S a m a r i t a n inscription from D e l o s , h a s a l r e a d y b e e n d i s c u s s e d a b o v e , a n d w e will n o w limit o u r s e l v e s to e v i d e n c e from C r e t e itself. A s e a r c h o f the 1936 edition o f vol. I o f J . - B . F r e y ' s Corpus carum
Inscriptionum
Judai
y i e l d s n o t h i n g . In the 1975 reprint, h o w e v e r , B a r u c h Lifshitz h a s a d d e d a
P r o l e g o m e n o n w i t h quite a n u m b e r o f n e w inscriptions, three o f w h i c h are from Crete.
4 2
B e f o r e p r e s e n t i n g t h e s e , w e first h a v e to d i s c u s s briefly the difficult
p r o b l e m o f h o w to tell a J e w i s h from a n o n - J e w i s h inscription. In his Corpus pyrorum
Judaicarum,
Victor T c h e r i k o v e r lists the f o l l o w i n g c r i t e r i a :
is J e w i s h (a) if t h e w o r d loudaios
or Hebraios
43
Pa-
a papyrus
o c c u r s in it; (b) if t e c h n i c a l t e r m s
like ' s y n a g o g u e ' or ' s a b b a t h ' a p p e a r in it; (c) if it o r i g i n a t e s from w h a t is k n o w n to h a v e b e e n a p l a c e o f e x c l u s i v e l y J e w i s h s e t t l e m e n t ; (d) if it c o n t a i n s J e w i s h n a m e s . N o w , unfortunately, the first three criteria c a n n o t b e applied to a n y C r e t a n inscription, w i t h o n e e x c e p t i o n , a n d in a p p l y i n g t h e fourth criterion w e m o v e on e x t r e m e l y s l i p p e r y g r o u n d . A s R o s s K r a e m e r r e m i n d s u s , there are v e r y few n a m e s ' w h i c h c a n be d e m o n s t r a t e d to h a v e b e e n used o n l y by J e w s , and n e v e r b y 4 4
C h r i s t i a n s or p a g a n s , w h e t h e r in the s a m e or other g e o g r a p h i c a r e a s . ' A s will b e seen, b o t h B a n d y (see n. 4 2 ) a n d Lifshitz d e s i g n a t e inscriptions as J e w i s h o n l y on t h e b a s i s o f a n a m e w h i c h c o u l d as w e l l b e r e g a r d e d as C h r i s t i a n or p a g a n , w h e r e a s t h e y d o not m e n t i o n s o m e inscriptions from the c o r p u s o f Creticae
Inscriptiones
w h i c h o n the s a m e p r i n c i p l e c o u l d h a v e b e e n i n c l u d e d as J e w i s h .
To b e g i n w i t h the first category, B a n d y ' s first ' J e w i s h ' inscription (from t h e fifth c e n t u r y C E ) r u n s as follows (Inscr. Cret. IV n o . 5 0 9 ) : [This burial place b e l o n g s ] to lord Satyros, s o n o f T h e o d o u l o s , a priest, (and) to M o s e s , a ruler w h o (both?) sought salvation with m a n y t o i l s . 4 1
See Andreas Cretensis, Homiliae
45
2 (PG 97: 821C), 3 ( 8 4 5 C - D 0 , 8 (964B), 10 (1024C)
etc. 4 2
In the forty years in between both Margareta Guarducci's Inscriptiones Creticae (4 vols., Rome 1 9 3 5 - 1 9 5 0 ) and Anastasios C. Bandy's Greek Christian Inscriptions from Crete (Athens 1970; with an appendix on Jewish inscriptions) were published. [ N o w w e have D. Noy, A. Panayotov & H. Bloedhorn, Inscriptiones Judaicae Orientis I: Eastern Europe, Tubingen 2 0 0 4 , where on pp. 2 4 9 - 2 5 3 three Jewish inscriptions from Crete are published, one of which is a very dubious case.] V.A. Tcherikover & A. Fuks, Corpus Papyrorum Judaicarum, vol. 1, Cambridge M A 1957, x v i i - x x . R.S. Kraemer, 'Hellenistic Jewish Women: The Epigraphical Evidence,' SBL Seminar Papers 1986, Atlanta 1986, 191 ( 1 8 3 - 2 0 0 ) . Bandy, Greek Christian Inscriptions 140. I correct his translation where I do not agree with him. 4 3
4 4
4 5
The Jews of Ancient
23
Crete
B a n d y r e g a r d s the inscription as J e w i s h b e c a u s e o f t h e o c c u r r e n c e o f the n a m e M o s e s a n d the m e n t i o n o f the offices o f priest, hiereus,
a n d ruler, archon,
which
h e s u g g e s t i v e l y translates as ' h e a d o f t h e s y n a g o g u e . ' A s Lifshitz aptly r e m a r k s , h o w e v e r , ' t h e n a m e o f M o s e s is e x t r e m e l y rare in J e w i s h inscriptions a n d v e r y frequent in C h r i s t i a n e p i g r a p h y . '
46
It s h o u l d b e a d d e d that hiereus
title o f a C h r i s t i a n official, a n d that archon, official, m a y b e a secular ruler o f s o m e k i n d .
c o u l d b e the
a l t h o u g h it c a n d e s i g n a t e a J e w i s h 47
T h a t is to say, B a n d y m a y b e right
a n d Lifshitz m a y b e right; w e j u s t d o n o t k n o w .
4 8
C u r i o u s l y e n o u g h , the critical s e n s e that Lifshitz d i s p l a y e d in this c a s e s e e m s to l e a v e h i m in a n o t h e r c a s e . F o r his o w n first inscription, o n a t o m b s t o n e re g a r d e d b y h i m as J e w i s h , r u n s as follows (Inscr. Cret. II n o . 8): Sanbathis (set up this stone) for H e r m e s for the sake o f m e m o r y .
49
Lifshitz a s s u m e s that the inscription is J e w i s h b e c a u s e o f t h e o c c u r r e n c e of the n a m e S a n b a t h i s , w h i c h is o n e o f t h e H e l l e n i z e d f o r m s o f the H e b r e w n a m e S h a b b e t a i . H e is certainly right in stating that this n a m e w a s v e r y c o m m o n a m o n g J e w s . B u t h e c o u l d h a v e k n o w n t h e v e r y instructive e x c u r s u s o n ' T h e S a m b a t h i o n s ' b y M e n a c h e m Stern in the Corpus
Papyrorum
Judaicarum^
w h e r e it is p r o v e d b e y o n d a n y d o u b t that, w h e r e a s in t h e H e l l e n i s t i c p e r i o d this n a m e w a s b y a n d large a t y p i c a l l y J e w i s h n a m e , in the R o m a n a n d B y z a n t i n e p e r i o d s a great m a n y n o n - J e w s a d o p t e d it w i t h o u t b e i n g a w a r e o f its original connotations.
51
S t e r n ' s e v i d e n c e is from E g y p t , b u t it is attested from C r e t e as
w e l l that t h e n a m e s S a n b a t h i o n a n d S a n b a t h i s w e r e u s e d b y p a g a n s a n d C h r i s tians.
52
If Lifshitz w o u l d h a v e b e e n as critical in this i n s t a n c e as in t h e c a s e o f
B a n d y ' s first inscription, h e w o u l d h a v e o m i t t e d it, for the inscription is not from t h e H e l l e n i s t i c p e r i o d . H o w e v e r , it s h o u l d b e said o n c e m o r e that t h e r e is n o w a y o f attaining a n y certainty r e g a r d i n g inscriptions w h i c h d o n o t exhibit, in a d d i t i o n to n a m e s , explicitly J e w i s h s y m b o l s like t h e m e n o r a h or Christian 4 6
Prolegomenon to the CIJ reprint, N e w York 1975, 89. See BAGD 114. Except Lifshitz, also B. Nystrom, 'Inscr. Cret. IV 509: An Ancient Christian Priest?,' ZPE 50 (1983) 122, regards this inscription as non-Jewish. [And so does Noy, Inscr. Jud. Ori ent. I, 3 4 1 - 3 , where this inscription is relegated to an appendix with material not considered Jewish.] [This inscription is also published by N o y c.s., Inscr. Jud. Orient. I, 343—4, but again regarded as probably Christian.] CPJ III, Cambridge M A 1964, 4 3 - 5 6 . In the Hellenistic period the usual Greek form of the name was Sabbathai/Sabbathaios or Sambathaios; in Imperial times it often became Sambat(h)i6n and Sambathion or Sambathis or Sabbatis (fern.); later hypocoristic forms are Sambas (masc.) and Sabbe (fern.). Details in Stern (see n. 50). E.G., Inscr. Cret. II.xxiv.12. For more evidence of the non-Jewish use o f the names Sambathis etc. see H. Solin, 'Juden und Syrer im westlichen Teil der romischen Welt. Eine ethnisch-demographische Studie mit besonderer Beriicksichtigung der sprachlichen Zustande,' ANRWW 2 9 , 2, Berlin & N e w York 1983, 5 8 7 - 7 8 9 , esp. 645 n. 145 and 679. 4 7
4 8
4 9
5 0
5 1
5 2
24
The Jews of Ancient
Crete
s y m b o l s like the cross or a l p h a a n d o m e g a . T h a t is to say, G u a r d u c c i ' s large c o r p u s o f C r e t a n inscriptions m a y w e l l i n c l u d e a n u m b e r o f J e w i s h o n e s w h i c h w e c a n n o t r e c o g n i z e as s u c h . W h a t , for i n s t a n c e , is o n e to say o f graffiti w i t h n a m e s s u c h as Avdias, (Inscr.
w h i c h is a l m o s t certainly t h e t r a n s c r i p t i o n o f O v a d i a
Cret. I I . x x i i i . 2 8 . 3 4 . 5 2 ) ; or o f inscriptions c o n t a i n i n g the n a m e
w h i c h c a n h a r d l y be o t h e r than a scribal v a r i a n t o f Saulos a n d IV 2 2 3 b ) ; or o f inscriptions w i t h n a m e s like Simon
Zaulos,
(Inscr. Cret. II.xii.23
a n d loannes
(Inscr.
Cret.
II.xv.4 a n d 5; I.xxv.8); or o f the n u m e r o u s i n s c r i p t i o n s in w h i c h n a m e s s u c h as Eirena
or Theodoros
or Dositheos
are found (Inscr.
Cret.,
I n d e x s.vv.)? T h e y
m a y b e J e w i s h , b u t s o m e , or all, m a y b e C h r i s t i a n or p a g a n , like the inscriptions w i t h n a m e s s u c h as M o s e s a n d S a n b a t h i s . W e h a v e to r e c o n c i l e o u r s e l v e s to t h e fact that there are n o m e a n s o f d i s t i n g u i s h i n g b e t w e e n J e w i s h a n d n o n - J e w i s h i n s c r i p t i o n s on the b a s i s o f n a m e s a l o n e , w h e n o t h e r indicators are absent. T h i s sad c o n c l u s i o n l e a v e s u s w i t h o n l y t w o i n s c r i p t i o n s r e g a r d e d as J e w i s h b y b o t h B a n d y a n d Lifshitz a n d b y o t h e r scholars as w e l l .
5 3
T h e first is a t o m b s t o n e a n d is not v e r y r e v e a l i n g . T h e a c c u m u l a t i o n o f t h r e e typically J e w i s h n a m e s in three s u c c e s s i v e g e n e r a t i o n s m a k e s it h i g h l y p r o b a b l e that it is a J e w i s h inscription. It runs as follows: Josephus, son o f T h e o d o r u s , (set up this stone) for Judas his s o n as a memorial. ( H e lived) o n e year (Inscr. Cret. I . v . 1 7 ) .
54
T h i s inscription from the third or fourth c e n t u r y C E w a s found in an a r e a at K a s s a n o i called Hebroi cemetery.'
55
(= Hebraioi),
' w h e r e there w a s r e p u t e d to b e a J e w i s h
B u t it is not o n l y this e l e m e n t that m a k e s it p r o b a b l e that w e h a v e
to d o w i t h a J e w i s h inscription. A n a d d i t i o n a l factor is that a l t h o u g h , as w e h a v e seen, ' J e w i s h ' n a m e s n e e d not in t h e m s e l v e s indicate a J e w i s h origin, in this case a J e w i s h o r i g i n is m a d e e x t r e m e l y p r o b a b l e b y t h e fact that the f a t h e r ' s n a m e is r e c o r d e d , w h i c h is an e l e m e n t l a c k i n g in all C h r i s t i a n i n s c r i p t i o n s o f C r e t e .
5 6
A l t h o u g h I a m c o n v i n c e d that this inscription is J e w i s h , it m u s t b e a d m i t t e d that it leaves r o o m for d o u b t to the e x t r e m e sceptic. Fortunately, the final p i e c e o f e p i g r a p h i c e v i d e n c e d o e s not. A g a i n , it is a s e p u l c h r a l inscription, from Kastelli K i s s a m o u , w h i c h w a s d a t e d b y B a n d y to the first or s e c o n d c e n t u r y C E , b u t b y t h e great e p i g r a p h e r L o u i s R o b e r t to the fourth or fifth c e n t u r y C E .
5 3
5 7
T h e latter
There is a possibility that Inscr. Cret. IV no. 518 (Bandy's no. 35) is Jewish, but it may be Christian, and the interpretation is highly uncertain because the text is seriously damaged. See Bandy, Greek Christian Inscriptions 142, for a photo of the inscription. Bandy, ibid. Bandy, ibid. This inscription is not included in Inscr. Cret. It was first published by Bandy in Hesperia 32 (1963) 2 2 7 - 9 , and afterwards also in his Greek Christian Inscriptions 143. Jeanne and Louis Robert discussed it in their 'Bulletin epigraphique' in Revue des etudes grecques 11 (1964) 4 1 3 , and Lifshitz in the Prolegomenon to CIJ, at I 88, where the text is printed as no. 73 lc. [It is now no. Cre3 in Inscr. Jud. Orient. I 2 5 2 - 3 . ] 5 4
5 5
5 6
5 7
The Jews of Ancient
25
Crete
d a t i n g is also d e f e n d e d b y Lifshitz a n d b y B e r n a d e t t e B r o o t e n in h e r disserta tion.
58
T h e text r u n s as follows :
Sophia o f Gortyn, elder and leader o f the s y n a g o g u e o f K i s s a m o s , lies here. T h e m e m o r y o f the righteous o n e be for ever. A m e n .
5 9
T h e r e is an i l l u m i n a t i n g difference b e t w e e n the interpretation o f this inscrip tion b y B a n d y a n d the o n e b y B r o o t e n . B a n d y a d o p t s the traditional t h e o r y that ' e l d e r ' {presbytera)
a n d ' l e a d e r o f the s y n a g o g u e ' (archisynagogissa)
are
' h o n o r a r y t i t l e s ' ( 1 4 3 ) , b e s t o w e d u p o n S o p h i a b e c a u s e h e r h u s b a n d - not she h e r s e l f - h e l d the offices o f e l d e r a n d h e a d o f the s y n a g o g u e . It w a s B r o o t e n w h o w a s the first to b r e a k t h r o u g h this traditional a n d r o c e n t r i c i n t e r p r e t a t i o n .
60
S h e c o n v i n c i n g l y interpreted a w h o l e series o f inscriptions c o n c e r n i n g J e w i s h w o m e n in s u c h a w a y that it b e c a m e o b v i o u s that titles like presbytera archisynagogissa
w e r e n o t h o n o r a r y titles but i n d i c a t e d real f u n c t i o n s .
w r i t e s o n o u r inscription: ' T h e r e is n o internal
and 61
She
r e a s o n for b e l i e v i n g that S o p h i a
o f G o r t y n received the titles t h r o u g h h e r h u s b a n d . If h e r h u s b a n d w e r e the s o u r c e o f h e r titles, w h y is she n o t called S o p h i a t h e wife o f X ? T h e i m a g e o f S o p h i a o f G o r t y n e m e r g i n g from t h e inscription ( . . . ) is o f a v e r y i m p o r t a n t figure in the J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y o f C i s s a m o s . S h e w a s not o n l y an elder, b u t also h e a d o f t h e s y n a g o g u e . T h e r e is n o e v i d e n c e that she w a s m a r r i e d . ' interpretation o f presbytera
6 2
' I m p o r t a n t for the
is its parallelization w i t h archisynagogissa,
m a k e s it u n l i k e l y that presbytera e l d e r from a S o p h i a the y o u n g e r . '
which
is s i m p l y a t e r m to d i s t i n g u i s h S o p h i a the 6 3
B r o o t e n ' s r e s e a r c h h a s m a d e several t h i n g s
clear. First, a n u m b e r o f i n s c r i p t i o n s l e a v e n o d o u b t that in s o m e c o m m u n i t i e s , e s p e c i a l l y in t h e d i a s p o r a , there w e r e f e m a l e elders. T h e y p r o b a b l y h a d finan cial, p o s s i b l y also e d u c a t i o n a l responsibilities. S e c o n d , t h e r e are a n u m b e r o f i n s c r i p t i o n s that m e n t i o n w o m e n as h e a d o f a s y n a g o g u e . In t h e s e , n o h u s b a n d s are m e n t i o n e d ; a n d it is h i g h l y significant that in t h o s e i n s t a n c e s w h e r e w i v e s of ( m a l e ) archisynagogoi
are m e n t i o n e d , they d o not b e a r this title. T h a t is to say,
the traditional t h e o r y that r e g a r d s this title as honorific w h e n a w o m a n is the b e a r e r h a s n o leg to stand o n . Archisynagogissai 5 8
w e r e i n d e e d f e m a l e leaders o f a
B.J. Brooten, Women Leaders in the Ancient Synagogue, Chico 1982, 1 1 - 2 , 4 1 . CI J 73 l c = Inscr. Jud. Or. Cre3. It should be said, however, that in the same year (1982) the late I.F. Sanders adopted the same interpretation of the inscription as Brooten by taking it at face value; see his Roman Crete 43: 'One of these [inscriptions] includes the only evidence for the organization o f the faith, the dead person, Sophia of Gortyna, being an elder and leader of the synagogue at Kissamos.' It is very much to the point when Susanne Heine writes: 'Wer, wie bewuBt oder unbewuBt immer, Frauen in hoheren Amtern und Funktionen nicht wahrhaben will, neigt nicht nur dazu, weibliche Vornamen zu iibersehen, sondem auch dazu, das Amt dann, wenn eine Frau es bekleidet, abzuwerten' (Frauen derfriihen Christenheit, Gottingen 1986, 98). Women Leaders 12. Women Leaders 4 1 . See now also R.S. Kraemer, 'A N e w Inscription from Malta and the Question o f Women Elders in the Diaspora Jewish Communities,' HTR 78 (1985) 4 3 1 - 8 . 5 9
6 0
6 1
6 2
6 3
26
The Jews of Ancient
Crete
s y n a g o g u e . T h e y w e r e p r o b a b l y active in a d m i n i s t r a t i o n a n d e x h o r t a t i o n . ' T h e y c o u l d h a v e w o r k e d in a t e a m o f t w o or three s y n a g o g u e h e a d s , for w e h a v e s e e n that the n u m b e r w a s not n e c e s s a r i l y restricted to o n e . O r p e r h a p s t h e y s e r v e d alone. (...) Sophia of Gortyn, both elder and head of the synagogue, must have b e e n v e r y actively i n v o l v e d in the affairs o f the s y n a g o g u e . W a s it h e r long y e a r s o f w o r k that c o n v i n c e d e v e n t h e m o s t sceptical that a w o m a n w a s c a p a b l e o f filling that office? F a m i l y ties, long y e a r s o f i n v o l v e m e n t , l a r g e s s e - t h e s e h a v e often p l a y e d a role in attaining v a r i o u s offices a n d s e e m as likely in t h e c a s e o f w o m e n as o f m e n . '
6 4
B r o o t e n h a s b e e n q u o t e d at length b e c a u s e h e r c o n c l u s i o n s s h e d a striking light on C r e t a n J e w r y in late antiquity. T h e c o m p a r a b l e inscriptions s h e a d d u c e s m a k e v e r y p r o b a b l e i n d e e d that in d i a s p o r a situations w o m e n c o u l d rise to h i g h p o s i t i o n s a n d e v e n to l e a d e r s h i p in J e w i s h c o m m u n i t i e s . I n d e p e n d e n t l y from her, m y o w n r e s e a r c h h a s led m e to identical c o n c l u s i o n s a l o n g v e r y different l i n e s .
65
N e e d l e s s to say, it is not p o s s i b l e to d r a w g e n e r a l i z
ing c o n c l u s i o n s for the w h o l e o f C r e t e from o n e sepulchral inscription in Kastelli K i s s a m o u , b u t it c a n at least b e asserted that in s o m e q u a r t e r s o f C r e t a n J e w r y in t h e later R o m a n p e r i o d e m a n c i p a t o r y t e n d e n c i e s m a d e t h e m o s t o f their c h a n c e s so that w o m e n w e r e a b l e to attain to p o s i t i o n s o f l e a d e r s h i p . T h a t s u c h w o m e n w e r e at o d d s w i t h strict r a b b i n i c rules is o b v i o u s .
66
S o m e final r e m a r k s . It is self-evident that the m a t e r i a l at o u r d i s p o s a l d o e s not a l l o w for a h i s t o r y o f C r e t a n J e w s in antiquity to b e w r i t t e n . A l t h o u g h it c a n n e v e r b e e x c l u d e d that n e w d o c u m e n t s m a y e m e r g e , it h a s to b e r e c o g n i z e d that the c h a n c e s are s m a l l . N e w literary s o u r c e s c a n h a r d l y b e e x p e c t e d a n d p a p y r o logical e v i d e n c e from C r e t e itself will not b e found; o n l y a few fresh inscriptions (an e p i t a p h o r t w o ) m a y r e a s o n a b l y b e e x p e c t e d . T h e s m a l l c o r p u s o f e v i d e n c e will in c o n s e q u e n c e p r o b a b l y r e m a i n s m a l l a n d n o t a l l o w u s to arrive at g e n e r a l c o n c l u s i o n s . A r e c e n t historian o f C r e t e o b s e r v e s o f t h e J e w s that ' t h e literary r e f e r e n c e s d e p i c t a peaceful, rich c o m m u n i t y , if s o m e w h a t g u l l i b l e , '
67
solely o n
the b a s i s o f t w o p a s s a g e s in J o s e p h u s a n d S o c r a t e s . T h a t is t o o s w e e p i n g a state m e n t w h e n in fact all that c a n b e d e d u c e d from t h e s e p a s s a g e s is that in t h e first c e n t u r y there w e r e rich J e w s living in C r e t e a n d that in the first a n d fifth centuries m a n y (?) J e w s p u t their u n t h i n k i n g trust in an impostor. Similarly, t h e inscription 6 4
Brooten, Women Leaders 3 2 - 3 . P.W. van der Horst, 'Images o f Women in the Testament of Job,' in M.A. Knibb & P.W. van der Horst (eds.), Studies on the Testament of Job, Cambridge 1 9 8 9 , 9 3 - 1 1 6 . Idem, 'Portraits o f Biblical Women in Pseudo-Philo's Liber Antiquitatum Biblicarum,' Journal for the Study of the Pseudepigrapha 5 (1989) 2 9 - 4 6 . See, e.g., L. Swidler, Women in Judaism. The Status of Women in Formative Juda ism, Metuchen 1976. M. Kuchler, Schweigen, Schmuck und Schleier. Drei neutestamentliche Vorschriften zur Verdrdngung der Frauen auf dem Hintergrund einerfrauenfeindlichen Exegese des Alten Testaments im antiken Judentum, Freiburg & Gottingen 1986. Sanders, Roman Crete 4 3 . 6 5
6 6
6 7
The Jews of Ancient
27
Crete
o f S o p h i a o f G o r t y n d o e s n o t p e r m i t u s to c o n c l u d e that J e w i s h w o m e n in C r e t e found it e a s y to r e a c h l e a d i n g p o s i t i o n s ; t h e c a s e o f S o p h i a w a s p r o b a b l y e x c e p t i o n a l . W h e n the a f o r e - m e n t i o n e d historian s a y s that t h e J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y w a s peaceful, w e c a n m o r e easily a g r e e w i t h h i m s i n c e t h e r e is n o e v i d e n c e to the contrary. T h e fact that w e h a v e n o r e p o r t s on C r e t a n J e w r y b e t w e e n say 100 a n d 4 3 0 C E m a y indicate that in the s e c o n d t h r o u g h fourth c e n t u r i e s the J e w s r e a c h e d a h i g h d e g r e e o f i n t e g r a t i o n in C r e t a n society, a situation that w a s p r o b a b l y o n l y d i s r u p t e d b y t h e legal m e a s u r e s o f T h e o d o s i u s I I .
6 8
A s w a s said in t h e
b e g i n n i n g , t h e e v i d e n c e y i e l d s n o m o r e t h a n o c c a s i o n a l g l i m p s e s o f t h e history o f this c o m m u n i t y , b u t t h e s e are w i t h o u t d o u b t interesting a n d f a s c i n a t i n g .
6 8
69
Compare the situation of several Jewish communities in Asia Minor, e. g. Sardis, on which see A.T. Kraabel, 'Paganism and Judaism: The Sardis Evidence,' in A. Benoit et al. (eds.), Paganisme, Juda'isme, Christianisme. Melanges offerts a Marcel Simon, Paris 1978, 1 3 - 3 3 . This article is the expanded version o f a paper read at the July 1987 meeting of the European Association for Jewish Studies in Berlin. It may be added here that I have left out of account all legendary material from the Christian apocvrypha such as the story that after Jesus' execution, the emperor Tiberius had Annas and Caiaphas arrested and brought to Rome, but on the way Caiaphas died. When they wanted to bury him in Crete, the earth refused to receive his body and they had to cover it with stones; see, e. g., M.R. James, The Apocryphal New Testament, Oxford 1924, 153. Until the nineteenth century there was near Cnossos a site called 'the tomb o f Caiaphas'; for details see N . A . Bees, Die griechisch-christlichen Inschriften des Peloponnes, Athens 1941, 41 with n. 2. 6 9
The Jews of Ancient Cyprus J e w s lived on the G r e e k islands in the M e d i t e r r a n e a n S e a from as early as the third or s e c o n d c e n t u r y B C E . B e s t k n o w n are t h e c o m m u n i t i e s o f C r e t e 2
1
and
3
D e l o s , m u c h less k n o w n are t h o s e o f E u b o i a , C o s , R h o d e s , a n d S a m o s . In this c o n t r i b u t i o n I will briefly p r e s e n t the m o s t r e l e v a n t e v i d e n c e for J e w i s h p r e s e n c e 4
o n t h e i m p o r t a n t island o f C y p r u s . S c a r c e t h o u g h it m a y b e , this e v i d e n c e d o e s m a k e clear that there w a s i n d e e d a relatively large a n d vital J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y o n this a n c i e n t island. I will first d i s c u s s t h e literary e v i d e n c e , thereafter the epigraphic material. T h e earliest e v i d e n c e is a p a s s a g e in 1 Maccabees
15, d e s c r i b i n g S i m o n t h e
M a c c a b e e ' s r u l e , d u r i n g w h i c h h e forged c l o s e c o n t a c t s w i t h the R o m a n s in his s t r u g g l e a g a i n s t the S e l e u c i d s . A b o u t 140 B C E , N u m e n i u s w a s sent as his e n v o y to R o m e a n d c a m e b a c k w i t h "letters to the k i n g s a n d c o u n t r i e s " ( 1 5 : 1 5 ) , in w h i c h the c o n s u l o f R o m e w a r n e d t h e m not to h a r m the J e w s a n y w h e r e . C o p i e s w e r e sent " t o all the c o u n t r i e s ( . . . ) , a n d to the S p a r t a n s , a n d to D e l o s , a n d to M y n d o s , a n d to S i c y o n , a n d to C a r i a , a n d to S a m o s , a n d to P a m p h y l i a , a n d to Lycia, a n d to H a l i c a r n a s s u s , a n d to R h o d e s , a n d to P h a s e l i s , a n d to C o s , a n d to S i d e , a n d to 5
A r a d o s , a n d to G o r t y n a , a n d to C n i d o s a n d C y p r u s a n d C y r e n e " ( 1 5 : 2 3 ) . T h i s list n o d o u b t i m p l i e s that in all t h e s e p l a c e s or r e g i o n s J e w i s h c o m m u n i t i e s w e r e to b e found. F o r C y p r u s this i m p l i e s that the J e w s h a d b e e n r e s i d e n t s there for a c o n s i d e r a b l e t i m e p r e v i o u s to 140 B C E . In o r d e r to u n d e r s t a n d w h y t h e rulers o f C y p r u s r e c e i v e d a letter w a r n i n g t h e m n o t to h a r m t h e interests o f the J e w s , o n e
1
P.W. van der Horst, 'The Jews of Ancient Crete,' JJS 39 (1988) 1 8 3 - 2 0 0 , reprinted in my Studies on the Jewish World of Early Christianity, Fribourg & Gottingen 1990, 1 4 8 - 1 6 5 [see the previous chapter]. Ph. Bruneau, Recherches sur les cultes de Delos, Paris 1970, 4 8 0 - 4 9 3 , and idem, '"Les Israelites de Delos" et la juiverie delienne,' Bulletin de correspondence hellenique 106 (1982) 465-504. See the survey by Fergus Millar in E. Schiirer, The History of the Jewish People in the Age of Jesus Christ, rev. ed. by G. Vermes a. o., vol. III. 1, Edinburgh 1986, 6 8 - 7 2 . Very brief and incomplete surveys are A. Reifenberg, 'Das antike zyprische Judentum und seine Beziehungen zu Palastina,' Journal of the Palestine Oriental Society 1 2 ( 1 9 3 2 ) 2 0 9 - 2 1 5 ; G. Hill, A History of Cyprus, 4 vols., vol. I, Cambridge 1940, 2 4 1 - 2 4 3 ; and T.B. Mitford, 'The Cults of Roman Cyprus,' Aufstieg und Niedergang der Romischen Welt II. 18.3, Berlin - N e w York 1990, 2 2 0 4 - 2 2 0 6 . For the problems relating to this letter (e. g., its displacement in the present text of / Mace.) see J.A. Goldstein, / Maccabees (Anchor Bible 41), Garden City 1976, A92-A9A. 2
3
4
5
The Jews of Ancient
29
Cyprus
m u s t a s s u m e that their n u m b e r s w e r e not insignificant, w h i c h w o u l d b e p o s s i b l e o n l y if the J e w s h a d lived there a l r e a d y for a l o n g e r p e r i o d , p e r h a p s from as early 6
as the third cent. B C E , like o n C r e t e a n d D e l o s . T h a t J e w s w e r e p r e s e n t on the island at least in M a c c a b a e a n t i m e s is indicated also b y the H a s m o n a e a n c o i n s 7
found in P a p h o s . It s h o u l d b e b o r n e in m i n d that C y p r u s w a s attractive from an e c o n o m i c p o i n t o f v i e w s i n c e it w a s " a d m i r a b l y situated for c o m m e r c e b e t w e e n 8
A s i a M i n o r , Syria, J u d a e a a n d G r e e c e . " E s p e c i a l l y b y t h e e n d o f the first cent. B C E , " w h e n H e r o d the G r e a t o b t a i n e d the c o n c e s s i o n o f h a l f t h e C y p r i o t c o p p e r - m i n e s from A u g u s t u s in 12 B . C . E . , t h e c o m m e r c i a l p r o s p e c t s thus o p e n e d u p will h a v e e n c o u r a g e d J e w i s h i m m i g r a t i o n . "
9
T h e i m p r e s s i o n o f t h e r e b e i n g a large a n d significant c o m m u n i t y is cor r o b o r a t e d b y an i m p o r t a n t p a s s a g e in J o s e p h u s . In Ant. Jud.
13.284, J o s e p h u s ,
s p e a k i n g a b o u t t h e r e i g n o f P t o l e m y I X S o t e r II ( 1 4 2 - 8 0 B C E ) , s a y s that " a t this t i m e not o n l y w e r e t h e J e w s in J e r u s a l e m a n d in the c o u n t r y - s i d e ( o f J u d a e a ) in a flourishing c o n d i t i o n , b u t also t h o s e w h o lived in A l e x a n d r i a a n d in E g y p t a n d C y p r u s . " H e a d d s , in a q u o t e from S t r a b o ,
10
that P t o l e m y ' s m o t h e r , C l e o p a t r a
III, w h o w a s at w a r w i t h h e r son, sent J e w i s h t r o o p s w i t h C h e l k i a s a n d A n a n i a s as g e n e r a l s to C y p r u s ( 2 8 7 ) .
11
A g a i n , the fact that the J e w s o f C y p r u s are m e n
tioned in o n e b r e a t h w i t h t h e large c o m m u n i t i e s in J e r u s a l e m , A l e x a n d r i a , and E g y p t is telling e n o u g h . T h e fact that the E g y p t i a n q u e e n sent J e w i s h t r o o p s to C y p r u s o n l y h e l p s to confirm the i m p r e s s i o n that this island h a d a large J e w i s h p r e s e n c e in the last d e c a d e s o f t h e s e c o n d c e n t u r y B C E . In Ant. Jud.
18.131,
J o s e p h u s tells u s that o n e o f H e r o d ' s g r a n d d a u g h t e r s , A l e x a n d r a , m a r r i e d an i m p o r t a n t m a n from C y p r u s called T i m i o s , p r o b a b l y a J e w as w e l l .
1 2
Finally, in
Ant. Jud. 2 0 . 1 4 2 w e r e a d that in the m i d d l e o f t h e fifties o f t h e first c e n t u r y C E , the R o m a n g o v e r n o r o f J u d a e a , Felix, fell in love w i t h A g r i p p a ' s sister, Drusilla. S h e w a s m a r r i e d to A z i z u s , b u t w i t h t h e aid of a J e w i s h m a g i c i a n from C y p r u s called A t o m u s , h e successfully i n d u c e d h e r to m a r r y h i m . H e r e for t h e first t i m e
6
It is not clear to me how Lea Roth can confidently state that the beginning of the third century BCE was "the period at which a Jewish settlement on the island apparently began to develop on a large scale" (L. Roth, 'Cyprus,' Enc. Jud. 5 [1972] 1181), although, o f course, it is not impossible to surmise that "under Ptolemy I there seems to have been a considerable exodus from Palestine of Jews who settled in many places in the Eastern Mediterranean, and Cyprus must have had its share of such settlers" (Hill, History of Cyprus, vol. I, 241 note 4). See D.H. Cox in Numismatic Notes and Monographs 145 (1959) 2 5 - 2 6 (nos. 1 9 1 - 2 0 0 , including Herodian coins [non vidi]); also Reifenberg, 'Das antike zyprische Judentum' 2 1 3 . Sh. Applebaum, 'The Social and Economic Status of the Jews in the Diaspora,' in S. Safrai & M. Stern (eds.), The Jewish People in the First Century, vol. 2, Assen 1976, 711. M. Smallwood, The Jews Under Roman Rule, Leiden 1 9 7 6 , 4 1 2 . The reference for Herod is Josephus, Ant. Jud. 1 6 . 1 2 8 - 1 2 9 . See M. Stern, Greek and Latin Authors on Jews and Judaism, vol. 1, Jerusalem 1974, 268-270. For the sequel see Ant. Jud. 1 3 . 3 2 4 - 3 3 3 . Though that is not as certain as Lea Roth claims it to be ('Cyprus' 1181). 7
8
9
1 0
11
1 2
30
The Jews of Ancient
Cyprus
w e c o m e a c r o s s the m o t i f of J e w i s h m a g i c i a n s from C y p r u s w h i c h , as w e will p r e s e n t l y s e e , will o c c u r m o r e often. P h i l o is a n o t h e r w i t n e s s to J e w i s h p r e s e n c e o n C y p r u s w h e n a r o u n d 4 0 C E , in Legatio
ad Gaium
2 8 2 , h e h a s k i n g A g r i p p a I list t h e m a n y c o u n t r i e s w h e r e
J e w s h a v e e s t a b l i s h e d ' c o l o n i e s , ' a n d g o e s o n to say that m a n y s u c h c o l o n i e s are also to b e found on " t h e m o s t h i g h l y e s t e e m e d o f t h e islands, E u b o e a , C y p r u s , and Crete." F u r t h e r e v i d e n c e c o m e s from the N e w T e s t a m e n t . T h e B o o k o f A c t s m e n t i o n s several J e w s from C y p r u s .
1 3
First, in A c t s 4 : 3 6 it is said that to the earliest
C h r i s t i a n c o m m u n i t y in J e r u s a l e m , c o n s i s t i n g e x c l u s i v e l y o f J e w s , b e l o n g e d a L e v i t e o f C y p r i o t origin called J o s e p h , w h o m the a p o s t l e s s u r n a m e d B a r n a b a s . T h i s B a r n a b a s is later said to h a v e b e c o m e the m o s t i m p o r t a n t c o m p a n i o n o f t h e a p o s t l e Paul d u r i n g his early m i s s i o n a r y activity. T h i s p a r t n e r s h i p , h o w e v e r , s o o n b r o k e u p : A c t s 15:39 s a y s that in A n t i o c h t h e y b e c a m e so e m b r o i l e d in conflict w i t h e a c h o t h e r that B a r n a b a s sailed a w a y to C y p r u s , a p p a r e n t l y r e t u r n ing to his original h o m e l a n d . B e f o r e that r u p t u r e , h o w e v e r , t h e t w o h a d visited C y p r u s t o g e t h e r a n d p r o c l a i m e d t h e C h r i s t i a n m e s s a g e in S a l a m i s , t h e m a i n city o n t h e east c o a s t o f t h e island, w h e r e there w e r e several s y n a g o g u e s ( 1 3 : 5 s a y s so explicitly). T h e r e a f t e r they travelled to the West, a n d in P a p h o s " t h e y m e t a certain m a g i c i a n , a J e w i s h false p r o p h e t , n a m e d B a r - J e s u s " ( 1 3 : 6 ) , w h o o p p o s e d t h e m a n d tried to turn the p r o c o n s u l , in w h o s e s e r v i c e h e w a s , a w a y from t h e faith, s a y s t h e author. Paul c u r s e d the m a g i c i a n so that h e b e c a m e blind. T h i s is o u r s e c o n d e n c o u n t e r w i t h a J e w i s h m a g i c i a n from C y p r u s . A n o t h e r i n d i c a t i o n o f J e w i s h p r e s e n c e at C y p r u s is g i v e n in A c t s 1 1 : 1 9 - 2 0 w h e r e w e are told that, after a p e r s e c u t i o n o f C h r i s t i a n s in J e r u s a l e m (in the m i d d l e o f t h e thirties), s o m e o f the p e r s e c u t e d J e w i s h C h r i s t i a n s " t r a v e l l e d as far as P h o e n i c i a , C y p r u s , a n d A n t i o c h , a n d t h e y s p o k e the w o r d to n o o n e e x c e p t J e w s ; b u t a m o n g t h e m w e r e s o m e m e n o f C y p r u s a n d C y r e n e w h o , o n c o m i n g to A n t i o c h , s p o k e to t h e G r e e k s a l s o . " T h i s m i g h t i m p l y that e v e n before P a u l ' s first visit to C y p r u s t h e r e w e r e J e w i s h C h r i s t i a n s on that island, b u t it is m o r e p r o b a b l e that the reference is to C y p r i o t J e w s w h o h a d m o v e d to P a l e s t i n e a n d b e c o m e m e m b e r s o f t h e early C h r i s t i a n c o m m u n i t y in J e r u s a l e m . S o e v e n if t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t d o e s n o t t e s tify to the size a n d i m p o r t a n c e o f t h e C y p r i o t J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y , its e x i s t e n c e is t a k e n for g r a n t e d . M a y b e o n e c o u l d e v e n s p e c u l a t e that, in v i e w o f P a u l ' s c u s t o m o f p r e a c h i n g first in the s y n a g o g u e s o f the m a j o r d i a s p o r a c e n t r e s , t h e fact t h a t his v e r y first m i s s i o n a r y trip b r i n g s h i m to C y p r u s is an indirect indication o f t h e i m p o r t a n c e o f the J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y t h e r e . F o r t h e p e r i o d after 7 0 w e h a v e little literary e v i d e n c e , b u t the R o m a n h i s torian C a s s i u s D i o ( b e g i n n i n g o f the third cent. C E ) tells u s that at t h e t i m e o f 1 3
A. Nobbs, "Cyprus," in D.W.J. Gill & C. Glempf (eds.), The Book of Acts in Its FirstCentury Setting. Volume 2: The Book of Acts in Its Graeco-Roman Setting, Grand Rapids - C a r l i s l e 1994, 2 7 9 - 2 8 9 .
The Jews of Ancient
31
Cyprus
Trajan, in 1 1 5 - 1 1 7 C E , t h e J e w s o f C y p r u s r e v o l t e d a g a i n s t t h e R o m a n s (and G r e e k s ) u n d e r the l e a d e r s h i p o f a certain A r t e m i o n , a n d m a s s a c r e d 2 4 0 . 0 0 0 n o n - J e w s {Historia
Romana
6 8 . 3 2 ) . A c c o r d i n g to E u s e b i u s , they e v e n d e s t r o y e d
the w h o l e city o f S a l a m i s a n d m a s s a c r e d all its i n h a b i t a n t s (Chronicon,
Trajan
X I X , p . 2 1 9 ed. K a r s t = p . 164 ed. S c h o e n e = J e r o m e , Chron. p . 196 ed. H e l m ) .
1 4
T h i s r e v o l t w a s part o f a larger J e w i s h u p r i s i n g that started in t h e C y r e n a i c a (i. e., L i b y a ) , w h e r e t h e J e w s a t t a c k e d t h e G r e e k s a n d R o m a n s a n d killed 2 2 0 . 0 0 0 o f t h e m after h a v i n g c o m m i t t e d u n d e s c r i b a b l e atrocities ( s a y s D i o ) , a n d the revolt s p r e a d to n e a r b y E g y p t a n d C y p r u s . are i m p r o b a b l y h i g h ,
1 6
1 5
E v e n t h o u g h t h e s e n u m b e r s o f casualties
t h e y d o indicate that the J e w i s h p o p u l a t i o n o f C y p r u s
m u s t h a v e b e e n large. T h e r e is also a n o t i c e in E u s e b i u s to the effect that the C y p r i o t J e w s c a m e to the r e s c u e o f the E g y p t i a n J e w s a n d " c o n t i n u e d to p l u n d e r the c o u n t r y o f E g y p t " {Historia
Ecclesiastica
4.2). T h e w a r was devastating,
a n d the R o m a n s ruthlessly q u e l l e d t h e revolt, a l m o s t totally a n n i h i l a t i n g the Jewry of Egypt and of the Cyrenaica.
17
A b o u t t h e fate o f the C y p r i o t J e w s in the
s u p p r e s s i o n o f the r e v o l t w e k n o w little, b u t , as C a s s i u s D i o r e p o r t s , b e c a u s e o f their role in the w a r " n o J e w m a y set foot on this island [ C y p r u s ] a n y m o r e , b u t if o n e o f t h e m is d r i v e n u p o n its s h o r e s b y a s t o r m , h e is p u t to d e a t h " (Hist.
Rom.
6 8 . 3 2 ) . T h i s a g a i n is an e x a g g e r a t i o n , b u t it d o e s indicate that the m a g i s t r a t e s t o o k e x t r e m e m e a s u r e s a g a i n s t the J e w s t h e r e . T h e fact that the R o m a n s tried to kill as m a n y insurgents as p o s s i b l e a n d w e r e successful in that r e s p e c t i m p l i e s that b y 117 C E C y p r i o t J e w r y w a s at least d e c i m a t e d , if n o t w o r s e .
1 8
It is p r o b a b l y b e c a u s e o f its ( n e a r ) e x t i n c t i o n that the literary s o u r c e s are silent a b o u t this c o m m u n i t y for a l o n g t i m e .
1 9
We h a v e to w a i t till t h e early
s e v e n t h c e n t u r y w h e n S o p h r o n i u s , b i s h o p o f J e r u s a l e m , tells u s a story a b o u t a C h r i s t i a n o n C y p r u s w h o h a d fallen ill b u t w a s h e a l e d b y t w o C h r i s t i a n saints, C y r u s a n d J o h n , w h o found o u t that t h e p o o r m a n h a d b e e n m a d e ill b y a J e w ish m a g i c i a n w h o lived o n t h e island ( h e r e w e m e e t a J e w i s h m a g i c i a n for the
1 4
The same information is repeated by Orosius, Hist. 7.12.8 and Syncellus, Chron. 657. See M. Hengel & A.M. Schwemer, Paul Between Damascus and Antioch, London 1997, 347 note 240. See M. Smallwood, The Jews 389^127, esp. 4 1 2 - 4 1 5 ; Schiirer, History, vol. I, Edinburgh 1973, 5 2 9 - 5 3 4 . Reifenberg, 'Das antike zyprische Judentum' 211: "eine starke Ubertreibung." See J. Meleze-Modrzejewski, The Jews of Egypt, Philadelphia 1995, 1 9 8 - 2 0 5 . Rabbinic literature seems, according to some interpreters ( e . g . S. Krauss in his entry on Cyprus in the Jewish Encyclopedia), to confirm this when in Talmud Yerushalmi, Sukka 5.1, 55b, it is said that the blood of the Jews slaughtered by Trajan flowed into the sea as far as Cyprus (he passage is repeated in Lamentations Rabbah 1.16.45), but here it is rather the Jews o f Egypt or Palestine who are meant. See M. Stern, Greek and Latin Authors on Jews and Judaism, vol. 2, Jerusalem 1980, 389. I refer here only in passing to the fifth-century Acts of Barnabas (ch. 23) which mentions the synagogue o f Salamis and tells the legendary story of a Jewish uprising against Barnabas' preaching organized by the Jewish magician Bar-Jesus, resulting in the death o f Barnabas. 15
1 6
1 7
1 8
1 9
32
The Jews of Ancient
third t i m e ) .
2 0
Cyprus
S h o r t l y afterwards (in the thirties or fourties o f the s e v e n t h cent.
C E ) , b i s h o p L e o n t i u s o f N e a p o l i s (on C y p r u s ) w r o t e a w o r k Contra
21
Judaeos,
w h i c h w r i t i n g m a y b e t a k e n to p o i n t t o w a r d s a J e w i s h p r e s e n c e on t h e i s l a n d .
22
T h i s is c o n f i r m e d b y t h e report o f E u t y c h i u s A l e x a n d r i n u s (first h a l f o f t h e tenth c e n t u r y ) that d u r i n g the reign o f H e r a c l i u s ( 6 1 0 - 6 4 1 ) , C y p r i o t J e w s j o i n e d their P a l e s t i n i a n c o r e l i g i o n i s t s in a series o f raids o f C h r i s t i a n m o n a s t e r i e s .
23
As we
will see in the n e x t section, e p i g r a p h i c a l s o u r c e s indicate that in t h e c e n t u r i e s after 117 C E the J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y o f C y p r u s s e e m s i n d e e d to h a v e r e c o v e r e d from t h e blow. W e n o w turn to the e p i g r a p h i c e v i d e n c e .
24
T h e earliest p i e c e is an inscription
from the ( p r o b a b l y late) H e l l e n i s t i c p e r i o d found in K o u r i o n that m e n t i o n s the Jew Onias.
2 5
U n f o r t u n a t e l y it d o e s not yield a n y o t h e r information. F r o m t h e
R o m a n p e r i o d , m o r e specifically from the third a n d fourth c e n t u r i e s C E , d e r i v e the following: F r o m the third c e n t u r y is CIJ736
= DF 8 3 , an inscription o n a col
u m n from L a p e t h o s that reads: ' E x - v o t o o f rabbi A t t i c u s . '
2 6
T h i s inscription n e e d
n o t i m p l y that as early as the third c e n t u r y C E the J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y o f C y p r u s h a d c o m e u n d e r r a b b i n i c sway, for that w o u l d b e b o t h i m p r o b a b l e a n d e x c e p tional. F r o m the c i r c a 6 0 ' e p i g r a p h i c a l r a b b i s '
2 7
it is v e r y difficult to ascertain in
w h i c h c a s e s t h e w o r d rabbi d e s i g n a t e s an o r d a i n e d R a b b i a n d in w h i c h c a s e s it 2 0
Laudatio sanctorum martyrum Cyri et Johannis 55 (=PG 87/3: 3625). J. Starr, The Jews of the Byzantine Empire, N e w York 1939, 8 5 - 8 6 , mentions medieval sources reporting that a Jewish sorcerer from Salamis was burnt there at the stake ca. 635 CE. PG 9 3 : 1 5 9 7 - 1 6 1 2 . On this treatise see H. Schreckenberg, Die christlichen Adversus-Judaeos-Texte und ihr literarisches und historisches Umfeld (l.-ll. Jh.), Frankfurt 1990, 445. This is, o f course, not necessarily the case. It is also unwarranted to conclude from the fact that Epiphanius, bishop of Salamis, wrote a refutation of the ideas of a great number of Jewish (and Christian) groups, that all these groups were represented on Cyprus, in spite of what is suggested by S. Krauss-W. Horbury, The Jewish-Christian Controversy I: History, Tubingen 1 9 9 6 , 4 3 . Annates 2 . 2 2 0 - 2 2 3 (PG 111:1084-5 = CSCO 4 5 : 1 0 1 - 2 ) . See K.L. Noethlichs, DieJuden im christlichen Imperium Romanum (4.-6. Jahrhundert), Berlin 2 0 0 1 , 48 with note 111. Some o f it was collected by J.-B. Frey, Corpus Inscriptionum Judaicarum, vol. 2, Rome 1952, 6 - 7 , and B. Lifshitz, Donateurs et fondateurs dans les synagogues juives, Paris 1967, 7 3 - 7 6 . See also T.B. Mitford, "Some N e w Inscriptions from Early Christian Cyprus," Byzantion 20 (1950) 1 0 5 - 1 7 5 , here esp. 110-116. The corpora of Frey and Lifshitz will be referred to in the main text as CIJ and DF. [For a new edition of the Jewish inscriptions from Cyprus see the Addendum.] T.B. Mitford, The Inscriptions of Kourion, Philadelphia 1971, 1 3 3 - 1 3 4 (no. 70). Another late Hellenistic inscription mentioned as Jewish by Mitford, 'Cults' 2204, is much too fragmen tary to warrant his conclusion that it "appears to concern the construction in cedar wood o f the doorway o f a synagogue at Amathus" {ibid.). For a discussion of this inscription see Reifenberg, "Das antike zyprische Judentum" 211-212. S. J. D. Cohen, 'Epigraphical Rabbis,' JQR 72 (1981/82) 1-17. For an addendum see P. W. van der Horst, '"Lord, Help the Rabbi'. The Interpretation of SEG X X X I 1578b," JJS 38 (1987) 1 0 2 - 1 0 6 , now also in my Essays on the Jewish World 1 8 2 - 1 8 6 . 2 1
2 2
2 3
2 4
2 5
2 6
2 7
The Jews of Ancient
33
Cyprus
m e a n s j u s t an individual o f r a n k or an i m p o r t a n t p e r s o n , a w e l l established m e a n ing o f rabbi,
also in r a b b i n i c l i t e r a t u r e .
28
' R a b b i ' w a s n o t a p r o t e c t e d title a n d
there w a s n o central registry o f p e r s o n s w h o w e r e o r d a i n e d R a b b i s . " W h o c o u l d p r e v e n t v a r i o u s c o m m u n i t i e s from b e s t o w i n g t h e title ' r a b b i ' o n their p r o m i n e n t citizens r e g a r d l e s s o f their p r a c t i c e s a n d beliefs? H e n c e it m a k e s n o s e n s e to a s s u m e that all r a b b i s in a n t i q u i t y w e r e T a l m u d i c s c h o l a r s . "
29
O t h e r inscriptions
m a k e clear that t h e real l e a d e r s o f t h e c o m m u n i t i e s w e r e t h e archontes, archisynagogoi,
t h e gerousiarchai,
etc.
3 0
the
Most of the epigraphical rabbis were
not r a b b i s in o u r s e n s e o f t h e w o r d , a n d m o s t s y n a g o g u e s in b o t h Israel a n d the d i a s p o r a w e r e n o t led b y r a b b i s . N o w h e r e d o the inscriptions s u p p o r t t h e n o t i o n o f r a b b i n i c d o m i n a n c e . E p i g r a p h i c a l r a b b i s " a p p e a r as donors, the s y n a g o g u e s . "
31
n o t a s leaders o f
T h i s is p r o b a b l y w h a t w e see h e r e : t h e m a r b l e c o l u m n m a y
v e r y w e l l h a v e b e e n a gift o f ' r a b b i ' A t t i c u s , w h o o n t h e b a s i s o f a v o w (the text h a s euche
= neder)
d o n a t e d it to his s y n a g o g u e . O f c o u r s e t h e m o r e i m p o r t a n t
a s p e c t o f this inscription is that o n e century, or a c e n t u r y a n d a half, after the d e s t r u c t i v e w a r o f 1 1 5 - 1 1 7 w e a g a i n see J e w i s h p r e s e n c e o n C y p r u s a n d e v e n the p r e s e n c e o f s y n a g o g u e b u i l d i n g s . P r o b a b l y also from t h e third c e n t u r y C E is DF 8 5 ,
3 2
a g a i n a n inscription o n a
m a r b l e c o l u m n , from C o n s t a n t i a . It is h e a v i l y d a m a g e d a n d v e r y i n c o m p l e t e , b u t a c c o r d i n g to t h e m o s t p r o b a b l e r e a d i n g it s a y s : " . . . o f [ N N ? ] w h o w a s five t i m e s archisynagogos,
33
t h e son o f A n a n i a s , w h o w a s t w o t i m e s archon,,"
sibility is that A n a n i a s ' s o n w a s five t i m e s archisynagogos
Another pos
and two times
archon.
T h e s e t w o titles a r e w i d e l y attested a s d e s i g n a t i o n s o f s y n a g o g u e officials in J e w i s h i n s c r i p t i o n s . B o t h w e r e l e a d i n g figures w i t h t a s k s a n d responsibilities that a r e still relatively u n c l e a r b u t n o n e t h e l e s s i m p o r t a n t .
34
Even though the
inscription is n o t v e r y i n f o r m a t i v e in itself, it d o e s a g a i n testify t o J e w i s h p r e s e n c e in C y p r u s after t h e revolt. F r o m t h e fourth c e n t u r y ( b u t p o s s i b l y later) is CIJ 7 3 5 = DF 8 2 , a g a i n an inscription o n a m a r b l e c o l u m n , this t i m e from t h e t o w n o f G o l g o i : " J o s e the elder, son of S y n e s i u s , h a s r e s t o r e d t h e w h o l e c o n s t r u c t i o n o f t h e s y n a g o g u e . " F o r ' s y n a g o g u e ' t h e inscription h a s hebra'ike,
a v e r y e x c e p t i o n a l t e r m to d e s i g
n a t e a s y n a g o g u e b u i l d i n g . A s far a s I k n o w , t h e r e is n o o t h e r i n s t a n c e o f this 2 8
See L. I. Levine, The Rabbinic Class of Roman Palestine in Late Antiquity, Jerusalem - N e w York 1989, 15: "In antiquity this title was applied to anyone o f high standing in the community". Cohen, 'Epigraphical Rabbis' 13. See P. W. van der Horst, Ancient Jewish Epitaphs, Kampen 1991, 8 5 - 9 8 ; L.I. Levine, The Ancient Synagogue, N e w Haven-London 2 0 0 0 , 387^128. Cohen, 'Epigraphical Rabbis' 14 (italics added). It is not in CIJ because Mitford published the inscription only in 1950, after the death o f Frey; see Mitford, ' N e w Inscriptions' 110-116. I here follow Lifshitz's reconstruction with some modifications, not the more speculative one by Mitford. See van der Horst, Epitaphs 8 9 - 9 3 ; Levine, Synagogue 3 9 0 - 4 0 4 (the best discussion). 2 9
3 0
3 1
3 2
3 3
3 4
34
The Jews of Ancient
usage
3 5
Cyprus
(the first further o c c u r r e n c e b e i n g from t h e e l e v e n t h c e n t u r y ) . O b v i o u s l y
its m e a n i n g h e r e is ' t h e p l a c e w h e r e the H e b r e w s g a t h e r . ' T h e d e s i g n a t i o n ' H e b r e w s ' for J e w s is found m o r e often in a n c i e n t i n s c r i p t i o n s .
36
T h e inscription
i m p l i e s that J o s e p a i d for the costs o f t h e r e s t o r a t i o n o f t h e local s y n a g o g u e , so h e m u s t h a v e b e e n well to d o .
3 7
F r o m the fifth or sixth c e n t u r y is an inscription from L a p e t h u s listed b y Lifs hitz, b u t I find it a d u b i o u s c a s e .
3 8
DF 8 4 r u n s as follows: " G o d , h e l p (us)! W e ,
E n t o l i o s t h e e l d e r a n d E n k a i r i o s the s o n o f the late Isaak, w h o w a s also called S i n d o u r o s , offer y o u w h a t is y o u r s from w h a t is y o u r s . In the fifth m o n t h o f t h e fifth indiction. L o r d , save (us)!. A m e n . " T h e inscription definitely has a Christian r i n g a b o u t it ( ' w e offer y o u w h a t is y o u r s from w h a t is y o u r s ' ) , b u t Lifshitz a r g u e s that the n a m e s E n t o l i o s ( N . B . : entole
= mitswah)
a n d I s a a c are t y p i c a l l y
J e w i s h a n d h e n c e a s s u m e s that the inscription is o f J e w i s h p r o v e n a n c e . H e h i m self m u s t c o n c e d e , h o w e v e r , that b o t h n a m e s are found also a m o n g C h r i s t i a n s in late antiquity. N a m e s , m o r e v e r , are n e v e r a sure criterion for the d e t e r m i n a t i o n o f the J e w i s h n e s s o f inscriptions for there are v e r y few n a m e s (if a n y ) " w h i c h c a n b e d e m o n s t r a t e d to h a v e b e e n u s e d o n l y b y J e w s , a n d n e v e r b y C h r i s t i a n s or p a g a n s , w h e t h e r in t h e s a m e or other g e o g r a p h i c a r e a s . "
3 9
It c a n n o t b e e x c l u d e d
that this inscription is J e w i s h , b u t it is o n e o f t h o s e c a s e s w h e r e c e r t a i n t y is i m p o s s i b l e . Finally, t h e o n l y H e b r e w e v i d e n c e w e h a v e is a g e m i n s c r i b e d w i t h t h e n a m e ' B e n a y a h u b e n H u r ' (CIJ 7 3 7 ) , b u t it is h a r d to d a t e .
4 0
It d o e s attest,
h o w e v e r , to J e w i s h p r e s e n c e . W e m a y further p o i n t to J e w i s h oil l a m p s d e c o r a t e d w i t h m e n o r o t from the third - fifth cent. C E . a n d a g l a s s m e d a l i o n w i t h a m e n o r a h , lulav a n d e t h r o g , from the s a m e p e r i o d .
41
W e h a v e o b s e r v e d r e f e r e n c e s to J e w i s h m a g i c i a n s r e c u r r i n g in t h e e v i d e n c e . H e r e it s h o u l d b e k e p t in m i n d that in antiquity quite often t h e w o r d s ' m a g i c i a n ' or ' m a g i c ' w e r e u s e d as t e r m s o f a b u s e a n d r e v e a l to u s n o t h i n g m o r e t h a n t h e n e g a t i v e attitude o f the u s e r s o f t h e s e w o r d s t o w a r d s the beliefs a n d p r a c t i c e s o f their o p p o n e n t s o r e n e m i e s . E v e n so it is striking that n o t o n l y C h r i s t i a n b u t also 3 5
See also C. Claufien, Versammlung, Gemeinde, Synagoge. Das hellenistisch-jiidische Umfeld der fruhchristlichen Gemeinde, Gottingen 2 0 0 2 , 145. For instances from Rome, Corinth, and Lydian Philadelphia see van der Horst, Epitaphs 87. Pace S. Krauss, Synagogale Altertiimer, Berlin 1922 = Hildesheim 1966, 307. The first editor thinks it is Christian; see Mitford, ' N e w Inscriptions' 1 4 1 - 1 4 3 . R. S. Kraemer, 'Hellenistic Jewish Women: The Epigraphical Evidence,' SBL 1986 Seminar Papers, Atlanta 1986, 191. Although J. Juster, Les Juifs dans I 'Empire Romain, vol. 1, Paris 1914, 189 note 5, thinks it is 'tres ancien.' Reifenberg, 'Das antike zyprische Judentum' 213 (with photos opposite p. 212). T.B. Mitford, 'Further Contributions to the Epigraphy ofCyprus,' American Journal of Archaeology 65 (1961) 1118-119, publishes the text of a Cypriot horoscope of Flavian date in which one o f the months is given the Jewish name Shebat (if that reading is correct!), but it is hard to draw conclusions from that. 3 6
3 7
3 8
3 9
4 0
4 1
The Jews of Ancient
35
Cyprus
J e w i s h a u t h o r s (see J o s e p h u s , a b o v e ) s p e a k a b o u t J e w i s h m a g i c i a n s on C y p r u s . In that light it m a y b e interesting to n o t e that in a w e l l n e a r P a p h o s a large c a c h e o f m o r e than t w o h u n d r e d lead tablets w i t h so-called defixiones p e o p l e , i.e.,
( c u r s e s to ' b i n d '
to r e n d e r t h e m i n c a p a b l e o f s p e a k i n g or a c t i n g ) from the early
Christian period was discovered.
42
S e v e r a l e l e m e n t s in t h e s e texts b e t r a y J e w i s h
influence. It is a w e l l - k n o w n fact that J e w s p l a y e d a m a j o r role in the d e v e l o p m e n t a n d p r a c t i c e o f m a g i c in late a n t i q u i t y ,
43
b u t as far as C y p r u s is c o n c e r n e d
it is n o t e w o r t h y that in the first c e n t u r y C E Pliny t h e E l d e r w r i t e s : " T h e r e is y e t a n o t h e r b r a n c h o f m a g i c , d e r i v e d from M o s e s , J a n n e s , L o p a t e s , a n d the J e w s , b u t living m a n y t h o u s a n d y e a r s after Zoroaster. A n d m u c h m o r e r e c e n t is their b r a n c h in C y p r u s " (Naturalis
Historia
30.11 ) .
4 4
U n c l e a r t h o u g h this p a s s a g e m a y
b e , it d o e s s u g g e s t J e w i s h p r o m i n e n c e in circles o f C y p r i o t m a g i c i a n s , n i c e l y dovetailing with the various texts w e have already seen about Cypriot Jewish m a g i c i a n s (in J o s e p h u s , t h e B o o k o f A c t s , S o p h r o n i u s ) . T h e r e c a n b e little d o u b t that m a g i c w a s part a n d p a r c e l o f the J e w i s h religion on C y p r u s , as e l s e w h e r e . Finally a n o t h e r k i n d o f indirect e v i d e n c e h a s to b e m e n t i o n e d briefly, n a m e l y , t h e 2 3 i n s c r i p t i o n s for the Theos Hypsistos
( ' G o d M o s t H i g h ' ) at C y p r u s .
4 5
This
cult, ' a c o n v e n i e n t m e e t i n g g r o u n d for J e w a n d j u d a i z e r , C h r i s t i a n a n d p a g a n , ' w a s certainly a p r o d u c t o f 'cross-fertilization b e t w e e n J e w s a n d p a g a n s , '
4 7
4 6
and
m a y for that r e a s o n b e r e g a r d e d as a sign o f J e w i s h p r e s e n c e , a l t h o u g h that is n o t an u n a v o i d a b l e c o n c l u s i o n . W e h a v e to l e a v e that m a t t e r a s i d e , h o w e v e r . O n t h e b a s i s o f this short s u r v e y w e m a y c o n c l u d e that e v i d e n c e for J e w i s h s e t t l e m e n t s o n a n c i e n t C y p r u s exists for six t o w n s a n d villages: S a l a m i s , P a p h o s , Kourion, Golgoi, Constantia, and L a p e t h o s .
4 8
T h e r e w e r e certainly m o r e p l a c e s
w h e r e J e w s lived o f w h i c h w e k n o w n o t h i n g . T h e literary e v i d e n c e c o m b i n e d w i t h the e p i g r a p h i c a l m a t e r i a l s h o w s that t h r o u g h o u t t h e H e l l e n i s t i c , R o m a n , a n d early B y z a n t i n e p e r i o d s , J e w s lived on C y p r u s . F o r t h e first c e n t u r i e s w e h a v e to r e c k o n w i t h e v e r i n c r e a s i n g n u m b e r s , a l t h o u g h there is n o w a y o f b e i n g m o r e p r e c i s e . In n o n e o f t h e r e f e r e n c e s to t h e C y p r i o t J e w s d u r i n g t h e last t w o c e n t u r i e s B C E a n d the first c e n t u r y C E is there a n y hint o f friction at a n y t i m e b e t w e e n t h e m a n d t h e G r e e k s ( a n d R o m a n s ) o f the island, a n d J o s e p h u s d o e s 4 2
See J.G. Gager, Curse Tablets and Binding Spells from the Ancient World, Oxford 1992, 1 3 2 - 1 3 6 . The more important of these defixiones were published as nos. 1 2 7 - 1 4 2 in Mitford, The Inscriptions of Kourion 2 4 6 - 2 8 3 . See e.g. M. Simon, Verus Israel. A Study of the Relations Between Christians and Jews in the Roman Empire, Oxford 1986, 3 3 9 - 3 6 8 . Stern, Greek and Latin Authors I, 498^199. See the convenient list and the texts in S. Mitchell, 'The Cult of Theos Hypsistos Between Pagans, Jews, and Christians,' in P. Athanassiadi & M. Frede (eds.), Pagan Monotheism in Late Antiquity, Oxford 1999, 1 4 4 - 1 4 5 . Mitford, 'Cults' 2207. Mitchel, 'Cult' 114 For their location see Map B VI 18 of the Tiibinger Atlas des Vorderen Orients: Die judische Diaspora bis zum 7. Jahrhundert n. Chr., Wiesbaden 1992. 4 3
4 4
4 5
4 6
4 7
4 8
36
The Jews of Ancient
Cyprus
n o t m e n t i o n a n y a n t i - R o m a n agitation there after 7 0 c o m p a r a b l e to the t r o u b l e in E g y p t a n d C y r e n a i c a at that t i m e .
4 9
F o r r e a s o n s that by a n d large still r e m a i n
u n e x p l a i n e d , that peaceful situation c h a n g e d drastically, h o w e v e r , w h e n in 115 C E " t h e J e w s o f C y p r u s m a d e their sole, a n d fatal, incursion into r e c o r d e d politi cal h i s t o r y . "
50
In spite o f the d e v a s t a t i n g b l o w t h e y r e c e i v e d from the R o m a n s ,
it is certain that the J e w s w e r e a b l e to re-establish t h e m s e l v e s on the island after s o m e t i m e (as t h e y did as well in E g y p t a n d the C y r e n a i c a ) . T h e e v i d e n c e from the third t h r o u g h s e v e n t h c e n t u r i e s C E leaves n o d o u b t a b o u t that. [Addendum:
T h e collection o f J e w i s h inscriptions from C y p r u s in D . N o y & H .
B l o e d h o r n , Inscriptiones
Judaicae
Orientis,
vol. Ill: Syria and Cyprus,
Tubin
g e n 2 0 0 4 , 2 1 3 - 2 2 6 , w a s p u b l i s h e d o n l y after the c o m p l e t i o n o f this article. F o r the m i n o r differences b e t w e e n this c o l l e c t i o n a n d m i n e see m y r e v i e w o f this w o r k e l s e w h e r e in this v o l u m e . ]
Smallwood, Jews 4 1 2 - 3 . Smallwood, Jews 4 1 2 .
The Jews of Ancient Sicily T h e e v i d e n c e for a J e w i s h p r e s e n c e in Sicily in antiquity is as s c a r c e as the at 1
testation for it is plentiful in the M i d d l e A g e s . U n l i k e t h e o t h e r large islands in 2
the M e d i t e r r a n e a n Sea, C r e t e a n d C y p r u s , for J e w s in Sicily w e d o not h a v e a n y literary e v i d e n c e before the late sixth c e n t u r y C E (but see the A p p e n d i x ) . W e d o h a v e , h o w e v e r , s o m e 2 0 J e w i s h i n s c r i p t i o n s from this island, c o n v e n i e n t l y col 3
lected by D a v i d N o y , w h i c h m a k e clear that J e w s h a d b e e n p r e s e n t in Sicily well before m e d i e v a l t i m e s . In a d d i t i o n to that, w e h a v e a fascinating d o c u m e n t in the 4
form o f an a n c i e n t J e w i s h a m u l e t , p u b l i s h e d b y R o y K o t a n s k y . C h r o n o l o g i c a l l y this m a t e r i a l (both i n s c r i p t i o n s a n d a m u l e t s ) r a n g e s from the third to the fifth c e n t u r y C E . W h a t c a n w e learn from t h e s e s c a n t t e s t i m o n i e s ? L e t u s b e g i n w i t h a rapid s u r v e y o f the inscriptions. F r o m T a o r m i n a w e h a v e a c u r i o u s G r e e k inscription ( J I W E 143) stating that the d a y o f the s a b b a t h is g o o d or that the s a b b a t h is a g o o d d a y (hemera
agathe,
cf. yom tov). T h e c o n t e x t a n d
p u r p o s e o f this inscription is unclear. F r o m A c i r e a l e w e h a v e a seal w i t h t h e G r e e k n a m e H e u r e s i s a n d a m e n o r a h a n d shofar ( J I W E 144). J I W E 145, from C a t a n i a , is interesting in that the inscription is bilingual: it is an e p i t a p h w i t h the first line in H e b r e w followed b y n i n e lines in Latin. T h e H e b r e w s a y s : 'al Yisra 'el, Amen
Amen.
Shalom
Shalom
Shmu 'el. T h e Latin part s a y s that A u r e l i u s
S a m o h i l ( = S a m u e l ) b o u g h t this t o m b for h i m s e l f a n d his wife L a s s i a Irene, w h o 5
died at the a g e o f 2 3 . H e a d d s the adjuration that n o b o d y s h o u l d o p e n the t o m b a n d ' p u t s o m e o n e e l s e ' s b o d y on t o p o f o u r b o n e s . ' T h i s adjuration is s o l e m n i z e d b y referring to the victories o f t h e rulers, the h o n o u r s o f t h e p a t r i a r c h s (certainly t h e influential J e w i s h l e a d e r s in P a l e s t i n e ) , a n d t h e L a w w h i c h the L o r d g a v e t h e 1
For the Middle A g e s see the massive collection o f documents in S. Simonsohn, The Jews in Sicily, 7 vols., Leiden 1 9 7 7 - 2 0 0 5 . Still valuable is C. Roth, 'Jewish Intellectual Life in Medieval Sicily,' Jewish Quarterly Review Al (1956/57) 3 1 7 - 3 3 5 . See RW. van der Horst, 'The Jews of Ancient Crete,' Journal ofJewish Studies 39 (1988) 1 8 3 - 2 0 0 ; and idem, 'The Jews of Ancient Cyprus,' Zutot: Perspectives on Jewish Culture 2003,110-120. D. Noy, Jewish Inscriptions ojWestern Europe. Vol. I: Italy (excluding the City of Rome), Spain and Gaul, Cambridge 1993, 1 8 4 - 2 2 0 ; henceforth JIWE. R. Kotansky, Greek Magical Amulets. The Inscribed Gold, Silver, Copper, and Bronze Lamellae, vol. 1, Opladen 1994, 1 2 6 - 1 5 4 ; henceforth GMA. A not unusual age at death for a woman; see my Ancient Jewish Epitaphs. An Introductory Survey of a Millennium of Jewish Funerary Epigraphy (300 BCE-700 CE), Kampen 1991, Ch. 5 ('Age at Death'). 2
3
4
5
38
The Jews of Ancicral Sicily
Jews. JIWE 146, again from Catania, is a Greek epitaph for two girls, Leontia who died at the age of 3 and Kalliope who dicd at the agc of 18. Two mcnorahs have been incised on this marble plaque. A menorah is also incised on nr. 147, again a Greek cpitaph from Catcmia, which is almost impossibIc to dcciphcr due to damage. Nr. 148 (Catania) is a marble plaque on which Imnacus, an elder ( y r e s b y ~ s states ) , (in Greek) that he has bought the burial place without offending thc commandment. Since it is unclear what commandment lrenaeus is referring to, tlre Jewishness of the inscription is debated (since sometimes crttole is also used for Jesus' precepts). Also mother marble plaque from Catnnia recording the acquisition of a tomb (JIWE 149, in Greek) says that the owner (again an elder, pmbytems, called Jason) in no way intiingcd the commandment. JIWE 150, again from Catania, statcs that Zosimianus bought this tomb; a menorah is added after the text. From Syracuse there is a Greek epitaph (JIWE 151 ) in which Imnc Nymphc (or: Ircnc thc bridc) says that no one should open the grave where she lies, but the Jewishness of the inscription is again a matter of some debate. Another S y r a c m epitaph in Grcck (JIWE 152) threatens anyone who opens thc tomb with 'the futurc' (to meli2tikon).which most probably rcfers to the final judgement. The Jewish character is ensured by the closing forrnula 'Blcssing to the pious hcre' (eulogiatois lrosiois h d e ) . JIWE 153 is a Samaritan inscription from Syracuse. It is written on a marble column in Samaritan Hebrew and cites the text of Num. 10:35: 'Rise,YHWH, tnay your enemies be scattered,' a text found more oflen in Samaritan inscriptions and on amulcts? JIWE I54 (from Noto Vecchio) contains only menoroth as tomb decoration. Nr. 155 is a Greek cpitaph from Acrilla for 'Jason the child' (with a menorah). JIWE 156 is a Hebrew amirlet on a gold sheet from Comiso. It is heavily damaged but contains twice the line 'He shall save by the name that is in the height and He shall spare the lowly.' The often garblcd Hcbrcw suggcsts that thc copyist did not rally understand what he was writing. From Sofiana we have Gnck epitaphs for Attinis (==Atinius), an elder, with a menorah and for Judas Sabaiias (JIWE 157 and 158).Froin probably the same place there is a bronze sheet with an amulet text in Grcck and transliterated Hebrew containing mostly names of angels, both wellknown and unknown (JIWE 159).' The final itcm.. arc hvo epitaphs in Greek. one on a very damaged stone from Agrigento with the word lorrd[aios] in final position (JIWE 160)?thc othcr (1 6 1, from Tcrmc Imcmc) calling the dcccascd, Gaius Seius Ptolemaeus, a Samat~rcs,the meaning of which is uncertain: Was
R. Pummer, 'Inscriptions.' in A.D. Cmwn (cd.), 7 % ~Samaritans, TQhingen 1989, 192; Pummcr, 'Samaritan Rituals and Customs,'ibid. 652. T l ~ csame cat was published simultaneously as no. 33 in Kobnksky, GMA. Among thc wcll-known nanes we find the four archangels Michael, Gabriel, Raphael, and Uriel; among thc tnany unknown wc find namcs such as Dclko and Gibiiiba
Thc Jews trf ,4ncic*1rr.Siciir
39
the man a Samaritan (a member of the Samaritan religious community) or a Samarian (an inhabitant of Samarirt)?w The amulet from Acre publislied by Kotansky (GMA 32) is a copper tablet found in the early 19" century and publishcd scvcrnl timcs sincc? It is usually calted 'the phylactery of Moses,' since the arllulet idcntifios itsclf as suclr in the opcning lincs: "A phylactery which Moscs used to protect himself in the 1-Ioly of Holies (and) to lcad him in thc glory of tho divinc." And in lint 8 it says: "A phylactery of Moses (to protect himself) when hc wcnt up on Mount Sinai ... to receive the amulet," and this is rcpcatcd again in line 23. Thc amulct also statcs three times that whoevcr carries it will tiot have to fear sorcerers or birrding spells or evil spirits. The protecting chann itsclf bcgins with ttlc words, "la6 Sabalith AdBnaie Seilam Ablanathanalba, 0 world of the world,1uprotect so-and-so, Abmsax," follo\ved by nomina barbara. This is a familiar mis of Jcwish and Greek elements that onc finds so of'tcn in magical papyri, including thosc of nonJewish origin.]' The surprise comes in lines 19-22, where we find a previously unidentified fragment of Aquila's translation of Dcutcronorny 32: 1-3: "The heaven will be darkened, and I will speak, atrd let the cartlr hcar tiit: words of my mouth, as finc dew upon the grass, and as gentle showcrs upon thc hcrb, because I liave called the name of the Lord."" Tiic text on the tablet is rather commpt but according to the carchl and convincing study by Kohnsky thcrc are seven1 Aquilan clcmcnts in thcsc lincs (inter alia. the reading 'will be darkened'), but for our purposes it is unnecessary to go into these details." The important point is that this particular quotation in thc amulet's text is not without its purpose. AS Kotansky observes, Deutcronotny 32 and 33 prcscrvc the last words of Moscs before his death. Both chapters "contain poetic compositions that cffcctively closc thc wholc of the Mosaic I'cntatcuch" ( 144). In the verses quoted, "n this problem see my 'The Samaritan Disrspora in Antiquity.' in my E s s ~ otr s tire Jt*wb h Ifi~rlrlnfEari'y Chri.vticrrti!\~,Fribourg - GOttingcn 1990. 136147. ' For publication details scc GMA 126. It is unclcar to mc why Noy. who knows this aniulct (see p. 213), did not include this tcxt in JIWE, whcrcas hc did so with (ihltl no. 53. Thc strange phrase kosnre kosnrou i s probably a w d n translation of tile Hcbrew words 'olan~ILS- ' o l m . M. Snrith, '?he Jewish Elements in the Magical Papyri.' in his .Tttltiic~in rhc Ctrlt of Ycrlrwel~.vol. 2. Lxidcn I(N6.242-256. l 2 On Aquila six N. Fcrndndcz Marcos, Tltc .Qpttragint in C'ontcrt. lntmdirctioir to the Gwek 14miorr.t c,Sfhu Bible, Leidcn 2000, 109-122. For tlir sake of co~ilparisonI also give Deut. 32: 1-3 accoding to the NRSV [ranslation of the Masoretic vcrsion: "Give car. 0 hcavcns. and 1 will speak, Ict the earth hcar the words of my mouth. May my tcsching drop like the rain my spccy:lr condense like the dew, like gmtlc rain on grass, likc tlic showcrs on ncw growth. For I will proclninl thc nmlc ofthc Lord."Thc JPS translatiotl runs as follows: *%iuc car. 0 liuvcns. let mc speak; let the earth h a r the words I utter! May my discourse come down like the nin, my spccch distill likc thc Jcw, likc showcrs on young growth, like droplcts on thc grass. For the namc of the Lord I proclaim." l3 Scc for a dolailed study of this Aquilan quote Kotansky, GMA 149- 154.
'
40
The Jews of Ancient
Sicily
" M o s e s sings his s o n g to the w h o l e a s s e m b l y o f Israel, with his o w n w o r d s likened to a divine utterance that e v e n heaven and earth must hear. T h e w o r d s not o n l y represent a distillation o f all M o s e s ' divine teaching as g i v e n o n Sinai, they serve as a sort o f incanta tion in t h e m s e l v e s , for the w o r d s appropriately end, 'I will proclaim the n a m e o f the Lord.' That n a m e , and its proclamation, represents the very e s s e n c e o f the m a g i c 'Phylactery o f M o s e s ' - it is the 'Sabaoth' o f the inscribed g o l d e n leaf (line 6), the D i v i n e N a m e s and Tetragrammaton (lines 1 4 - 1 8 , 2 9 f . ) that M o s e s acquires o n his ascent to Sinai" ( 1 4 4 ) .
M u c h m o r e s h o u l d b e said a b o u t this c u r i o u s a m u l e t , but w e leave it h e r e in o r d e r to r e t u r n to o u r m a i n q u e s t i o n : W h a t d o e s all this t e a c h u s a b o u t the J e w s o f a n c i e n t Sicily? To b e g i n w i t h , w e c a n see from the p l a c e s w h e r e t h e m a t e r i a l s w e r e found that in t h e later R o m a n E m p i r e J e w s lived all o v e r Sicily, a l t h o u g h t h e r e s e e m s to b e a certain c o n c e n t r a t i o n o f e v i d e n c e in C a t a n i a ( J I W E 1 4 5 - 1 5 0 ) . Further, in c o n t r a s t to C r e t e a n d C y p r u s , all o f the e v i d e n c e is late: W h e r e a s for t h e o t h e r t w o large islands, J e w i s h i n h a b i t a n t s are attested as early as the last c e n t u r i e s B C E , for Sicily they are not attested before the third c e n t u r y C E . T h a t is not to say t h e y w e r e n o t t h e r e before; w e s i m p l y h a v e n o e v i d e n c e , b u t n o e v i d e n c e d o e s n o t i m p l y a b s e n c e . In v i e w o f the fact that m a n y o t h e r islands in t h e M e d i t e r r a n e a n S e a h a d J e w i s h d i a s p o r a c o m m u n i t i e s from m u c h earlier t i m e s , it is hard to b e l i e v e t h e y did not exist in Sicily, b u t w e will h a v e to w a i t for n e w e v i d e n c e before w e c a n b e sure a b o u t that. Thirdly, n o t surprisingly, the J e w s o f Sicily s p o k e G r e e k , like a l m o s t all other d i a s p o r a J e w s (at least in the W e s t ) . W e s a w t h r e e i n s c r i p t i o n s in H e b r e w , b u t o n e o f t h e m w a s n o m o r e than s o m e stock p h r a s e s o f a liturgical c h a r a c t e r (like shalom
'al Yisra 'el) a n d a g r e e t i n g ;
m o r e o v e r the rest o f this inscription w a s in L a t i n ( J I W E 145). T h e s e c o n d o n e w a s a S a m a r i t a n inscription w i t h a biblical q u o t e in H e b r e w ( J I W E 153), but S a m a r i t a n inscriptions w i t h such q u o t e s t e n d to b e a l w a y s in H e b r e w so that w e c a n n o t u s e s u c h e v i d e n c e for d e t e r m i n i n g the s p o k e n l a n g u a g e - as a m a t t e r o f fact, like t h e J e w s , all d i a s p o r a S a m a r i t a n s s p o k e G r e e k .
1 4
T h e third o n e is a
H e b r e w a m u l e t ( J I W E 156) the text o f w h i c h is in large parts so u n i n t e l l i g i b l e that its first e d i t o r s u g g e s t s that " t h e c o p y i s t did n o t u n d e r s t a n d it a n d c o p i e d it p u r e l y for m a g i c a l p u r p o s e s . "
15
So n o n e o f t h e s e three inscriptions entitles u s
to a s s u m e that Sicilian J e w s k n e w m o r e t h a n m i n i m a l H e b r e w . T h e o n l y Latin inscription ( J I W E 145) is an e x c e p t i o n a n d as such an indication o f an e x c e p t i o n ally h i g h d e g r e e o f integration into R o m a n society; e v e n in the city o f R o m e , Latin i n s c r i p t i o n s b y J e w s are a rarity ( a l t h o u g h i n c r e a s i n g o v e r t i m e ) .
1 6
Finally,
a g a i n n o t surprisingly, J e w s in Sicily t e n d e d to i n d u l g e in m a g i c , as w e also see e l s e w h e r e (for i n s t a n c e in C y p r u s ; see m y article m e n t i o n e d in n o t e 2 ) .
14
See my 'The Samaritan Languages in the Prc-Islamic Period,' in my Japheth in the Tents ofShem. Studies on Jewish Hellenism in Antiquity, Leuven 2 0 0 2 , 2 3 5 - 2 5 0 . Noy, JIWE 208. See L.V. Rutgers, The Jews of Late Ancient Rome, Leiden 1995, 1 7 6 - 7 . 15
1 6
The Jews of Ancient
Sicily
41
N o s y n a g o g u e s h a v e b e e n e x c a v a t e d in Sicily. E v e n so, the e v i d e n c e r e v i e w e d s u g g e s t s that there w e r e J e w i s h c o m m u n i t i e s w i t h their o w n o r g a n i z a t i o n s . S o m e o f t h e inscriptions m e n t i o n e l d e r s (presbyteroi),
a well-attested d e s i g n a t i o n for
d i g n i t a r i e s o f J e w i s h c o m m u n i t i e s ( J I W E 148, 149, 157); t h e y w e r e p r o b a b l y 1
m e m b e r s o f a council o f e l d e r s (gerousia)}
R a b b i s are not m e n t i o n e d at all, but
the r e f e r e n c e to the h o n o r o f the p a t r i a r c h s in J I W E 145 s u g g e s t s that c o n t a c t s w i t h the J e w i s h l e a d e r s h i p in P a l e s t i n e w e r e m a i n t a i n e d . A n d the u s e o f A q u i l a ' s B i b l e translation in the a m u l e t d i s c u s s e d a b o v e ( G M A 3 2 ) is at least an indica tion that this r a b b i n i c a l l y inspired G r e e k v e r s i o n h a d influence a n d p r e s t i g e a m o n g ( s o m e ) Sicilian J e w s . A l m o s t the o n l y setting in w h i c h t h e y c o u l d h a v e h e a r d this v e r s i o n is that o f a s y n a g o g u e s e r v i c e , so this is a n o t h e r indication that there m u s t h a v e b e e n J e w i s h s y n a g o g u e s in Sicily. In this c o n n e c t i o n it is to b e n o t i c e d that J I W E 143 stresses t h e i m p o r t a n c e o f t h e s a b b a t h . A l s o the frequent o c c u r r e n c e o f the m e n o r a h as a J e w i s h s y m b o l is i n d i c a t i v e o f an o u t s p o k e n J e w i s h s e l f - a w a r e n e s s a n d identity. A n o t h e r interesting feature o f the e v i d e n c e is the p r e s e n c e o f S a m a r i t a n s . To b e s u r e , t h e Samareus
o f J I W E 161 n e e d not h a v e b e e n a S a m a r i t a n at all
(see a b o v e ) , but the p r e s e n c e in S y r a c u s e o f a m a r b l e c o l u m n w i t h a S a m a r i t a n inscription ( J I W E 153) c a n n o t b u t indicate that t h e city h a r b o r e d a c o m m u n i t y o f S a m a r i t a n s . W e k n o w from a literary s o u r c e that there w a s i n d e e d a S a m a r i tan c o m m u n i t y in Sicily in t h e sixth c e n t u r y : P o p e G r e g o r y the G r e a t w r o t e to the b i s h o p s o f the islands that the S a m a r i t a n s there s h o u l d not b e a l l o w e d to c i r c u m c i s e their C h r i s t i a n slaves (Epist. r e d e e m e d {Epist.
6.33) a n d that t h e s e slaves s h o u l d b e
8.21).
T h e s a m e G r e g o r y also attests to J e w i s h p r e s e n c e in Sicily b y the e n d o f the sixth c e n t u r y : H e o r d e r e d t h e b i s h o p s to g i v e the J e w s o f P a l e r m o full i n d e m nification for the d a m a g e suffered b y the e x p r o p r i a t i o n o f t h e s y n a g o g u e b y C h r i s t i a n s (Epist.
9.38). A s S a l o W. B a r o n aptly r e m a r k s in this c o n t e x t , " T h i s
p r o t e c t i o n o f J e w i s h religious institutions, w h i l e in k e e p i n g w i t h the a c c e p t e d R o m a n law, w a s particularly significant in Italy in so far as there the conflict b e t w e e n Saint A m b r o s e a n d t h e e m p e r o r o v e r t h e illegal e x p r o p r i a t i o n o f the s y n a g o g u e o f C a l l i n i c u m in 3 8 8 h a d h e l p e d c r e a t e the illusion that the c h u r c h favored such m o b a c t i o n . "
18
B e that as it may, t h e s e p a p a l d o c u m e n t s m a k e clear
that b y the e n d o f antiquity there m u s t h a v e b e e n s i z e a b l e J e w i s h a n d S a m a r i t a n c o m m u n i t i e s in Sicily. A n d this g r o w t h c o n t i n u e d in the M i d d l e A g e s : In the
1 7
See my Ancient Jewish Epitaphs 91; esp. L.I. Levine, The Ancient Synagogue. The First Thousand Years, N e w Haven-London 2000, 4 0 7 - 4 0 8 . S.W. Baron, A Social and Religious History of the Jews, vol. 3, N e w York-Philadelphia 1957, 30. At pp. 2 8 - 3 3 Baron also mentions other letters of pope Gregory concerning things Jewish. 1 8
42
The Jews of Ancient
12
th
Sicily
century, B e n j a m i n o f T u d e l a c o u n t e d n o less t h a n 1500 J e w i s h families in
Palermo.
Appendix:
1 9
Caecilius
of
Calacte
In t h e e n t r y on Sicily in the Encyclopaedia
Judaica
( 1 4 : 1 4 9 3 ) , S.J. Sierra m e n
tions t h e first-century C E G r e e k orator C a e c i l i u s o f C a l a c t e (/. e., K a l e A k t e on the n o r t h c o a s t o f Sicily) as the first Sicilian J e w k n o w n to u s , a l t h o u g h h e s p e n t m o s t o f his life in R o m e . T h i s o p i n i o n is also a d h e r e d to b y M a r t i n G o o d m a n in 20
the r e v i s e d E n g l i s h edition o f S c h i i r e r ' s History.
A c t u a l l y the o n l y e v i d e n c e
for C a e c i l i u s ' J e w i s h n e s s is a r e m a r k to that effect in t h e m u d d l e d e n t r y on this o r a t o r in the 1 0
th
c e n t u r y B y z a n t i n e e n c y c l o p e d i a called the Suda. T h i s is v e r y
w e a k e v i d e n c e , the m o r e so s i n c e all o t h e r d a t a a b o u t C a e c i l i u s , to b e found in m u c h earlier a n d therefore m o r e reliable a u t h o r s , d o not g i v e u s t h e slightest hint o f his J e w i s h n e s s . A l s o t h e t o p i c s o f his b o o k s d o not s u g g e s t in the least that t h e w r i t e r w a s a Jew. I w o u l d therefore s u b m i t that, for r e a s o n s o f m e t h o d o l o g i c a l strictness, in a s t u d y o f Sicilian J e w s in antiquity C a e c i l i u s o f C a l a c t e s h o u l d b e left o u t o f a c c o u n t . [ N o t e : T h e v o l u m e edited b y N . B u c a r i a , Ebrei e Sicilia
(Palermo 2003), came
to m y n o t i c e o n l y after the c o m p l e t i o n o f this article.]
19
Sefer ha-Massa'ot 108 (p. 78 in Adler's edition). E. Schurer, The History of the Jewish People in the Age of Jesus Christ, vol. 3, Edinburgh 1986, 7 0 1 - 7 0 3 . Cf. also M. Stern, Greek and Latin Authors on Jews and Judaism, vol. 1, Jerusalem 1974, 3 6 1 - 3 6 3 , 566. 2 0
The Synagogue of Sardis and its Inscriptions Introduction F o r t y y e a r s a g o , in 1962, A m e r i c a n a r c h a e o l o g i s t s u n e a r t h e d the greatest a n c i e n t s y n a g o g u e e v e r in a large-scale e x c a v a t i o n in the city o f Sardis, capital o f ancient 1
L y d i a in A s i a M i n o r . T h e colossal b a s i l i c a - s h a p e d b u i l d i n g m e a s u r e s a l m o s t 2 0 2
x 100 m e t e r s a n d c o u l d a c c o m m o d a t e s o m e 1000 p e o p l e . T h i s richly d e c o r a t e d basilica is an integral part o f a h u g e b a t h - a n d - g y m n a s i u m c o m p l e x in the city c e n t r e a n d as such it is a l s o a m o n u m e n t to t h e integration o f the J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y in this G r a e c o - R o m a n city. T h i s s p e c t a c u l a r d i s c o v e r y p r o v i d e d a s t r o n g s t i m u l u s to s c h o l a r l y r e s e a r c h on the J e w i s h d i a s p o r a in antiquity, e s p e c i a l l y as r e g a r d s p r o b l e m s o f a c c u l t u r a t i o n , a s s i m i l a t i o n , a n d identity f o r m a t i o n .
3
The
m o r e t h a n e i g h t y inscriptions that w e r e found inside the s y n a g o g u e are o b v i o u s l y o f the greatest i m p o r t a n c e for t h e s t u d y o f these i s s u e s , b u t u n f o r t u n a t e l y w e h a v e h a d to w a i t v e r y l o n g for their p u b l i c a t i o n . To b e fair, the greatest e p i g r a p h i s t o f the 2 0
t h
century, t h e F r e n c h s c h o l a r L o u i s R o b e r t , h a d p u b l i s h e d 4
s o m e o f t h e s e inscriptions as early as 1 9 6 4 , b u t that w a s less than 1 0 % o f the m a t e r i a l . A t last w e n o w h a v e t h e l o n g a w a i t e d p u b l i c a t i o n o f this d o s s i e r in the form o f a special issue o f the Harvard
Theological
Review,
in w h i c h J o h n Kroll
5
p r e s e n t s the m a t e r i a l . In this m o d e s t c o n t r i b u t i o n , I first w a n t to briefly say s o m e t h i n g a b o u t w h a t w a s k n o w n a b o u t the J e w s o f S a r d i s b e f o r e t h e d i s c o v e r y
1
A.R. Seager & A.T. Kraabel, 'The Synagogue and the Jewish Community,' in G.M.A. Hanfmann (ed.), Sardis from Prehistoric to Roman Times, Cambridge ( M A ) 1983, 1 6 9 - 1 7 8 . For a concise survey of the archaeological data see also RR. Trebilco, Jewish Communities in Asia Minor, Cambridge 1991, 4 0 - 4 3 . In the scholarly literature one finds sometimes other measures (e. g., a length of 60 meters) but these are the interior measures o f the basilica, especially o f the great hall in which the meet ings took place, and that room is of course considerably smaller than the total complex which encompassed not only the great assembly hall but also the large forecourt with provisions for ritual washings and a number of other rooms. For information about the details of these adjacent rooms the reader is referred to the publications mentioned in note 1. See, e.g., J.M.G. Barclay, Jews in the Mediterranean Diaspora, Edinburgh 1996. Nouvelles inscriptions de Sardes, Paris 1964, 3 7 - 5 8 . J.H. Kroll, 'The Greek Inscriptions o f the Sardis Synagogue,' HTR 9 4 (2001) 5 - 1 2 7 . Pp. 5 7 - 1 2 7 contain photos of the inscriptions. [After the original publication of this article the inscriptions were published anew by Walter Ameling in Inscriptiones Judaicae Orientis II: Kleinasien, Tubingen 2 0 0 4 , 2 0 9 - 2 9 7 . ] 2
3
4
5
44
The Synagogue
of Sardis and its
Inscriptions
o f the s y n a g o g u e , a n d t h e n d e v o t e s o m e w o r d s to t h e i m p o r t a n c e o f t h e i n s c r i p tions for o u r k n o w l e d g e o f J u d a i s m in the a n c i e n t d i a s p o r a .
Jews
in
Sardis
It w a s o n l y after t h e m i d d l e o f the third c e n t u r y C E that the great basilica w a s c o n v e r t e d into a s y n a g o g u e ; thereafter it s e r v e d t h e J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y for several c e n t u r i e s until t h e city w a s d e s t r o y e d by the S a s s a n i d s in 6 1 6 C E . J e w s , h o w e v e r , h a d b e e n living in Sardis s o m e c e n t u r i e s before t h e y h a d this s y n a g o g u e . H o w m a n y c e n t u r i e s before is u n c e r t a i n , h o w e v e r , b e c a u s e o f a p r o b l e m in t h e interpretation o f a w o r d in O b a d i a h 2 0 . T h e p r o p h e t s a y s there that t h e exiles o f J e r u s a l e m w h o live in S e p h a r a d will p o s s e s s t h e t o w n s o f the N e g e v . S e p h a r a d (only in later H e b r e w the d e s i g n a t i o n for S p a i n ) is a n a m e that o c c u r s n o w h e r e else in the H e b r e w B i b l e a n d it is u n c e r t a i n w h i c h p l a c e or r e g i o n the 6
p r o p h e t h a s in m i n d h e r e . T h a t u n c e r t a i n t y is also reflected in t h e a n c i e n t ver s i o n s : t h e S e p t u a g i n t r e n d e r s it E p h r a t h a (or S e p h r a t h a ) , the V u l g a t e B o s p o r u s , a n d t h e P e s h i t t a a n d the T a r g u m read Spain. A c c o r d i n g to s o m e m o d e r n s c h o l a r s , 7
h o w e v e r , the city o f Sardis is m e a n t h e r e . W h y ? In 1916 an A r a m a i c inscription from the P e r s i a n p e r i o d ( K A I n o . 2 6 0 ) w a s found on t h e a n c i e n t n e c r o p o l i s o f S a r d i s . In that text t h e n a m e S e p h a r a d (in the s a m e s p e l l i n g as in O b a d i a h 2 0 : sprd) is u s e d for the capital o f t h e P e r s i a n s a t r a p y S p a r d a = S a r d i s . A n d fifty y e a r s later, in 1966, a n o t h e r A r a m a i c inscription from the P e r s i a n p e r i o d (ca. 4 5 0 B C E ) w a s p u b l i s h e d from w h i c h it b e c a m e a p p a r e n t that in D a s k y l e i o n , n o t 8
far from S a r d i s , a J e w i s h family h a d s e t t l e d . T h a t is to s a y that it is not i m p o s sible that the p r o p h e t i n d e e d d o e s h a v e in m i n d h e r e J e w i s h exiles in t h e L y d i a n capital, S a r d i s . B u t that c a n n o t b e strictly p r o v e d , a n d it is u n d e r s t a n d a b l e that some scholars remain skeptical.
9
T h e J e w i s h historian F l a v i u s J o s e p h u s m e n t i o n s a letter b y t h e S e l e u c i d k i n g A n t i o c h u s III from 2 0 5 B C E in w h i c h this ruler states that h e h a s transferred t w o t h o u s a n d J e w i s h families from M e s o p o t a m i a to t h e m o s t i m p o r t a n t cities o f L y d i a a n d P h r y g i a (Antiquitates
6
Judaicae
XII 1 4 8 - 1 5 2 ) . S o there c a n b e little
See the survey in J.D. Wineland, 'Sepharad,' Anchor Bible Dictionary
5 (1992) 1089—
90. 7
See, e.g., E. Lipinski, 'Obadiah 2 0 , ' Vetus Testamentum 23 (1973) 3 6 8 - 3 7 0 ; H.W. Wolff, Dodekapropheton 3: Obadja undJona (BKAT XIV/3), Neukirchen 1977, 4 7 - 4 8 . A l s o Wineland (see n. 6) is inclined to see a reference to Sardis here.. For details the reader is referred to the publications mentioned in the previous note. E.g., Trebilco, Jewish Communities 38; and F. Millar in E. Schiirer, The History of the Jewish People in the Age of Jesus Christ, rev. ed. by G. Vermes, F. Millar & M. Goodman, vol. Ill 1, Edinburgh 1986, 2 0 - 2 1 . 8
9
The Synagogue
of Sardis and its
Inscriptions
45
doubt that by the end of the third century B C E , Sardis, as capital of Lydia, had Jewish inhabitants.
1 0
Furthermore, J o s e p h u s cites s o m e decrees o f Julius C a e s a r and the R o m a n S e n a t e from t h e m i d d l e o f t h e first c e n t u r y B C E w h i c h s t i p u l a t e t h e r i g h t s o f t h e J e w s in a n u m b e r o f c i t i e s in A s i a M i n o r . T h e R o m a n g o v e r n o r o f A s i a M i n o r h a d in g e n e r a l g r a n t e d t h e J e w s f r e e d o m from m i l i t a r y s e r v i c e as w e l l as p e r m i s s i o n t o live fully in a c c o r d a n c e w i t h t h e J e w i s h a n c e s t r a l l a w s a n d c u s t o m s (Ant.
Jud.
X I V 2 2 3 - 2 2 7 ) , b u t a p a r t from t h a t t h e r e w a s a l s o a s p e c i a l d e c r e e
c o n c e r n i n g t h e s i t u a t i o n o f t h e J e w s in S a r d i s : L u c i u s A n t o n i u s , s o n o f Marcus, proquaestor and propraetor, to the magistrates, council and p e o p l e o f Sardis, greeting. J e w i s h citizens o f yours h a v e c o m e to m e and pointed out that from the earliest t i m e s they have had an association o f their o w n in accordance with their native l a w s and a place o f their o w n in w h i c h they d e c i d e their affairs and controver sies with o n e another.
11
U p o n their request that it b e permitted them to d o these things, I
d e c i d e d that they m a y b e maintained and permitted them s o to d o (Ant. Jud. X I V 2 3 5 ) .
1 2
S l i g h t l y further o n J o s e p h u s q u o t e s a d e c r e e o f t h e p e o p l e o f S a r d i s : T h e f o l l o w i n g decree w a s p a s s e d b y the council and p e o p l e o n the m o t i o n o f the m a g i s trates. Whereas the Jewish citizens living in our city have continually r e c e i v e d many great privileges from the p e o p l e and h a v e n o w c o m e before the council and the p e o p l e and have pleaded that, as their l a w s and freedom h a v e b e e n restored t o t h e m b y the R o m a n senate and p e o p l e , they m a y , in accordance with their accepted c u s t o m s , c o m e together and h a v e a c o m m u n a l life and adjudicate suits a m o n g t h e m s e l v e s , and that a place b e g i v e n to t h e m in w h i c h they m a y gather together with their w i v e s and children and offer their ancestral prayers and sacrifices to G o d , it has therefore b e e n decreed b y the council and the p e o p l e that permission shall b e g i v e n them to c o m e together o n stated days to d o these things w h i c h are in accordance with their l a w s , and also that a place shall b e set apart b y the magistrates for them to build and inhabit, such as they m a y consider suitable for this purpose, and that the market officials o f the city shall b e charged with the duty o f having suitable food for t h e m brought in (Ant. Jud. X I V 2 5 9 - 2 6 1 ) . F r o m t h e s e d e c r e e s s e v e r a l t h i n g s b e c o m e clear. T h e p r i v i l e g e d p o s i t i o n o f t h e J e w s in t h e city d i d n o t c o m e t o t h e m a u t o m a t i c a l l y . T h e y h a d h a d t o s t r u g g l e for it a n d t h e y a p p a r e n t l y h a d sufficient i n f l u e n c e a n d g o o d w i l l t o g e t t h i n g s d o n e a s t h e y w a n t e d . T h e y g o t t h e i r o w n p i e c e o f l a n d for t h e b u i l d i n g o f a s y n a g o g u e (not the one n o w excavated), the right to h a v e their o w n m e e t i n g s a n d to decide o n t h e i r o w n affairs t h e r e , a n d it w a s e v e n t a k e n c a r e o f b y t h e city m a g i s t r a t e s
1 0
There are scholars w h o doubt the authenticity o f the letter o f Antiochus III; see Barclay, Jews 261 with note 8. This almost certainly refers to a synagogue. For the multifunctionality o f ancient syna gogues see now esp. L.I. Levine, The Ancient Synagogue, N e w Haven 2 0 0 0 , 1 2 4 - 1 3 4 et passim. Translation by Ralph Marcus in LCL VII 575. 11
1 2
46
The Synagogue
of Sardis and its
that k o s h e r food w o u l d b e a v a i l a b l e .
13
Inscriptions
We thus get a picture of a Jewish c o m
m u n i t y that is k e e n o n the m a i n t e n a n c e o f its o w n identity in the m i d s t o f a p a g a n society, but that is also e n a b l e d by that v e r y s a m e society to d o so w i t h o u t serious p r o b l e m s . W e also h a v e information from o t h e r cities in A s i a M i n o r that m a k e s clear that the J e w i s h c o m m u n i t i e s there w e r e in a relatively safe a n d s e c u r e p o s i tion a n d c o u l d d e v e l o p a h i g h d e g r e e o f integration in city life in s u c h a w a y that they c o u l d also m a i n t a i n their identity, T h e city o f A p h r o d i s i a s , situated in the S o u t h - W e s t e r n part o f A s i a M i n o r , is a fine e x a m p l e o f that k i n d o f integration, as 1 h a v e a r g u e d e l s e w h e r e .
The
14
synagogue
T h i s p i c t u r e is n o w c o n f i r m e d in a striking w a y b y the e x c a v a t i o n o f t h e g r e a t s y n a g o g u e in S a r d i s a n d its inscriptions. A s w a s a l r e a d y n o t e d , the s y n a g o g u e w a s an integral part o f a centrally located c o m p l e x c o n s i s t i n g o f a p u b l i c b a t h , a g y m n a s i u m , a n d a s h o p p i n g m a l l . T h e b u i l d i n g is ' o n e o f the m o s t p r o m i n e n t features o f t h e c i t y ' s r u i n e d u r b a n l a n d s c a p e , '
15
as e v e r y m o d e r n visitor c a n n o w
easily see. E v e n apart from the e n o r m o u s size, this p o i n t s to the fact that the J e w ish c o m m u n i t y o f Sardis w a s definitely not a ' q u a n t i t e n e g l i g e a b l e . ' M i n o r i t i e s in a city d o n o t u s u a l l y get h o l d o f a central a n d p r e s t i g i o u s b u i l d i n g if t h e y d o n o t h a v e a n y c l o u t a n d influence there. In m y view, therefore, T h o m a s K r a a b e l is c o m p l e t e l y right w h e n h e s a y s : ' T h e i m p o r t a n c e o f t h e d i s c o v e r y o f the S a r d i s s y n a g o g u e is s i m p l y that it r e v e a l s a J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y o f far greater w e a l t h , p o w e r , a n d self-confidence than the u s u a l v i e w s o f a n c i e n t J u d a i s m w o u l d g i v e u s a n y right to e x p e c t . '
1 6
T h e J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y in S a r d i s w a s a minority, ' b u t a
p o w e r f u l , e v e n a w e a l t h y o n e , o f great antiquity, in a m a j o r city o f the D i a s p o r a , 1 3
See T. Rajak, 'Jews, Pagans and Christians in Late Antique Sardis: Models o f Interaction,' in her The Jewish Dialogue with Greece and Rome. Studies in Cultural and Social Interaction, Leiden 2 0 0 1 , 447^162, esp. 448. The enigmatic remark that the Jews were also allowed to bring their sacrifices to God in their own communal building must be left out o f account here. Sacrifices to the God of Israel outside the Jerusalem temple were of course strictly forbidden according to the priestly rules, but that does not imply that everyone agreed with and stuck to these rules. It is known that there were other Jewish temples outside of Jerusalem. See, e.g., M. Smith, Palestinian Parties and Politics that Shaped the Old Testament, N e w York 1971, ch. 4, esp. p. 97; M.E. Stone, Scriptures, Sects and Visions. A Profile of Judaism from Ezra to the Jewish Revolts, London 1980, 7 7 - 8 2 . But see also the discussion of the problem by J. Leonhardt, 'Euchai kai thusiai (A 14:260) - Opfer in der jiidischen Synagoge von Sardes?,' in J.U. Kalms (ed.), Internationales Josephus-Kolloquium Amsterdam 2000, Miinster 2 0 0 1 , 1 8 9 - 2 0 3 , who argues that this passage cannot be interpreted as a break with the Jerusalem temple by the Jews o f Sardis. P.W. van der Horst, 'Jews and Christians in Aphrodisias in the Light of Their Relation ships in Other Cities o f Asia Minor,' in my Essays on the Jewish World of Early Christianity, Fribourg-Gottingen 1990, 1 6 6 - 1 8 1 . Rajak, 'Jews, Pagans and Christians in Sardis' 449. Kraabel in Sardis (n. 1) 178. 1 4
15
1 6
The Synagogue
of Sardis and its
47
Inscriptions
c o n t r o l l i n g a h u g e a n d lavishly d e c o r a t e d structure on ' M a i n S t r e e t ' a n d a b l e to retain control o f it as long as t h e city e x i s t e d . '
17
H e r e o n e d o e s n o t find J e w s w h o
k e e p a ' l o w profile' b u t influential a n d s e l f - c o n s c i o u s p e o p l e . T h e inscriptions that h a v e n o w b e e n p u b l i s h e d a d d an extra confirmation to this picture.
The
inscriptions
A p a r t from the G r e e k i n s c r i p t i o n s there are a handful o f H e b r e w e p i g r a p h i c r e m a i n s , b u t I will l e a v e t h e s e o u t o f a c c o u n t , not o n l y b e c a u s e they h a v e not yet b e e n p u b l i s h e d ,
18
b u t also b e c a u s e t h e s e five or six f r a g m e n t s yield little
m o r e than the w o r d shalom
and the proper names Jochanan and Severus. These
few H e b r e w f r a g m e n t s c a n certainly n o t b e u s e d as p r o o f that the J e w s in Sardis w e r e still a b l e to s p e a k H e b r e w for t h e y p r o v e n o m o r e t h a n that o n e or t w o p e o p l e k n e w the c h a r a c t e r s o f t h e ' s a c r e d l a n g u a g e , ' or o n e or t w o w o r d s in that l a n g u a g e , as a sign o f b e l o n g i n g to t h e h i s t o r y o f the J e w i s h p e o p l e . T h e fact that m o r e t h a n 9 0 % o f the inscriptions are in G r e e k m a k e s a b u n d a n t l y clear that t h e daily l a n g u a g e o f this J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y w a s G r e e k . T h e e i g h t y or so G r e e k inscriptions offer u s an interesting w i n d o w on v a r i o u s a s p e c t s o f this d i a s p o r a community. To b e g i n w i t h , it s h o u l d b e said that m o s t o f t h e inscriptions in this s y n a g o g u e ' c o m m e m o r a t e m e m b e r s o f the c o n g r e g a t i o n w h o c o n t r i b u t e d t h e m a n y e l e m e n t s o f interior d e c o r a t i o n : t h e m o s a i c s o n t h e floor, the m a r b l i n g o f the w a l l s , a n d a n u m b e r o f architectural a n d ritual f u r n i s h i n g s . '
19
T h a t is a t y p e o f inscrip
tion that w e also find in o t h e r a n c i e n t s y n a g o g u e s a n d o f w h i c h m o r e than o n e hundred were already k n o w n .
2 0
T h i s c o r p u s is n o w e x p a n d e d c o n s i d e r a b l y b y
t h e s e n e w inscriptions, w h i c h - like t h e o t h e r s o f this t y p e - all date from the period o f c a . 3 0 0 - 6 0 0 CE. It is often m e n t i o n e d that t h e g e n e r o u s d o n o r m a d e his d o n a t i o n ' i n fulfill m e n t o f a v o w ' (kat' euchen, euxamenos
hyper
euches,
eplerosa
euchen,
euchen
etelesa,
etc.). O n c e t h e d o n a t i o n w a s m a d e out o f g r a t i t u d e for the health o f
the g i v e r ( 6 3 ) , p o s s i b l y an act o f t h a n k s g i v i n g for r e c o v e r y from a s e r i o u s illness b e c a u s e the d o n a t i o n c o n s i s t e d o f n o t h i n g less t h a n a m o n u m e n t a l m a r b l e Torah shrine (the 'aron ha-qodesh),
h e r e d e s i g n a t e d w i t h a w o r d that h a s not b e e n
p r e v i o u s l y attested w i t h this m e a n i n g , viz. nomophylakion, 17
lit. that in w h i c h the
Kraabel, 'The Diaspora Synagogue: Archaeological and Epigraphic Evidence Since Sukenik,' in Aufstieg undNiedergang der Romischen Welt II 19,1, Berlin-New York 1979, 488. F.M. Cross from Harvard University is preparing an edition. [In the meantime Cross has published them in Harvard Theological Review 95 (2002) 3 - 1 9 . ] Kroll, 'Greek Inscriptions' 5. For a (now outdated) collection o f these inscriptions see B. Lifshitz, Donateurs et fondateurs dans les synagogues juives, Paris 1967. At pp. 2 4 - 3 1 Lifshitz deals with the inscrip tions from Sardis that had been published by Louis Robert in 1964 (Nouvelles inscriptions de Sardes). 1 8
1 9
2 0
48
The Synagogue
law is g u a r d e d .
21
of Sardis and its
Inscriptions
W i t h d u e piety it is often stated that t h e gift w a s d o n a t e d ' f r o m
t h e gifts o f P r o v i d e n c e ' ( 1 2 , 1 6 - 1 7 , 1 9 - 2 4 , 5 8 , 6 6 ) . It is striking that the G o d o f Israel is d e s i g n a t e d n o less than 11 t i m e s by the n o n - b i b l i c a l t e r m
Pronoia,
s o m e t h i n g that w e k n o w p r i m a r i l y from the w r i t i n g s o f several C h u r c h F a t h e r s . G r a e c o - J e w i s h a u t h o r s s u c h as P h i l o a n d J o s e p h u s , t o o , u s e the t e r m
22
pronoia
d o z e n s o f t i m e s , b u t a l w a y s as an attribute or quality, n e v e r as t h e e q u i v a l e n t o f G o d . In antiquity, pronoia dentia
w a s initially u s e d p r i m a r i l y for the i m p e r s o n a l
provi-
in Stoic p h i l o s o p h y . L a t e r o n this c o n c e p t w a s also e m p l o y e d in a w i d e r
s e n s e in the p h i l o s o p h i c a l d e b a t e s o f t h e H e l l e n i s t i c a n d R o m a n p e r i o d (think o f the v a r i o u s tractates Peripronoias that this striking u s e of pronoia
2 3
from the I m p e r i a l t i m e ) . It is n o t i m p r o b a b l e as a d e s i g n a t i o n o f G o d in t h e s e i n s c r i p t i o n s w a s
influenced b y the r e l i g i o - p h i l o s o p h i c a l d e b a t e s a b o u t p r o v i d e n c e in later antiq uity. A s w a s the c a s e w i t h P h i l o (albeit in a v e r y different w a y ) , t h e s e H e l l e n i z e d J e w s , t o o , w e r e influenced in their w a y s o f t h i n k i n g a n d s p e a k i n g b y d e b a t e s in c o n t e m p o r a r y p h i l o s o p h y ; n o w o n d e r if o n e realizes h o w m a n y c e n t u r i e s they h a d a l r e a d y lived in the t h o r o u g h l y G r e e k city that S a r d i s w a s . ' T h e y t o o k o v e r a n i m p o r t a n t gentile w o r d in the s a m e w a y that t h e y h a d a p p r o p r i a t e d gentile s c u l p t u r e , h a u l i n g R o m a n e a g l e s a n d L y d i a n lions into their b u i l d i n g to a d o r n it, b o l d l y m a k i n g t h e m J e w i s h in the p r o c e s s . '
2 4
Six t i m e s t h e d o n o r s are called ' G o d - f e a r e r s ' (theosebeis,
8, 9, 2 2 , 5 7 , 5 9 ,
6 6 ) . T h i s is o f i m p o r t a n c e since w e a l m o s t certainly h a v e to d o h e r e w i t h t h e terminus
technicus
the B o o k of A c t s ) .
for n o n - J e w i s h s y m p a t h i z e r s w i t h J u d a i s m (the sebomenoi 2 5
of
It is the great d o n o r inscription from A p h r o d i s i a s that h a d
a l r e a d y m a d e i m p r e s s i v e l y clear that in that C a r i a n city n o n - J e w s h a d c o n t r i b u t e d g e n e r o u s l y ( a n d in great n u m b e r s ) to t h e financing o f a J e w i s h b u i l d i n g (or b u r i a l p l a c e ) , a n d , in a d d i t i o n to that, t h o s e m a n y ' G o d - f e a r e r s ' ( a l m o s t h a l f o f t h e m o r e t h a n 120 d o n o r s b e l o n g e d to that c a t e g o r y o f p a g a n 'affiliates o f s o m e 2 6
s o r t ' ) t u r n e d o u t to b e l o n g to the h i g h e r strata o f s o c i e t y .
27
A l t h o u g h in Sardis
t h e n u m e r i c a l ratio is quite different from that in A p h r o d i s i a s , h e r e a g a i n o n e c a n see u n m i s t a k a b l y that till l o n g after C o n s t a n t i n e p a g a n s o f the h i g h e r e c h e l o n s
2 1
This rare word is used elsewhere in the sense of 'office of the guardian o f the laws.' A.T. Kraabel, 'Pronoia at Sardis,' B. Isaac & A. Oppenheimer (eds.), Studies on the Jewish Diaspora in the Hellenistic and Roman Periods (= Te'uda XII), Tel Aviv 1996, 7 5 - 9 6 . Only inscription no. 29 has the formula 'from the gifts of the Almighty God.' Kraabel, 'Pronoia at Sardis' 8 2 - 8 4 . See esp. M. Dragona-Monachou, 'Divine Providence in the Philosophy o f the Empire,' Aufstieg und Niedergang der Romischen Welt II 36, 7, BerlinN e w York 1994, 4417^1490. Kraabel, 'Pronoia' 95. The most comprehensive and recent study of the phenomenon of 'Godfearers' is B. Wander, Gottesfurchtige und Sympathisanten, Tubingen 1998. Rajak, 'Jews, Pagans and Christians' 449. J. Reynolds & R. Tannenbaum, Jews and Godfearers at Aphrodisias Cambridge 1987. 2 2
2 3
2 4
2 5
2 6
2 7
The Synagogue
of Sardis and its
49
Inscriptions
t e n d e d to s y m p a t h i z e with J u d a i s m r a t h e r t h a n w i t h C h r i s t i a n i t y .
28
O n e of these
' g e n t i l e s y m p a t h i z e r s ' e v e n d o n a t e d the large m e n o r a h to t h e s y n a g o g u e ( 6 6 ) ! W h e n d o n o r s m e n t i o n their o c c u p a t i o n or function, s e c u l a r p r o f e s s i o n s are m e n t i o n e d m u c h m o r e often than religious o n e s . O n l y in t h r e e c a s e s are p o s i tions or functions in t h e J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y m e n t i o n e d , w h e r e a s in n o less than t w e n t y c a s e s secular p r o f e s s i o n s a n d functions are m e n t i o n e d ( a m o n g w h i c h three g o l d s m i t h s ! ) . W h a t is e s p e c i a l l y striking is that n o less t h a n n i n e p e r s o n s are bouleutai,
i.e., m e m b e r s o f the city council (boule),
the h i g h e s t a d m i n i s t r a
tive b o d y o f t h e city. H e r e w e s e e J e w s w h o h a v e c l i m b e d u p to the h i g h e s t r u n g on the social ladder, for ' t h e c o u n c i l s o f G r e e k cities u n d e r t h e L a t e E m p i r e w e r e o p e n o n l y to t h e w e a l t h i e r families, w i t h m e m b e r s h i p , o n c e p u r c h a s e d , b e i n g h e r e d i t a r y a n d h e l d for l i f e . '
29
S o d i s t i n g u i s h e d a n d w e l l - t o - d o J e w i s h families
participated in the g o v e r n m e n t o f the city. N o w o n d e r that h e r e , u n l i k e e l s e w h e r e in the fifth a n d sixth century, t h e s y n a g o g u e w a s not e x p r o p r i a t e d b y the C h r i s tians in o r d e r to b e c o n v e r t e d into a c h u r c h b u i l d i n g . T h i s basilica c o u l d h a v e b e e n a magnificent c h u r c h , b u t w h a t h a p p e n e d in fact w a s that d u r i n g the fifth a n d sixth c e n t u r y the C h r i s t i a n s in Sardis h a d to m a k e d o w i t h a m u c h s m a l l e r b u i l d i n g than t h e s y n a g o g u e . A striking difference from the f a m o u s A p h r o d i s i a s inscription, w h i c h also m e n t i o n s n i n e bouleutai,
is that t h e r e t h e city c o u n c i l o r s
are all gentiles w h e r e a s h e r e t h e y are J e w s ! A s far as religious functions are c o n c e r n e d , an elder (presbyteros,
52 and 7 5 )
is m e n t i o n e d t w i c e . E l d e r s are found m o r e often in o t h e r J e w i s h i n s c r i p t i o n s . T h e y w e r e m e m b e r s o f the c o u n c i l o f e l d e r s (often called gerousia)
30
w h o formed
t h e g o v e r n i n g b o d y o f the r e l i g i o u s c o m m u n i t y . F u r t h e r m o r e , s o m e o n e is called hiereus
kai sophodidaskalos
(4). ' P r i e s t , ' hiereus,
is h e r e a l m o s t certainly not
t h e d e s i g n a t i o n o f an official t e m p l e priest, w h i c h s e e m s v e r y u n l i k e l y after the d e s t r u c t i o n o f the J e r u s a l e m t e m p l e in 7 0 C E ( a l t h o u g h it c a n n e v e r b e ruled out c o m p l e t e l y ; think o f the reference to sacrifices b y J e w s in Sardis in Ant. Jud. X I V 2 5 9 - 2 6 1 [quoted a b o v e ] ) . C a s e s like t h e s e m o s t p r o b a b l y c o n c e r n d e s c e n d a n t s o f f o r m e r priestly families w h o ' w e r e a c c o r d e d the p r i v i l e g e o f p r o n o u n c i n g certain b e n e d i c t i o n s d u r i n g s e r v i c e s ' a n d w e r e r e g a r d e d as ' p r e f e r r e d r e a d e r s o f the T o r a h . '
31
T h e prestige o f t h e s e kohanim
w a s still so great, e v e n centuries after
t h e d e s t r u c t i o n o f the t e m p l e , that in t h e r a b b i n i c c a t a c o m b s o f B e t h S h e ' a r i m (in t h e G a l i l e e ) a special burial c h a m b e r h a d b e e n r e s e r v e d for t h e m . daskalos
Sophodi
is a t e a c h e r o f w i s d o m . T h e w o r d l o o k s like a v a r i a n t o f the m o r e usual
nomodidaskalos,
2 8
3 2
t e a c h e r o f t h e L a w . S i n c e t h e Torah w a s w i d e l y r e g a r d e d as
See my study 'Jews and Christians in Aphrodisias in the Light of Their Relations in Other Cities of Asia Minor'(n. 14). Kroll, 'Greek Inscriptions' 10. For a list see R W. van der Horst, Ancient Jewish Epitaphs, Kampen 1991, 9 1 . Kroll, 'Greek Inscriptions' 18. R W. van der Horst, Ancient Jewish Epitaphs 96. 2 9
3 0
3 1
3 2
50
The Synagogue
of Sardis and its
Inscriptions
the c o m p e n d i u m o f all d i v i n e w i s d o m in a n c i e n t J u d a i s m ,
3 3
it s e e m s v e r y p r o b
a b l e that t h e t e r m is a d e s i g n a t i o n o f a Torah s c h o l a r ( n o t n e c e s s a r i l y a r a b b i ) , s o m e t h i n g t h a t fits in w e l l w i t h t h e priestly d e s c e n t o f t h e m a n . M o s t o f t h e gifts m e n t i o n e d in t h e inscriptions a r e t h e m a r b l e w a l l d e c o r a tions a n d floor m o s a i c s o f t h e s y n a g o g u e , b u t s o m e a r e o f a different n a t u r e . T w o p e r s o n s d o n a t e d e a c h a m e n o r a h ( 6 6 , 6 9 ; in n o . 6 6 t h e m e n o r a h is called heptamyxion,
lit. ' s e v e n b u r n e r ' ) ; a n o t h e r d o n a t e d t h e m a r b l e for the Torah shrine
( 6 3 ) ; a n d S a m o e p o s s i b l y d o n a t e d t h e bima, t h e e l e v a t e d structure from w h i c h the T o r a h w a s r e a d ( 4 ? ) . T h i s S a m o e is o n e o f the v e r y few w i t h a biblical n a m e (it is a r e n d i t i o n o f S h a m u ' a ) ; further w e o n l y find o n e i n s t a n c e o f S a m u e l ( 3 4 , 5 6 ) . A l l o t h e r n a m e s are familiar G r e e k a n d Latin n a m e s , e x c e p t E u l o g i o s ( 9 ) , a n a m e d e r i v e d from eulogia
- berakha,
blessing.
34
This Eulogios happens to be
a ' G o d - f e a r e r , ' a s w e r e his p a r e n t s , w h o g a v e h i m this n a m e a s t h e y p r o b a b l y a l r e a d y felt attracted to J u d a i s m .
The lions and the
Torah
Finally, I will briefly d i s c u s s s o m e inscriptions t h a t a r e interesting for r e a s o n s o t h e r than t h e o n e s m e n t i o n e d so far, to b e g i n w i t h n o . 10. T h e r e w e read t h e f o l l o w i n g text: I, Aurelios O l y m p i o s o f the tribe o f the Leontii, fulfilled a v o w with m y wife and children.
T h e fact that a J e w is n a m e d after t h e G r e e k m o u n t a i n o f the g o d s ( O l y m p u s ) is not s o s t r a n g e in t h e light o f t h e fact that w e k n o w q u i t e a n u m b e r o f n a m e s o f 35
J e w s ( a n d C h r i s t i a n s ) w i t h t h e o p h o r i c e l e m e n t s (till t h e p r e s e n t d a y t h e r e a r e J e w s called I s i d o r e = 'gift o f I s i s ' ) .
36
' L e u r s e n s etait a p p a r a m m e n t oblitere c h e z 37
les Juifs c o m m e c h e z les Chretiens.' O f g r e a t e r interest is t h e fact that A u r e l i u s O l y m p i u s s a y s that h e b e l o n g s to ' t h e tribe o f t h e L e o n t i i . ' L o u i s R o b e r t w a s c o n v i n c e d that this is n o t a tribe o f the city o f S a r d i s b u t o f the J e w i s h c o m m u nity. H e p o i n t s o u t that n o t o n l y d o e s t h e n a m e L e o n t i o s o c c u r m o r e frequently a m o n g J e w s (also in Sardis), b u t that in addition to that t h e lion is u s e d frequently as a s y m b o l i c d e c o r a t i v e e l e m e n t in t h e s y n a g o g a l m o s a i c s a n d r e l i e f s . 3 3
38
F o r that
See, e.g., E.J. Schnabel, Law and Wisdom from Ben Sira to Paul, Tubingen 1985. Robert, Nouvelles inscriptions 4 0 : 'II [ce nom] convient de facon excellente a un Juif, puisqu'il evoque Veulogia, la benediction, cette priere qui figure sur les tombes juives c o m m e dans les synagogues.' For other Jews with the name Eulogios or Eulogia see the indices in J.B. Frey, Corpus Inscriptionum Iudaicarum, 2 vols, Rome 1 9 3 5 - 5 2 , and in D. Noy, Jewish Inscrip tions of Western Europe, 2 vols., Cambridge 1 9 9 3 - 9 5 . Think o f Origenes = son o f Horus! On Jewish names with pagan theophoric elements see the fine essay by G. Mussies, 'Jew ish Personal N a m e s in Some Non-Literary Sources,' in J.W. van Henten & P.W. van der Horst (eds.), Studies in Early Jewish Epigraphy, Leiden 1994, 2 4 2 - 2 7 6 , esp. 2 4 5 - 2 4 9 . Robert, Nouvelles inscriptions 4 6 n. 2. Robert, Nouvelles inscriptions 4 6 with nn. 6 - 8 . 3 4
3 5
3 6
3 7
3 8
The Synagogue
of Sardis and its
51
Inscriptions
r e a s o n h e r e g a r d s the tribe o f the Leontii as ' u n e a d a p t a t i o n h e l l e n i s a n t e ' o f the tribe o f J u d a h . I n d e e d , in J a c o b ' s b l e s s i n g ( G e n . 4 9 : 9 ) J u d a h is called a y o u n g lion a n d this s y m b o l i c d e s i g n a t i o n is still u s e d in A p o c . 5:5 a n d in later J e w i s h a n d C h r i s t i a n w r i t i n g s . J e w s from the tribe o f J u d a h for that r e a s o n h a d a prefer e n c e for the n a m e L e o n t i o s , s a y s R o b e r t . B a r u c h Lifshitz d i s a g r e e s a n d objects that this self-designation w o u l d m a k e little s e n s e since m o s t J e w s
(Ioudaioi)
w e r e d e s c e n d a n t s o f the tribe o f J u d a h ; h e t a k e s the e x p r e s s i o n phyle
Leontion
to m e a n ' t h e family o f t h e L e o n t i i '
3 9
since in the S e p t u a g i n t phyle
to r e n d e r the H e b r e w w o r d for family, mishpachah.
is often u s e d
Kroll, however, agrees with
R o b e r t . H e p o i n t s out that a n o t h e r part o f the wall d e c o r a t i o n to w h i c h A u r e l i o s O l y m p i o s c o n t r i b u t e d w a s d o n a t e d b y G o d - f e a r e r s , or n o n - J e w s . It m a y well b e t h e c a s e that A u r e l i u s O l y m p i u s w a n t e d to d i s t i n g u i s h h i m s e l f as a J e w b y a d v e r t i s i n g h i m s e l f explicitly, a n d n o t w i t h o u t p r i d e , as a m e m b e r o f t h e tribe o f y o u n g lions, the tribe o f J u d a h : h e is a L e o n t i o s a n d h e n c e a real
Ioudaios\
B e s i d e s , it s h o u l d also b e k e p t in m i n d that t h e lion h a d b e e n a favourite t h e m e in the i c o n o g r a p h y o f Sardis from o f old; n o less than 2 2 s t a t u e s o f lions h a v e b e e n found t h e r e . H e n c e T r e b i l c o ' s r e m a r k : ' T h e lion s i m u l t a n e o u s l y e x p r e s s e d their J e w i s h identity a n d their " b e l o n g i n g n e s s " in S a r d i s . '
4 0
Certainty cannot be
attained in this matter, h o w e v e r , a n d m o r e r e s e a r c h n e e d s to b e d o n e , but the inscription is certainly intriguing. I n t r i g u i n g as w e l l is the inscription o f n o . 6 5 . In a literal translation it says: ' H a v i n g found, h a v i n g b r o k e n , read, o b s e r v e ' (heuron laxon).
klasas
anagndthi
phy-
T h e i m p e r a t i v e s ' r e a d ' a n d ' o b s e r v e ' (or ' k e e p ' ) h a r d l y l e a v e other
interpretations than that r e a d i n g o f the T o r a h is m e a n t h e r e a n d that it is incul cated in the m i n d s o f the c o m m u n i t y m e m b e r s that t h e y s h o u l d not o n l y read or listen to this h o l y text w i t h its c o m m a n d m e n t s but also live in a c c o r d a n c e w i t h it.
41
P r o b a b l y the p l a q u e t t e w i t h this inscription h a d b e e n a t t a c h e d to the Torah
shrine. It is n o t e a s y to s a y w h a t e x a c t l y ' h a v i n g b r o k e n ' (klasas)
i m p l i e s , but
p r e s u m a b l y it refers to the b r e a k i n g o f seals or u n l o c k i n g o f l o c k s o n the Torah scroll.
42
B e that as it may, it is clear that the central p o s i t i o n o f the Torah w a s
part o f the identity o f this c o m m u n i t y .
43
E v e n t h o u g h , in c u r r e n t i n t e r p r e t a t i o n s , t h e Torah forbade the m a k i n g o f im a g e s , y e t a J e w i s h family n o t o n l y took u p o n t h e m s e l v e s the c o s t s o f the m a r b l e 3 9
Donateurs et fondateurs 2 7 - 2 8 . Jewish Communities 45. Thus also L.H. Feldman, 'Diaspora Synagogues: N e w Light from Inscriptions and Pa pyri,' in S. Fine (ed.), Sacred Realm. The Emergence of the Synagogue in the Ancient World, N e w York - Oxford 1996, 6 4 - 6 5 . Thus Trebilco, Jewish Communities 51; his alternative suggestion that what is meant is 'breaking open a text by discussing its meaning' seems far-fetched. See W. Ameling, 'Eine liturgische Inschrift aus der Synagoge von Sardes,' in Klassisches Altertum, Spatantike undfruhes Christentum (FS A. Lippold), Wurzburg 1993, 4 9 5 - 5 0 8 [see now also his brief comments in IJO II 287.] 4 0
4 1
4 2
4 3
52
The Synagogue
of Sardis and its
Inscriptions
wall d e c o r a t i o n in the great a s s e m b l y hall o f the s y n a g o g u e ( ' f r o m the gifts o f G o d A l m i g h t y , ' 2 9 ) , b u t also the c o s t s o f the wall p a i n t i n g s (zographia).
These
p a i n t i n g s are l a m e n t a b l y lost b u t in p r i n c i p l e w e c o u l d h a v e found h e r e a fine parallel to the f a m o u s frescoes in the s y n a g o g u e o f Syrian D u r a - E u r o p o s ( m i d d l e o f the third c e n t u r y C E ) . H e r e w i t h I w a n t to c o n c l u d e this s u m m a r y survey. I h o p e to h a v e m a d e clear to r e a d e r s that t h e o l o g i a n s , N e w T e s t a m e n t s c h o l a r s , h i s t o r i a n s o f a n c i e n t religion, a n d J u d a i c scholars can only ignore t h e s e n e w a r c h a e o l o g i c a l d i s c o v e r i e s to their d e t r i m e n t , s o m e t h i n g w h i c h unfortunately still h a p p e n s all t o o often in t h e s e fields o f r e s e a r c h . It is p r o p e r to e n d this s u r v e y b y q u o t i n g t h e final s e n t e n c e o f K r o l l ' s edition o f t h e s e inscriptions: ' T h e Sardis d o s s i e r s t a n d s out for its s h e e r r i c h n e s s a n d scale, a n d for the striking vitality o f late R o m a n J u d a i s m that it c o n v e y s , a vitality that a p p e a r s all the m o r e r e m a r k a b l e b e c a u s e o f the g r o w i n g strength o f Christianity at the s a m e p e r i o d in h i s t o r y . '
44
O f c o u r s e it is hard to say
w h e t h e r this p i c t u r e c o u l d b e m a i n t a i n e d if t h e w h o l e o f a n c i e n t Sardis w e r e to b e e x c a v a t e d , for p e r h a p s the fact that o n l y a s m a l l p o r t i o n o f this relatively large city h a s b e e n b r o u g h t to light c o n v e y s a slanted i m p r e s s i o n o f the p r o m i n e n t J e w i s h p r e s e n c e t h e r e . U n f o r t u n a t e l y w e will p r o b a b l y n e v e r k n o w c o m p l e t e l y for s u r e . B u t a c c o r d i n g to o u r p r e s e n t state o f k n o w l e d g e , it is fair to say that in the capital o f a n c i e n t Lydia J e w s p l a y e d an i m p o r t a n t role in t h e cultural life o f t h e city d u r i n g at least a m i l l e n n i u m .
4 4
45
Kroll, 'Greek Inscriptions' 48. The British scholar Tessa Rajak is of the opinion that what w e can learn from Sardis is no more than that there Jews 'were both tolerated and tolerant' ('Jews, Pagans and Christians' 452). But although 'a little scepticism will be helpful in considering this glowing portrayal of co-existence' (453) - for even the Jewish bouleutai 'may in fact have had quite a mediocre ranking in the social hierarchy' (455) - her comparison with the situation in pre-war Berlin is misleading rather than elucidating. Her study of the Jews in Sardis is on the one hand a testimony to healthy reserve and restraint, but on the other hand also a proof of an inclination to skepticism in a situation where there is less reason for it than in many other cases. 4 5
Jews and Blues in Late Antiquity F r o m the early imperial p e r i o d till the t i m e o f the C r u s a d e s c i r c u s factions p l a y e d an i m p o r t a n t role in the cultural life o f the R o m a n a n d B y z a n t i n e E m p i r e s . T h e c h a r a c t e r o f t h e s e factions c h a n g e d o v e r the c e n t u r i e s , b u t their c o n n e c t i o n w i t h the w o r l d o f the athletic c o n t e s t s , t h e a r e n a s , e s p e c i a l l y the h i p p o d r o m e s , r e m a i n e d c o n s t a n t . H a v i n g b e g u n as p r i v a t e l y run o r g a n i z a t i o n s o f p e r f o r m e r s a n d s u p p o r t e r s , in t h e c o u r s e o f t h e h i s t o r y o f the E m p i r e ( s ) , the authorities g a i n e d m o r e a n d m o r e o f a g r i p o n t h e m . T h e n o w p u b l i c l y m a i n t a i n e d factions w e r e a d m i n i s t e r e d b y a m a n a g e r , the factionarius
( w h o s e role a n d function also
c h a n g e d o v e r t h e c e n t u r i e s ) . To an i n c r e a s i n g d e g r e e t h e s e s p o r t i n g a s s o c i a t i o n s b e c a m e political p a r t i e s a n d p r e s s u r e g r o u p s , e v e n m i l i t i a s , e s p e c i a l l y in late a n t i q u i t y a n d the early B y z a n t i n e p e r i o d . T h e n a m e s o f t h e four m a i n factions w e r e c o l o u r d e s i g n a t i o n s : t h e G r e e n s (riQdaivoi) a n d B l u e s (Bevexoi) w e r e the m o s t i m p o r t a n t a n d influential o n e s ; the m i n o r o n e s w e r e the R e d s (TOTJOLOL) 1
a n d t h e W h i t e s (Atuxoi,). T h e h i s t o r y a n d r o l e o f t h e s e factions h a s b e e n e x c e l lently d e s c r i b e d b y A l a n C a m e r o n ( m y s u m m a r y o f the d a t a is b a s e d u p o n his 2
m o n o g r a p h ) . T h i s short n o t e is solely f o c u s s e d o n o n e m i n o r a s p e c t o f this history, n a m e l y , the r e l a t i o n s h i p b e t w e e n t h e s e factions a n d t h e J e w s , a b o u t w h i c h w e k n o w little, b u t n o w s o m e w h a t m o r e t h a n 2 5 y e a r s a g o t h a n k s to r e c e n t e p i g r a p h i c d i s c o v e r i e s a n d n e w insights from social p s y c h o l o g y . F r o m the b e g i n n i n g , the B l u e s a n d t h e G r e e n s w e r e g r o u p s that w e r e in c o n flict w i t h e a c h other. T h i s is c l e a r in a l m o s t all the p a g a n , J e w i s h , a n d C h r i s t i a n s o u r c e s that m e n t i o n t h e s e factions. T h e r e is a long r e c o r d o f factional riots in the tumultuous history of Blues and Greens. T h e Greens, apparently always m o r e r o w d y a n d n u m e r o u s than t h e B l u e s , w e r e the o n e s w h o u s u a l l y started the riots. T h e y w e r e relatively often from the l o w e r strata o f society, t h o u g h n o t n e c e s s a r ily s o ; a l s o the B l u e s w e r e n o t a l w a y s from t h e u p p e r c l a s s , far from it. It w o u l d rather s e e m that m o s t or all strata o f society w e r e r e p r e s e n t e d in b o t h factions, a l t h o u g h the s o u r c e s d o g i v e t h e d e c i d e d i m p r e s s i o n t h a t in g e n e r a l t h e B l u e s h a d h i g h e r social s t a n d i n g t h a n t h e G r e e n s . W h e n t h e r e w a s fighting b e t w e e n B l u e s a n d G r e e n s , h o w e v e r , it is u s u a l l y difficult t o find the c a u s e in social or political i s s u e s . G r e e n s h a t e d B l u e s s i m p l y b e c a u s e t h e y w e r e n o t G r e e n s , a n d 1
For the astrological background o f these colour designations see A. Hermann, "Farbe," Reallexikon fur Antike und Christentum 7 (1969) 4 3 0 . A. Cameron, Circus Factions. Blues and Greens at Rome and Byzantium, Oxford 1976. 2
54
Jews and Blues in Late
Antiquity
v i c e versa. A c o m p a r i s o n w i t h m o d e r n s o c c e r s u p p o r t e r g r o u p s or h o o l i g a n s i n e v i t a b l y forces itself u p o n u s . T h e r e is an a n o n y m o u s J e w i s h l e g e n d from t h e early M i d d l e A g e s that hints at this a n t a g o n i s m . In a tale called Solomon's
Throne
and Hippodrome?
we
r e a d that k i n g S o l o m o n w a s seated on his t h r o n e in the J e r u s a l e m h i p p o d r o m e in the style o f a B y z a n t i n e E m p e r o r . S o l o m o n a n d h i s e n t o u r a g e , e s p e c i a l l y the spiritual l e a d e r s , w e r e d r e s s e d in b l u e ; the c o m m o n p e o p l e o f J e r u s a l e m w e r e d r e s s e d in w h i t e ; t h e p e o p l e from o u t s i d e J e r u s a l e m in red; b u t the gentiles in g r e e n . To b e sure, J e w s a n d gentiles are h e r e n o t o p p o s e d en bloc as B l u e s a n d G r e e n s , but it is clear that the r a b b i n i c a u t h o r o f this l e g e n d r e g a r d e d the G r e e n s as a p a r t y that w a s n o t J e w i s h , or n o t p r o - J e w i s h , a n d that r a n k e d low. T h e r e is n e w e p i g r a p h i c e v i d e n c e as w e l l that g i v e s a s t r o n g i m p r e s s i o n o f affinity b e t w e e n J e w s a n d B l u e s . To b e g i n w i t h , t h e r e are s o m e i n s c r i p t i o n s from late a n t i q u e A p h r o d i s i a s that p o i n t in that direction. In this C a r i a n city, a b e n c h in the O d e o n is inscribed w i t h t w o s e a t - m a r k e r s , o n e o f t h e m stating that c
the seats t h e r e b e l o n g to the J e w s (xojtog E|3QBCOV), the o t h e r o n e on the adjacent r o w that t h e s e seats b e l o n g to the elderly J e w i s h B l u e s (TOKOS Bevexoov 'EPQECOV 4
TOW j t c d e i w v ) . All the s u r r o u n d i n g seats are for the B l u e s ! T h i s at least i m p l i e s J e w i s h s u p p o r t for the B l u e s . A l s o in M i l e t u s , a theatre seat is i n s c r i b e d w i t h a n 5
i n t r i g u i n g s e a t - m a r k e r Bsvexcov EIOSEODV. T h e t e r m ' B l u e J e w s ' s u g g e s t s clearly that they w e r e s e e n by o t h e r s , or s a w t h e m s e l v e s , as the e n e m i e s o f t h e G r e e n s . T h e r e is also e p i g r a p h i c a l e v i d e n c e from t h e h i p p o d r o m e o f late a n t i q u e T y r e i n d i c a t i n g that t h e J e w s h a d their seats in t h e section r e s e r v e d for the B l u e s .
6
T h e q u e s t i o n that arises a u t o m a t i c a l l y is w h e t h e r or n o t it is t h e r e l i g i o u s affiliations o f B l u e s a n d G r e e n s that m a y e x p l a i n the affinity b e t w e e n J e w s 7
a n d B l u e s or the a d v e r s i t y b e t w e e n J e w s a n d G r e e n s . C a m e r o n a r g u e d that t h e traditional a n d firmly e n t r e n c h e d v i e w that in t h e early B y z a n t i n e p e r i o d ( a n d to that p e r i o d t h e J e w i s h e v i d e n c e b e l o n g s ) the B l u e s w e r e O r t h o d o x C h r i s t i a n s a n d t h e G r e e n s w e r e M o n o p h y s i t e s is totally w r o n g . W h a t c o n c e r n s h i m is " t h e c o n v e n t i o n a l a s s u m p t i o n that riots b e t w e e n B l u e s a n d G r e e n s s p r a n g from n o t h ing so s i m p l e as the victory or defeat o f this or that c o l o u r in t h e h i p p o d r o m e ; 3
See the edition in A. Jellinek, Bet ha-Midrasch. Sammlung kleiner Midraschim und vermischter Abhandlungen aus der dltern jiidischen Literatur, vol. 5, Jerusalem 1967 (repr. of the original 1877 ed.), 3 4 - 3 9 . English summary in L. Ginberg, The Legends of the Jews, vol. 4, Philadelphial913, 1 6 0 - 1 6 2 (with note 75 in vol. 6, p. 298). See the study of E. Ville-Patlagean, "Une image de Salomon en Basileus Byzantin," Revue des Etudes Juives 121 (1962) 8 - 3 3 ; the author mainly focusses on the dating of the original text (between the 6th and 10th century). 4
J. Reynolds & R. Tannenbaum, Jews and Godfearers at Aphrodisias, Cambridge 1987, 132. Ch. Roueche, Aphrodisias in Late Antiquity, London 1989, 2 2 0 - 2 2 2 , no. 180 (at pp. 2 1 8 228 Roueche deals with several other inscriptions mentioning Blues and Greens). P. Herrmann, Inschriften von Milet, Teil VI, Bd. 2, Berlin-New York 1998, no. 940h. J.-P. Rey-Coquais, "Tyr, fouilles recentes, ville, hippodrome et necropole: L'apport des inscriptions," Revue Archeologique (1979) 1 6 6 - 1 6 7 . Cameron, Circus Factions 126-153. 5
6
7
Jews and Blues in Late
55
Antiquity
that factional rivalry is a direct reflection of r e l i g i o u s rivalry. ( . . . ) [TJhere is not 8
o n e s c r a p of a n c i e n t e v i d e n c e in its f a v o u r . " H e a r g u e s o n the b a s i s o f a p l e t h o r a o f e v i d e n c e that the G r e e n s w e r e j u s t as o r t h o d o x as the B l u e s , a n d that the fac tions did not p l a y a n y role in t h e r e l i g i o u s d i s p u t e s b e c a u s e in g e n e r a l religious m o t i v e s p l a y e d n o part in factional rivalry b e t w e e n B l u e s a n d G r e e n s , let a l o n e that t h e y c o u l d b e e q u a t e d w i t h m o d e r a t e s ( B l u e s ) a n d e x t r e m i s t s ( G r e e n s ) . If this is correct, it b e c o m e s h a r d e r to e x p l a i n the literary e v i d e n c e w e h a v e to the effect that not o n l y did t h e J e w s u s u a l l y side w i t h the B l u e s b u t that t h e G r e e n s often e v e n initiated a n t i - J e w i s h v i o l e n c e . L e t us r e v i e w t h e e v i d e n c e briefly. J o h n M a l a l a s (first h a l f o f t h e sixth century, from S y r i a n A n t i o c h ) h a s several stories that g i v e the d e c i d e d i m p r e s s i o n o f the e x i s t e n c e o f a n t i - J e w i s h resent m e n t a m o n g the G r e e n s o f A n t i o c h . T h e first p a s s a g e is a slightly g a r b l e d n o t i c e about the reign of Caligula ( 3 7 - 4 1 CE): From the first year o f Gaius Caesar the Green faction a s s u m e d from h i m l i c e n c e to d o as they c h o s e and rioted in R o m e and in e v e r y other city for three years, till the end o f his reign, for he w a s its supporter. In the third year o f his reign, in A n t i o c h o f Syria, the supporters o f the B l u e faction o f that city chanted in the theatre against the local Greens, "Time raises up and time casts d o w n . T h e Greens are lechers!" Pronoios [read: Petroniusl, the consular governor, w a s w a t c h i n g at the time. There f o l l o w e d a great factional riot and disaster befell the city, for the G r e e k s o f A n t i o c h fought with the J e w s o f the city in a factional brawl, killed m a n y o f them, and burned their s y n a g o g u e s (Chronographia p. 185 e d . T h u r n ) .
10.20,
9
In a n o t h e r p a s s a g e , d e a l i n g w i t h t h e situation in the s a m e city a b o u t 4 9 0 C E , d u r i n g t h e reign o f Z e n o , M a l a l a s w r i t e s : T h o s e o f the Green faction in the city o f A n t i o c h started a stone fight against the B l u e s during a spectacle at the h i p p o d r o m e , w h i l e T h a l a s s i o s , the consular governor, w a s w a t c h i n g . ( . . . ) Six months later the A n t i o c h e n e s o f the Green faction gathered again and, during a riot at the hippodrome, killed m a n y p e o p l e . T h e y burnt the s y n a g o g u e called after A s a b i n o s b e c a u s e the J e w s w e r e supporters o f the B l u e s . T h e y plundered all that w a s in the s y n a g o g u e and those w h o lived there (Chronographia
15.15, p. 3 1 6 ed. T h u r n ) .
10
M a l a l a s a d d s the lurid detail that, w h e n Z e n o w a s i n f o r m e d a b o u t the c r i m e s o f the G r e e n s , h e b e c a m e a n g r y b e c a u s e t h e y h a d o n l y b u r n t the d e a d J e w s w h e r e a s t h e y s h o u l d h a v e b u r n t the living o n e s as w e l l !
11
S o m e w h a t later, in 5 0 7 , G r e e n
h o o l i g a n s also b u r n e d t h e s y n a g o g u e in n e a r b y D a p h n e a n d a g a i n killed m a n y 8
Ibid. 126. J. Thurn (ed.), Ioannis Malalae Chronographia, Berlin-New York 2000. 1 adapt the translation by E. Jeffreys, M. Jeffreys and R. Scott, The Chronicle of John Malalas, Melbourne 1986, 1 2 9 - 1 3 0 . Cf. also M. Williams, The Jews Among the Greeks and Romans: A Diaspora Sourcebook, Baltimore 1998, 115. On this passage see B.J. Brooten, "The Jews of Ancient Antioch," in Chr. Kondoleon (ed.), Antioch. The Lost Ancient City, Princeton 2000, 31. Transl. Jeffreys, ibid. 218; Williams, ibid. 116. 5ia TL xovc, vexQoxig (xovov xarv 'Iou&ouarv exauoav; sxefjv yo-Q avxovq xcd xovc, t,
1 0
11
56
Jews and Blues in Late
Jews.
1 2
Antiquity
D o e s all this i m p l y that the G r e e n s w e r e J e w - h a t e r s a n d the B l u e s w e r e
not? C a m e r o n t h i n k s this is v e r y unlikely since " J e w s w e r e held in a l m o s t universal dislike a m o n g C h r i s t i a n s b y the fifth a n d sixth c e n t u r i e s , " a n d h e s u r m i s e s that " t h e B l u e s o f Z e n o ' s d a y p r o t e c t e d J e w s less out o f disinterested p h i l o - J u d a i s m t h a n s i m p l y to a n n o y the G r e e n s " ( 1 5 0 ) . H e p o i n t s o u t that stories found in the Doctrina
Jacobi
nuper baptizati
( m i d - 7 t h cent.) p r o v e that either faction m i g h t
p e r s e c u t e J e w s a n d that J e w s in turn m i g h t t a k e their r e v e n g e on either faction. T h a t is to say, " J e w s c a n h a r d l y b e r e g a r d e d as an issue that c o u l d b e c o u n t e d u p o n to divide
t h e f a c t i o n s " ( 1 5 1 ) . It s h o u l d b e a d d e d , t h o u g h , that C a m e r o n
insufficiently t a k e s into a c c o u n t that the Doctrina c o n f u s e d p e r i o d in h i s t o r y .
13
is a c o n f u s e d s o u r c e o n a v e r y
H e e m p h a s i z e s a g a i n that t h e o u t b u r s t s o f v i o l e n c e
w e r e not c a u s e d by a n t i - S e m i t i s m ; the a n t i - J e w i s h riots a n d outbursts o f v i o l e n c e w e r e a l w a y s o n l y part
o f a m o r e e n c o m p a s s i n g agitation that h a d to d o w i t h
factional h o o l i g a n i s m . " O n c e t e m p e r s w e r e lost a n d t h e v i o l e n c e h a d b e g u n , the original c a u s e m i g h t b e lost to v i e w a n d (as at A n t i o c h , a n d often e l s e w h e r e b e f o r e a n d since) the u n h a p p y J e w s found t h e m s e l v e s the v i c t i m s " ( 1 5 1 - 2 ) . Yet w e a r e left w i t h the d i s t u r b i n g fact that, for t h e m o s t part, t h e e v i d e n c e , b o t h literary a n d e p i g r a p h i c a l , s e e m s to s u g g e s t that to t h e J e w s it did m a k e a real difference w h e t h e r they sided w i t h the B l u e s or w i t h the G r e e n s , a n d that it w a s safer to b e o n the B l u e side. C a m e r o n ' s t h e o r y is s o m e w h a t unsatisfactory h e r e . T h a t t h e B l u e s p r o t e c t e d the J e w s " s i m p l y to a n n o y the G r e e n s " ( 1 5 0 ) , as h e s a y s , l e a v e s u n e x p l a i n e d w h y the J e w s sided w i t h t h e B l u e s . O n e n e e d n o t follow Patricia K a r l i n - H a y t e r
14
w h e n she s u g g e s t s that t h e J e w s h a d to side w i t h
the B l u e s b e c a u s e they, t o o , w e r e in a s e n s e an ' o r t h o d o x ' party a n d b e c a u s e b y f o l l o w i n g the less r o w d y B l u e s t h e y p l a y e d safe. T h i s is s h e e r s p e c u l a t i o n , a n d s t r a n g e r e a s o n i n g at that. E v e n so, o n e feels that C a m e r o n ' s total e x c l u s i o n o f re ligious factors h e r e h a s m a d e an e x p l a n a t i o n o f t h e J e w s - B l u e s c o n n e c t i o n m o r e difficult. M a l a l a s ' reports a b o u t consistent v i o l e n c e o f G r e e n s a g a i n s t J e w s , even before
the Greens
became
Christians,
p l a y a role h e r e . M a y b e A n d r e w S h a r f
s u g g e s t s that a n t i - J e w i s h s e n t i m e n t s did 15
is right w h e n h e s a y s that the B l u e s w e r e
u s u a l l y m u c h m o r e likely to s u p p o r t the authorities a n d that it w a s , therefore, safer for the J e w s to side w i t h t h e m .
1 2
Malalas 16.6 (p. 324 ed. Thurn). See on Blues and Greens in the Doctrina G. Dagron et V. Deroche, "Juifs et Chretiens dans l'Orient du V i l e siecle," Travaux et Memoires 11 (1991) 2 3 5 - 2 3 7 (at pp. 7 0 - 2 1 9 of this lengthy study one finds a new critical edition and French translation of the Doctrina Jacobi nuper baptizati). "Les AKTA D1A KALAPODION," Byzantion 43 (1973) 9 6 - 9 7 . A. Sharf, Byzantine Jewry from Justinian to the Fourth Crusade, London 1971, 10. 1 3
1 4
15
Jews and Blues in Late
Charlotte R o u e c h e ,
1 6
Antiquity
57
h o w e v e r , m o r e r e a s o n a b l y s u r m i s e s that it w a s partly
a m a t t e r o f c u s t o m : J e w s h a p p e n e d to h a v e a l w a y s h a d theatre or h i p p o d r o m e seats in t h e sectors c u s t o m a r i l y o c c u p i e d b y t h e B l u e s . " I n all t h e s e c a s e s w e h a v e e x a m p l e s o f p r e - e x i s t i n g g r o u p s (the b u t c h e r s , the g o l d - w o r k e r s , the J e w s , the r e s i d e n t s o f a p a r t i c u l a r a r e a ) w h o a l r e a d y h a d a tradition of sitting t o g e t h e r at s p e c t a c l e s , b e c o m i n g s u p p o r t e r s o f o n e c o l o u r or the other. F o r c e n t u r i e s the r e s i d e n t s o f cities all o v e r the e m p i r e h a d a s s e m b l e d in the theatres a n d stadia o f their cities, a n d h a d b e e n s e a t e d a c c o r d i n g to their p l a c e in society. D u r i n g t h o s e c e n t u r i e s , riots o f o n e k i n d or a n o t h e r h a d often b r o k e n o u t " ( 1 3 1 ) . S h e s u g g e s t s that loyalty to the B l u e s a n d the G r e e n s a b s o r b e d earlier f o r m s o f p a r t i s a n s h i p , and "if such loyalties w e r e adopted by pre-existing groups within the cities, this helps to explain w h y such partisanship, e s p e c i a l l y w h e n it w a s suddenly e m p i r e - w i d e , c a m e to s e e m so important and so threatening. ( . . . ) It s e e m s likely that e v e r y auditorium b e c a m e divided b e t w e e n Greens and B l u e s , and that to sit in a particular position, w h i c h m a y w e l l h a v e b e e n the traditional seat o f s o m e particular association for centuries, w a s automati cally to b e c o m e a supporter o f o n e colour or the other. ( . . . ) If w e find, for e x a m p l e , J e w s associated with B l u e s , or sail-makers associated with Greens, at more than o n e place in the empire, this might m e a n that such groups had traditionally sat in similar positions in different cities since the R o m a n period; such a hypothesis can o n l y b e proved or disproved as more inscriptions from auditoria are published"
(ibid.)
R o u e c h e ' s h y p o t h e s i s m a k e s s e n s e , a l t h o u g h it still l e a v e s u n e x p l a i n e d w h y , for e x a m p l e , w h e n riots b e t w e e n G r e e n s a n d B l u e s b r o k e out, J e w s w e r e singled out for a t t a c k s . B u t she t o u c h e s o n an i m p o r t a n t p o i n t h e r e . A s the social p s y c h o l o g i s t M u z a f e r S h e r i f has d e m o n s t r a t e d in his influential r e s e a r c h on i n t e r g r o u p r e l a t i o n s ,
17
when one has b e c o m e associated with a
certain g r o u p - b y c o i n c i d e n c e or, originally, for r e a s o n s that later d o not m a t t e r a n y m o r e - the m e r e a w a r e n e s s o f o t h e r g r o u p s w i t h i n the r a n g e o f o n e ' s d e s i g n s a l w a y s g e n e r a t e s a p r o c e s s o f c o m p a r i s o n b e t w e e n ' u s ' a n d ' t h e o t h e r s . ' In the c o u r s e o f t i m e , e v e n f u n d a m e n t a l differences b e t w e e n o n e s e l f a n d other m e m b e r s o f o n e ' s o w n g r o u p are c o m p l e t e l y o v e r r i d d e n b y the (real or p r e s u m e d ) differences b e t w e e n ' u s ' a n d t h e s e ' o t h e r s . ' E v e n great r e l i g i o u s d i s a g r e e m e n t s b e t w e e n m e m b e r s o f the s a m e g r o u p often b e c o m e c o m p l e t e l y irrelevant rather s o o n o n c e t h e o v e r r i d i n g o p p o s i t i o n to the others h a s b e c o m e the d o m i n a n t p r i n c i p l e . Fidelity to o n e ' s o w n g r o u p a n d its m e m b e r s is t h e n t h e o n l y t h i n g that m a t t e r s , a n d usually this fidelity is s t r e n g t h e n e d b y d e m o n i z a t i o n o f the o t h e r s . To b e a ' g o o d ' m e m b e r o f t h e g r o u p (e. g. G r e e n s ) " i m p l i e s b e l i e v i n g all t h e nasty qualities a n d p r a c t i c e s attributed b y o n e ' s g r o u p to the a d v e r s a r y . " 1 6
18
Ch. Roueche, Performers and Partisans at Aphrodisias in the Roman and Late Roman Periods, London 1993, 1 3 0 - 1 3 1 . See, e.g., his Group Conflict and Co-operation. Their Social Psychology, London 1967. Sherif, Group Conflict 14. 1 7
1 8
58
Jews and Blues in Late
Antiquity
It also i m p l i e s r e m a i n i n g d e a f a n d b l i n d to f a v o u r a b l e a n d c o r r e c t i n f o r m a t i o n c o n c e r n i n g t h a t adversary. It a p p e a r s that " t h e sufficient
condition
for the rise o f
h o s t i l e a n d a g g r e s s i v e d e e d s ( . . . ) a n d for the s t a n d a r d i z a t i o n o f social d i s t a n c e justified b y d e r o g a t o r y i m a g e s o f t h e o u t - g r o u p is the e x i s t e n c e o f t w o g r o u p s 19
c o m p e t i n g for g o a l s that o n l y o n e g r o u p c a n a t t a i n . " A n d c o n t a c t b e t w e e n h o s tile g r o u p s as e q u a l s in p l e a s a n t situations d o e s n o t n e c e s s a r i l y r e d u c e conflict b e t w e e n t h e m . A l m o s t a n y o n e c a n illustrate this k i n d o f p r o c e s s e s from his or her own experience.
20
A n d I w o u l d s u g g e s t that it is this k i n d o f insight from
social p s y c h o l o g y , o n l y h i n t e d at b y R o u e c h e , that c a n b e helpful in s h e d d i n g further light o n this intriguing historical p r o b l e m . A s the m o r e h o m o g e n e o u s and, for that r e a s o n , p e r h a p s m o r e easily identifiable o f the s u b g r o u p s w i t h i n t h e B l u e s , t h e J e w s c o u l d m o r e readily b e s i n g l e d out as r e p r e s e n t a t i v e s o f t h e B l u e s for a t t a c k s b y t h e G r e e n s ( w e h a v e to k e e p in m i n d that in t h e R o m a n a n d B y z a n t i n e p e r i o d s the J e w s o f the greater t o w n s a n d cities often t e n d e d to live in 21
their o w n d i s t r i c t s ) . It is clear that m u c h w o r k r e m a i n s to b e d o n e . H o p e f u l l y n e w s o u r c e s will e n a b l e us to d o that w o r k .
1 9
2 2
Sherif, Group Conflict 85 (italics his). In the village where I live, there are two brass bands, one called 'The Royal Harmony' (De Koninklijke Harmonie) and the other 'Exercise is the Mother o f Art' (Oefening Baart Kunst). Both bands comprise in equal measure an average sample of members of the village's society and they play equally well, so there are no real differences between these two groups aside from their membership of a different brass band; yet the mutual contempt and hatred is incredibly great! A s Sherif, Group Conflict 38, remarks, "derogatory images are well documented between various groups in which cultural or national differences play little or no part." See J. Starr, The Jews in the Byzantine Empire, N e w York 1939, 4 3 - 4 4 . I o w e thanks to my colleague Prof. Willem Albert Wagenaar for his advice on the psycho logical aspects of the problem discussed. 2 0
2 1
2 2
A Note on the Evil Inclination and Sexual Desire in Talmudic Literature T h e r e are s o m e factors t h a t m a k e it difficult to get a clear v i e w o f i m p o r t a n t a s p e c t s o f r a b b i n i c a n t h r o p o l o g y . F o r instance, there is as y e t n o critical edition o f t h e m o s t i m p o r t a n t literary c o r p u s o f early r a b b i n i c J u d a i s m , t h e B a b y l o n i a n T a l m u d , a n d this i m p e d e s r e s e a r c h to a c o n s i d e r a b l e d e g r e e , for w h a t solid c o n c l u s i o n s c o u l d b e b a s e d u p o n a n o t - s o l i d textual b a s i s ? A n d there is also a lack o f s y s t e m a t i c t h i n k i n g in T a l m u d i c literature, w h i c h i m p e d e s u s from d r a w i n g a c o n s i s t e n t p i c t u r e o f r a b b i n i c beliefs. It is, therefore, o n l y to a limited e x t e n t that this literature g i v e s u s a c c e s s to the ideas the r a b b i s d e v e l o p e d a b o u t 1
h u m a n k i n d . E v e n s o , it is p o s s i b l e to s k e t c h s o m e a s p e c t s o f t h e s e ideas w i t h a r e a s o n a b l e d e g r e e o f clarity, as w e will see in this short c o n t r i b u t i o n . T h e biblical c o n c e p t that h u m a n k i n d ' s f o u n d a t i o n a l distinction is that it w a s m a d e in t h e i m a g e o f G o d ( G e n . 1:27) m a d e R. A k i v a r e m a r k : " B e l o v e d (sc. to G o d ) is m a n , in that h e w a s c r e a t e d in t h e ( d i v i n e ) i m a g e ; still m o r e b e l o v e d in that it w a s m a d e k n o w n to h i m that h e w a s c r e a t e d in this i m a g e " (m.
Avoth
3 , 15). A n d A k i v a definitely w a s n o t t h e o n l y rabbi to c h e r i s h this idea. All the m o r e striking is it that the r a b b i s d e v e l o p e d the t h e o r y that a n evil inclination or i m p u l s e w a s part o f this i m a g e . T h e w i d e s p r e a d G o e t h e a n c o n c e p t o f the exist e n c e o f ' z w e i S e e l e n in m e i n e r B r u s t ' w a s g i v e n e x p r e s s i o n b y t h e early rabbis in a t h e o r y o f t w o yetsarim
('inclinations, desires, passions, drives, impulses,
b e n t s o f m i n d ' ) , n a m e l y t h e yetser ha-ra' 1
(the d e s i r e to d o e v i l ) .
ha-tov
(the d e s i r e to d o g o o d ) a n d the
yetser
2
E. Stiegman, "Rabbinic Anthropology," ANRW II 19, 2, Berlin - N e w York 1979, 4 9 3 -
495. 2
See F.C. Porter, "The Yecer Hara: A Study in the Jewish Doctrine o f Sin," in Biblical and Semitic Studies: Yale Historical and Critical Contributions to Biblical Science, N e w York 1901, 9 3 - 1 5 6 (in spite o f its outdated approach, after more than a century still the best study!); S. Schechter, Aspects of Rabbinic Theology: Major Concepts of the Talmud, N e w York 1909 (repr. 1961) 2 4 2 - 2 9 2 ; E.E. Urbach, The Sages. Their Concepts and Beliefs, Jerusalem 1975, vol. I, 4 7 1 - 4 8 3 ; G. Cohen Stuart, The Struggle in Man between Good and Evil. An Inquiry into the Origin of the Rabbinic Concept of Yetser Hara, Kampen 1984; P.W. van der Horst, "Evil Inclination," in K. van der Toorn, B. Becking and P.W van der Horst (eds.), Dictionary of Deities and Demons in the Bible, 2nd ed., Leiden - Grand Rapids 1999, 3 1 7 - 3 1 9 . In these publications one finds a wealth of references to the rabbinic sources. The long passages in b. Sukkah 5 1 b - 5 2 b , Berakhoth 6 0 b - 6 1 b , and Yoma 6 9 b - 7 0 b are among the most instructive rabbinic texts on theories about the evil inclination.
60
Evil Inclination
and Sexual Desire in Talmudic
Literature
T h i s t h e o r y m a y h a v e h a d p r e c u r s o r s in w r i t i n g s such as the p s e u d e p i g r a p h i c Testament
of Asher
3
1:3-9 a n d the Q u m r a n d o c u m e n t JQS3:13-14,
but nowhere
else d o w e find a c o m p r e h e n s i v e t h e o r y s u c h as w e h a v e it in r a b b i n i c literature. T h e n o t i o n o f t w o o p p o s i n g inclinations is a m a j o r feature o f t h e a n t h r o p o l o g y o f t h e r a b b i s . T h e y found biblical s u p p o r t for this n o t i o n in the fact that in G e n . 2:7 ( ' t h e L o r d G o d f o r m e d [wayyetser] w i t h o n e but w i t h twoyods,
m a n ' ) the v e r b ' f o r m e d ' is written n o t 4
w h i c h is u n u s u a l a n d h e n c e l o a d e d w i t h m e a n i n g : It
w a s G o d h i m s e l f w h o h a d c r e a t e d h u m a n k i n d w i t h two yetsarim, a b a d o n e (see, e . g . , b . Berakhoth
a good one and
6 1 a ; Sifre Deut. 4 5 ) . M o r e o v e r , G e n . 6:5 a n d
8:21 state explicitly that the inclination (yetser)
o f t h e h u m a n heart is c o n t i n u
ally evil (ra *), a n d it is so from its y o u t h (cf. b . Sanhedrin
9 1 b ) . F u r t h e r biblical
p a s s a g e s t a k e n into service b y the r a b b i s for this t h e o r y i n c l u d e D e u t . 6:5 ( a n d 11:13), w h e r e the H e b r e w w o r d u s e d for ' h e a r t , ' levav
instead o f lev, h a s t w o
beths, w h i c h is a g a i n t a k e n b y the rabbis as a sign that G o d c r e a t e d h u m a n k i n d w i t h t w o inclinations (see, e . g . , m . Berakhoth
5
9 : 5 ) ; a n d also G e n . 4 : 7 , D e u t . 6
3 1 : 2 1 a n d P s . 103:14 w e r e interpreted a c c o r d i n g l y . Interestingly e n o u g h , a c c o r d i n g to a m i n o r i t y o p i n i o n ( r e c o r d e d in b . Sukkah a n d Gen. Rabba
5 2 b , j . Ta'anit
2 7 : 4 ) , G o d regretted h a v i n g c r e a t e d t h e evil
III 4 , 6 6 c , 1
yetser.
E v e n t h o u g h t h e r e is s o m e d e b a t e a m o n g the r a b b i s a b o u t the m o m e n t o f the a s s o c i a t i o n o f t h e evil inclination w i t h h u m a n s ( c o n c e p t i o n , birth, the a g e o f t e n ? ) , t h e g e n e r a l n o t i o n s e e m s to b e that it a c c o m p a n i e s a p e r s o n from his or h e r earliest b e g i n n i n g s to old a g e , a n d for that r e a s o n it h a s a priority o f s o m e 13 y e a r s o v e r the g o o d inclination w h i c h m a k e s its a p p e a r a n c e o n l y at the a g e o f t h e bar mitzwah
8
or p u b e r t y . A c c o r d i n g to the r a b b i s , the g o o d inclination i n d u c e s
h u m a n k i n d to k e e p G o d ' s c o m m a n d m e n t s , b u t the evil o n e is the s o u r c e o f r e b e l lion a g a i n s t G o d . B u t it is i m p o r t a n t to a d d that the g o o d o n e n e v e r resides solely in t h e soul a n d the evil o n e o n l y in the b o d y ; the seat o f b o t h o f t h e m is t h o u g h t 9
to b e in the heart (levavl).
E v e n so the evil inclination is a n e c e s s a r y a n d e v e n
essential e l e m e n t in h u m a n life on earth in that it is also the s o u r c e o f s e x u a l
3
On which see H. Lichtenberger, Studien zum Menschenbild in Texten der Qumrangemeinde, Gottingen 1980, 1 2 3 - 1 4 2 . Other possible predecessors of the concept of two yetsarim are discussed by Porter, "The Yecer Hara" 136-156. G. F. Moore, Judaism in the First Centuries of the Christian Era, vol. I, Cambridge Mass. 1927, 4 8 4 - 5 . Also biblical passages which use the plural of the word heart, e.g. Ps. 7:10 "For the righteous God probes the hearts," were interpreted as referring to the two yetsarim. See e. g. Midrash Mis hie 12. Moore, Judaism, 1 479^180. See Schechter, Aspects, 2 8 4 - 5 ; Porter, "The Yecer Hara" 1 2 0 - 1 2 1 . Schechter, Aspects, 2 5 2 - 2 5 5 . Moore, Judaism, I 485, and, for the seat of both the good and the evil yetser in the heart, see esp. Porter, "The Yecer Hara" 110-111. Here we observe an important difference between rabbinic Judaism and patristic Christianity; see P. Brown, The Body and Society. Men, Women and Sexual Renunciation in Early Christianity, N e w York 1988. 4
5
6
7
8
9
Evil Inclination
and Sexual Desire in Talmudic
61
Literature
10
p a s s i o n a n d h e n c e o f p r o c r e a t i o n (see G e n 1 : 2 8 ) . Life w i t h o u t the d r i v i n g force o f the evil inclination w o u l d b e g o o d but it w o u l d also b e u n c r e a t i v e . F o r that r e a s o n the evil inclination will not b e e r a d i c a t e d before t h e a c c o m p l i s h m e n t o f the w o r l d to c o m e ( ' o l a m ha-ba'; Targum
Ps-Jonathan
see b . Sukkah
52a; cf. Berakhoth
17a a n d
on D e u t . 3 0 : 6 ) . " A c c o r d i n g to a l e g e n d in b . Yoma 6 9 b ,
the M e n o f t h e G r e a t S y n a g o g u e w a n t e d to kill the evil inclination, b u t t h e y w e r e w a r n e d that, if they w e r e to d o so, they w o u l d b r i n g a b o u t the e n d o f the w o r l d (cf. Gen. Rabba
9:7 q u o t e d b e l o w ) . In g e n e r a l , h o w e v e r , the evil inclina
tion is p e r c e i v e d as a threat to life a c c o r d i n g to G o d ' s will s i n c e , in addition to s e x u a l desires, the c o n c e p t also i n c l u d e s o t h e r p a s s i o n a t e i m p u l s e s , especially the p a s s i o n for w o r s h i p p i n g idols, but also anger, a g g r e s s i o n , hatred, vanity, a n d u n b r i d l e d a m b i t i o n or lust for p o w e r (e. g., b . Shabbath SifreDeut.
33).
105b; Gen. Rabba
22:6;
1 2
A s t h e o r i g i n a t o r o f sin, t h e evil inclination is h u m a n k i n d ' s g r e a t e s t a n d m o s t i m p l a c a b l e e n e m y . T h e b e s t m e a n s o f c o n t r o l l i n g this f o r m i d a b l e t e m p t e r are the p r e c e p t s o f the Torah (b. Qiddushin
3 0 b ; Si/re Deut. 4 5 ; cf. B e n Sira 2 1 : 1 1 ) .
It is therefore i n c u m b e n t u p o n b e l i e v e r s to a t t e m p t to s u b d u e it ( m . Avoth
4:1)
a n d to e x e r c i s e s e v e r e self-control w i t h t h e h e l p o f T o r a h study, prayer, a n d G o d ' s g r a c e . T h e y s h o u l d h a v e their g o o d yetser (b. Berakhoth
5a; Eccles.
Rabba
w a g e w a r a g a i n s t the evil o n e
9:7). A s t h e r a b b i s say in Avodah
Zarah
5b:
" A s l o n g as t h e y [the Israelites] o c c u p y t h e m s e l v e s w i t h s t u d y o f t h e Torah a n d w o r k s o f l o v i n g k i n d n e s s , t h e evil inclination is m a s t e r e d b y t h e m . " S c h o l a r s are e s p e c i a l l y p r o n e to s u b m i t to t h e evil yetser,
since t h e g r e a t e r the m a n the
s t r o n g e r his evil inclination, b u t s e r i o u s s t u d y o f Torah is sufficient to o v e r c o m e it (b. Sukkah
52a).
1 3
T h e evil inclination w a s s o m e t i m e s identified w i t h Satan or
t h e A n g e l o f D e a t h or a s t r a n g e g o d (e. g., b . Berakhoth Bathra
16a; j . Nedarim
4 1 b ; Exod. Rabba
61 a; Sukkah
5 2 a - b ; Bava
3 0 : 1 7 ) . In parallel p a s s a g e s S a t a n a n d
the evil i m p u l s e m a y b e i n t e r c h a n g e d , as e l s e w h e r e are evil i m p u l s e a n d s i n .
14
In this w a y it c o m e s v e r y c l o s e to the P a u l i n e c o n c e p t o f personified Sin (e. g. R o m . 7 : 1 3 - 2 5 ) . B u t in g e n e r a l the evil inclination is v i e w e d as i m p e r s o n a l a n d e q u a t e d w i t h ' t h e heart o f s t o n e ' in E z . 3 6 : 2 6 ( e . g . , Tanhuma Cant. Rabba
B : Wayyikra
12;
I 2, 4).
All this s t a n d s in r e m a r k a b l e conflict w i t h t h e fact that a c c o r d i n g to the bibli cal a c c o u n t the v e r y first w o r d s G o d s p o k e to h u m a n k i n d w e r e a c o m m a n d to 1 0
D. Boyarin, Carnal Israel. Reading Sex in Talmudic Culture, Berkeley 1993, 6 1 - 6 7 . It is obvious that angels do not have an evil inclination. More references in Porter, "The Yecer Hara" 1 3 0 - 1 3 2 . See Porter, "The Yecer Hara" 111-116; Schechter, Aspects, 2 5 0 - 2 5 2 ; L. Jacobs, The Jewish Religion: A Companion, Oxford 1995, 608. Note the chapter title "Man's victory by the grace of God over the Evil Yezer created by God" in Schechter's Aspects, 2 6 4 - 2 9 2 . For the Torah as antidote against the evil inclination see Sifre Deut. 45; b. Qiddushin 30b. See Moore, Judaism, I 4 9 2 ; Porter, "The Yecer Hara" 1 2 1 - 1 2 2 . 11
1 2
1 3
1 4
62
Evil Inclination
and Sexual Desire in Talmudic
Literature
h a v e s e x u a l i n t e r c o u r s e a n d p r o c r e a t e : " B e fruitful a n d m u l t i p l y " ( G e n . 1:28).
15
In r a b b i n i c literature this biblical ideal o f f o u n d i n g a family is fully e n d o r s e d . " N o b o d y m a y a b s t a i n from k e e p i n g the law Be fruitful M i s h n a h (Yevamot
and multiply,"
says the
6:6). R a b b i n i c dicta to the effect that the u n m a r r i e d state is
d i s a p p r o v e d o f are found f r e q u e n t l y .
16
A n d it is for this v e r y r e a s o n that m a n y
J e w s o f the first c e n t u r i e s " h a d a s e n s e that t h e y w e r e c o m m a n d e d b y G o d to d o that w h i c h G o d h i m s e l f c o n s i d e r e d s i n f u l . "
17
T h a t this is not j u s t an e x a g g e r a t e d
s t a t e m e n t b y a m o d e r n s c h o l a r is d e m o n s t r a t e d b y the fact that in the T a l m u d R e s h L a k i s h s a y s , " L e t u s a s c r i b e m e r i t to o u r a n c e s t o r s for, if t h e y h a d n o t sinned,
w e s h o u l d n o t h a v e c o m e into the w o r l d " (Avoda
here the equivalent of 'had sexual intercourse.'
18
Zara 5a). ' S i n n e d ' is
T h u s by strictly o b e y i n g the
first o f G o d ' s c o m m a n d m e n t s the Israelites s i n n e d , b e c a u s e t h e sexual d r i v e is inspired b y t h e evil inclination! It is for that r e a s o n that a n o t h e r rabbi c a n say, " H o w c a n a h u m a n b e i n g e s c a p e from the evil i m p u l s e w i t h i n h i m , w h e n the first d r o p o f s e m e n a m a n p u t s into a w o m a n is t h e evil i m p u l s e ? " (Avoth Nathan
rec. A 1 6 ) .
19
de
Rabbi
T h e t e n s i o n that is e v i d e n t h e r e is well w o r d e d b y R. A c h a
w h e n h e s a y s , c o m m e n t i n g u p o n P s . 51:5 ("I w a s b r o u g h t forth in iniquity a n d in sin did m y m o t h e r c o n c e i v e m e " ) , that in s e x u a l i n t e r c o u r s e , e v e n if o n e is t h e m o s t p i o u s a n d saintly p e r s o n , it is totally i m p o s s i b l e that o n e s h o u l d h a v e n o streak o f iniquity or sin in h i m : " D a v i d said before the H o l y o n e , b l e s s e d b e H e , ' O h L o r d o f t h e u n i v e r s e , did m y father J e s s e h a v e t h e intention o f b r i n g i n g m e into the w o r l d ? ' W h y , his intention w a s his o w n e n j o y m e n t ; the p r o o f for this is that after they h a d a c c o m p l i s h e d their d e s i r e , h e t u r n e d his face in o n e d i r e c t i o n a n d s h e t u r n e d h e r face in the o p p o s i t e direction, a n d it w a s T h o u that c a u s e d e v e r y single d r o p ( o f s e m e n ) to enter, a n d this is w h a t D a v i d m e a n t w h e n h e said, ' T h o u g h m y father a n d m y m o t h e r forsook m e , t h e L o r d did g a t h e r m e i n ' ( P s . 2 7 : 1 0 ) " (Lev. Rabba
14:5). A s B o y a r i n r e m a r k s , t h e irony that s e x u a l d e s i r e is
t h e a g e n t o f the first p o s i t i v e c o m m a n d m e n t in t h e T o r a h c o u l d n o t e s c a p e the
1 5
See for the 'Wirkungsgeschichte' of this verse J. Cohen, "Be Fertile and Increase, Fill the Earth and Master It. " The Ancient and Medieval Career of a Biblical Text, Ithaca-London 1989. According to D. Boyarin, A Radical Jew. Paul and the Politics of Identity, Berkeley 1994, 1 5 8 - 1 7 9 , it is this commandment that is referred to by Paul as 'another law' when he says in Rom. 7:23: "I see in my members another law at war with the law of my mind, making me captive to the law of sin that dwells in my members." More references in Moore, Judaism, II 119-120, and H. McArthur, "Celibacy in Judaism at the Time of Christian Beginnings," Andrews University Seminary Studies 25 (1987) 1 6 3 - 1 8 1 , esp. 1 6 4 - 1 6 8 . Cf. P.W. van der Horst, "Celibacy in Early Judaism," RB 109 (2002) 3 9 0 - 4 0 2 . Boyarin, Radical Jew, 159. So rightly Stiegman, "Rabbinic Anthropology" 516, and Boyarin, Carnal Israel,52-53, against the annotators of the Soncino translation. J. Goldin, The Fathers According to Rabbi Nathan, N e w Haven 1955, 85. Cf. also the version in ARN rec. B 30, and A.J. Saldarini, The Fathers According to Rabbi Nathan, Leiden 1975, 1 7 7 - 1 7 8 . 1 6
1 7
1 8
1 9
Evil Inclination
rabbis.
20
and Sexual Desire in Talmudic
63
Literature
S i n c e t h e sexual act is u s u a l l y a n d inevitably also p e r f o r m e d w i t h the
p u r p o s e o f satisfying p h y s i c a l d e s i r e s , r a t h e r t h a n solely w i t h t h e p u r p o s e o f b e g e t t i n g a child, sin is d u l y i n v o l v e d . T h i s intractable p r o b l e m c o u l d h a v e b e e n a v o i d e d if the rabbis h a d d e c i d e d to attribute sexual d e s i r e to the good yetser.
If
G o d c o m m a n d s h u m a n k i n d to p r o c r e a t e , n o t h i n g w o u l d b e m o r e o b v i o u s t h a n attributing t h e sexual u r g e that is the n e c e s s a r y p r e r e q u i s i t e for this p r o c r e a t i o n , to the g o o d i m p u l s e in h u m a n s . W h y , then, did t h e r a b b i s n o t d o that? T h e y did n o t d o that b e c a u s e t h e y v i e w e d sensual p l e a s u r e w i t h f u n d a m e n t a l s u s p i c i o n . F o r t h e v e r y s a m e r e a s o n w h y the G r e e k s m a d e eros into a g o d ( E r o s ) , the r a b b i s d e g r a d e d eros, in t h e s e n s e o f p a s s i o n a t e d e s i r e , to the level o f a d a n g e r o u s a n d sinful affection o r affliction. T h e o v e r w h e l m i n g a n d insatiable c h a r a c t e r o f eros i n d u c e d the G r e e k s to deify it, b e c a u s e t h e y d r e w n o s h a r p distinction b e t w e e n t h e p a s s i o n a t e d e s i r e a n d the deity w h o b r o u g h t it a b o u t . S o m e G r e e k a u t h o r s e v e n r e g a r d e d E r o s as t h e greatest o f all g o d s .
2 2
21
Deification
w a s o f c o u r s e not an o p t i o n in the J e w i s h w o r l d , b u t d e m o n i z a t i o n w a s . A s early as the b e g i n n i n g o f the first c e n t u r y C E , t h e J e w i s h w i s d o m p o e t P s e u d o P h o c y l i d e s stated it clearly: " D o not d e l i v e r y o u r s e l f w h o l l y to u n b r i d l e d eros t o w a r d s y o u r wife [or: a w o m a n ] , for eros is n o t a g o d b u t a p a s s i o n d e s t r u c t i v e o f a l l ! " ( 1 9 3 - 1 9 4 ) . It is t h e p o t e n t i a l l y d e s t r u c t i v e c h a r a c t e r o f eros as an u n b r i d l e d a n d insatiable p a s s i o n that m a d e it i m p o s s i b l e , b o t h for P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s a n d for the later r a b b i s , to v i e w it in a positive light. T h i s n a t u r e o f eros is already h i g h l i g h t e d b y the L X X translator o f Prov. 3 0 : 1 6 ( w h i c h h a s n o e q u i v a l e n t in the H e b r e w B i b l e ) , w h e r e the a u t h o r e n u m e r a t e s e x a m p l e s o f insatiability, w h i c h 23
i n c l u d e H a d e s , fire, a n d also p a s s i o n for a w o m a n , eros gynaikos.
It is this
a l m o s t d e m o n i c n a t u r e o f erotic desire that m a d e it b e c o m e t h e d o m a i n o f the evil yetser.
T h e d e m o n i c v i e w is w e l l illustrated b y t h e story a b o u t R. Eliezer
b e n H y r k a n o s in b . Nedarim
2 0 b , w h e r e his wife s a y s a b o u t h i m that w h e n h e
h a s i n t e r c o u r s e w i t h her, it is as if h e is c o m p e l l e d b y a d e m o n ; h e u n c o v e r s o n l y a n inch o f her b o d y a n d after the act h e i m m e d i a t e l y c o v e r s it a g a i n . " T h e story r e p r e s e n t s a h i g h l y n e g a t i v e attitude t o w a r d sexual p l e a s u r e . R a b b i E l i e z e r ' s b e h a v i o r as if d r i v e n b y a d e m o n a p p a r e n t l y r e p r e s e n t s his c o n v i c t i o n that h e is fulfilling an o b l i g a t i o n that s h o u l d n o t b e e n j o y e d b u t s h o u l d b e p e r f o r m e d as
2 0
Boyarin, Radical Jew 160. See P.W. van der Horst, "Eros," in DDD 3 0 4 - 3 0 6 . For evidence see P.W. van der Horst, The Sentences of Pseudo-Phocylides, Leiden 1978, 2 4 0 - 2 4 1 . There one also finds evidence of different opinions of authors w h o polemicized against this overrating o f Eros. The Greek could also be translated as 'passion of a woman;' see D.M. d'Hamonville, La Bible d'Alexandrie 17: Les Proverbes, Paris 2000, 3 0 2 - 3 0 3 . The only other occurrence o f eros in the L X X is again in Prov., in 7:18, where a prostitute addresses a young man with the words, "Come on, let us drown ourselves in passion!" The negative overtones of eros are obvious here. 2 1
2 2
2 3
64
Evil Inclination
q u i c k l y as p o s s i b l e . " the Amoraic period,
24
25
and Sexual Desire in Talmudic
But this is a rather e x t r e m e c a s e , a n d usually, certainly in the r a b b i s s t o p p e d short o f calling the evil inclination d e
m o n i c or satanic ( s o m e e x c e p t i o n s n o t w i t h s t a n d i n g ) this yetser
Literature
26
for the s i m p l e r e a s o n that
also inspired m e n a n d w o m e n to their v a r i o u s c r e a t i v e acts, i n c l u d i n g
the procreation demanded by God. It w a s for that r e a s o n that s o m e o f the r a b b i s c o u l d e v e n say that t h e w o r d s " A n d b e h o l d , it w a s v e r y g o o d " ( G e n . 1:31), s p o k e n after t h e c o m p l e t i o n o f t h e creation, refer to the evil inclination: " C a n then the evil inclination b e g o o d ? T h a t is i n c r e d i b l e ! W i t h o u t the evil inclination, h o w e v e r , n o m a n w o u l d build a h o u s e , t a k e a w i f e a n d b e g e t c h i l d r e n , or e n g a g e in t r a d e " (Gen. Rabba
9:7). A s
B o y a r i n stresses, h o w e v e r , far from b e i n g a s i m p l e l e g a c y o f its cultural h e r i t a g e , " t h e r a b b i n i c insistence on t h e p o s i t i v e v a l u e o f s e x u a l i t y s e e m s to h a v e b e e n hard won and contested."
27
If o n e a n d the s a m e p o w e r , t h e evil inclination, is t h e
d r i v i n g force b e h i n d , or the s o u r c e of, both idolatry a n d sexuality, h o w c o u l d the latter e v e r b e g o o d ? O n e c a n n o t h a v e only half o f this yetser,
w i t h o u t its n e g a t i v e
a n d d e s t r u c t i v e c o n c o m i t a n t s . If there is to b e desire at all, there is b o u n d to b e also the possibility o f illicit d e s i r e . B u t t h e d e s t r u c t i v e c o n c o m i t a n t s h a v e to b e , a n d c a n b e , c u r b e d a n d s u p p r e s s e d , a n d G o d , w h o c r e a t e d the evil yetser,
gives
h u m a n k i n d t h e m e a n s to d o so. A s part o f G o d ' s creation, w h i c h is ' v e r y g o o d ' ( G e n . 1:31), t h e ' e v i l ' inclination is ' g o o d ' as w e l l . O n e n e e d n o t resort h e r e to the forced h y p o t h e s i s o f B o y a r i n : " M y h y p o t h e s i s is that the R a b b i s inherited the t e r m ' E v i l I n s t i n c t ' from a first-century J u d a i s m m u c h m o r e a v e r s e to sexuality t h a n they w e r e , a n d u n a b l e to d i s p e n s e w i t h it, t h e y ironized t h e t e r m - ' T h e Evil Instinct is v e r y g o o d . ' "
2 8
T h e r e is n o p r o o f w h a t e v e r that the r a b b i s inherited a
t e r m that t h e y actually d i s g r e e d w i t h , on the contrary, t h e r e is clear e v i d e n c e that t h e y t h e m s e l v e s i n v e n t e d a n d c o i n e d it. It w a s their c o n c e p t o f G o d as the c r e a t o r o f h u m a n k i n d in H i s i m a g e that forbade t h e m to see in the 'evil i n c l i n a t i o n ' n o t h ing b u t evil. M o s t o f t h e a c t i o n s inspired b y this yetser
w e r e evil i n d e e d , b u t t h e
act o f p r o c r e a t i o n c o u l d not b e evil since G o d h i m s e l f c o m m a n d e d h u m a n k i n d to p e r f o r m it, albeit o n l y w i t h i n n a r r o w l y c i r c u m s c r i b e d c i r c u m s t a n c e s . T h e fact that most ( t h o u g h not all) o f t h e s e a c t i o n s are evil g a v e it its n e g a t i v e d e s i g n a tion, yetser
hara'.
B u t that d o e s not e x c l u d e the fact that it c o u l d incidentally b e
the s o u r c e o f a g o o d act, n a m e l y that o f p r o c r e a t i o n . "It is called the Evil D e s i r e solely b e c a u s e o f its d e s t r u c t i v e side, from 2 4
which
it cannot
escape,
but at the
Boyarin, Carnal Israel, 47. In some of the later rabbinic texts there is even room for a viewpoint in which sexual intercourse that does not take place for the sake of procreation is regarded in a positive light; see Boyarin, Carnal Israel, 5 3 - 5 5 . The evil inclination was sometimes identified with Satan; see above. Carnal Israel, 6 1 . Boyarin, Carnal Israel, 63. For criticism of Boyarin's position see D. Winston, "Philo and the Rabbis on Sex and the Body," in his The Ancestral Philosophy. Hellenistic Philosophy in Second Temple Judaism, ed. by G.E. Sterling, Providence 2 0 0 1 , 1 9 9 - 2 1 9 . 2 5
2 6
27
2 8
Evil Inclination
and Sexual Desire in Talmudic
Literature
65
s a m e t i m e there is full r e c o g n i t i o n not o n l y o f the necessity for d e s i r e but o f its very positive o v e r t o n e s . "
29
F o r that r e a s o n it is p o s s i b l e to w o r s h i p G o d not o n l y
w i t h o n e ' s g o o d b u t e v e n w i t h o n e ' s evil yetser,
as is said in m . Berakhoth
9:5
(on the basis o f t h e d o u b l e beth o f levav in D e u t . 6:5 a n d 11:13, ' l o v e / s e r v e the L o r d y o u r G o d w i t h all y o u r h e a r t ' ) . ' G o o d ' is h e r e i n s e p a r a b l e from ' e v i l ' since t h e y d e r i v e from o n e a n d the s a m e s o u r c e . Inevitably, in s u c h a ' d i a l e c t i c a l ' a n t h r o p o l o g y , tension a n d a m b i g u i t y r e m a i n . A s S t i e g m a n e x p r e s s e s it: " S e x u a l i t y is g o o d a n d evil, c o n s t r u c t i v e a n d d e s t r u c tive, a d u t y a n d a m i s f o r t u n e , beautiful a n d s h a m e f u l . "
30
In the s e x u a l act g o o d
a n d evil are i n e x t r i c a b l y b o u n d u p . T h e j o y f u l aspect o f it is that it is d o n e in fulfilment o f a d i v i n e c o m m a n d ; the d e p l o r a b l e a s p e c t is that it is i m p o s s i b l e to d o it w i t h o u t lust or desire. A n d it is this desire that c a n unfold its d e s t r u c t i v e a s p e c t s as w e l l . In a k i n d o f prefiguration o f the r a b b i n i c view, t h e a u t h o r o f the Testament
of Reuben
h a d said a b o u t ' t h e spirit o f p r o c r e a t i o n ' that is g i v e n to
h u m a n k i n d at creation that " w i t h it sin c o m e s in t h r o u g h f o n d n e s s for p l e a s u r e " (2:8).
31
In p r a c t i c e , h o w e v e r , love of p l e a s u r e w a s n o t a l w a y s rejected as sin
ful. E v e n in the T a l m u d w e find s o m e p a s s a g e s w h e r e n o n - r e p r o d u c t i v e sexual i n t e r c o u r s e is v i e w e d as s o m e t h i n g g o o d . F o r i n s t a n c e , sex w a s p e r m i t t e d w i t h p r e g n a n t w i v e s a n d e v e n e n c o u r a g e d w i t h m e n o p a u s a l w i v e s , a n d in s o m e c a s e s contraception was deemed permissible.
32
S o t h e reality o f life c o u l d m i t i g a t e the
r a b b i n i c p r i n c i p l e s , b u t t h e f u n d a m e n t a l t e n s i o n a n d a m b i g u i t y c a u s e d b y the r a b b i s ' p r o b l e m a t i c i d e o l o g y o f sex w a s n e v e r really r e s o l v e d .
2 9
Boyarin, Carnal Israel, 63. "Rabbinic Anthropology" 516. Cf. Philo, Spec. 3.313, on pleasure-lovers whose sexual activity resembles that of "pigs and goats in quest of the enjoyment that such intercourse gives." For references see the chapter entitled "The Legitimacy of Sexual Pleasure" in D.M. Feldman, Birth Control in Jewish Law, N e w York 1968, 8 1 - 1 0 5 . Urbach, Sages, I 478. 3 0
3 1
3 2
"His Days Shall Be One Hundred and Twenty Years" Genesis 6:3 in Early Judaism and Ancient Christianity
W h e n m a n k i n d h a d b e c o m e c o r r u p t e d in t h e p e r i o d p r e c e d i n g the flood, G o d said: " M y spirit shall n o t a b i d e in m a n for ever, for h e is flesh; his d a y s shall b e a h u n d r e d a n d t w e n t y y e a r s " ( G e n . 6:3). A n c i e n t interpreters, b o t h J e w s a n d C h r i s t i a n s , did n o t a g r e e a b o u t the interpretation o f t h e s e w o r d s . It w o u l d s e e m fitting to d i s c u s s the v a r i o u s v i e w s o f this limitation o f m a n k i n d ' s lifespan to 120 y e a r s on the o c c a s i o n o f the celebration o f o u r e s t e e m e d c o l l e a g u e A l b e r t van der H e i d e ' s 6 0 t h birthday, since h e has n o w a c h i e v e d h a l f this s p a n . O u r earliest e v i d e n c e for the interpretation o f this text is to b e found in the Septuagint ( L X X ) . T h e G r e e k translation of the P e n t a t e u c h w a s c o m p l e t e d s o m e w h e r e in t h e first h a l f o f the third c e n t u r y B C E . T h i s early B i b l e translation r e n d e r s the v e r s e as follows: " M y spirit will certainly n o t r e m a i n in t h e s e p e o p l e b e c a u s e t h e y are flesh, b u t their d a y s will b e 120 y e a r s . " I n s t e a d o f the g e n e r i c 'adam the M T , the L X X h a s 'these
p e o p l e ' a n d therefore also 'their
the d e m o n s t r a t i v e ' t h e s e ' (toutois),
of
days.' By adding
the translator m a k e s clear that he takes G o d ' s 1
t h r e a t to a p p l y o n l y to t h e e v i l d o e r s o f N o a h ' s d a y s . T h i s interpretation m o s t p r o b a b l y o w e s its origin to the fact that m a n y i n d i v i d u a l s w h o inhabited t h e earth 2
after t h e t i m e o f t h e flood are r e c o r d e d as h a v i n g lived l o n g e r than 120 y e a r s . In G e n . 7:6, N o a h is said to h a v e b e e n 6 0 0 y e a r s w h e n t h e flood b e g a n , a n d in G e n . 9:29 he dies after a life o f 9 5 0 y e a r s . M o r e o v e r , his s o n S h e m dies at 6 0 0 , a n d o t h e r s e x c e e d e d t h e 120 y e a r s as w e l l (see G e n . 11:11.13.15.17.19.21 etc.). A l s o A b r a h a m , I s a a c a n d J a c o b e x c e e d e d the lifespan o f 120 y e a r s . In D e u t . 3 4 : 7 , h o w e v e r , M o s e s dies at t h e a g e o f 120 y e a r s a n d that n u m b e r is p r o b a b l y to b e v i e w e d in t h e light o f G e n . 6 : 3 : M o s e s , the ideal m a n , is g r a n t e d t h e m a x i m u m lifespan that is p o s s i b l e for a h u m a n b e i n g after G o d ' s d e c r e e in G e n . 6 : 3 . B u t the L X X translator h a d to s o l v e a difficulty that a r o s e from the H e b r e w text as 3
it s t a n d s , so h e c o u l d n o t t a k e it at face v a l u e . In his view, " G o d w a s t a l k i n g 1
See M. Harl e.a., La Genese (La Bible d'Alexandrie, vol. 1), Paris 1986, 1 2 5 - 1 2 6 . Thus A. Kamesar, Jerome, Greek Scholarship and the Hebrew Bible. A Study of the Quaestiones Hebraicae in Genes im, Oxford 1993, 185. In the Vulgate Jerome keeps strictly to the wording o f the Hebrew text, in spite o f what he writes in his Quaestiones Hebraicae in Genesim 6:3, quoted below in the text. The Jewish Bible translator Symmachus seems to have followed the L X X here. 2
3
Genesis 6:3 in Early Judaism and Ancient
67
Christianity
o n l y a b o u t a p a r t i c u l a r g r o u p o f h u m a n s , the g e n e r a t i o n o f the f l o o d . "
4
Because
t h e y are so w i c k e d , G o d will d e s t r o y this a n t e d i l u v i a l g e n e r a t i o n at an early a g e (relatively early, that is, for t h o s e d a y s ) . F o r o u r translator, " G o d ' s w o r d s did n o t a n n o u n c e a f u n d a m e n t a l c h a n g e in h u m a n l o n g e v i t y . "
5
A s K u g e l h a s p o i n t e d out, the s a m e interpretation is also found in a n o t h e r early d o c u m e n t , the Genesis
Pesher
o f Q u m r a n , w h e r e w e read that in t h e four
h u n d r e d a n d eightieth y e a r o f N o a h ' s life G o d said: " M y spirit will n o t r e s i d e in m a n for ever. T h e i r d a y s shall b e fixed at 120 y e a r s until t h e t i m e o f the flood" (4Q252,
col. 1, 2 - 3 ) .
6
S i n c e N o a h w a s 6 0 0 ( 4 8 0 + 1 2 0 ) y e a r s w h e n the flood
b e g a n , it is clear that the 120 y e a r s are h e r e the t i m e until t h e flood. H e r e it w o u l d s e e m that t h e plural ' t h e i r ' in stead o f ' h i s ' h a s t h e s a m e function as in the L X X , a n d this limitation o f the m e a s u r e to t h e g e n e r a t i o n o f t h e flood is, m o r e o v e r , u n d e r s c o r e d b y the a d d i t i o n o f t h e w o r d s 'until the t i m e o f the flood.' T h e r e c a n b e n o d o u b t that h e r e w e h a v e a n o t h e r w i t n e s s to the e x e g e t i c a l tradition w e m e t first in t h e L X X . A l s o Jubilees interpretation.
5:8 ("their d a y s . . . " ) i m p l i e s the s a m e
7
W e n o w m a k e a b i g c h r o n o l o g i c a l j u m p in o r d e r to t a k e a look at o t h e r J e w i s h 8
B i b l e translations from (late) antiquity, the T a r g u m s . Let u s b e g i n w i t h Neofiti
1,
9
on w h i c h w e n o w h a v e t h e fine c o m m e n t a r y b y B e r n a r d G r o s s f e l d . O u r text is r e n d e r e d b y t h e m e t u r g e m a n as f o l l o w s : " N o n e o f t h e g e n e r a t i o n s yet to arise will b e j u d g e d a c c o r d i n g to t h e o r d e r o f the j u d g m e n t o f the g e n e r a t i o n o f t h e flood. B e h o l d , t h e o r d e r o f the j u d g m e n t o f t h e g e n e r a t i o n o f t h e flood h a s b e e n sealed before h i m : to b e d e s t r o y e d a n d b l o t t e d out from t h e m i d s t o f t h e w o r l d . B e h o l d , I h a v e p u t m y spirit in the s o n s o f m a n b e c a u s e t h e y are flesh a n d their d e e d s are evil. B e h o l d , I h a v e g i v e n t h e s p a n o f 120 y e a r s (in t h e h o p e that) p e r h a p s t h e y m i g h t d o r e p e n t a n c e , b u t they h a v e n o t d o n e s o . "
1 0
T h e train o f
t h o u g h t in this ' t r a n s l a t i o n ' s e e m s to b e as f o l l o w s : N e v e r a g a i n will G o d j u d g e future g e n e r a t i o n s in the s a m e w a y as the g e n e r a t i o n o f the flood. G o d i m p l a n t e d
4
J. L. Kugel, Traditions of the Bible. A Guide to the Bible As It Was at the Start of the Common Era, Cambridge ( M A ) - London 1998, 184. Kugel, Traditions 183. See J. Maier, Die Qumran-Essener: Die Texte vom Toten Meer II, Miinchen-Basel 1995, 194 with n. 284, and esp. F. Garcia Martinez, "Interpretations of the Flood in the Dead Sea Scrolls," in F. Garcia Martinez & G.P. Luttikhuizen (eds.), Interpretations of the Flood, Leiden 1999, 8 6 - 1 0 8 , esp. 99 ff. with extensive bibliography at 100 nn. 3 6 - 3 7 . Also J.L. Trafton, "Com mentary on Genesis A," in J.H. Charlesworth e.a. (eds.), The Dead Sea Scrolls, vol. VIB: Pesharim, Other Commentaries, and Related Documents, Tubingen-Louisville 2002, 2 0 7 - 2 0 9 . See J.T.A.G.M. Ruiten, "The Interpretation of the Flood Story in the Book of Jubilees," in Garcia Martinez & Luttikhuizen (eds.), Interpretations 83. For the dating o f the Targums to the Torah see U. GleBmer, Einleitung in die Targume zum Pentateuch, Tubingen 1995, passim. B. Grossfeld, Targum Neofiti I: An Exegetical Commentary to Genesis, N e w York 2000. Translation by M. McNamara, Targum Neofiti I: Genesis (The Aramaic Bible 1A), Edinburgh 1992, 72. 5
6
7
8
9
1 0
68
Genesis 6:3 in Early Judaism and Ancient
Christianity
his spirit in m a n k i n d in o r d e r that t h e y m i g h t d o g o o d , b u t since t h e y are also flesh, their d e e d s are evil. F o r that r e a s o n G o d g a v e m a n k i n d 120 y e a r s , so that t h e y m i g h t repent, b u t t h e y d i d n ' t . It has to b e p o i n t e d out that the w o r d s a b o u t the g i v i n g o f a s p a n o f 120 y e a r s p r o b a b l y h a v e to b e u n d e r s t o o d as an e x t e n sion, in v i e w o f t h e fact that in the other t a r g u m i m this is explicitly indicated b y the w o r d 'rk' ( e x t e n s i o n ) . T h u s T a r g u m P s e u d o - J o n a t h a n h a s : "I g a v e t h e m an e x t e n s i o n o f 120 y e a r s that they m i g h t repent, b u t t h e y h a v e n o t d o n e s o . "
1 1
T h e F r a g m e n t T a r g u m h a s : "I g a v e t h e m a n e x t e n s i o n o f 120 y e a r s so that t h e y m i g h t d o r e p e n t a n c e , but they h a v e n o t d o n e s o . "
1 2
And Targum Onkelos reads:
" L e t an e x t e n s i o n b e g r a n t e d to t h e m for 120 y e a r s to see if t h e y will r e p e n t . " F i n a l l y w e also r e a d in a m i d r a s h i c w o r k , Mekhilta
deR. Ishmael,
13
Beshallach
5 (p. 3 8 b ) : " F o r y o u g a v e an e x t e n s i o n to the g e n e r a t i o n o f t h e flood that they m i g h t repent, b u t t h e y did not repent, as it is said, ' M y spirit shall not a b i d e in m a n . ' " M a n k i n d h a d b e e n g i v e n b y G o d an extra o p p o r t u n i t y to repent, b u t t h e y did n o t profit from this ' G n a d e n z e i t . '
1 4
F r o m the r a b b i s w e n o w g o b a c k to earlier J e w i s h interpreters. P h i l o o f A l e x a n d r i a , w h o b a s e d his e x e g e s i s u p o n the L X X , r e m a r k s that the 120 y e a r s ' limit w a s m e a n t for N o a h ' s c o n t e m p o r a r i e s : " W h y shall ' t h e d a y s o f m a n b e 120 y e a r s ' ? B y this n u m b e r (Scripture) s e e m s to limit h u m a n life. ( . . . ) B u t p e r h a p s 120 y e a r s a r e not t h e universal limit o f h u m a n life, b u t o n l y o f t h e m e n living at that t i m e , w h o w e r e later to perish in the flood after so great a n u m b e r o f y e a r s , w h i c h a b e n e v o l e n t b e n e f a c t o r p r o l o n g e d , a l l o w i n g r e p e n t a n c e for s i n " (Quaestiones
et solutiones
in Genesim
I 91).
1 5
H e r e w e see the r a b b i n i c inter
p r e t a t i o n b e i n g anticipated. B u t h a l f a c e n t u r y after P h i l o , the J e w i s h historian F l a v i u s J o s e p h u s r e n d e r s o u r p a s s a g e as follows: " G o d l o v e d this m a n [ N o a h ] b e c a u s e o f his r i g h t e o u s n e s s , but did not c o n d e m n the o t h e r s a l o n e for their w i c k e d n e s s , it also s e e m e d b e s t to h i m to d e s t r o y all h u m a n i t y , as m a n y as there w e r e at that t i m e , a n d to create a n o t h e r r a c e free o f k n a v e r y , cutting short their lives a n d e s t a b l i s h i n g their life e x p e c t a n c y not as f o r m e r l y b u t at 120 y e a r s " (Antiquitates
Judaicae
I 75).
1 6
It is clear that J o s e p h u s interpreted G e n . 6:3 as
m e a n i n g that t h e h u m a n lifespan h a d b e e n r e d u c e d b y G o d to 120 y e a r s for ever, n o t j u s t for N o a h ' s g e n e r a t i o n . A n d h e w a s certainly n o t a l o n e in that view. 11
Translation by M. Maher, Targum Pseudo-Jonathan: Genesis (The Aramaic Bible IB), Edinburgh 1992, 38. M. Klein, The Fragment Targums of the Pentateuch, vol. 2, Rome 1980, 10. A. Sperber, The Bible in Aramaic, vol. 1, Leiden 1992, 9. References to other passages with this motif can be found in R. Le Deaut, Targum du Pentateuque I: Genese, Paris 1978, 114, and in L. Ginzberg, The Legends of the Jews, vol. 5, Philadelphia 1925, 174 n. 19. One might add Avoth deR. Nathan (A) 32 and Bereshit Rabba X X V I 6. Ch. Mercier (ed.), Quaestiones et solutiones in Genesim I (Les oeuvres de Philon d'Alexandrie 3 4 A ) , Paris 1979, 165-171 Translation by L.H. Feldman, Flavius Josephus, vol. 3: Judaean Antiquities 1-4, Leiden 2000, 2 8 - 2 9 . 1 2
1 3
1 4
15
1 6
Genesis 6:3 in Early Judaism and Ancient
69
Christianity
H i s c o n t e m p o r a r y , the a n o n y m o u s a u t h o r o f the Liber Antiquitatum
Biblicarum
c o m m o n l y called P s e u d o - P h i l o , m a k e s clear h e w a s o f the s a m e o p i n i o n w h e n h e w r i t e s that the L o r d said to P i n c h a s : " B e h o l d y o u h a v e p a s s e d the 120 y e a r s that h a v e b e e n e s t a b l i s h e d for e v e r y m a n " (LAB 4 8 , 1 ) .
1 7
O f course Josephus and
others w i t h the s a m e o p i n i o n w e r e a w a r e o f the p r o b l e m that after t h e flood so m a n y p e r s o n s lived m u c h l o n g e r t h a n 120 y e a r s . T h e i r solution w a s different, h o w e v e r . E l s e w h e r e J o s e p h u s s a y s that A b r a h a m ' s father Terah d i e d at the a g e o f 2 0 5 : " F o r a l r e a d y the life e x p e c t a n c y w a s b e i n g s h o r t e n e d a n d w a s b e c o m i n g briefer until the birth o f M o s e s , after w h o m G o d set the limit o f life at 120 y e a r s , the n u m b e r that M o s e s also h a p p e n e d to l i v e " (Ant. Jud. I 152). To p u t it in other w o r d s : G o d ' s d e c r e e to curtail h u m a n life to 120 y e a r s w a s carried out in stages. O n l y w h e n M o s e s a p p e a r e d on t h e s c e n e w a s it definitive: after M o s e s n o o n e e v e r got o l d e r t h a n 120. T h i s l e a v e s r o o m for t h e m a n y biblical p e r s o n s b e t w e e n N o a h a n d M o s e s w h o e x c e e d e d this limit. A g a i n a ' G n a d e n z e i t ' !
1 8
L e t u s finally look v e r y briefly at c o m p a r a b l e m a t e r i a l from early Christian s o u r c e s . Julius A f r i c a n u s , a C h r i s t i a n c h r o n o g r a p h e r w h o w a s b o r n in J e r u s a l e m a b o u t 160 C E , w r i t e s that G o d d e c i d e d to d e s t r o y m a n k i n d a n d that m a n k i n d ' s life w o u l d n e v e r a g a i n e x c e e d 120 y e a r s . H e then a d d s that o n e s h o u l d not s e e a p r o b l e m in t h e fact that after that d e c r e e p e o p l e lived on for a c o n s i d e r a b l e t i m e , for the s i n n e r s o f that g e n e r a t i o n w e r e all 2 0 y e a r s old a n d t h e flood took p l a c e 100 y e a r s after G o d ' s d e c r e e . S o t h e y did n o t e x c e e d t h e limit (fragm. 7 as q u o t e d b y S y n c e l l u s , Ecloga
chronographica
38, pp. 2 1 - 2 Mosshammer).
A f r i c a n u s u n f o r t u n a t e l y d o e s not a d d r e s s the p r o b l e m o f the m a n y p e o p l e w h o lived l o n g e r than 120 y e a r s after the flood. T h e C h u r c h F a t h e r J e r o m e , w h o lived for m a n y y e a r s in B e t h l e h e m , d o e s not a g r e e , for h e w r i t e s : " L e s t G o d m i g h t s e e m to b e cruel o n t h e g r o u n d s that h e h a d n o t g i v e n a p l a c e of r e p e n t a n c e for s i n n e r s , h e a d d e d : ' B u t their d a y s shall b e 120 y e a r s . ' T h i s m e a n s t h e y shall h a v e 120 y e a r s to d o p e n a n c e . S o h u m a n life is not s h o r t e n e d to 120 y e a r s , as m a n y m i s t a k e n l y s u p p o s e , b u t 120 y e a r s w e r e g i v e n to that g e n e r a t i o n for r e p e n t a n c e . F o r i n d e e d w e find that after t h e flood A b r a h a m lived for 175 y e a r s a n d o t h e r s m o r e t h a n 2 0 0 or 3 0 0 y e a r s " (Quaestiones 1 7
in Genesim
6:3).
19
Translation by H. Jacobson, A Commentary on Pseudo-Philo's Liber Antiquitatum Bib licarum, vol. 1, Leiden 1996, 172. In Ant. I 9 8 - 9 9 , Josephus has Noah pray that the survivors of the flood may come 'to good old age and length o f life similar to that of men previously,' and God promises 'that he would fulfill these prayers.' So it may be that, apart from the explanation offered in Ant. 1 152 quoted above in the text, Josephus also believed that the longevity after the flood was due to God's promise to fulfill Noah's prayer, albeit temporarily. I o w e this suggestion to my doctoral student, Tessel Jonquiere. Translation by C.T.R. Hayward, Saint Jerome's Hebrew Questions on Genesis, Oxford 1995, 37. I o w e the reference to Jerome to A. Louth (ed.), Ancient Christian Commentary on Scripture, Old Testament, vol. I: Genesis 1-11, Downers Grove 2 0 0 1 , 1 2 4 - 5 , w h o also quotes Ephrem's commentary on Genesis ad locum. 1 8
1 9
70
Genesis 6:3 in Early Judaism and Ancient
Christianity
A u g u s t i n e d e v o t e s a p a r a g r a p h to the p r o b l e m o f t h e 120 y e a r s in his City
of
God: " T o p a s s to G o d ' s s a y i n g that ' t h e i r d a y s will b e a 120 y e a r s , ' that is n o t to b e t a k e n as foretelling that after this m e n w o u l d n o t e x c e e d 120 y e a r s , s i n c e w e find that after t h e flood, as w e l l as before, m e n s u r p a s s e d e v e n 5 0 0 y e a r s . W e m u s t r e a l i z e that G o d said this w h e n N o a h h a d n e a r l y c o m p l e t e d 5 0 0 y e a r s , that is, h e w a s in h i s 4 8 0 t h year, w h i c h is called the 5 0 0 t h y e a r in S c r i p t u r e , in a c c o r d a n c e w i t h its g e n e r a l p r a c t i c e o f u s i n g r o u n d n u m b e r s for a total o n l y slightly less. N o w w e k n o w that the flood h a p p e n e d in the 6 0 0 t h y e a r o f N o a h ' s life, in the s e c o n d m o n t h , a n d thus the p r e d i c t i o n m e a n t that m e n w h o w e r e g o i n g to p e r i s h w o u l d live 120 y e a r s m o r e , a n d at the e n d o f that p e r i o d t h e y w o u l d b e w i p e d out b y t h e flood" (Civ. Dei X V 2 4 ) .
2 0
E v e n from t h e s e few e x a m p l e s it b e c o m e s clear that in C h r i s t i a n s o u r c e s w e find the s a m e variety o f interpretation as in the J e w i s h m a t e r i a l . T h i s is n o t o n l y b e c a u s e the C h r i s t i a n s c h o l a r s h a d to face the s a m e interpretational p r o b l e m s as t h e J e w s , b u t also b e c a u s e s o m e o f t h e m w e r e i n f o r m e d a b o u t t h e s o l u t i o n s p r o p o s e d b y their J e w i s h c o n t e m p o r a r i e s . A f r i c a n u s a n d J e r o m e c e r t a i n l y h a d g a i n e d k n o w l e d g e o f J e w i s h biblical interpretation d u r i n g their l o n g l a s t i n g s o j o u r n s in t h e H o l y L a n d .
2 0
21
Translation by H. Bettenson, Augustine: Concerning the City of God, Harmondsworth 1972, 642. Further references to Christian writers can be found in Ginzberg, Legends V 174. See, e.g., the evidence collected in W. Adler, Time Immemorial. Archaic History and its Sources in Christian Chronography from Julius Africanus to George Syncellus, Washington 1989, and A. Kamesar, Jerome, Greek Scholarship and the Hebrew Bible. A Study of the Quaestiones Hebraicae in Genesim, Oxford 1993. 2 1
Inscriptiones Judaicae Orientis A Review
1
Article
T h e s p e e d o f r e c e n t d e v e l o p m e n t s in t h e s c h o l a r l y s t u d y o f e a r l y J e w i s h e p i g r a p h y is h i g h . W h e n I p u b l i s h e d m y i n t r o d u c t i o n to t h e s t u d y o f J e w i s h i n s c r i p t i o n s 2
in 1 9 9 1 , 1 c o u l d m e n t i o n a s t h e s o u r c e s at o u r d i s p o s a l o n l y t h e o u t d a t e d c o l 3
lection by Frey ( C I J ) , and partial collections such as that of the inscriptions of 4
R o m e b y L e o n , of Beth S h e ' a r i m b y Mazar, S c h w a b e , Lifshitz, and Avigad, 6
5
of
7
E g y p t by L e w i s , of the C y r e n a i c a by Liideritz, and of the rest of N o r t h Africa 8
by Le B o h e c . Further there w e r e of course a large n u m b e r of articles with p u b l i c a t i o n s o f i n s c r i p t i o n s s c a t t e r e d o v e r a v e r y w i d e v a r i e t y o f j o u r n a l s in m a n y l a n g u a g e s . N o w , o n l y 13 y e a r s later, t h e s i t u a t i o n h a s i m p r o v e d d r a m a t i c a l l y . In 1 9 9 2 W i l l i a m H o r b u r y a n d D a v i d N o y p u b l i s h e d t h e i r Jewish tions
of Graeco-Roman
o f his Jewish
1
Inscriptions
9
Egypt;
Inscrip
in 1 9 9 3 N o y a l o n e p u b l i s h e d t h e first v o l u m e
of Western
Europe
I: Italy
(excluding
the
City
of
The books reviewed here are the three volumes of the series Inscriptiones Judaicae Orien tis: Vol. I, Eastern Europe, Texts and Studies in Ancient Judaism (TSAJ) 101, edd. David Noy, Alexander Panayotov & Hanswulf Bloedhorn, Tubingen: Mohr Siebeck, 2004; xvi+398 pp. (ISBN 3 - 1 6 - 1 4 8 1 8 9 - 5 ) ; Vol. II: Kleinasien, TSAJ 9 9 , ed. Walter Ameling, Tubingen: Mohr Siebeck, 2004; xviii+650 pp. (ISBN 3 - 1 6 - 1 4 8 1 9 6 - 8 ) ; Vol. Ill: Syria and Cyprus, TSAJ 102, edd. David N o y & Hanswulf Bloedhorn, Tubingen: Mohr Siebeck, 2004; xvi+284 pp. (ISBN 3-16-148188-7). Pieter W. van der Horst, Ancient Jewish Epitaphs: An Introductory Survey of a Millennium of Jewish Funerary Epigraphy (300 BCE-700 CE), Kampen 1991. J.-B. Frey, Corpus Inscriptionum Judaicarum. Recueil des inscriptions juives qui vont du Hie siecle avant Jesus-Christ au Vile siecle de notre ere, 2 vols., Rome 1 9 3 6 - 1 9 5 2 . This work will be referred to as CIJ. Vol. 1 w a s reprinted in 1975 by Baruch Lifshitz, w h o wrote a very extensive Prolegomenon in which he proposed a considerable number o f corrections and additions. H.J. Leon, The Jews of Ancient Rome, Philadelphia 1960, 2 6 3 - 3 4 6 . T h i s work w a s re printed with addenda et corrigenda by C. Osiek, Peabody 1995. B. Mazar, Beth She'arim 1, Jerusalem 1973; M. Schwabe - B. Lifshitz, Beth She'arim II, 1974; N . Avigad, Beth She'arim III, 1976. D.M. Lewis in an Appendix to V. A. Tcherikover - A. Fuks - M. Stern, Corpus Papyrorum Judaicarum, 3 vols., Cambridge (Mass.) 1 9 5 7 - 1 9 6 4 , vol. Ill, 1 3 8 - 1 6 6 . G. Liideritz, Corpus judischer Zeugnisse aus der Cyrenaica, Wiesbaden 1983. Y. le Bohec, "Inscriptions juives et judai'santes de l'Afrique Romaine," Antiquites Africaines 1 7 ( 1 9 8 1 ) 1 6 5 - 2 0 7 . Cambridge 1992. See my review in JSJ 25 (1994) 3 2 0 - 3 2 3 . Abbr. JIGRE. 2
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
72
Inscriptiones
Rome),
0
Spain
Inscriptions
and Gaul? of Western
State of Israel? Inscriptions
Orientis
a n d in 1995 the s e c o n d v o l u m e a p p e a r e d as n
Europe
II: The City of Rome.
R a h m a n i p u b l i s h e d his A Catalogue 2
Judaicae
of Jewish
Ossuaries
in the Collections
In 1999 E. L e i g h G i b s o n p u b l i s h e d The Jewish
of the Bosporus
1
Kingdom} '
Jewish
In the s a m e p e r i o d L.Y. of the
Manumission
A l s o in 1999, E. M i r a n d a p u b l i s h e d
t h e J e w i s h i n s c r i p t i o n s o f t h e J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y in P h r y g i a n H i e r a p o l i s .
14
A n d in 2 0 0 1 J o h n Kroll finally p u b l i s h e d t h e G r e e k inscriptions o f t h e S a r d i s s y n a g o g u e in HTR (they w e r e found s o m e 4 0 y e a r s b e f o r e ) .
15
A n d there w a s o f
c o u r s e the usual h o s t o f m i n o r p u b l i c a t i o n s in v a r i o u s j o u r n a l s .
1 6
T h e zenith o f
this e p i g r a p h i c activity, h o w e v e r , w a s r e a c h e d in 2 0 0 4 , w h e n t h e l o n g a w a i t e d three v o l u m e s o f the Inscriptiones published simultaneously.
17
Judaicae
Orientis
(henceforth IJudO)
were
It is t h e s e n e w v o l u m e s that will b e t h e focus o f the
rest o f this article. L e t m e b e g i n b y stating that the n a m e o f D a v i d N o y n o w a p p e a r s on t h e title p a g e o f n o less than 5 v o l u m e s w i t h J e w i s h i n s c r i p t i o n s , in 2 c a s e s as the o n l y n a m e , in 3 c a s e s c o m b i n e d w i t h o n e or t w o o t h e r s . N o y h a s b e e n the d r i v i n g force b e h i n d this w h o l e enterprise for a l o n g t i m e a n d h e m a y rightfully b e r e g a r d e d as the ' F r e y ' o f o u r d a y s , a l t h o u g h the quality o f his w o r k s u r p a s s e s that o f Frey. After h a v i n g c o v e r e d ( S o u t h - ) W e s t e r n E u r o p e in the earlier v o l u m e s m e n t i o n e d a b o v e , h e h a s n o w t u r n e d to t h e E a s t e r n part o f the c o n t i n e n t . T h e great e x t e n t o f the p r o g r e s s m a d e since F r e y c a n b e easily g a u g e d w h e n w e see that, o f the r o u g h l y 5 4 0 inscriptions p u b l i s h e d in IJudO,
s o m e 3 1 0 w e r e not to b e
found in the old CIJ, i. e., an i m p r e s s i v e i n c r e a s e o f a l m o s t 6 0 % ! In vol. 1 N o y c.s. c o v e r a n c i e n t P a n n o n i a , D a l m a t i a , M o e s i a , T h r a c e , M a c e d o n i a , T h e s s a l y , A t t i c a , the rest o f the G r e e k m a i n l a n d , the G r e e k islands (but not C y p r u s ) , C r e t e , 1 0
Cambridge 1993. See my review mJTSn.s. 45 (1994) 7 0 1 - 7 0 4 . Abbr. JIWE I. Cambridge 1995. See my review in JTS n.s. 47 (1996) 256-259.Abbr. JIWE II. Jerusalem 1994. Tubingen 1999. See also Appendix 3 (Inscriptions from the Bosporan Kingdom) in I. Levinskaya, The Book of Acts in Its First-Century Setting, vol. 5: Diaspora Setting, Grand Rapids - Carlisle 1996, 2 2 8 - 2 4 6 . E. Miranda, "La comunita giudaica di Hierapolis di Frigia," Epigraphica Anatolica 31 (1999)109-156. John H. Kroll, "The Greek Inscriptions of the Sardis Synagogue," HTR 94 (2001) 5 - 1 2 7 . See my discussion of this publication in "De synagoge van Sardis en haar inscripties," in my Joden in de Grieks-Romeinse wereld, Zoetermeer 2 0 0 3 , 4 0 - 4 9 [in English translation elsewhere in this volume]. For short surveys see M. H. Williams, "Jewish Inscriptions of the Graeco-Roman Period - An Update," Bulletin of Judaeo-Greek Studies 33 ( 2 0 0 3 - 2 0 0 4 ) 40^16. For the importance of epigraphical material for the study of ancient Judaism in general see M.H. Williams, "The Contribution of Jewish Inscriptions to the Study of Judaism," in W. Horbury e.a. (eds.), The Cambridge History of Judaism, vol. Ill: The Early Roman Period, Cambridge 1999, 7 5 - 9 3 . It may be added here that there is now also a new, third edition o f the authoritative Guide de I 'epigraphiste, edd. F. Berard et alii, Paris 2000, but unfortunately it is very weak on Jewish epigraphy. See note 1. 11
1 2
1 3
1 4
1 5
1 6
17
Inscriptiones
Judaicae
Orientis
73
a n d t h e N o r t h coast o f the B l a c k Sea. T o b e fair, it s h o u l d b e a d d e d i m m e d i a t e l y that m u c h o f the w o r k for this v o l u m e h a s b e e n d o n e b y A l e x a n d e r P a n a y o t o v and, to a lesser d e g r e e , H a n s w u l f B l o e d h o r n - N o y is m a i n l y r e s p o n s i b l e for the s e c t i o n s on P a n n o n i a a n d the B l a c k Sea, b u t h e h a s c o n t r i b u t e d c o n s i d e r a b l y to the s e c t i o n s c o v e r e d by t h e t w o other s c h o l a r s . N o y briefly m e n t i o n s t h e criteria for inclusion ( h o w to tell a J e w i s h from a n o n - J e w i s h inscription): (i) t h e u s e o f H e b r e w ; (ii) the u s e o f specifically J e w i s h s y m b o l s ; (iii) the use o f J e w i s h t e r m i n o l o g y or d e s i g n a t i o n s ; (iv) the u s e o f d i s tinctively J e w i s h n a m e s , in c o n t e x t s w h e r e their u s e d o e s n o t s e e m m o r e likely to b e C h r i s t i a n than J e w i s h ; (v) p r o v e n a n c e from a s y n a g o g u e ; (vi) reference to f a m o u s J e w s ; (vii) reference to S a m a r i t a n s ; (viii) s o m e B o s p o r a n m a n u m i s s i o n s h a v e b e e n i n c l u d e d b e c a u s e o f their similarity to J e w i s h m a n u m i s s i o n s from the a r e a a n d the lack o f i n d i c a t i o n that they are n o t J e w i s h . It is clear that s o m e o f t h e s e criteria are m o r e d e c i s i v e than o t h e r s . Criteria (i), (ii), (iii), and (v) are o b v i o u s l y the m o s t u n a m b i g u o u s a n d c a n stand on their o w n . A s to the u s e o f J e w i s h n a m e s (iv), the criterion o f " c o n t e x t s w h e r e their u s e d o e s not s e e m m o r e likely to b e Christian than J e w i s h " is, h o w e v e r , m u c h m o r e slippery, a n d it is for that r e a s o n that I h a v e a d v o c a t e d the position that this criterion s h o u l d n e v e r b e used in isolation b u t a l w a y s in c o m b i n a t i o n w i t h o n e o f the m o r e solid criteria in o r d e r to b e on t h e safe s i d e .
18
S i n c e N o y c.s. d o not follow this a d v i c e ,
t h e y i n c l u d e quite a n u m b e r o f v e r y d u b i o u s c a s e s ( e . g . , M a c l 4 a n d M a c l 6 are included only because of the occurrence of the names Benjamin and Abraham, w h i c h w e r e u s e d b y C h r i s t i a n s as w e l l , a n d there is n o c o n t e x t s u g g e s t i n g J e w i s h n e s s ; cf. also A c h l 5 ) . R e f e r e n c e s to f a m o u s J e w s (vi) m a y also o c c u r in inscriptions that are n o n - J e w i s h , b u t it is r e a s o n a b l e a n d useful to i n c l u d e t h e m . R e f e r e n c e to S a m a r i t a n s (vii) is to b e w e l c o m e d as a criterion s i n c e there is n o c o r p u s o f S a m a r i t a n i n s c r i p t i o n s , a n d there p r o b a b l y c o u l d n o t b e o n e since so often S a m a r i t a n inscriptions a r e i m p o s s i b l e to distinguish from J e w i s h o n e s ,
1 9
a n d for t h e s a k e o f c o m p l e t e n e s s they s h o u l d b e i n c l u d e d . T h e p r o b l e m h e r e is, h o w e v e r , that quite often it is i m p o s s i b l e to tell a S a m a r i t a n from a ' S a m a r i a n , ' /'. e., a ( n o n - S a m a r i t a n ) n a t i v e from S a m a r i a (see further b e l o w ) . T h e inclusion o f inscribed S a m a r i t a n a m u l e t s is m o s t w e l c o m e (e. g. A c h 5 0 ) . T h a t s o m e n o n explicitly J e w i s h B o s p o r a n m a n u m i s s i o n inscriptions w e r e i n c l u d e d as well is r e a s o n a b l e , e v e n t h o u g h t h e lack o f c o m p l e t e certainty a b o u t their J e w i s h n e s s h a s to b e k e p t in m i n d .
18
Ancient Jewish Epitaphs 1 6 - 1 8 . See also the cautions by R.S. Kraemer, "Jewish Tuna and Christian Fish: Identifying Religious Affiliation in Epigraphic Sources," HTR 84 (1991) 141-162. See the discussion of this problem in my "Samaritans at Rome?" in my book Japheth in the Tents of Shem: Studies on Jewish Hellenism in Antiquity, Leuven 2 0 0 2 , 2 5 7 - 2 5 8 . On the absence of a corpus of Samaritan inscriptions see also my "The Samaritan Languages of the Pre-Islamic Period," ibid. 2 3 6 - 2 3 7 . 1 9
74
Inscriptiones
Judaicae
Orientis
It is striking that, w h e r e a s N o y d e v o t e s less than o n e p a g e o f his Preface to the p r o b l e m o f t h e criteria for i n c l u s i o n ,
20
Walter A m e l i n g , t h e sole e d i t o r o f
IJudO
II ( A s i a M i n o r ) , d e v o t e s a c h a p t e r o f 14 p a g e s to it ( 8 - 2 1 ) . A m e l i n g b e g i n s w i t h a s u r v e y o f a n c i e n t d e b a t e s o v e r ' w h o is a J e w ? ' T h e e v e r shifting b o r d e r s o f J u d a i s m a c c o r d i n g to the different interpretations o f its v a r i o u s g r o u p s are a s o u r c e o f m u c h u n c e r t a i n t y in this matter. H e then first lists five criteria for J e w i s h n e s s w h i c h identify an inscription certainly as J e w i s h : (i) T h e identification o f p e r s o n s as Ioudaioi;
A m e l i n g rightly rejects t h e g e o g r a p h i c a l ( p e r s o n from
J u d a e a ) a n d t h e o n o m a s t i c (Ioudaios tion o f J e w i s h realia,
as p r o p e r n a m e ) interpretation, (ii) M e n
such as J e w i s h feasts, their H o l y S c r i p t u r e s , s y n a g o g u e s ,
etc. H e r e , h o w e v e r , o n e s h o u l d n o t rule out the possibility that J e w i s h - C h r i s t i a n g r o u p s c o u l d refer to the s a m e realia.
(iii) P r o v e n a n c e from u n q u e s t i o n a b l y
J e w i s h b u i l d i n g s such as s y n a g o g u e s or e x c l u s i v e l y J e w i s h c a t a c o m b s ( s u c h as B e t h S h e ' a r i m ) . (iv) O c c u r r e n c e o f J e w i s h s y m b o l s such as m e n o r a h , lulav, e t h r o g , shofar etc. A m e l i n g d o e s c o n c e d e , h o w e v e r , that s o m e t i m e s C h r i s t i a n s u s e d s o m e o f t h e s e s y m b o l s , (v) T h e u s e of H e b r e w , w h i c h w a s the s a c r e d l a n g u a g e o f n o n e b u t the J e w s . A s w e see, t w o o f t h e s e criteria a r e less than 1 0 0 % certain indicators of J e w i s h n e s s ,
21
so they m i g h t p e r h a p s better h a v e b e e n
i n c l u d e d in the f o l l o w i n g list, w h e r e A m e l i n g m e n t i o n s four a d d i t i o n a l criteria o f a m o r e d i s p u t e d n a t u r e , (vi) P r o p e r n a m e s are a h a r d - t o - u s e criterion, as is t h e d e s i g n a t i o n ' G o d f e a r e r s ' (theosebeis,
w h i c h c a n also m e a n ' p i o u s ' ) .
2 2
also rightly rejects the inclusion o f w o r s h i p p e r s o f t h e Theos Hypsistos, g r e a t t h e J e w i s h influence m a y h a v e b e e n in this c a s e .
2 3
Ameling however
(vii) Biblical a n d p o s t -
biblical J e w i s h e x p r e s s i o n s w h i c h m a y also h a v e b e e n u s e d b y n o n - J e w s , (viii) M a g i c a l f o r m u l a e , w h i c h often c o n t a i n m a n y J e w i s h e l e m e n t s b u t n e e d not b e o f J e w i s h o r i g i n for that r e a s o n ( A m e l i n g r e l e g a t e s the magika Finally (ix) t h e few S a m a r i t a n inscriptions, n o n - J e w i s h stricto
to a n A p p e n d i x ) . sensu,
b u t for
t u n a t e l y i n c l u d e d b y A m e l i n g as w e l l . In g e n e r a l it s h o u l d b e said that N o y ' s ( a n d P a n a y o t o v ' s a n d B l o e d h o r n ' s ) s y s t e m o f n u m b e r i n g the i n s c r i p t i o n s b y p r o v i n c e ( P a n 1-5, A c h 1 - 7 5 , C r e 1-3) instead o f n u m b e r i n g t h e m t h r o u g h (as A m e l i n g d o e s for A s i a M i n o r , 1 - 2 5 8 ) , is u n f o r t u n a t e y e t c o n v e n i e n t : R e f e r r i n g to a J e w i s h inscription as IJudO
I A c h 52 is c u m b e r s o m e a n d u n w i e l d y , but, o n
the o t h e r h a n d , w h e n n e w m a t e r i a l c r o p s u p , it c a n m o r e easily b e inserted into the existent c o l l e c t i o n s b y n u m b e r i n g it in this w a y . All entries follow the s a m e 2 0
This is of course to avoid repetition of what he had already said in his previous volumes (JIGRE and JIWE 1+2), but there the discussions are very brief as well. Ameling calls them 'zweifelsfrei' (13), but that is an overstatement. But one might of course ask: why include Godfearers when they were not Jews but only pagan sympathizers with Judaism? A catalogue of the inscriptions pertaining to the cult of Theos Hypsistos is to be found in S. Mitchell, "The Cult of Theos Hypsistos Between Pagans, Jews, and Christians," in P. Athanassiadi & M. Frede (eds.), Pagan Monotheism in Late Antiquity, Oxford 1999, 8 1 - 1 4 8 , esp. 1 2 8 - 1 4 7 . 2 1
2 2
2 3
Inscriptiones
Judaicae
75
Orientis
format: E d i t i o n s are listed in c h r o n o l o g i c a l order, f o l l o w e d b y o t h e r b i b l i o g r a p h y a n d i n f o r m a t i o n a b o u t the p l a c e w h e r e t h e inscription w a s found, its p r e s e n t w h e r e a b o u t s , details o f the material (stone, m a r b l e , b r o n z e etc.) a n d the lettering, l a n g u a g e a n d d a t e . T h e n follows t h e text, w i t h critical a p p a r a t u s , a c c o m p a n i e d b y a translation; finally t h e r e are line b y line c o m m e n t s . M a n y entries contain d r a w i n g s or p h o t o s o f the i n s c r i p t i o n s . B r i e f historical i n f o r m a t i o n is p r o v i d e d on m a j o r sites a n d cities. A s far as t h e i n d i v i d u a l inscriptions are c o n c e r n e d , I h a v e to restrict m y s e l f to o n l y a few short o b s e r v a t i o n s on a v e r y limited n u m b e r o f t e x t s . P a n l + 2
2 4
(from
H u n g a r i a ) a n d D a l 2 are g o o d e x a m p l e s o f t h e interesting p h e n o m e n o n o f a m i x ture o f Latin a n d G r e e k (with the Latin w r i t t e n partly in G r e e k letters) that w e see m o r e often in J e w i s h i n s c r i p t i o n s ( w e also find H e b r e w i n s c r i p t i o n s in G r e e k 25
l e t t e r s ) . It is interesting that in P a n 2 w e find a h u m a n i m a g e o n the t o m b s t o n e to w h i c h later on, secondarily, t h e J e w i s h e p i t a p h s w e r e a d d e d a n d a p p a r e n t l y the p r e s e n c e o f h u m a n i m a g e s w a s not felt to b e a p r o b l e m (4th cent. C E ) . D a l 4 is d e s c r i b e d as a n e p i t a p h o f a S a m a r i t a n , b u t the s t o n e h a s o n l y [....]reitissa, w h i c h is read as Samareitissa.
N o t o n l y is that r e a d i n g u n c e r t a i n , there is also
n o t h i n g that identifies t h e d e c e a s e d w o m a n as a S a m a r i t a n , e v e n t h o u g h the editors c l a i m that there is " n o t h i n g i n c o n s i s t e n t with h e r b e i n g a S a m a r i t a n b y r e l i g i o n " ( 2 8 ) . T h e r e is, m o r e o v e r , n o o t h e r e v i d e n c e o f S a m a r i t a n p r e s e n c e in Y u g o s l a v i a ( a l t h o u g h it c a n n o t b e ruled o u t a l t o g e t h e r ) . A n c i e n t t e r m i n o l o g y for ' S a m a r i a n s , ' n a t i v e s o f S a m a r i a ( w h e t h e r J e w s or C h r i s t i a n s or G r e e k s or P h o e n i c i a n s ) , is not differentiated from that for S a m a r i t a n s b y religion ( C 7 V 5 1 3 Samaritai
ten threskeian
[ S a m a r i t a n s b y faith] is the o n l y e x c e p t i o n ) .
26
S o , for
i n s t a n c e , in t h e c a s e o f A c h 3 5 , the e p i t a p h o f A m m i a S a m a r i t i s , the editors h a v e to c o n c e d e that "it is not clear w h e t h e r A m m i a w a s a S a m a r i t a n by religion or a n a t i v e o f S a m a r i a " ( 1 6 0 ) ; a n d the s a m e a p p l i e s to A c h 3 6 - 3 7 , 41 (all are from A t h e n s ) . In the d i s c u s s i o n o f M a c 1, t h e f a m o u s P o l y c h a r m u s inscription from the s y n a g o g u e at Stobi, w e learn that in r e c e n t y e a r s m o r e inscriptions h a v e b e e n d i s c o v e r e d at the site, w h i c h will b e p u b l i s h e d b y J a m e s W i s e m a n . I find it v e r y r e g r e t t a b l e that t h e s e n e w inscriptions c o u l d not b e i n c l u d e d in
IJudO.
T w o fascinating a n d r e c e n t l y found M a c e d o n i a n e p i t a p h s from t h e 4th c e n t u r y C E (Mac8 and M a c 9 ) mention a "Theodosios the Hebrew,
mellopresbyteros,
t h r e e y e a r s old ( ? ) " a n d a " G e r a s (or: an old m a n ) , m o s t r e n o w n e d in h y m n s o f the H e b r e w s . " L e a v i n g a s i d e the fact that it r e m a i n s u n c l e a r w h y Hebraios
2 4
is
Panl means the first inscription in the section on Pannonia. Dal stands for Dalmatia, Cre for Crete, B S for Black Sea area, Ach for Greece (mainland and islands) etc. See my Ancient Jewish Epitaphs 3 2 - 3 4 . See my "The Samaritan Diaspora in Antiquity," in my Essays on the Jewish World of Early Christianity, Freiburg-Gottingen 1990, 137. 2 5
2 6
76
Inscriptiones
preferred here (and e l s e w h e r e )
27
Judaicae
to Ioudaios,
h e r e the first attestation o f mellopresbyteros,
Orientis
it s h o u l d b e n o t i c e d that w e h a v e ' p r e s b y t e r - t o - b e , ' a p e r s o n w h o is
g o i n g to h o l d t h e office o f Elder. If the r e a d i n g trietou
is correct, the d e s i g n a t e d
p r e s b y t e r w a s o n l y three y e a r s old so that w e h a v e a n i c e parallel to t h e larchon
2 8
b o t h from R o m e . 1 d i s a g r e e w i t h the e d i t o r s ' interpretation o f hymnois,
mel-
o f 2 y e a r s (JIWE II 100) a n d the 8-years-old child archon (JIWE II 2 8 8 ) , propherestatos
w h i c h t h e y t a k e to m e a n that " t h e d e c e a s e d p e r s o n w a s p r a i s e d ( i . e .
c o m m e m o r a t e d ) in h y m n s " ( 8 5 ) . ' M o s t e x c e l l e n t in h y m n s ' certainly m u s t m e a n h e r e that the d e c e a s e d w a s an e x c e p t i o n a l l y a b l e cantor
in the s y n a g o g u e
s e r v i c e s . T h e c o u n t e r - a r g u m e n t s a d d u c e d are u n c o n v i n c i n g (see IJudO P e e k , GV642
I 85;
is n o parallel). C o u l d ' h y m n s o f t h e H e b r e w s ' p e r h a p s i m p l y the
( u n l i k e l y ) possibility that G e r a s c o n d u c t e d the liturgy in H e b r e w ? Interesting is also the n e w c a s e o f a J e w i s h scholastikos,
a l a w y e r or r h e t o
rician, a n d e v i d e n c e for i n t e r m a r r i a g e , b o t h from L a r i s s a ( A c h 5 a n d A c h 6 ) , w h e r e w e also find the c u r i o u s g r o u p o f ' f a r e w e l l - t o - t h e - p e o p l e ' i n s c r i p t i o n s (toi laoi chairein,
A c h 1-4, 8 - 1 4 ) . Q u i t e e x t r a o r d i n a r y too is the m a n u m i s s i o n
inscription A c h 4 5 from O r o p o s , in w h i c h the (to-be-freed) slave M o s c h u s calls h i m s e l f a J e w b u t at the s a m e t i m e states that in a d r e a m the G r e e k h e a l i n g g o d s A m p h i a r a u s a n d H y g i e i a a p p e a r e d to h i m a n d c o m m a n d e d h i m to set u p a stele by t h e altar, w h i c h h e o b e d i e n t l y did. T h e t r a n s l a t i o n o f A c h 5 8 (from A e g i n a ) o b s c u r e s t h e fact that t h e d o n o r h e r e s p e a k s in t h e first p e r s o n (not " T h e o d o r u s b u i l t . . . " but "I, Theodorus, b u i l t . . . " ) .
2 9
In t h e c h a p t e r o n D e l o s , the five T h e o s
H y p s i s t o s inscriptions found in w h a t is often a s s u m e d to b e the local s y n a g o g u e h a v e b e e n i n c l u d e d as A c h 6 0 - 6 4 , a q u e s t i o n a b l e d e c i s i o n since n e i t h e r the p r e cise n a t u r e o f t h e b u i l d i n g n o r the r e l a t i o n s h i p b e t w e e n J u d a i s m a n d t h e cult o f T h e o s H y p s i s t o s c a n b e d e t e r m i n e d w i t h a n y certainty, h o w e v e r m u c h ink h a s b e e n spilt o v e r t h e s e q u e s t i o n s . W h e t h e r the d e d i c a t o r s w e r e J e w s or not r e m a i n s an o p e n q u e s t i o n , as t h e editors t h e m s e l v e s c o n c e d e ( 2 2 7 ) . T h e s e (and other) i n s c r i p t i o n s m i g h t better h a v e b e e n r e l e g a t e d to a n A p p e n d i x w i t h dubia.
In this
s a m e chapter, a g a i n , the t w o v e r y i m p o r t a n t S a m a r i t a n inscriptions from D e l o s are dealt w i t h at length ( A c h 6 6 - 6 7 ) , b u t A c h 6 8 on t h e S a m a r i a n i m m i g r a n t (Praulos
Samareus)
w h o c o n t r i b u t e d to the t e m p l e o f S a r a p i s o n D e l o s s h o u l d
h a v e b e e n e x c l u d e d ; there is n o t h i n g J e w i s h or e v e n S a m a r i t a n a b o u t this m a n (as the e d i t o r s t h e m s e l v e s c o n c e d e at p . 2 3 4 ) . F a s c i n a t i n g are t w o n e w i n s c r i p tions (with menoroth) 2 7
from G r a m m a t a B a y at t h e island o f S y r o s , o n e w i t h a
Sec G. Harvey, "Synagogues o f the Hebrews: Good Jews in the Diaspora," in S. Jones & S. Pearce (eds.), Jewish Local Patriotism and Self-Identification in the Graeco-Roman period, Sheffield 1998, 1 3 2 - 1 4 7 , w h o collects the epigraphic evidence and concludes that the term Hebrew "consistently carries associations with piety, traditionalism and conservatism" (145). See also IJudO III 113-114. For more instances and discussion of this phenomenon see my Ancient Jewish Epitaphs 89-90. One finds the same error in IJudO 140 (nr. 27). 2 8
2 9
Inscriptiones
Judaicae
11
Orientis
p r a y e r for a safe sea v o y a g e for " E u n o m i o s a n d all his c r e w " ( A c h 7 2 ) , t h e o t h e r w i t h t h a n k s g i v i n g s after a safe return ( A c h 7 3 ) . C r e 2 , an e p i t a p h J o s e p h m a d e for his wife B e r e n i k e , is a n e w l y d i s c o v e r e d C r e t a n inscription that s h o u l d n o w b e 3 0
a d d e d to the d o s s i e r I p u b l i s h e d in 1 9 8 8 . 1 w o n d e r w h y the inscription in Inscr. Cret. IV 5 0 9 , m e n t i o n i n g a M o s e s (5th cent. C E ) , w h i c h in itself c o u l d o f c o u r s e b e C h r i s t i a n , is r e l e g a t e d to t h e a p p e n d i x w i t h n o n - J e w i s h i n s c r i p t i o n s , in v i e w o f the fact that t h e n a m e o f M o s e s is n o w k n o w n to h a v e b e e n less r a r e a m o n g a n c i e n t J e w s t h a n h a s l o n g b e e n a s s u m e d (see, e. g., A c h 3 0 , in spite o f IJudO p . 1 5 3 ; also IJudO
II 2 4 0 from C o r y c o s ) .
31
I,
A l s o Inscr. Cret. II 8 a n d others w i t h
n a m e s such as S a n b a t h i s , O b a d i a etc. m i g h t h a v e b e e n m e n t i o n e d here a n d then relegated to the c a t e g o r y dubia.
T h e y m a y all b e C h r i s t i a n b u t w e s i m p l y d o
n o t k n o w for sure. In o t h e r c a s e s t h e editors d o retain s u c h d u b i o u s c a s e s in the m a i n c o r p u s , b u t t h e s e h a v e b e e n put into the c a t e g o r y ' n o t c o n s i d e r e d J e w i s h ' (see A p p 2 0 - 2 1 ) . T h e section o n t h e N o r t h c o a s t o f the B l a c k S e a [BS] c o n t a i n s 2 8 i t e m s , m a n y o f t h e m m a n u m i s s i o n i n s c r i p t i o n s from the B o s p o r a n k i n g d o m , 16 o f w h i c h h a d also b e e n p u b l i s h e d in 1999 b y G i b s o n .
3 2
In legal form, t h e s e are entirely G r e e k
( w i t h c l o s e parallels in the p a g a n m a n u m i s s i o n inscriptions from D e l p h i ) . T h e s e often b a d l y d a m a g e d i n s c r i p t i o n s w i t h their m a n y interpretative p r o b l e m s
3 3
are
d i s c u s s e d in rather great detail, a n d c o m p e t e n t l y , b y N o y . In B S 1 6 w e find the spelling chithe (xi-Or)) for keitai (xeixai), a variant (with all four letters w r o n g ) that c a n n o w b e a d d e d to the 19 (!) different s p e l l i n g s o f that w o r d I listed in 1 9 9 1 .
3 4
M o s t interesting a n d c o n t r o v e r s i a l is B S 2 0 , an inscription w i t h t h e m a n u m i s s i o n o f t h e female slave C h r y s a in 41 C E , w h i c h b e g i n s w i t h an i n v o c a t i o n o f T h e o s H y p s i s t o s , t h e n m e n t i o n s t h e m a n u m i s s i o n in the s y n a g o g u e (proseuche),
and
c o n c l u d e s w i t h an i n v o c a t i o n o f Z e u s , G e , a n d H e l i o s as o v e r s e e r s o f the a g r e e m e n t . N o y s u m s u p t h e d e b a t e as follows: " T h e m o s t likely e x p l a n a t i o n is that, a l t h o u g h the m a n u m i s s i o n t o o k p l a c e in the p r a y e r - h o u s e , the f r e e d w o m a n w a s not p u t u n d e r an o b l i g a t i o n to it in the w a y that o t h e r e x - s l a v e s w e r e ; t h e p r o t e c tion o f p a g a n g o d s is therefore for her benefit a n d irrelevant to t h e J e w i s h n e s s o f t h e m a n u m i t t o r " ( 3 0 7 ) . A r e m a r k a b l y latitudinarian v i e w o f r e l i g i o u s loyalty is u n d e n i a b l e in this i n s c r i p t i o n .
3 0
35
T h e r e are t w o A p p e n d i c e s , o n e c o n t a i n i n g
"The Jews of Ancient Crete," JJS 39 (1988) 1 8 3 - 2 0 0 , reprinted in my Essays on the World 1 4 8 - 1 6 5 [in abbreviated form also elsewhere in this volume]. See T. Derda, "Did the Jews Use the Name of Moses in Antiquity?," ZPE 115 (1997) 2 5 7 - 2 6 0 ; convincingly against Derda now M. Williams, "Jewish U s e o f M o s e s as a Personal Name in Antiquity," ZPE 118 (1997) 274, and idem, "The case for Jewish U s e o f Moses as a Personal Name in Graeco-Roman Antiquity," ZPE 140 (2002) 2 7 9 - 2 8 3 . See note 13. A m o n g which the famous 'exception clause,' choris thopeias kaiproskartereseds. Ancient Jewish Epitaphs 26 note 2 1 . Note that in A c h 4 4 from Delphi the slave-owner Ioudaios took part in a fictitious sale to Apollo.
Jewish 3 1
3 2
3 3
3 4
3 5
78
Inscriptiones
Judaicae
Orientis
p r o b a b l y m e d i e v a l inscriptions (all b u t o n e in H e b r e w ) , the o t h e r w i t h t w o d o z e n or so inscriptions n o t c o n s i d e r e d J e w i s h ( h e r e w e also find t h e t w o C r e t a n e p i t a p h s m e n t i o n e d a b o v e ) . A s h a s a l r e a d y b e e n said, I w o u l d h a v e w e l c o m e d a n o t h e r A p p e n d i x w i t h the dubia. After t h e b i b l i o g r a p h y a n d c o n c o r d a n c e (with CIJ),
v o l . I c o n c l u d e s w i t h v e r y useful i n d e x e s g i v i n g detailed information
a b o u t t h e t y p e s o f inscription, the l a n g u a g e s , p r o v e n a n c e , n a m e s , i n d i c a t i o n s o f a g e at d e a t h , v o c a b u l a r y o f r e l a t i o n s h i p s , e p i t h e t s , o c c u p a t i o n s , p l a c e - n a m e s a n d e t h n i c s , t e r m s i n d i c a t i n g J e w s etc., p r a y e r s a n d b l e s s i n g s , c u r s e s , biblical q u o t a t i o n s , d a t e s , s y m b o l s , t e r m s for t o m b s et multa cetera.
The value of these
indexes can hardly be exaggerated. I n o w p r o c e e d to vol. I l l , Syria a n d C y p r u s , e d i t e d as w e l l b y N o y a n d B l o e d h o r n , leaving A m e l i n g ' s v o l u m e to b e r e v i e w e d after the t w o N o y v o l u m e s . Syria ( i n c l u d i n g P h o e n i c i a ) t a k e s u p the b u l k o f this v o l u m e w i t h its m o r e t h a n 130 i n s c r i p t i o n s , a b o u t t w i c e as m a n y as CIJ h a d .
3 6
T h e collection o f the texts a n d
b i b l i o g r a p h i e s w a s d o n e b y B l o e d h o r n ; N o y w r o t e the e x e g e t i c a l c o m m e n t a r i e s . C y p r u s y i e l d s 8 inscriptions. In m y f o r t h c o m i n g s t u d y o f the J e w s o n a n c i e n t 3 7
C y p r u s 1 deal w i t h o n l y 6, the difference r e s i d i n g m a i n l y in t h e fact that
IJudO
i n c l u d e s t h r e e P h o e n i c i a n inscriptions from as early as t h e 4th c e n t u r y B C E ( C y p 6 - 8 ) w h i c h s e e m to c o n t a i n Yahwistic n a m e s . I d i s a g r e e w i t h the r e m a r k that " J e w s are unlikely to h a v e built s y n a g o g u e s in C y p r u s before the 3rd c e n t u r y C E " ( 2 2 0 ) , s i n c e A c t s 13:5 testifies that in S a l a m i s , the m a i n city on t h e east c o a s t o f the island, there w e r e several s y n a g o g u e s as early as t h e m i d d l e o f t h e first c e n t u r y C E . M o s t interesting is C y p 3 ( 4 t h - 5 t h cent.) w h e r e w e find a u n i q u e u s e o f t h e e x p r e s s i o n he hebraike munity. A s to S y r i a ,
38
for either the s y n a g o g u e b u i l d i n g or the c o m
the editors are t o o o p t i m i s t i c a b o u t S a m a r i t a n p r e s e n c e in
Tyre. S u c h a p r e s e n c e is in a n d o f itself quite p o s s i b l e , e v e n p r o b a b l e , b u t t w o inscriptions m e n t i o n i n g Samaritai
( S y r 3 , 11) w i t h o u t g i v i n g u s a n y clue w h e t h e r
t h e s e w e r e S a m a r i a n s or S a m a r i t a n s d o n o t p r o v e a n y t h i n g o f t h e sort; n e i t h e r d o e s an a m u l e t in S a m a r i t a n H e b r e w ( S y r 6 ) since S a m a r i t a n a m u l e t s w e r e often b o u g h t a n d u s e d b y n o n - S a m a r i t a n s , i n c l u d i n g C h r i s t i a n s ( S y r 6 c o m e s from a t o m b in the Christian n e c r o p o l i s ) . Interpreting these three inscriptions in the light o f e a c h o t h e r is u n w a r r a n t e d from a m e t h o d o l o g i c a l p o i n t o f view. E v e n so, w e h a v e to w e l c o m e the inclusion o f this material. A n o t h e r helpful feature is the sys t e m a t i c inclusion o f inscriptions from e l s e w h e r e p e r t a i n i n g to J e w s o f a certain p l a c e in Syria. H e r e , for instance, the e p i t a p h s for Tyrian J e w s b u r i e d in B e t h
3 6
This progress is o f course mainly due to the big strides taken in the project Inscriptions grecques et latines de la Syrie ( 1 9 2 9 - . . . . ) . Zutot 2003 (Perspectives on Jewish Culture 3), Dordrecht 2 0 0 4 [now also elsewhere in this volume]. The inscriptions of Syrian Jewry have recently also been collected by Lea Roth-Gerson in her book The Jews of Syria in the Light of the Greek Inscriptions, Jerusalem 2001 [in Hebrew, non vidi]. 37
3 8
Inscriptiones
Judaicae
79
Orientis
S h e ' a r i m a n d J e r u s a l e m ( S y r 5 - 8 ) h a v e b e e n included (cf. S y r l 7 - 1 9 , 2 5 - 2 6 , 3 2 , 5 1 - 5 2 : p e o p l e from S i d o n , Beirut, B y b l o s , a n d P a l m y r a w h o s e e p i t a p h s w e r e found in B e t h S h e ' a r i m ) . F a s c i n a t i n g is t h e n e w inscription from the circus o f Tyre ( S y r 10), from the section r e s e r v e d for t h e faction o f t h e B l u e s , indicating the seat for a J e w i s h w o m a n , M a t r o n a t h e purple-fisher. F o r a d i s c u s s i o n o f the b a c k g r o u n d o f this v a r i o u s l y attested c o n n e c t i o n b e t w e e n J e w s a n d B l u e s I h a v e to refer the r e a d e r to m y r e c e n t l y p u b l i s h e d s t u d y o f that s u b j e c t .
39
It is v e r y
helpful to h a v e p u t t o g e t h e r h e r e all o f the t w e n t y G r e e k d o n o r inscriptions from t h e s y n a g o g u e o f A p a m e a w i t h a g o o d c o m m e n t a r y ( S y r 5 3 - 7 2 ) , s i n c e they yield v a l u a b l e information a b o u t the social situation o f the J e w s in that city in t h e t i m e that J o h n C h r y s o s t o m d e l i v e r e d his n o t o r i o u s l y a n t i - J e w i s h s e r m o n s in S y r i a n Antioch. hazzan
40
S y r 5 8 is interesting in that it m e n t i o n s an azzana
or s e r v a n t (not yet c a n t o r ! )
41
(in G r e e k letters), a
o f the s y n a g o g u e called N e h e m i a , b y w h o s e
t e r m o f office t h e d o n a t i o n a n d inscription are dated, w h i c h is h i g h l y u n u s u a l . It is a m a z i n g a n d instructive to see h o w m a n y w o m e n there are a m o n g the d o n o r s to this rich s y n a g o g u e ( S y r 6 1 - 7 1 e x c e p t S y r 7 0 ) . T h e r e are s o m e fifty J e w i s h inscriptions from D u r a - E u r o p o s , the city on the b o r d e r w i t h the P e r s i a n E m p i r e that h a d an e x c e p t i o n a l l y d e c o r a t e d s y n a g o g u e w i t h f a m o u s w a l l p a i n t i n g s from the m i d d l e of t h e 3rd c e n t u r y C E . T h e s e in scriptions are in G r e e k , H e b r e w , a n d A r a m a i c , b u t there are a l s o s o m e t w e n t y in M i d d l e P e r s i a n . M o s t o f t h e inscriptions a n d graffiti d e r i v e from the a n c i e n t s y n a g o g u e . T h e Iranian inscriptions are all o f t h e m dipinti w r i t t e n o n the w a l l p a i n t i n g s o f this s y n a g o g u e .
42
T h e y are an e n i g m a t i c g r o u p , e s p e c i a l l y b e c a u s e
they are c o n c e n t r a t e d on t w o o f the m a n y p a n e l s o f the p a i n t i n g s ; the rest are in A r a m a i c . T h e A r a m a i c graffiti briefly e x p l a i n the p a i n t e d s c e n e s , b u t the P e r s i a n o n e s u s u a l l y d o not, t h e y r a t h e r look like graffiti i n s c r i b e d b y visitors (only P e r s i a n n a m e s are m e n t i o n e d ) , a l t h o u g h there a r e s o m e b r i e f r e m a r k s on the p a i n t i n g s (e. g., N a n d N " l i k e d this p i c t u r e " ) . W e r e the scribblers p a g a n Persian tourists w h o c a m e to see t h e frescoes b e c a u s e of their g r e a t r e p u t a t i o n ? O r w e r e they Iranian J e w s w h o h a d a b s o r b e d m u c h o f Persian culture ( e v e n to the p o i n t o f m e n t i o n i n g ' g o d s ' in the plural ( S y r l 2 1 , 1 2 4 - 5 ) ? O r w e r e they Persian ' G o d f e a r e r s ' ( p a g a n s y m p a t h i z e r s w i t h J u d a i s m ) ? A r e the graffiti s i g n s o f the t e m p o r a r y
3 9
"Jews and Blues in Late Antiquity," in D. Accorinti & P. Chuvin (edd.), Des Geants a Dionysos. Melanges de mythologie et de poesie grecques offerts a Francis Vian, Alessandria 2003, 5 6 5 - 5 7 2 [elsewhere in this volume]. See my "Jews and Christians in Antioch at the End o f the Fourth Century," in my Japheth in the Tents of Shem 109-118. Epiphanius, Panarion 30.11 explains that azanitai is the term used by Jews for diakonoi and in the inscription Syr58 azzana is explained as diakonos. The Persian graffiti are presented according to the reconstructions by Geiger but the editors unfortunately fail to mention any publication by Geiger in their bibliography. It is: B. Geiger, 'The Middle Iranian Texts,' in C.H. Kraeling, The Excavations at Dura-Europos VIII, 1: The Synagogue, N e w Haven 1956, 2 8 3 - 3 1 7 . 4 0
4 1
4 2
80
Inscriptiones
Judaicae
Orientis
o c c u p a t i o n o f D u r a in 2 5 3 C E (all of t h e m d a t e from this y e a r ) , shortly before the P e r s i a n s c o n q u e r e d a n d d e s t r o y e d the city in 2 5 6 ? A n d there are m a n y m o r e q u e s t i o n s , to w h i c h w e s i m p l y d o not k n o w t h e a n s w e r s . I, for o n e , g u e s s that t h e possibility t h a t t h e s e graffiti are J e w i s h is s m a l l . E v e n s o , it is v e r y g o o d to h a v e all t h e D u r a material g a t h e r e d t o g e t h e r in this v o l u m e . T h e r e are t h r e e A p p e n d i c e s : o n e w i t h the J e w i s h i n s c r i p t i o n s in P a l m y r e n e A r a m a i c from the L a n d o f Israel, all o f t h e m e p i t a p h s o f P a l m y r e n e J e w s b u r i e d in B e t h S h e ' a r i m a n d in J e r u s a l e m ; o n e w i t h J e w i s h inscriptions w r o n g l y related to S y r i a ( m a i n l y t h e J e r u s a l e m inscription w i t h t h e w o r d Beroutos, c o n s i d e r e d to m e a n not ' f r o m B e i r u t ' b u t ' [ s o n ] o f B e r o u s ' ) ;
4 3
w h i c h is n o w
a n d o n e w i t h 16
i n s c r i p t i o n s not c o n s i d e r e d J e w i s h a n y m o r e . A s a m a t t e r of fact, m o s t i n s c r i p t i o n s in t h e latter c a t e g o r y s h o u l d b e classified as dubia,
a n d m o r e c a s e s in this
v o l u m e c o u l d h a v e b e e n i n c l u d e d . T h e u s u a l a n d useful i n d e x e s follow, w i t h slight a d j u s t m e n t o f t h e c a t e g o r i e s . V o l u m e II o f IJudO
c o v e r s A s i a M i n o r a n d is t h e o n l y o f the t h r e e v o l u m e s
that is t h e p r o d u c t o f the efforts o f a single scholar, Walter A m e l i n g (professor o f A n c i e n t H i s t o r y in J e n a ) . M o r e o v e r , it is b y far the m o s t v o l u m i n o u s o f t h e three w i t h its 6 5 0 p a g e s . It is a w o r k that d e s e r v e s to b e h i g h l y p r a i s e d for its c o m p r e h e n s i v e n e s s a n d the j u d i c i o u s n a t u r e o f its c o m m e n t a r i e s . B e c a u s e origi nally A m e l i n g ' s enterprise h a d a n i n d e p e n d e n t start, u n r e l a t e d to N o y ' s project, the format is s o m e w h a t different. T h e o t h e r v o l u m e s h a v e short i n t r o d u c t i o n s to t h e m a j o r sites w h e r e inscriptions w e r e found, b u t n o t a g e n e r a l i n t r o d u c t i o n , w h e r e a s A m e l i n g h a s a useful 3 6 - p a g e i n t r o d u c t i o n o n t h e p h e n o m e n o n o f J e w ish d i a s p o r a in antiquity ( a n d there are also i n t r o d u c t i o n s to the individual sites). H i s b o o k c o n t a i n s - unfortunately - n o c u m u l a t i v e b i b l i o g r a p h y at the e n d
4 4
and,
regrettably, also n o m a p o f A s i a M i n o r w i t h the r e l e v a n t p l a c e s indicated; a n d the i n d e x e s are a r r a n g e d in a rather different w a y a n d are u n f o r t u n a t e l y less useful t h a n t h o s e in t h e other v o l u m e s (no i n d e x o f biblical q u o t a t i o n s , o f r e l i g i o u s ter m i n o l o g y , o f funerary f o r m u l a e etc.). A s detailed a n d e l a b o r a t e d as t h e table o f c o n t e n t s is, so is t h e table o f a b b r e v i a t i o n s short a n d defective: e. g., for E n g l i s h r e a d e r s it m a y b e h a r d to find out that F O is ' F u n d o r t ' a n d A O is ' A u f b e w a h r u n g sort,' self-evident t h o u g h that m a y b e for a G e r m a n classical e p i g r a p h i s t ; t o o m a n y a b b r e v i a t i o n s r e m a i n u n e x p l a i n e d so that t h e r e a d e r h a s to b e referred to o t h e r ' A b k i i r z u n g s v e r z e i c h n i s s e . ' It w a s , h o w e v e r , a v e r y fortunate i d e a to offer t h e r e a d e r a c o m p l e t e list o f all a n c i e n t literary r e f e r e n c e s to J e w s a n d J u d a i s m in A s i a M i n o r (see A p p e n d i x I; cf. also p p . 3 2 - 3 6 ) , w h i c h are m o s t l y q u o t e d in
4 3
This is one of the group of epitaphs from the so-called 'Eros family' (4 persons are called Erotas), to which one may compare the name Venus, the daughter of rabbi Abundantius from Naples (JIWE I 36). Not many theologians or Judaic scholars will know, e. g., what is meant by "die Handbucher von Zgusta" (23), and Ameling does not make it easy to find that out (since KPN is nowhere 'aufgeschlusselt'!; it is: Kleinasiatische Personennamen). 4 4
Inscriptiones
Judaicae
Orientis
81
the original l a n g u a g e in t h e n o t e s to the m a i n text. In the i n t r o d u c t i o n , A m e l i n g e x p l a i n s that h e i n c l u d e d t h e inscriptions o f the islands C h i o s , S a m o s , K o s , a n d R h o d o s since from an a d m i n i s t r a t i v e p o i n t o f v i e w t h e s e islands before the West c o a s t o f A s i a M i n o r often f o r m e d part o f the p r o v i n c e o f A s i a (the other A e g e a n islands w e r e c o v e r e d in IJudO
I, C y p r u s in IJudO
II).
It is inevitable that in t h e c o m m e n t a r i e s o n the individual inscriptions there is a lot o f o v e r l a p w i t h the t w o o t h e r v o l u m e s as r e g a r d s the details: A g a i n the archisynagogos
a n d t h e p r e s b y t e r o i (etc.) are d i s c u s s e d at length; a g a i n the s a m e
p e r s o n a l n a m e s are dealt w i t h ; a g a i n the s a m e d e v i a t i o n s from t h e s t a n d a r d g r a m m a r are e x p l a i n e d etc. B u t that is not s o m e t h i n g to b e regretted, on the contrary, s o m e t i m e s o n e finds h e r e different a p p r o a c h e s to t h e s a m e q u e s t i o n s a n d e v e n additional i n f o r m a t i o n that s h e d s extra light o n a p r o b l e m a n d creates n e w insights. T h a t c a n be s e e n v e r y clearly in the section on T h r a c e b e c a u s e this p r o v i n c e is c o v e r e d in b o t h IJudO
I a n d in IJudO
S i n c e the m u c h d e b a t e d t e r m presbytera
II ( T h r 3 = 1 2 a n d T h r 4 = 1 3 ) .
4 5
(female elder) o c c u r s in the first of these
i n s c r i p t i o n s , o n e c a n c o m p a r e the r e s p e c t i v e c o m m e n t a r i e s , a n d A m e l i n g h a s a better d o c u m e n t e d c a s e h e r e than N o y c.s., as is also the c a s e w i t h the c o m m e n t s o n the eulogia
pasin
formula. B u t N o y is s t r o n g e r in J e w i s h o n o m a s t i c s . A v e r y
telling n e w inscription, from t h e little island of Icaria, is 5a: "It is i m p o s s i b l e that y o u will e v e r h e a r the truth from J e w s o f Icaria." T h i s 5th or 6th c e n t u r y inscription w a s found in t h e local c h u r c h ! Nr. 11, from R h o d e s , is entitled ' E i n M a n n a u s S a m a r i a ' b y A m e l i n g , a n d in his translation the m a n is a ' S a m a r i t e r ' (not: ' S a m a r i t a n e r ' ) , w i s e l y (see a b o v e ) ; all the m o r e s u r p r i s i n g is it that at nr. 2 4 (Sikimitai
in K a u n o s ) h e s e e m s to m i x up S a m a r i t a n s a n d S a m a r i a n s .
A s w a s to b e e x p e c t e d , t h e b i g g e s t c h a p t e r s in the b o o k are t h o s e d e a l i n g w i t h A p h r o d i s i a s ( 7 0 - 1 2 3 ) a n d Sardis ( 2 0 9 - 2 9 7 ) . T h e f a m o u s d o n o r inscription from A p h r o d i s i a s , w h i c h is o n e o f the m o s t r e v e a l i n g e p i g r a p h i c finds o f a r e c e n t date,
4 6
is dealt w i t h at g r e a t length a n d in d e p t h . A m e l i n g a r g u e s that the text
o n side A is u n r e l a t e d to that o n side B a n d that the inscriptions s h o u l d n o t b e d a t e d in the early 3rd c e n t u r y C E b u t in t h e late 4th or 5th. H e initially leaves u n e x p l a i n e d , h o w e v e r , w h y , if A a n d B h a v e n o t h i n g to d o w i t h e a c h other, b o t h texts are on the s a m e s t o n e , b u t later on h e a d d s the o b s e r v a t i o n that " d i e in B g e n a n n t e n Stifter lieBen ein mnema
e r b a u e n , d a s n a c h einiger Z e i t - a u s w e l c h e n
G r i i n d e n a u c h i m m e r - e r n e u e r u n g s b e d u r f t i g w a r " ( 9 0 ) . In c o n t r a s t to R e y n o l d s a n d T a n n e n b a u m , A m e l i n g t a k e s mnema
( A 8) to h a v e its u s u a l m e a n i n g o f
' t o m b ' (not ' m o n u m e n t ' or ' m e m o r i a l b u i l d i n g ' ) a n d s a y s the inscription is
4 5
This doublet is caused by the fact that initially the projects of N o y and his team and of Ameling were independent from each other. J. Reynolds & R. Tannenbaum, Jews and Godfearers at Aphrodisias, Cambridge 1987. For its significance see, e. g., my "Jews and Christians in Aphrodisias" in Essays on the Jewish World 166-181 (Ameling overlooks this study at 82 n. 50). 4 6
82
Inscriptiones
Judaicae
Orientis
a b o u t t h e f o u n d a t i o n of a collective burial p l a c e for p o o r J e w s a s o u p - k i t c h e n ) ; t h e dekania
in A 3 is not a minyan
T h e r i d d l e s o m e patellado[s]
4 7
(and not a b o u t
b u t a funeral a s s o c i a t i o n .
in A 1 is interpreted as the g e n i t i v e o f
48
patellas
( T m b i B i n h a b e r ' ) , a w o r d o n l y v e r y r e c e n t l y attested for t h e first t i m e , a n d d i s r e g a r d e d as irrelevant for t h e interpretation o f t h e inscription as a w h o l e since it is a n a d d i t i o n b y a later h a n d . O f t h e h a p a x l e g o m e n o n apenthesia
( A 6) A m e l i n g
o n l y s a y s that " d e s s e n Sinn klar ist" (89) a n d h e t r a n s l a t e s it b y ' B e f r e i u n g v o n T r a u e r ' ( 7 5 ) , b u t it is n o t i m m e d i a t e l y ' k l a r ' h o w t h e f o u n d a t i o n o f a c o l l e c tive burial site s e r v e s to further ' B e f r e i u n g v o n T r a u e r . ' A l s o less t h a n clear is A m e l i n g ' s r e m a r k o n the n a m e Prounikios, " D e r N a m e paBt z u e i n e m gnapheus'"
a cloth refiner (or fuller,
(111). Prounikos
gnapheus):
often h a s the m e a n i n g o f
' l e w d , ' b u t did cloth refiners really h a v e a r e p u t a t i o n o f e x t r a o r d i n a r y r a n d i n e s s ? B e that as it m a y , it s h o u l d b e said that A m e l i n g b r i n g s forward valid r e a s o n s to differ from R e y n o l d s ' a n d T a n n e n b a u m ' s interpretation o f this inscription. It is also interesting to see h o w he takes issue w i t h C h a r l o t t e R o u e c h e ' s interpretation o f the J e w s - B l u e s c o n n e c t i o n in A p h r o d i s i a s a n d e l s e w h e r e ( f o l l o w e d b y m e in the F S V i a n ) .
4 9
T h e five i n s c r i p t i o n s from E p h e s u s are d i s a p p o i n t i n g l y few in n u m b e r in v i e w o f t h e e n o r m o u s scale o f the e x c a v a t i o n s o f this city a n d the m a n y literary d a t a a b o u t t h e J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y t h e r e . Interesting h e r e are the t w o e p i t a p h s e n d i n g w i t h t h e w o r d s , " T h e J e w s will t a k e c a r e of this t o m b " ( 3 2 , 3 3 ) , a n d t h e C h r i s tian inscription in w h i c h a local b i s h o p s n e e r s at the " J e w i s h love o f m o n e y " {philargyria
Ioudal'ke,
3 5 ) . It is not clear to m e w h y ad nr. 3 6 , w h i c h states that
" T a t i o n d o n a t e d h e r h o u s e to the J e w s " a n d w a s for that r e a s o n h o n o u r e d b y the J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y w i t h a g o l d e n w r e a t h , A m e l i n g a s s u m e s that Tation h e r s e l f w a s J e w i s h r a t h e r than an o u t s i d e r (see 165 n o t e 7 4 ) . F r o m M i l e t u s w e h a v e t h e w e l l - k n o w n t h e a t e r seat inscription, " P l a c e o f the J e w s w h o are also (called) G o d - f e a r e r s " (nr. 3 7 ) . A m e l i n g h e r e p l e a d s against the often d e f e n d e d m e t a t h e s i s o f ton kai into kai ton (place o f the J e w s a n d t h e G o d f e a r e r s ) a n d a r g u e s t h a t theosebioi
is an h o n o r a r y adjective a p p l i e d b y the J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y o f M i l e t u s
to itself, a likely interpretation that is, h o w e v e r , n o t likely to e n d the d e b a t e . T h e e n i g m a t i c d e s i g n a t i o n hoi pote Ioudaioi
in nr. 4 0 from S m y r n a ( ' d i e v o r m a l i -
g e n J u d e n ' or ' d i e v o r m a l i g e n B e w o h n e r I u d a e a s ' etc.) r e m a i n s a n u n s o l v e d p r o b l e m ; A m e l i n g : non liquet.
A special c a s e is nr. 4 1 , a n o w lost inscription
from S m y r n a , w h i c h w a s found a n d d e s c r i b e d in the early 18th c e n t u r y b y m y
4 7
"Gegriindet wurde ein Grabbau, der alien Mitgliedern der Gemeinde offen stand" (92); ibid. Ameling refers to IJudO III 187, 223, and 244 for parallels. The interesting implication is that three proselytes and two (pagan) 'Godfearers' were members of this Jewish burial society. See my "Jews and Blues" [in this volume] and Ch. Roueche, Performers and Partisans at Aphrodisias in the Roman and Late Roman Periods, London 1993. Ameling's criticism is on pp. 115-6. 4 8
4 9
Inscriptiones
Judaicae
83
Orientis
n e a r - n a m e s a k e H e r m a n v a n d e r H o r s t ( m i n i s t e r o f the D u t c h R e f o r m e d C h u r c h in S m y r n a ! ) ,
5 0
in w h i c h E i r e n o p o i o s , s o n o f J a c o b a n d " f a t h e r o f t h e t r i b e " (tribe
= community),
51
p r o u d l y d e c l a r e s that h e h a d the floor o f t h e interior, p r o b a b l y
o f the s y n a g o g u e , r e p a i r e d a n d beautified at the cost o f 7
solidi.
A s to Sardis, w e n o w h a v e t h e s e c o n d edition in a relatively short p e r i o d o f the m a n y inscriptions from t h e giant-size s y n a g o g u e that w a s a part o f t h e great bathhouse-gymnasium complex.
5 2
A m e l i n g rightly p a y s m u c h attention to the
a r c h a e o l o g i c a l c o n t e x t in w h i c h t h e inscriptions w e r e found. In nr. 6 3 w e m e e t the priest S a m o e w h o calls h i m s e l f sophodidaskalos,
w i s d o m teacher, a hitherto
u n a t t e s t e d t e r m that m i g h t indicate that there w a s a J e w i s h s c h o o l in Sardis w h e r e Torah w a s taught (or w a s h e a sort o f G r e e k r a b b i ? ) . F o r the e n i g m a t i c reference to t h e phyle
Leontion
(the tribe o f t h e L e o n t i i , in Sardis) in nr. 6 9
Ameling does not come up with a new solution.
53
I n t e r e s t i n g is the frequent
o c c u r r e n c e in Sardis o f the f o r m u l a that d o n a t i o n s to the s y n a g o g u e w e r e d o n e ek ton tes pronoias
(from the [gifts] o f P r o v i d e n c e ) , as a v a r i a n t o f the m o r e
usual ek ton doreon
tou theou
80-85).
5 4
T h e u s e o f Pronoia
impression,
55
or ek ton tou theou dorematon
(e.g., 7 1 , 77. 78,
as a t e r m referring to G o d m a k e s a v e r y C h r i s t i a n
but here w e see it in an u n d e n i a b l y J e w i s h c o n t e x t . C u r i o u s is
the s p e a k i n g T o r a h - s h r i n e that s a y s , " T h e s a m e M e m n o n i u s , o n a c c o u n t o f his health, h a d m e , the T o r a h - s h r i n e , d e c o r a t e d w i t h m a r b l e " (nr. 1 2 9 ) . u s e d h e r e for T o r a h - s h r i n e , nomophylakion,
56
The word
o c c u r s h e r e for t h e first t i m e in this
s e n s e . T h e m o s t intriguing inscription from Sardis is, h o w e v e r , nr. 131 ( ' e i n e liturgische InschrifV), w r i t t e n on a m a r b l e p l a q u e : " W h e n y o u h a v e found (the 57
b o o k a n d ) b r o k e n (it o p e n ) , r e a d (it a n d ) o b s e r v e ( i t ) . " A m e l i n g d e m o n s t r a t e s that w i t h r e g a r d to t h e S c r i p t u r e s in early J u d a i s m a n d Christianity, t h e m u l t i p l e injunction o f t a k i n g , o p e n i n g , r e a d i n g a n d o b e y i n g h a d b e c o m e a l m o s t formu laic. F o r that r e a s o n the ' b r e a k i n g ' s h o u l d refer to the b r e a k i n g o f t h e seal o f a b o o k in o r d e r to o p e n it. " A n g e s i c h t s d e s Inhalts u n d d e r P a r a l l e l e n w i r d m a n g l a u b e n diirfen, daB sich d i e s e r Text a u f die V e r k u n d i g u n g u n d A u f n a h m e der
5 0
See my entry "Herman van der Horst" in the Biografisch Lexicon voor de Geschiedenis van het Nederlandse Protestantisme, vol. 4, Kampen 1998, 2 2 0 - 2 2 2 . Apart from stemma (tribe), one finds as designations of local Jewish communities synagoge, ethnos, laos, genos, katoikia, hebra'ike. One of the few Jewish inscriptions from outside this complex, a short Hebrew inscription, is unfortunately presented in a very garbled version; see nr. 56 at p. 216 (six letters have been rendered incorrectly). The same applies to the nrs. 1 0 5 - 1 0 8 and other Hebrew items in the volume. Especially final mem is consistently misprinted as samekh. See my discussion in "De synagoge van Sardis en haar inscripties" 47^48 [in English elsewhere in this volume]. Nr. 90 has ek ton doreon tou pantokratoros theou. See G.W.H. Lampe, Greek Patristic Lexicon, Oxford 1968, s.v. B 2 v. For 'speaking stones' see my Ancient Jewish Epitaphs 4 9 - 5 4 . Heuron klasas anagndthi phylaxon. 5 1
5 2
5 3
5 4
5 5
5 6
57
84
Inscriptiones
Judaicae
Orientis
T o r a b e z i e h t , also in i r g e n d e i n e r B e z i e h u n g z u m T o r a s c h r e i n o d e r zu e i n e m Lesepult stand" (287). O f the rest o f this rich v o l u m e I single o u t for brief m e n t i o n o n l y a few o t h e r i m p o r t a n t m a t t e r s . A m e l i n g ' s s u g g e s t i o n c o n c e r n i n g nr. 156 (from N i c o m e d i a ) , to the effect that t h e m e n t i o n o f an anagnostes
= lector ( w h i c h o c c u r s o n l y v e r y
rarely since in p r i n c i p l e e v e r y o n e c o u l d b e called u p o n to r e a d Scripture in t h e s y n a g o g u e ) m a y b e " e i n H i n w e i s a u f die n i e d r i g e A l p h a b e t i s i e r u n g s r a t e " o f t h e c o m m u n i t y m e m b e r s , is n o w confirmed b y the r e c e n t r e s e a r c h o f C a t h e r i n e Hezser.
58
T h e r e are m o r e than a d o z e n P h r y g i a n inscription c o n t a i n i n g t h e
f o r m u l a (eis)
tekna
teknon,
w h i c h h a s often b e e n c l a i m e d to b e a s h o r t h a n d
r e f e r e n c e to E x o d . 3 4 : 7 , b u t A m e l i n g sides w i t h J . H . M . S t r u b b e in rejecting this c l a i m since t h e formula o c c u r s also o u t s i d e a J e w i s h ( i . e . , in a p a g a n ) c o n t e x t ; so t h e s e i n s c r i p t i o n s are n o w e x c l u d e d from the c o r p u s . F o r a similar r e a s o n , b u t n o w b e c a u s e t h e r e are Christian parallels, inscriptions c o n t a i n i n g t h e so-called ' E u m e n e i a n f o r m u l a ' (estai autoipros
ton theon = h e will h a v e to r e c k o n w i t h ,
or: a n s w e r to, G o d ; a n d variants) h a v e b e e n e x c l u d e d as w e l l , u n l e s s there are o t h e r i n d i c a t i o n s o f J e w i s h n e s s . It w o u l d p e r h a p s h a v e b e e n better to i n c l u d e t h e m in an a p p e n d i x w i t h dubia. Nr. 180, t h e e p i t a p h o f D e b o r a h from A n t i o c h , is m e t r i c a l (disticha, h e x a m e t e r s a n d p e n t a m e t e r s in alternation) a n d s h o u l d h a v e 5 9
b e e n i n c l u d e d in m y collection o f m e t r i c a l e p i t a p h s ; 1 o v e r l o o k e d it b e c a u s e it is so h e a v i l y d a m a g e d that I did n o t n o t i c e the m e t r e . T h e 2 3 n e w inscriptions from P h r y g i a n H i e r a p o l i s are c o n s p i c u o u s in that t h e y v e r y often explicitly identify the p e r s o n s m e n t i o n e d o n t h e s t o n e as J e w s . O n c e e v e n a s a r c o p h a g u s is called J e w i s h (191 ) !
6 0
A l s o in other a s p e c t s this g r o u p o f e p i t a p h s h a s its specific
features. In v i e w o f A c t s 1 6 : 1 3 - 1 4 (Lydia, a G o d f e a r e r a n d d e a l e r in p u r p l e - d y e from T h y a t i r a in A s i a M i n o r ) it is interesting to find in nr. 196 a clear indication o f J e w i s h i n v o l v e m e n t in t h e p u r p l e industry o f H i e r a p o l i s . In t h e s a m e text w e also find o n e o f the v e r y few references to t h e c e l e b r a t i o n o f P e s a c h a n d o f S h a v u o t in the d i a s p o r a (see also A c t s 2 0 : 6 on P e s a c h in P h i l i p p i ) .
61
Nr. 2 1 3
from L a o d i c e a is u n i q u e in that it is the o n l y J e w i s h e p i t a p h in w h i c h e r a s i n g o f the inscription is also t h r e a t e n e d w i t h the c u r s e s in D e u t e r o n o m y 2 8 ( u s u a l l y 6 2
t h e s e c u r s e s are r e s e r v e d for illegal u s e o f t h e t o m b ) . Nr. 2 1 8 is t h e inscription on t h e s m a l l altar from A s p e n d o s ("For the truthful G o d w h o is not m a d e w i t h h a n d s " ) w h i c h I h a v e tried to d e m o n s t r a t e w a s m a d e b y a p a g a n s y m p a t h i z e r
5 8
Jewish Literacy in Roman Palestine, Tubingen 2 0 0 1 . "Jewish Tomb Inscriptions in Verse," in my Hellenism - Judaism - Christianity. Essays on Their Interaction, 2nd ed., Leuven 1998, 21-47. If Ameling's interpretation is correct (see p. 407), which I think it is. The Greek terms used are heorte ton azymon and heorte tes pentekostes. In an inscription from ancient Libya the feast o f Booths (Sukkoth, here called skenopegia) is mentioned: Nr. 71 in G. Liideritz, Corpus judischer Zeugnisse aus der Cyrenaica, Wiesbaden 1983. See my Ancient Jewish Epitaphs 5 6 - 5 7 . 5 9
6 0
6 1
6 2
Inscriptiones
with J u d a i s m , a G o d f e a r e r .
63
Judaicae
Orientis
85
A m e l i n g is less certain a b o u t that, a n d after a
t h o r o u g h d i s c u s s i o n h e c o n c l u d e s : " I n s g e s a m t bleibt d e r Text a b e r ratselhaft" ( 4 6 1 ) . H e interestingly s p e c u l a t e s on a p a g a n o r a c u l a r b a c k g r o u n d b u t d o e s n o t deny Jewish influence.
64
O n e o f t h e m o s t striking n e w inscriptions is nr. 2 2 2 ,
a r e c e n t l y d i s c o v e r e d n e w fragment o f the f a m o u s inscription o f D i o g e n e s o f O e n o a n d a . In t h e t i m e of H a d r i a n this E p i c u r e a n p h i l o s o p h e r D i o g e n e s h a d the h u g e wall o f the S t o a (ca. 8 0 x 4 m e t e r ) on the A g o r a o f O e n o a n d a inscribed w i t h a v e r y large inscription b y w h i c h , p r o b a b l y shortly before his d e a t h , h e w a n t e d to instruct his fellow-citizens in E p i c u r u s ' p h i l o s o p h y in o r d e r to dispel their fear o f d e a t h a n d o f t h e g o d s .
6 5
In this f r a g m e n t ( N F 127 in S m i t h ' s n u m
b e r i n g ) w e r e a d that the c l e a r e s t sign that t h e g o d s are u n a b l e to p r e v e n t evils from h a p p e n i n g are the J e w s a n d t h e E g y p t i a n s , s i n c e " t h e s e are b o t h the m o s t g o d f e a r i n g a n d t h e m o s t a b o m i n a b l e o f all n a t i o n s . " T h e w o r d s u s e d h e r e are deisidaimonestatoi
a n d miardtatoi.
o f t h e s e t e r m s . Deisidaimon tious p e r s o n ; miaros
It is n o t e a s y to find a n a d e q u a t e translation
c a n d e s i g n a t e n o t o n l y a p i o u s b u t also a supersti
h a s b o t h a ritual s e n s e ( i m p u r e ) a n d a m o r a l o n e ( c r i m i n a l ) .
B e that as it m a y , it is in a n y c a s e again a striking n e w i n s t a n c e o f the n e g a t i v e v i e w o f J e w s a n d J u d a i s m , w h i c h h a d such a long history in a n c i e n t l i t e r a t u r e .
66
It is also interesting to find s o m e o n e calling h i m s e l f a L e v i t e in L y c a o n i a (nr. 224)
6 7
a n d to m e e t in C o r y c o s a g o l d s m i t h called M o s e s the H e b r e w (nr. 2 4 0 ) .
Finally A m e l i n g p u b l i s h e s s o m e m a g i c a l texts from a m u l e t s found in A s i a M i n o r a n d h e rightly stresses that t h e y d o p r o v e J e w i s h influence b u t d o n o t n e c e s s a r i l y h a v e to b e J e w i s h . L o o k i n g b a c k u p o n this rich h a r v e s t w e c a n say t h e f o l l o w i n g . T h e s e three w o r k s will b e c o m e s t a n d a r d reference w o r k s for the d e c a d e s to c o m e . N o y , P a n a y o t o v , B l o e d h o r n , a n d A m e l i n g h a v e d o n e the w o r l d o f J u d a i c s c h o l a r s a n d classical e p i g r a p h i s t s an i m m e n s e service b y p a i n s t a k i n g l y c o l l e c t i n g this m a t e rial that is so w i d e l y s c a t t e r e d ,
68
a n d b y e l u c i d a t i n g it b y their e x p e r t c o m m e n t s .
Even t h o u g h there is m u c h to b e criticized o n the level o f details, in g e n e r a l it s h o u l d b e said that t h e s e v o l u m e s are e x c e l l e n t tools for further s t u d y o f a s p e c t s o f t h e early J e w i s h w o r l d that are often not m e n t i o n e d at all in the literary
6 3
"A N e w Altar of a Godfearer?" in my Judaism - Hellenism - Christianity 6 5 - 7 1 . The entry bears the title "Judischer EinfluB?" (p. 458). See Diogenes of Oinoanda. The Epicurean Inscription, edited with introduction, transla tion, and notes by M. F. Smith, Napoli 1993; my review in Mnemosyne 48 (1995) 1 0 1 - 1 0 3 . [See the chapter "The Most Superstitious and Disgusting of All Nations" elsewhere in this volume.] See esp. P. Schafer, Judaeophobia. Attitudes towards the Jews in the Ancient World, Cambridge M A - London 1997. The only other epigraphical Levite is from Jaffa, CIJ I I 9 0 2 . It is strange that here Ameling lapses into the oldfashioned German terminology of "spates Judentum" (483 note 6). Even publications o f inscriptions in obscure journals in Russian and Turkish were traced. 6 4
6 5
6 6
6 7
6 8
86
Inscriptiones
sources.
69
Judaicae
Orientis
A m e l i n g ' s b o o k is less user-friendly than the t w o other v o l u m e s , n o t
o n l y b e c a u s e t h e r e is n o b i b l i o g r a p h y a n d a n i n a d e q u a t e table o f a b b r e v i a t i o n s , b u t also b e c a u s e h e v e r y frequently q u o t e s ( s o m e t i m e s v e r y l o n g stretches of) texts in G r e e k (also m o d e r n G r e e k ) , Latin, Italian, F r e n c h etc. w i t h o u t p r e s e n t ing a translation, w h i c h m a k e s the b o o k less a c c e s s i b l e to t h e a v e r a g e J u d a i c s c h o l a r t h a n t h e N o y v o l u m e s , b u t this is m o r e t h a n b a l a n c e d b y t h e h i g h quality of Ameling's work. F r e y ' s CIJ h a s n o w b e e n r e p l a c e d e x c e p t for a n c i e n t P a l e s t i n e . F o r that g a p w e will h a v e to a w a i t t h e results o f the Israeli p r o j e c t Corpus Iudaeae/Palestinae
Inscriptionum
( C U P ) , b u t that enterprise is still in its infancy. T h e C U P will
b e a n e w c o r p u s o f all inscriptions ( p a g a n , J e w i s h , C h r i s t i a n ) , in all l a n g u a g e s , a r r a n g e d t o p o g r a p h i c a l l y , found in Israel ( i n c l u d i n g t h e West B a n k , G a z a , a n d the G o l a n H e i g h t s ) a n d d a t i n g from the 4th c e n t u r y B C E to the 7th c e n t u r y C E . T h e c o r p u s will i n c l u d e a full r e - e d i t i n g of e v e r y text, a d r a w i n g or p h o t o g r a p h , textual a p p a r a t u s , E n g l i s h translation, a n d c o m m e n t a r y . T h e e s t i m a t e is that t h e r e will b e b e t w e e n 6 0 0 0 a n d 7 0 0 0 texts in t h e c o r p u s , s o m e 1800 o f w h i c h ( p e r h a p s m o r e ) are J e w i s h .
70
W e will h a v e to a w a i t t h e c o m p l e t i o n o f that project
before w e c a n say that F r e y ' s CIJ definitively b e l o n g s to the past. B u t e v e n n o w w e c a n say t h a t t h e p r o g r e s s is e n o r m o u s : F r e y ' s w h o l e c o r p u s n u m b e r e d s o m e 1600 i n s c r i p t i o n s , Israel i n c l u d e d .
71
JIGRE,JIWE
1+2, a n d IJudO
t o g e t h e r slightly o v e r 1600 inscriptions, Israel e x c l u d e d .
72
1-3 c o m p r i s e
W h e n the 1800 or
m o r e i n s c r i p t i o n s o f the land o f Israel are a d d e d , w e will h a v e a l m o s t t h r e e - a n d a-half t h o u s a n d J e w i s h inscriptions from the p e r i o d b e t w e e n A l e x a n d e r the G r e a t a n d M u h a m m e d , m o r e than t w i c e as m a n y as in CIJ. In the last 15 y e a r s early J e w i s h e p i g r a p h y h a s p u t itself s q u a r e l y on the m a p o f international s c h o l a r s h i p . S t u d e n t s o f a n c i e n t J u d a i s m c a n n e g l e c t w o r k s s u c h as t h o s e r e v i e w e d h e r e o n l y to their great d i s a d v a n t a g e .
6 9
This can be clearly seen in the valuable book by Margaret H. Williams, The Jews Among the Greeks and Romans. A Diasporan Sourcebook, Baltimore 1998, where literary sources and epigraphic material play an equal role. I o w e this information to Professor Jonathan Price from Tel Aviv University w h o initiated the enterprise together with Prof. Hannah Cotton of the Hebrew University of Jerusalem. And Lifshitz's addenda included. It may be interesting to notice that, while in 1991 I calculated that the epitaphs formed some 80% o f the material, now a new calculation on the basis of the six above-mentioned new editions comes to some 7 2 % (some 1150). That is mainly due to the fact that many more donor inscriptions have been found in the meantime (e. g. Sardis). 7 0
7 1
7 2
Huldah's Tomb in Early Jewish Tradition T h e p r o p h e t e s s H u l d a h r e m a i n s a s o m e w h a t v a g u e b u t also fascinating figure in the O l d T e s t a m e n t . In 2 K i n g s 2 2 : 1 4 - 2 0 w e are told that she lived in J e r u s a l e m at t h e t i m e o f k i n g Josiah, w h o ruled o v e r J u d a e a at the e n d o f t h e s e v e n t h c e n t u r y B C E (ca. 6 4 0 - 6 0 9 B C E ) . After t h e s p e c t a c u l a r find o f the ' B o o k o f L a w ' in the t e m p l e ( w h i c h w a s the s u p p o s e d r e a s o n for J o s i a h ' s r e f o r m ) , at t h e c o m m a n d o f t h e k i n g , t h e finders o f that b o o k a p p r o a c h e d t h e p r o p h e t e s s H u l d a h , the wife o f S a l l u m w h o w a s k e e p e r o f the w a r d r o b e , w h e r e u p o n she u t t e r e d a p r o p h e c y o f c a t a s t r o p h y (this is r e p e a t e d w i t h m i n o r modifications in 2 C h r o n . 3 4 : 2 2 - 2 8 ) . 1
After this w e n e v e r h e a r a n y t h i n g a b o u t this w o m a n a g a i n . In this short contri b u t i o n I d o not w a n t to deal w i t h the biblical d a t a a b o u t this w o m a n , b u t with the traditions post-biblical J u d a i s m c h e r i s h e d a b o u t her, a n d especially a b o u t her t o m b , w h i c h is n o t e v e n m e n t i o n e d in the H e b r e w B i b l e .
2
To b e g i n w i t h , it s h o u l d b e r e m a r k e d that the traditions c o n c e r n i n g H u l d a h ' s t o m b are found o n l y in r a b b i n i c literature - in post-biblical p r e - r a b b i n i c litera ture ( 3 0 0 BCE - 2 0 0 CE) s h e is n o w h e r e m e n t i o n e d - a n d that all t h e s e traditions situate h e r t o m b in J e r u s a l e m , to b e m o r e p r e c i s e , at t h e s o u t h e r n b o r d e r o f the T e m p l e s q u a r e . T h a t is to say, it w a s situated o n a p i e c e o f land that in the S e c o n d T e m p l e p e r i o d w a s initially still o u t s i d e t h e T e m p l e s q u a r e , b u t that c a m e to lie j u s t inside it after the e n o r m o u s e x p a n s i o n o f the s q u a r e b y k i n g H e r o d the 3
G r e a t ( a r o u n d the b e g i n n i n g o f o u r e r a ) , n a m e l y in the s o u t h - w e s t corner. T h a t is e x a c t l y t h e part in H e r o d ' s t e m p l e c o m p l e x w h e r e t h e g r e a t g a t e s that w e r e n a m e d after H u l d a h w e r e located, o f w h i c h o n e c a n see t h e m o n u m e n t a l steps and portals even today.
4
1
See C.V. Camp, 'Huldah,' in Carol Meyers (ed.), Women in Scripture, Boston & N e w York 2000, 9 6 - 9 7 . A very succinct summary can be found in J. Jeremias, Heiligengrdber in Jesu Umwelt, Gottingen 1958, 5 1 - 5 2 . It is interesting to see that in a rather late (= early medieval) rabbinic midrash, Huldah's husband Sallum is said to have been the man who was revived by contact with the bones of the deceased prophet Elisha (see 2 Kings 13:21). Cf. L. Ginzberg, Legends of the Jews, vol. 4, Philadelphia 1913, 246, with the note in vol. 6, Philadelphia 1928, 347 n. 2 1 . See the elaborate description by Josephus, Antiquitates Judaicae 15:380^125, translated 2
3
and annotated in my Bronnen voor de studie van de wereld van het vroege Christendom, deel 1: Joodse bronnen, Kampen 1997, 1 3 7 - 1 4 4 . See e. g. B. Mazar, 'The Archaeological Excavations near the Temple Mount,' in Y. Yadin 4
88
Huldah s Tomb in Early Jewish
T h e M i s h n a treatise Middot
Tradition
(early third cent. C E ) , w h i c h is the first to m e n t i o n
t h e s e g a t e s , b e g i n s its e n u m e r a t i o n o f the five great g a t e s o f the t e m p l e s q u a r e as f o l l o w s : ' T h e t w o g a t e s o f H u l d a h on the south s e r v e d for c o m i n g in a n d for g o i n g o u t ( o f t h e t e m p l e s q u a r e ) ' (Middot
5
1:3). N o w it w a s o b v i o u s l y a p r o b l e m
that a t o m b w a s situated inside the h o l y city, y e s e v e n e x t r e m e l y c l o s e to the t e m p l e , since it c o u l d result in c o r p s - u n c l e a n n e s s (the m o s t serious form o f ritual i m p u r i t y ) for t h o s e w h o c a m e t o o c l o s e to it. W e s e e that for that r e a s o n the r a b bis d o their u t m o s t to explain this situation. In the Tosefta, a r a b b i n i c c o m p i l a t i o n o f h a l a k h a that r e c e i v e d its final r e d a c t i o n s o m e w h a t later than the M i s h n a h ( a r o u n d t h e m i d d l e o f the 3
r d
cent, c e ) , w e r e a d that t h e rabbis state that e a c h
t o m b s h o u l d lie at least 5 0 cubits ( s o m e 2 5 m e t e r s ) o u t s i d e the city w a l l , a n d if 6
that w a s not t h e c a s e , it s h o u l d b e cleared a w a y . T h e Tosefta a d d s , h o w e v e r , that a n e x c e p t i o n is m a d e for the g r a v e s o f k i n g s a n d p r o p h e t s . B u t w h e n rabbi A k i v a s a y s that s u c h g r a v e s , t o o , s h o u l d b e e m p t i e d out, the o t h e r r a b b i s tell h i m : ' W e r e not t h e g r a v e s o f the h o u s e o f D a v i d a n d o f H u l d a h the p r o p h e t e s s a l w a y s in J e r u s a l e m , a n d n o o n e e v e r laid a h a n d o n t h e m ? ' W h e r e u p o n A k i v a s a y s that t h e s e g r a v e s h a d u n d e r g r o u n d c h a n n e l s t h r o u g h w h i c h their u n c l e a n n e s s w a s r e m o v e d to t h e K i d r o n B r o o k (i.Bava
Bathra
7
1:11). E l s e w h e r e in the
Tosefta, it is said that, a l t h o u g h t o m b s are forbidden inside J e r u s a l e m , y e t there is a n e x c e p t i o n for the t o m b s o f D a v i d a n d H u l d a h b e c a u s e ' t h e s e w e r e there from the d a y s o f the former p r o p h e t s ' (i.Nega de-rabbi
Nathan
'im 6:2). A l s o in the tractate
Avoth
8
( r e c e n s i o n A ) 35:1 w e find t h e s a m e m o t i v a t i o n . A l t h o u g h the
r a b b i n i c e x p l a n a t i o n s m a y b e l e g e n d a r y a n d historically incorrect, yet the fact that t h e t o m b s o f D a v i d a n d H u l d a h are localized so p r e c i s e l y at the e d g e o f the K i d r o n Valley (so v e r y close to the H u l d a h gates) is an u n m i s t a k a b l e indication that e v e n in t h e earliest r a b b i n i c p e r i o d (not later t h a n the 2
n d
c e n t u r y CE, b u t
p o s s i b l y earlier) H u l d a h ' s t o m b w a s visible at the s o u t h e r n side o f t h e T e m p l e 9
s q u a r e . 1 will r e t u r n p r e s e n t l y to the role a n d function o f that t o m b . In the B a b y l o n i a n T a l m u d , Megillah
1 4 a - b , a series o f s e v e n biblical p r o p h e t
e s s e s are d i s c u s s e d : S a r a h , M i r i a m , D e b o r a h , H a n n a h , A b i g a i l , H u l d a , a n d E s ther.
10
A s far as H u l d a h is c o n c e r n e d , the q u e s t i o n is raised h o w it w a s p o s s i b l e
that s h e d a r e d to m a k e h e r a p p e a r a n c e as a p r o p h e t e s s in t h e s a m e p e r i o d that
(ed.), Jerusalem Revealed, Jerusalem 1976, 2 5 - 3 0 ; H. Shanks, Jerusalem. An Archaeological Biography, N e w York 1995, 1 4 2 - 1 4 7 . Translation by H. Danby, The Mishnah, Oxford 1933, 590. See text and commentary in O. Holtzmann, Middot (Die Mischna V, 10), Giessen 1913, 4 8 - 5 0 . See also the Babylonian Talmud, Bava Qamma 82b; more refernces in L. Ginzberg, Legends VI, 441 n. 32. See also the extra-Talmudic treatise Semachot 14:10. With a parallel in recension B, ch. 39. Parallel traditions are found also in the Jerusalem Talmud, Nazir 9, 57d. Comparable lists with female prophets are also to be found in the Christian Constitutiones Apostolicae VIII 2,9 and 2 0 , 1 . 5
6
7
8
9
1 0
Huldah s Tomb in Early Jewish
89
Tradition
- nota benel - the great p r o p h e t J e r e m i a h w a s p r o p h e s y i n g . S h o u l d s h e not h a v e k e p t silent? T h e school o f R a v , a great B a b y l o n i a n r a b b i from t h e third c e n t u r y CE, a d d u c e s as an e x p l a n a t i o n that H u l d a h w a s a close relative o f J e r e m i a h a n d that for that r e a s o n h e did not object to h e r p r o p h e s y i n g on one occasion*.
Others
explain the fact that k i n g J o s i a h p a s s e d o v e r J e r e m i a h in favour o f H u l d a h , b y a s s u m i n g that J e r e m i a h h a d j u s t g o n e a w a y o n his m i s s i o n to find t h e ten lost tribes o f Israel. R a b b i N a c h m a n , h o w e v e r , i n c l u d e s H u l d a h , w i t h D e b o r a h , a m o n g the ' s h a m e l e s s w o m e n ' : D e b o r a h is i n c l u d e d b e c a u s e it is written a b o u t h e r that ' s h e s u m m o n e d B a r a k ' ( J u d g e s 4 : 6 ) , w h i c h is, o f c o u r s e , an u n h e a r d o f i n s o l e n c e on the part o f a w o m a n ; H u l d a h is i n c l u d e d b e c a u s e it is w r i t t e n a b o u t her that she said, 'Tell t h e m a n w h o sent y o u . . . ' (2 K i n g s 2 2 : 1 5 ) instead o f 'Tell the k i n g ' ! A g a i n a n o t h e r rabbi states that H u l d a h w a s a d e s c e n d a n t o f R a h a b the w h o r e ( w i t h o u t m a k i n g clear w h a t that i m p l i e s , but it will certainly not h a v e b e e n m e a n t as a c o m p l i m e n t ) .
11
B e that as it may, it is clear that m a n y a rabbi f r o w n e d o v e r
H u l d a h ' s i m p e r t i n e n t b e h a v i o u r , as t h e y did in D e b o r a h ' s c a s e . A quite different note is struck in t h e early r a b b i n i c m i d r a s h Pesiqta
Rabbati
2 6 : 1 - 2 . T h e r e w e r e a d that J e r e m i a h , t o g e t h e r w i t h A d a m , J a c o b , a n d Isaiah, w a s o n e o f t h e four m e n w h o m G o d h a d c r e a t e d as perfect c r e a t u r e s par
excel
lence. N e v e r t h e l e s s J e r e m i a h c u r s e d the d a y that h e w a s b o r n b e c a u s e h e h a d to b r i n g s u c h terribly b a d t i d i n g s . B u t in c o o p e r a t i o n w i t h Z e p h a n i a h a n d H u l d a h h e m a n a g e d to fulfil his task: he p l a y e d his part on t h e streets a n d s q u a r e s o f the city, Z e p h a n i a did so on t h e T e m p l e s q u a r e , a n d Huldah
did so for the women.
So
here she is r e g a r d e d not as a c o m p e t i t o r b u t as a c o l l a b o r a t o r o f the great p r o p h e t . A s far as I c a n see, this e x h a u s t s the early J e w i s h traditions a b o u t H u l d a h .
1 2
A l t o g e t h e r it is not m u c h , but the e v i d e n c e d o e s contain s o m e fascinating aspects that I will n o w briefly review. To b e g i n w i t h , there is t h e interesting fact that in t h e w e l l - k n o w n Lives Prophets
(Vitae prophetarum)
of the
n o t a s i n g l e w o r d is d e v o t e d to t h e p r o p h e t e s s
H u l d a h . A t first sight that is s t r a n g e s i n c e in that w o r k n o t o n l y all great p r o p h e t s such as Isaiah, J e r e m i a h , E z e c h i e l , a n d the t w e l v e M i n o r P r o p h e t s are dealt with, b u t also p r o p h e t s w h o o c c u r o n l y as figures in biblical stories s u c h as Elijah, Elisha, S a m u e l , a n d N a t h a n , N o less than 2 3 p r o p h e t s p a s s r e v i e w h e r e a n d for each o f t h e m w e are told, often in detail, w h e r e their g r a v e s are to b e found, but not for 11
Megillah 14b also states that it can hardly be coincidental that both women have such ugly names: Deborah = bee, Huldah = weasel! See on this passage L.L. Bronner, 'Deborah,' in N.N. Hyman (ed.), Biblical Women in the Midrash, Northvale-London 1997, 109-110. Although the Targumim scarcely yield any material for our investigation, it is a nice detail that the Targum on both 2 Kings 22:14 and 2 Chron. 33:22 state that Huldah lived in a Jerusalem 'in a house of instruction.' The text o f the Hebrew Bible here reads mishneh in the sense of 'second quarter of the city,' but because of its close resemblance to mishnah the translators have taken it to be a name for a rabbinic study house, which is at least meant as a positive statement. In early Christian literature, Huldah does not play any role. 1 2
90
Huldah s Tomb in Early Jewish
Tradition
H u l d a h . T h a t is all the m o r e c u r i o u s since - as w e h a v e a l r e a d y s e e n - h e r g r a v e in J e r u s a l e m w a s w e l l - k n o w n e v e n in the first c e n t u r i e s C E . N o w it s h o u l d b e a d m i t t e d that t h e J e w i s h origin o f the Vitae prophetarum but, as I h a v e tried to d e m o n s t r a t e e l s e w h e r e ,
14
is a m a t t e r o f d e b a t e ,
13
e v e n if t h e text o f this d o c u m e n t
in its p r e s e n t form w e r e Christian a n d d e r i v e d from the fourth c e n t u r y C E , t h e traditions a b o u t t h e t o m b s o f t h e p r o p h e t s it c o n t a i n s are certainly J e w i s h a n d d a t e b a c k to t h e b e g i n n i n g o f the C o m m o n Era. In the light o f w h a t h a s b e e n said b e f o r e , t h e o m i s s i o n o f H u l d a h m a y certainly b e called a telling silence. E v e n if it c a n n o t b e strictly p r o v e d that criticism o f t h e activity o f this f e m a l e p r o p h e t is the b a c k g r o u n d for this o m i s s i o n , it is h i g h l y p r o b a b l e .
15
In s o m e (but n o t all) r a b b i n i c s o u r c e s w e c o u l d o b s e r v e an o u t s p o k e n criti cal attitude t o w a r d s H u l d a h : S h e s h o u l d h a v e k e p t silent d u r i n g the t i m e that J e r e m i a h w a s a c t i v e , a n d she s h o u l d not h a v e s p o k e n a b o u t ' t h a t m a n ' but, m o r e respectfully, a b o u t ' t h e k i n g . ' B u t also in the p r e - r a b b i n i c literature o f t h e first c e n t u r y C E o n e finds a l r e a d y similar s e n t i m e n t s , albeit n o t as far as H u l d a h is c o n c e r n e d b u t as to h e r m a t c h , t h e p r o p h e t e s s D e b o r a h ( J u d g e s 4 : 4 explicitly calls h e r ' p r o p h e t e s s ' ) . In his r e n d e r i n g of t h e biblical history, the h i s t o r i a n J o s e p h u s m a k e s n o effort to c o n c e a l his d i s d a i n for this female l e a d e r
16
figure.
H e r e d u c e s t h e a l m o s t 8 0 0 w o r d s o f the biblical story a b o u t D e b o r a h (in J u d g e s 4 - 5 ) to less than 5 0 0 (Antiquitates
Judaicae
5 : 2 0 0 - 2 0 9 ) , w h e r e a s his m u c h m o r e
w o m e n - f r i e n d l y c o n t e m p o r a r y , the u n k n o w n a u t h o r o f t h e P s e u d o - P h i l o n i c LiberAntiquitatum
Biblicarum,
d e v o t e s m o r e t h a n 2 5 0 0 w o r d s to this w o m a n , a n d
in a v e r y p o s i t i v e w a y at that (chs. 3 0 - 3 3 ) !
1 7
J o s e p h u s clearly w a n t s to trivialize
D e b o r a h ' s role; h e e v e n m a k e s h e r b u r s t out in an i n d i g n a n t t o n e
(aganaktesasa)
a g a i n s t B a r a k w h e n the latter a s k s h e r to s h a r e the s u p r e m e c o m m a n d w i t h h i m : ' Y o u , h o w c o u l d y o u yield to a w o m a n a r a n k that G o d h a s g i v e n y o u ? N e v e r t h e less, I d o not d e c l i n e it' ( 5 . 2 0 3 ) . D e b o r a h ' s f a m o u s s o n g ( J u d g e s 5) is e v e n c o m p l e t e l y o m i t t e d b y J o s e p h u s . L o u i s F e l d m a n c o n c l u d e s at t h e e n d o f his s t u d y o f J o s e p h u s ' portrait of D e b o r a h : ' J o s e p h u s ( . . . ) h a s , in his m i s o g y n y , b o t h r e d u c e d
1 3
See D. Satran, Biblical Prophets in Byzantine Palestine. Reassessing the Lives of the Prophets, Leiden 1995, w h o argues that it is a Christian document from the Byzantine period, and for the contrary position (early Jewish origin) see A. M. Schwemer, Studien zu den fruhjiidischen Prophetenlegenden Vitae Prophetarum, 2 vols., Tubingen 1995. P.W. van der Horst, Die Prophetengrdber im antiken Judentum (Delitzsch-Vorlesung 2000), Miinster 2 0 0 1 . An English version in my book Japheth in the Tents of Shem, Leuven 2 0 0 2 , 119-138. Schwemer, Studien I 30 n. 130, remarks with regard to Huldah's absence in the Vitae Prophetarum: 'Weibliche Propheten standen in fruhjiidischer Zeit nicht hoch im Kurs." That is an understatement. See for what follows L.H. Feldman's chapter 'Deborah' in his Studies in Josephus' Re written Bible, Leiden 1998, 1 5 3 - 1 6 2 . See P.W. van der Horst, 'Portraits of Biblical Women in Pseudo-Philo's Liber Antiquita tum Biblicarum,' in my Essays on the Jewish World of Early Christianity, Fribourg-Gottingen, 1 9 9 0 , 1 1 1 - 1 2 2 , e s p . 114-5. 1 4
15
1 6
1 7
Huldah s Tomb in Early Jewish
91
Tradition
the length o f t h e e p i s o d e a n d the i m p o r t a n c e o f D e b o r a h , d o w n g r a d i n g her in her role o f p o e t e s s , military leader, a n d j u d g e . '
1 8
T h i s is n o t an isolated c a s e . A s in
early C h r i s t i a n literature, o n e c o m e s a c r o s s a lot o f d e n i g r a t i n g l a n g u a g e a b o u t w o m e n (biblical a n d n o n - b i b l i c a l ) in early J e w i s h s o u r c e s as w e l l .
1 9
T h e fact
that, as w e h a v e s e e n a b o v e , D e b o r a h a n d H u l d a h t o g e t h e r p a r a d e as e x a m p l e s o f ' s h a m e l e s s w o m e n ' in later r a b b i n i c s o u r c e s is an indication that it is far from p u r e l y s p e c u l a t i v e to c l a i m that the o m i s s i o n o f H u l d a h a n d h e r t o m b in the Vitae prophetarum
m a y w e l l b e m o r e than a c o i n c i d e n c e . It is h i g h l y p r o b a b l e that
here a conscious decision was taken. Yet it is an e s t a b l i s h e d fact that H u l d a h ' s t o m b , like t h o s e o f the m a t r i a r c h s S a r a h , R e b e c c a h , R a c h e l a n d L e a h , a n d J e p h t h a h ' s d a u g h t e r , w a s k n o w n to b e in J e r u s a l e m at the b e g i n n i n g o f the C o m m o n E r a a n d e v e n e n j o y e d a certain fame. H o w s h o u l d w e interpret that? R e c e n t r e s e a r c h h a s c o n f i r m e d that, e v e n t h o u g h o n e w o u l d n o t e x p e c t it from a biblical p o i n t o f view, a certain v e n e r a t i o n o f saints, u s u a l l y in the form o f p i l g r i m a g e to a n d p r a y e r at t h e t o m b s o f biblical saints, h a d d e v e l o p e d in t h e p e r i o d o f the S e c o n d T e m p l e a n d in early T a l m u d i c times.
20
O f c o u r s e , these p r a c t i c e s w e r e frowned u p o n b y scribes a n d r a b b i s , w h o
rejected t h e m if o n l y b e c a u s e the c o r p s e i m p u r i t y o n e c o u l d incur at g r a v e s i t e s w a s the g r a v e s t form o f ritual i m p u r i t y k n o w n in a n c i e n t J u d a i s m .
21
But, as Saul
L i e b e r m a n h a s r e m a r k e d : ' T h e Torah forbade a n u m b e r [of t h e s e p r a c t i c e s ] , a n d the rabbis a d d e d their o w n p r o h i b i t i o n s . H o w e v e r , it is e a s i e r to fight w i c k e d n e s s t h a n to c o m b a t t h e s u p e r s t i t i o n s o f p i o u s p e o p l e . ( . . . ) T h e m a s s e s h a d their o w n ways.'
2 2
P e o p l e c o n c e i v e d o f t h e biblical saints as still p r e s e n t in their t o m b s a n d
listening to the p r a y e r s o f the p e o p l e w h o a s k e d for i n t e r c e s s i o n w i t h G o d , for healing e t c . 1 8
2 3
N o t o n l y the Life of Isaiah
8 m a k e s clear that the p r o p h e t ' s t o m b
Feldman, 'Deborah' 162. See for a first orientation P.W. van der Horst, 'Conflicting Images of Women in Ancient Judaism,' in my Hellenism - Judaism - Christianity: Essays on Their Interaction, 2nd ed., Leuven 1998, 7 3 - 9 2 . See, e. g., J.N. Lightstone, The Commerce of the Sacred. Mediation of the Divine among Jews in the Graeco-Roman Diaspora, Chico 1984, 7 0 - 8 7 ; W. Horbury, 'The Cult o f Christ and the Cult o f the Saints,' New Testament Studies 4 4 (1998) 4 4 4 - 4 6 9 ; and my above-mentioned Prophetengrdber im antiken Judentum. The rabbinic Mishnah treatise Ohaloth deals with this subject. Zie W. Bunte, Ohalot (Die Mischna VI 2), Berlin-New York 1988, esp. 2 4 - 4 8 . S. Lieberman, 'Some Aspects of After Life in Early Rabbinic Literature,' in his Texts and Studies, N e w York 1974, 2 5 2 - 2 5 3 . Morton Smith rightly noticed that one should not construct a rigid opposition between 'popular religion' on the one hand and rabbinic attitudes on the other for 'even rabbinic tradition contains some elements which show an amazing indifference to this consideration [of impurity], e. g. the story that Solomon brought the coffin o f David into the Temple (Pesiq. Rab. 2, ed. Friedmann 6b, & parallels): Instead of polluting it, this produced the descent of the heavenly fire' ('The Image o f God,' in his Studies in the Cult ofYahweh, Leiden 1996, vol. 1, 1 3 1 - 2 n. 73). See Jeremias, Heiligengrdber 129: '[S]ie alle waren fur sie nicht tote Gestalten der Vergangenheit, sondern sie lebten in ihren Grabern, nahmen teil am Ergehen des Volkes.' Satran, Biblical Prophets 111, in this connection refers to the epitaph of Saint Martin: 'Here lies Martin 1 9
2 0
2 1
2 2
2 3
92
Huldah's Tomb in Early Jewish
Tradition
w a s v e n e r a t e d in o r d e r that ' b y his p r a y e r s e v e n after his d e a t h ' o n e c o u l d r e a p t h e fruits o f his influence w i t h G o d , b u t also the p o l e m i c a g a i n s t the i d e a that d e c e a s e d p e r s o n s c a n i n t e r c e d e w i t h G o d , e . g . in P s e u d o - P h i l o ' s LAB 3 3 : 4 a n d in o t h e r early J e w i s h d o c u m e n t s ,
2 4
strongly s u g g e s t s that t h e t o m b s o f biblical
saints h a d b e c o m e c e n t r e s o f p i l g r i m a g e w h e r e t h e s e saints w e r e b e s e e c h e d to m a k e intercession. T h a t is p r o b a b l y also h o w it w e n t in the c a s e o f H u l d a h . T h e r e w a s n o d e n y i n g that s h e p l a y e d a striking role in the biblical story, h o w e v e r limited it w a s . It is quite p o s s i b l e that for that r e a s o n she w a s a n i n s p i r i n g role m o d e l for J e w i s h w o m e n . In the H e l l e n i s t i c - R o m a n p e r i o d , w h e n t h e cult of biblical saints at t h e sites o f their t o m b s b e g a n to d e v e l o p g r a d u a l l y a m o n g certain sectors o f t h e J e w i s h p o p u l a t i o n o f P a l e s t i n e - a d e v e l o p m e n t that t h e r a b b i s c o u l d n o t s t o p , e v e n if t h e y tried h a r d - this p r o p h e t e s s c a r v e d o u t h e r o w n n i c h e a l o n g s i d e all t h e m a l e p r o p h e t s , w h o were dealt w i t h in t h e Vitae Prophetarum.
In spite o f
c o n s i d e r a b l e o p p o s i t i o n , she g a i n e d a p l a c e in the v e r y m o d e s t r o w o f biblical w o m e n w h o s e g r a v e s b e c a m e c e n t r e s o f J e w i s h p o p u l a r piety.
the bishop, o f holy memory, whose soul is in the hand of God; but he is fully here, present and made plain in miracles of every kind' (quoted after P. Brown, The Cult of the Saints, Chicago 1981, 4). Cf. also John 5:28: 'All who are in the tombs will hear his voice.' See Ch. Perrot & M. Bogaert, Pseudo-Philon: Les Antiquites Bibliques, vol. 2, Paris 1976, 177, for references. See also J. Wilkinson, 'Visits to Jewish Tombs by Early Christians,' Akten des XII. Internationalen Kongresses fur christliche Archdologie [= Jahrbuch fur Antike und Christentum Erganzungsband 2 0 ] , 2 vols., Minister 1995, 1: 456. 2 4
Pseudo-Phocylides on the Afterlife A Rejoinder to John Collins
In a recent p u b l i c a t i o n , J o h n C o l l i n s takes m e to task for several s t a t e m e n t s I m a d e in m y c o m m e n t a r y o n P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s of 2 5 y e a r s a g o , especially as far 1
as this J e w i s h a u t h o r ' s v i e w o f the afterlife is c o n c e r n e d . After h a v i n g carefully studied C o l l i n s ' p o i n t s o f criticism, I h a d to c o m e to the c o n c l u s i o n that m o s t o f t h e m h a v e little or n o b a s i s , as I will n o w d e m o n s t r a t e . To b e g i n w i t h , I s h o u l d state that the p a s s a g e u n d e r d i s c u s s i o n (vv. 1 0 3 - 1 1 5 ) , in w h i c h this J e w i s h a u t h o r sets out his v i e w o n the fate o f the individual after d e a t h , is n o t o r i o u s l y difficult a n d h a s g i v e n rise to v e r y c o n t r a d i c t o r y interpreta tions o v e r the past 150 y e a r s . It is n o w o n d e r that o n e s c h o l a r s p e a k s o f " t h e u n h a r m o n i z e d j u x t a p o s i t i o n o f c o n t r a d i c t o r y ideas a b o u t afterlife" in this p a s s a g e .
2
M o s t s c h o l a r s find it v e r y difficult, if not i m p o s s i b l e , to interpret t h e s e 13 lines as a s y s t e m a t i c e x p o s i t i o n o f a c o n s i s t e n t v i e w o n life after d e a t h , e s p e c i a l l y so since, inter alia, the a u t h o r s e e m s to d e f e n d the i m m o r t a l i t y o f t h e soul as m u c h as the r e s u r r e c t i o n o f the b o d y
3
and, m o r e o v e r , d o e s not clarify the relations
b e t w e e n body, soul, a n d spirit. C o l l i n s is less p e s s i m i s t i c , h o w e v e r . H e c o n c e d e s that P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s relied o n traditional forms that " s t a n d in s o m e tension w i t h e a c h o t h e r " ( 8 5 ) , b u t affirms at the s a m e t i m e that h e " s t r u n g t h e m t o g e t h e r in a w a y that a c h i e v e d a m e a s u r e o f c o h e r e n c e " ( 8 5 ) . It m a y w e l l b e the c a s e that t h e r e is m o r e u n i t y a n d c o h e r e n c e to this p a s s a g e than I a n d others h a v e b e e n 4
a b l e to s e e , b u t C o l l i n s ' a r g u m e n t s are s o m e t i m e s far from c o n v i n c i n g . I will first deal w i t h his o b j e c t i o n s to m y translation o f t h e first line o f the p a s s a g e . Vv. 1 0 3 - 1 0 4 a xcd x d / a 6' ex Y ^ ! ? eXjti£ou-ev eg (pdog eXGeiv / tahpav' 0
1
1
J.J. Collins, "Life After Death in Pseudo-Phocylides," in F. Garcia Martinez & G.P. Luttikhuizen (eds), Jerusalem, Alexandria, Rome. Studies in Ancient Cultural Interaction in Honour of A. Hilhorst, Supplements to Journal for the Study of Judaism 82, Leiden 2 0 0 3 , 7 5 - 8 6 . My commentary: P.W. van der Horst, The Sentences of Pseudo-Phocylides, Leiden 1978, 1 8 5 - 1 9 5 . H.C.C. Cavallin, Life After Death, vol. I, Lund 1974, 153. See the fine discussion of this issue in the chapter "Immortality and Resurrection: Conflict or Complementarity?" in James Barr, The Garden of Eden and the Hope of Immortality, Min neapolis 1992, 9 4 - 1 1 6 . But, as Arthur Nock said, "to press this point would be to ignore the widespread tendency o f language about the afterlife to admit inconsistencies" {Essays on Religion and the Ancient World, vol. 1, Oxford 1972, 507 n. 19). 2
3
4
94
Pseudo-Phocylides
on the
Afterlife
ajtoixouivorv w a s translated b y m e as follows: " F o r in fact w e h o p e that t h e r e m a i n s o f t h e d e p a r t e d will s o o n c o m e to the light a g a i n o u t o f the e a r t h . " H i s o w n t r a n s l a t i o n is rather different: " A n d w e h o p e that t h e r e m a i n s o f t h e d e a d will p e r h a p s c o m e to the light again out o f t h e e a r t h " ( 7 5 ) . C o l l i n s firstly objects ( t w i c e , 7 5 a n d 7 9 ) that ' i n fact' in m y translation is w i t h o u t a n y b a s i s in the G r e e k . T h a t is not true. M y translation is b a s e d u p o n t h e following c o n s i d e r a tions. O n e h a s to m a k e s e n s e o f xcd ... be in t h e text. U s u a l l y this c o m b i n a t i o n i m p l i e s that t h e f o r m e r particle d e n o t e s that s o m e t h i n g is a d d e d , a n d the latter 5
that w h a t is a d d e d is distinct from w h a t p r e c e d e s . B u t that d o e s n o t m a k e s e n s e h e r e . In the p r e c e d i n g line ( 1 0 2 ) , the a u t h o r h a s w a r n e d a g a i n s t d i s i n t e g r a t i n g the h u m a n frame ( m o s t p r o b a b l y for a n a t o m i c a l p u r p o s e s ) . W h a t follows m u s t g i v e t h e r e a s o n for this p r o h i b i t i o n . Just as in t h e i m m e d i a t e l y p r e c e d i n g lines ( 1 0 0 - 1 0 1 ) , the r e a s o n g i v e n for his p r o h i b i t i o n a g a i n s t d i s t u r b i n g g r a v e s is that it m a y stir u p d i v i n e anger, so o n e w o u l d e x p e c t s o m e t h i n g similar h e r e . T h e r e c a n b e n o d o u b t that the p r o h i b i t i o n a g a i n s t d i s i n t e g r a t i n g t h e h u m a n frame s t a n d s in a c l o s e r e l a t i o n s h i p to the i m m e d i a t e l y f o l l o w i n g r e m a r k a b o u t the h o p e o f the r e s u r r e c t i o n o f the b o d y . B e c a u s e this b o d i l y r e s u r r e c t i o n is h o p e d for, o n e s h o u l d n o t d i s s e c t t h e h u m a n frame. S o o n e e x p e c t s a w o r d like yag h e r e , not particles d e n o t i n g that s o m e t h i n g is a d d e d a n d that w h a t is a d d e d is different from w h a t p r e c e d e s . N o w it is w e l l - k n o w n that in G r e e k "5e is n o t infrequently u s e d w h e r e t h e c o n t e x t a d m i t s , or e v e n a p p e a r s to d e m a n d , y d Q . "
6
Denniston
lists d o z e n s o f e x a m p l e s , especially from poetry, a n d a d d s the o b s e r v a t i o n that a n c i e n t scholia often o b s e r v e : 6 be dvxi xoti yag (be is u s e d instead o f yag).
In
o t h e r w o r d s , 6e is the w o r d indicating the causal c o n n e c t i o n that w e n e e d h e r e .
7
S o m u c h for be, w h i c h is left u n t r a n s l a t e d b y C o l l i n s . H e d o e s translate xcd b y ' a n d ' w h e r e a s I r e n d e r it b y ' i n fact' ( w h i c h C o l l i n s s a y s h a s n o b a s i s in t h e G r e e k text). W h y this u n u s u a l t r a n s l a t i o n ? T h e c o m m o n m e a n i n g s o f xcd such as ' a n d , ' ' a l s o , ' or ' e v e n ' d o not m a k e s e n s e at all h e r e . After a stern p r o h i b i tion a g a i n s t d i s i n t e g r a t i n g d e a d h u m a n b o d i e s it w o u l d b e l a m e to c o n t i n u e b y s a y i n g , ' a n d w e h o p e for the r e s u r r e c t i o n . ' T h e force o f xcd h e r e , h o w e v e r , is that o f a n e m p h a t i c particle. It is a g a i n d i s c u s s e d at length in the classic w o r k o f D e n n i s t o n . H e s a y s o n xcd that its m e a n i n g c a n easily p a s s into ' a c t u a l l y ' (or ' i n fact'!), 'really,' ' i n d e e d , ' a n d that for that r e a s o n it " i s often u s e d before intensive 8
a n d q u a n t i t a t i v e a d v e r b s a n d a d j e c t i v e s , " in c a s e s s u c h as xcd Xiav, xcd \iaka, xcd jtdvu, xcd jtoXug etc. S o it m a k e s perfect s e n s e to t r a n s l a t e the line as 'for in fact w e h o p e . . . ' or 'for w e really h o p e . . . ' or e v e n 'for w e v e r y m u c h h o p e that e t c ' A n o t h e r possibility is to c o n n e c t xcd m o r e c l o s e l y to xdx<x, a n d to translate 'for w e h o p e t h a t really s o o n e t c ' 5
6
7
8
J.D. Denniston, The Greek Particles, Oxford 1954 (2nd ed.), 199. Denniston, Particles 169. That Ps-Phoc. does not use yao here is probably metri causa. Denniston, Particles 317.
Pseudo-Phocylides
on the
Afterlife
95
T h i s leads u s i m m e d i a t e l y to a n o t h e r difference b e t w e e n C o l l i n s ' a n d m y t r a n s l a t i o n . H e r e n d e r s xaxa b y ' p e r h a p s ' as a g a i n s t m y ' s o o n . ' H i s m o t i v a t i o n for this t r a n s l a t i o n , w h i c h is in itself p o s s i b l e from a lexical p o i n t o f v i e w , is as f o l l o w s : " P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s w a s n o a p o c a l y p t i c visionary, a n d t h e r e is n o hint in t h e p o e m o f i m m i n e n t e s c h a t o l o g y " ( 7 9 ) ; a n d h e a d d s that ' p e r h a p s ' is t h e m o r e a p p r o p r i a t e t r a n s l a t i o n h e r e b e c a u s e " t h i s is t h e o n l y t i m e in this passage where he speaks of h o p e " (79). " T h e resurrection of the physical body is a c k n o w l e d g e d as a p o s s i b i l i t y to b e h o p e d for. P r e s u m a b l y t h e a u t h o r w a s a w a r e that s o m e J e w s h e l d t h i s belief, a n d h e affirms it tentatively. . . . T h e t o n e is s p e c u l a t i v e rather than c e r t a i n " (79). I find all this very u n c o n v i n c i n g . To b e g i n w i t h , t h e fact that t h e r e is n o o t h e r hint in t h e p o e m o f i m m i n e n t e s c h a t o l o g y is a b s o l u t e l y n o a r g u m e n t a g a i n s t t a k i n g t d x a to m e a n ' s o o n , ' s i n c e as is t h e c a s e w i t h m o s t o t h e r subjects b r o a c h e d b y o u r author, he h a r d l y e v e r d e v o t e s m o r e t h a n o n e o r t w o lines to t h e m , h o w e v e r i m p o r t a n t t h e y m a y b e . S o this line m a y i n d e e d b e t h e o n l y o n e in w h i c h t h e a u t h o r r e v e a l s his i m m i n e n t e s c h a t o l o g y . B u t a p a r t from that, ' s o o n ' m a y h e r e s i m p l y i m p l y that t h e a u t h o r h o p e s that his b o d i l y r e m a i n s will b e r e s u r r e c t e d s o o n after his d e a t h , so that n o a p o c a l y p t i c s c e n a r i o o f a n i m m i n e n t e s c h a t o n is i m p l i e d at all. M y a b o v e r e m a r k s a b o u t t h e p r o b a b l e m e a n i n g o f xai h e r e , e s p e c i a l l y t h e i m p o r t a n t o b s e r v a t i o n b y D e n n i s t o n that it is often u s e d b e f o r e i n t e n s i v e a n d q u a n t i t a t i v e a d v e r b s , m a k e s it all the m o r e p r o b a b l e that ' s o o n ' a n d n o t ' p e r h a p s ' is m e a n t h e r e . T h e a u t h o r ' s u s e o f t h e v e r b ' h o p i n g ' (sAm^eiv) is n o t e v i d e n c e o f a ' s p e c u l a t i v e ' t o n e , as C o l l i n s w o u l d h a v e u s b e l i e v e , b u t it r a t h e r i n d i c a t e s that t h e a u t h o r l o o k s f o r w a r d to s o m e t h i n g " w i t h t h e i m p l i c a t i o n o f confidence
a b o u t s o m e t h i n g c o m i n g to
9
p a s s , " as is u s u a l l y t h e c a s e in early J e w i s h a n d C h r i s t i a n literature. T h e w h o l e p o e m s p e a k s a s t r o n g a n d s e l f - a s s u r e d l a n g u a g e , w i t h n e v e r a t r a c e o f hesitancy, so that a l a m e ' p e r h a p s , ' e s p e c i a l l y in s u c h a vital m a t t e r as t h e n a t u r e o f life after d e a t h , w o u l d b e w h o l l y i n a p p r o p r i a t e . So C o l l i n s ' t r a n s l a t i o n a n d interpretation l o o k s v e r y i m p r o b a b l e . I w o u l d e v e n s u g g e s t that this t r a n s l a t i o n is ruled o u t b y t h e i m m e d i a t e l y f o l l o w i n g t r i u m p h a n t w o r d s OJILOCO be Beoi TEXEGOVTCU ( ' a n d thereafter t h e y b e c o m e g o d s ! ' , 104b), w h i c h I t a k e to e x p r e s s t h e s t r o n g c o n v i c tion that t h e r e s u r r e c t e d r i g h t e o u s will b e e l e v a t e d to h e a v e n w h e r e t h e y will s h i n e like stars ( s e e m y c o m m e n t a r y ad
locum).
Let m e finally a d d s o m e c o m m e n t s a b o u t o n e or t w o o t h e r p o i n t s w h e r e w e disagree. Collins counters m y remark about the 'very u n - G r e e k ' nature of the d o c t r i n e o f t h e r e s u r r e c t i o n b y p o i n t i n g o u t that t h e r e a r e m a n y stories in t h e G r e e k w o r l d o f i n d i v i d u a l s w h o h a d r e t u r n e d from t h e d e a d ( 7 6 ) . I find this irrelevant s i n c e t h e s e stories c o n c e r n e x c e p t i o n a l a n d i n d i v i d u a l c a s e s a n d h a v e n o t h i n g to d o w i t h s h a r e d e s c h a t o l o g i c a l e x p e c t a t i o n s . C o l l i n s a l s o objects to m y s t a t e m e n t that there is n o t t h e slightest hint o f t h e u s e o f o s s u a r i a in the line 9
BDAG 319 s.v. efoti£a> (italics added).
96
Pseudo-Phocylides
on the Afterlife
c o n t a i n i n g the p r o h i b i t i o n a g a i n s t d i s i n t e g r a t i n g the h u m a n frame for h e finds it difficult to see " h o w the a d m o n i t i o n w o u l d n o t a p p l y t o the p r a c t i c e o f s e c o n d ary b u r i a l , w h i c h m o s t certainly i n v o l v e d the d i s s o l u t i o n of the h u m a n f r a m e " ( 7 8 n. 18). A s h e h i m s e l f c o n c e d e s , h o w e v e r , A l e x a n d r i a is still b y far the m o s t likely p l a c e o f origin o f the p o e m . O s s u a r i a w e r e m a i n l y in u s e in P a l e s t i n e , p a r t i c u l a r l y in a n d a r o u n d J e r u s a l e m , o n l y o c c a s i o n a l l y e l s e w h e r e .
1 0
They were
c e r t a i n l y n o t a c o m m o n p h e n o m e n o n in A l e x a n d r i a b u t d i s s e c t i o n o f h u m a n b o d i e s for a n a t o m i c a l r e s e a r c h was p r a c t i c e d in A l e x a n d r i a , a n d o n l y t h e r e as far as w e k n o w . T h i s fact m a k e s m y interpretation that ' d i s i n t e g r a t i n g t h e h u m a n f r a m e ' refers to this p r a c t i c e m u c h m o r e feasible. Finally, at p p . 8 3 - 8 4 C o l l i n s i n g e n i o u s l y tries to m a k e s e n s e o f lines 1 0 5 - 1 0 8 , w h e r e at first sight P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s s e e m s t o i m p l y a tripartite a n t h r o p o l o g y a
b y s p e a k i n g o f b o d y , soul, a n d spirit. T h e p o e t s a y s that t h e s o u l s ( ^ ^ x 0 r e m a i n u n h a r m e d in t h e d e c e a s e d (or ' a m o n g the d e a d , ' t h u s C o l l i n s ) ; that t h e spirit (jtveijua) is a l o a n from G o d to m o r t a l s a n d a l s o his i m a g e ; a n d that t h e b o d y (awfm) c o m e s from earth a n d returns a g a i n into earth, b u t that the air r e c e i v e s the spirit (jrveuu.a). L a t e r (v. 111) h e a d d s that G o d r u l e s o v e r the s o u l s (ipuxcu) a n d that t h e s e are i m m o r t a l a n d live forever ( 1 1 5 ) . T h i s is n o t t h e p l a c e to d i s c u s s all a s p e c t s o f this s e e m i n g l y c o n f u s e d c o l l o c a t i o n o f i d e a s . I will a g a i n focus o n l y o n a n a s p e c t u p o n w h i c h C o l l i n s a n d I d i s a g r e e . T h i s is the q u e s t i o n o f w h e t h e r or n o t ' s o u l ' a n d ' s p i r i t ' are h e r e distinct or identical. I a r g u e d that t h e y are identical, as is so often the c a s e in J e w i s h - H e l l e n i s t i c literature ( s e e , e . g . , Test. Abraham
[rec.A] 1 6 - 2 0 ) .
1 1
C o l l i n s t h i n k s t h e y are distinct entities. H e interprets
the p a s s a g e as f o l l o w s : W h e n w e d i e , o u r b o d y r e t u r n s to dust, o u r soul g o e s to H a d e s , a n d o u r spirit g o e s u p t o the air. A s s u m i n g that H a d e s is the p l a c e is w h e r e t h e s o u l s d w e l l after d e a t h ( w h i c h is n o t explicit in t h e t e x t ! ) , G o d m u s t r u l e o v e r the s o u l s in H a d e s , from w h e r e t h e y will b e a g a i n u n i t e d w i t h t h e spirit a n d the b o d y at the r e s u r r e c t i o n . M u c h c o u l d b e said a b o u t this r e c o n s t r u c t i o n o f P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s ' view, b u t let m e limit m y r e m a r k s to w h a t I t h i n k is t h e m a i n p o i n t : It is said explicitly that t h e spirit (jrvEi)u,a) is a loan from G o d t o m o r t a l s a n d a l s o his i m a g e ( 1 0 6 ) . In several o t h e r G r a e c o - J e w i s h t e x t s , this is w h a t is said a b o u t the soul (i|wx*l)- T h a t d o e s n o t n e c e s s a r i l y i m p l y that the s a m e is m e a n t h e r e t o o , b u t a n o t h e r p o i n t s h o u l d b e k e p t in m i n d as w e l l . T h e spirit is t a k e n u p into the air a n d r e t u r n s to G o d b e c a u s e h e h a d g i v e n it to h u m a n s o n l y as a loan. It is to b e a s s u m e d that from the m o m e n t o f d e a t h o n w a r d s G o d rules o v e r t h e s e spirits; after all t h e y w e r e his loan. T h e text, h o w e v e r , s a y s that G o d r u l e s
1 0
Leiden 1988, State ofIsrael, Jewish Burial
11
Judentums
R. Hachlili, Ancient Jewish Art and Archaeology in the Land of Israel, 8 9 - 1 1 9 . L. Y. Rahmani, A Catalogue ofJewish Ossuaries in the Collections of the Jerusalem 1994, 2 1 - 2 5 , 3 0 2 - 3 0 7 . C.A. Evans, Jesus and the Ossuaries. What Practices Reveal about the Beginning of Christianity, Waco 2003. For more instances see W. Bousset & H. Gressmann, Die Religion des spdthellenistischen Zeitalter, Tubingen 1966, 4 0 0 .
im
Pseudo-Phocylides
97
on the Afterlife
o v e r t h e s o u l s n o t t h e spirits. W h y w o u l d G o d rule o v e r t h e s o u l s o f h u m a n s e l s e w h e r e (in H a d e s , s a y s C o l l i n s ) w h i l e t h e spirits o f t h e s e s a m e h u m a n s are w i t h h i m in h e a v e n ( t a k e n b a c k a g a i n into t h e air)? T h a t d o e s n o t m a k e s e n s e . O n l y if o n e a s s u m e s that souls a n d spirits a r e identical c a n this a n o m a l y b e a v o i d e d . T h e c o n s e q u e n c e is t h e n , h o w e v e r , that o n e h a s a l s o to a s s u m e that H a d e s = t h e air ( g r a n t i n g C o l l i n s that t h e s o u l s are in H a d e s , w h i c h is u n c e r t a i n ) . A c c o r d i n g to P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s ' c o n t e m p o r a r y , t h e Stoic t h e o l o g i a n C o r n u t u s , in his Com pendium
of Greek Theology
3 5 , this is p r e c i s e l y w h a t w a s d o n e b y p h i l o s o p h e r s
a n d t h e o l o g i a n s : TOV &ex6uevov xaq tyvxac, d e g a "Ai6r|v ... jiQocrnYOQeuaav ( t h e y c a l l e d t h e air that r e c e i v e s t h e s o u l s H a d e s ) . A n d h e is n o t t h e o n l y w i t n e s s t o t h i s b e l i e f a b o u t a H a d e s h i g h u p in t h e a i r .
12
So an i n t e r p r e t a t i o n that identifies
soul a n d spirit still s e e m s t o m e to b e d e f e n s i b l e . M u c h m o r e c o u l d b e said a b o u t this fascinating p a s s a g e . M y a i m h e r e w a s m o d e s t , h o w e v e r . I w a n t e d to d e m o n s t r a t e that C o l l i n s ' c r i t i c i s m s o f m y inter p r e t a t i o n o f P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s c a n in s o m e c a s e s b e refuted a n d in o t h e r c a s e s b e s h o w n to b e less c o n v i n c i n g t h a n h e t h i n k s . I w a n t to t h a n k J o h n C o l l i n s for t h i s c h a l l e n g e a n d o p p o r t u n i t y for d e b a t e .
Postscript [In a p o s t s c r i p t a d d e d t o t h e r e p r i n t o f his article in his Jewish lenistic
Culture
Cult and
Hel
( L e i d e n 2 0 0 5 , 1 3 9 - 1 4 2 ) , C o l l i n s tries to r e s t a t e h i s p o s i t i o n , b u t
u n f o r t u n a t e l y h e m i s r e p r e s e n t s o n e o f m y m a i n p o i n t s o f c r i t i c i s m (the m e a n i n g o f t h e c o m b i n a t i o n x c d ... 6E; a p p a r e n t l y C o l l i n s still d o e s n o t k n o w t h e foun d a t i o n a l w o r k o f D e n n i s t o n ) ; h e i g n o r e s a n o t h e r (the u s u a l s e n s e o f eAjti^eiv); m o r e o v e r , h e g l o s s e s o v e r m y a r g u m e n t that, w h e n the spirit is said to b e a loan from G o d that r e t u r n s to t h e air ( = h e a v e n ) after d e a t h , it is o n l y to b e e x p e c t e d that G o d t h e n r u l e s o v e r t h e spirits, w h i c h P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s s a y s G o d d o e s o v e r t h e souls. A g a i n , I a m n o t at all c o n v i n c e d . ]
1 2
Many other references to where this belief is attested can be found in F. Cumont, Lux perpetua, Paris 1949, 189-218.
Philo's In Flaccum and the Book of Acts C o l l e c t i n g p a r a l l e l s from P h i l o to the N e w T e s t a m e n t h a s b e e n part a n d p a r c e l o f t h e C o r p u s J u d a e o - H e l l e n i s t i c u m project from t h e b e g i n n i n g , a n d u n d e r s t a n d a b l y s o . A l s o a p a r t from this project, several s c h o l a r s h a v e u n d e r t a k e n d e t a i l e d c o m p a r i s o n s o f P h i l o w i t h a specific N e w T e s t a m e n t a u t h o r or c o r p u s .
1
Much
less c o m m o n , h o w e v e r , is the c o m p a r i s o n o f o n e b o o k o f P h i l o w i t h o n e N e w T e s t a m e n t b o o k . D o e s a c o m p a r i s o n b e t w e e n P h i l o ' s In Flaccum
a n d the B o o k
o f A c t s m a k e a n y s e n s e , o n e m i g h t ask, a n d the a n s w e r is y e s . B o t h b o o k s deal for a g r e a t part w i t h e v e n t s that t o o k p l a c e in t h e d e c a d e s a r o u n d t h e m i d d l e o f the first c e n t u r y C E in a M e d i t e r r a n e a n u r b a n setting w h e r e d i a s p o r a J e w s or J e w i s h c o m m u n i t i e s w e r e living. If for n o o t h e r r e a s o n , this w o u l d a l r e a d y b e e n o u g h justification for c o m p a r i n g t h e s e t w o b o o k s . A s i d e from that, a l t h o u g h w r i t i n g ' h i s t o r y , ' n e i t h e r o f the t w o a u t h o r s , P h i l o a n d ' L u k e ' , w e r e professional h i s t o r i o g r a p h e r s ; t h e y w e r e t h e o l o g i a n s w h o w a n t e d to c o n v e y a clear m e s s a g e a n d their ' h i s t o r i e s ' s t o o d in the service o f that m e s s a g e - h o w e v e r different their r e s p e c t i v e m e s s a g e s m a y h a v e b e e n . B o t h are a p o l o g e t i c historians o f a 2
v e r y special s o r t . P h i l o w a n t s to d e m o n s t r a t e that G o d has n e v e r a b a n d o n e d 3
the J e w i s h p e o p l e a n d will n e v e r d o s o . L u k e w a n t s to p r e s e n t an a p o l o g y for the m a i n p r o t a g o n i s t P a u l a n d his t e a c h i n g , a n d h e w a n t s to p o r t r a y C h r i s t i a n i t y 4
as a h a r m l e s s , e v e n beneficial r e l i g i o n . B o t h o f t h e m p i c t u r e their r e s p e c t i v e r e l i g i o n s as h a v i n g a p o s i t i v e o u t l o o k on a n d loyal attitude t o w a r d s t h e R o m a n e m p i r e , a n d for that r e a s o n the a p p a r e n t conflicts h a v e to b e attributed to t h e m a c h i n a t i o n s o f p e o p l e w i t h evil intent, or to m i s u n d e r s t a n d i n g . T h e s e are s o m e of the more general points of contact between the two documents. W e n o w turn to a m o r e detailed c o m p a r i s o n o f s o m e e l e m e n t s that b o t h w r i t i n g s h a v e in c o m m o n o n e w a y or another. If w e look at p e r s o n s , first a n d
1
E.g., R. Williamson, Philo and the Epistle to the Hebrews, Leiden 1970; B.W. Winter, Philo and Paul Among the Sophists, Cambridge 1997. For apologetic historiography see G.E. Sterling, Historiography and Self-Definition. Josephos, Luke-Acts and Apologetic Historiography (Supplements to Novum Testamentum 64), Leiden 1992. See R W. van der Horst, Philo s Flaccus. The First Pogrom, with Introduction, Translation, and Commentary (PACS 2), Leiden 2 0 0 3 , Introduction, esp. pp. 1-2, 16-17. C.K. Barrett, The Acts of the Apostles (ICC), vol. II, Edinburgh 1998, Ixxxii-cx. 2
3
4
99
Philo's In Flaccum and the Book of Acts
5
f o r e m o s t to b e m e n t i o n e d is the J e w i s h p u p p e t k i n g A g r i p p a I . H i s role in b o t h w r i t i n g s is m a r k e d l y a n d strikingly different, if n o t c o n t r a d i c t o r y at first sight. In In Flaccum
P h i l o tells u s that j u s t before t h e o u t b r e a k o f t h e p o g r o m that t o o k
p l a c e in A l e x a n d r i a in t h e s u m m e r o f the y e a r 3 8 , quite u n e x p e c t e d l y A g r i p p a s h o w e d u p in that city. W e a r e i n f o r m e d that shortly before, the e m p e r o r G a i u s g a v e A g r i p p a , the g r a n d s o n o f k i n g H e r o d the G r e a t , as his k i n g d o m a third o f his g r a n d f a t h e r ' s i n h e r i t a n c e , n a m e l y the part o v e r w h i c h P h i l i p the tetrarch, his p a t e r n a l u n c l e , u s e d to r u l e . O n t h e w a y to his n e w k i n g d o m in t h e s o u t h o f L e b a n o n h e m a d e a stop in A l e x a n d r i a a n d tried to r e m a i n i n c o g n i t o , b u t w i t h o u t s u c c e s s . T h e J e w s hailed h i m as a k i n g b u t t h e G r e e k s s t a g e d a m o c k c e r e m o n y in w h i c h t h e y h o n o u r e d a local J e w i s h lunatic b y calling h i m marin,
'our Lord'
in A r a m a i c . T h e i m p o r t a n c e o f A g r i p p a ' s role in the e v e n t s o f 3 8 b e c o m e s appar ent, h o w e v e r , o n l y in the s e c o n d h a l f o f the treatise. T h e w h o l e treatise h a s b e e n structured b y P h i l o as a d i p t y c h : t h e first h a l f is a b o u t t h e u n d e s e r v e d sufferings that the J e w s u n d e r w e n t in t h e p o g r o m , the s e c o n d h a l f a b o u t t h e w e l l - d e s e r v e d sufferings o f their e n e m y , t h e R o m a n g o v e r n o r F l a c c u s , w h o n o t o n l y let e v e r y t h i n g r u n out o f h a n d b u t e v e n actively e n c o u r a g e d t h e G r e e k s a n d E g y p t i a n s to c o m m i t m a n y atrocities a g a i n s t the J e w s . T h i s s e c o n d h a l f is i n t r o d u c e d b y p o s t p o n e d i n f o r m a t i o n a b o u t a d e c l a r a t i o n o f loyalty that t h e J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y o f A l e x a n d r i a h a d tried to s e n d to the n e w e m p e r o r , G a i u s C a l i g u l a , o n the o c c a sion o f his a c c e s s i o n to the t h r o n e in 3 7 . T h e y h a d to s e n d this d e c l a r a t i o n via the R o m a n g o v e r n o r , F l a c c u s , w h o , h o w e v e r , did not p a s s it o n ; h e s i m p l y w i t h h e l d it a n d p u t it into a drawer. A s P h i l o s a y s , t h e d r a m a t i c c o n s e q u e n c e o f that w a s that " o f all t h e p e o p l e u n d e r the s u n o n l y the J e w s w o u l d b e c o n s i d e r e d e n e m i e s o f t h e e m p e r o r " ( 1 0 1 ) . B u t h e g o e s on to say: G o d , h o w e v e r , took m e r c y o n us and s a w to it that not long thereafter w e had g o o d reason to think that our h o p e s w e r e not lost. For w h e n king Agrippa visited u s , w e informed h i m o f F l a c c u s ' intrigues, whereupon
he intervened
to rectify
the matter.
H e p r o m i s e d us that
he w o u l d forward the decree to the emperor - w h i c h , as w e later heard, is what he indeed did - with a p o l o g i e s for the delay, s h o w i n g that w e w e r e not s l o w at all in understanding the duty o f piety towards our benefactor and his family; that, o n the contrary, w e had b e e n z e a l o u s in this respect from the very b e g i n n i n g , but that w e had b e e n deprived o f the o p portunity to demonstrate this zeal in time due to the governor's m a l i c i o u s n e s s ( 1 0 2 - 3 ) .
W h a t t h e n follows is the m a i n part o f t h e s e c o n d h a l f o f t h e d i p t y c h , n a m e l y the d r a m a t i c story o f F l a c c u s ' arrest, trial, c o n d e m n a t i o n , d e p o r t a t i o n a n d d e a t h . P h i l o i m p l i e s h e r e w i t h o u t a n y d o u b t that A g r i p p a ' s interference w a s i n s t r u m e n tal in G o d ' s p l a n to p u n i s h F l a c c u s for his m i s d e e d s . N o w , for o u r p r e s e n t p u r p o s e s , w e n e e d n o t g o into the difficult q u e s t i o n o f w h e t h e r or n o t it w a s A g r i p p a ' s letter to G a i u s that w a s t h e d e c i s i v e factor in
5
D. Schwartz, Agrippa on this king.
I: The Last King of Judaea, Tubingen 1990, is the best monograph
100
Philo's In Flaccum and the Book of Acts
F l a c c u s ' d e m i s e - it w a s certainly n o t the o n l y factor, to say the least - b u t t h e i m p o r t a n t p o i n t is that A g r i p p a is p o r t r a y e d here (and e l s e w h e r e in the treatise) in a v e r y p o s i t i v e w a y . H e s a v e d t h e J e w s from further p e r s e c u t i o n a n d is the m a n w h o s a w to it that t h e p e r s e c u t o r o f the J e w i s h p e o p l e w a s rightly p u n i s h e d . In the i m m e d i a t e sequel to In Flaccum,
P h i l o ' s Legatio
ad Gaium, h e again presents
this k i n g as a p e r s o n w h o w e n t to great lengths in t a k i n g his responsibility for the safety o f t h e J e w i s h p e o p l e v e r y seriously. H i s c o u r a g e o u s s t a n c e in the is p a i n t e d w i t h fervour in a v e r y long section o f the b o o k (see Leg.
Legatio
261-348).
A s D a n n y S c h w a r t z s a y s , there w e see h i m " a s an a d v o c a t e o f t h e J e w s o f the 6
E m p i r e . " P h i l o p r o b a b l y k n e w the k i n g v e r y w e l l since his brother, the a l a b a r c h A l e x a n d e r , w a s the financier, t h e m o n e y l e n d e r to A g r i p p a , w h o w a s a n o t o r i o u s spendthrift ( a c c o r d i n g to J o s e p h u s , Ant.
19.352), a n d there are g o o d r e a s o n s to
s u r m i s e that, d u r i n g his stay in A l e x a n d r i a , A g r i p p a w a s e v e n P h i l o ' s o w n g u e s t ( h e s a y s , ' k i n g A g r i p p a visited us' [103]). H o w d o e s this p i c t u r e o f A g r i p p a as a p e r s o n w h o s a v e d his p e o p l e from (further) p e r s e c u t i o n relate to the i m a g e o f A g r i p p a p a i n t e d b y L u k e in the B o o k o f A c t s ? To state i m m e d i a t e l y the m o s t o b v i o u s : L u k e p r e s e n t s A g r i p p a ( w h o m o n l y h e calls H e r o d ) as a p e r s e c u t o r himself. In A c t s 12 h e p e r s e c u t e s t h e early c h u r c h in J e r u s a l e m : " H e killed J a m e s the b r o t h e r o f J o h n w i t h the s w o r d , a n d w h e n h e s a w that it p l e a s e d the J e w s , h e p r o c e e d e d to arrest P e t e r as w e l l . T h i s w a s d o n e d u r i n g the feast o f u n l e a v e n e d b r e a d " ( 1 2 : 2 - 3 ) . A t t h e e n d o f t h e s a m e chapter, h o w e v e r , w e r e a d h o w G o d p u n i s h e d t h e k i n g for this. After h a v i n g a d d r e s s e d a d e l e g a t i o n o f t h e p e o p l e o f Tyre a n d S i d o n in C a e s a r e a M a r i t i m a , " t h e p e o p l e s h o u t e d , ' T h e v o i c e of a g o d a n d not o f a m a n ! ' I m m e d i a t e l y an a n g e l of the L o r d s m o t e h i m b e c a u s e h e did not g i v e G o d the glory; a n d h e w a s e a t e n b y w o r m s a n d d i e d " ( 1 2 : 2 2 - 2 3 ) . S o m e r e m a r k s are in o r d e r h e r e .
7
Firstly, in P h i l o ' s b o o k F l a c c u s t o o k e v e r m o r e s e v e r e m e a s u r e s a g a i n s t t h e J e w s in order
to please
the Jew-haters
in A l e x a n d r i a , as P h i l o explicitly s a y s
(§ 82), a n d it is A g r i p p a w h o s a v e s t h e m ; but in the B o o k o f A c t s it is A g r i p p a h i m s e l f w h o t a k e s additional m e a s u r e s against the C h r i s t i a n s a n d h a s Peter p u t into p r i s o n in order
to please
the Jews
( 1 2 : 3 ) . A n d secondly, w h i l e F l a c c u s '
a c t i o n s a g a i n s t the J e w s t o o k p l a c e partly d u r i n g t h e feast o f S u k k o t h , as P h i l o e m p h a t i c a l l y m e n t i o n s (§ 116), the o n e b y A g r i p p a is e m p h a t i c a l l y said to h a v e t a k e n p l a c e d u r i n g P e s a c h ( 1 2 : 3 ) . It is as if L u k e h a d r e a d In Flaccum
and n o w
r e v e r s e s the roles. T h i s i m p r e s s i o n is further s t r e n g h t e n e d b y a c l o s e r look at the fate o f t h e m a i n culprits o f t h e t w o stories. In In Flaccum
w e see a typical e x a m p l e o f w h a t
L a c t a n t i u s w o u l d later call the mortes persecutorum. De mortibus
persecutorum,
6
Agrippa
7
See also Schwartz, Agrippa
A l m o s t at the e n d o f his
written in the s e c o n d d e c a d e o f the 4th c e n t u r y C E ,
11. 119-124.
101
Philo's In Flaccum and the Book of Acts
L a c t a n t i u s s a y s : " I n this w a y G o d v a n q u i s h e d all the p e r s e c u t o r s o f H i s N a m e , so that n o s t e m o r root o f theirs r e m a i n e d " ( 5 0 . 1 ) . T h i s is the c o n c l u s i o n o f a w o r k in w h i c h the a u t h o r d e s c r i b e s the m i s e r a b l e fate o f all t h o s e w h o tried to a n n i h i l a t e the a d h e r e n t s o f t h e C h r i s t i a n faith a n d w e r e c o n s e q u e n t l y p u n i s h e d 8
v e r y s e v e r e l y by G o d . L a c t a n t i u s h e r e s t a n d s in a long tradition: T h e t h e m e o f the v i o l e n t d e a t h of t h o s e w h o fight a g a i n s t or resisted the (or a) deity (or its w o r s h i p p e r s ) , w h o h a v e b e e n called Beopiaxoi since E u r i p i d e s , r e a c h e s b a c k far into t h e p r e - C h r i s t i a n p e r i o d , a n d there c a n b e n o d o u b t that P h i l o a n d L u k e w e r e a c q u a i n t e d w i t h it. S i n c e H e r o d o t u s there is a long r o w o f s i n n e r s w h o w e r e p u n ished for their impiety, quite often b y b e i n g eaten b y w o r m s (oxooA/nxoPQartog, cf. A c t s 12:23), a c c o r d i n g to tradition; s h i p w r e c k is the favorite k i n d o f p u n i s h m e n t for atheists ( e . g . , D i a g o r a s a n d P r o t a g o r a s ) ; further w e c o m e a c r o s s insanity, b e i n g struck by lightning, b e i n g torn apart b y w i l d a n i m a l s or h u m a n s , b e i n g b u r n t etc. T h e m o t i f w a s t a k e n u p early in J u d a i s m a n d C h r i s t i a n i t y (think o f the stories a b o u t the fates o f H o l o p h e r n e s , A n t i o c h u s IV, the e m p e r o r Titus, J u d a s 9
a. o . ) , a n d there c a n b e little d o u b t that, j u s t like L a c t a n t i u s , b o t h P h i l o a n d L u k e s t o o d in this G r a e c o - J e w i s h - C h r i s t i a n tradition o f w h a t W i l h e l m N e s t l e h a s called " L e g e n d e n v o m Tod d e r G o t t e s v e r a c h t e r . "
10
T h e significant t h i n g is that,
a c c o r d i n g to P h i l o , k i n g A g r i p p a is the o p p o n e n t o f the theomachos, a c c o r d i n g to L u k e h e is the theomachos
whereas
himself, w h o dies a d e a t h that is typical
o f m a n y ' G o t t e s v e r a c h t e r , ' n a m e l y b e i n g axcoXrixoBetoxog, eaten b y w o r m s .
1 1
T h e r e is little r e a s o n to d o u b t the historicity o f A g r i p p a ' s i n t e r v e n t i o n on b e h a l f o f the A l e x a n d r i a n J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y . P h i l o w o u l d h a v e m a d e a fool o f h i m s e l f if h e h a d written t h i n g s that m a n y p e o p l e in his e n v i r o n m e n t k n e w h a d not t a k e n p l a c e . T h e r e is n o r e a s o n either to d o u b t that w h a t L u k e w r i t e s a b o u t A g r i p p a ' s p e r s e c u t i o n of J e r u s a l e m C h r i s t i a n s has a historical k e r n e l . T r u e , it is h a r d to find the r e a s o n w h y A g r i p p a e n g a g e d in p e r s e c u t i o n o f t h e early C h r i s tians ( w h i c h a d m i t t e d l y w a s v e r y limited) b e c a u s e L u k e d o e s not m e n t i o n a n y r e a s o n , t h u s m i r r o r i n g P h i l o ' s silence o n the r e a s o n s for the p e r s e c u t i o n o f the A l e x a n d r i a n J e w s . B u t e v e n so b o t h a s p e c t s , A g r i p p a as o p p o n e n t o f a p e r s e c u t o r a n d A g r i p p a as a p e r s e c u t o r himself, are t w o sides o f the s a m e A g r i p p a - c o i n . It m a y b e a d d e d that the historicity o f L u k e ' s story a b o u t A g r i p p a ' s d e a t h is m o r e or less confirmed b y J o s e p h u s (Ant. 1 9 . 3 4 3 - 3 5 2 ) , but that L u k e , u n l i k e J o s e p h u s , stresses that h e w a s p u n i s h e d this w a y not so m u c h b e c a u s e o f his p e r s e c u t i o n o f the J e r u s a l e m c h u r c h b u t b e c a u s e h e a c c e p t e d a c c l a m a t i o n s that i m p l i e d his
8
J.L. Creed, (ed. and transl.), Lactantius: De mortibus persecutorum, Oxford 1984, xxxv-xl. Holophernes in Judith 13; Antiochus IV in 2 Mace. 9; Titus in b.Gittin 56b, Bereshit Rabba 10.7, Vayikra Rabba 22.3; Judas in Matt. 27:5. W. Nestle, "Legenden vom Tod der Gottesverachter," ARW33 (1936) 2 4 6 - 2 6 9 ; see now esp. W. Speyer, "Gortesfeind," RAC 11 (1981) 9 9 6 - 1 0 4 3 . " Many instances in Barrett, Acts I, 5 9 1 . 9
1 0
102
Philo's In Flaccum and the Book of Acts
divinity, w h e r e a s J o s e p h u s h a s A g r i p p a m a k e critical r e m a r k s on t h e s e a c c l a m a tions.
12
B u t in t h e final analysis " b o t h L u k e a n d J o s e p h u s a g r e e that A g r i p p a d i e d
b e c a u s e h e a t t e m p t e d to e x c e e d his natural l i m i t s . "
13
W h e n w e n o w t a k e a n o t h e r look at t h e A g r i p p a p a s s a g e in In Flaccum,
we
n o t i c e a different p r o b l e m , b u t o f a m i n o r n a t u r e , n a m e l y the k i n g ' s r o u t e from R o m e to L e b a n o n . A s P h i l o w r i t e s , " W h e n A g r i p p a w a s a b o u t to l e a v e , G a i u s a d v i s e d h i m n o t to m a k e the v o y a g e to Syria v i a B r i n d i s i u m , b e c a u s e that m a d e for a l o n g a n d t i r e s o m e trip, b u t to w a i t for t h e trade w i n d s a n d t h e n t a k e the s h o r t e r r o u t e v i a A l e x a n d r i a . H e said that the t r a d i n g v e s s e l s that d e p a r t e d from t h e r e w e r e v e r y fast a n d h a d h i g h l y e x p e r i e n c e d p i l o t s , w h o g u i d e d their ships like c h a r i o t e e r s d r i v i n g their r a c e - h o r s e s , k e e p i n g t h e m straight a n d on c o u r s e . A g r i p p a c o m p l i e d w i t h this a d v i c e b e c a u s e G a i u s w a s his m a s t e r b u t a l s o b e c a u s e it s e e m e d that t h e a d v i c e h e h a d b e e n g i v e n w a s u s e f u l " ( 2 6 ) . Several t h i n g s m a y b e said a b o u t this p a r a g r a p h . S t r a b o (Geogr.
6.3.7 [282]) indicates that the r o u t e v i a B r i n d i s i u m a n d G r e e c e
a n d the G r e e k islands a n d v i c e v e r s a w a s n o t u n c o m m o n at all; P h i l o h i m s e l f d e s c r i b e s it later on w h e n F l a c c u s is d e p o r t e d to the island o f A n d r o s , s o m e 100 k i l o m e t e r s off the c o a s t o f A t h e n s (Flacc.
1 5 2 - 1 5 6 ) . It w a s a l o n g a n d a r d u o u s
j o u r n e y w h i c h w o u l d n o r m a l l y t a k e 2 to 3 m o n t h s . T h e r o u t e via A l e x a n d r i a w a s n o t s h o r t e r - h e r e G a i u s , or P h i l o , is m i s t a k e n , or lying - b u t it is m u c h quicker. It w a s , h o w e v e r , also m o r e risky b e c a u s e o n e h a d to c r o s s large stretches o f o p e n sea. It w o u l d u s u a l l y t a k e 2 to 4 w e e k s d e p e n d i n g u p o n t h e w e a t h e r a n d o t h e r c i r c u m s t a n c e s (Pliny s a y s that the a b s o l u t e r e c o r d for t h e p a s s a g e w a s 9 d a y s , Nat. hist. 19.1.3). A different v i e w o f t h e s e t w o routes w a s r e c e n t l y p r o p o s e d b y t h e Israeli scholar Kushnir-Stein,
14
w h o a r g u e s that the n o r t h e r n r o u t e w a s shorter, e a s i e r
a n d less d a n g e r o u s , a n d that t h e r o u t e p r o p o s e d b y the e m p e r o r w a s l o n g e r a n d m o r e difficult, thus i m p l y i n g that G a i u s ' n o n s e n s i c a l a d v i c e h a s b e e n w h o l l y fab ricated b y P h i l o . B u t K u s h n i r - S t e i n t e n d s to o v e r l o o k t h e p r o b l e m o f t h e q u i c k availability o f large ships on the n o r t h e r n r o u t e , w h i c h w a s n o p r o b l e m w h e n travelling via Puteoli a n d A l e x a n d r i a ( b e c a u s e o f the frequent grain t r a n s p o r t s b e t w e e n t h e s e t w o h a r b o u r s ) , w h e r e a s o n the o t h e r r o u t e it c o u l d b e a real p r o b l e m ( e v e n a p a r t from t h e n e e d to c h a n g e ships several t i m e s ) . U n d e r s t a n d a b l y , later C h r i s t i a n p i l g r i m s to the H o l y L a n d from the West u s u a l l y travelled b y s h i p via A l e x a n d r i a as w e l l .
1 2
1 5
Barrett's remark that "Luke probably thought of him [Agrippa] as the first Gentile adver sary o f the church" (I, 575) is an improbable suggestion. Schwartz, Agrippa 149. A. Kushnir-Stein, "On the Visit of Agrippa I to Alexandria in A D 38," JJS 51 (2000) 232-233. E.D. Hunt, Holy Land Pilgrimage in the Later Roman Empire, AD 312-460, Oxford 1982, 53, 6 3 , 7 2 , 74. 1 3
1 4
15
103
Philo's In Flaccum and the Book of Acts
T h e t r a d i n g v e s s e l s m e n t i o n e d b y Philo w e r e m e r c h a n t s h i p s u s e d for the transport o f a w i d e v a r i e t y o f g o o d s such as g l a s s , paper, linen, m e t a l s , b u t b e t w e e n A l e x a n d r i a a n d R o m e t h e y w e r e e s p e c i a l l y for the t r a n s p o r t a t i o n o f corn, since A l e x a n d r i a w a s R o m e ' s m o s t i m p o r t a n t granary. T h e s e ships w e r e 16
e x p l o i t e d by large a s s o c i a t i o n s o f s h i p o w n e r s a n d their collegia.
P h i l o says that
A g r i p p a c h o s e o n e or m o r e o f t h e s e for a q u i c k j o u r n e y to A l e x a n d r i a , w h i c h s o u n d s quite p r o b a b l e . P h i l o also s a y s that " A g r i p p a c o m p l i e d . . . b e c a u s e it s e e m e d that t h e a d v i c e h e h a d b e e n g i v e n [by G a i u s ] w a s u s e f u l . " O n e m a y d o u b t this r e a s o n , for it h a s rightly b e e n s u g g e s t e d that A g r i p p a h a d t h i n g s to d o in A l e x a n d r i a a n d that P h i l o h a d his o w n a p o l o g e t i c r e a s o n s for c o v e r i n g this u p .
1 7
K u s h n i r - S t e i n p o i n t s out
that P h i l o ' s r e p e a t e d r e f e r e n c e to G a i u s ' a d v i c e (in § 31 it is e v e n said to h a v e b e e n his c o m m a n d m e n t ) s e r v e s to d r i v e h o m e the p o i n t that A g r i p p a ' s p r e s e n c e in A l e x a n d r i a w a s n o t o f his o w n c h o i c e , a p o i n t w h i c h s e e m s doubtful; s h e s u g g e s t s that his visit m a y h a v e b e e n intended
to i n t e r v e n e in the J e w i s h - G r e e k
conflict (see § 103!), w h i c h m a y h a v e s p a r k e d the riots for that v e r y r e a s o n .
18
But
in fact t h e r e is n o w a y o f k n o w i n g the actual r e a s o n for A g r i p p a ' s visit. B e that as it may, the s h o r t nautical e x c u r s u s on the b e s t r o u t e is illustrative, in an indirect w a y , for the p a s s a g e on P a u l ' s sea v o y a g e in A c t s 2 7 - 2 8 , albeit that it w a s exactly the o t h e r w a y r o u n d , n a m e l y from a coastal t o w n in n o r t h e r n Israel to R o m e , b u t partly v i a the r o u t e A l e x a n d r i a - R o m e . A c o m p a r i s o n w i t h the story o f P a u l ' s s t o r m y v o y a g e to R o m e , the final stage o f w h i c h w a s m a d e o n a ship from A l e x a n d r i a , indicates that c r o s s i n g the M e d i t e r r a n e a n w a s s o m e t h i n g that c o u l d n o t b e u n d e r t a k e n lightly a n d w i t h o u t careful p r e p a r a t i o n b o t h as far as the c h o i c e o f the route a n d the vessel a n d as far as t h e t i m e o f travelling w a s c o n c e r n e d . B o t h p a s s a g e s s h e d m u t u a l light u p o n e a c h o t h e r as r e g a r d s travel p r o b l e m s in the a n c i e n t M e d i t e r r a n e a n .
19
Finally s o m e r e m a r k s s h o u l d b e m a d e on s y n a g o g u e s , firstly in relation to t h e reference to t h e ' s y n a g o g u e o f the Libertino? in Flacc.
in A c t s 6:9. T h e r e is a p a s s a g e
53 w h e r e Philo s a y s that " h i s [ F l a c c u s ' ] attack o n o u r l a w s b y m e a n s
o f a seizure o f o u r s y n a g o g u e s , o f w h i c h h e h a d e v e n the n a m e s r e m o v e d , s e e m e d to b e succesful to h i m . " It is h a r d to say w h a t P h i l o has in m i n d w h e n he w r i t e s a b o u t s y n a g o g u e s " o f w h i c h h e h a d e v e n the names
r e m o v e d . " H o w the
r e m o v a l o f the s y n a g o g u e n a m e s in A l e x a n d r i a w a s b r o u g h t a b o u t is uncertain. W e r e n a m e plates r e m o v e d , or e r a s e d (by w a y o f damnatio
memoriae)!
Were
the b u i l d i n g s so t h o r o u g h l y d e s t r o y e d that t h e y w e r e n o l o n g e r r e c o g n i z a b l e as s y n a g o g u e b u i l d i n g s o f this or that n a m e ? W e d o n o t k n o w . A n y w a y , the e l e m e n t
1 6
1 7
1 8
1 9
P.W. van der Horst, Philo s Flaccus 117. E. g., Schwartz, Agrippa 74. Kushnir-Stein, "Agrippa's Visit" 230. L. Casson, Travel in the Ancient World, Baltimore 1974, passim.
104
Philo's In Flaccum and the Book of Acts
o f s y n a g o g u e names
is interesting in that b o t h e p i g r a p h i c e v i d e n c e a n d t h e B o o k
o f A c t s testify to this p h e n o m e n o n . F r o m v a l u a b l e e p i g r a p h i c e v i d e n c e in R o m e w e k n o w that s y n a g o g u e s t h e r e had n a m e s .
2 0
T h e r e w e r e s y n a g o g a l c o m m u n i t i e s w h i c h d e r i v e d their n a m e s
from p r o m i n e n t p e r s o n s , w h o m a y or m a y n o t h a v e b e e n p a t r o n s o f t h e s e c o n g r e g a t i o n s . T h e ouvaycoYTi AuYouaTTjaiarv (CIJ 2 8 4 , 3 0 1 , 3 3 8 , 3 6 8 , 4 1 6 , 4 9 6 = J I W E II, 5 4 7 , 9 6 , 169, 189, 194, 5 4 2 )
2 1
w a s n o d o u b t n a m e d after the first E m p e r o r ,
w h o is k n o w n to h a v e b e f r i e n d e d t h e J e w s ; a n d t h e ouvaYwyri 'AYQutTtnoicDv ( C I J 3 6 5 , 4 2 5 , 5 0 3 = J I W E II, 170, 130, 5 4 9 ) w a s v e r y p r o b a b l y n a m e d after A u g u s t u s ' s o n - i n - l a w a n d a d v i s e r M a r c u s A g r i p p a , w h o w a s a l s o a real friend o f t h e J e w s , as w e k n o w from literary s o u r c e s . O r w a s it p e r h a p s called after A g r i p p a I, t h e J e w i s h k i n g j u s t m e n t i o n e d w h o h a d lived in R o m e for so l o n g ?
2 2
The
oDvaYcoYti BO^OUUVTIOLOOV (CIJ 3 4 3 , 4 0 2 , 4 1 7 , 5 2 3 = J I W E II, 167, 100, 1 6 3 , 5 7 7 ) w a s n a m e d after a certain V o l u m n i u s , p r e s u m a b l y its p a t r o n , w h o is, h o w e v e r , c o m p l e t e l y u n k n o w n to u s . O t h e r c o m m u n i t i e s w e r e n a m e d after t h e district o r a r e a o f t h e city w h e r e t h e m e m b e r s lived o r w h e r e their h o u s e o f w o r s h i p w a s s i t u a t e d (or p r o b a b l y b o t h ) . T h e r e is a s y n a g o g u e o f t h e Ka^jtnoioi (CIJ 8 8 , 3 1 9 , 5 2 3 , p e r h a p s 4 3 3 = J I W E II, 2 8 8 , 5 6 0 , 5 7 7 , 1), n a m e d after t h e C a m p u s M a r t i u s ; a s y n a g o g u e o f t h e ZiBouQfjoioi (CIJ 18, 2 2 , 6 7 , 140, 3 8 0 , 35a, p e r h a p s 3 7 = J I W E II, 4 2 8 , 4 5 1 , 4 5 2 , 3 3 8 , 5 5 7 , 5 2 7 , 4 8 8 ) , n a m e d after t h e S u b u r a , o n e o f t h e most populous quarters of ancient R o m e . Probably also the synagogue of the Katamofjoioi ( C I J 3 0 4 , 3 1 6 , 3 8 4 , 5 0 4 , 5 3 7 , p e r h a p s 4 3 3 = J I W E II, 6 9 , 9 8 , 1 6 5 , 5 5 8 , 5 8 4 , 1) b e l o n g s h e r e : calcar(i)enses
a r e l i m e - b u r n e r s , a n d it s e e m s r e a s o n
a b l e to a s s u m e that this n a m e d e r i v e s from t h e q u a r t e r w h e r e t h e l i m e - b u r n e r s lived a n d w o r k e d a n d w h e r e the J e w i s h s y n a g o g u e b u i l d i n g w a s situated. F u r t h e r t h e r e a r e t w o s y n a g o g u e s n a m e d after the cities w h e r e their m e m b e r s o r i g i n a l l y c a m e from: a aDvcr/toYr] TputoXiTwv ( C I J 3 9 0 , 4 0 8 = J I W E II, 166, 113), p r o b a b l y T r i p o l i s in P h o e n i c i a , b u t p o s s i b l y T r i p o l i s in L i b y a b e i n g m e a n t h e r e ; a n d a ouvaYWYfi 'EAiag o r 'EAmag (CIJ 2 8 1 , 5 0 9 = J I W E II, 4 0 6 , 5 7 6 ) , p r o b a b l y n o t t h e ' s y n a g o g u e o f t h e olive t r e e ' ( w h i c h d o e s n o t m a k e s e n s e ) , b u t t h e s y n a g o g u e o f E l e a , a l t h o u g h it m u s t r e m a i n q u i t e u n c e r t a i n w h i c h o n e o f t h e v a r i o u s t o w n s 2 0
For the following see P.W. van der Horst, Ancient Jewish Epitaphs. An Introductory Survey of a Millennium of Jewish Funerary Epigraphy (300 BCE - 700 CE), Kampen 1991, 86-89. CIJ stands for Corpus Inscriptionum Judaicarum, ed. J.-B. Frey, 2 vols, Rome 1 9 3 6 - 1 9 5 2 . JIWE stands for Jewish Inscriptions of Western Europe. Volume 2: The City of Rome, ed. D. Noy, Cambridge 1995. Fergus Millar, in E. Schurer's History of the Jewish People in the Age of Jesus Christ III, Edinburgh 1986, 96, defends the thesis that these communities "may have originally consisted o f slaves and freedmen of Augustus or of Agrippa," and he refers to ol ex xfjg Kaioapog olxias in Phil. 4:22. This cannot be wholly ruled out. The less probable thesis that the Agrippesioi named themselves after the Jewish king Agrippa I (or II) is proposed, for example, by K. Galling, "Die jiidischen Katakomben in Rom als ein Beitrag zur jiidischen Konfessionskunde," Theologische Studien undKritiken 103 (1931) 353. 2 1
2 2
105
Philo's In Flaccum and the Book of Acts
n a m e d E l e a c a n be m e a n t h e r e . Finally, there are t w o s y n a g o g u e s n a m e d after characteristics o f their m e m b e r s . T h e r e is a ovvaywyi] 510,
'EBQcdoov (CIJ 2 9 1 , 3 1 7 ,
5 3 5 = J I W E II, 3 3 , 2 , 5 7 8 , 5 7 9 ) ; here o n e c a n c o m p a r e the ' s y n a g o g u e
o f t h e H e b r e w s ' in C o r i n t h (CIJ 7 1 8 ) , a n d also t h e o n e in L y d i a n P h i l a d e l p h i a (CIJ 7 5 4 ) , the n a t u r e o f w h i c h is m u c h d e b a t e d . D o e s it d e s i g n a t e a s y n a g o g u e o f H e b r e w s p e a k i n g p e r s o n s (but their inscriptions are m o s t l y in G r e e k ! ) , or a s y n a g o g u e w h e r e the liturgy w a s in H e b r e w (cf. J u s t i n i a n ' s Novella
146!), or the
s y n a g o g u e o f r e c e n t i m m i g r a n t s from P a l e s t i n e , or d o e s it s i m p l y m e a n : c o n g r e g a t i o n o f the J e w s , ' H e b r e w s ' b e i n g t h e self-identification o f w h a t w a s p o s s i b l y t h e first c o m m u n i t y o f J e w s in R o m e by w h i c h t h e y d i s t i n g u i s h e d t h e m s e l v e s from other (i. e., p a g a n ) religious or ethnic g r o u p s (note that auvaYcoyri w a s not an e x c l u s i v e l y J e w i s h t e r m ! ) ? T h i s last possibility s e e m s to b e f a v o u r e d b y the fact that J e w i s h c o m m u n i t i e s in G r e e c e a n d A s i a M i n o r also d e s i g n a t e d t h e m s e l v e s as ovvayoiyi]
(xcov) 'EBQcdoov (CIJ 7 1 8 a n d 7 5 4 ) . But this, t o o , r e m a i n s an e d u
c a t e d g u e s s at best. E q u a l l y d e b a t e d is the n a t u r e o f the ovvaywyi] or Beovcodwowv, ' o f the vernaculi'
BEQvaxA-riaicov
(CIJ 3 1 8 , 3 8 3 , 3 9 8 , 4 9 4 = J I W E II, 114, 117,
106, 5 4 0 ) . It has b e e n a r g u e d that vernaculus
m e a n s bovXoc, oixoyEvrig, h o u s e b o r n
slave, a n d that this is the s y n a g o g u e o f J e w i s h imperial slaves or f r e e d m e n . It w o u l d b e v e r y fascinating o f c o u r s e if t h e r e h a d b e e n a s e p a r a t e s y n a g o g u e o f i m p e r i a l slaves a n d / o r f r e e d m e n . In that c a s e it w o u l d b e c o m p a r a b l e to the auvaycoyfi ALBEQTIVCDV in J e r u s a l e m m e n t i o n e d in A c t s 6 : 9 . the e v i d e n c e w e h a v e for s y n a g o g u e n a m e s in a n t i q u i t y .
23
T h i s , h o w e v e r , is all
24
D o e s all this s h e d light u p o n t h e n a m e s o f the d e s t r o y e d s y n a g o g u e s in A l e x a n d r i a ? Unfortunately, apart from t h e p h e n o m e n o n o f n a m i n g s y n a g o g u e s in itself, it d o e s not, for w e c a n o n l y g u e s s at t h e A l e x a n d r i a n s y n a g o g u e n a m e s . W e r e s o m e o f t h e m called after o n e or the o t h e r o f the P t o l e m i e s ( w h i c h is n o t at all i m p r o b a b l e ) ? O r w e r e t h e y n a m e d after b e n e f a c t o r s s u c h as Julius C a e s a r a n d A u g u s t u s ? W e r e s o m e of t h e m called ' s y n a g o g u e o f the H e b r e w s ' or ' s y n a g o g u e o f the I o u d a i o i ' ? O r w e r e t h e y n a m e d after p r o f e s s i o n s or o c c u p a t i o n s such as s i l v e r s m i t h s , s h i p o w n e r s , m o n e y - l e n d e r s , w e a v e r s , o r o t h e r o c c u p a t i o n s that w e k n o w w e r e held by A l e x a n d r i a n J e w s ?
2 5
O r w e r e s o m e o f t h e m called after
the city districts, such as t h e D e l t a quarter, or after the c o u n t r y o f origin o f its m e m b e r s ? We s i m p l y d o n o t k n o w , unfortunately. B e that as it m a y , also in this m i n o r m a t t e r the B o o k o f A c t s a n d In Flaccum
2 3
confirm e a c h other.
For the translation problem o f this verse see Barret, Acts, I 324; also C. ClauBen, Versammlung, Gemeinde, Synagoge. Das hellenistisch-judische Umfeld der fruhchristlichen Gemeinden, Gottingen 2002, 116-117. J. Leonhardt, Jewish Worship in Philo of Alexandria, Tubingen 2 0 0 1 , 9 4 - 9 5 . Cf. the mention o f ' t h e synagogue of the Alexandrians' in Jerusalem in Tosefta Megillah 2:17(3:6). See my commentary on Flacc. 57. 2 4
2 5
106
Philo's In Flaccum and the Book of Acts
A s far as d i a s p o r a s y n a g o g u e s are c o n c e r n e d , a s e c o n d a s p e c t to b e d i s c u s s e d briefly is that o f their location in the vicinity o f water. It is not a feature m e n t i o n e d directly b y P h i l o , b u t h e s a y s that the J e w s , after h e a r i n g that F l a c c u s h a d b e e n arrested, c a m e o u t o f the g h e t t o a n d " t h e y p o u r e d o u t t h r o u g h the g a t e s a n d made their way to the nearby parts of their synagogues.
of the beach, for they had been
deprived
A n d t h e r e , s t a n d i n g in the p u r e s t p o s s i b l e p l a c e , t h e y cried
o u t w i t h o n e a c c o r d " (§ 122; t h e n follows a p r a y e r text). A p p a r e n t l y , in the v i e w o f t h e J e w s , w h e n t h e r e is n o s y n a g o g u e , the b e a c h is t h e n e x t p u r e s t p o s s i b l e p l a c e to p r a y to G o d . W h a t is t h e b a c k g r o u n d o f this r e m a r k ? It is n o t a b l e that J o s e p h u s m e n t i o n s a d e c r e e from the city o f H a l i c a r n a s s u s p e r m i t t i n g the J e w s " t o offer p r a y e r s n e a r the sea according
to their custom''' (Ant. 14.258). A n d there
is also a r c h a e o l o g i c a l e v i d e n c e for s y n a g o g u e s v e r y n e a r to the w a t e r - s i d e , for i n s t a n c e at D e l o s , O s t i a a n d at t h e L a k e o f T i b e r i a s .
26
The water was probably
n e e d e d for purificatory p u r p o s e s . It w o u l d s e e m that " t h e J e w s r e g a r d e d the s h o r e as the n e a r e s t e q u i v a l e n t as p l a c e o f w o r s h i p . "
2 7
B u t w h y is it called ' t h e
p u r e s t p o s s i b l e p l a c e ' (TO x a B a Q o b x a t o v ) ? It m o s t p r o b a b l y refers b a c k to § 5 6 w h e r e it is said that t h e J e w s " p o u r e d out to the b e a c h e s , t h e dunghills
a n d the
t o m b s , " a n d the ' p u r i t y ' of the p l a c e referred to h e r e is n o m o r e t h a n the fact that t h e p l a c e w h e r e t h e J e w s w e r e p r a y i n g w a s clear o f r u b b i s h h e a p s a n d far a w a y from t h e t o m b s .
2 8
T h i s is confirmed b y the fact that in Mos. 2 . 3 4 " t h e m o s t p u r e
p l a c e (TO xaBaQWTcaov) o u t s i d e t h e c i t y " is c h o s e n b y the S e p t u a g i n t transla tors for their s a c r e d w o r k , a n d Mos. 2.72 u s e s t h e s a m e w o r d for t h e site o f the J e r u s a l e m t e m p l e . "In all c a s e s , the idea o f the p u r i t y o f t h e p l a c e m a k e s g o o d s e n s e as that r e q u i r e d for the d w e l l i n g p l a c e o f G o d or c o m m u n i c a t i o n w i t h G o d in a q u a s i - t e m p l e s e t t i n g . "
29
T h i s e x p l a n a t i o n w o u l d also a c c o r d w i t h the later
r a b b i n i c p r o h i b i t i o n against p r a y i n g in dirty or s t i n k i n g p l a c e s (e. g., B a b y l o n i a n T a l m u d , Berakhot
2 4 b ) . B o t h t h e p e o p l e w o r s h i p p i n g a n d the p l a c e o f w o r s h i p
h a v e to b e p u r e (from a ritual p o i n t o f v i e w ) a n d clean (from a h y g i e n i c p o i n t o f v i e w ) , s e p a r a t e t h o u g h t h e s e c o n c e p t s m a y b e in p r i n c i p l e . T h i s is a m a t t e r o f s o m e r e l e v a n c e to the p a s s a g e in A c t s 16:13, w h e r e it is said that in Philippi P a u l " w e n t o u t s i d e the city gate to a river, 1 1
euche '
2 6
supposing there would be a
pros-
30
(either a p l a c e o f p r a y e r or a s y n a g o g u e ) . A l t h o u g h there is n o written
A. Runcsson, "Water and Worship: Ostia and the Ritual Bath in the Diaspora Synagogue," in B. Olsson et al. (eds.), The Synagogue of Ancient Ostia and the Jews of Rome, Stockholm 2001, 115-129; also ClauBen, Versammlung, Gemeinde, Synagoge 116-117, 2 2 0 - 2 2 1 . Leonhardt, Jewish Worship in Philo 79. For the translation problems of this passage see H. Box, Philonis Alexandrini In Flaccum, Oxford 1939, 100. S. Pearce, "Belonging and Not Belonging: Local Perspectives in Philo of Alexandria," in S. Jones & S. Pearce (eds.), Jewish Local Patriotism and Self-Identification in the GraecoRoman Period, Sheffield 1998, 104 note 138. See on this question the recent discussion by ClauBen, Versammlung, Gemeinde, Syna goge 118. 2 7
2 8
2 9
3 0
107
Philo's In Flaccum and the Book of Acts
p r e c e p t to this effect to b e found in a n y o f t h e a n c i e n t J e w i s h s o u r c e s , it w o u l d s e e m that the c o m b i n a t i o n o f the texts in A c t s , In Flaccum,
and Josephus with
the a r c h a e o l o g i c a l e v i d e n c e s t r o n g l y s u g g e s t s the e x i s t e n c e o f a J e w i s h c u s t o m ( e v e n if n o t g e n e r a l l y f o l l o w e d ) o f w o r s h i p p i n g n e a r w a t e r . M u c h m o r e c o u l d b e said a b o u t In Flaccum
31
and Acts by way of comparison.
O n e c o u l d deal with the role o f the city t h e a t r e ( s ) in m o b riots (§§ 4 1 , 138 a n d A c t s 19); w i t h the list of c o u n t r i e s w h e r e J e w s live (in § 4 6 , as c o m p a r e d to the similar list in A c t s 2:11); w i t h the traditional triad in § 158: " I , F l a c c u s , w a s b o r n a n d b r o u g h t u p a n d e d u c a t e d e t c . " as c o m p a r e d to t h e s a m e triad in P a u l ' s s t a t e m e n t in A c t s 2 2 : 3 ;
3 2
w i t h t h e role o f the personified D i k e in b o t h Flacc.
104
a n d A c t s 2 8 : 4 , w h e r e t h e p a g a n i n h a b i t a n t s o f M e l i t e , after the s h i p w r e c k a n d r e s c u e o f Paul a n d his fellow travellers, react to P a u l ' s b e i n g bitten b y a v e n o m o u s s n a k e b y s a y i n g : " N o d o u b t this m a n is a m u r d e r e r . T h o u g h h e h a s e s c a p e d from the sea, D i k e h a s n o t a l l o w e d h i m to l i v e . "
33
And very much more.
Suffice it for t h e m o m e n t to say that e v e n this superficial s u r v e y o f s o m e e l e m e n t s in In Flaccum
as c o m p a r e d to the B o o k o f A c t s m a k e s clear b e y o n d d o u b t
that P h i l o a n d L u k e lived in t h e s a m e w o r l d , that t h e y n o t o n l y h a d a c o m m o n l a n g u a g e but also a c o m m o n c o n c e p t u a l f r a m e w o r k , a n d that a N e w T e s t a m e n t s c h o l a r c a n o n l y n e g l e c t P h i l o ' s historical w o r k s to his or h e r d e t r i m e n t .
31
Cf. also Ep. Arist. 305 (about the seventy translators o f the Torah): "Following the custom o f all the Jews, they washed their hands in the sea in the course of their prayers to God, and then propceeded to the reading and explication of each passage." See van der Horst, Philo's Flaccus 228, for the details. See P.W. van der Horst, "Dike," in K. van der Toorn, B. Becking & P.W. van der Horst (eds.), Dictionary of Deities and Demons in the Bible, 2nd ed., Leiden - Grand Rapids 1999, 250-252. 3 2
3 3
Common Prayer in Philo's In Flaccum 121-124 In this p a p e r I will deal briefly w i t h a p r a y e r found in P h i l o ' s In Flaccum. w o r k In Flaccum
The
is o n e o f the t w o so-called historical treatises o f this A l e x a n
drian J e w i s h philosopher. T h e treatise certainly d e s c r i b e s historical e v e n t s b u t it d o e s so w i t h so m a n y novellistic e m b e l l i s h m e n t s a n d w i t h s u c h an o b v i o u s t h e o l o g i c a l p u r p o s e that the d e s i g n a t i o n ' h i s t o r i c a l t r e a t i s e ' n e e d s s o m e qualifi c a t i o n . A p a r t from w r i t i n g history P h i l o also w a n t s to c o n s o l e his c o r e l i g i o n i s t s b y m e a n s o f the c o n v i c t i o n that G o d , in his b e n i g n p r o v i d e n c e , n e v e r will d e s e r t his p e o p l e in t i m e s o f great distress (the parallel w i t h the b o o k o f E s t h e r is clear). F u r t h e r m o r e , h e is p r o b a b l y trying to w a r n t h e n e w R o m a n g o v e r n o r o f E g y p t n o t to follow in the footsteps o f his p r e d e c e s s o r . F o r w h a t h a d h a p p e n e d ? P h i l o s a y s that in the late s u m m e r o f 3 8 , w i t h the c o n n i v a n c e a n d e v e n the s u p p o r t o f F l a c c u s , R o m a n g o v e r n o r o f A l e x a n d r i a a n d E g y p t from 3 2 - 3 8 C E , a m o b o f G r e e k s a n d E g y p t i a n s b e g a n a p o g r o m a g a i n s t t h e large J e w i s h c o m m u n i t y o f Alexandria. Synagogues and houses were destroyed, hundreds of Jewish m e n a n d w o m e n t o r t u r e d a n d m u r d e r e d ; it w a s , in short, a ' K r i s t a l l n a c h t ' e x a c t l y 1900 y e a r s avant la date. S o o n thereafter, h o w e v e r , F l a c c u s w a s arrested at the c o m m a n d o f t h e R o m a n E m p e r o r , G a i u s ( C a l i g u l a ) , s e n t e n c e d to d e p o r t a t i o n to an island, a n d there finally e x e c u t e d . In t h e p u n i s h m e n t o f F l a c c u s , P h i l o sees a proof of divine providence.
1
I m m e d i a t e l y after the n e w s of F l a c c u s ' arrest h a d s p r e a d t h r o u g h o u t A l e x a n dria, the J e w s c a m e t o g e t h e r to c e l e b r a t e it. T h i s is w h a t P h i l o w r i t e s a b o u t that celebration: ( 1 2 1 ) W h e n they heard that Flaccus had b e e n arrested and w a s already within the hunter's net, they stretched out their arms to heaven and b e g a n to sing s o n g s o f praise and victory to G o d w h o o v e r s e e s all human affairs. T h e y said, "O Lord, w e are not delighted at the punishment o f our e n e m y , for w e have learnt from our holy l a w s that w e should s y m p a thize w i t h our f e l l o w m e n . But it is right to g i v e thanks to y o u for having taken pity and c o m p a s s i o n on us and for having relieved our constant and incessant oppression."
1
For recent discussions of these events see P. Schafer, Judeophobia. Attitudes toward the Jews in the Ancient World, Cambridge MA-London 1997, 1 3 6 - 1 6 0 ; and J. Meleze Modrzejewski, The Jews of Egypt From Rameses II to Emperor Hadrian, Philadelphia-Jerusalem 1995, 1 6 1 - 1 8 3 . The most recent edition of In Flaccum is A. Pelletier, Contre Flaccus (Les Oeuvres de Philon d'Alexandrie, vol. 31), Paris 1967. The most recent commentary is P.W. van der Horst, Philo s Flaccus: The First Pogrom (PACS 2), Leiden 2003.
Common Prayer
in Philo's In Flaccum
109
121-124
( 1 2 2 ) After they had spent all night singing h y m n s and other s o n g s , at daybreak they poured out through the gates and m a d e their w a y to the nearby b e a c h e s , for they w e r e deprived o f their s y n a g o g u e s . A n d there, standing in the purest place, they cried out with o n e accord: ( 1 2 3 ) "O a l m i g h t y King o f mortals and immortals, w e have c o m e here to call on earth and sea, on air and heaven, w h i c h are the parts o f the universe, and o n the universe as a w h o l e , to offer thanks to y o u . In these alone w e can d w e l l , e x p e l l e d as w e are from all m a n - m a d e buildings, deprived o f the city and the public and private areas within its w a l l s , the only p e o p l e under the sun to b e c o m e c i t y l e s s and h o m e l e s s b e c a u s e o f the m a l i c e o f their governor. ( 1 2 4 ) But y o u m a k e us realize that w e m a y b e confident that what is still in need o f restoration will indeed be restored, because y o u h a v e already b e g u n to answer our prayers. After all, y o u suddenly brought d o w n the c o m m o n e n e m y o f our nation, w h o thought so highly o f himself, w h o w a s the instigator o f our misfortunes and e x p e c t e d that these things w o u l d bring him fame. A n d w h e n y o u did s o , y o u did not wait until h e w a s already far a w a y s o that those w h o had suffered badly under him w o u l d o n l y have learnt about it by hearsay, and h e n c e h a v e less satisfaction, no, y o u did s o right here, so c l o s e by that it w a s almost before the very e y e s o f those w h o m he had w r o n g e d . Thus y o u g a v e them a clearer picture o f y o u r swift and u n e x p e c t e d intervention."
Before w e t a k e a closer look at s o m e o f the e l e m e n t s o f this prayer, it should b e n o t e d that there is o n e m o r e p r a y e r in P h i l o ' s In Flaccum,
and that is the o n e
s p o k e n by F l a c c u s himself. In his p l a c e o f b a n i s h m e n t h e is g i v e n o v e r to great despair a n d finally p r a y s to G o d - the G o d o f the J e w i s h p e o p l e to b e sure - in o r d e r to confess that he n o w realizes that " y o u are not indifferent to the nation o f the J e w s , n o r is w h a t they assert about y o u r p r o v i d e n c e false, for all w h o say that the J e w s d o not h a v e you for a c h a m p i o n a n d defender g o astray from s o u n d opin ion. I a m a clear p r o o f of this, for all the m a d acts that I h a v e c o m m i t t e d against the J e w s I h a v e n o w suffered m y s e l f ( 1 7 0 ) . In these final w o r d s the c o n t e n t s o f the entire b o o k are c o v e r e d . T h e idea that the p e r s e c u t o r of G o d ' s p e o p l e is p u n i s h e d in a c o m m e n s u r a t e w a y so m u c h g o v e r n s the w h o l e treatise In
Flaccum
that P h i l o d e v o t e s half o f the b o o k (95 out o f 191 p a r a g r a p h s ! ) to the description o f F l a c c u s ' downfall. Therefore the treatise " m a y b e characterized as the passion story of the j u s t l y cursed a n d p u n i s h e d governor, p r e c e d e d by the story o f his 2
m i s d e e d s a n d c r i m e s against G o d ' s p e o p l e . " F l a c c u s ' p r a y e r s u m m a r i z e s this p e r s p e c t i v e in a c o n c i s e way. A l t h o u g h w e c a n n o t take this p r a y e r into a c c o u n t as it is not a c o m m o n prayer, it is w o r t h looking at in t e r m s of the w a y it m i r r o r s the p u b l i c p r a y e r of the g a t h e r e d J e w s in that in this individual p r a y e r too the e n e m y o f the J e w s e m p h a s i z e s that G o d d o e s n o t a b a n d o n his p e o p l e a n d that it is his 3
p r o v i d e n c e that m a k e s things turn from evil to g o o d . T h i s is i m p o r t a n t b e c a u s e
2
P. Borgen, "Two Philonic Prayers and Their Contexts," NTS 45 (1999) 302. On providence in the ancient world in general see the short but excellent contribution by R.L. Gordon, "Pronoia," in K. van der Toorn, B. Becking and P.W. van der Horst (eds.), Dic tionary of Deities and Demons in the Bible, Leiden-Grand Rapids 1999 ( 2 ed.), 6 6 4 - 6 6 7 . On providence in Philo P. Frick, Divine Providence in Philo of Alexandria, Tubingen 1999. 3
n d
110
Common Prayer in Philo's In Flaccum
121-124
i m m e d i a t e l y after the p r a y e r b y the J e w s , Philo s a y s that he will p r e s e n t a n o t h e r p r o o f that " d i v i n e p r o v i d e n c e i n t e r v e n e d " (§ 125). M o r e o v e r , in the v e r y last line o f the w h o l e treatise h e r e m a r k s that the fate o f F l a c c u s p r o v e d b e y o n d d o u b t that " t h e J e w i s h p e o p l e h a d not b e e n d e p r i v e d o f the h e l p of G o d " ( 1 9 1 ) . So b o t h p r a y e r s stand in this f r a m e w o r k of a story a b o u t G o d ' s providential intervention in history in o r d e r to save his p e o p l e from a catastrophic e v e n t and to p u n i s h its o p p o n e n t s . In a certain sense it is, therefore, right w h e n the G e r m a n translator o f this treatise, G e r s c h m a n n , calls In Flaccum
w e see in the o p e n i n g p a r a g r a p h s o f the Legatio o f In Flaccum,
4
a ' T r o s t s c h r i f t . ' It certainly w a s , as ad Gaium,
the i m m e d i a t e sequel
w h e r e P h i l o s p e a k s a b o u t p e o p l e w h o " h a v e c o m e to d i s b e l i e v e
that the deity e x e r c i s e s his p r o v i d e n c e for m e n , a n d particularly for the suppliant n a t i o n w h i c h the F a t h e r a n d K i n g of the u n i v e r s e a n d the s o u r c e o f all things has t a k e n for his p o r t i o n " (Legatio
3), n a m e l y the p e o p l e o f Israel. So, Philo h a s to
a d d r e s s a real a n d u r g e n t pastoral need. P h i l o i n t r o d u c e s the w h o l e s c e n e by s a y i n g that the J e w s " s t r e t c h e d out their a r m s to h e a v e n " w h e n they b e g a n to p r a i s e G o d . T h e raising o f h a n d s is also m e n t i o n e d in the d e s c r i p t i o n o f the E g y p t i a n J e w s in 3 M a c e . 5 : 2 5 , w h e r e t h e y b e s e e c h G o d to s a v e t h e m from the k i n g ' s p l a n to e x e c u t e all J e w s . In J o s e p h u s , t o o , w e find several r e f e r e n c e s to this p r a y e r g e s t u r e , e. g. in t h e c a s e o f the long p r a y e r o f M o s e s in Ant. 4 : 4 0 . A n d o n e is also r e m i n d e d o f the raised h a n d s c a r v e d a b o v e t h e J e w i s h i m p r e c a t i o n incised o n t h e f a m o u s t o m b s t o n e from 5
R h e n e i a . B u t t h e r a i s i n g o f h a n d s is, o f c o u r s e , a w i d e s p r e a d p r a y e r p o s t u r e in antiquity in g e n e r a l .
6
N o w b a c k to t h e text o f t h e p u b l i c p r a y e r itself. A c t u a l l y there are t w o p r a y e r s , a v e r y short o n e in § 121 a n d a l o n g e r o n e in §§ 1 2 3 ^ 1 . T h e short o n e a m o u n t s to h a r d l y m o r e t h a n a d i s c l a i m e r of m a l i c i o u s p l e a s u r e , ' S c h a d e n f r e u d e . ' F o r this r e a s o n a s t u d y b y the F r e n c h p h i l o n i c s c h o l a r Valentin N i k i p r o w e t z k y , that e x a m i n e s this p r a y e r in In Flaccum,
b e a r s the title 'Schadenfreude
chez Philon
7
d ' A l e x a n d r i e ? " T h e p e o p l e say to G o d : " W e are n o t d e l i g h t e d at the p u n i s h m e n t o f o u r e n e m y , for w e h a v e learnt from o u r h o l y l a w s that w e s h o u l d s y m p a t h i z e w i t h o u r f e l l o w m e n . " T h e s e are p i o u s , p e r h a p s all t o o p i o u s w o r d s from the p e n o f P h i l o , for t h e w h o l e s e c o n d part of the b o o k s e e m s to b e n o t h i n g else t h a n a 4
K.H. Gerschmann, "Gegen Flaccus," in Philo von Alexandria, Die Werke in deutscher Ubersetzung, vol. 7, ed. W. Theiler, Berlin 1964, 124. Corpus Inscriptionum Judaicarum 725, with the comments by P.W. van der Horst, Ancient Jewish Epitaphs. An Introductory Survey of a Millennium of Jewish Funerary Epigraphy (300 BCE- 700 CE), Kampen 1 9 9 1 , 1 4 8 - 1 4 9 ; cf. also W. Horbury, "Early Christians on Synagogue Prayer and Imprecation," in G.N. Stanton & G.G. Stroumsa (eds.), Tolerance and Intolerance in Early Judaism and Christianity, Cambridge 1998, 307. K. Gross, Menschenhand und Gotteshand in Antike und Christentum, Stuttgart 1985, 1 4 - 2 4 ; S. Pulleyn, Prayer in Greek Religion, Oxford 1997, 189. V. Nikiprowetzky, Etudes philoniennes, Paris 1996, 9 6 - 1 0 9 . 5
6
7
Common Prayer in Philo's In Flaccum
121-124
111
g l a r i n g d e m o n s t r a t i o n of ' S c h a d e n f r e u d e ' on his part. T h e E n g l i s h translator o f P h i l o , F.H. C o l s o n , w r y l y r e m a r k s : " T h i s is easily said b u t n o t so easily d o n e , a n d if Philo b e l i e v e d that h e h i m s e l f h a d learned the lesson, I think h e d e c e i v e d 8
h i m s e l f . " It is true that P h i l o gloats u p o n t h e series o f m i s f o r t u n e s that c o m e over Flaccus, which he describes with obvious pleasure. Here, however, he says that the Torah o f M o s e s t e a c h e s o t h e r w i s e . M a y b e P h i l o is t h i n k i n g o f the p a s s a g e in E x . 2 3 : 4 - 5 a b o u t b r i n g i n g b a c k the d o m e s t i c a n i m a l s o f o n e ' s e n e m y w h e n o n e sees t h e m g o i n g astray or h e l p i n g t h e m w h e n t h e y c o l l a p s e u n d e r a b u r d e n . M u c h m o r e likely, h o w e v e r , h e d o e s not allude to a p a s s a g e from the Torah, b u t to Prov. 2 4 : 1 7 - 1 8 : " D o not rejoice w h e n y o u r e n e m y falls a n d let not y o u r heart b e g l a d w h e n h e s t u m b l e s , lest the L o r d see it a n d b e d i s p l e a s e d a n d 9
turn a w a y his a n g e r from h i m . " T h e fact that P h i l o ' s o w n ' b e h a v i o u r ' w o u l d s e e m to b e so m u c h at o d d s w i t h w h a t h e says here a b o u t biblical ideas a n d ideals c a n b e e x p l a i n e d , as N i k i p r o w e t z k y s u g g e s t e d , o n the b a s i s o f t h e final lines o f t h e l o n g e r p r a y e r w h e r e h e s a y s that " w h e n y o u did so [i.e., p u n i s h e d F l a c c u s ] , it w a s not w h e n he w a s a l r e a d y far a w a y , so that t h o s e w h o h a d suffered b a d l y u n d e r h i m w o u l d h a v e learnt a b o u t it o n l y b y h e a r s a y a n d h e n c e h a v e h a d less satisfaction, n o , y o u did so j u s t h e r e , so c l o s e b y that it w a s a l m o s t before the e y e s o f t h o s e w h o m h e h a d w r o n g e d , a n d t h u s y o u g a v e t h e m a clearer i m a g e o f y o u r swift a n d u n l o o k e d for i n t e r v e n t i o n . " H e r e the e m p h a s i s is clearly on t h e fact that s e e i n g the downfall o f their e n e m y right before their o w n e y e s c o n v i n c e s t h e J e w s that G o d c a n a n d will i n t e r v e n e q u i c k l y a n d effectively. So the ' S c h a d e n f r e u d e ' - s a y s N i k i p r o w e t z k y - is not a goal in itself, it s t a n d s in the s e r v i c e o f the c r e a t i o n o f h o p e a n d faith a m o n g G o d ' s p e o p l e . T h e i r j o y is n o t a b o u t the m i s e r y o f a n individual p e r s o n , it is a b o u t t h e m e a n i n g a n d i m p l i cation o f this, n a m e l y the merciful intervention o f G o d . " M e m e d a n s ses ecrits h i s t o r i q u e s , P h i l o n n e c e s s e p a s d ' e t r e un t h e o l o g i e n . "
10
W h a t h e a i m s at in his
treatise is n o t to d e m o n s t r a t e a t r i u m p h o f r e v e n g e b u t o n e o f d i v i n e j u s t i c e . T h a t is also w h y at t h e e n d o f t h e b o o k P h i l o s a y s a b o u t F l a c c u s ' d e a t h : " J u s t i c e w a n t e d that single b o d y to r e c e i v e the s a m e n u m b e r o f w o u n d s as that o f the J e w s w h o h a d b e e n u n l a w f u l l y m u r d e r e d by h i m " ( 1 9 0 ) .
T h e longer p r a y e r (§§ 123^4) b e g i n s w i t h the striking a c c l a m a t i o n o f G o d as " a l m i g h t y K i n g o f m o r t a l s a n d i m m o r t a l s . " T h a t G o d is the k i n g o f h u m a n s is a cur rent idea, but his b e i n g k i n g of i m m o r t a l s is strange at first sight b e c a u s e it s o u n d s
8
F.H. Colson in vol. 9 of the LCL edition o f Philo, Cambridge MA-London 1941, 3 0 1 . I. Heinemann, Philons griechische undjudische Bildung, Breslau 1932 (repr. HildesheimN e w York 1973), 5 2 6 - 7 , explains this misattribution of a passage from the Writings to the Torah from Philo's lack of knowledge of biblical books other than those of the Pentateuch. This is hardly convincing. Also elsewhere, nomos is sometimes used to refer to the Jewish Bible as a whole. Nikiprowetzky, Etudes 102. 9
1 0
112
Common Prayer
in Philo's In Flaccum
121-124
polytheistic. I f i m m o r t a l s ' m e a n s ' g o d s , ' it w o u l d i m p l y that G o d is n o t the o n l y b u t the h i g h e s t g o d in a p a n t h e o n . It is then a variant o f the w e l l - k n o w n H o m e r i c formula 'father o f m e n a n d g o d s ' in p a g a n literature. A n d indeed, e l s e w h e r e Philo s p e a k s o f " H i m , w h o m all G r e e k s a n d b a r b a r i a n s u n a n i m o u s l y a c k n o w l e d g e , the s u p r e m e F a t h e r o f g o d s a n d m e n a n d the m a k e r o f the w h o l e u n i v e r s e "
(Spec,
leg. II 165). It w o u l d a l m o s t s e e m here as if Philo tries to blur the distinction b e t w e e n m o n o t h e i s t s a n d polytheists. T h i s n e e d not b e implied, h o w e v e r , if w e t a k e into a c c o u n t that P h i l o here m a y d r a w u p o n traditional p r a y e r formulae as w e c o m e across t h e m in J e w i s h prayers such as the o n e by E s t h e r (addition C 23in the L X X ) a n d the s y n a g o g a l p r a y e r incorporated in the Apostolic
Constitutions
(VII 3 3 , 2). In b o t h o f these texts w e see G o d i n v o k e d as ' k i n g of the g o d s . ' T h i s formula is e v i d e n t l y p a t t e r n e d u p o n the originally polytheistic formulations such as w e find in Ps. 95:3 and 8 2 : 1 , w h e r e G o d is called ' t h e great king a b o v e all g o d s ' a n d the like. T h i s is n o m o r e than a verbal relic o f an earlier (polytheistic) stage in the history of Israelite religion. A s u s e d b y the a u t h o r s o f these later p r a y e r s they certainly d o not i m p l y a polytheistic stance. P h i l o e v e n has M o s e s u s e this formula in a p r a y e r in w h i c h t h e great L a w g i v e r a d d r e s s e s G o d as " L o r d , K i n g o f the g o d s " (Conf. 173, in an inaccurate q u o t e from D e u t . 10:17). T h e n follows t h e p h r a s e , " W e h a v e c o m e h e r e to call on earth a n d sea, o n air a n d h e a v e n , w h i c h are the parts o f the u n i v e r s e , a n d o n the u n i v e r s e as a w h o l e , to offer t h a n k s to y o u . " T h e r e h a s b e e n s o m e d e b a t e o v e r w h e t h e r or not P h i l o refers h e r e to t h e four e l e m e n t s earth, water, air, a n d fire, w h i c h d o e s n o t s e e m an u n r e a s o n a b l e s u p p o s i t i o n at first sight. B u t t h e r e is n o w a g r o w i n g c o n s e n s u s that P h i l o h e r e u s e s a p o p u l a r classification to e x p r e s s the four r e g i o n s o f t h e visible w o r l d . H e m e n t i o n s the s a m e four in the s a m e w a y as h e r e also in Vita Mosis
1 1 1 3 a n d II 3 7 , as ' p a r t s [ = r e g i o n s ] o f the u n i v e r s e ' a n d n o t as e l e m e n t s .
A s a m a t t e r o f fact P h i l o n o w h e r e explicitly identifies h e a v e n w i t h fire a n d h e n e v e r m e n t i o n s h e a v e n as the fourth e l e m e n t , e v e n t h o u g h h e k n e w the t h e o r y o f t h e four e l e m e n t s . " S o w h a t is m e a n t h e r e is that the w h o l e u n i v e r s e is called u p o n to j o i n t h e Israelites in t h a n k i n g G o d for his d e l i v e r a n c e . T h i s is d o n e , so the a u t h o r s a y s , b e c a u s e the J e w s h a v e b e e n r o b b e d o f their h o m e s a n d o t h e r p r i v a t e a n d p u b l i c b u i l d i n g s so that o n l y t h e r e g i o n s o f the u n i v e r s e are left to t h e m as p l a c e s to d w e l l . O n e s h o u l d n o t u s e this, o f c o u r s e , to a r g u e that P h i l o c o n s i d e r e d t h e sea a n d the air as p l a c e s for h u m a n s to live in. T h e e m p h a s i s is on t h e h o m e l e s s state o f the J e w s after the p o g r o m . T h e train of t h o u g h t in § 124 is not easy to follow ( w h i c h is partly d u e to uncer tainties in the translation), b u t it s e e m s to b e as follows: G o d h a s m a d e a start on the fulfilling o f their p r a y e r s by c a u s i n g their e n e m y to fall d o w n a n d that g i v e s t h e m h o p e that h e will g o on n o w b y also restoring other things for t h e m that they
11
H. Box, Philonis Alexandrini In Flaccum, London 1939, 113-114. O f course, calling heaven and earth to witness is a welLknown biblical theme; see Deut. 4:26; 30:19; 31:28 etc.
Common Prayer
113
in Philo's In Flaccum 121- 124
h a v e lost. A s is often the c a s e in Philo, it is p o s s i b l e for t h a n k s g i v i n g to function in fact as a p e t i t i o n .
12
A l t h o u g h it is clear that Philo has the J e w s urge G o d not to
leave it at that, w h a t exactly Philo has in m i n d w h e n he s p e a k s of the a m e n d m e n t o f things that are still in n e e d o f restoration is uncertain. It is certainly not (only) the d e m o l i s h e d h o u s e s a n d s y n a g o g u e s that he has in m i n d ; there m u s t be m o r e , b u t w e can only g u e s s . D o e s h e e x p r e s s h e r e the h o p e for G o d ' s support in the J e w i s h striving for citizenship o f A l e x a n d r i a , that h a d b e e n o n e o f the m a i n points o f friction b e t w e e n J e w s a n d n o n - J e w s in the p e r i o d p r e c e d i n g the p o g r o m ? O r is it only about the restoration o f the J e w i s h politeuma
that F l a c c u s h a d a b o l i s h e d ?
We s i m p l y d o not know. A n y w a y , Philo d o e s not stress the point a n d m a k e s only a v a g u e reference. H e d o e s e m p h a s i z e , h o w e v e r , in the r e m a i n i n g lines, that G o d has i m m e n s e l y c o n s o l a t e d his p e o p l e by not d e l a y i n g his p u n i s h m e n t of F l a c c u s till after his t e r m , w h i c h w o u l d h a v e g i v e n t h e m m u c h less p l e a s u r e , but by d o i n g it " a l m o s t before the eyes o f t h o s e w h o m he h a d w r o n g e d . " T h a t w a s so important b e c a u s e b y d o i n g so G o d g a v e t h e m a clearer impression, a n d therefore a stronger c o n v i c t i o n , o f h o w swiftly h e could a n d w o u l d intervene, w h i c h is o f c o u r s e a s o u r c e o f great e n c o u r a g e m e n t to the J e w s .
1 3
In spite o f several e c h o e s from the b o o k o f P s a l m s , this p r a y e r d o e s not h a v e close parallels e l s e w h e r e , b e i n g t o o m u c h o f a P h i l o n i c creation. T h e r e are also n o e c h o e s o f s y n a g o g a l p r a y e r s as w e k n o w t h e m , w h i c h is to b e e x p e c t e d since in P h i l o ' s t i m e there w a s n o t yet a n y form o f statutory p r a y e r in the s y n a g o g u e . T h a t k i n d o f p r a y e r w a s a m u c h later d e v e l o p m e n t . S o w i t h o u t w a n t i n g to s u g gest in a n y w a y that P h i l o k n e w the s y n a g o g a l A m i d a h ( o f w h i c h there w e r e in his t i m e at best n o m o r e than s o m e small b u i l d i n g b l o c k s ) , in a sense w e could re gard this c o m m o n p r a y e r as a k i n d o f early variant o f s o m e o f the later s y n a g o g a l b e r a k h o t o f the A m i d a h , s u c h as Shomea'
Tefillah
( H e w h o listens to p r a y e r )
a n d Ge 'ula ( R e d e m p t i o n ) , b u t e s p e c i a l l y t h e b e r a k h a h Avoth
in w h i c h G o d is
p r a i s e d as ' S h i e l d o f A b r a h a m ' (or ' D e f e n d e r of t h e offspring o f A b r a h a m ' as in t h e fourth c e n t u r y G r a e c o - J e w i s h p r a y e r in t h e Apostolic H
7, w h i c h is b a s e d u p o n the b e r a k h a h Avoth ).
Constitutions
VII 3 3 ,
T h e idea o f G o d b e i n g A b r a h a m ' s
shield d e r i v e s from G e n . 1 5 : 1 : " D o not b e afraid, A b r a h a m , I a m y o u r s h i e l d " (cf. also Sirach 5 1 : 1 2 ) . T h i s idea o f G o d w h o listens to t h e p r a y e r s o f his p e o p l e , r e d e e m s t h e m a n d is a shield o f A b r a h a m a n d his offspring, is ' t r a n s l a t e d ' h e r e b y P h i l o into a c o m m o n p r a y e r o f t h a n k s g i v i n g that h e c o m p o s e d in o r d e r to b r i n g h o m e to his fellow J e w s h i s b e l i e f that G o d ' s p r o v i d e n c e w a s , is n o w , a n d will a l w a y s be active in their favour.
1 2
C.W. Larson, "Prayer of Petition in Philo," JBL 65 (1946) 190; ibid. 201 for the impor tance o f hope in Philo. For other Philonic prayers on behalf of Israel see Larson, "Prayer" 198. See P.W. van der Horst, "The Greek Synagogue Prayers in the Apostolic Constitutuions, book VII," in J. Tabory (ed.), From Qumran to Cairo. Studies in the History of Prayer, Jeru salem 1999, 19-46. 1 3
1 4
Philo and the Rabbis on Genesis Similar Questions, Different Answers
Introduction In t h e o p e n i n g d e c a d e s o f t h e C o m m o n E r a , t h e A l e x a n d r i a n J e w i s h p h i l o s o p h e r P h i l o (ca. 2 0 B C E - 5 0 C E ) w r o t e t w o w o r k s a b o u t t h e b o o k s o f G e n e s i s a n d E x o d u s in t h e f o r m o f q u e s t i o n s a n d a n s w e r s ,
1
in a d d i t i o n to d o z e n s o f t r e a t i s e s 2
with allegorical explanations of the books of M o s e s . T h e s e two books are n o w k n o w n as t h e Quaestiones
in Genesim
a n d t h e Quaestiones
in Exodum,
of which,
u n f o r t u n a t e l y , t h e o r i g i n a l G r e e k t e x t is lost for t h e m o s t p a r t ( t h e y h a v e b e e n p r e s e r v e d o n l y in a n A r m e n i a n t r a n s l a t i o n ) .
3
Since both works have
suffered
from r e l a t i v e n e g l e c t b y t h e s c h o l a r l y c o m m u n i t y , D a v i d R u n i a h a s c a l l e d t h e m 'the Cinderellas of Philonic studies.'
4
P h i l o w a s n o t t h e first b i b l i c a l s c h o l a r t o raise q u e s t i o n s a n d f o r m u l a t e a n s w e r s to these questions about the Holy Scriptures of the Jewish people. Neither were h i s J e w i s h p r e d e c e s s o r s t h e first o n e s t o u s e this f o r m a t for t h e i n t e r p r e t a t i o n o f b o o k s regarded as holy or e n d o w e d with divine authority and canonical status in t h e a n c i e n t w o r l d . T h i s literary f o r m is c o m m o n l y d u b b e d ' e r o t a p o k r i s e i s , '
1
5
Only occasionally is the qucstions-and-answers format used by Philo also in his allegorical commentary to the Pentateuch; see P. Borgen & R. Skarstcn, "Quaestiones et solutiones: Some Observations on the Form o f Philo's Exegesis," Studia Philonica 4 (1976/77) 1-16, esp. 4 - 9 . See for an introduction V. Nikiprowetzky, Le commentaire de I'Ecriture chez Philon d'Alexandrie, Leiden 1977, or P. Borgen, Philo of Alexandria, an Exegete for his Time, Leiden 1997. See the edition of the Greek fragments (in the form of quotations by later Christian authors) by F. Petit, Philo, Quaestiones in Genesim et in Exodum, fragmenta graeca, Paris 1978. For a survey o f the textual history o f the Quaestiones see E. Hilgert, "The Quaestiones: Texts and Translations," in D . Hay (ed.), Both Literal and Allegorical: Studies in Philo of Alexandria's Questions and Answers on Genesis and Exodus, Atlanta 1991, 1-15. For reasons o f time and space I leave out o f account here the complicated and much debated priority question: Were the Quaestiones meant as Prolegomena to the allegorical treatises, or were they an 'afterthought' to them? See on this problem, inter alios, A. Terian, "The Priority o f the Quaestiones A m o n g Philo's Exegetical Commentaries," and G.E. Sterling, "Philo's Quaestiones: Prolegomena or Afterthought?," both in Hay, Both Literal and Allegorical 29-46 and 9 9 - 1 2 4 . Both Terian and Sterling defend the thesis o f the priority o f the Quaestiones. D.T. Runia, "Secondary Texts in Philo's Quaestiones," in Hay, Both Literal and Allegori cal 47. H. Dorrie & H. Dorries, 'Erotapokriseis,' RAC 6 (1966) 3 4 2 - 3 7 0 . Their article is still a 2
3
4
5
Philo and the Rabbis on
115
Genesis
a l t h o u g h that is not its a n c i e n t d e s i g n a t i o n (the G r e e k s called the g e n r e djtocdai xcd A.i)aeT, or t,r\xr]\iaxa xcd \vozl
[ p r o b l e m s a n d solutions] or nevoel xcd ajtoxpioeT
[questions a n d a n s w e r s ] ) . T h e g e n r e h a s a long p a g a n p r e h i s t o r y that g o e s b a c k to t h e early Hellenistic 6
p e r i o d , a n d e v e n further. A c c o r d i n g to a n c i e n t r e p o r t s , the learned tyrant o f S a m o s called D u r i s w r o t e a b o o k w i t h t h e title 'OuxiQixd £nxr|u,axa ( H o m e r i c ,
c
q u e s t i o n s ) , as Aristotle h a d d o n e before h i m ( AjtoQr|u.axa Ou.r|Qixd), a n d this g e n r e c o n t i n u e d to flourish all the w a y d o w n to P o r p h y r y s o m e six centuries 7
later, w h e n h e w r o t e a w o r k w i t h a similar t i t l e . In later antiquity the e v e r m o r e p r e s t i g i o u s , e v e n d i v i n e , P l a t o u n d e r w e n t t h e s a m e fate as w e c a n g a u g e from the nXaxcovixd ^nxrmaxa b y P l u t a r c h , a n d from o t h e r w r i t i n g s . O f c o u r s e these treatises d o n o t o n l y c o n s i s t o f q u e s t i o n s , they g i v e a n s w e r s as w e l l . T h e s e t w o a u t h o r s , H o m e r a n d Plato, or r a t h e r their w r i t i n g s , h a d a c q u i r e d a s a c r o s a n c t status so as to b e c o m e t h e ' I n b e g r i f f , the summum, encompassing wisdom and knowledge.
8
or r e p o s i t o r y o f d i v i n e ,
In o r d e r to retrieve this w i s d o m a n d
k n o w l e d g e , v a r i o u s e x e g e t i c a l t e c h n i q u e s w e r e d e v e l o p e d , a m o n g w h i c h (in the c a s e o f H o m e r at least) a l l e g o r y t o o k p r i d e o f p l a c e , but the m e t h o d o f raising q u e s t i o n s a n d g i v i n g a n s w e r s w a s the m o s t p e d a g o g i c a l . W e k n o w the titles o f n u m e r o u s £nxr|[Aaxa c o m m e n t a r i e s w h i c h w e r e written b e t w e e n t h e third c e n t u r y B C E a n d the s e c o n d c e n t u r y o f the C o m m o n Era, but m o s t o f t h e m are n o w lost. To be sure, e x e g e s i s o f H o m e r a n d Plato w a s not the o n l y c o n t e x t in w h i c h erotapokriseis
flourished; i n d e e d , there is a w h o l e r a n g e o f o t h e r a r e a s w h e r e
this literary form t u r n e d out to b e a p p l i c a b l e , i n c l u d i n g t h e e x a c t s c i e n c e s , philology, im Leben
10
philosophy
11
and jurisprudence.
12
9
( N o t e that t h e m o s t p r o b a b l e Sitz
o f all t h e s e w o r k s is a s c h o o l setting.) B u t for o u r p r e s e n t p u r p o s e s w e
restrict o u r s e l v e s to the g e n r e as a p p l i e d in e x e g e t i c a l w o r k s on a u t h o r i t a t i v e or c a n o n i c a l scriptures, a n d m o r e specifically, in c o m m e n t a r i e s on the B i b l e . In the late third c e n t u r y B C E , the J e w i s h historian D e m e t r i u s , c o m m o n l y called D e m e t r i u s t h e C h r o n o g r a p h e r , is the first t r a c e a b l e a u t h o r w h o m a d e u s e very valuable survey; see, however, also the much older article by A. Gudemann, Atiaeig, PW 13/2 (1927) 2 5 1 1 - 2 5 2 9 , and the most recent one by H.A. Gartner, 'Zetema,' NP 12/2 (2002) 7 7 8 - 7 7 9 , although both of them are restricted to pagan material. Useful bird's eye views are given by O. Drcycr, 'Lyseis,' KP 3 (1975) 8 3 2 - 8 3 3 , and A. Kamesar, Jerome, Greek Scholar ship, and the Hebrew Bible. A Study of the Quaestiones Hebraicae in Genesim, Oxford 1993, 82-86. See Gudemann, Aijoeig 2 5 1 2 and 2516; also Dreyer, 'Lyseis,' 832. Most of these works have not been preserved; for the few fragments o f Porphyry's 'OUTIQIXU ^ntrmaxa see A. Smith (ed.), Porphyrius. Fragmenta, Stuttgart-Leipzig 1993, 4 6 7 - 4 7 4 . See R. Lamberton, Homer the Theologian: Neoplatonist Allegorical Reading and the Growth of the Epic Tradition, Berkeley 1986. E. g., Aristotle's Problemata. E.g., the lost work of the grammarian Satyros. " E. g., Porphyry's Symmikta zetemata. E.g., the works of Papinian. 6
7
8
9
1 0
1 2
116
Philo and the Rahbis on
o f t h e G r e e k literary form o f the erotapokriseis the biblical t e x t .
13
Genesis
in o r d e r to deal w i t h p r o b l e m s o f
F i v e f r a g m e n t s o f his c h r o n i c l e o f biblical history h a v e b e e n
p r e s e r v e d in E u s e b i u s ' Praeparatio
Evangelica
(9.19.4; 9.21.1-19; 9.29.1-3;
9 . 2 9 . 1 5 ; 9 . 2 9 . 1 6 ; ) a n d o n e in C l e m e n t o f A l e x a n d r i a ' s Stromateis
(1.21.141).
I c a n n o t deal w i t h h i m at length since h e is n o t the subject o f this paper, but, n e v e r t h e l e s s , s i n c e h e is a p r e c u r s o r o f P h i l o , h e d e s e r v e s to r e c e i v e at least s o m e attention. Suffice it to say that h e deals w i t h q u e s t i o n s s u c h as, ' H o w c o u l d t w e l v e c h i l d r e n h a v e b e e n b o r n to J a c o b w i t h i n s e v e n y e a r s ? , ' ' H o w c o u l d M o s e s h a v e m a r r i e d Z i p p o r a h , s e p a r a t e d as they w e r e b y three g e n e r a t i o n s ? , ' ' W h y did J o s e p h r e m a i n in E g y p t for n i n e y e a r s w i t h o u t r e p o r t i n g his w h e r e a b o u t s to his w o r r i e d father in C a n a a n ? ' ' H o w did the Israelites w h o left E g y p t u n a r m e d m a n a g e to o b t a i n w e a p o n s w i t h w h i c h t h e y fought after c r o s s i n g t h e R e d S e a ? ' W h a t all t h e s e (and other) q u e s t i o n s h a v e in c o m m o n is that t h e y deal w i t h o b v i o u s p r o b l e m s that p r e s e n t t h e m s e l v e s u p o n close r e a d i n g o f the biblical text. W h e t h e r or n o t D e m e t r i u s dealt w i t h t h e s e p r o b l e m s for a p o l o g e t i c r e a s o n s (did a n t i - J e w i s h G r e e k s p o i n t o u t i n c o n s i s t e n c i e s in the B i b l e , as did later a n t i C h r i s t i a n a u t h o r s like P o r p h y r y a n d J u l i a n ? ) , w e d o not k n o w . h o w e v e r , that t h e H e l l e n i s t i c literary form o f erotapokriseis J e w i s h s e r v i c e for the first t i m e .
1 5
1 4
We do observe,
is h e r e t a k e n into
W e d o n o t k n o w o f o t h e r i n s t a n c e s o f this
g e n r e in J e w i s h literature in the m o r e than t w o c e n t u r i e s b e t w e e n D e m e t r i u s a n d P h i l o , b u t it w o u l d b e u n w i s e to a s s u m e that in t h e s e c e n t u r i e s n o o t h e r J e w i s h s c h o l a r m a d e u s e o f this literary form. T h e fact that P h i l o and, after h i m , o t h e r e x e g e t e s m a k e clear that they stand in a v e n e r a b l e tradition m a k e s it p r o b a b l e that the fact that s u c h s o u r c e s are n o t extant d o e s n o t n e c e s s a r i l y m e a n that they did n o t exist. T h e y are s i m p l y l o s t .
Biblical
16
interpretation
W e n o w turn to P h i l o a n d the r a b b i s .
17
B u t w h y the r a b b i s ? A r e they not t o o far
r e m o v e d from P h i l o in b o t h t i m e a n d p l a c e to m a k e a c o m p a r i s o n b e t w e e n t h e m 13
For an edition with translation and commentary of his fragments see C. R. Holladay, Fragments from Hellenistic Jewish Authors, vol. I, Chico 1983, 5 1 - 9 1 . A s Kamesar, Jerome 84, points out, Marcion's pupil Apelles employed the quaestiones method in his attempt to undermine the authority of the Old Testament. See E. Bickerman, 'The Jewish Historian Demetrius,' in his Studies in Jewish and Chris tian History, Leiden 1980, vol. 2, 3 4 7 - 3 5 8 ; and my article 'The Interpretation of the Bible by the Minor Hellenistic Jewish Authors,' in RW. van der Horst, Essays on the Jewish World of Early Christianity, Freibourg in der Schweiz- Gottingen 1990, 1 8 7 - 2 1 9 , here esp. 1 9 6 - 2 0 0 . For the continuation of the genre in early Christianity see the series of six articles by G. Bardy in RB 41 (1932) and 4 2 (1933), all of them with the title "La litterature patristique des Quaestiones et responsiones sur PEcriture Sainte." Unfortunately, I have not been able to consult S. Belkin, "The Earliest Source of the Rabbinic Midrash - Quaestiones et Solutiones in Genesim et Exodum o f Philo Alexandrinus," in S. Belkin (ed.), Abraham Weiss Jubilee Volume (1964) 5 7 9 - 6 3 3 [Hebr.]. 1 4
15
1 6
1 7
Philo and the Rabbis on
117
Genesis
m e a n i n g f u l ? A n d is t h e r e , t h e n , a n y r a b b i n i c erotapokriseis
literature? To b e g i n
w i t h t h e last q u e s t i o n , the a n s w e r is y e s a n d n o . T h e a n s w e r is y e s in t h e s e n s e that from t h e p o s t - T a l m u d i c p e r i o d w e d o h a v e a s p a t e o f s o - c a l l e d literature, called She'elot
u-Teshuvot,
Responsa
that is ' q u e s t i o n s a n d a n s w e r s , '
1 8
b u t in
this c a s e w e a r e d e a l i n g w i t h early m e d i e v a l texts (7th c e n t u r y a n d later) in w h i c h q u e s t i o n s from d i a s p o r a c o m m u n i t i e s all o v e r t h e w o r l d w e r e a n s w e r e d b y f a m o u s r a b b i s in B a b y l o n i a a n d P a l e s t i n e , a n d t h e s e fall o u t s i d e t h e s c o p e o f o u r i n v e s t i g a t i o n . T h e a n s w e r is n o in t h e s e n s e that w e h a v e n o r a b b i n i c literature in w h i c h t h e biblical text is d i s c u s s e d in t h e w a y P h i l o d o e s in his Quaestiones,
n a m e l y in t h e form o f stating a p r o b l e m raised b y t h e biblical text
as a q u e s t i o n a n d p r e s e n t i n g an a n s w e r to that q u e s t i o n . T h a t w o u l d s e e m to rule o u t a c o m p a r i s o n o f P h i l o a n d t h e r a b b i s , b u t it rules it o u t o n l y o n a superficial level. T h e latter p o i n t c a n b e m a d e c l e a r b y t h e s i m p l e o b s e r v a t i o n that, e v e n t h o u g h in r a b b i n i c c o m m e n t a r i e s t o t h e B i b l e , t h e s o - c a l l e d M i d r a s h i m , u s u a l l y n o q u e s t i o n s a r e raised explicitly, their e x e g e t i c a l m a n o e u v r e s a r e n e v e r t h e l e s s o b v i o u s l y a n s w e r s to implicit
q u e s t i o n s , o r s o l u t i o n s to p r o b l e m s , raised b y t h e
biblical text. T h e s e c a s e s h a v e b e e n t e r m e d ' v e r s t e c k t e ^ntrifAaxa'
19
(hidden
q u e s t i o n s ) a n d t h e p h e n o m e n o n c a n b e e x p l a i n e d b y c o m p a r i n g it t o a l l e g o r i cal e x p l a n a t i o n s o f H o m e r w i t h o u t explicit specification o f t h e e x a c t n a t u r e o f t h e p r o b l e m to b e solved. " T h e r a b b i s often follow a s i m i l a r p r o c e d u r e in their e x p o s i t i o n o f t h e O l d T e s t a m e n t . T h e m o s t likely e x p l a n a t i o n for s u c h a p r a c t i c e , in b o t h classical a n d r a b b i n i c e x e g e s i s , is that s o m e jtQo3Ar|u.aTa w e r e e i t h e r so o b v i o u s o r s o w e l l k n o w n that it b e c a m e u n n e c e s s a r y to i n t r o d u c e t h e m explicitly."
20
T h e fact that m i d r a s h i m often s k i p c o m p l e t e p a s s a g e s o f S c r i p t u r e
u n d e r l i n e s that t h e y focus n o t o n the biblical text in all its details b u t r a t h e r o n t h e p r o b l e m s found t h e r e . To illustrate m y p o i n t I will g i v e s o m e e x a m p l e s that m a k e clear that in their m i d r a s h o n G e n e s i s , Bereshit t h e biblical text t h r o w s at t h e m .
18
2 1
Rabbah,
the rabbis wrestle with questions
T h e p r o b l e m s t h e y see a r e often t h e s a m e as
See E. Fram, "Responsa," The Oxford Dictionary of the Jewish Religion, eds. R.J. Zwi Werblowsky & G. Wigoder, Oxford 1997, 5 8 1 - 5 8 3 . D . Cohn-Sherbock, A Dictionary of Juda ism and Christianity, London 1991, 144. Gudemann, Atioeig 2 5 1 4 - 1 5 . Kamesar, Jerome 89. For an introduction to the phenomenon o f midrash see G.G. Porton, "Defining Midrash," in J. Neusner (ed.), The Study of Ancient Judaism, vol. 1, N e w York 1981, 5 5 - 9 2 ; idem, "Rab binic Midrash," in J. Neusner (ed.), Judaism in Late Antiquity, vol. 1, Leiden 1995, 2 1 7 - 2 3 6 . B.W. Holtz, "Midrash," in idem (ed.), Back to the Sources. Reading the Classic Jewish Texts, N e w York 1984, 1 7 7 - 2 1 1 ; G. Stemberger, Midrasch. Vom Umgang der Rabbinen mit der Bibel, Miinchen 1989. For an introduction to Genesis Rabbah see G. Stemberger, Einleitung in Talmud und Midrasch, 8th ed., Miinchen 1992, 2 7 2 - 2 7 9 . See further L. Haas, "Bibliography on Midrash," in Neusner, Study 9 3 - 1 0 3 , and the recent bibliography in G.P. Porton, 'Rabbinic Midrash,' in A.J. Hauser & D.F. Watson (eds.), A History of Biblical Interpretation, vol. 1: The Ancient Period, Grand Rapids 2003, 2 1 9 - 2 2 4 . 1 9
2 0
2 1
118
Philo and the Rabbis on
Genesis
the o n e s Philo s e e s , b u t their a n s w e r s are u s u a l l y quite different. It is essential to o b s e r v e , h o w e v e r , that it is p r o b l e m s in t h e biblical text, a n d quite often t h e s a m e p r o b l e m s , that b o t h parties w i s h to a d d r e s s a n d s o l v e . T h e c h r o n o l o g i c a l a n d g e o g r a p h i c a l g a p b e t w e e n P h i l o ' s QG a n d the r a b b i n i c m i d r a s h on G e n e s i s (Bereshit
Rabbah
o r i g i n a t e d in fifth-century P a l e s t i n e ) is an u n a v o i d a b l e p r o b
lem, d u e to the fact that after P h i l o , Bereshit
Rabbah
is t h e first o t h e r J e w i s h 22
c o m m e n t a r y to G e n e s i s w e h a v e (the o n e s from Q u m r a n are by a n d large l o s t ) . A s w e will see, h o w e v e r , in spite o f this g a p , t h e t w o parties a d d r e s s t h e s a m e p r o b l e m s since the biblical text they dealt w i t h w a s (practically) the s a m e , w i t h all its p r o b l e m a t i c e l e m e n t s . B y w a y o f p r e l i m i n a r y r e m a r k s , let m e say s o m e t h i n g a b o u t early J e w i s h biblical interpretation in g e n e r a l . S i n c e I a m n o t a b l e to d o this better than J a m e s K u g e l , the H a r v a r d professor o f biblical a n d J e w i s h literature, did in his w o n d e r ful b o o k Traditions
of the Bible,
I will follow h i m closely in this p a r a g r a p h .
23
K u g e l states that, d e s p i t e the great variety o f styles a n d g e n r e s a n d e v e n inter p r e t i v e m e t h o d s i n v o l v e d in the J e w i s h literature o f t h e H e l l e n i s t i c a n d R o m a n p e r i o d , ' u n d e r l y i n g it all is a c o m m o n a p p r o a c h , a c o m m o n set o f a s s u m p t i o n s c o n c e r n i n g t h e biblical t e x t ' ( 1 4 ) . T h e first a s s u m p t i o n is that ' t h e B i b l e is a f u n d a m e n t a l l y c r y p t i c d o c u m e n t ' (15). All a n c i e n t J e w i s h interpreters ' a r e fond o f m a i n t a i n i n g that a l t h o u g h S c r i p t u r e m a y a p p e a r to b e s a y i n g X , w h a t it really m e a n s is Y ' ( 1 5 ) . E v e n t h o u g h this m a y n o t s e e m a natural a s s u m p t i o n , a n c i e n t interpreters tell u s t i m e a n d a g a i n that ' i n p l a c e of, or b e y o n d , the a p p a r e n t m e a n i n g o f the text is s o m e h i d d e n , e s o t e r i c m e s s a g e ' ( 1 5 ) . T h e i r capability to elicit a m e a n i n g from the text that their h e a r e r s or r e a d e r s w o u l d not find t h e m s e l v e s at first g l a n c e , certainly c o n t r i b u t e d to their s t a n d i n g a n d authority in the c o m m u n i t y o f b e l i e v e r s . T h e i r s e c o n d a s s u m p t i o n is that ' S c r i p t u r e c o n s t i t u t e s o n e great B o o k o f I n s t r u c t i o n a n d as such is a f u n d a m e n t a l l y relevant
t e x t ' ( 1 5 ) . T h e lives o f t h e
great biblical figures are r e g a r d e d as ' a g u i d e g i v e n to later h u m a n b e i n g s for the l e a d i n g o f their o w n l i v e s ' ( 1 6 ) . Biblical p r o p h e c i e s are r e l e v a n t to the inter p r e t e r a n d his a u d i e n c e b e c a u s e t h e y refer to their situation. T h i s f u n d a m e n t a l a s s u m p t i o n ' w a s h e l d to b e true a b o u t all o f the H e b r e w B i b l e , the s o n g s a n d p s a l m s a n d p r a y e r s a n d l a w s a n d n a r r a t i v e s it c o n t a i n e d ' ( 1 6 ) . All o f t h e m , as the A p o s t l e Paul s a y s , ' w e r e written d o w n for our i n s t r u c t i o n ' (1 Cor. 10:11),
2 2
None of the passages from Genesis discussed below is commented upon in the extant Dead Sea Scrolls; see D.L. Washburn, A Catalog of Biblical Passages in the Dead Sea Scrolls, Atlanta 2 0 0 2 . Traditions of the Bible. A Guide to the Bible As It Was At the Start of the Common Era, Cambridge M A - London 1998, esp. 14—19. The words in the subtitle "as it was" should be understood as "as it was interpreted." A somewhat shorter and less technical version of this work was published by Kugel one year earlier as The Bible As It Was, Cambridge M A - London 1997. 2 3
Philo and the Rabbis on
Genesis
119
not j u s t so as to r e c o r d e v e n t s from t h e past, but to t e a c h u s s o m e vital l e s s o n s for o u r o w n lives. T h e third a s s u m p t i o n is that ' S c r i p t u r e is perfect a n d perfectly h a r m o n i o u s ' ( 1 7 ) . T h a t is to say that it d o e s n o t c o n t a i n a n y m i s t a k e s , a n d that w h a t m i g h t look like a m i s t a k e ' m u s t therefore b e an allusion to b e clarified b y p r o p e r i n t e r p r e t a t i o n ' ( 1 7 ) . T h i s p r i n c i p l e also i m p l i e s that there is ' a perfect h a r m o n y b e t w e e n the B i b l e ' s v a r i o u s p a r t s ' ( 1 7 ) . All o f Scripture s p e a k s w i t h o n e v o i c e ; h o w c o u l d it b e o t h e r w i s e w h e n G o d h i m s e l f is the sole a u t h o r ? ' T a k e n to its e x t r e m e , this s a m e v i e w o f S c r i p t u r e ' s perfection u l t i m a t e l y led to the d o c t r i n e o f ' o m n i s i g n i f i c a n c e , ' w h e r e b y n o t h i n g in Scripture is said in v a i n or for r h e torical flourish: e v e r y detail is i m p o r t a n t , e v e r y t h i n g is i n t e n d e d to i m p a r t s o m e t e a c h i n g ' ( 1 7 ) . A n d since t h e t e a c h i n g s o f S c r i p t u r e are perfect, b u t s o m e t i m e s the biblical h e r o e s b e h a v e in a less than perfect way, this is an indication that ' s o m e t h i n g else must h a v e b e e n m e a n t ' ( 1 8 ) ; a n d the interpreters c a m e to their heroes' 'rescue.'
2 4
T h e fourth a s s u m p t i o n ( a l r e a d y hinted at) is the basic o n e that 'all o f Scripture is s o m e h o w d i v i n e l y s a n c t i o n e d , o f d i v i n e p r o v e n a n c e , or d i v i n e l y i n s p i r e d ' (18). N o t o n l y the p a s s a g e s in w h i c h G o d s p e a k s in t h e first p e r s o n , but also texts w h i c h s p e a k a b o u t or to H i m , or not e v e n that, are r e g a r d e d as inspired b y H i m and, therefore, infallible. T h e n o t i o n o f the d i v i n e a u t h o r s h i p o f all o f the B i b l e is not often explicitly m e n t i o n e d b u t it u n d e r l i e s m o s t if n o t all o f a n c i e n t ( J e w i s h a n d C h r i s t i a n ) biblical interpretation. I c a n n o t refrain from q u o t i n g in full K u g e l ' s o w n s u m m a r y : C o n v i n c e d that Scripture w a s a fundamentally cryptic d o c u m e n t , they scrutinized its e v e r y detail in search o f hidden m e a n i n g . That m e a n i n g w a s to b e , b y definition, relevant to the situation o f the interpreter and his listeners, not s o m e insight into the historical circumstances in w h i c h the text w a s originally written, but a m e s s a g e o f immediate value and applicability, either a t i m e l e s s moral truth or a l a w to be o b s e r v e d in o n e particular fashion or s o m e t h i n g bearing in s o m e other w a y o n the present or the immediate future. In searching for such a m e s s a g e , the interpreter could rest assured that n o detail in Scripture's manner o f speaking w a s insignificant, nor w o u l d there b e any i n c o n s i s t e n c y b e t w e e n what is said in o n e place and what is said in another, nor any l e s s o n that contradicted right thinking. For that reason, any apparent contradiction, or unnecessary detail or repetition or e v e n an emphatic turn o f phrase, s e e m e d to be an invitation to the interpreter to look d e e p l y into the text's w o r d s and so d i s c o v e r its real m e a n i n g , the hidden, relevant, perfect truth that o n l y befit the w o r d o f G o d ' ( 1 9 ) .
F o r o u r p r e s e n t p u r p o s e s it is i m p o r t a n t to e m p h a s i z e that it is e s p e c i a l l y t h e first a s s u m p t i o n , a b o u t the c r y p t i c n a t u r e a n d t h e h i d d e n m e a n i n g o f t h e biblical text, that is r e l e v a n t to o u r t o p i c b e c a u s e it i m p l i e s that the text lays a p r o b l e m 2 4
Philo himself gives a fine instance in his interpretation o f Gen. 20:2, where out of fear Abraham says about his wife that she is his sister. In QG 4.60 he emphatically states that not a streak of impiety should come upon us by thinking unworthy things about the patriarch, whereupon he goes on to explain the deeper sense of Abraham's remark.
120
Philo and the Rabbis on
Genesis
before or p o s e s a q u e s t i o n to t h e interpreter, w h i c h h e h a s to s o l v e or answer. In that s e n s e , m u c h of a n c i e n t J e w i s h interpretation o f the B i b l e is implicitly o f an erotapokriseis
n a t u r e . L e t us see if w e c a n find o u t to w h i c h d e g r e e t h e implicit
q u e s t i o n s o f the rabbis c o r r e s p o n d to or differ from t h e explicit o n e s o f P h i l o .
25
F o r practical r e a s o n s I will restrict m y i n v e s t i g a t i o n to five illustrative p a s s a g e s from the first five c h a p t e r s o f G e n e s i s .
The
26
texts
T h e first e x a m p l e is relatively short a n d s i m p l e . It c o n c e r n s G e n . 2:17, w h e r e G o d s a y s to A d a m that, if h e eats from the tree o f k n o w l e d g e , h e will surely die. T h e H e b r e w h a s moth
tamuth,
' y o u will die ( b y ) a d e a t h , ' w h i c h is a c u r r e n t
i d i o m in biblical H e b r e w to indicate e m p h a s i s ( ' y o u will surely d i e ' ) . T h e L X X translates r a t h e r literally w i t h 0avdxqj djio0aveia0e. It is the o c c u r r e n c e o f t w o w o r d s (instead o f o n e ) d e s i g n a t i n g d e a t h or d y i n g that is the riddle to b e s o l v e d h e r e , for it c a n n o t b e superfluous, it surely m u s t h a v e a d e e p e r m e a n i n g . T h e r a b b i s are quite b r i e f h e r e . In Gen.R.
16.6 t h e y s i m p l y state that the t w o w o r d s
for d e a t h indicate that it is n o t o n l y A d a m a n d E v e w h o will die as a c o n s e q u e n c e o f their t r a n s g r e s s i o n , b u t also all their d e s c e n d a n t s , /'. e., h u m a n i t y as a w h o l e . Philo has a more elaborate answer: For worthy m e n , death is the b e g i n n i n g o f another life. For life is twofold: o n e is the corruptible life, in a body, the other the incorruptible, without a body. Consequently, o n l y the evil man dies by death; e v e n w h e n he breathes, he has already b e e n buried in a d v a n c e b e c a u s e he did not preserve in h i m s e l f any spark o f the true life, that is, e x c e l l e n c e o f character (xa^oxayaOia). A meritorious and worthy man, h o w e v e r , d o e s not die b y death, but after a l o n g life he p a s s e s a w a y to eternity (QG
1.16).
It is clear that for P h i l o t h e t w o w o r d s refer to t w o sorts o f d e a t h , a p h y s i c a l o n e a n d a spiritual o n e , the latter b e i n g w h o l l y i n d e p e n d a n t from the b o d y . R e a l life is a spiritual life that c a n also b e lived w i t h o u t a body. F o r a p e r s o n w h o lives that life, d e a t h is n o t d e a t h but a transition to eternal life; a b a d p e r s o n , h o w e v e r , h a s a l r e a d y d i e d a spiritual d e a t h , w h i c h will b e f o l l o w e d b y a p h y s i c a l o n e . T h e s e P l a t o n i c ideas are w h o l l y a b s e n t from t h e s o b e r e x p l a n a t i o n b y t h e r a b b i s . O u r s e c o n d e x a m p l e is G e n . 3 : 3 , w h e r e a c c o r d i n g to t h e H e b r e w text E v e s a y s to t h e s e r p e n t that G o d h a d said, ' Y o u shall n o t eat o f the fruit o f t h e tree that is 2 5
For another brief comparison of Philo with rabbinic midrash, see D.T. Runia, 'Further Observations on the Structure of Philo's Allegorical Treatises,' in his Exegesis and Philosophy. Studies on Philo of Alexandria, Aldershot 1990, 117-119. In the following I use the translation of Philo's QG by R. Marcus in the first Supplement to the LCL edition, London - Cambridge M A 1953; and the French translation by Ch. Mercier in vol. 34a of the series Les oeuvres de Philon d'Alexandrie, Paris 1979. For Gen.R. I used H. Freedman's translation in vol. 1 o f Midrash Rabbah, London 1939; and J. Neusner, Genesis Rabbah. The Judaic Commentary to the Book of Genesis, vol. 1, Atlanta 1985. All translations were slightly modified by me for clarity's sake. 2 6
Philo and the Rabbis on
121
Genesis
in t h e m i d d l e o f the g a r d e n , n o r shall y o u t o u c h it, or y o u shall d i e . ' In QG 1.35, P h i l o raises the q u e s t i o n o f w h y , w h e r e a s G o d h i m s e l f h a d o n l y said that t h e y s h o u l d not eat from that tree ( G e n . 2 : 1 7 ) , E v e n o w a d d s the extra p r o h i b i t i o n o f not e v e n t o u c h i n g the tree. S i n c e o f c o u r s e that c a n n o t b e j u s t a c c i d e n t a l , the interpreter is b o u n d to look for its m e a n i n g . P h i l o ' s a n s w e r is as follows: First, b e c a u s e taste - and actually e v e r y sense perception - is naturally brought about by contact. S e c o n d , (she said this) for the severe punishment o f those w h o have practised this. For if e v e n touching (the tree) w a s forbidden, h o w m u c h greater a crime w o u l d those h a v e c o m m i t t e d w h o , in addition to touching it, also ate o f it and e n j o y e d it? Would they not have c o n d e m n e d t h e m s e l v e s and brought punishment d o w n upon t h e m s e l v e s ?
It is clear that a c c o r d i n g to P h i l o ' s s e c o n d e x p l a n a t i o n E v e ' s a d d i t i o n to G o d ' s original p r o h i b i t i o n w a s a n e x p r e s s i o n o f a w e l l - k n o w n h a l a k h i c p r i n c i p l e that the r a b b i s w o u l d later call seyag
la-Torah,
a fence a r o u n d the T o r a h , i.e., an
injunction in t h e form o f a stringent intensification o f t h e law e n a c t e d to safe g u a r d the o b s e r v a n c e o f the c o m m a n d m e n t s .
2 7
This principle, widely accepted
in postbiblical J u d a i s m , is h e r e r e t r i e v e d b y P h i l o from S c r i p t u r e itself. W h a t d o the rabbis m a k e o f this v e r s e ? In Gen.R.
19.3 t h e y c o m m e n t u p o n
it as follows: It is written, ' D o not add to H i s w o r d s , lest H e reprove y o u and y o u b e found a liar' (Prov. 30:6). R. H i y y a taught, 'It m e a n s that o n e should not m a k e the fence bigger than its foundation, b e c a u s e it m a y then fall and destroy the plants. T h e H o l y O n e , b l e s s e d be H e , had said, "For o n the day o n w h i c h y o u eat from it, y o u shall surely die" (Gen. 2:17), but she did not say that but " G o d said: You shall not eat from it and y o u shall not touch it." W h e n the snake s a w that she w a s lying, he took her and p u s h e d here against the tree. H e said to her, "Have y o u n o w died? Just as y o u did not die by touching it, y o u will not die w h e n y o u eat o f it.'"
It is v e r y interesting to see that the r a b b i s , t o o , see in this v e r s e a reference to the p r i n c i p l e o f the fence a r o u n d t h e T o r a h , b u t in quite a different w a y : T h e y say that in fact E v e w a s lying - a traditional role o f E v e in r a b b i n i c l i t e r a t u r e
28
- and
that m a y b e seen from the fact that she m a d e the fence b i g g e r than its foundation. T h a t is to say, t h e fact that t h e w o r d s ' o r y o u shall d i e ' follow i m m e d i a t e l y u p o n t h e w o r d s ' n e i t h e r shall y o u t o u c h it' s u g g e s t s that E v e i m p l i e d t h a t it w a s not so m u c h the e a t i n g as the t o u c h i n g that w o u l d entail their d e a t h , w h e r e a s G o d h a d explicitly said that it w a s t h e e a t i n g o f the fruit that w o u l d d o so. T h u s she m a d e the fence ( n o t t o u c h i n g ) b i g g e r than the f o u n d a t i o n ( n o t e a t i n g ) . S o it was a fence but u s e d in a c o m p l e t e l y w r o n g m a n n e r b y this w o m a n w h o t h u s g a v e the serpent the o p p o r t u n i t y to p r o v e that she w a s m i s t a k e n : h e p u s h e d h e r against the tree a n d she did not die. P h i l o a p p r o v e s o f the fact that t h e first w o m a n a l r e a d y
2 7
On the concept of the 'fence around the Torah' see E.E. Urbach, The Halakhah. Sources and Development, Jerusalem 1986, 7 with the notes at 3 6 1 . See, e.g., N.M. Hyman, Biblical Women in the Midrash, Northvale 1997, 5 - 1 0 . 2 8
Its
122
Philo and the Rabbis on
f o r m u l a t e d the p r i n c i p l e o f the seyag la-Torah,
Genesis
b u t t h e r a b b i s d i s a p p r o v e d o f the
fact that s h e m i s a p p l i e d it b y m a k i n g it m o r e i m p o r t a n t t h a n t h e p r i n c i p a l thing, t h u s o p e n i n g t h e g a t e to the devil. A n o t h e r m i d r a s h e v e n g o e s so far as m a k i n g E v e think (after s h e n o t i c e d that t o u c h i n g t h e tree w a s n o t lethal): ' S o all t h e t h i n g s that m y h u s b a n d h a s told m e are j u s t l i e s ! ' (Avoth deR. Nathan
rec. A 1).
H e r e a n o t h e r p r o b l e m is s o l v e d , n a m e l y the fact that G o d g a v e his p r o h i b i t i o n to eat from the tree to A d a m (in G e n . 2 : 1 7 ) before
the creation o f E v e (in G e n .
2 : 2 2 ) , so E v e c a n n o t h a v e h e a r d it h e r s e l f a n d h e n c e m u s t h a v e h e a r d it from A d a m , w h o is, therefore, a liar in h e r view, a l t h o u g h in the e y e s o f the rabbis h e is t h e i n v e n t o r o f the p r i n c i p l e o f the fence a r o u n d t h e T o r a h .
29
O u r third e x a m p l e is G e n . 3:9 w h e r e , after t h e fall, G o d called to A d a m a n d said to h i m , ' W h e r e are y o u ? ' T h i s is at first sight an u n p a l a t a b l e u t t e r a n c e o n G o d ' s part s i n c e H e is s u p p o s e d to b e o m n i s c i e n t . O f c o u r s e H e k n e w w h e r e A d a m w a s ! H e n c e P h i l o raises the q u e s t i o n , ' W h y d o e s H e w h o k n o w s all t h i n g s a s k A d a m , " W h e r e are y o u ? " , a n d w h y d o e s h e n o t also a s k the w o m a n ? ' H i s a n s w e r is as f o l l o w s : T h e things said appear to b e not a question but a kind o f threat and reproach: ' W h e r e are y o u n o w ! From what g o o d have y o u r e m o v e d yourself, o man! G i v i n g up immortality and a b l e s s e d life, y o u have g o n e over to death and unhappiness, in w h i c h y o u h a v e b e e n buried.' A s to the w o m a n , H e did not consider it w o r t h w i l e to question her s i n c e she w a s the b e g i n n i n g o f evil and led him ( A d a m ) into a life o f v i l e n e s s (QG
1.45).
G o d is t h u s s a v e d from the c h a r g e o f i g n o r a n c e o f the w h e r e a b o u t s o f his c r e a t u r e s . ' W h e r e are y o u ? ' m e a n s actually, ' W h a t - for G o d ' s s a k e - h a v e y o u d o n e ? ! ' ' W h a t a n awful situation y o u h a v e m a n o e u v e r e d y o u r s e l f i n t o ! ' A n d h e s a y s this o n l y to A d a m since E v e , the s o u r c e o f all evil, is not e v e n w o r t h b e i n g s p o k e n to b y G o d .
3 0
W h a t d o t h e r a b b i s s a y ? In Gen.R. that t h e biblical ayyekkah
19.9 they p l a y w i t h t h e p u n c t u a t i o n in
( ' w h e r e are y o u ? ' ) is r e a d as ekhah,
' h o w , ' u s e d in
e x c l a m a t i o n : ' H o w are y o u ? H o w is it p o s s i b l e that earlier y o u followed m y will, b u t n o w t h e will o f t h e s e r p e n t ? ! ' A n d l i k e w i s e , a l t h o u g h slightly different, the T a r g u m P s e u d o - J o n a t h a n translates this v e r s e as ' H o w c o u l d y o u i m a g i n e it p o s s i b l e to h i d e from m e ? ! ' S o h e r e a g a i n w e see that P h i l o a n d t h e r a b b i s t a c k l e the s a m e p r o b l e m in the biblical text ( h o w c o u l d G o d p o s s i b l y say, ' W h e r e are y o u ? ' ) a n d p r e s e n t s o l u t i o n s that are o n l y m a r g i n a l l y different, e x c e p t for t h e fact that P h i l o h e r e , a l m o s t in p a s s i n g , s o l v e s a n o t h e r p r o b l e m in the biblical text - w h y , if b o t h A d a m a n d E v e h i d e in the g a r d e n , d o e s G o d talk o n l y to A d a m ? 2 9
A Christian example of this exegesis, from Ambrose of Milan, is quoted by Kugel in Traditions 129. For further instances see A. Louth, Ancient Christian Commentary on Scripture. Old Testament, vol. 1: Genesis l-ll, Downers Grove 2 0 0 1 , 8 4 - 8 5 . There is a parallel to this passage in Philo's Leg. 3 . 4 9 - 5 0 , on which see A. Measson & J. Cazeaux, "From Grammar to Discourse: A Study of the Quaestiones in Genesim in Relation to the Treatises," in Hay, Both Literal and Allegorical 145. 3 0
Philo and the Rabbis on
123
Genesis
- b y a d d i n g the p u n g e n t c o m m e n t that G o d did n o t find E v e w o r t h w i l e to talk to a n y m o r e , p r o b a b l y i m p l y i n g that the B i b l e d e n i e s that real c o n t a c t b e t w e e n w o m e n a n d the d i v i n e w o r l d is p o s s i b l e .
31
A fourth e x a m p l e : G e n . 4 : 1 5 states that the L o r d said that w h o e v e r kills C a i n w o u l d suffer a s e v e n f o l d p u n i s h m e n t a n d that G o d p u t a m a r k on C a i n so that n o o n e w h o c a m e u p o n h i m w o u l d kill h i m . It is not h a r d to g u e s s w h i c h q u e s t i o n s are raised b y this text. P h i l o formulates t h e f o l l o w i n g o n e s (in QG 1.75-6):
32
W h y shall a n y o n e w h o kills C a i n suffer s e v e n f o l d p u n i s h m e n t ? A n d
w h y is a sign p l a c e d u p o n t h e fratricide so that a n y w h o m e e t s h i m will not kill h i m , w h e r e a s it w o u l d h a v e b e e n fitting to d o the o p p o s i t e a n d h a n d h i m o v e r to s o m e o n e for d e s t r u c t i o n ? A s w e will see, the r a b b i s deal w i t h the s a m e t w o problems.
3 3
P h i l o ' s a n s w e r s are long a n d c o m p l i c a t e d a n d I will r e n d e r t h e m in a
simplified a n d a b b r e v i a t e d form. T h e s e v e n f o l d p u n i s h m e n t is e x p l a i n e d b y h i m as referring to t h e s e v e n s u b d i v i s i o n s o f the irrational part o f t h e soul (the five s e n s e s , t h e o r g a n o f s p e e c h a n d t h e s e x u a l o r g a n ) , the e i g h t h d i v i s i o n , h o w e v e r , b e i n g the (indivisible) rational part, the intellect. T h e s e v e n parts, irrational as t h e y are, are the c a u s e s o f all evil a n d for t h a t r e a s o n h a v e to b e p u n i s h e d b y the h i g h e s t part o f t h e soul, t h e i n t e l l e c t .
34
T h i s is a perfectly G r e e k p h i l o s o p h i c a l
r e a d i n g o f the biblical text w h i c h s o l v e s an o t h e r w i s e (in P h i l o ' s e y e s ) i n s o l u b l e problem. T h e r a b b i s l e a v e t h e p r o b l e m o f ' s e v e n f o l d p u n i s h m e n t ' for w h a t it is (they did n o t h a v e a typically G r e e k sevenfold d i v i s i o n o f t h e irrational part o f the soul) a n d instead t h e y focus on the overall t h e m e that C a i n ' s m u r d e r e r s will t h e m s e l v e s b e p u n i s h e d . W h y is that? H e r e t h e y resort to a w e l l - k n o w n r a b b i n i c d e v i c e called 'al tiqre: ' d o n o t r e a d ' (/. e., d o not read this b u t read that). T h e biblical text h a s , " T h e r e f o r e (lakeri),
w h o e v e r kills C a i n e t c . " In Gen.R.
22.12,
o n e o f the r a b b i s s u g g e s t s , ' T h e cattle, b e a s t s , a n d b i r d s a s s e m b l e d to d e m a n d j u s t i c e for A b e l [the r e a s o n b e i n g that, s i n c e n o o t h e r h u m a n s w e r e t h e r e as yet, t h e a n i m a l s w o u l d t a k e v e n g e a n c e . C a i n w a s afraid a n d for that r e a s o n G o d said to h i m : ] "I say to y o u [ r e a d i n g laken as lakh ani (to y o u I [say]), w h o e v e r kills C a i n . . . " [thus a s s u r i n g h i m that h e n e e d h a v e n o fear o f a n i m a l s ] . B u t a n o t h e r rabbi read the w o r d laken as lo'ken,
3 1
' n o t in this w a y '
3 5
a n d interpreted
D. Sly, Philo's Perception of Women, Atlanta 1990. See on this passage also J. Mansfeld, 'Heraclitus, Empedocles, and Others in a Middle Platonist Cento in Philo of Alexandria,' in his Studies in Later Greek Philosophy and Gnosti cism, Aldershot 1989, 1 3 1 - 1 5 6 . Christian parallels in Louth, Ancient Christian Commentary 108. More is said by Philo on this topic but the Armenian text is so obscure (and most prob ably corrupt) that only the vague outlines of what he is asserting can be discerned. These are rendered in the text above. It is interesting to see that both the L X X and the Vulgate read here 'not in this way' (ov% oiixcog, non sic), as do also Symmachus and the Peshitta; see A. Salvesen, Symmachus in the Pentateuch, Manchester 1991, 24. 3 2
3 3
3 4
3 5
124
Philo and the Rabbis on
Genesis
the p a s s a g e as follows: C a i n ' s j u d g e m e n t s h o u l d not b e like the j u d g e m e n t o f o t h e r (future) m u r d e r e r s , b e c a u s e he killed w h i l e h e h a d n o o n e from w h o m to learn (the c o n s e q u e n c e s of his d e e d ) . B u t from n o w o n [ p e o p l e d o k n o w t h e s e c o n s e q u e n c e s a n d for that r e a s o n ] w h o e v e r kills a p e r s o n shall b e put to d e a t h . '
3 6
T h i s is q u i t e a different solution t h a n P h i l o ' s but it d o e s try to s o l v e the s a m e p r o b l e m . It s k i p s , h o w e v e r , the ' s e v e n f o l d p u n i s h m e n t ' b u t the solution to that p r o b l e m s e e m s to b e i m p l i e d . A s to t h e o t h e r q u e s t i o n - w h y d o e s G o d p r o t e c t C a i n w i t h a sign instead o f d e l i v e r i n g h i m into the h a n d s o f his e n e m i e s ? , w h i c h is w h a t C a i n w o u l d d e s e r v e - P h i l o offers a variety o f s o l u t i o n s . First, h e s a y s , t h e r e are, b e s i d e a p h y s i c a l death, also the m a n y d e a t h s o n e can die w h e n o n e h a s to live in fear or sorrow. So in a s e n s e h a v i n g to live on w a s a h e a v i e r p u n i s h m e n t for C a i n than h a v i n g to die. S e c o n d , the fact that the g o o d o n e ( A b e l ) w a s killed w h e r e a s the b a d o n e lived o n is a clear indication that the soul is i m p e r i s h a b l e , i m m o r t a l , a n d therefore t h e o n l y t h i n g that c o u n t s , w h e r e a s b o d i l y life h a r d l y d e s e r v e s to b e called life. In fact, C a i n is d e a d , a l t h o u g h p h y s i c a l l y alive, a n d A b e l lives, a l t h o u g h p h y s i c a l l y dead.
37
S o the i m m o r t a l i t y o f the soul is t a u g h t b y Scripture right from the outset.
T h i r d , C a i n w a s the first to h a v e c o m m i t t e d a very great c r i m e , a n d b y not m e t i n g out to h i m his d e s e r v e d p u n i s h m e n t , G o d sets an e x a m p l e o f m e r c y to all future j u d g e s : T h e y s h o u l d hesitate in capital c a s e s a n d b e inclined to m e r c y r a t h e r t h a n to strictness. G o d t h u s p r e s c r i b e s a c a n o n of g e n t l e n e s s a n d u n d e r s t a n d i n g . S o P h i l o s e e s h e r e at least three i m p o r t a n t lessons b e i n g t a u g h t b y G o d . T h e r a b b i s are n o t that different here. In Gen.R.
2 2 . 1 3 they, t o o , offer v a r i o u s
s o l u t i o n s to the scriptural riddle. O n e o f t h e m s a y s that, in the light o f t h e fact that in E x . 4 : 8 leprosy is called a sign, C a i n ' s sign w a s that G o d s m o t e h i m w i t h leprosy, t h u s b a n i s h i n g h i m from the c o m m u n i t y o f h u m a n s . A n o t h e r s a y s that t h e sign w a s that G o d g a v e C a i n a d o g w h o w o u l d p r o t e c t h i m a g a i n s t his e n e m i e s . A n o t h e r sees t h e sign as h o r n s that g r e w from C a i n ' s h e a d to w a r d off potential a t t a c k e r s . T h e n again a n o t h e r rabbi c o m e s u p w i t h a n original n e w translation o f the biblical text, r e n d e r i n g the v e r s e as ' G o d turned C a i n into a sign for m u r d e r e r s . ' T h e H e b r e w le-qain
( ' t o C a i n ' ) is h e r e t a k e n to b e a n a c c u s a t i v e
not a d a t i v e , w h i c h w a s p o s s i b l e in the e y e s o f the r a b b i s b e c a u s e in their daily l a n g u a g e , P a l e s t i n i a n A r a m a i c , the p r e p o s i t i o n le- c o u l d d e n o t e b o t h the direct a n d the indirect o b j e c t .
38
In this w a y C a i n b e c a m e a terrifying e x a m p l e to future
m u r d e r e r s , w h o w o u l d k n o w that after s u c h a c r i m e t h e y w o u l d h a v e to live in 3 6
The square brackets indicate that these words are not in the lapidary text of the midrash itself but have been added in order to clarify the meaning. I here follow the procedure of J. Neusner in his translation of Genesis Rabbah. On the Greek background of this motif see D. Zeller, 'The Life and Death of the Soul in Philo of Alexandria: The Use and Origin of a Metaphor,' Studia Philonica Annual 7 (1995) 19-56. See H. Odeberg, The Aramaic Portions of Bereshit Rabba, vol. 2: Short Grammar of Galilaean Aramaic, Lund - Leipzig 1939, 87. 3 7
3 8
Philo and the Rabbis on
Genesis
125
n e v e r - e n d i n g fear. N o , s a y s a n o t h e r rabbi, C a i n thus b e c a m e an e n c o u r a g i n g e x a m p l e to p e n i t e n t s : he s h o w e d t h e m t h e s a v i n g p o w e r o f r e p e n t a n c e , for G o d did n o t p u n i s h h i m .
3 9
A t least G o d did n o t p u n i s h h i m i m m e d i a t e l y for h e g a v e
C a i n t i m e for r e p e n t a n c e a n d s u s p e n d e d his j u d g e m e n t . C a i n thus signifies the possibility o f forgiveness for s i n n e r s w h o repent. B u t s i n c e C a i n did n o t repent, h e w a s finally s w e p t a w a y in the f l o o d .
40
H e r e w e see that, as in P h i l o , the text
g i v e s o c c a s i o n to a w i d e variety o f e x p l a n a t i o n s , not o n e o f w h i c h is d e c l a r e d to b e the o n l y valid o n e to t h e e x c l u s i o n o f o t h e r s . A g a i n w e s e e that the a n s w e r s o f P h i l o a n d the r a b b i s are r a t h e r different b u t t h e q u e s t i o n s are the s a m e . A fifth a n d final i n s t a n c e is G e n . 5:24, the f a m o u s v e r s e that states that ' E n o c h walked with God, but then he w a s no more because God took him.' This verse g a v e rise to a spate o f E n o c h i c literature, b a s e d u p o n e x e g e t i c a l s p e c u l a t i o n s a b o u t t h e m e a n i n g o f t h e s e e n i g m a t i c w o r d s . Both P h i l o a n d the r a b b i s deal w i t h it, b u t their e x p l a n a t i o n s a r e g l a r i n g l y different. P h i l o raises the s i m p l e q u e s t i o n o f w h a t is t h e m e a n i n g o f t h e w o r d s ' a n d then h e w a s not b e c a u s e G o d t o o k h i m a w a y ' (QG 1.86). H i s a n s w e r is as follows (in a n a b b r e v i a t e d p a r a p h r a s e ) : First o f all, h e s a y s , the e n d o f w o r t h y a n d h o l y m e n is not d e a t h b u t a transfer to a n o t h e r p l a c e . T h i s is w h a t h a p p e n e d to E n o c h , for t h e text i m p l i e s that h e w a s transferred from a p l a c e visible b y s e n s e p e r c e p t i o n to a p l a c e in t h e incor p o r e a l a n d intelligible w o r l d ( n o t e the P l a t o n i c t e r m i n o l o g y ! ) . T h i s is w h a t also h a p p e n e d to M o s e s ( w h o s e burial p l a c e h a s a l w a y s r e m a i n e d u n k n o w n for that v e r y r e a s o n [see D e u t . 3 4 : 6 ] ) a n d to Elijah ( w h o a s c e n d e d to h e a v e n as w e l l [see 2 K i n g s 2:11 ] ) .
4 1
T h e s e t h r e e h o l y m e n w e r e d e e m e d w o r t h y b y G o d to b e t a k e n
u p into the i n c o r p o r e a l w o r l d instead o f d y i n g . T h i s is an utterly p o s i t i v e p i c t u r e o f E n o c h , j u s t as w e find it in t h e E n o c h i c literature. B u t n o w t h e r a b b i s . O n e o f the rabbis says (Gen.R.
2 5 . 1 ) : ' H e w a s n o t m o r e ' m e a n s that E n o c h w a s
not inscribed in the scroll o f the r i g h t e o u s but in the scroll o f t h e w i c k e d . A n o t h e r rabbi s a y s , ' E n o c h w a s a h y p o c r i t e , a c t i n g s o m e t i m e s as a r i g h t e o u s , s o m e t i m e s as a w i c k e d m a n . T h e r e f o r e t h e H o l y O n e , b l e s s e d b e H e , said: " W h i l e h e is in his r i g h t e o u s p h a s e , I will t a k e h i m a w a y " (/. e., w h e n h e w a l k e d w i t h G o d , h e died). Some sectarians
42
said to rabbi A b b a h u , " W e d o n o t find that E n o c h d i e d . "
H e a s k e d , " W h y n o t ? " T h e y a n s w e r e d : " T h e w o r d ' t a k i n g ' is u s e d b o t h h e r e a n d in the c a s e o f the p r o p h e t Elijah [and since Elijah w a s t a k e n u p into h e a v e n , t h e s a m e a p p l i e s to E n o c h ] . " B u t A b b a h u rejoined: " I f y o u w a n t to interpret the w o r d ' t a k i n g , ' t h e n take n o t i c e o f the fact that this w o r d is u s e d b o t h h e r e a n d 3 9
In QG 1.82 Philo speaks about 'the forgiving of Cain'! Thus, e.g., also Theodoret of Cyrrhus, Quaest. et Resp. in Genes. 4 1 . Kugel, Traditions 164, suggests that the rabbis may have read the text of Gen. 4:15 as follows: 'And the Lord said to him, "It will not be thus [that is, lo 'ken] with any [other] killer. [But as for] Cain, punishment will be exacted from him in seven generations.' On Philo's use of'secondary' biblical texts in his exegesis see Runia, "Secondary Texts," on this passage (QG I 86) esp. 5 1 - 5 2 . Which 'sectarians' are referred to is uncertain: Christians?, Jewish mystics?, others? 4 0
4 1
4 2
126
Philo and the Rabbis on
Genesis
in the c a s e o f E z e k i e l [ w h e r e it s a y s ] , " B e h o l d , I t a k e a w a y from y o u the d e s i r e o f y o u r e y e s " ( E z e k . 2 4 : 1 6 [ w h e r e it definitely refers to the d e a t h o f E z e k i e l ' s wife]). R a b b i T a n h u m a o b s e r v e d : " H e refuted t h e m w e l l . " A lady said to rabbi J o s e , " O n e d o e s n o t find that E n o c h d i e d . " H e said to her, " I f t h e text h a d o n l y said, ' A n d E n o c h w a l k e d w i t h G o d , ' a n d n o t h i n g else, I w o u l d a g r e e w i t h y o u , b u t s i n c e it s a y s , ' H e w a s n o m o r e since G o d t o o k h i m , ' it m e a n s that h e is n o t in t h e w o r l d a n y m o r e [ b e c a u s e h e d i e d ] . ' T h e c o n t r a s t b e t w e e n E n o c h as P h i l o ' s h o l y m a n w h o w a s transferred b y G o d to the h e a v e n l y r e a l m a n d E n o c h as the r a b b i s ' w i c k e d h y p o c r i t e w h o h a d to die a n o r m a l d e a t h c o u l d not b e greater. T h i s is not the p l a c e to deal w i t h the b a c k g r o u n d o f t h e s e w i d e l y different interpretations. Suffice it to say h e r e that it h a s m u c h to d o w i t h t h e d e v e l o p m e n t o f the traditions a b o u t E n o c h in t h e c e n t u r i e s a r o u n d t h e turn o f the C o m m o n E r a a n d the o p p o s i t i o n to this d e v e l o p m e n t in the circles o f r a b b i s w h o found the s p e c u l a t i o n s a b o u t E n o c h ' s e v e r m o r e e x a l t e d status a n d a u t h o r i t a t i v e r e v e l a t i o n s a d a n g e r o u s threat to m o n o t h e i s m a n d s a w E n o c h as a rival to M o s e s . E n o c h ' s metathesis
4 3
P h i l o , on t h e o t h e r h a n d , w e l c o m e d t h e i d e a o f
since it g a v e h i m the o p p o r t u n i t y to e m p h a s i z e the P l a t o n i c
i d e a that a really h o l y p e r s o n c o u l d b e g i v e n a vision o f the intelligible w o r l d . M o s t r e m a r k a b l e is that b o t h P h i l o a n d the r a b b i s d o n o t e t h e parallel w i t h t h e story o f Elijah, b u t that P h i l o g l a d l y a c c e p t s it w h e r e a s t h e rabbis d o their u t m o s t to reject it, e v e n if they h a v e to w r i g g l e in o r d e r to a v o i d the o b v i o u s m e a n i n g .
Conclusion W e h a v e selected o n l y a v e r y limited s a m p l e o f e x e g e t i c a l p a s s a g e s , restricting o u r s e l v e s to t h e first 5 c h a p t e r s o f G e n e s i s a n d to p a s s a g e s w h i c h are c o v e r e d b y b o t h P h i l o a n d t h e m i d r a s h i c w o r k Genesis
Rabbah.
T h i s s a m p l e is t o o s m a l l
to b a s e s w e e p i n g c o n c l u s i o n s u p o n . E v e n s o , t h e y are r e p r e s e n t a t i v e e n o u g h to w a r r a n t s o m e p r o v i s i o n a l a n d tentative c o n c l u s i o n s . W e m a y say that, in spite o f the g r e a t d i v e r s i t y o f solutions o f or a n s w e r s to e x e g e t i c a l p r o b l e m s a n d q u e s t i o n s , t h e c o m m o n g r o u n d o f the first c e n t u r y A l e x a n d r i a n p h i l o s o p h e r a n d t h e rabbis o f B y z a n t i n e P a l e s t i n e is to b e found in t h e fact that t h e y w r e s t l e d w i t h t h e s a m e q u e s t i o n s that the biblical text p u t before t h e m . K u g e l ' s f o r m u l a t i o n o f t h e first a s s u m p t i o n c o m m o n to all J e w i s h e x e g e t e s , the cryptic n a t u r e a n d h i d d e n m e a n i n g o f the biblical text w h i c h n e e d s to b e d e c o d e d , t u r n e d out to b e at w o r k in all c a s e s r e v i e w e d . A l s o t h e other a s s u m p t i o n s - the r e l e v a n c e to the
4 3
See P.S. Alexander, "Enoch and the Beginnings of Jewish Interest in Natural Science," in C. Hempel a. o. (eds.), The Wisdom texts from Qumran and the Development of Sapiential Thought, Leuven 2 0 0 3 , 2 3 3 - 2 3 4 ; R. Elior, The Three Temples. On the Emergence of Jewish Mysticism, Oxford - Portland 2004, 205, 2 2 1 ; P.W. van der Horst, Het boek der hemelse paleizen (3 Henoch), Kampen 1999, 1 1 - 1 3 . On Enoch traditions in general see J.C. VanderKam, Enoch, a Man for All Generations, Columbia 1995.
Philo and the Rabbis on
127
Genesis
p r e s e n t situation, the perfect h a r m o n y o f all parts o f Scripture, a n d its d i v i n e in spiration w e r e clearly d i s c e r n i b l e in t h e few c a s e s that p a s s e d review. O f c o u r s e , the differences in the a n s w e r s are c o n s i d e r a b l e , o n e o f the m o s t significant b e i n g that typically G r e e k p h i l o s o p h i c a l t h e m e s s u c h as t h e i m m o r t a l i t y o f t h e soul, the noetic w o r l d , a n d the a s c e n t o f t h e soul to this w o r l d o f
intelligibilia,
so p r o m i n e n t in P h i l o , are c o m p l e t e l y a b s e n t in the r a b b i n i c s o u r c e s . B u t such d i v e r g e n c e is, in the final a n a l y s i s , less w e i g h t y than t h e striking c o n v e r g e n c e in t h e n a t u r e o f the q u e s t i o n s . A m o r e large-scale a n d d e t a i l e d c o m p a r i s o n o f large parts o f P h i l o ' s e x e g e s i s o f G e n e s i s , i n c l u d i n g that in m a n y o f h i s allegorical treatises, w i t h n o t o n l y t h e w h o l e o f Genesis
Rabbah
b u t also w i t h the m a n y
other p a s s a g e s in early r a b b i n i c literature c o n t a i n i n g e x e g e s i s o f p a s s a g e s in G e n e s i s , is a d e s i d e r a t u m that I h o p e o t h e r s c h o l a r s are w i l l i n g to fill. T h i s m o d est c o n t r i b u t i o n h a s hopefully w h e t t e d t h e a p p e t i t e o f s u c h s c h o l a r s for t a c k l i n g this fascinating e n t e r p r i s e .
4 4
paper.
44
I o w e thanks to Prof. David T. Runia for his valuable comments on the first draft o f this
Philo of Alexandria on the Wrath of God It w a s to b e e x p e c t e d that the n o t i o n of G o d ' s w r a t h w o u l d constitute a p r o b l e m to the J e w i s h p h i l o s o p h e r P h i l o of A l e x a n d r i a . A s is w e l l - k n o w n , the t w o c u l tural traditions that m e r g e in his religious p h i l o s o p h y , the Biblical a n d J e w i s h tradition on t h e o n e h a n d a n d t h e G r e e k p h i l o s o p h i c a l on t h e other, s p e a k a w i d e l y different l a n g u a g e as far as the w r a t h o f G o d or the g o d s is c o n c e r n e d . P h i l o ' s i n g e n u i t y is i n d e e d great e n o u g h to find a s o l u t i o n to this p r o b l e m , b u t - as w e shall s e e - it is a far from u n p r o b l e m a t i c e n t e r p r i s e . In o r d e r to m a k e clear w h a t t h e difficult task w a s w h i c h P h i l o faced, I will first p r e s e n t a sketch o f t h e t w o d i a m e t r i c a l l y o p p o s e d p o s i t i o n s in the t w o traditions, a n d t h e n I will s h o w h o w P h i l o tries to c r e a t e a s y n t h e s i s b e t w e e n t h e s e antithetical p o s i t i o n s , a task for w h i c h h e w a s w e l l e q u i p p e d as a ' B i n d e g l i e d ' kat' exochen Jewish and the Greek traditions.
between the
1
O n the m o t i f o f G o d ' s w r a t h in t h e O l d T e s t a m e n t I c a n b e b r i e f s i n c e the texts c o n t a i n i n g that m o t i f are so n u m e r o u s a n d w e l l - k n o w n that a v e r y s u c c i n c t r e v i e w suffices. W h e n M o s e s a s k s G o d at the b u r n i n g b u s h to s e n d s o m e o n e else to t h e P h a r a o h , G o d ' s w r a t h w a s k i n d l e d a g a i n s t h i m ( E x . 4 : 1 4 ) . In t h e story a b o u t Israel's sin w i t h the g o l d e n calf, it is G o d ' s b u r n i n g w r a t h that t h r e a t e n s to d e s t r o y t h e p e o p l e so that M o s e s b e s e e c h e s h i m to turn a w a y from his w r a t h a n d s p a r e the Israelites for his N a m e ' s s a k e ( E x . 3 2 : 1 0 - 1 2 ) . G o d ' s w r a t h is k i n d l e d in the story o f B a l a a m ( N u m . 2 2 : 2 2 ) , at I s r a e l ' s idolatry w i t h B a ' a l P e ' o r ( N u m . 2 5 : 3 ^ 4 ) , at the sin o f A c h a n (Josh. 7 : 1 , 2 6 ) , at the w o r s h i p o f B a ' a l en A s h e r a b y the p e o p l e (Jud. 3:8; 10:7), w h e n U z z a t o o k h o l d o f the ark (2 S a m . 6:7), w h e n Z e d e k i a h did w h a t w a s evil in the sight o f the L o r d (2 K i n g s 2 4 : 1 9 - 2 0 ) etcetera. T h e a u t h o r o f 2 C h r o n i c l e s has t h e b u r n i n g w r a t h o f t h e L o r d p l a y an e v e n m o r e frequent role t h a n w a s a l r e a d y the c a s e in his s o u r c e s ; in the b o o k s o f t h e g r e a t p r o p h e t s , Isaiah, J e r e m i a h , a n d E z e c h i e l , the t h e m e o f G o d ' s w r a t h a g a i n s t Israel is a c o n s t a n t l y r e c u r r i n g m o t i f (Is. 2 0 x , Jer. 2 4 x , Ez. 1 l x ) ; a n d t h e m i n o r
1
H. Frohnhofen, Apatheia tou Theou. Uber die Affektlosigkeit Gottes in der griechischen Ant ike und bei den griechischsprachigen Kirchenvdtern bis zu Gregorios Thaumaturgos, Frankfurt etc. 1987, 108, rightly remarks that Philo, in view of his boundary position, seems to be predestined "einen ersten Harmonisicrungsversuch zwischen dem weitgehend apathischen Gott griechischer Provenienz und dem mitfiihlenden und durch die Menschen und ihr Schicksal betroffenen jiidischen Gott andererseits vorzunehmen."
Philo of Alexandria
129
on the Wrath of God 2
p r o p h e t s also s p e a k a b o u t G o d ' s w r a t h ( 1 5 x in t o t a l ) . S o m e t i m e s G o d ' s w r a t h is k i n d l e d s p o n t a n e o u s l y , w i t h o u t a n y d i s c e r n i b l e r e a s o n , as in 2 S a m . 2 4 : 1 , w h e r e G o d , in s e e m i n g l y u n m o t i v a t e d anger, incites D a v i d to c o u n t t h e p e o p l e (it is p e r h a p s partly the u n m o t i v a t e d n a t u r e o f this w r a t h that i n d u c e d the later a u t h o r o f C h r o n i c l e s to r e p l a c e ' G o d ' h e r e b y ' S a t a n ' in 1 C h r o n . 2 1 : 1 ) . G o d ' s w r a t h is d i r e c t e d n o t o n l y a g a i n s t his o w n p e o p l e o r m e m b e r s thereof, b u t also against t h e h e a t h e n n a t i o n s , especially in e s c h a t o l o g i c a l u t t e r a n c e s o f t h e p r o p h e t s , e. g., Is. 13:3, 5, 9, 13; M i c a h 5:14, Z e p h . 2 (cf. in vv. 2 a n d 3 the e x p r e s s i o n ' t h e d a y o f t h e w r a t h o f the L o r d ' ) ; also in P s . 2 : 5 , 1 2 .
3
T h e n u m b e r o f i n s t a n c e s a n d r e f e r e n c e s c o u l d b e m u l t i p l i e d ad libitum,
but
this s m a l l selection suffices to s h o w that the m o t i f o f G o d ' s w r a t h is not limited to o n l y a handful o f a u t h o r s or layers o f tradition in the H e b r e w Bible. O n the contrary, it is a c o n c e p t i o n s h a r e d b y all a u t h o r s : their G o d h a s t h e ability to get e n r a g e d a b o u t m a t t e r s d i s p l e a s i n g to h i m or a b o u t situations in w h i c h his love is hurt. N o o n e d e n i e s h i m this e m o t i o n , or w h a t e v e r o t h e r p a s s i o n for that matter. F u r t h e r m o r e , this p i c t u r e d o e s not c h a n g e essentially in post-biblical J e w i s h lit e r a t u r e . In r a b b i n i c w r i t i n g s G o d ' s w r a t h is s p o k e n o f as freely as in t h e H e b r e w B i b l e , a n d in m o s t o f p r e - r a b b i n i c literature, i n c l u d i n g t h e J e w i s h - H e l l e n i s t i c literature a n d the N e w T e s t a m e n t , the situation is not m u c h different.
4
Initially, the situation w a s not different in G r e e k culture either. In H o m e r , H e s i o d a n d t h e early t r a g e d i a n s , the w r a t h o f the g o d s is s p o k e n a b o u t in a w a y that is not essentially different from that o f the biblical a u t h o r s (apart from t h e difference b e t w e e n m o n o t h e i s m a n d p o l y t h e i s m ) . B u t at the e n d o f the sixth a n d d u r i n g the fifth c e n t u r y B C E , in G r e e c e a critical attitude t o w a r d s t h e traditional stories a b o u t t h e O l y m p i a n g o d s a r o s e , e s p e c i a l l y in p h i l o s o p h i c a l circles. X e n o p h a n e s 5
o f C o l o p h o n p l a y e d an i m p o r t a n t role in this m o v e m e n t . A central e l e m e n t in this criticism o f traditional m y t h o l o g y w a s t h e c o n c e p t o f ( w h a t w o u l d later b e called) to theoprepes, dignum
6
deo).
' t h a t w h i c h is fitting to a g o d or w o r t h y o f a g o d ' (in Latin,
T h e r e w a s a g r o w i n g a w a r e n e s s that h u m a n affections a n d e m o
tions, such as j e a l o u s y , lust, a n d anger, w e r e unfittingly a n d unjustly a s c r i b e d to the g o d s in t h e m y t h o l o g i c a l tales o f the tradition (e. g., H o m e r a n d H e s i o d ) . A n
2
Statistical data from G. Sauer, "af,' in Theologisches Handworterbuch zum Alten Testa ment 1 ( 1 9 7 1 ) 2 2 1 - 2 2 2 . For further discussion see E. Johnson, 'anaph, ' in Theological Dictionary of the Old Testament 1 (1974) 3 4 8 - 3 6 0 ; G.A. Herion, 'Wrath o f G o d , ' Anchor Bible Dictionary 6 (1992) 989-996. See the survey by E. Sjoberg and G. Stahlin in the Theologisches Worterbuch zum Neuen Testament V (1954) 413—419. See for his fragments H. Diels & W. Kranz, Die Fragmente der Vorsokratiker, vol. 1, Berlin 1951, 1 1 3 - 1 3 9 (nr. 21). O. Dreyer, Untersuchungen zum Begriff des Gottgeziemenden in der Antike, Hildesheim 1970. 3
4
5
6
130
Philo of Alexandria
on the Wrath of God
effect o f this idea o u t s i d e of strictly p h i l o s o p h i c a l circles, as far as t h e c o n c e p t o f d i v i n e w r a t h is c o n c e r n e d , c a n a l r e a d y b e s e e n in E u r i p i d e s w h e n , in the final s c e n e o f his Bacchae
( 1 3 4 8 ) , h e h a s o n e o f t h e dramatis
personae
say that it is
u n s e e m l y for g o d s to b e like m o r t a l s in m a t t e r s s u c h as fits o f anger. It w a s , h o w e v e r , especially Plato ( w h o w a n t e d to b a n i s h H o m e r ' s p o e t r y from his ideal state!) w h o s e great influence m a d e the i d e a o f the theoprepes
into
a central n o t i o n in t h e p e r i o d after h i m , t h e H e l l e n i s t i c - R o m a n era. H i s t h e o r y o f t h e essential a n d a n d a b s o l u t e u n c h a n g e a b i l i t y o f t h e d i v i n e w o r l d , in w h i c h t h e r e is o f c o u r s e n o p l a c e for an e m o t i o n s u c h as w r a t h , t h e n c o n q u e r s t h e intellectual w o r l d , albeit slowly, a n d b e c o m e s a n u n w r i t t e n d o g m a o f the reli g i o u s p h i l o s o p h y o f later antiquity. Initially this influence will limit itself to t h e w o r l d o f p h i l o s o p h i c a l a n d religious t h i n k e r s , as is a p p a r e n t from a u t h o r s w h o are c o n t e m p o r a r i e s o f P h i l o in the w i d e s e n s e o f the w o r d , i. e., from the third c e n t u r y B C E to the third c e n t u r y C E . F o r i n s t a n c e , E p i c u r u s w r i t e s in t h e v e r y first s e n t e n c e o f his Kyriai w r a t h or g r a c e (neque
doxai that w h a t is d i v i n e c a n n o t b e m o v e d b y either
ira neque gratia),
a n d C i c e r o , w h o q u o t e s this s e n t e n c e ,
a d d s that if w e t o o k that into c o n s i d e r a t i o n , all fear o f the p o w e r a n d a n g e r o f t h e g o d s w o u l d b e b a n i s h e d (De natura
deorum
I 1 7 , 4 5 ) . D i s p e l l i n g t h e fear o f
t h e w r a t h o f t h e g o d s w a s o n e o f the m a j o r m o t i v e s for L u c r e t i u s to w r i t e his De rerum natura
(cf., t o o , P l u t a r c h ' s De sera numinis
vindicta,
e s p . c h s . 12 a n d 2 0 ) .
S e x t u s E m p i r i c u s , finally, s a y s that it h a s b e e n a d o g m a o f all p h i l o s o p h e r s that the d i v i n e c a n n o t b e subject to e m o t i o n s or p a s s i o n s (apathes, Hypotyposeis
1 162).
in his
Pyrrhoneiai
7
In a s e n s e , P h i l o h i m s e l f b e l o n g e d to t h e s e p h i l o s o p h e r s , a l t h o u g h o n e c o u l d d e b a t e t h e q u e s t i o n ( a n d it is i n d e e d a d e b a t e d q u e s t i o n ! ) o f w h e t h e r P h i l o is a p h i l o s o p h e r p r a c t i c i n g e x e g e s i s or r a t h e r a p h i l o s o p h i c a l l y t r a i n e d e x e g e t e . B e that as it m a y , it is clear in w h a t field o f t e n s i o n P h i l o h a d to m o v e . It is i m p o r t a n t to s e e h o w h e s o l v e d the p r o b l e m o f the conflict b e t w e e n the t w o traditions h e s t o o d in, n o t in the least b e c a u s e his solution will turn out to s e r v e as a m o d e l for t h e w a y in w h i c h later p h i l o s o p h i c a l l y trained C h u r c h F a t h e r s w o u l d t a c k l e t h e s a m e a n d s i m i l a r p r o b l e m s . To p u t it a n o t h e r w a y , t h e h e r m e n e u t i c a l k e y d e s i g n e d b y P h i l o w o u l d h a v e a far-reaching influence o n later C h r i s t i a n t h e o l ogy.
8
W e n o w find that for P h i l o the c o n c e p t o f the theoprepes,
the dignum
deo,
h a d b e c o m e so m u c h o f a d o g m a that in fact the t h o u g h t that the biblical texts m e n t i o n i n g G o d ' s w r a t h c o u l d h a v e b e e n m e a n t literally d o e s not e v e n c r o s s his m i n d . To b e fair, h e d o e s o c c a s i o n a l l y fall b a c k on this biblical u s a g e w h e n , for 7
I specifically mention here some philosophers who do not (or at least not strictly or exclu sively) belong to the Platonic school in order to demonstrate that this concept was certainly not restricted to just the inner circle o f Platonists. See D. T. Runia, Philo in Early Christian Literature. A Survey, Assen-Philadelphia 1993. 8
Philo of Alexandria
131
on the Wrath of God
instance, h e s a y s that s o m e p e o p l e p r o v o k e G o d ' s a n g e r b y their w i c k e d lives a n d that w e s h o u l d a l w a y s a v o i d that (De somniis
II 1 7 7 - 1 7 9 ) , o r w h e n h e s a y s
that t h e a n n u a l i n u n d a t i o n o f t h e N i l e b r i n g s a b o u t a rich h a r v e s t for the inhabit ants o f E g y p t u n l e s s G o d ' s w r a t h a b o u t their sinfulness p r e v e n t s this from t a k i n g p l a c e (Vita Mosis I 6). B u t t h e s e are s p o r a d i c e x c e p t i o n s , a n d they are n o m o r e than c o n c e s s i o n s to biblical u s a g e . F o r w h e n the issue b e c o m e s crucial, P h i l o e x p r e s s e s h i m s e l f in all clarity: " W e u s e to think o f the b l e s s e d a n d t h e i m m o r t a l in t e r m s o f o u r o w n n a t u r e s . F o r in w o r d s w e d o s h u n i n d e e d the m o n s t r o s i t y o f s a y i n g that G o d is o f h u m a n form, b u t in actual fact w e a c c e p t the i m p i o u s t h o u g h t that h e is o f h u m a n p a s s i o n s . A n d therefore w e i n v e n t for h i m h a n d s a n d feet, i n c o m i n g s a n d o u t g o i n g s , e n m i t i e s , a v e r s i o n s , e s t r a n g e m e n t s , anger, in fact s u c h b o d y parts a n d p a s s i o n s as c a n n e v e r b e l o n g to the C a u s e " (De
sacrificiis
Abelis et Caini 9 5 - 9 6 ) . F o r " t h e n a t u r e o f G o d is w i t h o u t g r i e f or fear a n d w h o l l y e x e m p t from p a s s i o n o f a n y kind, a n d a l o n e p a r t a k e s o f perfect h a p p i n e s s a n d b l i s s " (De Abrahamo
2 0 2 ; cf. Quoddeus
sit immutabilis
fully as t h e G r e e k p h i l o s o p h e r h e really i s .
5 9 ) . H e r e w e see P h i l o
9
B u t if this is P h i l o ' s d e e p c o n v i c t i o n , h o w , then, d o e s h e c o p e w i t h the m a n y biblical t e x t s that s p e a k o f G o d ' s w r a t h ? " W h y t h e n d o e s M o s e s s p e a k o f feet a n d h a n d s , g o i n g s in a n d g o i n g s out in c o n n e x i o n w i t h t h e U n c r e a t e d ? ( . . . ) W h y a g a i n d o e s h e s p e a k o f h i s j e a l o u s y , his w r a t h , his m o o d s o f a n g e r a n d the o t h e r e m o t i o n s similar to t h e m , w h i c h h e d e s c r i b e s in t e r m s o f h u m a n n a t u r e ? , " P h i l o a s k s h i m s e l f (Quod
deus sit immutabilis
6 0 ) . T h e a n s w e r lies in a
p e d a g o g i c a l p r i n c i p l e that the later C h u r c h F a t h e r s will n a m e synkatabasis condescensio,
u n d e r s t a n d i n g o f the p e r s o n ( s ) o n e w a n t s to r e a c h .
10
In a p r o g r a m m a t i c p a s s a g e ,
P h i l o f o r m u l a t e s this p r i n c i p l e as follows (here I briefly p a r a p h r a s e Quod sit immutabilis
or
that is. ' d e s c e n t ' (in the s e n s e o f ' a c c o m m o d a t i o n ' ) to the level o f
61-69):
1 1
deus
A l a w g i v e r w h o a i m s at the b e s t m u s t h a v e o n l y o n e
g o a l b e f o r e h i m , n a m e l y to benefit all t h o s e w h o m h e w a n t s to r e a c h w i t h his l a w s . T h o s e w h o h a v e a gifted n a t u r e a n d h a v e h a d a t h o r o u g h e d u c a t i o n a n d s c h o o l i n g will n o t feel inclined to a s c r i b e h u m a n features to G o d , 'initiated in the infallible m y s t e r i e s o f B e i n g ' as they are. T h e s a y i n g that " G o d is n o t as a m a n " ( N u m . 2 3 : 1 9 ) suffices for t h e m . T h e r e is, h o w e v e r , also a n o t h e r c a t e g o r y o f h u m a n s , t h o s e w h o s e n a t u r e is m o r e dull a n d t a r d y a n d w h o s e e d u c a t i o n or training h a s b e e n insufficient a n d w h o are for that r e a s o n i n c a p a b l e o f a clear vi sion, a n d t h e s e are the p e o p l e w h o n e e d a p h y s i c i a n w h o will d e v i s e a therapeutic t r e a t m e n t p r o p e r to their c o n d i t i o n in o r d e r to i m p r o v e t h e m . T h e situation is
9
Note that the title o f the last mentioned treatise - hoti atrepton to theion - sounds like a philosophical program. On this topic see the old but still valuable study by H. Koch, Pronoia und Paideusis. Studien iiber Origenes undsein Verhdltnis zum Platonismus, Berlin 1932. See the commentary by D. Winston en J. Dillon, Two Treatises of Philo of Alexandria, Chico 1 9 8 3 , 3 0 7 - 3 1 1 . 1 0
11
132
Philo of Alexandria
on the Wrath of God
also c o m p a r a b l e to that of an u n d i s c i p l i n e d a n d foolish slave w h o n e e d s a strict m a s t e r w h o t h r e a t e n s h i m a n d scares h i m in o r d e r to k e e p h i m u n d e r c o n t r o l . In such situations, u n t r u t h (ta pseude)
is s o m e t i m e s t h e o n l y m e a n s to benefit t h e m
if t h e y c a n n o t b e b r o u g h t to w i s d o m b y m e a n s o f truth. W h e n M o s e s a s c r i b e s to G o d t h e h u m a n attribute o f a n g e r e v o k e d b y sin, that is o n l y a m e t a p h o r . W h a t h e w a n t s to say is that all o u r d e e d s are r e p r e h e n s i b l e if t h e y are the fruits o f e m o t i o n s a n d p a s s i o n s , b u t l a u d a b l e if they are the p r o d u c t s o f o u r insight a n d k n o w l e d g e . B u t it is also an e l e m e n t a r y lesson for all t h o s e w h o c a n b e b r o u g h t in line o n l y b y threats. ' T h i s is the o n l y w a y in w h i c h the fool c a n b e a d m o n i s h e d ' ( 6 8 ) . It is for that v e r y r e a s o n that, apart from the text a b o u t G o d ' s n o t b e i n g like a m a n ( N u m . 2 3 : 1 9 ) , there is also a n o t h e r text that s e e m s to say t h e o p p o s i t e b y stating that " t h e L o r d y o u r G o d d i s c i p l i n e s y o u as a m a n d i s c i p l i n e s his s o n " ( D e u t . 8:5), a s a y i n g that is directed at the ' f o o l s . ' T h i s d e m o n s t r a t e s that G o d links t w o p r i n c i p l e s , fear a n d love. " T o love h i m is t h e m o s t suitable for t h o s e into w h o s e c o n c e p t i o n o f the E x i s t e n t n o t h o u g h t o f h u m a n parts or p a s s i o n s e n t e r s , w h o p a y H i m the h o n o u r m e e t for G o d for H i s o w n s a k e only. To fear, h o w e v e r , is m o s t suitable to the o t h e r s " ( 6 9 ) .
1 2
It is clear that, a c c o r d i n g to P h i l o , quite often G o d , as in a p e d a g o g i c a l situa tion, has to d e s c e n d to the level o f children or u n e d u c a t e d slaves in o r d e r to b r i n g t h e m to insight, o b e d i e n c e , a n d the right w a y o f life. In De somniis
I 234-237
P h i l o p u t s it in a slightly different w a y : It is for t h o s e w h o lack the n e c e s s a r y w i s d o m that S c r i p t u r e p r e s e n t s G o d in an a n t h r o p o m o r p h i c w a y ; h e n c e the biblical p a s s a g e s a b o u t H i s b o d i l y parts, H i s m o v e m e n t s , H i s a n g e r a n d w r a t h , e v e n H i s w e a p o n r y . B u t that is not l a n g u a g e in w h i c h the truth is c o n v e y e d , for its a i m is solely t h e useful effect o f that l a n g u a g e u p o n p e o p l e w h o still h a v e to learn v e r y m u c h . Unfortuately, there are p e o p l e w h o c a n n o t b u t i m a g i n e G o d as a k i n d o f h u m a n b e i n g , w i t h all l i m b s , m o v e m e n t s , e m o t i o n s , a n d w e a p o n s . W e c a n o n l y b e grateful if they c a n b e b r o u g h t to lead a s o m e w h a t m o r e s e n s i b l e life b y i n s p i r i n g fear into t h e m , s a y s P h i l o . H e r e P l a t o p r e v a i l s o v e r M o s e s . P l a t o ' s d o c t r i n e o f the a b s o l u t e i m m u t a b i l i t y o f G o d p r e v a i l s o v e r M o s e s ' a n t h r o p o m o r p h i c c o n c e p t i o n o f G o d . A n d it is e x a c t l y for that r e a s o n that P h i l o h a s b e c o m e so influential, not in J e w i s h b u t in C h r i s t i a n circles. It is not a c o i n c i d e n c e that it is t w o A l e x a n d r i a n C h r i s t i a n s c h o l a r s in w h o s e w o r k s o n e finds the first clear traces o f influence o f P h i l o ' s s y n t h e s i s o f biblical faith a n d G r e e k p h i l o s o p h y , n a m e l y , C l e m e n t a n d O r i g e n . In C l e m e n t ' s Stromateis
13
IV 1 1 , 6 8 , 3 w e h e a r a clear e c h o o f P h i l o w h e n C l e m e n t
s a y s that n o o n e s h o u l d think that the B i b l e talks o f real objects or e v e n t s w h e n it s p e a k s o f His l i m b s , m o v e m e n t s , w r a t h , a n d threats; this is to b e u n d e r s t o o d 1 2
On this passage sec also J. Dillon, 'The Nature of God in the Quod deus,' in Winston & Dillon, Two Treatises 2 1 7 - 2 2 8 , esp. 2 2 0 - 2 . Runia, Philo in Early Christian Literature 1 3 2 - 1 8 3 . 1 3
Philo of Alexandria
133
on the Wrath of God
allegorically. P h i l o ' s v o i c e is h e a r d e v e n m o r e clearly in O r i g e n ' s w o r k , in his p o l e m i c s a g a i n s t the p a g a n p h i l o s o p h e r C e l s u s . W h e n C e l s u s ridicules the an t h r o p o m o r p h i c w a y s the B i b l e s p e a k s o f G o d , O r i g e n a r g u e s as follows (Contra
Celsum
1 4
especially his w r a t h a n d threats,
I V 7 1 - 7 2 ) : Just as p a r e n t s a d a p t their
l a n g u a g e to t h e level o f their c h i l d r e n s ' c a p a c i t y o f u n d e r s t a n d i n g , so d o e s t h e L o g o s o f G o d . T h e w o r d s that Scripture p u t s into G o d ' s m o u t h d o not c o r r e s p o n d w i t h G o d ' s real n a t u r e but w i t h the h u m a n c a p a c i t y o f u n d e r s t a n d i n g . T h e s o called w r a t h o f G o d , s a y s O r i g e n , h a s in the B i b l e o n l y o n e p u r p o s e : the c o r r e c tion o f m e n ' s b e h a v i o u r .
15
T h a t m u s t b e clear to a n y o n e w h o sees that the B i b l e
attributes D a v i d ' s b e i n g instigated to c o u n t the p e o p l e o f Israel to G o d ' s w r a t h in o n e b o o k (2 S a m . 2 4 : 1 ) b u t to t h e devil in a n o t h e r b o o k (1 C h r o n . 2 1 : 1 ) . T h a t b o t h A l e x a n d r i a n s k n e w P h i l o is b e y o n d a n y d o u b t ; his influence is d i s c e r n i b l e e v e r y w h e r e . O n e c a n g a u g e h e r e h o w w e l c o m e P h i l o ' s solution o f t h e p r o b l e m o f G o d ' s w r a t h w a s to t h e s e P l a t o n i z i n g Christian t h e o l o g i a n s .
1 4
16
On Celsus' and other anti-Christian polemicists' criticism of the biblical idea of God's wrath see J.G. Cook, The Interpretation of the Old Testament in Greco-Roman Paganism, Tubingen 2004, 1 4 3 - 5 , 2 9 1 - 3 , 3 0 2 - 5 . In his Homiliae in Ieremiam XVIII - X X Origen even speaks o f apate (pia fraus, pious deceit) on God's part in this connection. See Runia, Philo in Early Christian Literature 176 (et al.); also the contributions by E. Osborn and R. Heine in P.M. Blowers (ed.), The Bible in Greek Christian Antiquity, Notre Dame 1997, 112-148. 15
1 6
Anti-Samaritan Propaganda in Early Judaism Introduction F r o m a religio-historical p o i n t o f view, the S a m a r i t a n s s h o u l d n o t b e n e g l e c t e d as t h e y w e r e a n i m p o r t a n t a n d large r e l i g i o u s c o m m u n i t y in a n c i e n t P a l e s t i n e , a l o n g s i d e t h e J e w s , a n d they c o n t i n u e to exist to the p r e s e n t day, e v e n t h o u g h 1
their c o m m u n i t y is n o w v e r y s m a l l ( s o m e 6 7 5 m e m b e r s ) . S a m a r i t a n i s m c a n n o t 2
b e r e g a r d e d as a n y t h i n g but a variety o f J u d a i s m . B o t h are r e p r e s e n t a t i v e s o f I s r a e l ' s religion. T h e S a m a r i t a n s w o r s h i p t h e s a m e G o d as t h e J e w s , they h a v e the s a m e T o r a h o f M o s e s , t h e y k e e p the s a m e l a w s , t h e y h a v e similar s y n a g o g u e s e r v i c e s etc. S a m a r i t a n i s m r e p r e s e n t s a c o n s e r v a t i v e Y a h w i s t i c cult a n d c a n n o t b e r e g a r d e d as a religion that is essentially different from J u d a i s m . In p r a c t i c e , h o w e v e r , t h i n g s are v e r y different: S a m a r i t a n s w o u l d n e v e r call t h e m s e l v e s J e w s (their self-designation is ' I s r a e l i t e s ' ) a n d t h e y r e g a r d J u d a i s m as a h e r e s y or p e r v e r t e d religion; similarly, in t h e m a n y p a s s a g e s in a n c i e n t J e w i s h literature a b o u t t h e S a m a r i t a n s it is far from e a s y to find a k i n d w o r d . W h e n the a u t h o r o f the G o s p e l o f J o h n r e m a r k s , " J e w s d o n o t s h a r e t h i n g s in c o m m o n w i t h S a m a r i t a n s " (4:9), it is not far from the truth. A l s o t h e p a s s a g e in the G o s p e l o f L u k e in w h i c h the S a m a r i t a n s refuse to r e c e i v e J e s u s a n d his disciples in o n e o f their v i l l a g e s w h i l e on their w a y to J e r u s a l e m ( 9 : 5 1 - 5 3 ) g i v e s the i m p r e s s i o n 3
o f great a n i m o s i t y . T h i s m u t u a l a n i m o s i t y is quite p r o m i n e n t in m a n y o f t h e a n c i e n t J e w i s h s o u r c e s , a n d it c o m e s a l m o s t as a surprise w h e n in o n e o f t h e s e s o u r c e s , the e x t r a - T a l m u d i c treatise Kuthim
( = S a m a r i t a n s ) , t h e o p e n i n g line
r u n s as f o l l o w s : " T h e S a m a r i t a n s in s o m e o f their w a y s r e s e m b l e the g e n t i l e s a n d in s o m e r e s e m b l e Israel, b u t in the majority t h e y r e s e m b l e I s r a e l " ( l . l ) . 1
4
For surveys of Samaritan research see J.D. Purvis, "The Samaritans and Judaism," in R.A. Kraft & G.W.E. Nickelsburg (eds.), Early Judaism and its Modern Interpreters, Atlanta 1986, 8 1 - 9 8 , and esp. R. Pummer, "Einfuhrung in den Stand der Samaritanerforschung," in F. Dexinger & R. Pummer (eds.), Die Samaritaner, Darmstadt 1992, 1-66. See the fine survey in Alan Crown's article "Samaritan Judaism," in The Encyclopedia of Judaism. Vol. V. Supplement Two, ed. Jacob Neusner, Alan J. Avery-Peck, and William Scott Green, N e w York 2004, 2 2 4 1 - 2 2 6 5 For the N T passages on Samaritans see I. Hjelm, The Samaritans and Early Judaism. A Literary Analysis, Sheffield 2 0 0 0 , 115-125. Transl. by M. Simon, "Kuthim: On the Samaritans," in A. Cohen (ed.), The Minor Trac tates of the Talmud, vol. 2, London 1965, 615. L. Gulkowitsch, "Der kleine Talmudtraktat iiber die Samaritaner," ANGELOS: Archiv fur neutestamentliche Zeitgeschichte 1 (1925) 4 8 - 5 6 , 2
3
4
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
Judaism
135
T h i s relatively m i l d j u d g e m e n t is, h o w e v e r , certainly not the usual s e n t i m e n t o n e finds in a n c i e n t J e w i s h s o u r c e s b e c a u s e , as w e will p r e s e n t l y see, there w a s n o t m u c h love lost b e t w e e n t h e t w o parties a n d there w a s a long history o f m u t u a l m a l i g n i n g . B e c a u s e m u c h o f o u r data c o m e s from J e w i s h s o u r c e s , w h i c h are hostile, a n d b e c a u s e the S a m a r i t a n s o u r c e s are g e n e r a l l y from a late p e r i o d 5
( B y z a n t i n e a n d m e d i e v a l ) a n d therefore u n r e l i a b l e , it is e x t r e m e l y hard to trace 6
the history of the S a m a r i t a n s , e s p e c i a l l y the early p h a s e s . In this p a p e r I a m not g o i n g to search for historical facts. I will restrict m y s e l f to e x a m i n i n g certain a s p e c t s o f the history of m a l i g n i n g , e s p e c i a l l y the w a y S a m a r i t a n s are p o r t r a y e d in J e w i s h literature. O n l y a small selection o f p a s s a g e s reflecting a n t i - S a m a r i t a n p r o p a g a n d a c a n b e dealt w i t h h e r e .
The Hebrew
Bible
T h e p r o c e s s s e e m s a l r e a d y to h a v e b e g u n in the H e b r e w B i b l e , w h e r e w e r e a d in 2 K i n g s 17 that t h e A s s y r i a n s d e p o r t e d a l m o s t all o f the i n h a b i t a n t s o f the N o r t h e r n K i n g d o m o f Israel a n d i n t r o d u c e d p a g a n s from v a r i o u s c o r n e r s of t h e A s s y r i a n E m p i r e . T h e s e i m m i g r a n t s o c c u p i e d S a m a r i a a n d its t o w n s . " I n t h e early y e a r s o f their s e t t l e m e n t s they did not p a y h o m a g e to the L o r d , so the L o r d sent lions a m o n g t h e m " ( 2 5 ) . W h e n the A s s y r i a n k i n g h e a r d this, " h e g a v e o r d e r s that o n e o f t h e priests t a k e n c a p t i v e from S a m a r i a s h o u l d b e sent b a c k to live t h e r e a n d t e a c h the p e o p l e the u s a g e o f t h e G o d o f the country. S o o n e o f the d e p o r t e d priests c a m e b a c k a n d ( . . . ) t a u g h t t h e m h o w to w o r s h i p the L o r d " ( 2 7 - 2 8 ) . S o o n e c o u l d say that, a c c o r d i n g to this s o u r c e , " Y a h w i s m w a s i n t r o d u c e d o n l y as a s u p e r s t i t i o u s g e s t u r e a n d t h e n o n l y b y an illegitimate priest 7
from o n e o f the forbidden n o r t h e r n s h r i n e s . " But, the story g o e s on, " e a c h o f the n a t i o n s w e n t on m a k i n g its o w n g o d s . T h e y set t h e m u p in n i c h e s at the shrines w h i c h the S a m a r i t a n s h a d m a d e , e a c h n a t i o n in its o w n s e t t l e m e n t s . (...) T h e y k e e p u p t h e s e old p r a c t i c e s to the present
day; t h e y d o not p a y h o m a g e to the
Lord, for t h e y d o not k e e p his statutes a n d j u d g e m e n t s , t h e l a w a n d c o m m a n d m e n t , w h i c h h e enjoined on t h e d e s c e n d a n t s o f J a c o b w h o m h e n a m e d Israel. ( . . . ) T h e y w o u l d not listen b u t c o n t i n u e d their former p r a c t i c e s . W h i l e t h e s e n a t i o n s p a i d h o m a g e to t h e L o r d , t h e y c o n t i n u e d to s e r v e their i m a g e s , a n d their c h i l d r e n a n d their c h i l d r e n ' s c h i l d r e n h a v e m a i n t a i n e d t h e p r a c t i c e o f their forefathers to this day" ( 2 9 , 3 4 , 4 0 - 4 1 ) . offers a German translation. It is to be borne in mind that the closing paragraph of the same tractate says that Samaritans may only be readmitted into the Jewish community "when they have renounced Mount Gerizim and acknowledged Jerusalem and the resurrection from the dead," which of course implies that without that they are complete outsiders. The benevolent opening line of the treatise may reflect an earlier Tannaitic position (see below). See for a brief introduction to the Samaritan sources Pummer, "Einfuhrung" 1 2 - 3 4 . See L.L. Grabbe, Judaism from Cyrus to Hadrian, vol. 2, Minneapolis 1992, 503. Grabbe, Judaism 504. 5
6
7
136
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
Judaism
T h i s p a s s a g e h a s a p a t e n t l y p o l e m i c a l n a t u r e , a n d it is n o w g e n e r a l l y r e c o g n i z e d that its historical a c c u r a c y a n d reliability is e x t r e m e l y d u b i o u s .
8
Modern
r e s e a r c h h a s d e m o n s t r a t e d that, a m o n g other t h i n g s , " o n l y a s m a l l p o r t i o n o f the p o p u l a t i o n ( s o m e o f t h e u p p e r class) w e r e d e p o r t e d a n d the b u l k o f the p o p u l a 9
tion r e m a i n e d in t h e l a n d . " C o n s e q u e n t l y , t h e r e c o u l d h a v e b e e n n o large-scale influx o f foreigners, w i t h p a g a n religions, w h o o n l y s e e m i n g l y w o r s h i p p e d t h e G o d o f Israel. It is o b v i o u s l y the biblical a u t h o r ' s intention to c o n v i n c e his a u d i e n c e that the r e l i g i o u s beliefs a n d p r a c t i c e s o f t h e p e o p l e w h o lived in the n o r t h e r n parts o f the c o u n t r y o u t s i d e J u d a e a w e r e o f s u c h a r e g r e t t a b l y s y n c r e t istic n a t u r e that it w o u l d b e best to k e e p t h e m at a great d i s t a n c e .
10
F r o m its earliest k n o w n interpretations in a n c i e n t J u d a i s m this p a s s a g e w a s t h o u g h t to d e s c r i b e t h e origins o f t h e S a m a r i t a n religion, as w e c a n see b o t h in J o s e p h u s a n d in r a b b i n i c literature (Ant. 9 . 2 7 7 - 2 9 1 ; b . Qidd. 7 5 b ) .
11
Especially
t h e m e n from C u t h a m e n t i o n e d in 2 K i n g s 17:30 w e r e s i n g l e d out as b e i n g S a m a r i t a n b e l i e v e r s ; h e n c e the d e s i g n a t i o n Cuthim Chouthaioi
in r a b b i n i c literature a n d
in J o s e p h u s . B u t is this interpretation justified? T h e critical q u e s t i o n
is: A g a i n s t w h o m w a s the p o l e m i c o f this p a s s a g e originally d i r e c t e d ? O n the b a s i s o f the reference to the shomronim
in v. 2 9 it has often b e e n a s s u m e d that it
w a s the S a m a r i t a n s w h o m the a u t h o r h a d in m i n d . N o w a d a y s it is a s s u m e d that 2 K i n g s 17 w a s originally
not a b o u t the origins o f the S a m a r i t a n s b u t referred o n l y
to t h e syncretistic, or e v e n gentile, p o p u l a t i o n o f S a m a r i a , w h o m w e n o w call 'Samarians.'
1 2
T h e final redactor, h o w e v e r , m a y h a v e w a n t e d to g i v e the p a s s a g e
a n a n t i - S a m a r i t a n twist. A l s o the p a s s a g e in E z r a 4 a b o u t t h e o p p o n e n t s o f the r e t u r n e d e x i l e s , called ' t h e e n e m i e s o f J u d a h a n d B e n j a m i n ' a n d ' t h e p e o p l e o f the l a n d , ' m a y not refer to the S a m a r i t a n s , as it h a s often b e e n t a k e n to d o , but to v a r i o u s g r o u p s o f S a m a r i a n s .
8
13
See e. g. R.J. Coggins, Samaritans and Jews. The Origins of Samaritanism Reconsidered, Oxford 1975, 1 3 - 1 8 ; F. Dexinger, "Limits of Tolerance in Judaism: The Samaritan Example," in E.R Sanders et al. (eds.), Jewish and Christian Self-Definition, vol. 2, London 1981, 8 9 - 9 1 ; Purvis, "The Samaritans and Judaism". Grabbe, Judaism 504. See also M. Bohm, Samarien und die Samaritai bei Lukas, Tubingen 1999, 1 0 5 - 1 3 4 . In traditional Jewish circles this is still the accepted point of view; see e.g. L.H. Schiffman, Texts and Traditions. A Source Reader for the Study of Second Temple and Rabbinic Judaism, Hoboken 1998, 9 6 - 9 8 . For a survey of the debate see Dexinger, "Limits of Tolerance" 8 9 - 9 6 , and Bohm, Sa marien 1 0 5 - 1 3 4 . See the observations by B. Becking, "Continuity and Community: The Belief System of the Book of Ezra," in B. Becking & M.C.A. Korpel (eds.), The Crisis of Israelite Reli gion: Transformation of Religious Tradition in Exilic and Post-Exilic Times, Leiden 1999, 272-275. 9
1 0
11
1 2
1 3
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
137
Judaism
Josephus It is striking that in his r e n d e r i n g o f 2 K i n g s 17, J o s e p h u s not o n l y d o e s not m e n t i o n a n y s y n c r e t i s m o f the A s s y r i a n c o l o n i s t s , h e e v e n e m p h a s i z e s that after h a v i n g r e c e i v e d the n e c e s s a r y instruction in the true w o r s h i p o f G o d from an Israelite priest " t h e y w o r s h i p p e d H i m w i t h great z e a l " a n d that this r e m a i n e d the c a s e " e v e n to this d a y " ( 9 . 2 9 0 ) . N o t a single w o r d a b o u t r e l a p s i n g or a b o u t m i x i n g this true religion w i t h tenets or rites o f their old religion! A s J u r g e n Z a n g e n b e r g h a s r e m a r k e d , J o s e p h u s p i c t u r e s t h e m as true p r o s e l y t e s : " A b w e n d u n g v o m fremden G o t t , H i n w e n d u n g z u m w a h r e n G o t t d u r c h B e l e h r u n g m i t d e r K o n z e q u e n z der T r e u e z u r a n g e n o m m e n e n L e b e n s w e i s e . "
14
In r a b b i n i c
literature, t h e S a m a r i t a n s are s o m e t i m e s also p r e s e n t e d as p r o s e l y t e s , b u t o f a very suspect type, namely 'lion p r o s e l y t e s . '
15
T h e y w e r e so called b e c a u s e they
a d o p t e d the Israelite faith o n l y after G o d p u n i s h e d t h e m w i t h attacks b y lions. T h i s , o f c o u r s e , w a s not v o l u n t a r y or w h o l e h e a r t e d , so there w a s e v e r y r e a s o n to b e s u s p i c i o u s o f their real beliefs. T h e r e is n o trace o f this k i n d o f s e n t i m e n t s in this p a s s a g e b y J o s e p h u s . O n t h e o t h e r h a n d , h o w e v e r , J o s e p h u s d o e s state e v e n m o r e e m p h a t i c a l l y t h a n the biblical text that - c o n t r a r y to w h a t t h e S a m a r i t a n s t h e m s e l v e s h a v e a l w a y s m a i n t a i n e d - there w a s n o c o n t i n u i t y at all b e t w e e n the n o r t h e r n Israelites a n d t h e S a m a r i t a n s . T h e former h a d all b e e n d e p o r t e d (see 9 . 2 7 8 ) a n d the latter w e r e a n e w p e o p l e that h a d a d o p t e d the religion o f Israel. T h e o n l y critical n o t e that J o s e p h u s a d d s at t h e e n d is that t h e s e p e o p l e , w h o h e s a y s are called Chouthaioi
in H e b r e w a n d Samareitai
in G r e e k , are quite o p p o r
tunistic in their attitude t o w a r d s t h e J e w s : " W h e n they see t h e J e w s p r o s p e r i n g , they call t h e m their k i n s m e n o n t h e g r o u n d that they are d e s c e n d e d from J o s e p h and are related to t h e m t h r o u g h their origin from h i m , but w h e n they see the J e w s in trouble, they say that they h a v e n o t h i n g w h a t e v e r in c o m m o n w i t h t h e m n o r d o t h e s e h a v e a n y c l a i m of friendship or k i n s h i p , a n d they d e c l a r e t h e m s e l v e s to b e aliens o f a different n a t i o n " ( 9 . 2 9 1 ) . B u t aside from this, it r e m a i n s r e m a r k a b l e a n d also s o m e w h a t e n i g m a t i c that J o s e p h u s alters the biblical report to m a k e it so m u c h m o r e p o s i t i v e w h e r e a s e l s e w h e r e h e is so critical o f the S a m a r i a n s , as w e shall see presently. W a s t h e r e a s o n that h e k n e w t h e S a m a r i t a n s w e l l e n o u g h p e r s o n a l l y to b e a w a r e o f t h e fact that they w e r e faithful a d h e r e n t s o f the G o d o f Israel? D i d h e p e r h a p s h a v e a different Vorlage o f t h e text o f 2 K i n g s ? M a y b e M a r i a B o h m is right w h e n she c o n c l u d e s , " S o ist Ant. 9 , 2 7 7 - 2 9 1 ein B e l e g dafur, daB d e r Erfolg der d u r c h die R e d a k t i o n v o n 2 K 6 n . 1 7 , 2 4 - 4 1 verbreiteten 1 6
This could
J. Zangenberg, SAMAREIA. Antike Quellen zur Geschichte und Kultur der in deutscher Ubersetzung, Tubingen-Basel 1994, 54. E.g., y. Gift. 43c; b. Qidd. 75b; b. Sanh. 85b; b. Niddah 56b. Samarien 133.
Samaritaner
I d e o l o g i c i m 1. Jh.n. n o c h n i c h t u m f a s s e n d gegriffen h a b e n k a n n . " be the case, but w e do not know.
1 4
15
16
138
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
Judaism
It is o n l y J o s e p h u s w h o reports the b u i l d i n g o f a S a m a r i t a n t e m p l e on M o u n t G e r i z i m (Ant.
1 1 . 3 0 2 - 3 4 7 ) . T h a t is not to say that w e h a v e h e r e o n l y a late
tradition from t h e first c e n t u r y C E , for J o s e p h u s clearly u s e d h e r e o l d e r s o u r c e s of both Jewish and Samaritan provenance.
17
T h e story g o e s as follows (the fol
l o w i n g is not a q u o t e b u t a s u m m a r y ) : During the time that A l e x a n d e r the Great w a s conquering the empire o f the Persian king Darius, s o m e leading Jerusalemites objected to the high priest's brother M e n a s s e h ' s mar riage to a n o n - J e w i s h w o m a n and they d e m a n d e d that he separate from her. W h e n his brother, the high priest Jaddus, also supported this d e m a n d , M e n a s s e h left Jerusalem and w e n t to his father-in-law, Sanballat, w h o w a s the governor o f Samaria, and told h i m that b e c a u s e o f the priesthood he c o u l d not remain married to his daughter. Thereupon Sanbal lat p r o m i s e d M e n a s s e h that not o n l y could he stay married but he c o u l d also b e c o m e high priest o f the Samaritans. H e w o u l d build a t e m p l e for h i m o n M o u n t G e r i z i m , identical to the o n e in Jerusalem. A s a c o n s e q u e n c e m a n y priests and other Israelites from Jerusalem j o i n e d M e n a s s e h and c a m e to live in the area o f Samaria. W h e n A l e x a n d e r had conquered m o s t o f Syria, he sent a m e s s a g e to Jaddus, the high priest o f the J e w s , d e m a n d i n g that their loyalty to Darius b e replaced by loyalty to him. But the high priest wrote back that he c o u l d not break an oath o f loyalty to Darius. This infuriated Alexander, w h o d e c i d e d to punish the J e w s severely. H e entered Palestine and i m m e d i a t e l y Sanballat sent troops to support Alexander, telling h i m that he r e c o g n i z e d h i m , not Darius, as his overlord. H e also asked p e r m i s s i o n to build a temple, s u g g e s t i n g that it w o u l d create a d i v i s i o n a m o n g the J e w i s h p e o p l e w h i c h w o u l d m a k e it easier to rule over t h e m than if they w e r e united. A l e x a n d e r g a v e permission and Sanballat immediately started building. A l e x a n d e r then w e n t o n to Jerusalem w h e r e Jaddus waited in fear and trembling. But G o d told h i m in a dream not to b e afraid, to o p e n the gates for Alexander, and to g o out to m e e t h i m w e a r i n g his highpriestly g o w n . This is what happened, and although the Samaritans had e x p e c t e d h i m to destroy Jerusalem, Alexander, s e e i n g the H o l y N a m e inscribed u p o n the g o l d e n plaque o n the high priest's mitre, prostrated h i m s e l f before the N a m e . H e greeted Jaddus and said that he had seen h i m in a nightly v i s i o n sent to h i m by G o d , in w h i c h Jaddus had e n c o u r a g e d him to undertake his great c a m p a i g n b e c a u s e he w o u l d defeat the Persians. Thereupon A l e x a n d e r sacrificed to G o d in the Jerusalem temple. C o n s e q u e n t l y the Sa maritans, w h o lived in S h e c h e m together with the J e w i s h apostates, d e c i d e d to profess t h e m s e l v e s J e w s , s e e i n g h o w kind A l e x a n d e r had b e e n to the J e w s .
1 8
T h e y w e n t to m e e t
A l e x a n d e r after his departure from Jerusalem and invited h i m to honour their t e m p l e as w e l l , w h i c h he p r o m i s e d to d o o n l y after his return from the c a m p a i g n . After A l e x a n d e r ' s death, so Josephus adds, the t e m p l e on M o u n t G e r i z i m continued to exist. " A n d w h e n e v e r a n y o n e w a s a c c u s e d by the p e o p l e o f Jerusalem o f eating unclean food or violating the sabbath or c o m m i t t i n g any other such sin, he w o u l d flee to the S h e c h e m i t e s " ( 1 1 . 3 4 6 ) .
T h i s story is e v i d e n t l y a strange m i x t u r e of l e g e n d a n d history, o f fact a n d fiction. O f c o u r s e A l e x a n d e r t h e G r e a t n e v e r w o r s h i p p e d G o d in the t e m p l e o f J e r u s a -
1 7
For an analysis of the story see Dexinger, "Limits of Tolerance" 9 6 - 1 0 8 ; idem, "Der Ursprung der Samaritaner im Spiegel der friihen Quellen," in Dexinger-Pummer, Die Samaritaner 1 0 2 - 1 1 6 ; R. Egger, Josephus Flavius und die Samaritaner, Gottingen 1986, 6 5 - 7 4 , 2 5 1 - 2 6 0 . Here Josephus explicitly refers back to his earlier remarks in Ant. 9.291 about the op portunism of the Samaritans in this respect. 1 8
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
139
Judaism
l e m ; it is a l e g e n d that later p r o d u c e d a series o f e v e n m o r e p i o u s v a r i e t i e s .
19
H o w e v e r , t h e story o f b u i l d i n g the t e m p l e on M o u n t G e r i z i m , that h a s often b e e n c o n s i d e r e d a l e g e n d as w e l l , h a s r e c e i v e d i n c r e a s i n g s u p p o r t from a r c h a e o l o g y of late.
20
T h e r e is n o w little d o u b t that a rival t e m p l e w a s built on that m o u n t a i n
in the early H e l l e n i s t i c p e r i o d a n d that it r e m a i n e d in u s e until t h e H a s m o n a e a n k i n g J o h n H y r c a n u s d e s t r o y e d S h e c h e m a n d this t e m p l e in 110 B C E .
2 1
T h e fact
that t h e r e are n o biblical s o u r c e s that refer to the c o n s t r u c t i o n o f this t e m p l e is not surprising in v i e w o f the fact that " t h e i g n o r i n g o f issues is a standard w e a p o n in r e l i g i o u s q u a r r e l s o f all t i m e s . " aside here, however.
2 2
W e h a v e to l e a v e this historical q u e s t i o n
23
In this p a s s a g e J o s e p h u s is not so m u c h c o n c e r n e d w i t h t h e origin o f the Sa m a r i t a n s ; this w a s a l r e a d y p r e s e n t e d in his interpretation o f 2 K i n g s 17 in Ant. 9 . 2 7 7 - 2 9 1 (partly q u o t e d a b o v e ) . H e is m a i n l y c o n c e r n e d w i t h " e s t a b l i s h i n g the illegitimacy o f the M o u n t G e r i z i m cult against c o m p e t i n g c l a i m s from t h e side o f the S a m a r i t a n s . "
24
T h e s u p p o s e d i l l e g i t i m a c y o f the t e m p l e d o e s n o t n e c e s s a r i l y
h a v e to d o w i t h t h e efforts in J e r u s a l e m to centralize the cult. In fact w e see that o n e a n d a h a l f c e n t u r i e s later J e r u s a l e m priests h a d n o s c r u p l e s a b o u t b u i l d i n g a n o t h e r t e m p l e , in L e o n t o p o l i s , a n d it r e m a i n e d in u s e w i t h o u t m u c h o p p o s i t i o n for a l m o s t t w o a n d a h a l f c e n t u r i e s . S o t h e b u i l d i n g o f t h e S a m a r i t a n t e m p l e w a s p r o b a b l y n o t t h e d e c i s i v e factor in the b r e a k b e t w e e n J e w s a n d S a m a r i t a n s . N e h e m i a h w r i t e s that h e d r o v e a w a y o n e o f the s o n s o f the h i g h priest J o i a d a b e c a u s e that s o n h a d m a r r i e d a d a u g h t e r o f the H o r o n i t e S a n b a l l a t ( a n o t h e r S a n ballat t h a n t h e o n e m e n t i o n e d b y J o s e p h u s ) . H e r e g a r d e d this as a defilement o f t h e p r i e s t h o o d a n d o f the c o v e n a n t o f the priests a n d L e v i t e s ( N e h . 1 3 : 2 8 - 2 9 ) . T h i s illustrates that the issue o f m i x e d m a r r i a g e s o f priests or m e m b e r s o f the h i g h - p r i e s t l y families w a s m o r e significant in d i v i d i n g t h e p e o p l e into - say - an E z r a - N e h e m i a h p a r t y a n d a p r o - S a m a r i t a n p a r t y in J u d e a . M e m b e r s o f the Z a d o k i t e high-priestly families h a d b e e n p r e v e n t e d from a c h i e v i n g influence a n d
1 9
See G. Delling, "Alexander der GroBe als Bekenner des jiidischen Gottesglaubens," JSJ 12 (1981) 1 - 5 1 . Cf. also P.W. van der Horst, "De reis van Alexander de Grote naar het paradijs," in my Studies over het jodendom in de oudheid, Kampen 1992, 9 6 - 1 0 7 , esp. 9 6 - 9 8 . See especially a series of publications by the main excavator o f Mt. Gerizim, Yitshak Magen, o f which I only mention "Gerizim, Mount," in E. Stern (ed.), The New Encyclopedia of Archaeological Excavations in the Holy Land, Jerusalem 1993, 4 8 4 - 4 9 2 ; "Mount Gerizim - a Temple City," Qadmoniot 33,2 (2000) 7 4 - 1 1 8 ([Hebr.]; at pp. 119-143 of the same issue one finds more articles on Mt. Gerizim and its temple, of which Magen is a co-author). See R. Pummer, "Temple," in A.D. Crown et al. (eds.), A Companion to Samaritan Stud ies, Tubingen 1993, 2 2 9 - 2 3 1 . Dexinger, "Limits of Tolerance" 98. Further discussion in Crown, "Samaritan Judaism." Dexinger, "Limits of Tolerance" 97. Dexinger adds: "Nor is he interested in describing the first construction of a shrine on Mount Gerizim, but only in the construction of a temple" (98), which is important in that data yielded by the excavations may be interpreted in the sense that there was an earlier sacred area. 2 0
2 1
2 2
2 3
2 4
140
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
Judaism
p o w e r o u t s i d e J e r u s a l e m e v e r since J o s i a h h a d c l o s e d s a n c t u a r i e s t h r o u g h o u t t h e country. O n e m a y s p e c u l a t e that i n t e r m a r r i a g e w i t h l e a d i n g S a m a r i t a n families o p e n e d u p this possibility a g a i n . After all, t h e S a m a r i t a n s a l r e a d y c l a i m e d to p o s s e s s a h i g h p r i e s t o f Z a d o k i t e d e s c e n t . T h e u s u r p a t i o n of the J e r u s a l e m h i g h p r i e s t h o o d b y the n o n - Z a d o k i t e J o n a t h a n in 152 B C E o u s t e d the Z a d o k i t e s a n d p r o b a b l y c o n f i r m e d the p r i e s t h o o d o n M o u n t G e r i z i m as w e l l as t h e priests w h o h a d m o v e d to Q u m r a n in their o p p o s i t i o n to J e r u s a l e m . G e n e a l o g i c a l purity is an issue w e often tend to u n d e r r a t e but w h i c h in a n c i e n t J e w i s h a n d S a m a r i t a n society c o u l d e v o k e v e h e m e n t e m o t i o n s a n d often lead to bitter rivalry. C e r t a i n l y t h e m a t t e r d e s c r i b e d b y J o s e p h u s did not lead to a n i m m e d i a t e p a r t i n g o f the w a y s b e t w e e n t h e t w o g r o u p s a r o u n d 3 0 0 B C E ; that p r o c e s s w a s p r o b a b l y m u c h s l o w e r b u t w e d o n o t k n o w a n y details a b o u t it, a l t h o u g h w e m a y a s s u m e that t h e d e s t r u c t i o n o f G e r i z i m a n d its t e m p l e b y t h e J e w i s h k i n g J o h n H y r c a n u s in 110 B C E m a r k e d a definitive b r e a k . C h r o n o l o g i c a l l y in b e t w e e n lies the f a m o u s r e m a r k b y B e n Sira that o n e o f the n a t i o n s d e t e s t e d b y his soul, w h i c h is n o t a n a t i o n at all, is " t h e foolish p e o p l e that d w e l l in S h e c h e m " ( 5 0 : 2 6 ) .
25
It is not e a s y to say w h a t e x a c t l y the
a u t h o r is referring to h e r e b u t t h e s e n s e is g e n e r a l l y t a k e n to b e a n t i - S a m a r i t a n . B u t 'foolish p e o p l e ' m a y , o f c o u r s e , also refer to t h e n o n - S a m a r i t a n i n h a b i t a n t s o f S h e c h e m , a n d w e k n o w there w e r e several g r o u p s . S o to say that " B e n Sira e x p r e s s e s his d e e p e s t c o n t e m p t for the S a m a r i t a n s , " as Di L e i l a d o e s in his commentary,
26
is definitely m o r e than w h a t c a n b e inferred from this text w i t h
certainty. A l s o t w o texts in the 1st a n d 2 n d b o o k s o f t h e M a c c a b e e s (1 M a c e . 3:10; 2 M a c e . 6:2; b o t h from t h e e n d o f t h e s e c o n d c e n t u r y B C E ) are less than helpful, b e c a u s e w e c a n n o t d e t e r m i n e w h e t h e r t h e p e o p l e s p o k e n a b o u t are S a m a r i t a n s ( i . e . , m e m b e r s o f the religious c o m m u n i t y a r o u n d t h e t e m p l e o n M o u n t G e r i z i m ) or S a m a r i a n s ( i . e . , n o n - S a m a r i t a n i n h a b i t a n t s o f S a m a r i a ) .
27
So w e must leave them aside.
Two
Pseudepigrapha
Q u i t e interesting, and hitherto s o m e w h a t neglected, e v i d e n c e for the study of antiS a m a r i t a n p r o p a g a n d a in J e w i s h s o u r c e s is to b e found in t w o p s e u d e p i g r a p h i c a l 2 5
See J.D. Purvis, "Ben Sira and the Foolish People of Shechem," JNES 24 (1965) 8 8 - 9 4 ; cf. also Zangenberg, SAMAREIA 4 1 - 4 3 ; Hjelm, Samaritans 1 3 8 - 1 4 6 . There are differences between the Hebrew and Greek versions here; the Greek translation would seem to be more outspoken anti-Samaritan. P.W. Skehan & A. Di Leila, The Wisdom of Ben Sira (Anchor Bible 3), N e w York 1987, 558. See R. Pummer, "Antisamaritanische Polemik in jiidischen Schriften aus der intertestamentarischen Zeit," BZ 26 (1982) 2 3 8 - 2 4 2 ; L.L. Grabbe, "The Samaritans in the Hasmonean Period," Society of Biblical Literature Seminar Papers 1993, Atlanta 1993, 3 3 4 - 3 3 5 ; Hjelm, Samaritans 1 6 4 - 1 7 0 . 2 6
2 7
Anti-Samaritan
w r i t i n g s , n a m e l y the Martyrium
Propaganda
in Early
141
Judaism
Isaiae a n d the Paralipomena
Jeremiae.
It is true
that b o t h d o c u m e n t s h a v e b e e n h a n d e d d o w n to u s o n l y in C h r i s t i a n a d a p t a t i o n s a n d v e r y often it is h a r d to p i n p o i n t w h e r e the J e w i s h Grundschrift w h e r e the Christian interpolations or r e p h r a s i n g s b e g i n .
28
ends and
However, anti-Samari
tan p r o p a g a n d a is so infinitely m u c h m o r e a J e w i s h than a C h r i s t i a n i s s u e
2 9
that I
think w e c a n safely a s s u m e that in t h o s e p a s s a g e s w h e r e S a m a r i t a n s n e g a t i v e l y feature, w e h a v e hit J e w i s h b e d r o c k . In the Martyrdom S a m a r i t a n m a n called B e l k i r a
30
of Isaiah
( 3 : 1 - 1 2 ) it is a
w h o p l a y s a pivotal r o l e in the e v e n t s that lead
u p to the d e a t h o f Isaiah. T h i s S a m a r i t a n p r o p h e t e s c a p e s t h e d e p o r t a t i o n o f the n o r t h e r n tribes b y the A s s y r i a n s a n d flees to J e r u s a l e m w h e r e h e b e c o m e s an a d e p t o f the evil k i n g M a n a s s e h , inspired as h e is b y Beliar. H e finds out w h e r e Isaiah is h i d i n g from this k i n g a n d h e a c c u s e s Isaiah o f false p r o p h e c i e s c o n c e r n i n g the future o f Israel a n d J u d a h . H e also asserts that Isaiah c l a i m e d that h e c o u l d see m o r e t h a n the p r o p h e t M o s e s , for M o s e s h a d said, " N o m a n c a n see G o d a n d l i v e " ( E x . 3 3 : 2 0 ) , w h e r e a s Isaiah h a d said, "I h a v e seen G o d a n d b e h o l d I a m still a l i v e ! " (a s o m e w h a t t w i s t e d s u m m a r y o f Is. 6 : 5 - 7 ) . It is this a c c u s a tion o f a r r o g a n c e t o w a r d s M o s e s that p r o v e s fatal for o u r p r o p h e t w h o is t h e n t o r t u r e d to d e a t h b y b e i n g s a w n in t w o w i t h a w o o d - s a w w h i l e B e l k i r a s t a n d s by laughing ( 5 : 1 - 1 4 ) .
3 1
It s h o u l d b e n o t e d h o w specifically S a m a r i t a n B e l k i r a ' s
a c c u s a t i o n is: A c c o r d i n g to S a m a r i t a n tradition, M o s e s ' p o s i t i o n is u n a s s a i l a b l e ; h e h a s r e a c h e d a h i g h e r level than a n y o t h e r h u m a n b e i n g will e v e r b e a b l e to r e a c h ; h e w a s G o d ' s o n l y p r o p h e t a n d for that r e a s o n o n l y his five b o o k s h a v e d i v i n e authority. In contrast, t h e Israelite p r o p h e t s c a n b e d i s c o u n t e d b e c a u s e t h e y c o n t r a d i c t M o s e s b y their c l a i m to b e p r o p h e t s a n d their talk o f J e r u s a l e m as the site o f G o d ' s h o u s e . I s a i a h ' s c l a i m to b e a b l e to still b e alive after h a v i n g seen G o d is utterly p r e p o s t e r o u s in that h e h a s the p r e t e n t i o n to k n o w better, a n d actually b e better, than the u n s u r p a s s a b l e M o s e s .
3 2
S o , Isaiah d e s e r v e s capital
p u n i s h m e n t . H e r e w e see h o w a J e w i s h author, w h o p r o b a b l y lived in the first
2 8
See on this hotly debated issue now the contributions in a special instalment of the JSJ 32,4 (2001). How little early Christian literature yields for our topic becomes apparent when one reads the chapter "Fruhchrisfliche Literatur" in Zangenberg, SAMAREIA. His name is given in the various manuscripts and ancient versions as Belkira, Balkira, Bechira, Melchira etc. It has been suggested that the original Hebrew name was Bechir-ra' = the evil chosen one (or: the one chosen for evil) or Melki-ra' = evil king (cf. Melkiresha in Qumran). See my book De Profeten. Joodse en christelijke legenden uit de oudheid, Amsterdam 2 0 0 1 , 154 note 214. See for an extensive discussion of this passage M. Kartveit, "The Martyrdom of Isaiah and the Background of the Formation o f the Samaritan Group," in V. Morabito et al. (eds.), Samaritan Researches, vol. 5, Sydney 2 0 0 0 , 3 . 1 5 - 3 . 2 8 . Note that an exact rendering of M o s e s ' words and a twisted version o f the Isaian ones would certainly fit into a Samaritan milieu, as Kartveit rightly remarks (Martyrdom 3.24). For Samaritan views of Moses see the chapter "Moses, Lord of the World" in J. Macdonald, The Theology of the Samaritans, London 1964, 1 4 7 - 2 2 4 . 2 9
3 0
3 1
3 2
142
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
Judaism
c e n t u r y C E , v i e w e d t h e S a m a r i t a n s . T h e y a r e f o l l o w e r s o f Beliar, t h a t is, s a t a n i c p e r s o n s . It is t h e i r d i s r e g a r d , t h e i r u t t e r c o n t e m p t , for t h e b i b l i c a l p r o p h e t s t h a t t u r n s t h e m into p e r s e c u t o r s o f t h e t r u e b e l i e v e r s . T h i s is i n t e r e s t i n g b e c a u s e t h i s p o l e m i c t a k e s p l a c e in e x a c t l y t h e s a m e p e r i o d in w h i c h t h e J e w s g r a d u a l l y c o m e t o t h e d e c i s i o n t h a t t h e a u t h o r i t a t i v e w o r d s o f G o d a r e f o u n d n o t o n l y in t h e T o r a h o f M o s e s b u t a l s o in t h e b o o k s o f t h e p r o p h e t s a n d in s o m e o t h e r w r i t i n g s . T h i s p o s i t i o n w a s , a n d is, u t t e r l y u n a c c e p t a b l e t o t h e S a m a r i t a n s a n d is r e j e c t e d as apostasy.
33
S o , t h e p i c t u r e r e a l l y is b l a c k - a n d - w h i t e .
T h e s e c o n d p s e u d e p i g r a p h o n , Paralipomena Jeremiah),
3 4
Jeremiae
(The Chronicles of
is i n t e r e s t i n g from a n o t h e r a n g l e , n a m e l y its v i e w o n t h e o r i g i n s o f
t h e S a m a r i t a n s w h i c h differs from t h a t in t h e B i b l e , o r at least is q u i t e different f r o m t h e w a y in w h i c h J e w i s h a u t h o r s from t h e p e r i o d ( h e r e t h e e n d o f t h e first cent. C E or the beginning of the second cent. C E ) interpreted the biblical story in 2 K i n g s 17. W h e r e a s a c c o r d i n g t o t h e latter i n t e r p r e t a t i o n t h e b i b l i c a l a c c o u n t t r a c e s t h e o r i g i n s o f S a m a r i t a n i s m to t h e e n d o f t h e e i g h t h c e n t . B C E , this J e w ish a u t h o r p u t s it in t h e p e r i o d i m m e d i a t e l y after t h e e x i l e . T h e t e x t ( c h . 8) is s o c u r i o u s t h a t it d e s e r v e s t o b e q u o t e d in f u l l :
35
T h e day c a m e w h e n G o d led the p e o p l e out o f B a b y l o n . A n d the Lord said to Jeremiah: 'Get u p , both y o u and the p e o p l e , and m a k e your w a y to the Jordan. S a y to the p e o p l e : "He that is for the Lord, let h i m leave behind what w a s d o n e in B a b y l o n , the m e n w h o married B a b y l o n i a n w i v e s and the w o m e n w h o married B a b y l o n i a n husbands." A n d let those w h o listen to y o u cross over, and bring them to Jerusalem; but those w h o d o not listen to y o u , d o n o t bring into it.' A n d Jeremiah told t h e m this; and they g o t up and c a m e to the Jordan to cross over, and h e repeated to t h e m what the Lord had told h i m . A n d half o f those w h o had married B a b y l o n i a n s refused to listen to Jeremiah, but they said to him: ' W e will n e v e r l e a v e our w i v e s behind; let us take t h e m back with u s to our city.' S o they c r o s s e d the Jordan and c a m e to Jerusalem. A n d Jeremiah stood up ( . . . ) and said: ' N o o n e with a B a b y l o n i a n partner shall enter this city. A n d they said to him: 'Let u s then return to B a b y l o n , our place.' A n d they w e n t away. B u t w h e n they c a m e to B a b y l o n , the B a b y l o n i a n s c a m e o u t to m e e t them and said: ' Y o u shall not enter our city b e c a u s e in your hatred for us y o u left secretly; y o u shall not return to us for that reason. For w e h a v e b o u n d o u r s e l v e s b y oath in the n a m e o f our g o d not to receive either y o u or your children, b e c a u s e y o u left us secretly.' A n d w h e n they heard this, they turned back and c a m e to a deserted place at s o m e distance from Jerusalem, and there they built a city for t h e m s e l v e s and called it Samaria. A n d Jeremiah sent a m e s s a g e to them saying: 'Repent, for the angel o f righteousness is c o m i n g and will lead y o u to your place o n high.'
3 3
This is not to deny that the motif of a conflict between the prophets and the Torah has Jew ish parallels, but in Judaism these conflicts are 'solved,' as is done for instance in b. Yevamoth 49b, Menahoth 45a, Sanhedrin 89a, and Shabbath 13b. See for this translation o f the title my De Profeten 11. Translation by R. Thornhill in H.F.D. Sparks (ed.), The Apocryphal Old Testament, Oxford 1984, 831 (with some minor modifications by the present author). For an extensive discussion of this passage see J. Herzer, Die Paralipomena Jeremiae, Tubingen 1994, 1 2 9 - 1 4 3 . 3 4
3 5
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
143
Judaism
T h i s is a fascinating p a s s a g e that n e e d s further d i s c u s s i o n . L e t m e b e g i n b y say ing o n c e a g a i n that a striking a s p e c t o f this c h a p t e r is that it p l a c e s the c o m i n g i n t o - b e i n g o f t h e S a m a r i t a n c o m m u n i t y at a m u c h later t i m e t h a n c o n t e m p o r a r y J e w i s h literature d o e s . T h e r e is a difference o f a l m o s t t w o c e n t u r i e s . B u t aside from that, there are s o m e o t h e r interesting p o i n t s that c a t c h the e y e .
3 6
Firstly,
o n e w o u l d e x p e c t that p e o p l e l e a v i n g B a b y l o n w o u l d g a t h e r at t h e E u p h r a t e s , not at the J o r d a n . O n e c o u l d say, o f c o u r s e , that the E u p h r a t e s is m e r e l y g o i n g u n m e n t i o n e d b e c a u s e w h a t is really i m p o r t a n t is e n t e r i n g the h o l y land. A n d that is right; the a u t h o r ' s p e r s p e c t i v e is: p r o f a n e land - w h i c h g o e s u n m e n t i o n e d ; h o l y land - w h e r e there is a p a r t i n g o f spirits at the b o r d e r ; h o l y city - w h e r e the J e w i s h r e t u r n e e s w h o h a d m a r r i e d B a b y l o n i a n p a r t n e r s d o arrive b u t are n o t al l o w e d to e n t e r a n d h a v e n o c h o i c e but to return to B a b y l o n . T h e E z r a - N e h e m i a h v i e w o f m i x e d m a r r i a g e s is d e c i s i v e here. But, interestingly e n o u g h , the founders o f S a m a r i a , a n d for that r e a s o n o f the S a m a r i t a n m o v e m e n t , are not the former i n h a b i t a n t s o f t h e N o r t h e r n K i n g d o m h e r e , n o , t h e y are former J e r u s a l e m i t e s ! T h e y talk a b o u t ' o u r c i t y ' w h e n referring to J e r u s a l e m . A s J e n s H e r z e r s a y s , " A n d e r s als in d e r b i b l i s c h e n T r a d i t i o n w a r d e m Verfasser d e r P a r J e r d a r a n g e l e g e n , die S a m a r i t a n e r hinsichtlich ihres U r s p r u n g e s m i t d e m Volk d e r J u d e n in V e r b i n d u n g z u b r i n g e n . ( . . . ) E r stellt sich d a m i t in b e w u B t e n G e g e n s a t z z u d e n traditionellen Vorgaben, i n d e m er die S a m a r i t a n e r in e i n e m positiveren Licht als s o l c h e darstellt, die z w a r u n g e h o r s a m , a b e r d e n n o c h m i t Israel v e r w a n d t u n d d u r c h die g e m e i n s a m e G e s c h i c h t e m i t i h m v e r b u n d e n s i n d . "
37
It s h o u l d also b e
b o r n e in m i n d that the final line o f the p a s s a g e c o n t a i n s a m e s s a g e from J e r e m i a to the i n h a b i t a n t s o f the n e w city o f S a m a r i a to the effect that w h e n they repent, the a n g e l o f r i g h t e o u s n e s s (that is M i c h a e l , s e e 9.5) will c o m e a n d lead t h e m to their p l a c e on high. T h a t is to say that t h e y will s h a r e in t h e e s c h a t o l o g i c a l p r o m ises to Israel. A n d , to q u o t e a g a i n J e n s Herzer, " D e m Verfasser d e r P a r J e r scheint a n g e s i c h t s d i e s e s G e s c h e h e n s ein N i c h t b e f o l g e n d e s U m k e h r r u f e s u n m o g l i c h zu sein, d a k e i n e w e i t e r e G e r i c h t s a n k u n d i g u n g f o l g t . "
38
T h e fact that the a u t h o r stresses that they w e r e not t a k e n b a c k b y the inhabit ants o f B a b y l o n i a u n d e r l i n e s that t h e y w e r e n o t B a b y l o n i a n s , n o t p a g a n s , t h e y w e r e originally i n h a b i t a n t s o f J e r u s a l e m w h o h a d b e c o m e so inculturated into their d i a s p o r a setting, h o w e v e r , that t h e y m a r r i e d n o n - J e w i s h p a r t n e r s . A n d this is w h a t w o r k e d a g a i n s t t h e m . S o again it is t h e m a t t e r o f i n t e r m a r r i a g e that t u r n s out to b e a m a j o r factor. A s w e h a v e seen, this p r o b l e m a l r e a d y p l a y e d a signifi cant role in J o s e p h u s ' stories o f t h e erection o f a t e m p l e on M o u n t G e r i z i m . B u t there it w a s priestly purify that w a s defiled b y m i x e d m a r r i a g e , w h e r e a s h e r e it is a b o u t h o w it affects the c o m m o n p e o p l e ; t h e r e t h e story is a b o u t the foundation o f a t e m p l e , w h e r e a s h e r e n o t e m p l e is m e n t i o n e d at all, o n l y t h e city. A l t h o u g h 3 6
3 7
3 8
See my book De Profeten 166, notes 3 6 2 - 3 6 4 . Herzer, Paralipomena 134-135. Herzer, Paralipomena 137.
144
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
Judaism
the a u t h o r d o e s n o t say so explicitly, h e s e e m s to s u g g e s t that it is the idolatry o f t h e B a b y l o n i a n s p o u s e s that bars t h e m from t h e h o l y city. S o , w h a t w e see h e r e is that the biblical c h r o n o l o g y r e g a r d i n g t h e o r i g i n s o f S a m a r i t a n i s m is n o t t a k e n into a c c o u n t b y the a u t h o r o f the Paralipomena
Jeremiae
b u t that t h e
biblical s u g g e s t i o n o f s y n c r e t i s m is taken u p b y h i m . In t h e e y e s o f o u r a u t h o r the S a m a r i t a n s lost all c l a i m s to call t h e m s e l v e s 'real I s r a e l i t e s ' b e c a u s e t h e y did n o t o b e y t h e rules o f J e r e m i a h - read: E z r a ! - w h i c h m e a n t that they s h o u l d s e n d a w a y a n y n o n - J e w i s h p a r t n e r s . A g a i n , w e see h o w the issue o f m i x e d m a r r i a g e d o m i n a t e d the S a m a r i t a n - J e w i s h d e b a t e s o f the t i m e . B u t w e c a n also o b s e r v e that in this p e r i o d , a r o u n d the turn o f the era, a relatively m i l d p o s i t i o n v i s - a - v i s the S a m a r i t a n s w a s certainly p o s s i b l e in J e w i s h circles. W e h a d a l r e a d y s e e n this w h e n J o s e p h u s altered t h e biblical report in 2 K i n g s 17 to t a k e a drastically m o r e p o s i t i v e p o s i t i o n . It is clear that b y t h e e n d o f t h e first c e n t u r y C E the relations b e t w e e n J e w s a n d S a m a r i t a n s w a s a m u c h d e b a t e d t o p i c . T h i s will c o n t i n u e in the T a n n a i t i c d e b a t e s o f the s e c o n d c e n t u r y as w e shall see.
The Samaritan
Temple
B u t n o w w e r e t u r n for a m o m e n t to J o s e p h u s .
39
In Ant. XII 7 - 1 0 h e tells u s that
P t o l e m y I Soter ( e n d o f the 4th cent. B.C.) " t o o k m a n y c a p t i v e s b o t h from t h e hill c o u n t r y o f J u d a e a a n d the district r o u n d J e r u s a l e m a n d from S a m a r i a a n d t h o s e o n G a r i z i m a n d b r o u g h t t h e m all to E g y p t a n d settled t h e m t h e r e " ( 7 ) . L a t e r P t o l e m y f a v o u r e d t h e J e w s m o r e than o t h e r s so that " t h e i r d e s c e n d a n t s h a d q u a r r e l s w i t h t h e S a m a r i t a n s b e c a u s e t h e y w e r e d e t e r m i n e d to k e e p alive their f a t h e r s ' w a y o f life a n d c u s t o m s , a n d so t h e y fought w i t h e a c h other, t h o s e from J e r u s a l e m s a y i n g that their t e m p l e w a s t h e h o l y o n e , a n d r e q u i r i n g that the sacrifices b e sent t h e r e , w h i l e the S h e c h e m i t e s w a n t e d t h e s e to g o to M o u n t G a r i z i m " ( 1 0 ) . T h i s is clearly a conflict b e t w e e n t w o religious c o m m u n i t i e s , a conflict that will escalate a g a i n later in H e l l e n i s t i c E g y p t . F o r in Ant.
XIII
7 4 - 7 9 J o s e p h u s tells u s a b o u t a v i o l e n t quarrel in A l e x a n d r i a d u r i n g t h e reign o f P t o l e m y VI P h i l o m e t o r ( 1 8 0 - 1 4 5 ) b e t w e e n J e w s a n d S a m a r i t a n s o v e r the q u e s tion o f w h e t h e r t h e t e m p l e in J e r u s a l e m or the o n e on G a r i z i m w a s in a c c o r d a n c e w i t h t h e L a w o f M o s e s . B o t h parties a s k the k i n g to m a k e t h e d e c i s i o n . P t o l e m y follows t h e p r i n c i p l e o f audi et alteram
partem
a n d listens to s p e a k e r s o f b o t h
p a r t i e s . It is the c h a m p i o n of the J e w i s h c a u s e w h o is a b l e to c o n v i n c e t h e k i n g b y u s i n g p r o o f from t h e Torah a n d also b y e m p h a s i z i n g that "all the k i n g s o f A s i a h a d h o n o u r e d t h e t e m p l e w i t h d e d i c a t o r y offerings a n d m o s t s p l e n d i d gifts, w h i l e n o n e h a d s h o w n a n y r e s p e c t or r e g a r d for that o n G a r i z i m , as t h o u g h it w e r e n o t in e x i s t e n c e " ( 7 8 ) . F o l l o w i n g the k i n g ' s d e c i s i o n the S a m a r i t a n p l e a d ers w e r e put to d e a t h . It s h o u l d b e a d d e d h e r e that this story is told as w e l l in On the following two passages in Josephus see Zangenberg, SAMAREIA
64-65.
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
145
Judaism
m e d i e v a l S a m a r i t a n c h r o n i c l e s , b u t then w i t h the o p p o s i t e o u t c o m e !
4 0
B e that
as it may, w e see h e r e t w o c o m m u n i t i e s in conflict o v e r the l e g i t i m a c y o f their r e s p e c t i v e t e m p l e s , or rather o f t h e p l a c e w h e r e their t e m p l e s w e r e built. O n e is r e m i n d e d o f J o h n 4 : 2 0 w h e r e the S a m a r i t a n w o m a n s a y s to J e s u s : " O u r fathers w o r s h i p p e d on this m o u n t a i n , but y o u J e w s say that the p l a c e w h e r e G o d m u s t b e w o r s h i p p e d is in J e r u s a l e m . " W e also see this e l e m e n t in t w o inscriptions that d a t e from r o u g h l y the s a m e t i m e as t h e conflict in A l e x a n d r i a b u t w e r e found in a different r e g i o n . It w a s a s p e c t a c u l a r find b e c a u s e t h e s e t w o s t o n e tablets constitute the m o s t a n c i e n t e p i g r a p h i c a l t e s t i m o n y to a S a m a r i t a n d i a s p o r a , w h i c h w a s m u c h m o r e s i z e a b l e than is g e n e r a l l y a s s u m e d , as I h a v e a r g u e d at length e l s e w h e r e . S a m a r i t a n inscriptions w e r e found on t h e little island o f D e l o s .
41
4 2
In 1980, t w o Both inscrip
tions, d a t i n g r e s p e c t i v e l y from t h e third to s e c o n d a n d from t h e s e c o n d to first c e n t u r y B C E , d o n o t s p e a k a b o u t S a m a r i t a n s expressis
verbis,
but they do speak
a b o u t " t h e Israelites o n D e l o s w h o p a y their first offerings to t h e s a n c t u a r y (of) A r g a r i z i n . " T h e m e n t i o n of Argarizin
(= H a r G a r i z i m ) leaves n o r o o m for d o u b t .
T h e s e D e l i a n S a m a r i t a n s h o n o u r a certain S a r a p i o n o f C n o s s o s a n d M e n i p p u s o f H e r a c l e a for their b e n e f a c t i o n s t o w a r d s the c o m m u n i t y , p o s s i b l y the b u i l d i n g o f a synagogue.
43
T h e interesting t h i n g a b o u t t h e s e inscriptions is n o t o n l y that they
are e v i d e n c e o f a v e r y early p r e s e n c e o f S a m a r i t a n s on D e l o s , b u t also that they m a k e it v e r y likely that the S a m a r i t a n s lived in C r e t e ( S a r a p i o n o f C n o s s o s ) as early as the s e c o n d c e n t u r y B C E .
4 4
F o r o u r p r e s e n t p u r p o s e s it suffices to p o i n t
out that in r o u g h l y the s a m e p e r i o d to w h i c h o u r literary s o u r c e s d a t e a quarrel b e t w e e n S a m a r i t a n s a n d J e w s a b o u t the location o f the t e m p l e , e p i g r a p h i c a l e v i d e n c e from e l s e w h e r e in the S a m a r i t a n d i a s p o r a g i v e s t e s t i m o n y to the fact that it w a s p r e c i s e l y this ' s a n c t u a r y o f A r g a r i z i n ' w h i c h d i s t i n g u i s h e d t h e m from the J e w s . A n d it is again from t h e s a m e p e r i o d , the s e c o n d c e n t u r y B C E , that w e h a v e a f r a g m e n t o f an a n o n y m o u s S a m a r i t a n author, k n o w n as P s e u d o - E u 4 0
See J. A. Montgomery, The Samaritans, Philadelphia 1907 (repr. N e w York 1968), 7 6 - 7 7 ; on both the Samaritan versions of this conflict and the possible reasons for it see Egger, Josephus Flavius und die Samaritaner 9 5 - 1 0 1 . P.W. van der Horst, "The Samaritan Diaspora in Antiquity," in my Essays on the Jewish World of Early Christianity, Fribourg - Gottingen 1990, 1 3 6 - 1 4 7 . See Ph. Bruneau, '"Les Israelites de D e l o s ' et la juiverie delienne," BCH 106 (1982) 4 6 5 - 5 0 4 , which is the editio princeps. An English translation of the inscriptions is given by A. T. Kraabel, "New Evidence of the Samaritan Diaspora Has Been Found on Delos," Biblical Archaeologist 47 (1984) 4 4 - 4 6 . Bruneau extensively discusses all the problems. For Argarizin see R. Pummer, "ARGARIZIN: A Criterion for Samaritan Provenance?," JSJ 18 (1987) 18-25. This interpretation is not undisputed; see P. W. van der Horst, "The Jews of Ancient Crete," JJS 39 (1988) 1 8 3 - 2 0 0 [also elsewhere in this volume]. From which of the 10 known Heraclea's Menippus came is unknown. Bruneau 479 mentions in this connection an inscription {Inscriptions de Delos 2 6 1 6 ) of ca. 100 B C E in which a certain Praylos Samareus is mentioned who has contributed to the building of the Sarapieion of Delos. This will have been a Samarian rather than a Samaritan. 4 1
4 2
4 3
4 4
146
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
Judaism
p o l e m o s , w h e r e w e r e a d that after A b r a h a m ' s w a r w i t h t h e k i n g s h e w a s r e c e i v e d as a g u e s t b y the city at the t e m p l e o f A r g a r i z i n (or: at h o l y A r g a r i z i n ) w h e r e h e r e c e i v e d gifts from M e l c h i z e d e k ( f r a g m e n t 1 in E u s e b i u s , Praep.
Evang.
45
9.17.5—6). A story o f a visit b y the great patriarch to t h e h o l y m o u n t a i n o f the S a m a r i t a n s c a n o n l y b e e x p l a i n e d as i n t e n d e d to reinforce the S a m a r i t a n idea that this w a s the p l a c e c h o s e n b y G o d as his d w e l l i n g . T h i s b r i n g s u s to the d e b a t e a b o u t the original text o f D e u t . 2 7 : 4 . In the stand ard v e r s i o n s w e read: " W h e n y o u h a v e c r o s s e d t h e J o r d a n , y o u are to set u p t h e s e s t o n e s on M o u n t E b a l , as I instruct y o u this day, a n d coat t h e m w i t h plaster. Build t h e r e a n altar to the L o r d y o u r G o d . " Instead of ' E b a l ' t h e S a m a r i t a n P e n t a t e u c h r e a d s ' G e r i z i m . ' T h i s h a s a l w a y s b e e n r e g a r d e d b y t h e J e w s as a n intentional alteration o f t h e text b y the S a m a r i t a n s ,
46
a l t h o u g h the S a m a r i t a n s asserted that
it w a s t h e o t h e r w a y r o u n d : t h e y said that t h e J e w s h a d altered the original text b e c a u s e t h e y w e r e not w i l l i n g to r e c o g n i z e that t h e S a m a r i t a n s w e r e right. B u t t h i n g s are n o t t h a t s i m p l e . Firstly, if it w a s altered b y the S a m a r i t a n s , it is h a r d to e x p l a i n w h y the Vetus L a t i n a also h a s this r e a d i n g (Gerizim)
here and w h y
J o s e p h u s in his r e n d e r i n g o f this p a s s a g e s p e a k s a b o u t t h e m o u n t a i n s ' G e r i z i m a r a / E b a l ' (Ant. 4 . 3 0 5 ) . Secondly, it is w e l l - k n o w n that there are o t h e r i n s t a n c e s as w e l l w h e r e J e w i s h scribes m a d e a n t i - S a m a r i t a n c h a n g e s in the biblical t e x t .
47
In o t h e r w o r d s , it m a y well b e that the S a m a r i t a n s are right: that theirs is t h e original text a n d that the J e w s c h a n g e d the original for p o l e m i c a l or p r o p a g a n distic r e a s o n s .
48
O n the o t h e r h a n d , w e k n o w that t h e S a m a r i t a n s t h e m s e l v e s did
n o t s h y a w a y from c h a n g i n g biblical texts. T h e b e s t k n o w n e x a m p l e o f this is the a d d i t i o n o f t h e c o m m a n d m e n t to b u i l d an altar at G e r i z i m to t h e D e c a l o g u e in E x o d u s 2 0 : 1 7 . S o the m a t t e r is far from u n e q u i v o c a l .
Rabbinic
views
W e n o w turn to the r a b b i n i c m a t e r i a l .
49
T h i s brief s u r v e y will c o v e r o n l y a few
p a s s a g e s out o f the m a n y texts a v a i l a b l e . It b e g i n s o n a g l o o m y n o t e , b e c a u s e 4 5
For text and translation see C.R. Holladay, Fragments from Hellenistic Jewish Authors, vol. l . C h i c o 1983, 1 7 2 - 1 7 3 . For this accusation in rabbinic literature see e. g. b. Sotah 33b, Sifre Num. 15:31. R. Tournay, "Quelques relectures bibliques anti-samaritaines," RB 71 (1964) 5 0 4 - 5 3 6 . It is interesting that Tournay dates most of his examples to the 2nd cent. BCE. A simple instance of 'relecture anti-samaritaine' is Hos. 14:9 where the L X X and other versions have the original "Ephraim, what further dealings does it have with idols?" whereas the MT has changed the Hebrew lo into // which results in the sentence "Ephraim, what further dealings do I have with idols?" See Zangenberg, SAMARIA 1 8 4 - 1 8 5 ; Dexinger, "Limits o f Tolerance" 1 0 8 - 1 0 9 . For convenient collections of the relevant passages the reader is referred to [H.L. Strack &] P. Billerbeck, Kommentarzum Neuen Testament aus Talmud und Midrasch, vol. 1, Miinchen 1926, 5 3 8 - 5 6 0 ; Zangenberg, SAMAREIA 9 2 - 1 6 6 . A detailed presentation of all the relevant material from the Mishna is to be found in B. W. Hall, Samaritan Religion from John Hyrcanus 4 6
4 7
4 8
4 9
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
o u r earliest d o c u m e n t , called The Scroll
in Early
147
Judaism
of Fasting
(Megillat
Ta'anit),
which
p r o b a b l y d a t e s to the early s e c o n d c e n t u r y C E , lists ' t h e d a y o f G e r i z i m ' as o n e o f the d a y s on w h i c h it w a s forbidden to fast ( 2 2 ) . T h i s is the d a y on w h i c h t h e t e m p l e on M o u n t G e r i z i m w a s d e s t r o y e d a n d r a s e d to the g r o u n d b y J o h n Hyrcanus.
5 0
B e c a u s e the d e s t r u c t i o n o f that t e m p l e w a s such a j o y o u s o c c a s i o n it
w a s f o r b i d d e n to fast on that day. It is clear that in the e y e s o f t h e c o m p i l e r s the d e s t r u c t i o n o f the t e m p l e o n M t . G e r i z i m (to q u o t e Z a n g e n b e r g ) " n i c h t p r i m a r als rein militarischer A k t , s o n d e r n als b e s o n d e r e , h e i l s g e s c h i c h t l i c h - r e l i g i o s e Tat interpretiert w u r d e . " were heard.
52
5 1
B u t as so often in r a b b i n i c literature, d i s s e n t i n g v o i c e s
N o t o n l y w a s there little u n a n i m i t y a m o n g the r a b b i s but their
attitudes also s e e m to c h a n g e c o n s i d e r a b l y o v e r t i m e . F r o m r o u g h l y the s a m e p e r i o d as Megillat
Ta 'anit w e h a v e a s t a t e m e n t at
tributed to R a b b i A q i v a to t h e effect that the S a m a r i t a n s are sincere p r o s e l y t e s , not j u s t ' l i o n - p r o s e l y t e s , ' a n d for that r e a s o n s h o u l d b e c o n s i d e r e d as Israelites (y. Gift. 4 3 c ; b . Qidd. 7 5 b ; b . Sanh.
8 5 b ; b . Niddah
56b).
5 3
His near-contempo
rary R a b b a n S h i m o n b e n G a m l i e l is e v e n r e p o r t e d to h a v e said that S a m a r i t a n s are like Israelites in e v e r y respect, a n d that t h e y are often m o r e s c r u p u l o u s in f o l l o w i n g the c o m m a n d m e n t s than t h e Israelites (y. Berakh.
l i b ; m.
Berakh.
7 . 1 ; t. Terum. 4 : 1 4 ; b . Qidd. 7 6 a ) . It is on t h e basis o f s u c h m a t e r i a l that H a n s K i p p e n b e r g c o n c l u d e s : " S o findet sich im 2 . Jh. n. Chr. n o c h g e b r o c h e n die Einsicht, daB es sich bei d e n S a m a r i t a n e r n u m Israeliten h a n d e l t . " w e also s a w in the p e r h a p s slightly earlier Paralipomena in the later p o s t - T a l m u d i c treatise, Cuthim,
54
Jeremiae.
T h i s is w h a t But even
t h e c o m p i l e r s still s p e a k o f m a n y
areas in w h i c h the S a m a r i t a n s c a n b e trusted to follow the Torah c a r e f u l l y .
55
Yet
this is not the d o m i n a n t t e n o r in r a b b i n i c literature o f t h e p o s t - T a n n a i t i c p e r i o d .
to Baba Rabba, Sydney 1987, 1 7 9 - 2 2 5 . Discussions of this material also in, e.g., J. Jeremias, Jerusalem zur Zeit Jesu, Gottingen 1962, 3 8 7 - 3 9 4 ; H. Kippenberg, Garizim und Synagoge, Berlin 1971, 1 3 7 - 1 4 3 ; esp. L.H. Schiffman, "The Samaritans inTannaitic Halakhah," JQR 75 (1984/85)323-350. H. Lichtenstcin, "Die Fastenrolle," HUCA 8 - 9 (1931/32) 2 5 7 - 3 5 2 , here 288; J.A. Fitzmyer & D.J. Harrington, A Manual of Palestinian Aramaic Texts, Rome 1994 (2nd ed.), 186. For a discussion of this passage see Zangenberg, SAMAREIA 1 5 9 - 1 6 2 ; Hjelm, Samaritans 128. Zangenberg, SA MARE/A 162. A very clear case o f inner-rabbinic debate and dissension is to be found for instance in b. Hullin 5b-6a. Aqiva also opposed the strict rulings on the Samaritans by his colleague R. Eliezer; see m. Shev. 8:10. The trustworthiness o f the attribution of these dicta to Aqiva is doubtful, how ever; see Schiffman, "The Samaritans" 327. Kippenberg, Garizim 138. See the list in Kippenberg, Garizim 1 4 0 - 1 4 1 . One may wonder whether this attitude might still have contributed to the closing o f the ranks and the co-operation between Samaritans and Jews in the great anti-Byzantine revolts in sixth-century Palestine, on which see L. di Segni, "Rebellions o f Samaritans in Palestine," in Crown et al. (eds.), Companion 1 9 9 - 2 0 1 . These revolts cost the Samaritans tens o f thousands of casualties. 5 0
5 1
5 2
5 3
5 4
5 5
148
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
A s the final w o r d s o f the treatise Cuthim
in Early
Judaism
indicate, it is only " w h e n they h a v e
renounced M o u n t Gerizim and acknowledged Jerusalem and the resurrection from the d e a d " that t h e y c a n b e r e - a d m i t t e d into the fold o f G o d ' s p e o p l e .
5 6
That
the S a m a r i t a n s , like the S a d d u c e e s , rejected the idea o f r e s u r r e c t i o n b e c a u s e it is n o t found in the T o r a h , t h e M i s h n a , Sank.
57
is s o m e t h i n g that m u s t h a v e offended the r a b b i s . In
1 0 . 1 , it is explicitly stated that h e w h o d e n i e s that the Torah
t e a c h e s t h e r e s u r r e c t i o n of the d e a d has n o s h a r e in t h e w o r l d to c o m e . T h a t the S a m a r i t a n s o p p o s e this idea c a n n o t b e s u b s t a n t i a t e d from the earliest S a m a r i t a n s o u r c e s extant, b u t several k n o w l e d g e a b l e C h u r c h F a t h e r s from the third a n d fourth c e n t u r i e s confirm that the S a m a r i t a n s did not b e l i e v e in the r e s u r r e c t i o n o f the d e a d .
5 8
H o w e v e r , for s o m e r e a s o n or another, in later antiquity or early
m e d i e v a l t i m e s the S a m a r i t a n s did a d o p t this idea, as the J e w s did s o m e centuries earlier. T h a t the S a m a r i t a n rejection o f J e r u s a l e m a n d the P r o p h e t s a n d W r i t i n g s r e m a i n e d a b o n e o f c o n t e n t i o n b e t w e e n the t w o parties s h o u l d n o t surprise u s after w h a t w e h a v e seen. B u t aside from that, in the late T a n n a i t i c a n d the A m o r a i c p e r i o d w e also s e e that the old a c c u s a t i o n of p a g a n i s m is r e s u s c i t a t e d l e a d i n g , finally, to the e x c o m m u n i c a t i o n o f t h e S a m a r i t a n s b y the r a b b i s . In this r e s p e c t it is significant that the S a m a r i t a n s r e c e i v e n o m e n t i o n in the M i s h n a treatise Avodah
Zarah ( = i d o l a t r y ) , w h e r e a s t h e y d o in the later G e m a r a on this treatise in
both T a l m u d i m .
5 9
In the 4th century, the C h u r c h F a t h e r E p i p h a n i u s reports that
S a m a r i t a n s w h o w a n t e d to b e c o m e J e w s h a d to b e r e - c i r c u m c i s e d , a n d the s a m e a p p l i e d to J e w s w h o w a n t e d to b e c o m e S a m a r i t a n s {De mensis
et
ponderibus
1 6 . 7 - 9 ) . T h i s s h o u l d b e seen in the c o n t e x t o f a series o f r a b b i n i c s t a t e m e n t s c l a i m i n g that S a m a r i t a n s are n o t h i n g b u t p a g a n s : e . g . , t. Terumot
4 . 1 4 tells u s
that n o less a p e r s o n than R a b b i ( i . e . , J u d a h h a - N a s i ) d e c r e e d that S a m a r i t a n s s h o u l d b e treated like g e n t i l e s . wards
6 1
60
T h i s is a j u d g e m e n t that is often r e p e a t e d after
( e v e n t h o u g h it d o e s not a l w a y s g o u n c o n t e s t e d ) . W e h a v e to k e e p t w o
t h i n g s in m i n d h e r e : First o f all, r a b b i n i c literature d o e s n o t d e s c r i b e reality as it is b u t as the r a b b i s w o u l d like to h a v e it. In o t h e r w o r d s , w h e n t h e r a b b i s d e c l a r e S a m a r i t a n s to b e n o t h i n g b u t p a g a n s , that d o e s n o t i m p l y that the J e w s in g e n e r a l s h a r e d this o p i n i o n a n d acted accordingly. W e k n o w o f v e r y m a n y situations in
5 6
See b. AZ21&: "An Israelite may perform circumcision on a Cuthean but a Cuthean should not circumcise an Israelite, because he performs it in the name of Mount Gerizim." See J. Le Moyne, Les Sadduceens, Paris 1972, passim; G. Stemberger, Pharisder, Sadduzder, Essener, Stuttgart 1991, 6 8 - 7 0 . Evidence in Kippenberg, Garizim 1 4 1 - 1 4 2 , and in F. Dexinger, "After Life," in Crown et al. (eds.), Companion 9 - 1 0 . Hall, Samaritan Religion 208. In the very same passage his father, Simeon ben Gamliel, says that Samaritans are like Jews in all respects! See the collection in Billerbeck, Kommentar I, 5 5 2 - 5 5 3 , w h o refers to the following pas sages from the Jerusalem Talmud: Berakh. 1 l b , Ket. 27a; Dem. 25d, Sheq. 36b etc. 5 7
5 8
5 9
6 0
6 1
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
149
Judaism
which the c o m m o n Jews simply ignored rabbinic prescripts. Secondly, even t o d a y w e w i t n e s s the p h e n o m e n o n that strictly o r t h o d o x J e w s call n o n - o r t h o d o x J e w s s i m p l y n o n - J e w s , w h e r e a s they k n o w quite well that, seen from a n o t h e r v i e w p o i n t , this is u n t e n a b l e . G r o u p s c l a i m i n g e x c l u s i v e rights to t h e epithet J e w or Israelite are v e r y c o m m o n in the history o f J e w i s h religion. T h e S a m a r i t a n s t h e m s e l v e s d o t h e s a m e w h e n t h e y say that J e w s are not Israelites b u t a p o s t a t e s . A g a i n , this kind o f c l a i m s often d o e s not w o r k on the level o f p r a c t i c e , a n d this is p r o b a b l y why, e v e n after the s t r o n g s t a t e m e n t s b y p e r s o n s like R a b b i , m a n y J e w s c o n t i n u e d to treat the S a m a r i t a n s as if t h e y w e r e Israelites, albeit p e r h a p s second-rate. B u t the rabbis did not g i v e u p easily. In the 4th c e n t u r y they started to a c c u s e t h e S a m a r i t a n s o f w o r s h i p p i n g a d o v e (y. Av. Zar. 4 4 d ; b . Hull. 6 a et so o f d o w n r i g h t i d o l a t r y .
62
T h i s is a l m o s t certainly a c o m p l e t e l y
al),
unjustified
allegation a n d s h o u l d b e s e e n as either a m i s u n d e r s t a n d i n g or, m o r e probably, as a d e l i b e r a t e distortion o f the S a m a r i t a n w o r s h i p o f Shema 'ashima),
(in their l a n g u a g e
the N a m e ( i . e . Y H W H ) . " T h e i m p l i c a t i o n o f the J e w i s h allegation
w o u l d s e e m to b e that the S a m a r i t a n s still w o r s h i p p e d t h e g o d d e s s A s h i m a , w h o s e cult is said to h a v e b e e n b r o u g h t into t h e N o r t h e r n K i n g d o m o f Israel b y t h e A s s y r i a n c o l o n i s t s (2 K i n g s 1 7 : 2 9 - 3 0 ) . "
6 3
T h e r e h a s n e v e r b e e n the slightest
e v i d e n c e that the S a m a r i t a n s e v e r w o r s h i p p e d this d o v e ,
6 4
so h e r e w e are a l m o s t
certainly in the r e a l m o f religious slander. T h e r e is little d o u b t that the fact that the S a m a r i t a n s resolutely rejected the central r a b b i n i c c o n c e p t o f Oral T o r a h
65
- in this r e s p e c t they w e r e a g a i n not u n l i k e the S a d d u c e e s - w a s the factor that fuelled the a n g e r o f the rabbis against t h e m . It is clear from T a l m u d i c d i s c u s s i o n s ( e . g . , b. Qidd. 7 5 a - 7 6 a ) that, as in the p r e - r a b b i n i c m a t e r i a l , q u e s t i o n s o f strict m a r r i a g e rules, purity o f l i n e a g e a n d related m a t t e r s c o n t i n u e d to play a large role in the r a b b i s ' a s s e s s m e n t o f the S a m a r i t a n s . T h e p r o b l e m a l w a y s w a s that s o m e r a b b i s c l a i m e d that the Cuthim
w e r e not strict e n o u g h in t h e s e m a t t e r s .
66
A n o t h e r b a r o m e t e r o f J e w i s h / n o n - J e w i s h relations w a s the a c c e p t a n c e o f w i n e held b y a g r o u p , i n d i c a t i n g that t h e y are c o n s i d e r e d J e w s . " U n t i l t h e m i d - s e c o n d c e n t u r y C E w i n e sealed b y a S a m a r i t a n w a s a c c e p t a b l e but, in A m o r a i c t i m e s , it c a m e to be forbidden iyAZ
5:4 ( 4 4 d ) ; bAZ 3 1 a - b ; cf. Kutim
2:9). T h e r e a s o n
g i v e n is the c o r r u p t i o n o f the S a m a r i t a n s , that is their laxity in t h e o b s e r v a n c e o f the c o m m a n d m e n t s as n o t e d in A m o r a i c d e s c r i p t i o n s o f t h e m . " 6 2
6 7
T h e r e are
E.g., b.Hull. 6a: "R. Assi declared the Cuthaeans to be absolute heathens." Cf. Gen. RabbaS\3. J. Fossum, "Dove," Dictionary of Deities and Demons in the Bible (eds. K. van der Toorn, B. Becking & P.W. van der Horst), Leiden-Grand Rapids 1999 (2nd ed.), 2 6 3 . See for instance Hall, Samaritan Religion. See R. Boid, "Use, Authority and Exegesis o f Mikra in the Samaritan Tradition," In M.J. Mulder (ed.), Mikra (CRINT 11,1), Assen - Philadelphia 1988, 598. Schiffman, "The Samaritans" 3 2 8 - 3 3 4 . L.H. Schiffman, "Rabbinic Literature, Samaritans in-," in Crown, Companion 199. 6 3
6 4
6 5
6 6
6 7
150
Anti-Samaritan
Propaganda
in Early
Judaism
m a n y m o r e early r a b b i n i c texts o n the S a m a r i t a n s b u t for r e a s o n s o f s p a c e w e h a d to m a k e a selection. W e h a v e seen e n o u g h , h o w e v e r , to b e a b l e to c o n c l u d e that " t h e attitude o f the rabbis to the S a m a r i t a n s c h a n g e d from o n e o f J e w i s h or q u e s t i o n a b l e status to the a s s u m p t i o n that the S a m a r i t a n s w e r e like n o n - J e w s in all h a l a k h i c m a t t e r s . "
68
Conclusion W e h a v e to d r a w to a c l o s e . T h e t h r e a d that runs t h r o u g h o u t this story has b e e n o n e o f a m b i g u i t y a n d a m b i v a l e n c e . T h e S a m a r i t a n s are at the s a m e t i m e b o t h J e w s a n d n o n - J e w s . " T h e y w e r e neither in n o r o u t . "
6 9
T h e fact that the Sa
m a r i t a n s a c c e p t e d the Torah o f M o s e s as a u t h o r i t a t i v e a n d d i v i n e a n d also lived a c c o r d i n g l y m a d e o t h e r J e w s feel that t h e y w e r e d e a l i n g w i t h k i n s m e n . O n t h e o t h e r h a n d , t h e fact that t h e S a m a r i t a n s rejected s o m e tenets that h a d b e c o m e f u n d a m e n t a l to post-exilic a n d post-biblical J u d a i s m (i.e. the a c c e p t a n c e o f t h e P r o p h e t s a n d W r i t i n g s , the centralization o f t h e cult in J e r u s a l e m , t h e i d e a o f a r e s u r r e c t i o n o f the b o d y ) m a d e other J e w s feel that t h e y w e r e d e a l i n g with o u t siders, b e y o n d t h e p a l e o f J u d a i s m . A s s e s s m e n t o f t h e S a m a r i t a n s b y i n d i v i d u a l J e w s v a r i e d greatly d e p e n d i n g o n t h e political c i r c u m s t a n c e s , h o w o p e n m i n d e d or strict they w e r e , a n d w h e t h e r they h a d actual a n d p e r s o n a l k n o w l e d g e of t h e m . T h e S a m a r i t a n s w e r e s t r a n g e coreligionists w h o w e r e h a r d to identify a n d w h o t h e r e f o r e m a d e it difficult to define t h e b o u n d a r i e s b e t w e e n t h e m a n d the J e w s . F o r t h e s e r e a s o n s there is n o u n e q u i v o c a l J e w i s h v i e w o f t h e S a m a r i t a n s .
6 8
Schiffman, Schiffman, The author from Sydney, for errors. 6 9
7 0
70
"Rabbinic Literature" 199. "The Samaritans" 323. expresses his gratitude to the doyen of Samaritan studies, Prof. Alan Crown his critical remarks on the first draft of this article. He saved me from several
Jacques Basnage (1653-1723) on the Samaritans Or: How much did one know about the Samaritans three centuries ago in the Netherlands?
F r e n c h P r o t e s t a n t i s m h a d a v e r y difficult start. T h e 16th c e n t u r y w a s a p e r i o d o f p e r s e c u t i o n w i t h as its m o s t brutal z e n i t h t h e so-called M a s s a c r e o f St. Bar t h o l o m e w ' s D a y in A u g u s t o f 1572 w h e n at the instigation o f q u e e n C a t h e r i n e d e ' M e d i c i b e t w e e n 5 0 0 0 a n d 1 0 0 0 0 H u g u e n o t s (as the F r e n c h P r o t e s t a n t s w e r e called) w e r e m u r d e r e d in t h e cities o f F r a n c e . T h e Edict o f N a n c e , signed in 1598 b y H e n r i IV after the F r e n c h w a r s o f religion, formally g r a n t e d the H u g u e n o t s t h e right o f free e x e r c i s e o f their r e l i g i o n a n d civil e q u a l i t y w i t h C a t h o l i c s , b u t as the history o f the 17th c e n t u r y p r o v e d , it d i d n ' t w o r k : in fact the H u g u e n o t s h e r e b y a c h i e v e d the status o f a b a r e l y tolerated minority, a status that w a s g r a d u a l l y a n d i n c r e a s i n g l y u n d e r m i n e d b y a l o n g series o f formal a n d informal e n c r o a c h m e n t s o f their n e w rights. T h i s g l a r i n g d e m o n s t r a t i o n o f F r e n c h intoler a n c e r e a c h e d its natural a p o g e e in the r e v o c a t i o n o f t h e E d i c t o f N a n t e s in 1685 b y L o u i s XIV, the S u n K i n g , an act w h i c h i m p l i e d that t h e H u g u e n o t s w e r e 1
forced to b e c o m e C a t h o l i c s ; o t h e r w i s e they w o u l d b e c o m e o u t l a w s . A l t h o u g h they w e r e n o t a l l o w e d to l e a v e t h e country, s o m e 2 0 0 , 0 0 0 m a n a g e d to flee from F r a n c e , a n d a large n u m b e r o f H u g u e n o t s , at least o n e third o f t h e m , settled in the c o u n t r y that h a d the l o n g e s t a n d s t r o n g e s t tradition o f r e l i g i o u s t o l e r a n c e in E u r o p e , the so-called U n i t e d R e p u b l i c o f the N e t h e r l a n d s . O t h e r s w e n t to Switzerland, England, and Germany.
2
T h e m o s t f a m o u s a n d illustrious o f t h e s e F r e n c h P r o t e s t a n t s in the N e t h e r lands w a s the w r i t e r Pierre B a y l e , t h e t o l e r a n t s k e p t i c w h o b e c a m e p r o f e s s o r o f p h i l o s o p h y a n d h i s t o r y at R o t t e r d a m , w h e r e h e w r o t e his f a m o u s f o u r - v o l u m e Dictionnaire
historique
et critique
( 1 6 9 5 - 9 7 ) , a m a n w h o is n o w g e n e r a l l y
r e g a r d e d as a p r e c u r s o r o f t h e E n l i g h t e n m e n t . H e is an e x e m p l a r y e x p o n e n t of the p h e n o m e n o n that his m o s t r e c e n t a n d a u t h o r i t a t i v e b i o g r a p h e r , E l i s a b e t h L a b r o u s s e , d e s c r i b e s to the effect that b y a n d large t h e H u g u e n o t s a l w a y s " w e r e incomparably better educated and trained than the average Catholic parish 1
On the serious consequences of this revocation (and its prehistory) see J. Orcibal, Louis lesprotestants, Paris \95\,passim but esp. 1 2 4 - 1 5 8 . Hundreds of thousands, however, became French Catholics, of course contre coeur, so that in fact a kind of 'Protestant Marranos' came into being.
XIVet 2
152
Jacques Basnage
3
p r i e s t . " T h i s a p p l i e s a fortiori
(1653-1723)
on the
Samaritans
to his c l o s e a n d lifelong friend a n d b e n e f a c t o r 4
J a c q u e s B a s n a g e , w h o p l a y e d such an i m p o r t a n t role t h r o u g h o u t his life. B a s n a g e w a s b o r n in 1653 as the son o f a P r o t e s t a n t l a w y e r in R o u e n a n d a m e m b e r o f " o n e o f N o r m a n d y ' s m o s t c e l e b r a t e d d y n a s t i e s , k n o w n a n d r e c o g n i z e d still 5
t o d a y for its scholarly barristers a n d H u g u e n o t p a s t o r s . " H e b e c a m e a m i n i s t e r in his n a t i v e t o w n in 1676, but in 1 6 8 5 , the y e a r o f t h e r e v o c a t i o n o f the E d i c t o f N a n t e s that m a r k e d t h e b e g i n n i n g o f t h e so-called S e c o n d R e f u g e , h e fled to the N e t h e r l a n d s w h e r e h e b e c a m e a m i n i s t e r o f the F r e n c h Protestant c o m m u n i t y (the E g l i s e W a l l o n n e ) in R o t t e r d a m ; since 1710 h e h e l d that p o s i t i o n in T h e H a g u e , w h e r e - apart from b e i n g a p a s t o r - h e also p l a y e d a v e r y p r o m i n e n t role 6
in D u t c h affairs o f s t a t e . Voltaire, w h o w a s a great a d m i r e r o f B a s n a g e , w r o t e a b o u t h i m that a p o s i t i o n o f ' m i n i s t r e d ' E t a t ' in t h e N e t h e r l a n d s w o u l d b e m u c h m o r e fitting to B a s n a g e ' s qualities than that o f P r o t e s t a n t p a s t o r .
7
J a c q u e s B a s n a g e w a s o n e o f the m o s t r e m a r k a b l e s c h o l a r s o f his t i m e . H i s s c h o l a r s h i p w a s i m p r e s s i v e l y w i d e - r a n g i n g a n d his p r o d u c t i v i t y w a s s t u n n i n g . H i s m o s t f a m o u s w o r k s are p r o b a b l y his t w o - v o l u m e Histoire
de la religion
eglises
(1699, again two
reformees
( 1 6 9 0 ) a n d his g e n e r a l Histoire
de I'eglise
des
v o l u m e s ) . B u t h e also w r o t e influential w o r k s in the field o f biblical studies, p a s t o r a l t h e o l o g y , the h i s t o r y o f r e l i g i o n s , a n d history in g e n e r a l , a n d m a n y p o l e m i c a l w o r k s a g a i n s t the C a t h o l i c c h u r c h c a m e from h i s p e n as w e l l . In total h e 8
p u b l i s h e d s o m e 3 0 b o o k s , several o f w h i c h w e r e m u l t i - v o l u m e w o r k s . H i s m o s t i m p o r t a n t w o r k for o u r p u r p o s e s is his L 'histoire Jesus-Christ
jusqu
'a present
et la religion
des Juifs
depuis
( T h e H i s t o r y a n d R e l i g i o n o f the J e w s from J e s u s
C h r i s t to t h e P r e s e n t D a y ) o f 1 7 0 6 - 1 7 0 7 , w h i c h w a s also p u b l i s h e d in an E n g l i s h v e r s i o n in 1708 a n d a D u t c h version in 1726 (that w a s r e p r i n t e d as r e c e n t l y as 9
1988 in m y c o u n t r y ! ) . In 1710 the C a t h o l i c a b b o t L o u i s D u p i n p u b l i s h e d in 3
E. Labrousse, Bayle, Oxford 1983, 5. See Labrousse, Bayle 1 8 - 2 0 , 32, 4 5 - 4 7 . G. Cerny, Theology, Politics and Letters at the Crossroads of European Civilization: Jacques Basnage and the Baylean Huguenot Refugees in the Dutch Republic, Dordrecht - B o s t o n 1987, 11. See E. & E. Haag, La France Protestante, vol. I, Paris 1877 (2nd ed.), 9 3 0 - 9 4 3 ; Anon., "Basnage (Jacques)," in J.P. de Bie & J. Loosjes (eds.), Biographisch Woordenboek van Protestantsche Godgeleerden in Nederland, vol. I, Den Haag (n.d.), 3 3 4 - 3 3 8 ; B. Heurtebize, 'Basnage de Beauval, Jacques,' Dictionnaire de la Bible 1,2 (Paris 1926) 1 4 9 5 - 1 4 9 6 ; B. Dinur, 'Basnage, Jacques,' Encyclopaedia Judaica 4 (1972) 3 0 9 - 3 1 0 ; M. Silvera, Jacques Basnage. Corrispondenza da Rotterdam, 1685-1709, Amsterdam & Maarssen 2000; and esp. Cerny, Theology, Politics and Letters (see previous note), still the best treatment. See Biographisch Woordenboek 1 335; Haag, La France protestante 1 9 3 1 ; and Cerny, Theology, Politics and Letters 181. Voltaire: "[Basnage] etait plus propre a etre ministre d'Etat que d'une paroisse." For a bibliography of his works see La France protestante 1 9 3 4 - 9 4 2 ; also Cerny, Theol ogy, Politics and Letters 3 2 3 - 3 2 6 . J. Basnage, L 'histoire et la religion des Juifs depuis Jesus-Christ jusqu 'a present, pour servir de suplement [sic] & de continuation a I 'Histoire de Joseph [sic], Rotterdam: Reinier 4
5
6
7
8
9
Jacques Basnage
(1653-1723)
on the
153
Samaritans
Paris a n a n o n y m o u s a n d strictly e x p u r g a t e d pirate edition o f t h e w o r k in w h i c h e v e r y t h i n g that c o u l d b e s e e n as d a m a g i n g to the interests o f the R o m a n C a t h o l i c C h u r c h h a d b e e n r e m o v e d ( e s p e c i a l l y t h o s e p a s s a g e s in w h i c h B a s n a g e h e a v i l y criticized t h e C a t h o l i c c h u r c h for its m a n y p e r s e c u t i o n s o f t h e J e w s ) . In 1711 an a n g r y B a s n a g e t o o k r e v e n g e w i t h his Histoire par son veritable T h e Histoire
auteur
des Juifs
contre
Vedition
des Juifs reclamee
anonyme
et tronquee
et
retablie
(458 pages!).
is a v e r y large w o r k that a p p e a r e d in 6 v o l u m e s in the
first edition o f 1 7 0 6 - 0 7 a n d in 15 in the v e r y m u c h e n l a r g e d s e c o n d edition of 1716, in w h i c h h e also r e p l i e d to his critics. T h e D u t c h translation o f this latter e d i t i o n is a folio-size o n e - v o l u m e edition o f s o m e 2 0 0 0 t w o - c o l u m n p a g e s . T h e s e c o n d F r e n c h edition c o n t a i n s m o r e t h a n 4 0 0 0 p a g e s . T h e b o o k ' s influence w a s enormous.
1 0
O n e o f t h e m o s t striking a s p e c t s o f this b o o k , w h i c h is b a s e d u p o n a solid k n o w l e d g e o f the original s o u r c e s o f J e w i s h history a n d r e l i g i o n ,
11
is that it also
c o n t a i n s the first m a j o r study o f the S a m a r i t a n s e v e r to a p p e a r in the N e t h e r l a n d s . In its first edition s o m e 150 p a g e s are d e v o t e d to the S a m a r i t a n s , a n d in the s e c o n d e v e n m o r e ; the D u t c h translation o f that edition c o n t a i n s 8 2 d o u b l e foliosize p a g e s in t w o c o l u m n s o n the S a m a r i t a n s (in a m o d e r n s t a n d a r d edition that w o u l d c o v e r b e t w e e n 165 a n d 2 0 0 p a g e s , /. e., the c h a p t e r w o u l d b e m o n o g r a p h l e n g t h ) . T h i s is v e r y striking b e c a u s e in the l o n g c h a p t e r a b o u t ' J e w i s h s e c t s ' o f w h i c h t h e p a g e s on the S a m a r i t a n s are a p a r t ,
12
B a s n a g e d e v o t e s m o r e attention
to the S a m a r i t a n s than to P h a r i s e e s , S a d d u c e e s , E s s e n e s , H e r o d i a n s , K a r a i t e s etc. altogether. A p a r t from that, h e also turns out to b e r e m a r k a b l y w e l l - i n f o r m e d Leers, 1706-7; new augmented cd. Den Haag: Henri Scheurleer, 1716. The English version was the translation by Thomas Taylor: The History of the Jews from Jesus Christ to the Present Time, London 1708 (non vidi). The Dutch version, a translation of the 1716 edition, appeared under the title Vervolg op Flavius Josephus; of Algemene Historie der Joodsche Naatsie etc., Delft: Gerard onder de Linden, 1726. The book was reprinted in 1988 by publishing house De Banier in Utrecht. See my review in Nederlands Theologisch Tijdschrift 4 4 (1990) 2 6 5 - 2 6 6 . On Reinier Leers, the famous international publisher who brought out many of Basnage's works see O.S. Lankhorst, Reinier Leers (1654-1714), uitgever en boekverkoper te Rotterdam, Amsterdam & Maarssen 1983. It is interesting to see that the second edition o f Basnage's work inspired the Dutch Yid dish historiographer Menachem Mann to write a general history of the Jews going back to 70 CE in Yiddish, She'erit Yisrael(Amsterdam 1743); see L. Fuks & R. Fuks, 'Joodse geschiedschrijving in de Republiek in de 17e en 18e eeuw,' Studia Rosenthaliana 6 (1972) 1 3 7 - 1 6 5 , esp. 1 5 3 - 1 5 6 . A s Cerny, Theology, Politics and Letters 185, remarks: "In a very real sense, it was primarily because of Basnage's Histoire des Juifs that Dutch Jewish scholars, Sephardim and Ashkenazim, became the first among Europe's Jews to resume what, seventeen centuries earlier, Flavius Josephus had begun." It may be added that Basnage's veneration for Josephus is somewhat excessive, no doubt because he regarded himself as this author's successor. The chapter is called "Livre second contenant l'Histoire des Sectes qui subsistoient au temps de J. Christ, et de la mine de Jerusalem. Les Samaritains; les Sadduceens; les Pharisiens; les Esseniens; les Herodiens; etc. Leur origine; leurs dogmes; leurs progres; et leur etat pres ent." 1 0
11
1 2
154
Jacques Basnage
a b o u t the S a m a r i t a n s .
13
(1653-1723)
on the
Samaritans
To p u t all this into a s o m e w h a t w i d e r f r a m e w o r k , let m e
s a y s o m e t h i n g m o r e a b o u t B a s n a g e ' s r e a s o n s for w r i t i n g this m a j o r w o r k . B a s n a g e k n e w that o n e o f t h e m o s t f a m o u s J e w i s h s c h o l a r s from A m s t e r d a m , M e n a s s e h b e n Israel, h a d p l a n s to write a history o f the J e w i s h p e o p l e as a sequel to J o s e p h u s ' Antiquitates
Judaicae,
b u t that c i r c u m s t a n c e s h a d k e p t h i m so far
from c o m p l e t i n g this first J e w i s h history for 15 c e n t u r i e s . A s a m a t t e r o f fact, M e n a s s e h b e n I s r a e l ' s unfinished m a n u s c r i p t w a s p r o b a b l y in B a s n a g e ' s p o s s e s sion. B a s n a g e , like M e n a s s e h b e n Israel a v i c t i m o f R o m a n C a t h o l i c p e r s e c u t i o n , h a d a great s y m p a t h y for this project, for it w a s his fate as an exile that m a d e h i m feel c o n n e c t e d to the e q u a l l y e x i l e d J e w s . M a n y H u g u e n o t s b e l i e v e d that t h e y r e l i v e d for t h e m s e l v e s t h e B a b y l o n i a n captivity o f the J e w s .
1 4
B a s n a g e b e g a n to
r e a d w i d e l y in o r d e r to b e able to write this c o m p r e h e n s i v e J e w i s h history w h i c h , in fact, is t h e first m o d e r n history o f the J e w s . In t h e list o f w o r k s h e c o n s u l t e d for this enterprise h e m e n t i o n s s o m e 5 5 0 a u t h o r s , from J o s e p h u s to M a i m o n i d e s , a n d from the M i s h n a h to Ibn E z r a a n d K a b b a l i s t i c w r i t e r s ( a l t h o u g h it s h o u l d b e a d d e d that h e c o n s u l t e d m a n y H e b r e w w o r k s o n l y in Latin translation); o f c o u r s e he also consulted non-Jewish authors.
15
Both Jewish and Christian scholars of
his d a y s p r a i s e d t h e w o r k as a m o n u m e n t o f s c h o l a r s h i p ,
16
w h i c h i n d e e d it is.
T h a t is n o t to say, h o w e v e r , that h e w a s a b l e to r e a d t h e J e w i s h a n d S a m a r i t a n s o u r c e s w i t h o u t t h e p r e j u d i c e s that w e r e c u r r e n t in h i s t i m e , also a m o n g P r o t e s t a n t s . O n t h e c o n t r a r y : " T h e c o e x i s t e n c e [in B a s n a g e ] o f B a y l e a n historical c r i t i c i s m a n d a r e m n a n t o f C h r i s t i a n a n t i - S e m i t i s m that h a d l o n g c h a r a c t e r i z e d the r e l i g i o u s t h o u g h t of Protestants a n d C a t h o l i c s m a d e for a c u r i o u s , a m b i v a l e n t h y b r i d that r e v e a l s m u c h a b o u t the transition from the A g e o f R e a s o n to t h e A g e of Enlightenment."
17
T h e r e w a s still a n o t h e r m o t i v e for h i m to w r i t e this w o r k . B a s n a g e w a s a M i l lenarian. H e e x p e c t e d that t h e m e s s i a n i c i n t e r r e g n u m o f a t h o u s a n d y e a r s w o u l d b e g i n in the y e a r 1 7 1 6 . " B a s n a g e ' s o s t e n s i b l e r e a s o n for w r i t i n g t h e w o r k w a s M i l l e n a r i a n . H e w a n t e d to c o m p l e t e the great task M e n a s s e h b e n Israel said h e w a s w o r k i n g o n , the history o f the J e w s from the t i m e o f F l a v i u s J o s e p h u s u p to t h e p r e s e n t . It w o u l d s h o w g l a r i n g l y h o w G o d h a s b e e n a c t i v e in history, a n d w o u l d p r e p a r e m a n k i n d for the M i l l e n i u m , w h i c h B a s n a g e said w o u l d b e g i n in
13
It is a shame that Basnage does not figure among the many scholars that are dealt with in A . D . Crown, R. Pummer & A. Tal (eds.), A Companion to Samaritan Studies, Tubingen 1993. See M. Yardeni, ' N e w Concepts o f Post-Commonwealth Jewish History in the Early En lightenment: Bayle and Basnage,' European Studies Review 7 (1977) 2 4 5 - 2 5 8 , esp. 2 4 6 - 2 4 7 . His bibliography covers some 40 pages and lists titles in Hebrew, Greek, Latin, French, English, Portuguese, Italian, and Spanish. The fact that he added a bibliography at all was a novum in his days. Some years later, Basnage said he was very gratified by the positive reception of his work by his Jewish contemporaries; Cerny, Theology, Politics and Letters 186. A m o n g his non-Jew ish admirers Richard Simon takes pride of place (La France protestante I 938). Cerny, Theology, Politics and Letters 190. 1 4
15
1 6
1 7
Jacques Basnage
1716."
1 8
(1653-1723)
on the
155
Samaritans
B a s n a g e e x p e c t e d that in this n e w e r a all J e w s w o u l d b e c o m e C h r i s
tians. B u t in 1716 it w a s n o t the M i l l e n i u m b u t the s e c o n d edition o f his of the Jews
History
that a p p e a r e d , a n d t h e n B a s n a g e said that h e o n l y w r o t e t h e w o r k
to p r o v e t h e truth o f C h r i s t i a n i t y a g a i n s t t h e J e w s (vol.1, p . v ) . S u p e r s e s s i o n i s t t h o u g h h e w a s , h e w a s p r o f o u n d l y repelled b y C h r i s t i a n p e r s e c u t i o n o f J e w s .
1 9
W e h a v e to l e a v e t h e s e m a t t e r s , h o w e v e r , for w h a t they are a n d w e will further focus o n w h a t B a s n a g e w r o t e a b o u t the S a m a r i t a n s . To b e g i n w i t h , it is striking that his t r e a t m e n t o f t h e S a m a r i t a n s is part o f a long c h a p t e r on w h a t h e c a l l e d t h e ' s e c t s ' in J u d a i s m in t h e t i m e o f J e s u s Christ. E v e n t h o u g h h e k n e w , as w e shall later see, o f the bitter a n t a g o n i s m b e t w e e n S a m a r i t a n s a n d (other) J e w s , from a p h e n o m e n o l o g i c a l p o i n t o f v i e w h e rightly s a w that S a m a r i t a n i s m h a d to b e r e g a r d e d as a v a r i a n t o f t h e Israelite religion. B u t h e also w a n t e d to i n c l u d e as m a n y sects as p o s s i b l e b e c a u s e he " f o u n d e v i d e n c e for t h e fall of J u d a i s m in r e l i g i o u s s c h i s m s a n d h e r e s i e s that a r o s e within it."
20
A n d " t h e a u t h o r p r e p a r e d his r e a d e r to a c c e p t t h e n o t i o n that the
political a n d r e l i g i o u s d i s i n t e g r a t i o n o f P a l e s t i n e c o r r o b o r a t e d t h e d i s p l a c e m e n t o f J u d a i s m b y C h r i s t i a n i t y as t h e t r i u m p h a n t w o r l d r e l i g i o n . "
21
Judaism's chief
m i s f o r t u n e w a s religious f a c t i o n a l i s m , a c c o r d i n g to B a s n a g e . O n e o f t h e s e fac tions w a s t h e S a m a r i t a n m o v e m e n t . After a short s k e t c h of t h e v i c i s s i t u d e s o f t h e city o f S h e c h e m , B a s n a g e p a y s attention to t h e h o l y m o u n t a i n o f G a r i z i m , its role in S a m a r i t a n i s m , a n d its p r e c i s e location, partly c o r r e c t i n g the D u t c h s c h o l a r H a d r i a n ( A d r i a a n ) R e l a n d w h o h a d r e c e n t l y p u b l i s h e d a treatise on this m o u n t a i n ( 1 7 0 6 ) .
2 2
After t h e s e
g e o g r a p h i c a l r e m a r k s , B a s n a g e t u r n s to S a m a r i t a n h i s t o r y a n d o p e n s w i t h criti cal r e m a r k s on the S a m a r i t a n Book
of Joshua
w h i c h h e rightly s a y s S c a l i g e r
w r o n g l y t o o k to b e a v e r y a n c i e n t w o r k , a n d h e then p r e s e n t s s o m e e x c e r p t s from the w o r k . H e also m e n t i o n s the C h r o n i c l e o f A b u ' l F a t h , t h a t h a d r e c e n t l y b e e n 1 8
R.H. Popkin, "Jacques Basnage's Histoire des Juifs and the Bibliotheca Sarraziana," Studia Rosenthaliana 21 (1987) 1 5 4 - 1 6 2 , quote on p. 161. Cerny, Theology, Politics and Letters 199: "Basnage reasoned that Jews should be per mitted to live peacefully in order that they might study the Christian religion and, hopefully, become converted one day." Ibid. 200: "Jacques Basnage's censure o f duress to convert Jews occupied a central position in his history." Cf. Yardeni, ' N e w Concepts' 252: "In the last resort Basnage is convinced that the Jews are indeed the chosen people who will yet recover the place God has destined for them." In this framework Yardeni refers to another study written by her which, unfortunately, I have not been able to consult: 'Judaism and Jews in the Eyes of the French Protestant Exiles in Holland, 1 6 8 5 - 1 7 1 5 , ' Mechqarim: Studies in the History of the Jewish People and the Land of Israel 1 (1970) 1 6 3 - 1 8 5 [Hebrew]. Cerny, Theology, Politics and Letters 193. Ibid. 194. Reland ( 1 6 7 8 - 1 7 1 8 ) was professor of Oriental languages in Utrecht. Basnage regarded Reland as one of the greatest Orientalists of his time. His most famous work is De religione mohammedica of 1705. See A. Hamilton, "Adrianus Reland ( 1 6 7 6 - 1 7 1 8 ) : Outstanding Orien talist," in: H. Jamin (ed.), Zes keer zestig. 360jaar universitaire geschiedenis in zes biografieen, Utrecht 1996, 2 3 - 3 1 . 1 9
2 0
2 1
2 2
156
Jacques
Basnage
(1653-1723)
on the
Samaritans
e x p l o i t e d b y E d w a r d B e r n a r d in his studies o f t h e S a m a r i t a n s , a n d o t h e r S a m a r i tan d o c u m e n t s , e s p . letters, a c q u i r e d b y H u n t i n g t o n a n d p u b l i s h e d in 1704. H e a g a i n q u o t e s s e l e c t e d p a s s a g e s a n d a d d s his critical c o m m e n t s , p o i n t i n g o u t the m a n y c h r o n o l o g i c a l i m p r o b a b i l i t i e s but, in spite o f that, o c c a s i o n a l l y p r e f e r r i n g t h e S a m a r i t a n v e r s i o n o f e v e n t s to the J e w i s h o n e . O n t h e w h o l e , h o w e v e r , his v e r d i c t a b o u t t h e historical reliability o f the c h r o n i c l e s is e x t r e m e l y n e g a t i v e , e s p e c i a l l y as far as t h e early origin o f S a m a r i t a n i s m in t h e t i m e o f J o s h u a is c o n c e r n e d . B u t h e w i s e l y a d d s that this is a c o m m o n p h e n o m e n o n , also a m o n g C h r i s t i a n C h u r c h e s : all t e n d to retroject their o r i g i n s into t i m e s as r e m o t e in the past as p o s s i b l e . A s to the hotly d e b a t e d issue o f the original text o f D e u t . 2 7 : 4 - 5 , B a s n a g e t h i n k s it is not entirely i m p o s s i b l e that h e r e the S a m a r i t a n s are m o r e right t h a n the J e w s : the latter m a y h a v e c h a n g e d the original text, t h u s r e m o v i n g the m e n t i o n o f M o u n t G a r i z i m . It is from several p a s s a g e s in the p r o p h e t i c b o o k s w h i c h s p e a k a b o u t G o d ' s love for E p h r a i m that B a s n a g e c o n c l u d e s that G o d l o v e d t h e S a m a r i t a n s as m u c h as the (other) Israelites. H e d o e s interpret 2 K i n g s 17 in the traditional w a y to t h e effect that t h e S a m a r i t a n s h a d originally b e e n C u t h a e a n s , b u t h e i m m e d i a t e l y c o n c e d e s that in t h e c o u r s e o f t i m e this p a g a n o r i g i n h a d b e c o m e c o m p l e t e l y obliterated s i n c e t h e y h a d b e c o m e Israelites, albeit erring o n e s . T h r o u g h o u t his w o r k B a s n a g e m a k e s clear that his s y m p a t h i e s are m o r e on t h e J e w i s h t h a n on the S a m a r i t a n side ( h e r e p e a t e d l y calls t h e m ' s c h i s m a t i c s ' ) , e v e n t h o u g h h e g i v e s t h e m the benefit o f t h e d o u b t in t h e m a t t e r o f t h e original text o f D e u t . 2 7 . It s h o u l d b e a d d e d , h o w e v e r , that n o w h e r e d o e s h e m a k e a n y distinction b e t w e e n S a m a r i t a n s a n d i n h a b i t a n t s o f S a m a r i a ( S a m a r ians) so that his p i c t u r e is often b l u r r e d b y irrelevant e v i d e n c e . F o r i n s t a n c e , h e w r o n g l y b l a m e s it u p o n the S a m a r i t a n s that the city o f S a m a r i a issued a c o i n o n w h i c h t h e e m p e r o r N e r o is called a g o d . It is for that r e a s o n that h e d e v o t e s so m u c h s p a c e to a h o s t o f details in the history o f t h e city o f S a m a r i a . In a r a t h e r l o n g w i n d e d s u r v e y of S a m a r i t a n h i s t o r y in antiquity, i n t e r r u p t e d time and again by various excursions,
23
B a s n a g e c o n t i n u o u s l y c o r r e c t s errors in
J o s e p h u s , t h e C h u r c h F a t h e r s , t h e S a m a r i t a n C h r o n i c l e s a n d in p u b l i c a t i o n s b y t h e m o d e r n s c h o l a r s o f his t i m e ( i n c l u d i n g S c a l i g e r ) ; a n d quite often h e is right, e v e n t h o u g h h e is far t o o m u c h i m p r e s s e d b y J o s e p h u s . In his t r e a t m e n t o f t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t data, he s h o w s little critical a w a r e n e s s in that he takes e v e r y state m e n t a b o u t S a m a r i t a n s at face v a l u e , w h e r e a s e v e r y s t a t e m e n t in the S a m a r i t a n C h r o n i c l e s h e k n e w w a s critically scrutinized a n d v e r y often rejected. E v e n s o , it is i m p r e s s i v e to see that h a r d l y a n y p i e c e o f a n c i e n t e v i d e n c e for the S a m a r i tans that w a s k n o w n in his t i m e - b e it J e w i s h , p a g a n , C h r i s t i a n , or S a m a r i t a n - e s c a p e d his e y e . O n the b a s i s o f this e v i d e n c e h e p r e s e n t s a s u m m a r y s k e t c h o f the h i s t o r y o f t h e S a m a r i t a n s in antiquity. H e s o m e t i m e s m a k e s m i s t a k e s , e. g.,
2 3
For instance, a very long excursion on the double circumcision of the (supposedly) Samaritan Bible translator Symmachus.
Jacques Basnage
(1653-1723)
on the
Samaritans
157
w h e n h e situates M a r i n u s o f N e a p o l i s , w h o lived in the fifth century, in the reign o f Justinian, b u t this k i n d o f error is an e x c e p t i o n . F o r t h e p e r i o d after Justinian, h e stresses the e n o r m o u s r e d u c t i o n in n u m b e r s o f S a m a r i t a n s , partly d u e to t h e d e v a s t a t i n g w a r s that h a d t a k e n p l a c e b e t w e e n t h e m a n d t h e B y z a n t i n e s in the 6th century, partly d u e to c o m p u l s o r y m a s s c o n v e r s i o n to C h r i s t i a n i t y a n d , later, Islam. H e refers to the small n u m b e r s o f S a m a r i t a n s m e n t i o n e d , a m o n g o t h e r s , b y B e n j a m i n o f T u d e l a at t h e e n d o f the twelfth century. H e t h e n j u m p s to his o w n t i m e a n d p r o v i d e s the r e a d e r w i t h e x c e r p t s from H u n t i n g t o n ' s r e c e n t d e s c r i p t i o n o f the p r e s e n t state o f t h e S a m a r i t a n s in the N e a r East. H e also p r e s e n t s a t r a n s l a t i o n o f t h e letters from t h e S a m a r i t a n s in N a b l u s r e c e n t l y p u b l i s h e d b y H u n t i n g t o n ( 1 7 0 4 ) a n d a d d r e s s e d to " t h e i r b r e t h r e n in the city o f E n g l a n d . " T h i s a d d r e s s m a k e s h i m ridicule their lack o f e d u c a t i o n . T h e e m p h a s i s in the d e s c r i p t i o n is u p o n the v e r y i m p o v e r i s h e d state o f m a n y S a m a r i tans a n d u p o n t h e incredibility o f the a n t i q u i t y c l a i m e d for their A b i s h a Scroll. H e m e n t i o n s w i t h hardly c o n c e a l e d a m u s e m e n t that several S a m a r i t a n s d e c l a r e d they w o u l d b e v e r y h a p p y to visit their b r e t h r e n in E n g l a n d , b u t d e c l i n e d to d o so w h e n they h e a r d that t h e y w o u l d h a v e to s p e n d a s h a b b a t t r a v e l l i n g o n a boat. T h e letter o f the S a m a r i t a n s , w h i c h c o n t a i n s a detailed d e s c r i p t i o n o f S a m a r i t a n c u s t o m s , h e a v i l y e m p h a s i z e s the differences b e t w e e n t h e S a m a r i t a n s a n d t h e J e w s in t e r m s o f m u c h greater o r lesser strictness in k e e p i n g the c o m m a n d m e n t s . F o r t h e rest it is a m o v i n g p l e a for c o n t a c t b e t w e e n the S a m a r i t a n s in P a l e s t i n e a n d t h o s e in ' t h e city o f E n g l a n d . ' B a s n a g e g i v e s e l a b o r a t e c o m m e n t s u p o n t h e letters a n d in t h e s e c o m m e n t s h e also i n c l u d e s o t h e r S a m a r i t a n letters sent to t h e s c h o l a r s J o b L u d o l f a n d J o s e p h Scaliger. F o r o n e thing, h e a g r e e s w i t h the S a m a r i t a n s that their script is o l d e r than the A r a m a i c script u s e d b y t h e J e w s . A s to their strictness in k e e p i n g the s h a b b a t , B a s n a g e s i m p l y calls it superstition. T h e J e w i s h a c c u s a t i o n that t h e S a m a r i t a n s w o r s h i p p e d a foreign deity called A s i m a (cf. 2 K i n g s 17:34) is, h o w e v e r , i n d i g n a n t l y refuted b y h i m ; h e s a y s that there is n o d o u b t that this is a p e r v e r t e d interpretation o f t h e fact that t h e S a m a r i t a n s n e v e r p r o n o u n c e the h o l y T e t r a g r a m m a t o n b u t instead say Ashima,
i. e., h a - S h e m (the N a m e ) . H e also
e x t e n s i v e l y d e a l s w i t h the a c c u s a t i o n that the S a m a r i t a n s w o r s h i p p e d a d o v e a n d a n a l y s e s all t h e p e r t i n e n t t r a d i t i o n s , o n l y to c o m e to t h e c o n c l u s i o n that it is a piece of rabbinic slander.
24
H e is s i n c e r e l y a m a z e d that, a l t h o u g h t h e S a m a r i
tans a c k n o w l e d g e o n l y o n e G o d , t h e y a s c r i b e s u c h an e x t r e m e l y h i g h d e g r e e o f a u t h o r i t y to their H i g h Priest; to h i m , as a fervent a n t i - C a t h o l i c , that is an i n e x p l i c a b l e a n d u n a c c e p t a b l e attitude. H e r e p e a t s that t h e S a m a r i t a n c h r o n i c l e s c o n t a i n m o r e fables a n d l e g e n d s than historical truth.
2 4
In this connection he also pays ample attention to the anti-Jewish slander that the Jews venerate an ass (or its head). In his view this is an equally ridiculous accusation as that of Samaritan dove worship.
158
Jacques
Basnage
(1653-1723)
on the
Samaritans
H e then t u r n s to the B i b l e o f the S a m a r i t a n s a n d c a s t i g a t e s t h e m for not a c c e p t i n g the P r o p h e t s , not e v e n t h o s e from the N o r t h . A s to their P e n t a t e u c h , h e d i s a g r e e s w i t h t h o s e s c h o l a r s w h o state that it is out o f evil intent that they c h a n g e d b o t h the script a n d the text o f the b o o k s o f M o s e s . H e e v e n b e l i e v e s that t h e y p o s s e s s e d t h e Torah o f M o s e s in this s h a p e as early as the t i m e s o f D a v i d and S o l o m o n .
2 5
H e d i s c u s s e s at length w h a t h e calls t h e errors o f t h e S a m a r i t a n s
as r e p o r t e d b y E p i p h a n i u s a n d o t h e r C h u r c h F a t h e r s . H e s h o w s h o w often t h e s e Christian authors were misinformed and mixed up various groups (e.g., Sadd u c e e s a n d S a m a r i t a n s ) on the basis o f s e c o n d - h a n d r e p o r t s . In this c o n n e c t i o n h e p a y s special attention to the fact that several C h u r c h F a t h e r s r e p o r t that the S a m a r i t a n s d o not b e l i e v e in the r e s u r r e c t i o n o f t h e b o d y , w h e r e a s the S a m a r i t a n c h r o n i c l e s clearly d e m o n s t r a t e , says B a s n a g e , that t h e y do b e l i e v e in t h e resur rection. H e r e h e o v e r l o o k s the possibility that in the first c e n t u r i e s C E this tenet m a y not y e t h a v e b e e n part o f t h e S a m a r i t a n creed, w h i l e later o n it did b e c o m e so.
2 6
H e also rejects J e w i s h a c c u s a t i o n s o f p e r s i s t i n g a n i m a l w o r s h i p a m o n g t h e
S a m a r i t a n s , a l t h o u g h h e a d m i t s that in the b e g i n n i n g o f S a m a r i t a n history, w h e n they still w e r e C u t h a e a n s , idolatry m a y h a v e p l a y e d a r o l e for s o m e t i m e b u t n o t for long. E v e n t h o u g h h e h a d a l r e a d y refuted several stories a b o u t S a m a r i t a n idolatry in an earlier chapter, B a s n a g e r e t u r n s to this t o p i c in o r d e r to e m p h a s i z e a g a i n that t h e r a b b i s d o s e r i o u s injustice to the S a m a r i t a n s b y their a l l e g a t i o n s o f d o v e w o r s h i p a n d o f idols h i d d e n u n d e r M t . G a r i z i m . H e a c c u s e s the J e w s h e r e o f e x c e s s i v e a n i m o s i t y t o w a r d s the S a m a r i t a n s , a g a i n s t w h i c h h e w a n t s to d o j u s t i c e to t h e m . H e n e x t t u r n s to the p u z z l i n g p a s s a g e in the G o s p e l o f J o h n , w h e r e J e s u s in his c o n v e r s a t i o n w i t h a S a m a r i t a n w o m a n s a y s that " s a l v a t i o n is from the J e w s " ( J o h n 4 : 2 2 ) . T h i s raises for h i m the intriguing q u e s t i o n o f w h e t h e r J e s u s m e a n t to e x c l u d e t h e S a m a r i t a n s from G o d ' s salvation. H i s firm a n s w e r is n o . A n d it is interesting to s e e that o n e o f the r e a s o n s for this a n s w e r is that B a s n a g e , a r g u i n g that the S a m a r i t a n s are actually identical to t h e ten N o r t h e r n tribes o f Israel, s a y s that from t h e s e tribes G o d recruited not o n l y several o f the biblical p r o p h e t s b u t a l s o t h e 7 0 0 0 w h o did not b o w their k n e e s to B a ' a l (1 K i n g s 19:18), w h i c h w o u l d s e e m to rule out G o d ' s w h o l e s a l e rejection o f t h e S a m a r i t a n s a n d their e x c l u s i o n from eternal salvation. T h a t " s a l v a t i o n is from the J e w s
(Ioudaioi)"
m e a n s n o m o r e t h a n that J e s u s , t h e m e a n s o f G o d ' s s a l v a t i o n , is from the tribe o f J u d a h . It is a rather r a m b l i n g w a y o f r e a s o n i n g , b u t it testifies to B a s n a g e ' s f u n d a m e n t a l t o l e r a n c e . H e q u o t e s p a s s a g e s from H o s e a 11 ( e s p . t h e v e r s e s on E p h r a i m ) as p r o o f o f G o d ' s t e n d e r love for t h e S a m a r i t a n s . If there h a d o c c a s i o n ally b e e n idolatry a m o n g the S a m a r i t a n s , so t h e r e w a s a m o n g t h e J e w s as w e l l , 2 5
In this chapter he also inserts a curious excursus on the shape(s) o f the Samaritan letter
Tav. 2 6
See F. Dexinger, 'Eschatology,' in Crown, Pummer & Tal (eds.), A Companion maritan Studies, 8 6 - 9 0 .
to Sa
Jacques
Basnage
(1653-/723)
on the
Samaritans
159
a n d G o d did not a b a n d o n either o f t h e m . T h e fact that the biblical p r o p h e t s from the N o r t h e r n K i n g d o m w e r e G o d ' s p r o p h e t s n o less than t h o s e o f the South is h e r e h e a v i l y stressed b y B a s n a g e as an a r g u m e n t that G o d m a k e s n o distinction between Jews and Samaritans. After that, w i t h an a m a z i n g gullibility, B a s n a g e reports as historical facts the m u c h later C h r i s t i a n l e g e n d that the a f o r e - m e n t i o n e d S a m a r i t a n w o m a n from t h e G o s p e l o f J o h n c o n v e r t e d to C h r i s t i a n i t y t o g e t h e r w i t h h e r family a n d that P h o t i n a , as she is then called, t o g e t h e r w i t h h e r sisters P h o t o a n d Photis (!), p r e a c h e d the G o s p e l not o n l y in S a m a r i a b u t also in N o r t h Africa - s h e w a s the f o u n d e r o f the C h r i s t i a n C h u r c h in C a r t h a g e - a n d that t h e y finally suf fered m a r t y r d o m in R o m e u n d e r N e r o . Unfortunately, s a y s B a s n a g e , several o f the S a m a r i t a n s w h o h a d b e c o m e C h r i s t i a n s b e c a m e a p o s t a t e s a g a i n u n d e r the influence o f S i m o n the M a g i c i a n . H e r e w e c a n clearly see to w h i c h a b s u r d i t i e s a c o m b i n a t i o n o f trust in the C h r i s t i a n tradition a n d inability to distinguish b e t w e e n S a m a r i t a n s a n d S a m a r i a n s c a n lead. N e x t h e d e a l s w i t h the v a r i o u s r e p o r t s a b o u t S a m a r i t a n sects. A g a i n h e is v e r y critical o f t h e m u d d l e - h e a d e d report b y E p i p h a n i u s a n d c o m e s to t h e c o n c l u s i o n that it is o n l y D o s i t h e u s a n d the D o s i t h e a n s that m a y c l a i m to b e historical. H e p l a c e s D o s i t h e u s in the first c e n t u r y a n d details t h e p r o b l e m s c o n c e r n i n g this m a n a n d his followers that are c a u s e d b y t h e c o n t r a d i c t o r y n a t u r e o f o u r s o u r c e s . A n d finally B a s n a g e q u o t e s in full the S a m a r i t a n C r e e d as it h a d b e e n sent to S c a l i g e r b y the then H i g h Priest E l a z a r from N a b l u s . L o o k i n g b a c k at w h a t J a c q u e s B a s n a g e p r e s e n t s as a h i s t o r y o f t h e S a m a r i t a n s a n d their religion, w e m a y s i n g l e o u t s o m e striking e l e m e n t s for o u r final o b s e r v a t i o n s . T h e r e is n o d e n y i n g that as a n o r t h o d o x P r o t e s t a n t h e shared in the b i a s e s a n d p r e j u d i c e s o f his t i m e a n d culture. H i s v i e w o f the biblical d o c u m e n t s is b y a n d large fundamentalist, t h o u g h it m a y b e called s u r p r i s i n g that in the m a t t e r o f t h e original text in D e u t . 2 7 he k e e p s o p e n t h e possibility that it is not t h e J e w i s h M a s o r e t i c text b u t t h e S a m a r i t a n P e n t a t e u c h w h i c h p r e s e r v e s the original r e a d i n g . T h a t w a s n e w a n d c o u r a g e o u s in his t i m e . W e further o b s e r v e that in the m a t t e r o f the l o n g p o l e m i c a l tradition a b o u t S a m a r i t a n idolatry h e is c o n s p i c u o u s l y m i l d : h e d o e s not c o m p l e t e l y d e n y this possibility b u t h e d o e s limit it strictly to t h e earliest p e r i o d a n d stresses that, if e v e r there has b e e n s u c h a t h i n g as S a m a r i t a n idolaltry, it h a s b e e n v e r y s h o r t - l i v e d a n d not really different from w h a t c o u l d b e o b s e r v e d in J e w i s h circles as w e l l . Striking is his o p e n - m i n d e d n e s s in that h e is c o n v i n c e d that G o d not o n l y c o n t i n u e s to tolerate the S a m a r i t a n s b u t loves t h e m as his o w n children a n d that, therefore, toler a n c e on t h e part o f n o n - S a m a r i t a n s is a h o l y duty. A s I said before, his p i c t u r e o f S a m a r i t a n history is m a r r e d at several p l a c e s b y the fact that h e r e g a r d s all information a b o u t S a m a r i a a n d its i n h a b i t a n t s as information a b o u t S a m a r i t a n s instead o f a b o u t S a m a r i a n s . T h i s is r e g r e t t a b l e , but to his great credit it m u s t
160
Jacques
Basnage
(1653-1723)
on the
Samaritans
i m m e d i a t e l y b e a d d e d that h e h a s not o v e r l o o k e d a n y p i e c e o f relevant e v i d e n c e , as far as I c a n j u d g e . H i s history a n d religion o f the S a m a r i t a n s is for that r e a s o n t h e m o s t c o m p r e h e n s i v e o f his t i m e . It is an i m p r e s s i v e feat w h i c h , in spite o f its m a n y s h o r t c o m i n g s from o u r m o d e r n p o i n t o f view, is an i m p o r t a n t w o r k in that in t h e final a n a l y s i s it paints w h a t is, for his d a y s , a strikingly s y m p a t h e t i c p i c t u r e o f the S a m a r i t a n s .
Once More: The Translation of oi Se in Matthew 28:17 In v i e w o f the r e c e n t d e b a t e b e t w e e n K. G r a y s t o n a n d K . L . M c K a y t h e c o r r e c t r e n d e r i n g o f oi 6 E in M t . 2 8 . 1 7 (l&ovTeg
OVUTOV
1
concerning
j i Q o a e x w n a a v , ol &E
e d t a x a a a v ) , t h e f o l l o w i n g r e m a r k s are in order. E x i s t i n g t r a n s l a t i o n s d i v i d e r o u g h l y into t h r e e c a t e g o r i e s : (1) ' W h e n t h e y s a w h i m , t h e y w o r s h i p p e d h i m , b u t s o m e d o u b t e d . ' In this t r a n s l a t i o n (the m o s t 2
usual o n e ) , OL &E refers to part o f the d i s c i p l e s . (2) ' W h e n t h e y s a w h i m , t h e y 3
w o r s h i p p e d h i m , b u t t h e y d o u b t e d . ' In this t r a n s l a t i o n , oi 6 E refers to all o f the d i s c i p l e s . (3) ' W h e n t h e y s a w h i m , t h e y w o r s h i p p e d h i m , b u t o t h e r s d o u b t e d . ' 4
In this t r a n s l a t i o n , oi be refers to p e r s o n s o t h e r t h a n the d i s c i p l e s . T h e p r o b l e m is. o f c o u r s e , (a) that t h e r e is n o c o r r e s p o n d i n g oi
LLEV
in t h e first
h a l f o f the s e n t e n c e ; (b) that the f o l l o w i n g v e r s e s d o n o t g i v e a n y indication o f d o u b t o n the p a r t o f the d i s c i p l e s ; (c) that n o w h e r e in the c o n t e x t is t h e r e a n y i n d i c a t i o n that p e r s o n s o t h e r t h a n the d i s c i p l e s ( w h o are m e n t i o n e d in v. 16 a n d are u n a m b i g u o u s l y the g r a m m a t i c a l subject o f jtpoa£xi>vriaav in v. 17) are involved. G r a y s t o n rightly d r a w s M t . 2 6 . 6 7 (EVEjrxuaav elc, T O jtQoaoojtov avxov
xai
ExoXdcpioav cnutov, oi &e E Q a m a a v ) into the d i s c u s s i o n , b u t w r o n g l y s u g g e s t s the t r a n s l a t i o n , ' t h e y spat . . . a n d struck h i m a n d t h e y s l a p p e d h i m , ' since M c K a y is right w h e n h e s a y s that t h e n o r m a l u s e o f oi 6 E i n v o l v e s a c h a n g e o f subject, w h e t h e r or n o t oi
LIEV
p r e c e d e s it, for w h e n t h e r e is n o c h a n g e o f subject, t h e r e 5
is n o r m a l l y n o p r o n o u n . T h e c h a n g e o f subject m a y b e c o m p l e t e or partial. B o t h G r a y s t o n a n d M c K a y refer t o the partitive u s e o f oi 6 E ( w i t h o u t a p r e c e d ing oi
LLEV),
b u t u n f o r t u n a t e l y t h e y m e n t i o n o n l y t w o p a s s a g e s from X e n o p h o n
as illustrations o f this u s a g e ( t a k e n from W i n e r - M o u l t o n ' s Grammar
1
of
New
K. Grayston, 'The Translation ofMatthew 28.17,' JSNT21 (1984) 1 0 5 - 1 0 9 ; K.L. McKay, 'The Use ofhoide in Matthew 2 8 . 1 7 , ' J E W 2 4 (1985) 7 1 - 7 2 . See AV, RSV, N E B , N1V, G N B , JB, etc. and many commentaries. So Grayston, art. cit. (n. 1), and the commentaries o f Lohmeier, Grundmann, Bonnard, and others noted by Grayston; also A T . Robertson, A Grammar of the Greek New Testament, N e w York 1919 ( 3 ed.), 694. Some mss. o f the Vctus Latina; also F. Blass, A. Debrunner & F. Rehkopf, Grammatik des neutestamentlichen Griechisch, Gottingen 1976 ( 1 4 ed.), § 250. See, e. g., J.H. Moulton, W.F. Howard & N. Turner, A Grammar of New Testament Greek, III: Syntax, Edinburgh 1 9 6 3 , 3 7 , referring to B.L. Gildersleeve, Syntax of Classical Greek, N e w York 1911, § 518. McKay gives no references. 2
3
r d
4
th
5
162
Once More: The Translation
Testament
Greek,
of oi 6e in Matthew
28:17
1882), as if this w e r e all t h e e v i d e n c e . M o r e o v e r , G r a y s t o n
g e t s rid o f this e v i d e n c e b y m e a n s o f t h e r h e t o r i c a l q u e s t i o n , ' B u t in M a t t h e w , w h a t r e a s o n is t h e r e for d i s c o v e r i n g s e p a r a t e g r o u p s ? ' ( 1 6 0 ) . A n d M c K a y t e n d s t o b e led a s t r a y b y his m i s t a k e n o b s e r v a t i o n that ' i n v i e w o f t h e d i s t a n c e o f t h e w h o l e g r o u p subject from t h e m a i n v e r b s it c o u l d b e that hoi de w e r e a m i n o r i t y o f a larger g r o u p led b y t h e e l e v e n a n d d i d n o t n e c e s s a r i l y c o n t a i n a n y o f the eleven themselves' (71). L e t it b e stated c l e a r l y that it is a w e l l k n o w n a n d frequently u s e d s y n t a c t i c a l d e v i c e t o indicate
a division
o f a g r o u p o f p e r s o n s o r t h i n g s into t w o (or m o r e )
s u b g r o u p s only in the second
half of the sentence
(ol u i v / xovc, u i v b e i n g o m i t t e d
in t h e first half). I n s t a n c e s o f this u s a g e c a n easily b e found, e. g., in t h e g r a m m a r 6
7
of K u h n e r - G e r t h , in D e n n i s t o n ' s classic w o r k o n t h e p a r t i c l e s , o r in Liddell a n d 8
S c o t t . L e t m e q u o t e s o m e e x a m p l e s (other than X e n o p h o n , Hellenica Cyropaedia
1.2.14 a n d
9
3.2.12 mentioned by Grayston and M c K a y ) .
E u r i p i d e s , Herculesfurens
6 3 5 - 6 3 6 : xgj]\iaaiv be Sidcpoooi, e%ovoiv, o i 6 ' o v ('It
is in r e s p e c t o f w e a l t h that p e o p l e are different; s o m e h a v e r i c h e s , s o m e d o n ' t ' ) . Cf. a l s o Hecuba Inscriptiones
1161-1163. Graecae
II 2 , 6 5 2 A 4 5 (from 3 9 7 B C E ) : 6tio oygaylbe
XQuoxrOv eypvoa xov banxvlxov,
f| 6' exega agyvgovv
XiBivoo
( ' t w o stone seals, one having
a g o l d e n r i n g , t h e o t h e r a silver o n e ' ) . P l a t o , Leges boibexa
iega,
828b—c: 6 \iev yag br\ vou.og egel 6o)6exa u£v eogxac, elvca xolg
Beoig, dbv a v r\ cpvkr] exdaxr] ejT(ovuu.og f|, B u o v x a g xotixoov e x d a x o i g e\i\ir\va
XOQOVC,
xe x a l dycovag |a.ouaixoi)g, xovc, be yvuvixoug
('... dances and contests,
[the latter b e i n g ] b o t h m u s i c a l a n d g y m n a s t i c ' ) . A n d o c i d e s , De mysteriis
3 8 : . . . o Q d v 6s dvGQobjraug
XOV
\iev
&QL9U.6V
t Q i a x o a i o u g , eaxdvca be xiixXw d v d Jtevxe xai 6 s x a dv&Qag, xovc, be d v d
\xakioxa SLXOOLV
( ' . . . in total n u m b e r a b o u t t h r e e h u n d r e d , b u t s t a n d i n g in g r o u p s , s o m e o f fif t e e n , s o m e o f t w e n t y m e n ' ) . Ibid, 1 0 5 : el atixotg e^eoxai ddewg cruxoqpavxEiv xai 6
R. Kuhner & B. Gcrth, Ausfuhrliche Grammatik der griechischen Sprache II/2, Han nover-Leipzig 1904 ( 3 ed.) = repr. Darmstadt 1966, 2 6 5 - 2 6 6 on partial change o f subject ('der Redende denkt zunachst ausschliesslich an die Mehrheit, die er als Gesamtsubjekt fasst, ohne auf die Minderheit Rucksicht zu nehmen, und ftigt dann erst nachtraglich mit oi 5e die Erganzung oder Beschrankung hinzu'); ibid. 2 7 2 - 2 7 3 on complete change o f subject ('Der Grund der Weglassung von \iev liegt teils darin, dass der Vorstellung des Redenden bei dem ersten Gliede nicht zugleich auch das entgegengesetzte Glied vorschwebte, teils darin, dass der Redende absichtlich auf den Gegensatz nicht vorbereiten will, teils darin, dass der erste Glied einen zu schwachen Gegensatz bildet'). J.D. Denniston, The Greek Particles, Oxford 1954 ( 2 ed.), 166; he remarks that in several cases the sentence with 6 5e / ol be 'is more or less o f an after-thought.' Greek-English Lexicon, Oxford 1940 ( 9 ed.), s.v. Se. See also U. von Wilamowitz-Moellendorff, Euripides 'Herakles, III, Darmstadt 1959 (repr.), 1 4 3 - 1 4 4 , who quotes instances from Homer to Himerius! Xenophon, Hellenica 1.2.14 oi ouxud^ooToi • • • aJtoSodvieg vuxtog a»xovxo eig AexeX.eiav, oi 6' eig Meyaoa. Cyropaedia 3.2.12 jrooactYouai tw KIIQO) XOVC, av/jixakwxovc, 6e5e(xevo u5, xovq be xwaq xai TexQcouivoajc;. One may also compare Anabasis 1.10.3; 2.3.10; 5.4.31; 7.5.2. r d
7
8
n d
th
9
,
Once More: The Translation of oi de in Matthew
YQdcpso6ai, xovo, be
EVSEIXVTJVCU
28:17
163
( ' . . . w h e t h e r t h e y w o u l d b e a l l o w e d t o act a s
s y c o p h a n t s w i t h i m p u n i t y , a n d t o indict s o m e a n d inform a g a i n s t o t h e r s ' ) . H e r e S t e p h a n u s m a d e t h e u n n e c e s s a r y c o n j e c t u r e < xovc, L u c i a n , Lexiphanes
LIEV
> YQd(pea0ai.
2 , c l e a r l y s h o w s that this u s a g e w a s still k n o w n in t h e
I m p e r i a l p e r i o d : xax£tax|3ov xovc, Eoydxag ^LyuQi^ovxag xf|v BeQivfjv (b&r|v, xovc, 6e xdcpov xa>
SLIO) KCXXQL
x a x a o x e u d ^ o v x a g ( T found the labourers while s o m e of
t h e m w e r e s i n g i n g t h e h a r v e s t s o n g a n d o t h e r s w e r e p r e p a r i n g a g r a v e for m y father'). S e v e r a l o t h e r i n s t a n c e s , from H o m e r t o late a n c i e n t t i m e s , a r e q u o t e d in t h e w o r k s m e n t i o n e d in n o t e s 6 - 8 , a b o v e . T h a t this u s a g e is p r o b a b l y n o t w h o l l y u n k n o w n t o t h e o t h e r a u t h o r s o f t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t m i g h t b e inferred from A c t s 2 . 1 2 - 1 3 : £ | i o x a v x o &E jidvxeg x a i SITIJCOQOUV . . .
(13)
SXEQOI
be biaxkeva^ovxec,
eXeyov . . . T h e w o r d s
EXEQOL 6 E
after
TtdvxEg in v. 1 2 i n d i c a t e that t h e m e a n i n g is that all r e a c t e d t o t h e p h e n o m e n o n d e s c r i b e d in vv. 6 - 1 1 , b u t that t h e r e a c t i o n s w e r e d i v i d e d : s o m e w e r e a m a z e d a n d p e r p l e x e d , o t h e r s h o w e v e r m o c k e d at t h e d i s c i p l e s (classical u s a g e c o u l d have had ol
5E
h e r e ) . Cf. A c t s 1 7 . 1 8 :
XLVEC;
cruv£|3cdXov avxti) xai, xivec, ekeyov
o l &E X T L , w h e r e it is clear that a g a i n t h e r e w e r e different r e a c t i o n s to P a u l ' s preaching.
1 0
All this i m p l i e s that in M t . 2 8 . 1 7 o l 6 E cannot
m e a n all o f t h e d i s c i p l e s , can
m e a n (from a strictly g r a m m a t i c a l p o i n t o f v i e w ) o t h e r p e r s o n s t h a n t h e d i s c i p l e s , b u t , s i n c e n o o t h e r p e r s o n s a r e i n v o l v e d h e r e at all, must m e a n p a r t o f t h e d i s c i p l e s . T h i s m o t i f (the d o u b t o f s o m e o f t h e d i s c i p l e s ) is n o t e l a b o r a t e d in t h e M a t t h e a n c o n t e x t , b u t it is w e l l k n o w n in o t h e r p o s t - r e s u r r e c t i o n stories ( L k . 2 4 . 2 2 ff, 3 7 ff; J n . 2 0 . 2 4 f f ) . T h e c o r r e c t t r a n s l a t i o n o f M t . 2 8 . 1 7 is t h e r e f o r e
m o s t p r o b a b l y as f o l l o w s : ' W h e n t h e y s a w h i m , t h e y (or: s o m e o f t h e m ) w o r shipped him, but some of them d o u b t e d . '
1 0
1 1
See also my note on Acts 2 . 1 2 - 3 in m y 'Hellenistic Parallels to the Acts o f the Apostles II,'J5^r25(1985) 49-60. [Postscriptum: In his W B C commentary on Matthew (Dallas 1995), Donald Hagner asserts that in this article I 'overstated' my case since in his view an examination o f the o i be construction in Matthew mainly supports the interpretation that all disciples are referred to here: 'but they doubted' (884). This conclusion is totally unwarranted since in all instances he mentions a change o f subject is unambiguously clear from the context, so all these instances are irrelevant.] 11
Abraham's Bosom, the Place Where He Belonged A
Short Note on dnevexOfivai
in Luke 16:22
In t h e story o f t h e rich m a n a n d t h e p o o r L a z a r u s in L u k e 16, t h e u s u a l translation o f v. 2 2 is: " T h e p o o r m a n d i e d a n d w a s c a r r i e d a w a y b y t h e a n g e l s to b e w i t h A b r a h a m , " o r " h e w a s carried b y t h e a n g e l s to t h e b o s o m o f A b r a h a m " (eyevexo 6e djioGavetv xov
JITCD/OV
xai djr.ev£%Ofyvai avxov i m o xoov dyy^cov eig xov xo)arov
'A|3QadLi). N o n e o f t h e d o z e n s o f e x i s t i n g t r a n s l a t i o n s o f L u k e a n d c o m m e n t a r i e s o n his G o s p e l that h a v e I c o n s u l t e d offer a n y t h i n g o t h e r t h a n this. T h e r e is n o t h i n g w r o n g w i t h this translation, e x c e p t that t h e v e r b u s e d h e r e for c a r r y i n g a w a y , djtocp£Q8iv, c a n h a v e a s e m a n t i c a s p e c t that is n o t c a p t u r e d in this r e n d e r i n g , an a s p e c t w h i c h I s t r o n g l y s u s p e c t is p r e s e n t h e r e . I s u b m i t as a t r a n s l a t i o n o f t h e v e r s e t h e f o l l o w i n g free r e n d i t i o n : " T h e p o o r m a n d i e d a n d t h e a n g e l s c a r r i e d h i m a w a y to t h e b o s o m o f A b r a h a m , t h e p l a c e w h e r e h e b e l o n g e d (or: his w e l l d e s e r v e d p l a c e ) . " W h y d o I p r o p o s e this t r a n s l a t i o n ? In c o m p o u n d v e r b s b e g i n n i n g w i t h dito-, this p r e p o s i t i o n often h a s t h e c o n n o tation o f ' b a c k to w h e r e it b e l o n g s , ' or it g i v e s t h e v e r b a n o t i o n o f ' d e s e r v e d n e s s ' o r o f w h a t is d u e . To g i v e a clear e x a m p l e from t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t : T h e v e r b djto&i&ooLu u s u a l l y m e a n s ' t o g i v e a w a y , to g i v e u p , to y i e l d , ' b u t it also often h a s t h e s e m a n t i c a s p e c t s o f ' t o m e e t or fulfill a c o n t r a c t u a l o r o t h e r o b l i g a t i o n , to p a y out, to g i v e b a c k , to r e s t o r e to t h e original p o s s e s s o r , t o r e c o m p e n s e , to r e w a r d . '
1
It is u s e d in this w a y for p a y i n g o u t w a g e s in M a t t . 2 0 . 8 ; for p a y i n g b a c k d e b t s in M a t t . 5.26, L u k e 7.42 a n d e l s e w h e r e ; for g i v i n g d u e r e w a r d in R o m . 2 . 6 ; for m a k i n g ' r e p a y m e n t s ' to o n e ' s p a r e n t s in 1 T i m . 5.4 etc. ( s e e a l s o Rev. 18.6 for a p a r t i c u l a r l y g o o d e x a m p l e ) . S o t i m e a n d a g a i n this v e r b is u s e d for g i v i n g p e r s o n s w h a t is d u e to t h e m o r w h a t t h e y are entitled to. A n o t h e r e x a m p l e c o n c e r n s t h e v e r b ditexco: W h e n in M a t t . 6 J e s u s r e p e a t e d l y (vv. 2, 5, 16) s a y s o f ' t h e h y p o c r i t e s ' that t h e y anijovaiv
xov uxoOov atkwv, h e
m e a n s that t h e y h a v e b e e n p a i d h e r e a n d n o w w h a t w a s d u e t o t h e m , s o t h e y c a n n o t c l a i m a n y t h i n g m o r e in t h e hereafter. A s h a s a l r e a d y b e e n p o i n t e d o u t l o n g 2
a g o b y A . D e i s s m a n n , in t h e i m m e d i a t e l y p r e c e d i n g v. 1 t h e a u t h o r s p e a k s o f LILOOOV
s'xeiv w i t h o u t t h e djto-prefix, so there m u s t b e a difference. T h e difference
is t h a t dnsxeiv is a t e c h n i c a l t e r m for g e t t i n g a r e c e i p t b y w h i c h d e b t s a r e settled. 1
BDAG 109-110.
2
Licht vom Osten, Tubingen 1923 (4th ed.), 8 8 - 9 0 .
Abraham s Bosom, the Place Where He
165
Belonged
S o ajTixouaiv x o v uioBov cmxcov m e a n s that t h e y h a v e r e c e i v e d their d u e r e w a r d . N o w t h e s e are v e r y w e l l - k n o w n i n s t a n c e s o f this u s a g e , b u t it is m u c h less w e l l k n o w n that o t h e r c o m p o u n d s w i t h
CCJIO-
can h a v e the s a m e f o r c e .
3
I will d e m o n s t r a t e this w i t h the v e r b djrdya). It u s u a l l y m e a n s ' l e a d a w a y ' or ' c a r r y off.' B u t it c a n also h a v e the s e m a n t i c a s p e c t o f ' b r i n g i n g b a c k , ' ' b r i n g i n g h o m e , ' ' r e t u r n i n g , ' ' r e n d e r i n g w h a t o n e o w e s , ' as a q u i c k g l a n c e in L S J s h o w s . F o r i n s t a n c e , in X e n o p h o n , Anabasis
1.3.14, the soldiers say that t h e y are g o i n g
to c h o o s e o t h e r l e a d e r s as s o o n as p o s s i b l e if C l e a r c h u s is n o t w i l l i n g to them back home
4
( d j t d y e i v ) . O r P l a t o , Phaedo
bring
5 8 b , w h e r e in the o p e n i n g s c e n e
o f the d i a l o g u e the s p e a k e r r e c o u n t s : " T h e A t h e n i a n s say that this is the ship in w h i c h T h e s e u s o n c e sailed to C r e t e w i t h the s e v e n y o u t h s a n d s e v e n m a i d e n s , a n d s a v e d their lives a n d his o w n as well. T h e story g o e s that the A t h e n i a n s m a d e a v o w to A p o l l o that if t h e s e y o u n g p e o p l e ' s lives w e r e s a v e d , t h e y w o u l d s e n d ( d j t d y e i v ) a s o l e m n m i s s i o n e v e r y y e a r to D e l o s , a n d e v e r s i n c e t h e n t h e y h a v e k e p t their v o w to the g o d , e v e n d o w n to the p r e s e n t d a y . " T h i s is a v e r y illustra tive e x a m p l e s i n c e it is the e l e m e n t o f the v o w to A p o l l o that m a k e s it a b u n d a n t l y clear that s e n d i n g a y e a r l y m i s s i o n to his s a c r e d island w a s s o m e t h i n g d u e to b e d o n e ; it w a s a m o r a l o b l i g a t i o n . H e n c e d j i d y e i v a n d n o t j u s t d y e i v or jteujteiv or the like is u s e d h e r e . M a n y m o r e e x a m p l e s c o u l d b e g i v e n , b u t a few m o r e i n s t a n c e s o f t h e v e r b u s e d b y L u k e in t h e v e r s e u n d e r d i s c u s s i o n (ajtotpegsiv) will suffice. In H e r o d o t u s a n d T h u c y d i d e s o n e finds djtocpeQeiv r e p e a t e d l y u s e d for p a y ing t a x e s d u e to the g o v e r n m e n t or for p a y i n g a m o u n t s o f m o n e y that h a d b e e n stipulated in a treaty (e. g., H d t . , Hist.
1.196.3; 4 . 3 5 . 1 ; 5 . 8 4 . 1 ; T h u c , Hist.
5.31).
In s u c h c a s e s the v e r b u n d o u b t e d l y m e a n s ' b r i n g i n g [the m o n e y ] to t h e p e r s o n s 5
entitled t o it or to t h e b o d i e s w h e r e it b e l o n g s . ' T h e e l e m e n t o f b e l o n g i n g is a l s o a p p a r e n t in t h o s e c a s e s in w h i c h djtocpeoEo-Ocu is u s e d for g o i n g b a c k h o m e or b e i n g b r o u g h t h o m e , as in L y s i a s , Or. 12.18, w h e r e it is said that a m a n w h o h a d d i e d in p r i s o n w a s b r o u g h t b a c k h o m e (xeBvecog ex 6e0uo)xr|Qiot) djrecpeQexo). A n d in Leges
9 1 0 c , P l a t o s a y s that w o r s h i p m a y t a k e p l a c e o n l y in p u b l i c t e m p l e s ; it
is forbidden to h a v e p r i v a t e s h r i n e s . If s o m e o n e is found to p o s s e s s s u c h a p r i v a t e s h r i n e , the g o v e r n o r s s h o u l d o r d e r it to b e ' t r a n s f e r r e d ' (djtocpEQeiv) to a p u b l i c t e m p l e . It is c l e a r w h y the v e r b djtoq)£Qeiv is u s e d for ' t r a n s f e r r i n g ' : the p u b l i c t e m p l e is the o n l y p l a c e w h e r e w o r s h i p is d u e . M o r e i n s t a n c e s c o u l d b e q u o t e d , b u t t h e s e few illustrative e x a m p l e s m a k e suf ficiently c l e a r that in the c a s e o f L u k e ' s u s e o f djtevexOfjvcu in 16.22 w e h a v e to t a k e into s e r i o u s c o n s i d e r a t i o n that h e w a n t e d to c o n v e y the s e n s e o f A b r a h a m ' s 3
Even the new B D A G often does not record this semantic aspect. See for some other in stances J.H. Moulton & W.F. Howard, A Grammar of New Testament Greek, vol. 2, Edinburgh 1929 (repr. 1963), 298. S.v. II and III. The lexicon o f LSJ s.v. II 4 also lists as a meaning "to hand over as required." 4
5
166
Abraham s Bosom, the Place
Where He
Belonged
b o s o m as t h e p l a c e w h e r e t h e p o o r L a z a r u s b e l o n g e d a n d t h a t h e w a s e n t i t l e d to.
6
T h i s i n t e r p r e t a t i o n fits in e x c e l l e n t l y w i t h L u k e ' s o w n v e r s i o n o f t h e first
b e a t i t u d e in L k . 6 . 2 0 : " B l e s s e d a r e y o u w h o a r e p o o r , for y o u r s is t h e k i n g d o m of G o d . "
6
7
The fact that in other places in the N T djiocpeoeiv usually has the meaning of'carrying off, taking away' does not at all militate against this conclusion. I o w e thanks to my colleagues Professors Tjitze Baarda and Maarten Menken for some critical remarks on the first version o f this short note. 7
The Hellenistic Background of Acts 9:1 "Snorting
Threat
and
Murder"
In this e s s a y a n a t t e m p t will b e m a d e to s h e d s o m e light o n a n e x p r e s s i o n in A c t s 9 : 1 . It is said there o f Saul that h e w a s ELutvecov ajteilfjg x a i cpovou Big xovc, \iaQr\xac, xov
-KVQIOV.
Firstly,the literary b a c k g r o u n d o f this r a t h e r u n u s u a l e x p r e s s i o n will
b e i n v e s t i g a t e d . S e c o n d l y , t h e function o f t h e g e n i t i v e in amikxyz, xaicpovou will h a v e t o b e defined. In his e x t r a o r d i n a r i l y f a s c i n a t i n g study, The Origins
of European
Thought^
R. B . O n i a n s h a s p o i n t e d o u t that in a r c h a i c G r e e k t h o u g h t b r e a t h p l a y s a m u c h g r e a t e r role t h a n in o u r m o d e s o f t h i n k i n g a n d that b r e a t h i n g is c o n n e c t e d t h e r e w i t h all k i n d s o f p s y c h i c f u n c t i o n s , w i t h e m o t i o n s , w i s h i n g , t h i n k i n g , e v e n w i t h 2
p e r c e p t i o n in all its v a r i e t i e s , a n d p r o c r e a t i o n . A l l k i n d s o f G r e e k w o r d s that d e s i g n a t e soul, spirit, m i n d , m o o d , a n d their functions a p p e a r to b e c o n n e c t e d w i t h b r e a t h i n g a n d b l o w i n g . S o tyv%r) is o r i g i n a l l y b r e a t h a n d h a s a n e t y m o l o g i cal c o n n e c t i o n w i t h ipuxstv, to b r e a t h o r to b l o w . A n d a l s o QuLiog ( L a t i n S a n s k r i t dhumah)
fumus,
o r i g i n a l l y m e a n t b r e a t h , v a p o u r o r s m o k e . O n i a n s also c o n
v i n c i n g l y d e m o n s t r a t e s that in H o m e r a n d o t h e r early G r e e k w r i t e r s , cpoeveg d o e s n o t m e a n midriff ( d i a p h r a g m a , as in the classical p e r i o d ) , b u t l u n g s , a n d that it 3
d e s i g n a t e s a s s u c h t h e seat o f e m o t i o n s a n d t h o u g h t s . ( A l s o in later a u t h o r s o n e still finds t h e l u n g s , jtXeiiLuov o r jtveuLuov, as t h e seat o f e m o t i o n s . )
4
So H o m e r s a y s for e x a m p l e : 5ixa be acpiv evi cprjeoi 9uu.6g o n t o , (Iliad
21:386),
literally: ' t h e i r b r e a t h in their l u n g s b l e w in t w o d i r e c t i o n s ' , i . e . t h e r e w a s d i s s e n s i o n , strife a m o n g t h e m . O n c e o n e h a s r e a d O n i a n s ' d i s c u s s i o n o f s u c h a n d s i m i l a r p h r a s e s , o n e c a n n o l o n g e r d o u b t that t h e y w e r e m e a n t to b e t a k e n liter-
1
R. B. Onians, The Origins of European Thought about the Body, the Mind, the Soul, the World, Time and Fate. New Interpretations of Greek, Roman, and Kindred Evidence, also of some Basic Jewish and Christian Beliefs, Cambridge 1951 (repr. 1988). Op. cit. 13-122. It is well known how great the role was that breathing and air played in early Greek philosophy (Anaximcnes, Diogenes of Apollonia) and also in early Greek medicine. The related qpoovelv, later reserved especially for the intellectual faculties, is still more encompassing in Homer, "covering undifferentiated psychic activity, involving emotion and conation also" (Onians, p. 14). The same applies to ol&a, ibid. 15 f. In early Greek thought, the various psychic and mental functions are not yet differentiated. Examples in Onians, op. cit. 37f. Striking is Hesychius: n\ev[ioviav vooov tf|v eoamxrrv. 2
3
4
168
The Hellenistic
Background
of Acts 9:1
5
ally a n d n o t as m e t a p h o r s or m e r e i m a g e s . A l s o the adjective Tt8:rrvvu.£vog, w h i c h m e a n s 'wise, clever', should be considered to be the participle of the passive perfect o f
JXVEU).
6
W o r d s a n d t h o u g h t s ( w h i c h are not d i s t i n g u i s h e d ) , c o u r a g e a n d
energy, are ' l o c a t e d i n ' t h e (poeveg a n d the 0v\i6c, a n d c o m e o u t o f t h e m as the situation d e m a n d s . N o w , if feelings a n d t h o u g h t s c o m e o u t o f the l u n g s , it also b e c o m e s more understandable h o w and w h y one has developed the notion of i n s p i r a t i o n ( i n - b r e a t h i n g ) . T h e deity b r e a t h e s or b l o w s e m o t i o n s , p o w e r , b u t also p l a n s a n d t h o u g h t s into the l u n g s o f p e o p l e . S e e for e x a m p l e Odyssey w h e r e P e n e l o p e tells a b o u t h e r w i l e : cpdQog uiv uoi &CUU.00V
JTQWTOV
19:138-9
evejtveuaE cpoeaL
/ axr)aau,Evr) u i y a v l a x o v evi u-syaQoiaiv {jcpaiveiv (cf. Iliad
7
1:297). W h e n
in later a u t h o r s t h e s e a r c h a i c f o r m s of t h o u g h t are less c o n s c i o u s or p e r h a p s e v e n n o l o n g e r p l a y a n y r o l e , m a n y e x p r e s s i o n s from this c o n c e p t u a l w o r l d c o n t i n u e to b e u s e d , b u t n o w in a m e t a p h o r i c a l s e n s e . It is in this f r a m e w o r k that o n e h a s t o see a w h o l e series o f e x p r e s s i o n s in G r e e k literature in w h i c h e m o t i o n s , affections a n d o t h e r p s y c h i c functions are c o n n e c t e d w i t h v e r b s for b r e a t h i n g , 8
s n o r t i n g a n d b l o w i n g . H o w often this o c c u r s is d e m o n s t r a t e d b y the f o l l o w i n g s e l e c t i o n , in w h i c h 1 g o b e y o n d i n s t a n c e s w i t h jxvew a n d its c o m p o s i t a in o r d e r to illustrate t h e p h e n o m e n o n m o r e widely. H o m e r calls t h e G r e e k h e r o e s
UKVECI
jxveiovxeg ' A x a i o i (Iliad
3:8; 11:508;
2 4 : 3 6 4 ) a n d s i m i l a r l y u i v e a jtveiovxsg 'A|3avxeg ( 2 : 5 3 6 ) . H e r e b e l o n g s a l s o Iliad 2 1 : 3 9 5 w h e r e it is said o f the fighting A t h e n a that s h e h a s Qagooq drrxov, s n o r t i n g courage. P s . - H e s i o d , Asp is 2 3 - 5 , s a y s a b o u t m e n w h o are g o i n g to battle: x w 6' d u a ieu.evoi jToA.en.oio xe qxuA.6jti&6g xe Boiooxol jtAri^utJTOi, viteg a a x e c o v Jiveiovxeg ... E03X0VX0.
S a p p h o , fragm. 4 7 L o b e l - P a g e (42 B e r g k , 5 0 D i e h l ) : "Egog 6 exiva^e uoi cpoevag, obg dveu.og x d x o g o g 6QT3OIV Eajtixcov.
A e s c h y l u s , Agamemnon
187, d e s c r i b i n g A g a m e m n o n w h o tries to r e c o n c i l e
h i m s e l f w i t h his b a d fortune, eujtaioig xi>xcaca O V U J I V E C O V . Ibid. 2 1 9 , o n A g a m e m n o n w h o sacrifices his d a u g h t e r , cpgevog jivecov &uoae|3fj xQOJtaiav ( h e b l o w s from his l u n g s a g o d l e s s w i n d that h a d v e e r e d r o u n d ) . Ibid. 3 7 4 - 5 , o n t o o b e l l i c o s e 5
On the question o f whether or not there is metaphorical language in Homer see the series of articles by W. J. Verdenius on archaic forms o f thinking in Lampas 2 ff (1969 ff). 6
Onians, op. cit. 56ff. Contra Onians see H. Kleinknecht, TWNTVl
335 n.l (not convinc
ing)7
Onians, op. cit. 50ff, 56. Material is also to be found in Kleinknecht, TWNTW 341 ff., who, however, does not mention Onians even once in his long article on pneuma. Onians writes (52): "This association o f the emotion with the breathing may seem strange to us since w e are in the habit o f abstracting the emotion itself from its bodily expressions." How 'strange' e. g. Jackson - Lake found this becomes apparent from their comments on Acts 9:1 (The Beginnings of Christianity IV, London 1933, 99): "The phrase EUJIVEWV djreilfjc; xai qpovou is regular in that e^nveo) takes with it a genitive cause but unusual as having as its objec tive what must be understood quite figuratively, though such metaphors occur, esp. in poetry, with the simple TCVEW". 8
The Hellenistic troops, "Aqti
JCVEOVXCOV L I E I ^ O V
of Acts 9:1
169
r\ Sixaicog. Ibid. 1206, C a s s a n d r a o n A p o l l o ' s feel
ings t o w a r d s her,
ELIOI JTVECOV
dojtov&ov x'
cpiA.oig nvzovoav.
"AQTI
Background
xdgiv. Ibid. 9
1 2 3 5 - 6 , Cassandra on Clytemnestra,
Choephoroi
3 9 1 - 2 , t h e choir, h o p i n g that
C l y t e m n e s t r a a n d A e g i s t h u s will b e p u n i s h e d , s a y s : jtaQoiGsv 6e jiQcopag &QiLU)g dnxaL xga&iag GuLiog,
EVXOXOV
oTuyog (before t h e b o w o f m y h e a r t a fierce w i n d
b l o w s , bitter h a t r e d ) . Ibid. 9 5 2 , o n t h e g o d d e s D i k e , xoxov. Eumenides Athena:
JTVECO
O^EGQIOV
jtveoua'
EV
ExQQolg
8 4 0 , after t h e c h o i r h a s lost t h e lawsuit, it is v e r y a n g r y at
xoi uivog djtavxd xe xoxov. Supplices
2 6 f., t h e D a n a i d e s ask the
land w h e r e t h e y a r r i v e as b a n i s h e d p e r s o n s to a c c e p t t h e m alSoicp jtvEttLtaxi, w i t h respectful b r e a t h i n g . Septem BuLiog dv&Qeiq cpXEycov EJXVEI, S o p h o c l e s , Electra her mother:
52 f., o f w a r r i o r s b e f o r e battle, oi&riQocpQcov ydo XEOVXCOV
cog
" A Q T ) &E6OQX6XCOV.
610, w h e r e the choir says about Electra raging against
uivog jrvEouaav. Antigone
OQCO
so steadfast in h e r o p p o s i t i o n to C r e o n :
9 2 9 f., t h e c h o i r o n A n t i g o n e w h o is
E X I XCOV
auxcov dvELicov avxox tpux'ns Qutai
ovoav
xr|v6£ y'
£X -
E u r i p i d e s , Andromache
1 8 9 - 9 0 , A n d r o m a c h e on the arrogant m e n w h o have
seized her: ol yaq jxveovxeg Lieyd^a xoijg xQEiaooug Xoyoug juxQcog cpsQouoi xcov ekaooovwv
(mo. Ibid. 3 2 6 f., A n d r o m a c h e r e p r o a c h e s M e n e l a o s that h e too easily
b e l i e v e s t h e evil talk o f his d a u g h t e r : ooxig OuyaxQog dvxijr.ai6og EjivEuaag. Iphigeneia
o n e o f t h e F u r i e s a n d calls h e r KVQ nveovoa
10
x a i c p o v o v . Phoenissai
w a n t s to c a l m d o w n h e r b e l l i g e r e n t son: oxdaov 6E Ibid.
E X X.6YCOV
xooovo'
Taur. 2 8 8 , in o n e o f his a t t a c k s o f m a d n e s s , O r e s t e s s e e s
5ELVOV
454, Iocaste
oLiLia xai Guumj jrvodg.
11
8 7 6 , o n O e d i p u s w h o c u r s e s his son: E X 6' EjivEucf aiixoig dfjdg 6£Lvdg.
Bacchae
6 2 0 , o n P e n t h e u s , w h o r a g e s at D i o n y s u s : Guu.6v
l&Qcoxa
EXJXVECOV,
aooLiaxog axd^cov djto. Ibid. 6 4 0 , D i o n y s u s says a b o u t P e n t h e u s : gq&icog yaq oi'oco, xdv dvxr)Qi6a)v
JTVECOV
zKQr\ \iiya. Rhesus
GULIOV
7 8 5 , o n frightened h o r s e s : ai 6'
avxov
EQQEYXOV E ^
j t v E o u o m xdvExaixi^ov cp6(3cp.
T h e r e is n o d o u b t that A r i s t o p h a n e s w a n t s to m a k e a p a r o d y o f t h e l a n g u a g e o f the t r a g e d i a n s , w h e n he w r i t e s in Ranae 1121 oiixool
XQEXEI
xig 'AkpEidv
JTVECOV
1016 jrvsovxag 5 6 Q D xai JuSyxag,
a n
d
dves
(i. e., s n o r t i n g like a r u n n e r at t h e O l y m p i a n
g a m e s [ O l y m p i a is situated at t h e r i v e r A l p h e i o s ] ) . Pindar, Pythian GoaoEiq
S E JTVECOV
Ode xae&iq
1 0 : 4 4 , o n P e r s e u s w h o w e n t to t h e H y p e r b o r a e a n s LI6A.EV
Aavdag
JTOXE
Jiatg. Ibid.
11:29-30: a w o m a n of
standing cannot conceal her lapses, everyone speaks about them immediately: icr/EL
XE
yag oAftog ov LiEiova cpGovov, 6 6 E xaLit|X.d
JTVECOV
dcpavxov
PQELIEI
(Bowra
t r a n s l a t e s : ' F o r bliss m a k e s e n v y as b i g as itself; a n d h e w h o b r e a t h e s t h e d u s t 9
In Agam. 1309, Cassandra says about the palace where the murder has taken place, cpovov &6n.oi jtvEoucnv alfxaTooxaYfi, but that probably means: the palace smells o f blood. It is not certain if passages like Hercules Furens 862 (xeoauvoij t' olaToog cb&Ivac; JTVECOV) and Iphigeneia Aulensis 69 (QTQV jrvoai (ptooiev 'AcpQo&itTic; cpiAai.) belong in this category. ' oxuoov Ou^oo) jivodg could be compared to the Dutch expression 'stoom afblazen' (or the German 'Dampf ablassen'). But these expressions have a different background. 10
1
170
The Hellenistic
Background
w h i s p e r s , b u t is n o t k n o w n ' ) . Nemean i|>E(pr|v6g dvrjQ dAlox' ak\a
of Acts 9:1
Ode 3 : 4 1 - 2 , o n a p e r s o n o f l o w s t a n d i n g :
Jtveoov.
A n t i p h o n , F r a g m . B 4 9 ( D i e l s - K r a n z ) , o n r e l a t i v e s : i'oa qpQovof)vxag I'aa jtveovxag ( D i e l s : g l e i c h g e s i n n t e , g l e i c h g e s t i m m t e M e n s c h e n ) . X e n o p h o n , Hellenica
7 , 5 , 1 2 : t h e e n e m i e s a r e ol JTI5Q jtveovxeg.
H e r o n d a s , Mimiambe
8:58, in t h e m i d d l e o f a l a c u n a , b u t it is c e r t a i n l y a b o u t
a q u a r r e l , . . . ] xd 6eivd Jtveuaai \a% jcaxe [... T h e o c r i t u s 1 8 : 5 4 - 5 says to a loving c o u p l e : eti&ex' eg aXkakwv oxeovov cpiAoxaxa jtveovxeg x a i Jt60ov. Ibid. 2 2 : 8 2 , a b o u t t w o fighters: cpovov dAA,r|A.oiai Jtveovxeg. Anthologia
Palatina
2 : 2 3 3 : a ringfighter ejtveev frvoQer|g. 2 : 4 5 1 : Vergil is
jtveioov evejting. 5 : 2 5 9 : t h e e y e s o f a girl in l o v e are o n ' s songs are
XOLQITOIV
jtvelovxa \iekr\, jtvelovxa 6'
JIOOOV
jxveiovxa. 7:25 A n a c r e -
CQOOXOOV.
9:159: when a wicked
p e r s o n t h r o w s a s t o n e u p o n t h e skull o f a d e c e a s e d m a n , b u t t h e stone j u m p s b a c k a n d hits t h e t h r o w e r ; this s t o n e is called jtveovxa &ixr|g. D i o n y s i u s o f H a l i c a r n a s s u s , Antiquitates
Romanae
7, 5 1 , 3 : w h e n t h e revolt
ing p e o p l e s e e that t h e y h a v e n o p o w e r a g a i n s t t h e R o m a n s e n a t e , xfjg avGa&eiag f|g jtoA/ug ejtvei xoxe, ucpeTxai vuvi ( C a r y : t h e y n o w a b a t e their a r r o g a n c e w h i c h t h e n b l e w so s t r o n g ) . C h i o n o f H e r a c l e a , Epistula
3 : 3 : O u t r a g e o u s s o l d i e r s w a n t to d e s t r o y t h e city,
b u t a p h i l o s o p h e r c a l m s t h e m d o w n so that t h e y b e c o m e u.n&ev exi exeivou xoi5 d6ixou x a i aQJtaxxoij "Ageog jrveovxag. P h i l o o f A l e x a n d r i a c o n n e c t s jxveo) w i t h t h e adjectives u.eyag a n d A.au.jt.o6g, b o t h in b o n a m a n d in m a l a m p a r t e m . S e e , for e x a m p l e , Vita Mosis
1:55, M o s e s
rejects w e a l t h s i n c e it h a s s u c h an influence u p o n p e o p l e , x(b jtac/ dvQodmoic; u i y a jtveovxi jrloijxa). Ibid. 2 : 2 4 0 on h a u g h t y p e o p l e : ol \ieya jtveovxeg. De
mutatione
nominum
l:107,on
paideia,
2 1 5 jtveiioavxeg \ieya, said o f successful p e o p l e . De somniis w h i c h is s e v e r e a g a i n s t its a d v e r s a r i e s : \izyaka
jtvexjoaaa. De
Josepho
2 1 : R u b e n s a y s to his b r o t h e r s w h o h a v e sold J o s e p h : xQaxi>xaxoi yag (eaxe) elg O Q Y T I V x a i djtaQaixr)xoi x a i Jtvel A.aujtg6g exi 6 ev exdaxw Oufiog. De
congressu
108, in its original state t h e soul A.aujtQov ejtvei. Quod deus sit immutabilis
174:
E g y p t ' s o r i g i n a l p o w e r a n d g l o r y is g o n e , e'jtveuoe Jioxe Aaujtgov x a i em u,r)xiaxov Aiyunxog, aKK cog vecpog aiixfjg f| ueydAr) JtaQfjABev eimQayla. P s e u d o - C a l l i s t h e n e s , Historia
Alexandra
Magni
12
A 4 6 (ed. W. K r o l l , 1926,
p. 5 9 ) , 6 6e Maxe&cov o u ^ a JtQog aiixov ^r|XT3vag x a i xotig 666vxag xoig 66otlai auvxQi^cov O Q Y T I V dvajtvecov xotov eiJte xov H e l i o d o r u s , Aethiopica
UA36OV.
1,2,1, o n a girl w h o b e h a v e s c o u r a g e o u s l y in v e r y
difficult c i r c u m s t a n c e s : xoig u.ev jiaQoDot jteQiaXyoHoa, qpQovf)[j,axog 6e exi jiveouaa.
12
Josephus does not yield anything of importance for our purpose.
tvyzvovc,
The Hellenistic
A r i s t a e n e t u s , Epistula
171
of Acts 9:1
1:5, o n a h u s b a n d w h o is a n g r y at his w i f e b e c a u s e h e
s u s p e c t s h e r o f adultery- xEXQaycbg N o n n u s , Dionysiaca
Background
SLUX
x a i jtvecov B U L I O D .
1 3
4 8 , 6 5 0 : after t h e w e d d i n g n i g h t a m a n is exi JTVECOV
iJLievaicov.
In o r d e r to d e m o n s t r a t e that this p h e n o m e n o n is n o t limited to G r e e k literature, I m e n t i o n briefly a few i n s t a n c e s from Latin a u t h o r s . C i c e r o , In Catilinam
2:1 s c e l u s i n h e l a n t e m (sc. C a t i l i n a m ) . Ad
Herennium
4 , 5 5 , 6 8 a n h e l a n s ex infimo p e c t o r e c r u d e l i t a t e m . L u c r e t i u s , De rerum natura
5:392 spirantes bellum.
P r o p e r t i u s 1,3,7 m o l l e m s p i r a r e q u i e t e m . H o r a t i u s , Carmen Vergil, Aeneid
4,13,19 quae spirabat amores.
7:510 spirans i m m a n e .
1 4
A s is w e l l k n o w n , in t h e O l d T e s t a m e n t , t o o , s e v e r a l w o r d s w h i c h a r e u s e d to i n d i c a t e t h e p s y c h e a n d p s y c h i c a l functions, o r i g i n a l l y m e a n t b r e a t h ( i n g ) o r snorting. Nhr: S o n g o f S o n g s 1:6 bene
'immi niharu
bi = the s o n s o f m y m o t h e r w e r e
a n g r y (orig. s n o r t e d ) at m e . Pwh:
E z e k i e l 2 1 : 3 6 ( 3 1 ) be 'esh 'evrati
'aphiah
w i t h t h e fire o f m y w r a t h . P s a l m 2 7 : 1 2 yepheah
'alayikh hamas
= I blow against you = h e b r e a t h e s o u t (or:
s n o r t s ) v i o l e n c e , a s t r i k i n g i n s t a n c e s i n c e h e r e t h e v e r b , like t h e G r e e k an o b j e c t (cf. P r o v e r b s \ 2\\1 yaphiah Nephesh
JTVECO,
has
'emunah).
is o r i g i n a l l y t h e throat, t h e n a l s o b r e a t h ; it d e v e l o p s , like Guuog,
m e a n i n g s w h i c h i n d i c a t e p s y c h i c a l f u n c t i o n s : l o n g i n g , feeling, e m o t i o n s (as does Aramaic Ruah
5
naphsha)}
is t h e w i n d , later a l s o t h e s p i r i t ;
16
t h u s also 'aph, o r i g i n a l l y v e h e m e n t
b r e a t h i n g or s n o r t i n g ( h e n c e t h e m e a n i n g ' n o s e ' ) , later a l s o anger, w r a t h . S e e the a c c u m u l a t i o n o f t h e s e t e r m s in P s a l m 18:16 ( = 2 S a m . 2 2 : 1 6 ) : minishmat appekha
ruah
in P s a l m 18:16 is r e n d e r e d in t h e L X X b y djto ELiJtvsijoEcog jtveijLiaTog
oeyfjg GOV. T h e s a m e e x p r e s s i o n in 2 S a m . 2 2 : 1 6 is r e n d e r e d b y djto jrvofjg jtvEiiLtaxog BuLioij
13
avxov.
H o w much the original concept behind this usage has disappeared in the course o f time is well demonstrated by a passage in Themistius, Oratio 1:7a (on the philanthropia o f the prince): xai Toivuv el Paodecoc; tyvxi] (XT) xufxaivei, \JLT]&E 0v\iov xai ooyfig JivEiifxata ayQia xuxq xe ai)TT)v xai xaQarcei yqfilcog o^iyfis dQxilS Quu^ofxeva, TOT' e^eaxiv ov (iovov e^JioQoig xai vaijxaig aXka xai jtaaiv dvSQOJJtoig TOV |3iov 6Laji^.Hlv dacpaXojc;. T. E. Page ad locum: spirans is an imitation of JTVECOV which is constantly used with acc. or neut. adj. o f excited feeling. See L. Koehler - W. Baumgartner, Lexicon in Veteris Testamenti Libros, Leiden 1953, 627-8 See F. Baumgartel in TWNTW 357ff. 14
15
1 6
The Hellenistic
172
Background
of Acts 9:1
A l t h o u g h i n d e e d " t h e e m o t i o n o f a n g e r w a s in S e m i t i c p h y s i o l o g y c o n n e c t e d with b r e a t h , "
17
it s h o u l d n o t b e too easily a s s u m e d that L u k e h a s d e r i v e d his
e x p r e s s i o n in A c t s 9:1 from the O l d T e s t a m e n t , i. e. t h e L X X , for t h e lack o f c l o s e v e r b a l p a r a l l e l s m a k e s that v e r y i m p r o b a b l e .
18
Neither are there m a n y parallels
from o t h e r J e w i s h G r e e k literature, a l t h o u g h w e d o find o n e striking i n s t a n c e in Testamentum biaonagagai
Salomonis
D 4:1 eu.dxovxo aXkr\koic, 0uu.oi) jtveovxeg
akhqkovc,
|3ouA.6[Aevoi. B u t , as h a s n o w b e e n s h o w n , t h e r e is o v e r w h e l m i n g l y
rich c o m p a r a t i v e m a t e r i a l in p a g a n G r e e k literature. W e a l s o n e e d n o t look for p a r a l l e l s in ' n o n - l i t e r a r y s o u r c e s ' . M o u l t o n a n d Milligan
1 9
m e n t i o n o n l y o n e i n s t a n c e w h i c h is n o t a real parallel: G. K a i b e l ,
Epigrammata
Graeca,
B e r l i n 1 8 7 8 , n o . 5 6 2 , 9 - 1 0 ( 2 n d / 3 r d cent. C E ) , eg 6' oaov
evjtveiei (3iox6v x' ejti r\\ia.Q epiwei / &i>au.oQog avxA/naei JtevBog de^ifhov.
20
Moreover,
t h e w h o l e series o f p a r a l l e l s from G r e e k literature q u o t e d a b o v e d o e s n o t at all g i v e t h e i m p r e s s i o n that o n e h a s to d o h e r e w i t h an e x p r e s s i o n from c o l l o q u i a l s p e e c h , b u t r a t h e r w i t h o n e from the h i g h e r literary l a n g u a g e . T h e r e f o r e w e h a v e to c o n c l u d e that in A c t s 9:1 L u k e h a s t a k e n o v e r an e x p r e s s i o n from G r e e k literary tradition. T h i s a g a i n c o n f i r m s t h e s u s p i c i o n o f s e v e r a l s c h o l a r s that L u k e m u s t h a v e h a d a c e r t a i n a c q u a i n t a n c e w i t h G r e e k literature. If h e w e r e a G r e e k p h y s i c i a n (as h a s often b e e n c o n c l u d e d from C o l . 4:11 a n d P h i l e m o n 2 4 , w r o n g l y s o ) , that w o u l d n o t b e s u r p r i s i n g . B u t it is i m p o s s i b l e to b e m o r e p r e c i s e . S o t h e d e b a t e o v e r w h e t h e r o r n o t L u k e m a y h a v e k n o w n E u r i p i d e s , e s p . his Bacchae,
should
n o t b e r e k i n d l e d h e r e ( t h o s e interested c a n refer to t h e c o n t r i b u t i o n s b y N e s t l e , V o g e l i , a n d H a c k e t t , n o n e o f w h i c h , c u r i o u s l y e n o u g h , d r a w s A c t s 9:1 into this discussion).
21
W e c a n n o t g o further t h a n s t a t i n g that L u k e h e r e u s e s an e x p r e s
sion that c a n b e said w i t h c e r t a i n t y to s t e m from G r e e k literary tradition. A s w e h a v e s e e n , w h e n t h e v e r b jtveiv is f o l l o w e d b y a n o u n i n d i c a t i n g an e m o tion ( e . g. 0uu.6g, xoxog), this n o u n is a l w a y s p u t in t h e a c c u s a t i v e in t e x t s d a t i n g b e f o r e t h e h e l l e n i s t i c p e r i o d , b u t in a n d after that p e r i o d often in t h e g e n i t i v e
17
K. Lake and H.J. Cadbury, The Beginnings of Christianity, vol. 4, London 1933, 99. E. Preuschen no doubt is wrong in stating that Luke's source for this expression was LXX Ps. 17 (18): 16 (quoted above in the text); see his Die Apostelgeschichte (HNT), Tubingen 1912, 5 4 - 5 . The only passage in the LXX which is comparable to Acts 9:1, as far as I know, is 2 Maccabees 9:7 where Antiochus Epiphanes is said to have been JTUQ e^jtvEoov xoig Bu^otg em xovc, 'lovbahovq. The Vocabulary of the Greek Testament Illustratedfrom the Papyri and Other Non-Liter ary Sources, London 1 9 3 0 , 2 0 7 . They could have better referred to no. 8 1 1 , 7 - 8 where the expression X&QIV ... jrveoig occurs. W. Nestle in Philologus 59 (1900) 4 6 - 5 7 ; A. Vogeli in Theologische Zeitschrift 9 (1953) 415^138; J. Hackett in Irish Theological Quarterly 23 (1956) 2 1 8 - 2 2 7 and 3 5 0 - 3 6 6 . 18
19
2 0
21
The Hellenistic
Background
c a s e . A c t s 9:1 b e l o n g s to this s e c o n d g r o u p .
173
of Acts 9:1 2 2
O n the function o f this g e n i t i v e
several o p i n i o n s are p o s s i b l e . 1. B l a s s - D e b r u n n e r § 174 t a k e the e x p r e s s i o n in A c t s 9:1 to b e c o n s t r u c t e d in a n a l o g y to 6t;£iv, (e|j,)jTvav xivog, ' t o smell o f s o m e t h i n g ' . M a n y s c h o l a r s s h a r e this o p i n i o n , e. g. A . T. R o b e r t s o n in his Grammar in the Light of Historical
Research,
d e l l - S c o t t - J o n e s , s.v. eujtveco I 3 .
of the Greek New
Testament
N e w York 1914, 5 0 7 , a n d the lexicon o f L i d 2 3
H o w t h e n s h o u l d this g e n i t i v e b e c o n s i d e r e d
from a g r a m m a t i c a l p o i n t o f v i e w ? K i i h n e r - G e r t h ' s Griechische
Grammatik
(I
3 5 6 ) calls the g e n i t i v e after v e r b s m e a n i n g ' t o s m e l l o f p a r t i t i v e (cf. a l s o W. W. G o o d w i n ' s Greek
Grammar
§ 1102). B u t p e r h a p s o n e s h o u l d prefer H . H.
W e n d t ' s s u g g e s t i o n (in his c o m m e n t a r y o n A c t s ad loc. p . 162) that in this c a s e the g e n i t i v e indicates that w h i c h the action indicated b y the v e r b t a k e s as its p o i n t o f d e p a r t u r e . T h e n t h e g e n i t i v e h a s an a b l a t i v e f u n c t i o n . 2. C . F. D . M o u l e , Idiom
Book
of New
Testament
24
Greek,
Cambridge 1953,
3 6 - 7 , t a k e s t h e g e n i t i v e in A c t s 9:1 to b e a partitive g e n i t i v e w h i c h is u s e d w i t h " v e r b s c o n n e c t e d w i t h a p o r t i o n or s h a r e " , as is a l s o the c a s e w i t h e. g. ajxxo^ai, |j,vr|uxyv£ij(jo, ayxiyp\x,o.v, hnixvyyavu). New
Testament
T h u s also the Greek-English
Lexicon
of the
b y G r i m m - T h a y e r ( E d i n b u r g h 1 9 0 1 ) , s.v., w h i c h t r a n s l a t e s
' i n h a l e ' a n d e x p l a i n s : " T h r e a t e n i n g a n d s l a u g h t e r w e r e s o to s p e a k t h e e l e m e n t s from w h i c h h e d r e w his b r e a t h " (thus a l s o J. R. L u m b y , The Acts of the
Apostles,
C a m b r i d g e 1904, 189). T h i s e x p l a n a t i o n w o u l d i m p l y that Saul did not b r e a t h all o f the t h r e a t e n i n g a n d m u r d e r that w a s in h i m b u t o n l y a p a r t o f it (cf. e. g. a l s o Apoc. 2:17
TOO
vixcovxi 6cbato cruxa) xov [i&vva xov
XEXQVH\IEVOV).
3. M o r e attractive, it w o u l d s e e m to m e , is the o p i n i o n that in A c t s 9:1 t h e r e is to b e found a partitive g e n i t i v e , b u t o n e that is to b e u n d e r s t o o d in a n a l o g y to t h e g e n i t i v e after v e r b s m e a n i n g ' t o fill, to b e full', etc. G. B . W i n e r , Grammatik neutestamentlichen
Sprachidioms
des
( L e i p z i g 1867) § 3 0 , 9 c , l o o k s for a s o l u t i o n in
this direction. A l s o E. S c h w e i z e r , in TWNT
V I 4 5 0 , t a k e s ejAJTVEw w i t h g e n i t i v e
to h a v e the m e a n i n g o f ' t o b e filled w i t h ' . T h e i n t e r e s t i n g t h i n g a b o u t this i n t e r p r e t a t i o n is that w e h a v e from a n t i q u i t y itself t e s t i m o n i e s to the effect that o n e h a s u n d e r s t o o d t h e g e n i t i v e in A c t s 9:1
2 2
Some Katharevousa translations o f the N T into 'modern' Greek turn it again into a clas sical construction: jrvecov e u dnedfiv xai epovov. The prefix in £\XKVEEIV should be connected with dg xovq \iaQr\Tac,, meaning: blowing loose on them. LSJ s.v. II 3 lists several of the passages with genitive mentioned by us under the meaning 'to smell of.' Wendt's reference to L X X Joshua 10:40 JIOV e^jivsov t,u>f\c, is also found in several later commentaries, but it is very questionable whether this is really a parallel. Its meaning is clear: every living being (MT: kol ha-neshamah), but the L X X always translates that by nav e(iJtveov. R. Helbing, Die Kasussyntax der Verba bei den Septuaginta, Gottingen 1928, 9 1 - 2 , doubts therefore whether it belongs in the text (with reference to Field's notes on the Hexapla). Preuschen ad locum ( 5 4 - 5 ) remarks that Joshua 10:40 is not comparable since it uses s.[mveov as a substantive. 2 3
2 4
174
The Hellenistic
Background
of Acts 9:1
in this s e n s e . A s c h o l i o n to H o m e r , Iliad 2 : 5 3 6 ( q u o t e d a b o v e ) , r e m a r k s : Qv\iov x a i ovvduecog jtveovxeg, xouxeaxi yeuovxeg.
25
F u r t h e r m o r e , in H e s y c h i u s w e find
the t e r s e n o t e : eu.jt.ver jtejtA.riQCDu.evog (ed. K. L a t t e II 8 1 ) . A n d in o r d e r to p r o v e that o n e h a s u n d e r s t o o d a l s o A c t s 9:1 in this s e n s e , o n e c a n refer to the P e s h i t t a a n d the S a h i d i c a n d B o h a r i c v e r s i o n s o f the N e w T e s t a m e n t ; all t h r e e v e r s i o n s t r a n s l a t e o u r v e r s e b y : " h e w a s full o f t h r e a t e n i n g a n d m u r d e r . " S i n c e all t h r e e v e r s i o n s o r i g i n a t e d i n d e p e n d e n t l y from o n e another, o n e c a n n o t d e n y t h e m a certain i n t e r p r e t a t i v e v a l u e , t h e m o r e s o w h e n t h e y are v i e w e d in c o m b i n a t i o n w i t h the H o m e r s c h o l i o n a n d the H e s y c h i u s n o t e . T h i s e x p l a n a t i o n , that (eu.)jtveiv w i t h g e n i t i v e w a s c o n c e i v e d as parallel to v e r b s for ' b e i n g full o f w i t h g e n i t i v e , c a n a l s o b e a p p l i e d to o t h e r p a s s a g e s ( q u o t e d a b o v e ) , w h e r e jtvetv is u s e d w i t h t h e g e n i t i v e . S o this e x p l a n a t i o n s e e m s to h a v e m u c h in its favour. 4 . A n o t h e r theoretical possibility is to e x p l a i n the g e n i t i v e as b e i n g o n e of a i m ing or s t r i v i n g as is u s u a l after v e r b s like umu,dv, ooeyeaBai, (ecp)teaOai, oQu.aaBai, etc. B u t then (eu)jtveiv s h o u l d h a v e an e l e m e n t o f striving or pursuit in it, w h i c h it d o e s not. M o r e o v e r , s u c h an e x p l a n a t i o n w o u l d fit o n l y a few o f o u r i n s t a n c e s . 5. M o r e is to b e said for t h e e x p l a n a t i o n that w e h a v e h e r e a g e n i t i v e w h i c h d e s i g n a t e s " d e n A u s g a n g s p u n k t e i n e r H a n d l u n g bei Verben d e r G e m u t s b e w e gung, des Z o r n e s " .
2 6
T h i s ' g e n i t i v e - a b l a t i v e ' o c c u r s after v e r b s like xoAoiiaGai,
XtoeaGai, u.r|vieiv, GuuovaGai, xoxelv, etc. A c c o r d i n g l y , it s h o u l d b e p o s s i b l e to t a k e (eu.)jtv£Lv to m e a n ' r a g i n g , b e i n g w r a t h f u l ' . T h e a b o v e - m e n t i o n e d i n s t a n c e s from P s - H e s i o d , Aspis 2 3 - 4 , Pindar, Pyth.
10:44, a n d E u r i p i d e s , Andromache
326-7,
p r o v e that that is p o s s i b l e i n d e e d . M o r e o v e r , w e h a v e a v a l u a b l e n o t e in P h o t i u s : jtveiiaag- acpoSgtog ooyiaQzio, (ed. R. P o r s o n II 4 3 5 ) . H o w e v e r , it s h o u l d b e h e l d a g a i n s t this e x p l a n a t i o n that in all c a s e s o f this a b l a t i v e - g e n i t i v e it d e s i g n a t e s t h e e x t e r i o r m o t i v e for the e m o t i o n d e s c r i b e d , e . g . , S o p h o c l e s , Antigone
1177
jtaxoi u/nviaag cpovou = b e i n g wrathful a g a i n s t her father b e c a u s e o f t h e m u r d e r c o m m i t t e d b y h i m . In his Syntaxe
grecque,
H u m b e r t t h e r e f o r e states explicitly
that it is o n l y t h e " c a u s e e x t e r i e u r e " that c a n b e d e s i g n a t e d b y this g e n i t i v e .
27
T h i s o b j e c t i o n is a l s o valid a g a i n s t D i i r i n g ' s a t t e m p t to e x p l a i n t h e g e n i t i v e in "Aoeog Jtveovxag in C h i o 3:3 ( s e e a b o v e ) as c a u s a t i v e .
2 5
28
See H. Ebeling, Lexicon Homericum, Leipzig 1885, II 192. Kiihner-Gerth, Grammatik I 388b. Schwyzer-Debrunner, Grammatik II 133. Blass-Debrunner § 176 state that this ablative-genitive is no longer used in Koine Greek, but that is not an objection against this explanation. J. Humbert, Syntaxe grecque, Paris 1960, 280. Cf. also the instances mentioned in the grammars in the previous note. I. During, Chion of Heraclea. A Novel in Letters, Goteborg 1951, 85: "dojiaxxo-u "Aoeog jtveovxag, a popular flourish, inspired by well-known expressions like nivea nveiovxeg, "Aon jxveovx(Dv (Agam. 3 7 5 , parodied Equit. 4 3 7 ) but here with genitive (ablative), which sometimes implies the sense 'smelling o f , as in Anth. Pal. XI, 2 4 0 iiveiv xodyou, often however is used (as partitive) in the same sense as the causative, Anth. Pal. IX, 159 jtveovxa 6i.xng, II, 415 jtveioov evemng BeoyiAtaog. 2 6
2 7
2 8
The Hellenistic
Background
of Acts 9:1
175
A s o n e can see, m o s t o f t h e a t t e m p t s at e x p l a n a t i o n either opt for the parti tive (in v a r i o u s forms, s e e n o s . 1-3) or for the ablative solution. P e r h a p s it is i m p o s s i b l e to reject c o m p l e t e l y a n y o f t h e s e p r o p o s a l s ( e x c e p t the fourth). B u t it w o u l d s e e m to m e that m o s t is to b e said for t h e third alternative s k e t c h e d a b o v e , n a m e l y to u n d e r s t a n d eimvetv with g e n i t i v e as a n a l o g o u s to v e r b s d e n o t i n g ' t o b e full' with (partitive) g e n i t i v e .
2 9
29
I express my gratitude to Professors W. J. Verdenius and W. F. Bakker for several valu able hints.
"Only then will all Israel be saved" A Short Note on the Meaning of xai omojq in Romans 11:26
T h e p r o b l e m o f the m e a n i n g a n d translation o f xai oikcog in R o m 1 1 : 2 6 h a s b e e n a m a t t e r o f d e b a t e e v e r since the b e g i n n i n g o f m o d e r n s c h o l a r s h i p . T h e w e l l - k n o w n q u e s t i o n is w h e t h e r this e x p r e s s i o n s h o u l d b e t a k e n in a m o d a l s e n s e ( ' a n d so [or ' t h u s ' ] all Israel will b e s a v e d ' ) , w h i c h is the m o s t c u r r e n t translation, or in a t e m p o r a l s e n s e ( ' a n d then [or ' o n l y t h e n ' or ' t h e r e a f t e r ' ] all Israel will b e s a v e d ' ) , w h i c h is a m u c h less c o m m o n interpretation b u t o n e that is n e v e r t h e l e s s d e f e n d e d b y a handful o f c o m m e n t a t o r s a n d translators. In this short c o n t r i b u t i o n to the d e b a t e I h o p e to p r o v e that t h e t e m p o r a l s e n s e is m o r e w i d e s p r e a d t h a n is c o m m o n l y a s s u m e d a n d therefore a m u c h m o r e s e r i o u s al t e r n a t i v e to the m o d a l m e a n i n g than m o s t t r a n s l a t i o n s a n d c o m m e n t a r i e s w o u l d have us believe.
1
It is quite u n d e r s t a n d a b l e that m o s t translators a n d c o m m e n t a t o r s t a k e oikcog in the m o d a l s e n s e since it is the m o s t c u r r e n t a n d usual m e a n i n g o f the w o r d ; t h e t e m p o r a l s e n s e is less u s u a l , or at least so m u c h less frequent that several d i c t i o n a r i e s d o n o t e v e n m e n t i o n it. F o r i n s t a n c e , B a u e r ' s Worterbuch
zum Neuen
Testament
w o r d a n d n e i t h e r d o L o u w a n d N i d a in their Greek-English Testament
According
to Semantic
m e a n i n g in their Greek-English
Griechisch-deutsches
d o e s not m e n t i o n this s e m a n t i c a s p e c t o f t h e Domains.
Lexicon,
Lexicon
of the
New
L i d d e l l & Scott d o register this
b u t in s u c h a veiled w a y that it is v e r y
h a r d to n o t i c e , s i n c e s.v. oikcog 1 7 they o n l y say that oiktog is frequently u s e d in an a p o d o s i s after a p r o t a s i s , w i t h o u t i n d i c a t i n g that in several o f t h e i n s t a n c e s listed b y t h e m the m e a n i n g o f t h e w o r d is ' ( o n l y ) t h e n ' ( m o r e o v e r t h e y deal o n l y w i t h c a s e s from classical G r e e k ) . S o it m a k e s s e n s e to p r e s e n t a selected n u m b e r o f i n s t a n c e s w h i c h clearly indicate that oikoog can i n d e e d h a v e this m e a n i n g . T h a t this is n o t superfluous is clear if o n e t a k e s a l o o k into m o d e r n c o m m e n taries. T h e r e is, for i n s t a n c e , the r e m a r k in an o t h e r w i s e e x c e l l e n t c o m m e n t a r y on R o m a n s , t h e r e c e n t o n e b y J o s e p h F i t z m y e r , w h o s i m p l y states that " a t e m p o -
1
The Jerusalem Bible is one of the very few translations that render: "And then after this the rest of Israel will be saved as well." The Revised English Biblehas: "Once that has happened the whole of Israel will be saved." Cf. also Das Neue Testament, iibersetzt und kommentiert von U. Wilckens, Hamburg 1970, 542: "Dann wird auch ganz Israel gerettet werden."
A Short Note on the Meaning of xai ovrwq in Romans
ral m e a n i n g o f houtos
177
11:26
2
is n o t o t h e r w i s e found in G r e e k . " D u n n is n o t sure a b o u t
the m a t t e r a n d s u g g e s t s that " s o m e t e m p o r a l w e i g h t c a n n o t b e e x c l u d e d from x a i 3
ouxcog (...)> b u t t h e b a s i c s e n s e o f oijtcog is ' t h u s , in this m a n n e r , ' " w i t h o u t g i v ing a r g u m e n t s for his n o n - e x c l u s i o n o f ' t e m p o r a l w e i g h t . ' O t h e r s s i m p l y d e n y the p o s s i b i l i t y that oikcog c o u l d h a v e a t e m p o r a l s e n s e ( e . g . , U. L u z a n d C . E . B . Cranfield)
4
or p o s i t that it d o e s h a v e that s e n s e h e r e , s o m e t i m e s w i t h o u t a n y
r e f e r e n c e s (e. g. T h . Z a h n , O . M i c h e l , C.K. B a r r e t t ) , s o m e t i m e s w i t h r e f e r e n c e to p a s s a g e s s u c h as A c t s 17:33 a n d 20:11 (e. g. E . K a s e m a n n ) . It s h o u l d b e p o i n t e d o u t that t h e r e a r e s o m e p u b l i c a t i o n s b y classical p h i lologists o n t h e t e m p o r a l m e a n i n g o f ( x a i ) oi)xio(g) w h i c h h a v e g o n e u n n o t i c e d b y N T s c h o l a r s . A s early as 1934 K u r t L a t t e briefly d i s c u s s e d this u s a g e a n d d e m o n s t r a t e d that it c a m e to t h e fore m o r e s t r o n g l y in p o s t - c l a s s i c a l G r e e k ,
5
6
a n d in 1961 E . S k a r d m a d e s o m e a d d i t i o n s to L a t t e ' s d o s s i e r . M o r e r e c e n t l y t h e D u t c h classical p h i l o l o g i s t D . H o l w e r d a p o i n t e d o u t t h e i m p o r t a n c e o f t h e 7
o b s e r v a t i o n s b y t h e s e t w o s c h o l a r s for t h e interpretation o f R o m a n s 1 1 : 2 6 . 1 will d i s c u s s s o m e o f their findings a n d a l s o a d d s o m e i m p o r t a n t n e w p a s s a g e s to t h e o n e s t h e y found. First s o m e i n s t a n c e s from p a g a n G r e e k a u t h o r s will b e briefly p r e s e n t e d , thereafter s o m e from J e w i s h a n d C h r i s t i a n w r i t i n g s . T h u c y d i d e s , Hist.
3.96.2 tells u s that in t h e w a r a g a i n s t the A e t o l i a n s , t h e
c o m m a n d e r o f t h e A t h e n i a n a r m y first w a n t e d to s u b d u e t h e s u r r o u n d i n g a r e a s a n d only then to attack t h e O p h i o n i a n s t h e m s e l v e s ( i d aXka xaxaoxQ£i|)du,evog o i k t o g jbtl 'Ocpioveag ... axQaxEuaai); cf. a l s o Hist.
1.37.1. In his Charact.
18,
T h e o p h r a s t u s d e s c r i b e s ' t h e distrustful m a n . ' B e f o r e g o i n g to s l e e p , this m a n a s k s his w i f e w h e t h e r the h o u s e - d o o r h a s b e e n b o l t e d a n d t h e c u p b o a r d sealed etc. a n d , e v e n w h e n s h e h a s said y e s , g e t s o u t of his b e d in o r d e r to c h e c k e v e r y t h i n g a g a i n , x a i olkco u.6)ag vxvov
xvy%aveiv,
' a n d only then h e g o e s t o s l e e p ,
t h o u g h w i t h difficulty.' H e r e it m a y p e r h a p s b e p o s s i b l e to t r a n s l a t e ' e v e n so h e will h a r d l y g o to s l e e p , ' b u t t h e n e x t i n s t a n c e d o e s n o t l e a v e u s t h i s e s c a p e . P l a t o w r i t e s in Prot.
3 1 4 c that S o c r a t e s a n d H i p p o c r a t e s , h a v i n g arrived at
P r o t a g o r a s ' h o u s e , d e c i d e first to finish their d i s c u s s i o n a n d only
then to g o
into t h e h o u s e ( d A l d &iajteQavduevoi oikoog eaioi^iev). Cf. his Gorg. 4 5 7 d , w h e r e 2
Romans ( A B 33), N e w York 1993, 622. Romans_(vVBC 38B), Dallas 1988, 6 8 1 . Cf. also D. Sanger, Die Verkundigung des Gekreuzigten und Israel. Studien zum Verhdltnis von Kirche und Israel bei Paulus und im friihen Christentum, Tubingen 1994, 166: "Zunachst ist negativ festzustellen, daB xai ovxwq keine primar temporale Bedeutung ('und dann' = xai TOTE) in sich tragi." Review o f P. Maas, Epidaurische Hymnen (1933) in Gottingische Gelehrte Anzeigen 196 (1934) 4 0 5 - 4 1 3 , at 411. 'Zum temporalen Gebrauch von oiitcog,' Symbolae Osloenses 37 (1961) 1 5 1 - 1 5 2 . Skard pays special attention to the frequent occurrence o f the temporal use o f oiitcos in the Homilies of Asterius. D. Holwerda, 'Heel Israel behouden,' in his De Schrift opent een vergezicht, Kampen 1998, 1 6 0 - 1 9 3 . 3
4
5
6
7
178
A Short Note on the Meaning of xai ovrwg in Romans
11:26
S o c r a t e s says that p e o p l e w h o start a d e b a t e often h a v e p r o b l e m s in defining their subject; t h e y first t e a c h a n d instruct e a c h o t h e r a b o u t w h a t t h e y k n o w a n d then (oikcog) b r i n g t h e m e e t i n g to a close (and cf. also Resp.
II 3 6 8 d exeiva jtgcoxov
dvayvovxeg oikcog ejuaxojteiv i d etaxxxco). X e n o p h o n , Anab.
7.1.4, s a y s that at a
certain m o m e n t h e w a n t e d to t a k e leave o f his a r m y b u t that A n a x i b i u s u r g e d h i m first to c r o s s t h e B o s p o r u s w i t h t h e a r m y a n d only then to t a k e l e a v e (ejteixa oikcog djtaAMxEaGai)." In his Cyrop. 2 . 1 . 1 , X e n o p h o n w r i t e s a b o u t t h e P e r s i a n a r m y : " W h e n an e a g l e a p p e a r e d on their right a n d flew o n a h e a d o f t h e m , they p r a y e d to the g o d s a n d h e r o e s w h o w a t c h o v e r the land o f P e r s i a to c o n d u c t t h e m o n w a r d s w i t h g r a c e a n d favour, a n d t h e n (oikco) p r o c e e d e d to c r o s s t h e frontier." In his Poet.
1 4 5 5 M A r i s t o t l e states that a p o e t s h o u l d first simplify his story a n d
r e d u c e it to a u n i v e r s a l form " a n d o n l y t h e n d e v e l o p t h e s e q u e n c e o f e p i s o d e s " (eiB' oikcog EJteiao&ioiiv x a i jxaQaxeiveiv). O n e m i g h t a r g u e that h e r e a n d in s o m e o t h e r i n s t a n c e s the idea o f ' o n l y t h e n / t h e r e a f t e r ' is e x p r e s s e d b y eixa or ejteixa, b u t that is n o t correct: ma/ejteixa d o e s e x p r e s s that w h a t follows is t h e n e x t s t e p , but it is o n l y oikcog that e x p r e s s e s the n e c e s s i t y o f 'first things first' a n d ' o n l y then' what follows.
8
F r o m the post-classical period many examples could be quoted, but two m a y suffice. In t h e Tabula Cebetis
1 9 . 1 , the p r o t a g o n i s t a s k s H e r a c l e s w h y (the
personified) P a i d e i a is s t a n d i n g o u t s i d e the e n c l o s u r e o f t h e d w e l l i n g p l a c e o f the h a p p y , w h e r e u p o n h e a n s w e r s that this h a p p e n s " s o that s h e c a n heal t h e o n e s a r r i v i n g a n d g i v e t h e m purifying p o w e r to drink. F o r o n l y t h e n , after t h e y h a v e b e e n purified, d o e s she lead t h e m to t h e v i r t u e s " (eiB' oxav xaBaQBooaiv, 9
oikcog eiadyei xoikoug jtQog xdg dgexag). Finally a n i n s t a n c e from
Epictetus
2 . 1 5 . 8 : " D o y o u n o t w i s h to m a k e y o u r b e g i n n i n g a n d y o u r f o u n d a t i o n firm, that is, to c o n s i d e r w h e t h e r y o u r d e c i s i o n is s o u n d or u n s o u n d , a n d o n l y then (xai oikcog) p r o c e e d to rear t h e r e o n the structure o f y o u r d e t e r m i n a t i o n a n d y o u r firm r e s o l v e ? " M o r e i n s t a n c e s from E p i c t e t u s c o u l d b e q u o t e d .
10
In all t h e s e c a s e s
the e m p h a s i s is o n the n e c e s s i t y o f a certain order: first o t h e r t h i n g s h a v e to b e finished
a n d o n l y then c a n the m a i n t h i n g b e d o n e .
1 1
N o w I will g i v e s o m e e x a m p l e s to d e m o n s t r a t e that this u s a g e w a s not u n k n o w n a m o n g a u t h o r s o f J u d a e o - G r e e k literature. In the Test, of Abraham
(rec.
A ) 7.11 w e find t h e a r c h a n g e l M i c h a e l s a y i n g to A b r a h a m that "I h a v e b e e n sent to y o u in o r d e r to tell y o u not to forget d e a t h ; but thereafter (eiB' oikcog) I will
8
Another fine instance is Polybius 5.9.9. The translation by J.T. Fitzgerald and L.M. White {The Tabula of Cebes [Chico 1983] 91) is not correct here. In his Teubner edition of 1916 H. Schenkl lists several instances of this usage from Epictetus in his Index A-, v., e.g., 3 . 2 3 . 1 - 2 : "Good athletes first decide what kind of athletes they want to be, only then (el0' oikcog) they act accordingly." More examples in R. Kiihner & B. Gerth, Ausfuhrliche Grammatik der griechischen Sprache II 2, Darmstadt 1966 (= Leipzig 1904), 83. 9
1 0
11
A Short Note on the Meaning of xai oihwq in Romans
return to h i m as h e c o m m a n d e d m e . " in the Vitae prophetarum:
1 2
179
11:26
W e s e e it also in t h e f o l l o w i n g p a s s a g e
In the Life of Jeremiah
6 w e read that d u r i n g his stay
in E g y p t , J e r e m i a h c h a s e d a w a y the a s p s from the dry land a n d the c r o c o d i l e s from the N i l e , a n d thereafter (xai oikcog) h e i n t r o d u c e d t h e so-called 'snakefighte r s . ' H e r e it is interesting a n d i l l u m i n a t i n g to see that m o s t o f the m a n u s c r i p t s h a v e xai oikcog, b u t o n e o t h e r h a s x a i T O T E ,
1 3
w h i c h indicates that this m e d i e v a l
B y z a n t i n e scribe k n e w that oikcog h e r e h a s t h e t e m p o r a l s e n s e o f
TOTE
(then).
In t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t w e find, apart from R o m 11:26, s o m e o t h e r p o s s i b l e i n s t a n c e s o f this u s a g e . It is h i g h l y i m p r o b a b l e that, w h e n the a u t h o r o f A c t s has S t e p h e n say that " G o d g a v e A b r a h a m the c o v e n a n t o f c i r c u m c i s i o n , xai oikcog A b r a h a m b e g o t I s a a c " (7:8), it m a k e s s e n s e to translate h e r e ' a n d t h u s ' : L u k e d o e s n o t w a n t to inform his r e a d e r s a b o u t the p h y s i c a l c o n d i t i o n in w h i c h A b r a h a m b e g o t t h e son that w o u l d b e the heir o f t h e c o v e n a n t , b u t a b o u t t h e fact that this h a p p e n e d only after h e h a d r e c e i v e d the sign o f this c o v e n a n t ! A c t s 20:11 is an e v e n c l e a r e r case, for b y far the m o s t natural translation o f dvafJdg 5E xai xAxxoag T O V dcrtov xai yeuadu.£vog ecp' ixavov T8 6u.ilr|aag dxQi auyfjg, oikcog e^fiA.9£v is " [ P a u l ] w e n t u p s t a i r s , a n d after h e h a d b r o k e n b r e a d a n d eaten, h e c o n t i n u e d to c o n v e r s e w i t h t h e m until d a w n (!); only then h e left." T h e d^Qi a-uyfjg h a r d l y leaves a n o t h e r possibility. A n d it also m a k e s s e n s e to t a k e A c t s 2 7 : 1 7 to m e a n that only after t h e sailors, w h o w e r e afraid o f r u n n i n g o n to t h e s a n d b a n k s , h a d l o w e r e d the g e a r (or: t h r o w n out a s e a - a n c h o r ) , they let the ship drift (xaXdoavTeg TO
oxetjog, oikcog
ECPECKTVTO).
1 T h e s s 4 : 1 6 - 1 7 is a n o t h e r instance: after the d e s c e n t
o f J e s u s C h r i s t from h e a v e n " t h e d e a d in C h r i s t will rise first; thereafter
we who
are alive, w h o are left, will b e c a u g h t u p in the c l o u d s t o g e t h e r with t h e m to m e e t the L o r d in the air; and [only] EV XQIOTCO
dvaoTf|GovTai
then w e will b e w i t h the L o r d f o r e v e r " (oi vexQoi
JTQCOTOV,
eiteiTa rmeig oi t/dvTeg oi JteQiX.£iJt6|iEvoi d^ia ovv
atkolg aQKaynooLieOa ev vEcpeXaig slg djtdvTnaiv xov
XUQIOD
-
eig deQa xai oikcog
jtdvTOTE auv xuoico so-o^eGa.). T h i s translation m a k e s at least as m u c h s e n s e as the traditional o n e ' a n d s o , ' if o n l y b e c a u s e the text so u n a m b i g u o u s l y indicates that the a p o s t l e is s p e a k i n g a b o u t a t e m p o r a l order: first A, therafter B , a n d (but only then) C. A n d there are m o r e N T e x a m p l e s .
finally
1 4
F r o m early C h r i s t i a n literature o u t s i d e t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t I a d d u c e o n l y the f o l l o w i n g e x a m p l e to r o u n d off the p i c t u r e .
15
I r e n a e u s tells us in Adv.
haer.
1.30.14 that the G n o s t i c sect o f the O p h i t e s say that after his r e s u r r e c t i o n J e s u s t a u g h t his d i s c i p l e s (not for 4 0 d a y s , as t h e N T s a y s , but) for n o less than 18 m o n t h s , a n d only then w a s h e t a k e n u p into h e a v e n : et sic receptus
1 2
est in
caelum.
It is significant in this respect that there are manuscripts that omit eixa here, but none that omit oikcog. See F. Schmidt, Le Testament grec a"Abraham, Tubingen 1986, 118. See A.M. Schwemer, Studien zu den friihjiidischen Prophetenlegenden. Beiheft: Synopse zu den_Vitae Prophetarum, Tubingen 1996, 12*. E.g., 1 Cor 14:25. See Latte, GGA 196 (1934) 4 1 1 ; Holwerda, De Schrift\62. For instances from Asterius I refer to the article by Skard (see note 6). 1 3
1 4
1 5
180
A Short Note on the Meaning of xai oikwg in Romans
11:26
I r e n a e u s ' original G r e e k is lost h e r e , but there c a n b e n o d o u b t at all that the Latin t r a n s l a t i o n (et sic) reflects an original x a i oiktog h e r e .
1 6
It is p o s s i b l y u n d e r
the influence o f this G r e e k u s a g e that in Latin C h r i s t i a n w r i t e r s o n e finds this t e m p o r a l u s e o f sic m u c h m o r e frequently t h a n in p a g a n Latin a u t h o r s .
17
Q u i t e apart from the g r a m m a t i c a l a n d lexical possibilities that t h e w o r d oiktog had, it is also the c o n t e x t in R o m a n s 11 that m a k e s it v e r y p r o b a b l e that it w a s the t e m p o r a l m e a n i n g o f oikoog that the a u t h o r had in m i n d here. H i s w h o l e a r g u m e n t is b a s e d u p o n t h e i d e a that it is the p r e c e d e n c e of t h e g e n t i l e s w h i c h r o u s e s Israel to j e a l o u s y . O n l y after the gentiles h a v e fully e n t e r e d t h e c o v e n a n t , will Israel r e - e n t e r it, b e c a u s e it first h a s to b e p r o v o k e d to d o so. It is, h o w e v e r , not the p u r p o s e o f this article to e x c l u d e the possibility that Paul u s e d x a i oikcog in the m o d a l s e n s e in R o m 1 1 : 2 6 .
18
W h a t I d o w a n t to e x c l u d e ,
h o w e v e r , is the u s e o f the false a r g u m e n t that it is i m p o s s i b l e to t a k e oikoog in the t e m p o r a l s e n s e b e c a u s e this is " n o t found o t h e r w i s e in G r e e k " ( F i t z m y e r ) , s i n c e o u r findings confirm w h a t K u r t Latte w r o t e 6 5 y e a r s a g o : " D i e W e n d u n g in d e r hier v o r l i e g e n d e n B e d e u t u n g ' u n d d a n n ' [ist] alles a n d e r e als u n g e w o h n l i c h . "
19
T h i s s e m a n t i c possibility has therefore to b e t a k e n into a c c o u n t m u c h m o r e seri o u s l y than h a s hitherto b e e n the c a s e .
1 6
2 0
So Bentlcy Layton's translation, "And so he was taken up into heaven" (The Gnostic Scriptures [Garden City 1987] 180) is wrong, whereas the translation by D.J. Unger, "Then he was assumed into heaven" (St. Irenaeus of Lyons Against the Heresies [ACW 55; N e w York 1992] 102) is correct. For instances see A. Blaise & H. Chirat, Dictionnaire latin-francais des auteurs Chretiens, Turnhout 1954, 758, where A-.v. 3 they quote inter alios Filastrius 127.1: primum erat apud Patrem et sic natus est. Moreover, the modal and the temporal sense are not necessarily mutually exclusive. GGA 1 9 6 ( 1 9 3 4 ) 4 1 1 . 1 o w e thanks to Professor Stephan Radt (Groningen) for his valuable suggestions. 1 7
1 8
19
2 0
Macarius Magnes and the Unnamed Anti-Christian Polemicist A review article'
T h e s t u d y o f the a n c i e n t p h i l o s o p h i c a l anti-Christian p o l e m i c h a s w i t n e s s e d an u p s u r g e o f interest in the last t w o d e c a d e s . After t h e s k e t c h o f the status
quaes-
2
tionis by S. B e n k o a n d A . M e r e d i t h in 1 9 8 0 , w e h a v e seen the p u b l i c a t i o n of, 3
e. g . , R. W i l k e n , The Christians 1984); R.J. H o f f m a n n , Celsus:
as the Romans
G . B . B o z z o & S. R i z z o , Celso: II discorso 1989); G. R i n a l d i , Biblia gentium peratore:
Contra
Galilaeos
( R o m a 1990); R.J. H o f f m a n n , Porphyry's
( A m h e r s t 1 9 9 4 ) ; G. R i n a l d i , La Bibbia
Polemic
the Christians.
dei pagani
of P o r p h y r y ' s Contra
Christianos
Paganism
Im-
"Against (2 vols.;
The Rise of Early
( N e w York etc. 1999); J.G. C o o k , The Interpretation
in Greco-Roman
(Milano
( R o m a 1989); E. M a s a r a c c h i a , Giuliano
B o l o g n a 1 9 9 7 - 9 8 ) ; J.W. H a r g i s , Against New Testament
( N e w Y o r k - O x f o r d 1987);
della veritd contro i cristiani
4
the Christians" Christian
Saw Them ( N e w H a v e n - L o n d o n
On the True Doctrine
Antiof the
5
( T u b i n g e n 2 0 0 0 ) ; a n d a n e w edition
b y P.F. B e a t r i c e h a s b e e n a n n o u n c e d for the
6
n e a r f u t u r e . To this list w e c a n n o w h a p p i l y a d d R i c h a r d G o u l e t ' s n e w a n d i m p o r t a n t critical edition, w i t h translation, i n t r o d u c t i o n , a n d e x e g e t i c a l n o t e s , o f M a c a r i u s o f M a g n e s i a ' s r a t h e r n e g l e c t e d treatise Monogenes tikos),
1
(formerly
Apokri-
a large t w o - v o l u m e w o r k o f s o m e 8 3 0 p a g e s in F r e n c h (see n o t e 1).
The work reviewed here is: Macarios dc Magnesie, Le Monogenes, edition critique et traduction francaisc par Richard Goulet, 2 vols. (Textes et traditions 7), Paris: Vrins, 2003; 383+445 pp. ISBN 2-7116-1647-9 (€ 80). Volume 1 contains the Introduction, a bibliography, a 30-page synopsis of the arguments o f the anonymous philosopher and those of Celsus, Por phyry and Julian, and an index of Greek words; volume 2 contains the text, translation, and exegetical notes. See their contributions i n / J A W II, 2 3 , 2, Berlin-New York 1980, 1 0 5 5 - 1 1 4 9 . I mention here only a selection o f the most important monographs. This book has a very misleading title since it deals only with the fragments related to the unnamed opponent in Macarius Magnes' work. [ N o w supplemented by his The Interpretation of the Old Testament in Greco-Roman Paganism, Tubingen 2004.] It should be added, though, that Beatrice does not believe that a separate treatise Against the Christians ever existed; he rather opines that the anti-Christian arguments were part o f a larger work by Porphyry to which also his Dephilosophia ex oraculis haurienda belonged. See his entry "Porphyrius" in TRE 27 (1997) 5 4 - 5 9 . 2
3
4
5
6
182
Macarius
Magnes and the Unnamed Anti-Christian
T h e subject o f this magnum
Polemicist
opus is an early C h r i s t i a n treatise o f c o n s i d e r
a b l e i m p o r t a n c e since it c o n t a i n s substantial q u o t a t i o n s from a w o r k in w h i c h an a n o n y m o u s G r e e k p h i l o s o p h e r c o m b a t s C h r i s t i a n i t y w i t h a w i d e r a n g e o f a r g u m e n t s . It is w e l l - k n o w n that A d o l f v o n H a r n a c k , as m a n y before a n d after h i m , r e g a r d e d the u n n a m e d o p p o n e n t as n o n e other than the Platonic p h i l o s o p h e r P o r p h y r y , a n d m o r e than h a l f o f the f r a g m e n t s in H a r n a c k ' s edition o f P o r p h y r y ' s Against
the Christians
7
c o n s i s t o f p a s s a g e s from M a c a r i u s ' Monogenes,
but
this did not g o u n c o n t e s t e d . T h e text o f the treatise p r e t e n d s to b e a v e r b a t i m report o f a five-days p u b l i c d e b a t e b e t w e e n M a c a r i u s a n d an a n t i - C h r i s t i a n p h i l o s o p h e r w h o s e n a m e is not m e n t i o n e d . B o t h the a r g u m e n t s o f t h e p h i l o s o p h e r , w h o raises s e r i o u s a n d intelligent o b j e c t i o n s to the N e w T e s t a m e n t a n d h a s s h a r p c r i t i c i s m o f b o t h J e s u s a n d P a u l , as w e l l as t h o s e o f his C h r i s t i a n o p p o n e n t are often interesting a n d d e s e r v e c l o s e r attention t h a n h a s b e e n p a i d t h e m so far. S a d l y e n o u g h , t h e o n l y m a n u s c r i p t o f the w o r k , d i s c o v e r e d in 1867 in A t h e n s 8
a n d e d i t e d by C h a r l e s B l o n d e l in 1 8 7 6 , is n o w lost. M o r e o v e r , it is i n c o m p l e t e ; it b e g i n s s o m e w h e r e in the m i d d l e of b o o k 2 a n d e n d s before the c l o s i n g c h a p t e r s o f b o o k 4 ; b o o k 5 is m i s s i n g as w e l l . In a d d i t i o n to that, t h e m a n u s c r i p t is cor rupt in m a n y p l a c e s a n d G o u l e t c o n f e s s e s that it h a s b e e n e x t r e m e l y difficult a n d o c c a s i o n a l l y i m p o s s i b l e to r e c o n s t r u c t the original text. S o m a n y riddles r e m a i n , b u t n o n e t h e l e s s G o u l e t h a s d o n e u s an e n o r m o u s service b y p r e p a r i n g this first n e w edition after B l o n d e l . In an instructive ' F o r s c h u n g s g e s c h i c h t e ' ( 1 4 ^ 4 0 ) , G o u l e t first s k e t c h e s t h e r e search on M a c a r i u s M a g n e s before the d i s c o v e r y o f the m a n u s c r i p t , d o n e m a i n l y o n t h e b a s i s o f t h e few citations from the w o r k b y N i c e p h o r u s o f C o n s t a n t i n o p l e (9th c e n t ) a n d s o m e o t h e r s . H e h i g h l i g h t s the fact that several o f t h e s e early scholars r e g a r d ' M a c a r i u s ' not as a n a m e but an adjective (blessed) a n d ' M a g n e s ' not as a d e s i g n a t i o n o f his p l a c e o f origin (from M a g n e s i a ) b u t as a p r o p e r n a m e (the b l e s s e d M a g n e s ) , a p o i n t h e will c o m e b a c k to later. After the p u b l i c a t i o n o f the editio princeps
in 1876 o n e sees that the identification o f the a n o n y m o u s
a d v e r s a r y w i t h either H i e r o c l e s (the target o f E u s e b i u s ' Contra
Hieroclem)
or
P o r p h y r y , or a c o m b i n a t i o n of b o t h , g a i n s g r o u n d , a l t h o u g h s o m e w h o favour a later d a t e l e a v e o p e n t h e possibility that Julian the A p o s t a t e m a y b e t h e u n n a m e d o p p o n e n t . O t h e r s , s u c h as T h e o d o r Z a h n , identify M a c a r i u s w i t h t h e b i s h o p o f 7
See his 'Porphyrius, "Gegen die Christen,"' in Abhandlungen der Koniglich-Preussischen Akademie der Wissenschaften, Jahrgang 1916, Philosophisch-historische Klasse, Berlin 1916, 3 - 1 1 5 ; and 'Neue Fragmente des Werks des Porphyrius gegen die Christen,' Sitzungsberichte der Preussischen Akademie der Wissenschaften 1921, Berlin 1921, 2 6 6 - 2 8 4 . It is amazing and also a shame that A. Smith omitted the fragments of Against the Christians from his new Teubner edi tion of the fragments of Porphyry's works with the lame argument that they were readily available in the recent (!) edition by Harnack; see his Porphyrius, Fragmenta, Stuttgart-Leipzig 1993. MAKAPIOY MArNHTOZ 'Anoxyitixog r\ Movoyevrig. Macarii Magnetis quae supersunt ex inedito codice edidit C. Blondel, Paris 1876. Actually the book was seen through the press by Paul Foucart after Blondel's untimely death (he died in 1873 at the age of 37). 8
Macarius
Magnes and the Unnamed Anti-Christian
183
Polemicist
9
M a g n e s i a (in A s i a M i n o r ) called M a c a r i u s w h o w a s p r e s e n t at the S y n o d o f t h e O a k in 4 0 3 ; Z a h n t h i n k s this b i s h o p w r o t e a refutation o f 3rd a n d 4th c e n t u r y a n t i - C h r i s t i a n p o l e m i c s in g e n e r a l a r o u n d 4 0 0 . T.W. Crafer, o n t h e o t h e r h a n d , dates M a c a r i u s a r o u n d 3 0 0 a n d a r g u e s that t h e d e b a t e t o o k p l a c e before the D i o c l e t i a n p e r s e c u t i o n ; the c o m b a t a n t s w e r e H i e r o c l e s a n d M a c a r i u s .
1 0
Harnack
sees in M a c a r i u s the b i s h o p o f M a g n e s i a , w h o w r o t e this w o r k in t h e last q u a r t e r o f the 4th century, but w h o s e target w a s n o o t h e r than P o r p h y r y . S i n c e , h o w e v e r , M a c a r i u s k n e w P o r p h y r y ' s w o r k o n l y in an a n o n y m o u s a n d a b r i d g e d form, h e w a s n o t a w a r e o f t h e identity o f his o p p o n e n t (!). O t h e r s r e m a i n inclined to s e e either J u l i a n or H i e r o c l e s as the a n o n y m o u s o p p o n e n t o r to a s s u m e that the b i s h o p i n d e e d r e a c t e d to a n a n o n y m o u s a n t i - C h r i s t i a n treatise that m a d e u s e of m a n y a r g u m e n t s levelled b y C e l s u s , P o r p h y r y , H i e r o c l e s , a n d Julian. To d a t e t h e r e is n o c o n s e n s u s o n a n y o f t h e s e m a j o r issues. A t the e n d o f this s u r v e y (40) G o u l e t lists a d o z e n o r so p r o b l e m s that still r e m a i n b y a n d large u n s o l v e d . T h e first h e d e a l s w i t h is t h e title. S i n c e the o n l y m a n u s c r i p t is a c e p h a l o u s , w e h a v e to rely o n the tables o f c o n t e n t s o f the b o o k or r e f e r e n c e s to it as w e find t h e m in s o m e o t h e r early d o c u m e n t s ( a b o u t t h e s e s e e further b e l o w ) . T h i s leaves u s w i t h 'Ajtoxomxog JtQog "EAA/nvag or Movoyevrig
JIQOC;
"EAAnvac; or 'Ajtoxoitixog
f| Movoyevrig jiQog "EXkx\vac,. G o u l e t rightly s a y s that the latter d o u b l e title is p r o b a b l y a conflation a n d that o f t h e t w o single titles the easily u n d e r s t a n d a b l e Apokritikos
is m o r e likely to h a v e r e p l a c e d the difficult Monogenes
o t h e r w a y r o u n d . B u t w h a t d o e s Monogenes
pros Hellenas
t h a n the
m e a n a s a b o o k title?
B a s e d u p o n M a c a r i u s ' o w n u s e o f t h e w o r d , it s e e m s m o s t feasible that genes
(sc. logos)
Mono
here has primarily the sense of "Discours d ' u n genre unique
a d r e s s e a u x H e l l e n e s " but w i t h the double-entendre
o f " D i s c o u r s d u Fils u n i q u e
. . . " T h i s s e e m s r a t h e r o d d , b u t I h a v e n o a l t e r n a t i v e to offer. T h e s e c o n d p r o b l e m is t h e identity o f the author. G o u l e t s u g g e t s that it is m o r e natural to interpret Makarios
Magnes
as ' M a c a r i u s o f M a g n e s i a ' than as ' t h e
b l e s s e d M a g n e s , ' a n d I fully a g r e e . H e also t e n d s to b e l i e v e P h o t i u s ' report that M a c a r i u s , b i s h o p o f M a g n e s i a , a t t e n d e d t h e S y n o d o f t h e O a k in 4 0 3 a n d a r g u e s that n o t h i n g c o n t r a d i c t s the identification o f t h e s e t w o m e n . B u t h e w i s e l y a d d s that it is i m p o s s i b l e to identify t h e m " d e facon i n c o n t e s t a b l e " ( 5 1 ) . E v e n so h e t h i n k s his p o s i t i o n c a n b e s t r e n g t h e n e d b y g e o g r a p h i c a l c o n s i d e r a t i o n s . M a n y details in t h e text s u g g e s t a m u c h greater a c q u a i n t a n c e w i t h A s i a M i n o r than w i t h a n y o t h e r g e o g r a p h i c a l area. B u t that is, o f c o u r s e , not in a n y w a y a p r o o f that o u r M a c a r i u s w a s the m a n o f t h e S y n o d o f 4 0 3 . "
9
The Greek Magnes can indeed mean 'living in Magnesia' (see LSJ s.v.). For references to publications by these and other authors I must refer the reader to Goulet's notes. Crafer published the only English translation (though an abridged one) of Macarius'work in 1919. 1 also do not understand how Macarius could have borrowed details from John Malalas (6th cent.!); see p. 52. 1 0
11
184
Macarius
Magnes and the Unnamed Anti-Christian
Polemicist
A n o t h e r p r o b l e m is the d a t i n g o f t h e w o r k . H e r e G o u l e t a g a i n c o n c e d e s that c e r t a i n t y m a y b e u n a t t a i n a b l e , b u t h e carefully s u g g e s t s , o n the b a s i s o f his t e n t a t i v e identification o f M a c a r i u s w i t h the h o m o n y m o u s b i s h o p o f M a g n e s i a w h o w a s a c t i v e at the S y n o d o f 4 0 3 , that t h e w o r k m a y h a v e b e e n c o m p o s e d in t h e final q u a r t e r of the 4th c e n t u r y r a t h e r than a c e n t u r y earlier. It is - inter
alia
- the c h r i s t o l o g i c a l v i e w s o f the a u t h o r that favour this later d a t e . M o r e o v e r , t w i c e in this treatise t h e a u t h o r refers to e v e n t s that h a v e t a k e n p l a c e m o r e t h a n 3 0 0 y e a r s after e v e n t s in the N e w T e s t a m e n t p e r i o d (4.5.1 a n d 4 . 5 . 2 ) ; a n d o n e h a s to k e e p in m i n d that t h e s e c h r o n o l o g i c a l r e m a r k s are m a d e b y t h e o p p o n e n t (at least a c c o r d i n g to M a c a r i u s ) , i.e.,
before M a c a r i u s w r o t e his refutation.
O n l y a n o v e r l y skeptical p e r s o n c o u l d d e f e n d a n early d a t e a r o u n d 3 0 0 , t h e n ; a d a t e after 3 5 0 is m u c h m o r e r e a s o n a b l e . A l s o the r e f e r e n c e s to t h e r e m a r k a b l e e x p a n s i o n o f t h e m o n a s t i c m o v e m e n t in the E a s t ( 2 . 7 . 1 0 ; 2 . 1 6 . 2 6 - 2 9 ) m a k e s e n s e o n l y b y the final d e c a d e s o f the 4th century, n o t m u c h earlier ( T h e o d o r e t s k e t c h e s its z e n i t as o c c u r r i n g b e t w e e n 3 6 5 a n d 4 4 0 ) .
1 2
T h i s d a t i n g is further
c o n f i r m e d b y M a c a r i u s ' strikingly critical attitude t o w a r d s the l e g i t i m a c y o f t h e i m p e r i a l p o w e r , w h i c h - in the fourth c e n t u r y - is o n l y to b e e x p l a i n e d a g a i n s t the b a c k g r o u n d o f V a l e n s ' v i o l e n t rule ( 3 6 4 - 3 7 8 ) , s a y s G o u l e t , a p o i n t o f v i e w that will p r o b a b l y not g o u n c h a l l e n g e d . G o u l e t rightly r e g a r d s t h e p u b l i c d e b a t e setting as a literary fiction b u t a r g u e s that t h e r e is g o o d r e a s o n to a s s u m e that M a c a r i u s did not h i m s e l f invent the o b j e c t i o n s to C h r i s t i a n i t y in o r d e r to easily refute t h e m . It is n o t so m u c h the d i s p a r i t y in style a n d diction b e t w e e n t h e u n n a m e d o p p o n e n t ' s o b j e c t i o n s a n d M a c a r i u s ' r e s p o n s e s that p l e a d s in favour o f his u s e o f a p a g a n s o u r c e (this d i s p a r i t y c o u l d still b e e x p l a i n e d as part o f M a c a r i u s ' t e c h n i q u e ) , b u t it is r a t h e r w h a t G o u l e t calls " l e r a p p o r t d i a l e c t i q u e entre o b j e c t i o n s et r e p o n s e s , " w h i c h h e defines as f o l l o w s : " M a c a r i o s p a s s e s y s t e m a t i q u e m e n t a c o t e d e s o b j e c t i o n s , il n e g l i g e la p o i n t e p h i l o s o p h i q u e d ' a r g u m e n t s attestes p a r ailleurs d a n s la l i t e r a t u r e a n t i c h r e t i e n n e , il laisse s a n s r e p o n s e c e r t a i n s e l e m e n t s d e l ' o b j e c t i o n , t a n d i s q u ' i l se livre a d e s d e v e l o p p e m e n t s q u e n ' a p p e l a i e n t p a s les o b j e c t i o n s d e l ' a d v e r s a i r e " ( 7 1 - 7 2 ) . T h i s leaves n o r o o m for d o u b t : M a c a r i u s u s e d a written s o u r c e . T h i s s o u r c e , h o w e v e r , has o s t e n s i b l y b e e n h e a v i l y e d i t e d by h i m
1 3
so
that o n e c a n n o t s i m p l y u s e the ' q u o t e d ' o b j e c t i o n s o f the p a g a n p h i l o s o p h e r as ' f r a g m e n t s ' (in the s e n s e o f ipsissima
verba)
o f his original text. E v e n so it is
c l e a r that his w o r k c o n s i s t e d p r i m a r i l y o f s u s t a i n e d a t t a c k s on the p e r s o n a n d t e a c h i n g o f b o t h J e s u s C h r i s t a n d t h e apostle Paul (to a lesser d e g r e e P e t e r w a s also his target). S i n c e t h e p h i l o s o p h e r p r e s e n t s C h r i s t i a n s as p e r s o n s w i t h o u t a n y political p o w e r b u t at the s a m e t i m e as c o n s t r u c t o r s o f b i g c h u r c h e s , a t e n t a t i v e
1 2
1 3
89.
See P. Canivet, Le monachisme syrien selon Theodoret de Cyr, Paris 1977. For an elaborate stylistic analysis underpinning this conclusion by Goulet see pp. 7 6 -
Macarius
Magnes and the Unnamed Anti-Christian
185
Polemicist
d a t i n g o f his w r i t i n g to the y e a r s a b o u t 3 0 0 s e e m s d e f e n s i b l e . G o u l e t d o e s not deal w i t h the intriguing q u e s t i o n o f w h y it t o o k ( a l m o s t ) a c e n t u r y before this attack on C h r i s t i a n i t y w a s a n s w e r e d (but see b e l o w ) . B e f o r e t a c k l i n g the m a j o r issue o f the identity o f the p a g a n p h i l o s o p h e r , G o u l e t d i s c u s s e s his p e r s o n a l i t y a n d his attitude t o w a r d s Christianity. D u e to the h e a v y r e d a c t i o n a l h a n d o f M a c a r i u s , his p e r s o n a l i t y r e m a i n s v a g u e . W h a t little c a n b e said w i t h certainty, h o w e v e r , is that the p h i l o s o p h e r h a d a heart-felt d i s d a i n for C h r i s t a n d his f o l l o w e r s . J e s u s is neither a s a g e n o r a h e r o , let a l o n e a g o d , h e is a m u d d l e - h e a d e d t e a c h e r ; Paul is a great h y p o c r i t e ; a n d Peter is an erratic personality. T h e N e w T e s t a m e n t testifies to t h e l a m e n t a b l y l o w level o f its a u t h o r s ; m u c h o f w h a t is said in it (e. g., a b o u t the P a r o u s i a ) is irrational a n d a b s u r d : "il s ' e n tient a u c h o c subi p a r 1'esprit cultive d e v a n t le c a r a c t e r e parfois c o n t r a d i c t o i r e , p a r a d o x a l et m e m e brutal de certains p a s s a g e s du N o u v e a u Testa ment" (106).
1 4
T h e p h i l o s o p h e r ' s historical a n d g e o g r a p h i c a l k n o w l e d g e is far
from e x c e p t i o n a l a n d d o e s n o t s u g g e s t a level c o m p a r a b l e to P o r p h y r y ' s . H i s p h i l o s o p h i c a l s t a n c e , as far as it is r e c o v e r a b l e , is a k i n d o f g e n e r a l P l a t o n i s m that h a s n o clearly N e o p l a t o n i c e l e m e n t s . After all this, it c o m e s m o r e or less as a surprise that the l o n g c h a p t e r on "Identification d e la s o u r c e pai'enne" ( 1 1 2 - 1 4 9 ) c o m e s to t h e c o n c l u s i o n that the u n n a m e d p h i l o s o p h e r w a s , after all, n o o n e o t h e r than P o r p h y r y . All other possibilities are r e v i e w e d a n d fairly tested b u t all fail to p a s s t h e test. In spite o f several p o i n t s o f c o n t a c t b e t w e e n t h e u n n a m e d p h i l o s o p h e r a n d C e l s u s , the latter h a r d l y focuses on t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t d o c u m e n t s a n d - quite u n l i k e the u n n a m e d p h i l o s o p h e r - h e also r e g a r d s C h r i s t i a n i t y as a threat to the e m p i r e a n d the H e l l e n i c tradition. T h e u n n a m e d p h i l o s o p h e r refuted b y L a c t a n t i u s in his Institutiones
c a n n o t b e o u r p h i l o s o p h e r b e c a u s e o f t h e political focus o f the
former a n d t h e lack o f a n y a g r e e m e n t s b e t w e e n w h a t little w e k n o w o f his argu m e n t s a n d t h o s e o f M a c a r i u s ' o p p o n e n t . H i e r o c l e s , the a u t h o r o f t h e w h o is often s e e n as a g o o d a l t e r n a t i v e to P o r p h y r y in this r e s p e c t ,
Philalethes 15
is not o u r
u n n a m e d p h i l o s o p h e r s i n c e there are t o o m a n y striking differences b e t w e e n the t o n e a n d a r g u m e n t s o f the t w o a n d " o n n e r e l e v e p a s d e s r a p p r o c h e m e n t s s u f f i s a m m e n t etroits p o u r q u e T o n p u i s s e c o n c l u r e a u n e identification des d e u x a u t e u r s " ( 1 2 6 ) . A s to J u l i a n the E m p e r o r , in spite o f " u n g r a n d n o m b r e d e r a p p r o c h e m e n t s , " w h i c h is to b e e x p e c t e d in v i e w o f " l ' e x i s t e n c e d ' u n m a t e r i e l p o l e m i q u e c o m m u n " ( 1 2 7 ) , there are hardly a n y c l o s e parallels b e t w e e n the texts o f the t w o a u t h o r s . B u t t h e n , there is P o r p h y r y , a n d h e r e w e find " d e s paralleles beaucoup plus proches que ceux que nous avons rencontres j u s q u ' i c i " (127). 1 4
The philosopher focuses almost exclusively on the N e w Testament; he has only 10 refer ences to Old Testament passages. The most recent defense of this position is E. DePalma Digeser, 'Porphyry, Julian, or Hierokles? The Anonymous Hellene in Makarios Magnes' Apokritikos^ JTS 53 (2002) 466-502. 15
186
Macarius
Magnes and the Unnamed Anti-Christian
Polemicist
A n d i n d e e d , w i t h n o o t h e r a n t i - C h r i s t i a n a u t h o r d o e s o n e find m o r e a n d c l o s e r a g r e e m e n t s t h a n w i t h this Platonist. W h a t w o u l d s e e m to militate a g a i n s t t h e h y p o t h e s i s that o u r u n n a m e d p h i l o s o p h e r is P o r p h y r y is t h e fact that at a certain m o m e n t M a c a r i u s invites his o p p o n e n t to h a v e a look at a p a s s a g e in P o r p h y r y ' s Philosophia
ex oraculis
haurienda
( 3 . 4 2 . 6 ) , w i t h o u t e v e n h i n t i n g at the fact
that this P o r p h y r y is his o p p o n e n t . B u t that is n o s e r i o u s o b j e c t i o n b e c a u s e , in v i e w o f t h e literary fiction that the d e b a t e t o o k p l a c e in t h e r e c e n t p a s t b e t w e e n M a c a r i u s h i m s e l f a n d his adversary, h e s i m p l y c o u l d n o t tell that his o p p o n e n t w a s Porphyry (who had already died almost a century ago). T h e r e r e m a i n p r o b l e m s h e r e , h o w e v e r . If O r i g e n m e n t i o n e d C e l s u s b y n a m e , if E u s e b i u s m e n t i o n e d H i e r o c l e s by n a m e , if M e t h o d i u s as w e l l as E u s e b i u s a n d A p o l l i n a r i s m e n t i o n e d P o r p h y r y b y n a m e , a n d if C y r i l l u s m e n t i o n e d Julian b y n a m e , why, t h e n , w o u l d M a c a r i u s k e e p his o p p o n e n t a n o n y m o u s ? O f c o u r s e , o n e c o u l d say that o n l y in this w a y c o u l d h e p r e s e n t t h e d e b a t e as h a v i n g t a k e n p l a c e r e c e n t l y w i t h h i m s e l f as the d e f e n d e r o f Christianity. B u t it is v e r y h a r d to i m a g i n e that this literary fiction c a r r i e d m o r e w e i g h t w i t h M a c a r i u s t h a n the fact that h e e n g a g e d in a battle w i t h C h r i s t i a n i t y ' s m o s t f o r m i d a b l e o p p o n e n t in antiquity, a m a n w h o w r o t e n o less than 15 b o o k s Contra
Christianos.
And why
w o u l d h e e n g a g e in this battle after several others h a d a l r e a d y d o n e so better t h a n h e e v e r c o u l d ? A n d , finally, h o w is it to b e e x p l a i n e d that t h e u n n a m e d p h i l o s o p h e r f o c u s e s a l m o s t entirely on t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t , w h e r e a s w e k n o w that P o r p h y r y also dealt critically a n d e x t e n s i v e l y w i t h the O l d T e s t a m e n t ? T h e s e q u e s t i o n s r e m a i n u n a n s w e r e d b y G o u l e t ' s h y p o t h e s i s . A l t h o u g h it is a s u b j e c tive j u d g e m e n t , I for o n e find t o o m u c h in t h e u n n a m e d o p p o n e n t ' s o b j e c t i o n s that l o o k s n o n - P o r p h y r i a n . I therefore v e n t u r e t h e h y p o t h e s i s
16
that M a c a r i u s '
o p p o n e n t n e v e r existed b u t that M a c a r i u s c r e a t e d h i m in o r d e r to e n a b l e h i m s e l f to w r i t e a b o o k that refuted w h a t h e h i m s e l f r e g a r d e d as still t h e m o s t i m p o r t a n t a n d t h r e a t e n i n g a r g u m e n t s against Christianity b r o u g h t forward b y its o p p o n e n t s in the p a s t t w o c e n t u r i e s , from C e l s u s to Julian. O f c o u r s e , P o r p h y r y w a s o n e o f t h e m , i n d e e d t h e m o s t i m p r e s s i v e o n e , a n d this e x p l a i n s the c l o s e parallels w i t h P o r p h y r y in a b o u t 5 0 % o f t h e f r a g m e n t s .
17
"Faut-il supposer plutot que
M a c a r i o s o u sa s o u r c e ont c o m p i l e les o b j e c t i o n s d e d i v e r s e s p o l e m i s t e s ? A u c u n i n d i c e n e le s u g g e r e . O n a a u c o n t r a i r e , a la lecture d e s o b j e c t i o n s , 1'impression d ' u n e c r i t i q u e fort h o m o g e n e " ( 1 3 5 ) . Yes, b u t this h o m o g e n e i t y m a y b e e x a c t l y t h e result o f M a c a r i u s ' purposeful selection a n d r e d a c t i o n . A s G o u l e t h i m s e l f s a y s , " C ' e s t lui qui a s e l e c t i o n n e , a g e n c e et e n c h a i n e les t h e m e s d u d i s c o u r s d e l ' A d v e r s a i r e , c ' e s t lui qui les a m i s e n f o r m e " ( 1 3 8 ) . In all fairness, it s h o u l d
1 6
Not unlike the one suggested by Theodor Zahn (see above). It should be said here that Goulet's synoptic presentation of the agreements and disagree ments between Porphyry and Macarius' unnamed philosopher (vol. I, 2 6 9 - 2 7 8 ) is immensely helpful. 1 7
Macarius
Magnes and the Unnamed Anti-Christian
Polemicist
187
b e said to his credit that G o u l e t is the first to a d m i t that t h e r e is n o c o m p e l l i n g p r o o f o f t h e identity o f the u n n a m e d p h i l o s o p h e r w i t h P o r p h y r y . " F i n a l e m e n t , la q u e s t i o n doit rester o u v e r t e " ( 1 3 5 ; cf. 149). T h e m a i n p r o b l e m is that w e actually k n o w r a t h e r little a b o u t the early a n t i - C h r i s t i a n p o l e m i c i s t s b e c a u s e for t h e m o s t part their w o r k s w e r e d e s t r o y e d b y t h e C h r i s t i a n s . G o u l e t is w e l l a w a r e o f this, since h e s a y s that "il faut r e c o n n a i t r e la possibilite q u e M a c a r i o s ait utilise u n traite g r e c a u j o u r d ' h u i c o m p l e t e m e n t d i s p a r u " ( 1 3 9 ) . T h e largest c h a p t e r o f t h e first v o l u m e is d e v o t e d to a t h o r o u g h s t u d y o f M a c a r i u s as a t h e o l o g i a n a n d a p o l o g i s t . In 8 0 p a g e s ( 1 5 0 - 2 3 1 ) a fine a n d b a l a n c e d sketch is p r e s e n t e d o f the a c c o m p l i s h m e n t s o f this n e g l e c t e d a u t h o r w h o s e o p p o n e n t has u s u a l l y r e c e i v e d m u c h m o r e attention than h e himself. H e r e G o u l e t w a n t s to d o full j u s t i c e to t h e m a n , a n d so h e d o e s . F o r r e a s o n s o f s p a c e I c a n s u m m a r i z e his findings o n l y v e r y briefly. A s an a p o l o g i s t , M a c a r i u s d o e s not, or at least n o t a l w a y s , rise to t h e level o f his o p p o n e n t - as h a s a l r e a d y b e e n n o t e d , h e s o m e t i m e s d o e s n o t e v e n fully c o m p r e h e n d w h a t his o p p o n e n t ' s a r g u m e n t i m p l i e s ( G o u l e t also s p e a k s o f his " i n c a p a c i t e a d i s c e r n e r le c a r a c t e r e p r o p r e et i n c o m m u n i c a b l e d e la foi r e l i g i e u s e ; " p . 1 6 3 ) .
18
B u t h e d o e s k n o w h o w to a p p l y
the t e c h n i q u e s o f a n c i e n t r h e t o r i c . A s a t h e o l o g i a n , M a c a r i u s fares better. H i s s y s t e m o f t h o u g h t is c o h e r e n t a n d c a n b e situated v e r y clearly in p o s t - N i c e n e b u t p r e - C o n s t a n t i n o p o l i t a n t h e o l o g i c a l m i l i e u s , a l t h o u g h his t h e o l o g y a n d christolo g y is not o n a p a r w i t h , say, that o f the great C a p p a d o c i a n F a t h e r s o f this p e r i o d . H e s h o u l d r a t h e r b e s e e n as r e p r e s e n t i n g the m a i n s t r e a m ' p o p u l a r t h e o l o g y ' o f his t i m e . " E n fait, ce d o c u m e n t e x p r i m e tres b i e n ce qui r e p r e s e n t a i t la foi p o u r les h o m m e s d ' a l o r s et il p e r m e t d ' o b s e r v e r les c o r r e l a t i o n s qui existent entre cette foi et les d e s i r s , les c r a i n t e s et les i n t e r r o g a t i o n s d e l ' e p o q u e " ( 2 3 1 ) . W h a t I m i s s e d in this o t h e r w i s e e x c e l l e n t c h a p t e r w a s a d i s c u s s i o n o f M a c a r i u s ' n e g a tive attitude t o w a r d s J e w s a n d J u d a i s m , a t o p i c that certainly d e s e r v e s c l o s e r investigation.
19
T h e final c h a p t e r o f vol. 1 is a b o u t t h e t r a n s m i s s i o n o f t h e text. H e r e G o u l e t d i s t i n g u i s h e s b e t w e e n e x t a n t m a n u s c r i p t s a n d t h o s e that a r e lost. A s to the latter category, t h e s e are the m a n u s c r i p t r e p o r t e d l y found a n d u s e d b y N i c e p h o r u s in the 9th century, b y J a n o s L a s k a r i s a r o u n d 1500, a n d b y T u r r i a n u s (Torrensis) in the m i d d l e o f t h e 16th century. It is o f c o u r s e e s p e c i a l l y their q u o t e s from the n o w lost p a r t s o f the b o o k that are m o s t v a l u a b l e . To this c a t e g o r y b e l o n g s also t h e m a n u s c r i p t found a n d u s e d b y B l o n d e l for the editio princeps,
once
b e l o n g i n g to the N a t i o n a l L i b r a r y at A t h e n s b u t e n i g m a t i c a l l y lost s i n c e 1876 (it
1 8
Sometimes Macarius bases his defence upon a wrong translation o f the biblical text, as in 2.31. Unfortunately, the word index is not exhaustive (see p. 305) and the word Ioudaios was not included so that it is difficult to find the many places where Macarius speaks about the Jews. 1 9
188
Macarius
Magnes and the Unnamed Anti-Christian
Polemicist
d a t e s from t h e 14th—15th cent.). T h e e x t a n t m a n u s c r i p t s are t h o s e m i s c e l l a n e o u s o n e s w h i c h c o n t a i n , inter alia, tables o f c o n t e n t s o f t h e Monogenes,
scholia on
biblical texts w i t h p a s s a g e s from M a c a r i u s , or o t h e r d o c u m e n t s c o n t a i n i n g s u m m a r i e s o f certain p a s s a g e s from his text, for instance in treatises on the Eucharist. O n the b a s i s o f a detailed analysis o f all t h e s e data, G o u l e t tries to r e c o n s t r u c t the c o n t e n t s o f t h e w o r k in its entirety. A t p a g e 2 4 7 w e finally find G o u l e t ' s s t e m m a o f all n o - l o n g e r - e x t a n t c o d i c e s . In this c h a p t e r h e s h o w s his m a s t e r y in t h e field o f m e t i c u l o u s a n a l y s i s o f textual traditions. V o l u m e 2 c o n t a i n s G o u l e t ' s r e c o n s t r u c t i o n o f the G r e e k text a n d his F r e n c h translation on facing p a g e s . H e presents this material in a v e r y user-friendly m a n ner. F o r i n s t a n c e , n o t o n l y are t h e p a g e n u m b e r s o f B l o n d e l ' s edition a n d t h o s e o f t h e lost m a n u s c r i p t h e u s e d indicated in margine,
the r e a d e r is also h e l p e d b y
b r i e f m a r g i n a l a n n o t a t i o n s i n d i c a t i n g w h e r e M a c a r i u s ' r e s p o n s e to a n objection b y his a d v e r s a r y b e g i n s w h e n t h e r e is a c o n s i d e r a b l e d i s t a n c e b e t w e e n the t w o (as is often t h e c a s e ) , a n d also the other w a y r o u n d in t h e form o f r e f e r e n c e s b a c k to the p l a c e w h e r e the objection h e r e a n s w e r e d c a n b e found. In t h e m a r g i n o n e also finds the references to the n u m b e r i n g o f the ' f r a g m e n t s ' in H a r n a c k ' s edition o f P o r p h y r y ' s Contra
Christianos.
In v i e w o f the h i g h d e g r e e of c o r r u p t i o n o f the
A t h e n i a n m a n u s c r i p t there are m a n y p l a c e s w h e r e conjectures w e r e u n a v o i d a b l e ; G o u l e t c o n s i s t e n t l y alerts the r e a d e r s to this b y i n d i c a t i n g conjectural r e a d i n g s in t h e text, n o t o n l y in the a p p a r a t u s . T h e r e are several a p p a r a t u s e s : O n t h e left h a n d (often spilling o v e r into t h e right h a n d ) p a g e o n e finds a list o f sigla for the d o c u m e n t s w h e r e t h e text o f (parts of) the p a g e c a n b e found; further there is an apparatus
criticus;
an a d d i t i o n a l a p p a r a t u s o n marginalia
in the A t h e n i a n m s . ;
a n d an a p p a r a t u s o f s o u r c e s ( m a i n l y biblical). O n t h e right h a n d p a g e o n e finds an a p p a r a t u s d i s c u s s i n g textual p r o b l e m s , b u t in the text o f the translation t h e r e a d e r is also referred (by m e a n s o f letters) to t h e scriptural a p p a r a t u s a n d ( b y m e a n s o f a s t e r i s k s ) to the m a n y exegetical n o t e s w h i c h h a v e b e e n r e l e g a t e d to the end of the volume (pp. 3 7 7 ^ 4 3 6 : Appendice exegetique). These exegetical d i s c u s s i o n s s o m e t i m e s a m o u n t to v e r y useful m i n i - e s s a y s (see e. g. p p . 3 8 0 - 3 8 2 o n t h e p r o b l e m o f the d e l a y e d c o m i n g o f s a l v a t i o n , or p p . 4 0 5 ^ 1 0 7 o n o b j e c tions to t h e d o c t r i n e o f the b o d i l y r e s u r r e c t i o n ) . H e r e o n e also finds a w e a l t h o f r e f e r e n c e s to parrallels in early patristic s o u r c e s a n d to s c h o l a r l y literature. T h e t r a n s l a t i o n is fluent, as far as I c a n j u d g e , e v e n t h o u g h G o u l e t k e e p s r a t h e r c l o s e to the original. T h e c o n s t i t u t i o n o f the G r e e k text is a tour de force
on
w h i c h m u c h c o u l d b e said, b u t I prefer to l e a v e that m a t t e r to m o r e c o m p e t e n t c o l l e a g u e s ( a l t h o u g h I w a n t to say that I found G o u l e t ' s conjectures often v e r y ingenious). T o c o n c l u d e : T h i s is a project in w h i c h a n u m b e r o f f o r m i d a b l e o b s t a c l e s h a d to b e o v e r c o m e , as w e h a v e seen. G o u l e t h e r e p r e s e n t s the results o f several d e c a d e s of w r e s t l i n g w i t h t h e s e p r o b l e m s . T h e s e results are i m p r e s s i v e . T h e c a r e w i t h w h i c h G o u l e t h a s dealt with all these often intractable m a t t e r s is e x e m p l a r y .
Macarius
Magnes and the Unnamed Anti-Christian
Polemicist
189
N o t o n l y s t u d e n t s o f M a c a r i u s but also t h o s e w h o are interested in the field o f a n t i - C h r i s t i a n critique on t h e p a r t o f p a g a n G r e e k intellectuals o w e h i m a great debt. E v e n if o n e is not c o n v i n c e d b y e v e r y t h i n g G o u l e t p r o p o s e s as a s o l u t i o n (as in the c a s e o f t h e identity o f the u n n a m e d a d v e r s a r y ) , that d o e s not detract in the least from t h e great v a l u e o f his w o r k .
2 0
2 0
A good study of the interpretation of the N T by the unnamed opponent is J.G. Cook, The Interpretation of the New Testament in Greco-Roman Paganism, Tubingen 2 0 0 0 , 1 6 8 - 2 4 9 .
A New Early Christian Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac (Pap. Bodmer 30) Introduction A l m o s t h a l f a c e n t u r y a g o , in 1952, several d o z e n p a p y r i w e r e d i s c o v e r e d n e a r the E g y p t i a n v i l l a g e o f D i s h n a (not far from N a g H a m m a d i , w h e r e the w e l l k n o w n C o p t i c G n o s t i c library w a s found). T h e y w e r e a c q u i r e d b y P h o k i o n T a n o , a C y p r i o t antiquities d e a l e r in C a i r o , w h o sold m o s t o f t h e m to M a r t i n B o d m e r , the S w i s s m a g n a t e a n d scholar w h o founded the f a m o u s B i b l i o t h e c a B o d m e r i a n a in C o l o g n y ( n e a r G e n e v a ) . In a series o f m o n o g r a p h s that a p p e a r e d from the m i d d l e o f t h e fifties, a g r e a t n u m b e r o f t h e s e so-called B o d m e r p a p y r i w e r e p u b l i s h e d (with b o o k s o f t h e S e p t u a g i n t a n d t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t , M e n a n d e r , t h e Pastor
Hermae
etc.). T h e
p u b l i c a t i o n o f P a p . B o d m e r 2 9 , s o m e 15 y e a r s a g o , w a s e x c i t i n g n e w s . It c o n t a i n e d a c o m p l e t e l y n e w text, the early C h r i s t i a n Vision of Dorotheus}
T h i s is a
G r e e k p o e m from the fourth c e n t u r y written in H o m e r i c l a n g u a g e a n d style in w h i c h a certain D o r o t h e u s , w h o h a d b e e n p r e v i o u s l y u n k n o w n to u s , tells a b o u t 2
his v i s i o n a r y e x p e r i e n c e s . O n t h e last p h o t o o f the p a p y r u s found in that e d i tion, o n e c a n a l r e a d y see the o p e n i n g lines o f t h e n e x t p o e m , a g a i n in H o m e r i c h e x a m e t r e s , entitled Pros Abra(h)am.
It took 15 y e a r s before the c o m p l e t e text o f
that p o e m w a s p u t at o u r d i s p o s a l , b u t it is a v a i l a b l e n o w , in a beautiful edition, w h i c h also c o n t a i n s the text o f six other early C h r i s t i a n p o e m s from the s a m e 3
c o d e x . W e will p r e s e n t h e r e t h e text in an E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n a n d t h e n briefly d i s c u s s t h e b a c k g r o u n d o f its c o n t e n t s .
1
A. Hurst, O. Reverdin & J. Rudhardt, Papyrus Bodmer XXIX: Vision de Dorotheus, Cologny-Geneve 1984. For a revised edition and English translation see A. H. M. Kessels & R W. van der Horst, "The Vision o f Dorotheus (Pap. Bodmer 29). Edited with Introduction, Translation and Notes," VC4\ ( 1 9 8 7 ) 3 1 3 - 3 5 9 . A. Hurst & J. Rudhardt, Papyrus Bodmer XXX-XXXVII: "Codex des Visions. " Poemes divers, Miinchen 1999. It should be remarked here, albeit only in passing, that actually the text of this poem had already been accessible from 1994, but that the publication that made this possible has been intentionally ignored by almost all scholars. The scandal is as follows. The Italian classicist and papyrologist Enrico Livrea was asked in 1993 by Hurst en Rudhardt, who prepared the editio princeps, to give them advice on certain points. He agreed and received 2
3
A New Early Christian
191
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
T h e p a p y r u s itself dates from the first d e c a d e s o f the fifth century, but the text o f t h e p o e m is certainly older, a l t h o u g h not older t h a n the fourth c e n t u r y as the editors p e r s u a s i v e l y a r g u e in their i n t r o d u c t i o n (their d a t i n g o f the text a n d p a p y r u s o f the Visio Dorothei
4
has met with only marginal criticism ).
T h e i r linguistic a n a l y s i s o f t h e G r e e k m a k e s clear that t h e a u t h o r o f the p o e m Pros Abraam
c a n n o t b e t h e s a m e as D o r o t h e u s , the a u t h o r o f the p r e c e d i n g
a u t o b i o g r a p h i c a l p o e m . S o it is a n a n o n y m o u s p i e c e . It is a poetical r e n d e r i n g o f the story o f G e n e s i s 2 2 , t h e f a m o u s n a r r a t i v e o f the sacrifice o f Isaac (or the sacrifice o f A b r a h a m , as it is often called), w h i c h , in J e w i s h tradition, is k n o w n as the 'Aqedat
Yitschak
(litt. ' t h e b i n d i n g o f I s a a c ' ) or, m o r e briefly, as ' t h e
A q e d a h . ' T h e editors are not sufficiently a w a r e o f the fact that G e n e s i s 2 2 h a d a v e r y influential ' W i r k u n g s g e s c h i c h t e ' in t h e early c e n t u r i e s o f b o t h J u d a i s m a n d C h r i s t i a n i t y (see p p . 3 9 - 4 0 ) , a n d it is for that r e a s o n that t h e y a p p e a l to their c o l l e a g u e s to d o further r e s e a r c h to " l a q u e s t i o n d e s a v o i r s'il existe u n e s o u r c e litteraire qui e x p l i q u e les ecarts p a r r a p p o r t au texte d e l ' A n c i e n T e s t a m e n t ou s'il faut les attribuer a l ' i m a g i n a t i o n d e l ' a u t e u r " (p. 4 3 ) . B u t there is not j u s t o n e ' s o u r c e litteraire' that c a n e x p l a i n the d e v i a t i o n s from t h e text o f the O l d T e s t a m e n t , there are m a n y o f t h e m , as w a s to b e e x p e c t e d . S h o r t t h o u g h it m a y b e ( o n l y 3 0 lines), t h e p o e m has a tripartite structure: Vv. 1-3 are a k i n d o f p r e l u d e ; vv. 4 - 2 7 form an a c r o s t i c h o n , a p o e m in w h i c h the o p e n i n g letters o f the lines form a w o r d , in this c a s e s i m p l y t h e G r e e k a l p h a b e t ; finally an e p i l o g u e in vv. 2 8 - 3 0 . T h i s tripartite structure is v e r y clearly indicated b y t h e c o p y i s t o f the p a p y r u s in that h e p u t s the w o r d hypertheta
('placed above
i t ' ) a b o v e lines 1-3; a b o v e lines 4 - 2 7 the w o r d s kata stoicheion
( ' a c c o r d i n g to
the letters o f t h e a l p h a b e t ' ) ; a n d a b o v e lines 2 8 - 3 0 the w o r d s ta loipa ( ' t h e rest is an a d d i t i o n ' or e p i l o g u e ) .
prostheta
5
a copy of the Greek text and a photo of the papyrus. Shortly afterwards, Livrea himself pub lished the papyrus with an Italian translation under the title 'Un poema inedito di Dorotheos: Ad Abramo' in the Zeitschrift fur Papyrologie und Epigraphik 100 ( 1 9 9 4 ) 1 7 5 - 1 8 7 . It is understandable that there were furious reactions to this 'acte de piraterie litteraire'; thus, for instance, H.E. Braun, A. Hurst & J. Rudhardt in ZPE 103 (1994) 154 (Braun is the director of the Bibliotheca Bodmeriana). Notably J.N. Bremmer, 'The Vision o f Dorotheus,' in J. den Boeft & A. Hilhorst (eds.), Early Christian Poetry, Leiden 1993, 2 5 3 - 2 6 1 . In the text of the translation square brackets [...] indicate that there is a lacuna in the papyrus, and round brackets (...) that w e have added one or more words for the sake o f clarity. The papyrus has been preserved relatively well; the lacunae are small and especially in the acrostic part at the start o f the lines they can for the most part relatively easily be filled because it is known with which letter of the alphabet each line has to begin. Only lines 1 3 - 1 4 (begin ning with the letters kappa and lahda) are completely missing because the bottom part o f the papyrus is destroyed. 4
5
192
A New Early Christian
Text in
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
translation 6
On
Abraham
Prelude ( 1 ) H e w h o put together the w o r l d and the heaven [and the s]ea 7
( 2 ) sent from the ether a swift a n [ g e l ] to Abraham (with the c o m m a n d ) ( 3 ) to sacrifice his o w n b e l o v e d son as a perfect offering.
8
In alphabetical order ( 4 ) A s s o o n as he learnt this, he rejoiced in his w i l l i n g m i [ n d ] , ( 5 ) and he w e n t to s e e whether he c o u l d persuade his illustrious w i [ f e ] : ( 6 ) ' W i f e o f m i n e , the immortal G o d desires that I br[ing] to H i m ( 7 ) the n o b l e Isaac. [He w a s ? ] a great gift o n the t h r e s h o l d ] o f our old a g e , ( 8 ) (this) d e s c e n d a n t .
10
Let h i m e x e c u t e [God's w i l l ] ( ? ) . "
( 9 ) I will bind m y u n [ t o u c h e d ( ? )
12
s o n ] o n the altar as an offering.'
( 1 0 ) W h e n his w i f e heard that, she w a s p r o u d (11) 'Keep cou[rage],
9
14
kappa}
( 1 4 ) {the letter
lambda}
[to say] (these) w i s e words:
m y dear child, for [you] h a v e [been] happy in [this l]ife,
( 1 2 ) Isa[ac, child] of m y w o m b , ( 1 3 ) {the letter
13
1 5
[...]
( 1 5 ) Full of [ s w e e t ] j o y their glorious son s p o k e to them: ( 1 6 ) 'Parents, prepare for m e a luxurious brid[al] chamber! ( 1 7 ) Citizens, braid m y fai[r] hair into l o c k s , 6
1 6
The meaning of the Greek pros in this title may seem unclear at first sight since pros + acc. is usually an indication of direction or of address, but that does not make sense here, unless one assumes that the title refers to the fact that the final three lines ( 2 8 - 3 0 ) are indeed addressed to Abraham. The suggestion by the editors (p. 50) that the expression is comparable to the words le-Dawid, which are often found as a superscript to the Psalms, does not solve anything. Pros here has the sense of 'with regard to' (see W. Bauer - W. F. Arndt - F. W. Gingrich, A Greek-English Lexicon to the New Testament, Chicago & London 1979, s.v. 5b); hence our translation 'on.' Here for'highest heaven.' The Greek has here hekatombe. 'The threshold of old age' is a well-known Homeric expression and verse-ending. One could read the word ekgenetes (descendant) also as ekgenetes (from his birth). Because o f the lacuna the text and meaning of this line remain uncertain. One could take the word ekgenetes at the beginning of the line to be the subject of the verb so as to get, 'Let (our) descendant fulfill [God's w i l l ] . " The editors here read athikton, but that is far from certain. If correct, it could be a refer ence to the demand that a sacrificial animal must be completely without blemish; but it could as well refer to the fact that Isaac is still unmarried (see v. 16), 'untouched' in the sexual sense (athiktos can also mean 'virgin'). Or 'she began' (erxato instead of euxato). This imperative (tharsei) is also often found on tombstones as encouragement for the deceased; see the discussion in P. W. van der Horst, Ancient Jewish Epitaphs, Kampen 1991, 120-122. Litt. 'from my limbs.' The second half of this line and the two following verses are lacking due to a large lacuna. The editors suggest that "Isaac fait peut-etre allusion a (...) la flamme du sacrifice, designee c o m m e une chevelure tressee" (53) with reference to Bacchylides 3:56. It would 7
8
9
1 0
11
1 2
1 3
1 4
15
1 6
A New Early Christian
193
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
( 1 8 ) tha[t] I m a y fulfil a [hol]y task with magnanimity." ( 1 9 ) [At] o n c e able m e n stirred up the f[ire] around the altar. ( 2 0 ) Around the flames [rush]ed the sea that M o s e s ( 2 1 ) w o u l d [split]. A w a v e lifted A b r a h a m ' s s o n (or: A b r a h a m lifted his s o n to a wave?).
1 7
( 2 2 ) T h e father brought h [ i m ] , w h o s m e l l e d o f incense, to the altar, and (the son) re joiced. (23) He welcomed ( ? )
1 8
19
him [on top of?] the fire
and he hastened to
( 2 4 ) strike his n e c k with a sharp [ s w o r d ] . But G o d ' s ( 2 5 ) [hand] reached out (towards h i m ) , for nearby a goat a p p e a r e d .
20
2 1
( 2 6 ) L e a v i n g his s o n unscathed Abrafham p l u c k e d / s a n g the praise o f ? ] the fruit in the tree ( 2 7 ) [so that in as]sent he c h o s e to prepare that (goat) as a sacrificial meal (?). [The rest i]s e p i l o g u e ( 2 8 ) [...?] c o u r a g e o u s man, c o u l d y o u receive another mark o f honour for this (?): ( 2 9 ) T h o u s a n d s o f flourishing [children] to m a k e y o u shine (?), ( 3 0 ) e x c e l l e n t [giver] o f gifts, w h o has c l i m b e d the t o w e r .
22
Comments T h e differences b e t w e e n this text a n d t h e biblical story are striking. To m e n t i o n o n l y the m o s t i m p o r t a n t : (1) N o t o n l y A b r a h a m , b u t S a r a a n d I s a a c as w e l l , a s s e n t to G o d ' s c o m m a n d to sacrifice Isaac w i t h o u t a n y h e s i t a t i o n a n d e v e n w i t h e n t h u s i a s m . (2) N o t h i n g is k e p t h i d d e n from Isaac. (3) Isaac c o m p a r e s his i m m i n e n t d e a t h to a w e d d i n g . (4) S a r a is p r e s e n t e d as s p e a k i n g ( w h e r e a s in the
seem more natural, however, to take it as a reference to the usual cosmetic preparation for a wedding. The Greek (Ahraam huia potixunaeireto kuma) is very unclear and the whole scene is confusing in view o f the fact that in the next line it is Abraham himself w h o brings his son to the altar. The exact meaning o f the form didisketo is far from certain. Litt. 'Hephaistos.' The Greek here has melon, which can mean both 'goat' and 'apple.' In view of what fol lows (Abraham's 'plucking' of the 'fruit' [if that reading is correct]) the author seems to make a conscious play on this homophony. Both the reading and the meaning o f the word pselen (aorist of psallo) are very uncertain. In Aeschylus, Persae 1062, according to a scholiast, psallein is used in the sense of 'plucking' and that might have inspired our author, but of course the sense o f '(psalm)singing' is much more current. The editors also considered the reading psilon, which in combination with 'son' would yield the following translation: 'Leaving unscathed his only son, Abraham chose the fruit in the tree to prepare as a sacrificial meal.' But it should be borne in mind that the word pselen is conjectural, The final three lines are an echo o f the promise o f numerous offspring in Gen. 22:17, with the special twist that these offspring are the Christians, at least, if the editors are right in suggesting that climbing the tower is here equivalent to founding the church. The tower as a symbol of the church is well-known from the Pastor Hermae, a treatise parts of which were found in the same codex in which the present poem is to be found. 1 7
1 8
1 9
2 0
2 1
2 2
194
A New Early Christian
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
biblical story she is not e v e n m e n t i o n e d ) . (5) G o d ' s c o m m a n d is h e r e g i v e n via a n a n g e l , b u t (6) t h e biblical a n g e l in G e n . 22:11 h e r e b e c o m e s G o d ' s h a n d . (7) T h e R e d S e a p l a y s an e n i g m a t i c r o l e .
23
M a n y m o r e differences in detail c o u l d
b e m e n t i o n e d , b u t this short e n u m e r a t i o n suffices to s h o w that the biblical story h a s u n d e r g o n e s o m e drastic modifications h e r e . W h a t is t h e b a c k g r o u n d o f t h e s e modifications? It is w e l l - k n o w n that a l r e a d y in the p r e - C h r i s t i a n p e r i o d a n d e v e n m o r e t h e r e after the story o f G e n e s i s 2 2 g a i n e d a s u r p l u s o f m e a n i n g a n d v a l u e in J e w i s h circles ( a n d that n o t o n l y in the m a r t y r o l o g i c a l s p h e r e ) .
24
F o r i n s t a n c e , w e see
that I s a a c ' s sacrifice w a s g i v e n a soteriological significance in the first c e n t u r y C E Liber Antiquitatum
Biblicarum
(LAB) b y P s e u d o - P h i l o . In LAB 18:5 w e r e a d
the f o l l o w i n g u t t e r a n c e o f G o d : " B e c a u s e h e did n o t object, his offering w a s 2 5
a c c e p t a b l e before m e , a n d in return for his b l o o d ( ! ) 1 c h o s e t h e m ( n a m e l y t h e p e o p l e o f I s r a e l ) . " In LAB 4 0 : 2 J e p h t h a ' s d a u g h t e r w a n t s to e m u l a t e Isaac on a s o t e r i o l o g i c a l level a n d s p e a k i n g a b o u t it to h e r father, she r e m a r k s : " O r h a v e y o u forgotten w h a t h a p p e n e d in the d a y s o f o u r fathers, w h e n t h e father p l a c e d the s o n as a b u r n t offering, a n d h e did n o t d i s p u t e w i t h h i m b u t g l a d l y g a v e his c o n s e n t to h i m , a n d t h e o n e b e i n g offered w a s r e a d y a n d the o n e offering w a s rejoicing?"
26
T h i s j o y f u l r e a d i n e s s is m a d e e v e n m o r e explicit in P s e u d o - P h i l o ' s
r e n d e r i n g o f D e b o r a h ' s s o n g , w h e r e h e h a s h e r say (LAB
32:2-3):
(2) Abraham did not dispute, but set out immediately. W h e n he set out, he said to his son, ' B e h o l d now, m y s o n , I am offering y o u as a burnt-offering and am delivering y o u into the hands o f the o n e w h o g a v e y o u to m e . ' (3) T h e son said to the father, 'Hear m e , father. If a lamb o f the flock is accepted as an offering to the Lord as an odour o f s w e e t n e s s and if, for the sins o f m e n , animals are appointed to be killed, but man is d e s i g n e d to inherit the world, h o w is it that y o u do not say to m e , " C o m e and inherit a secure life and time without measure?" What if I had not been born into the world to be offered as a sacrifice to him w h o made m e ? N o w m y blessedness will be a b o v e that o f all m e n , because there will be no other [sacrifice like this]. Through m e nations will be b l e s s e d and through m e the p e o p l e s will understand that the Lord has d e e m e d the soul o f a man worthy to be a sacrifice.'
S i m i l a r r e m a r k s a b o u t I s a a c ' s h e r o i c s t a n c e are found in P s e u d o - P h i l o ' s c o n t e m porary, t h e J e w i s h historian F l a v i u s J o s e p h u s (Antiquitates 2 3
1232: 'Isaac received
The editors are of the opinion (41) that what is meant with the reference to the sea is that Isaac, by being laid upon the altar, undergoes a symbolic baptism. In this connection they refer to Paul's allegory of the passage through the Red Sea in 1 Cor. 10:1-2. This seems somewhat forced at first sight, but it is hard to come up with a more satisfactory explanation (see, however, below in the text). Livrea ( 1 8 4 - 1 8 5 ) sees here a reference to a lustration ritual before sacrifice. The most exhaustive collection of material is now L. Kundert, Die Opferung/Binciting Isaaks, 2 vols., Neukirchen 1998. A l s o some medieval rabbinic midrashim speak of Isaac's blood (or ashes) as if the sacrifice had taken place in reality. See H. Jacobson, A Commentary on Pseudo-Philo's Liber Antiquitatum Biblicarum, Leiden 1996, vol. I, 583. Translation by Jacobson, A Commentary on Pseudo-Philo 582 (slightly altered). 2 4
2 5
2 6
A New Early Christian
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
195
t h e s e w o r d s [of h i s father] w i t h j o y ' ) , a n d a l s o in later r a b b i n i c m i d r a s h i m a n d in t h e p a r a p h r a s t i c B i b l e t r a n s l a t i o n s i n t o A r a m a i c , t h e t a r g u m i m . Targum
Pseudo-Jonathan
2 7
For instance,
r e n d e r s G e n . 2 2 : 7 - 1 1 as f o l l o w s :
(7) Isaac s p o k e to h i s father Abraham and said, ' F a t h e r ! ' A n d h e said, 'Here I am, m y s o n . ' H e said, ' B e h o l d the fire and the w o o d ; but where is the lamb for the burnt offering?' ( 8 ) Abraham said, 'The Lord will c h o o s e for h i m s e l f the lamb for the burnt offering, m y s o n . ' A n d the t w o o f them w e n t together with a perfect heart. ( 9 ) T h e y c a m e to the place o f w h i c h the Lord had told him, and there Abraham (re)built the altar w h i c h A d a m had built and w h i c h had been d e m o l i s h e d b y the waters o f the Flood. N o a h rebuilt it, but it w a s d e m o l i s h e d in the generation o f the D i v i s i o n . H e arranged the w o o d upon it and tied Isaac his s o n and placed h i m o n the altar o n top o f the w o o d . ( 1 0 ) Abraham put forth h i s hand and took the knife to slaughter his son. Isaac s p o k e up and said to his father, 'Tie m e w e l l , lest I struggle b e c a u s e o f the anguish o f m y soul, with the result that a b l e m i s h will be found in your offering, and I will b e thrust into the pit o f destruction.' T h e e y e s o f Abraham w e r e l o o k i n g at the e y e s o f Isaac, and the e y e s o f Isaac w e r e l o o k i n g at the a n g e l s o n high. Isaac s a w them but Abraham did not s e e them. T h e a n g e l s o n high e x c l a i m e d , ' C o m e , s e e t w o unique o n e s ; o n e is slaughtering and o n e is b e i n g slaughtered; the o n e w h o slaughters d o e s not hesitate, and the o n e w h o is b e i n g slaughtered stretches forth his n e c k . '
28
It m a y b e c l e a r t h a t t h e m o t i f o f I s a a c ' s j o y f u l w i l l i n g n e s s t o b e a n a c c e p t a b l e sacrifice to t h e L o r d a l r e a d y h a d a l o n g t r a d i t i o n in J u d a i s m b y t h e t i m e o u r a n o n y m o u s author w r o t e his p o e m . T h e s a m e applies also to several other n o n b i b l i c a l m o t i f s in t h e p o e m . F o r i n s t a n c e , G o d ' s hand j u s t in t i m e ( i n s t e a d o f t h e angel
that restrains A b r a h a m
o f t h e L o r d in G e n . 2 2 : 1 1 - 1 2 ) is a m o t i f t h a t
w e k n o w f r o m a n c i e n t J e w i s h art: it is t o b e f o u n d o n t h e w a l l p a i n t i n g s o f t h e D u r a E u r o p u s s y n a g o g u e from t h e m i d d l e o f t h e t h i r d c e n t u r y C E , as w e l l as in t h e later floor m o s a i c in t h e s y n a g o g u e o f B e t h A l p h a ( b u t a l s o in e a r l y C h r i s t i a n pictures!).
2 7
2 9
Apart from the recent and all-encompassing work by Kundert (mentioned in note 2 4 ) , much material can also be found in the curious study by S. Spiegel, The Last Trial: On the Legends and Lore of the Command to Abraham to Offer Isaac as a Sacrifice, the Akedah, N e w York 1967 (repr. Woodstock 1993); also in G. Vermes, 'Redemption and Genesis xxii - The Binding o f Isaac and the Sacrifice o f Jesus,' in his Scripture and Tradition in Judaism, Leiden 1973, 1 9 3 - 2 2 7 . See further J. Swetnam, Jesus and Isaac. A Study of the Epistle to the Hebrews in the Light of the Akedah, Rome 1981, 2 3 - 8 0 ; A. F. Segal, 'The Sacrifice o f Isaac in Early Judaism and Christianity,' in his The Other Judaisms of Late Antiquity, Atlanta 1987, 1 0 9 - 1 3 0 ; J. Milgrom, The Binding of Isaac: The Akedah - A Primary Symbol in Jewish Thought and Art, Berkeley 1988. Translation by M. Maher, Targum Pseudo-Jonathan: Genesis (The Aramaic Bible I B ) , Edinburgh 1992, 7 9 - 8 0 ; discussion in R. Hayward, "The Present State o f Research into the Targumic Account o f the Sacrifice o f Isaac," Journal of Jewish Studies 3 2 (1981) 1 2 7 - 1 5 0 . See C.H. Kraeling, 77z Excavations at Dura-Europos VIII, 1: The Synagogue, N e w Haven 1956, Plate LI; also the discussion in R. Hachlili, Ancient Jewish Art and Archaeology in the Diaspora, Leiden 1998, 2 3 9 - 2 4 6 . For other Jewish depictions o f God's hand see K. Gross, Menschenhand und Gotteshand in Antike und Christentum, Stuttgart 1985, 3 5 4 - 3 5 7 . Some scholars think that pictures o f God's hands have a pagan or Christian origin. The Christian 2 8
2 9
196
A New Early Christian
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
A t first sight it s e e m s a s t r a n g e m o t i f that I s a a c ' s first r e a c t i o n to the m e s s a g e that his father is g o i n g to sacrifice h i m is his r e q u e s t to p r e p a r e a bridal c h a m b e r (the altar!) for h i m . T h i s m o t i f is not k n o w n from o t h e r s o u r c e s in relation to Isaac, b u t it is k n o w n from J e w i s h traditions c o n c e r n i n g I s a a c ' s female c o u n terpart, J e p h t h a ' s daughter. It is a g a i n in t h e p s e u d o - P h i l o n i c LAB that w e read that S e i l a
30
- as this w o m a n , w h o is a n o n y m o u s in the B i b l e , is called here - in
a r e a c t i o n to the m e s s a g e o f h e r father that h e h a s to sacrifice her, s a y s : ' T h e u n d e r w o r l d h a s b e c o m e m y bridal c h a m b e r ' ( 4 0 : 6 ) . T h e m o t i f o f d e a t h as a w e d d i n g a n d the u n d e r w o r l d as a bridal c h a m b e r h a s a l o n g history in G r e e k literature. T h e e d i t o r s o f o u r p o e m rightly refer to S o p h o c l e s (Antigone a n d E u r i p i d e s (Iphigeneia
Aulensis
4 5 8 ff.)
31
8 0 6 ff.)
as p o s s i b l e s o u r c e s for o u r author,
b u t it is at least as r e l e v a n t to p o i n t out that in J e w i s h w o r k s in w h i c h biblical stories are ' r e w r i t t e n ' the m o t i f o f d e a t h as m a r r i a g e to t h e u n d e r w o r l d h a d a l r e a d y e n t e r e d into t h e stories a b o u t p e r s o n s w h o h a d to die y o u n g b y s e r v i n g as sacrifices to t h e L o r d (Isaac a n d Seila), albeit u n d e r G r e e k i n f l u e n c e .
32
The
interesting t h i n g is, h o w e v e r , that in the c a s e o f Seila, as in the G r e e k tradition o f lamentatio,
the m o t i f is a c o m p l a i n t , w h e r e a s in the c a s e o f Isaac in o u r p o e m
it is a p a r a d o x i c a l e x p r e s s i o n of j o y . D o w e h a v e to a s s u m e n o w that the a u t h o r o f the p o e m w a s a c q u a i n t e d w i t h J e w i s h h a g g a d a a b o u t G e n e s i s 2 2 ? In itself that is n o t i m p o s s i b l e ,
33
b u t it w o u l d
s e e m to b e less p l a u s i b l e if it c o u l d b e d e m o n s t r a t e d that m a n y o f t h e n o n - b i b l i cal e l e m e n t s c o u l d h a v e b e e n k n o w n to h i m from his o w n C h r i s t i a n tradition. F o r in early Christianity, p r o b a b l y in r e a c t i o n to s o t e r i o l o g i c a l e l e m e n t s in t h e J e w i s h h a g g a d a o n G e n e s i s 2 2 , a Christian h a g g a d a o n the s a m e c h a p t e r b e g a n to d e v e l o p . L e t u s therefore look for e l e m e n t s in t h e s e traditions a b o u t I s a a c ' s sacrifice that m a y s h e d light on o u r n e w p o e m .
3 4
depictions of the sacrifice of Isaac are discussed by I. Speyart van Woerden, 'The Iconography o f the Sacrifice of Abraham,' VC 15 (1961) 2 1 4 - 2 5 5 . Probably She 'ilah = she w h o is demanded (by God). P. 53: 'On ne peut s'empecher de se demander si l'lphigenie d'Euripide n'interfere pas ici avec le modele biblique.' See M. Alexiou & P. Dronke, 'The Lament of Jephtha's Daughter: Themes, Traditions, Originality,' Studi medievali (3rd series) 12 (1971) 8 1 9 - 8 6 3 ; also P.W. van der Horst, 'Portraits of Biblical Women in Pseudo-Philo's Liber Antiquitatum Biblicarum,' in my Essays on the Jewish World of Early Christianity, Fribourg-Gottingen 1990, 119-120. On old mural paintings in the monastery o f St. Catherine in the Sinai, Isaac and Jephtha's daughter are often depicted side by side. An outdated but still useful survey o f motifs borrowed by Church Fathers from Jewish haggadic tradition is L. Ginzberg, Die Haggada bei den Kirchenvdtern, Amsterdam 1899; further, e. g., M. Hirshman, A Rivalry of Genius. Jewish and Christian Biblical Interpretation in Late Antiquity, Albany 1996. For what follows cf. D. Lerch, Isaaks Opferung christlich gedeutet, Tubingen 1950; S.P. Brock, 'Genesis 22 in Syriac Tradition,' Melanges Dominique Barthelemy, Fribourg-Gottingen 1981, 2 - 3 0 ; R. M. Jensen, 'The Offering of Isaac in Jewish and Christian Tradition,' Biblical Interpretation 2 (1994) 8 5 - 1 1 0 ; and M.F.G. Parmentier, Isadk gebonden - Jezus gekruisigd: 3 0
3 1
3 2
3 3
3 4
A New Early Christian
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
197
T h e n e w text on the sacrifice o f A b r a h a m d o e s in fact offer possibilities for a c o m p a r i s o n w i t h the C h r i s t i a n e x e g e t i c a l tradition o f this story. W e h a v e found eight o f t h e m :
1. Abraham
is willing
and he
rejoices
M a n y Christian e x e g e t e s e m p h a s i z e the h u m a n grief of the faithful A b r a h a m . Yet there are also a n u m b e r o f texts that p r e s e n t h i m as not o n l y faithful, but e v e n as rejoicing. E v i d e n t l y this j o y d o e s not o r i g i n a t e from n e g a t i v e feelings t o w a r d s Isaac. O n t h e contrary, Isaac is ' t h e b e l o v e d s o n . ' A b r a h a m ' s j o y at t h e sacrifice h a s a different b a c k g r o u n d . A p a r t from the m a r t y r o l o g i c a l interpretation w h i c h w e a l r e a d y k n o w from J e w i s h s o u r c e s (2 a n d 4 M a c c a b e e s ) , there is a l s o a specifically christological o n e . I r e n a e u s ( s e c o n d c e n t u r y ) , for e x a m p l e , s a y s that A b r a h a m o b e y e d G o d ' s c o m m a n d to sacrifice his son, b e c a u s e h e k n e w w h a t G o d i n t e n d e d to d o in the l o n g t e r m : " S i n c e . . . A b r a h a m w a s a p r o p h e t a n d s a w in t h e Spirit the d a y o f the L o r d ' s c o m i n g , a n d the d i s p e n s a t i o n o f his suffering, t h r o u g h w h o m b o t h h e h i m s e l f a n d all w h o , f o l l o w i n g t h e e x a m p l e o f his faith, trust in G o d , w o u l d b e s a v e d , h e rejoiced e x c e e d i n g l y . "
35
I r e n a e u s d e p a r t s from
J o h n 8:56 h e r e ( ' A b r a h a m rejoiced that h e w a s to see m y d a y ; h e s a w it a n d w a s g l a d ' ) . T h o s e w h o b e l i e v e like A b r a h a m are the C h r i s t i a n s w h o see the life a n d p a s s i o n o f J e s u s C h r i s t prefigured in t h e sacrifice o f Isaac. T h e y d o this in c o n t r a s t to the J e w s , w h o d o n o t d e r i v e the m e a n i n g o f Biblical texts from the life a n d death o f J e s u s Christ. I n t e r p r e t i n g a text from t h e E p i s t l e to the H e b r e w s , O r i g e n (third c e n t u r y ) s u g g e s t s that A b r a h a m ' s h o p e did n o t j u s t lie in the r e s u r r e c t i o n o f J e s u s Christ, b u t also in the r e s u r r e c t i o n o f I s a a c himself: " T h e A p o s t l e ( i . e . H e b . l 1:17,19)... has r e p o r t e d to u s the t h o u g h t s o f the faithful m a n , that b e l i e f in t h e r e s u r r e c t i o n b e g a n to b e h e l d a l r e a d y at that t i m e in Isaac. A b r a h a m , therefore, h o p e d for the r e s u r r e c t i o n o f Isaac a n d b e l i e v e d in a future w h i c h h a d not y e t h a p p e n e d . " I m m e d i a t e l y after this, a n t i - J e w i s h p o l e m i c s follow: " H o w , t h e n , are t h e y ' s o n s o f A b r a h a m ' w h o d o not b e l i e v e w h a t h a s h a p p e n e d in Christ, w h i c h A b r a h a m b e l i e v e d w a s to b e in Isaac? N a y , rather, that I m a y s p e a k m o r e clearly, A b r a h a m k n e w h i m s e l f to prefigure t h e i m a g e o f future truth; h e k n e w t h e C h r i s t w a s to b e b o r n from his seed, w h o also w a s to b e offered as a truer v i c t i m for the w h o l e w o r l d a n d w a s to b e raised from the d e a d . " sixth Festal
Letter
31
3 6
A t h a n a s i u s (fourth c e n t u r y ) in his
p a r a p h r a s e s the e x e g e t i c a l starting p o i n t in t h e N e w Testa
m e n t for A b r a h a m ' s j o y , J o h n 8:56: " . . . t h e p a t r i a r c h A b r a h a m rejoiced not to Oudchristelijke teksten over Genesis 22, Kampen 1996. [See now also E. Kessler, Bound by the Bible. Jews, Christians and the Sacrifice of Isaac, Cambridge 2004.] Against the Heresies IV,5,4—5. Homily 8 on Genesis. The Festal Epistles of St. Athanasius (translatedfrom the Syriac), Oxford 1854, 5 0 - 5 1 . 3 5
3 6
3 7
198
A New Early Christian Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
s e e his o w n day, b u t that o f the L o r d ; a n d w h e n h e t h u s l o n g e d for it, h e s a w it, a n d w a s g l a d . " T h i s e v o k e s the c o n t e x t o f C h r i s t i a n - J e w i s h p o l e m i c s a b o u t t h e m e s s i a n i c status o f J e s u s . I m m e d i a t e l y after the p a r a p h r a s e o f J o h n 8 A t h a n a s i u s b e g i n s to d i s c u s s the m e a n i n g o f A b r a h a m ' s sacrifice. T h e c o n t e x t is a l w a y s the d i s p u t e w i t h t h e J e w s . A t h a n a s i u s e v e n g o e s so far as to s u g g e s t that G o d s t o p p e d t h e sacrifice b e c a u s e o t h e r w i s e the J e w s w o u l d d e n y t h e prefiguration o f the sacrifice o f J e s u s Christ, as found in P s a l m 4 0 : 7 ( L X X 3 9 : 6 ) a c c o r d i n g to t h e text o f the S e p t u a g i n t : "Sacrifice a n d offering T h o u w o u l d e s t not, a b o d y T h o u hast p r e p a r e d m e . " A c c o r d i n g to A t h a n a s i u s , this text m u s t b e interpreted as a r e f e r e n c e to the i n c o m p l e t e sacrifice o f A b r a h a m a n d the i n c a r n a t i o n a n d d e a t h o f J e s u s C h r i s t respectively. If the sacrifice o f A b r a h a m h a d t a k e n p l a c e , A t h a n a s i u s a r g u e s , t h e J e w s w o u l d e l i m i n a t e P s a l m 3 9 [40] as a text in w h i c h I s a a c ' s r o l e a n d J e s u s ' role are p u t into the right p e r s p e c t i v e . Yet it w a s n o t I s a a c ' s d e a t h b u t J e s u s ' d e a t h that liberated t h e w o r l d . J e s u s raises u s from the d e a d a n d p r e p a r e s t h e j o y o f his festal b a n q u e t for u s . N e x t , A t h a n a s i u s e l a b o rates for s o m e t i m e on t h e t h e m e o f joy. W e m a y c o n c l u d e : b e c a u s e h e f o r e s a w all this, A b r a h a m rejoiced. A s e r m o n b y t h e Latin a u t h o r Z e n o o f V e r o n a (fourth c e n t u r y ) is a n e x a m p l e o n t h e C h r i s t i a n side in w h i c h n o t a t y p o l o g i c a l e x e g e s i s but a m a r t y r o l o g i c a l m o t i f e x p l a i n s A b r a h a m ' s j o y : " A b r a h a m , fully d e v o t e d , s h o w s n o sad face, n e i t h e r d o e s g r i e f p e r s u a d e h i m to cry. N o , h e rejoices a n d is glad. A n d h e is n o t afraid to risk the a c c u s a t i o n o f p a r r i c i d e , r a t h e r h e is g l a d that G o d h a s c o m m a n d e d h i m to d o this, so that h e c a n satisfy his d e v o t i o n . . . . W h e n e v e r y t h i n g is r e a d y for the m y s t e r i o u s sacrifice, the joyful father leads t h e j o y f u l son, w h o is g o i n g to b e killed b y his f a t h e r ' s right h a n d . . . In spite o f t h e terrible situation o f t h e s o n h e rejoices a n d is g l a d a n d h e j u b i l a t e s that h e h a s g a i n e d t h e L o r d . "
3 8
After this, t h e t h e m e of A b r a h a m ' s steadfastness a l m o s t b e c o m e s an e x e g e t i cal c o m m o n p l a c e . T h u s Basil o f S e l e u c i a (fifth c e n t u r y ) w r i t e s : " H o w b r a v e w a s his soul: h e did n o t w a i l , h e did n o t cry, h e did n o t g i v e in to his n a t u r e , h e w a s not torn apart b y conflicting w i s h e s , h e did n o t contort his face, h e did n o t c h a n g e his c o n v i c t i o n , h e did n o t g i v e u p his intention, h e did not utter t h o s e w o r d s t h a t c a n b e e x p e c t e d from a father w h o is a s k e d to b u t c h e r his child, h e did n o t say what nature demands.. , "
2. Abraham
3 9
tries to convince
Sara
M o s t C h r i s t i a n a u t h o r s say that A b r a h a m k e p t S a r a i g n o r a n t o f the c o m m a n d to sacrifice Isaac, b e c a u s e h e w a s afraid that she w o u l d v e t o his p l a n s . T h e r e are, h o w e v e r , q u i t e a n u m b e r o f a u t h o r s w h o r e c o r d a h y p o t h e t i c a l s p e e c h b y Sara, 3 8
Treatise on Abraham I 43 (II 10). J.M.Tevel, De preken van Basilius 1990, 1 8 4 - 1 8 5 . 3 9
van Seleucie,
diss. Vrije Universiteit, Amsterdam
A New Early Christian
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
199
to s h o w w h a t s h e m i g h t h a v e said, since S a r a d o e s n o t o c c u r in G e n e s i s 2 2 . E v e n so I s h o ' d a d o f M e r v , a n i n t h c e n t u r y c o m p i l e r o f n u m e r o u s o l d e r s o u r c e s , o b s e r v e s that o p i n i o n s a b o u t the q u e s t i o n o f w h e t h e r A b r a h a m let S a r a into t h e secret are d i v i d e d .
40
In fact t h e r e are also d o c u m e n t s that r e c o r d a real d i s c u s
sion b e t w e e n A b r a h a m a n d Sara. A m o n g the d e s c r i p t i o n s o f t h e c o m m u n i c a t i o n b e t w e e n A b r a h a m , S a r a a n d I s a a c , a large n u m b e r o f Syriac texts, e s p e c i a l l y t h e so-called " d i a l o g u e p o e m s , " a specific S y r i a c literary g e n r e , c a t c h e s t h e e y e .
4 1
H o w e v e r o u r n e w text d o e s not p r e s e n t a d i a l o g u e , b u t a m o n o l o g u e w h i c h A b r a h a m h o l d s in front o f Sara. S h e reacts b y p u t t i n g heart into Isaac. A n e x a m p l e o f a real d i a l o g u e b e t w e e n A b r a h a m a n d S a r a is t h e a n o n y m o u s D i a l o g u e P o e m on A b r a h a m a n d I s a a c .
42
A p p a r e n t l y , S a r a h a s s e n s e d the d i v i n e c o m m a n d a n d
s h e a s k s A b r a h a m w h y h e is c h o p p i n g w o o d : not b y a n y c h a n c e to sacrifice o u r s o n ? A b r a h a m o r d e r s h e r to b e silent, w h i c h S a r a i g n o r e s o f c o u r s e : You are not aware h o w I h a v e suffered the pains and travail through w h i c h he c a m e to be. S w e a r to m e by h i m that nothing will happen to him, for he is m y hope. Then g o .
To this, A b r a h a m replies: T h e m i g h t y G o d in w h o m I b e l i e v e stands surety for m e with y o u if y o u b e l i e v e firmly that your son Isaac returns s o o n and remains your consolation by his youth.
3. Sara puts
heart
into
Isaac
In o u r n e w text, S a r a p u t s h e a r t into Isaac. A d d r e s s e s b y S a r a to Isaac are r a r e .
43
A m p h i l o c h i u s o f I c o n i u m (fourth c e n t u r y ) r e c o r d s s u c h an a d d r e s s b y S a r a to Isaac,
44
in w h i c h she s a y s that s h e h o p e s that G o d will p r e v e n t the sacrifice at the
last m i n u t e a n d c h a n g e it into a " b l o o d l e s s sacrifice." S o s h e e x p e c t s that Isaac will return alive. After this a d d r e s s b y Sara, A b r a h a m q u i c k l y m a k e s off, as h e is afraid that s h e will c h a n g e h e r m i n d . R o m a n o s t h e S i n g e r (fifth-sixth c e n t u r y ) m a k e s Sara d e s c r i b e a similar feeling b e t w e e n h o p e a n d fear; she a d d r e s s e s Isaac
4 0
J.-M.Voste et C. van den Eynde, Commentaire de Isho'dadde Merv sur I'Ancien Testa ment. I. Genese, in: CSCO Vol. 126 = SS Tome 67, Louvain 1 9 5 0 , 1 7 3 (Syriac); CSCO Vol. 156 = SS Tome 75, Louvain 1955, 187 (French). Cf. S. Brock, "Two Syriac verse homilies on the binding of Isaac", Le Museon 99 (1986) 6 1 - 1 2 9 ; for a survey of the speeches by Sara in Syriac and Greek patristic literature, cp. ibid. 68. Ed. S. Brock, Sughyotho mgabyotho (= Select Dialogue Poems), Glane 1982, 7 - 1 2 . Brock, "Two Syriac verse homilies", 69. On the Patriarch Abraham, ed. L.van Rompay in: C. Datema (ed.), Amphilochii Iconiensis Opera, CCSG 3, Turnhout 1978, 2 8 0 - 2 8 1 (Coptic text with English translation). 4 1
4 2
4 3
4 4
200
A New Early Christian
at l e n g t h .
45
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
A n a n o n y m o u s Syriac h o m i l y also a l l o w s S a r a to s p e a k . In tears, she
a d m o n i s h e s Isaac to o b e y A b r a h a m : " W h e n y o u g o w i t h y o u r father, listen a n d d o all h e tells y o u , a n d if h e s h o u l d actually bind y o u , stretch o u t y o u r h a n d s to t h e b o n d s , a n d if h e s h o u l d actually sacrifice y o u , stretch out y o u r n e c k before his knife; stretch out y o u r n e c k like a l a m b , like a kid before t h e s h e a r e r . "
46
W h e n Isaac h a s r e t u r n e d safely, S a r a a d d r e s s e s h i m o n c e m o r e at the e n d o f the p o e m : " W e l c o m e , m y son, m y b e l o v e d , w e l c o m e , child o f m y v o w s ; w e l c o m e , o d e a d o n e c o m e to life, w e l c o m e . . . "
4 7
In a r e w o r k i n g o f his earlier s e r m o n on the
sacrifice o f A b r a h a m , G r e g o r y o f N y s s a e m p h a s i z e s S a r a ' s r o l e m o r e t h a n in t h e earlier t e x t .
48
T h i s is in the y e a r 3 8 5 , in the s p e e c h that h e g i v e s o n t h e o c c a s i o n
o f the p r i n c e s s P u l c h e r i a ' s d e a t h . H e tries to c o m f o r t t h e e m p r e s s Flacilla w i t h the e x a m p l e o f S a r a ' s c o u r a g e . In c o m p a r i s o n w i t h t h e earlier text, S a r a h a s a n u n u s u a l l y a c t i v e r o l e h e r e , b y m e a n s o f w h i c h h e h o p e s to set an e x a m p l e for the e m p r e s s . After h a v i n g f o r m u l a t e d an i m a g i n a r y a d d r e s s in w h i c h h e h a s S a r a a d d u c e all p o s s i b l e k i n d s o f o b j e c t i o n s to the sacrifice, G r e g o r y w r i t e s : " S a r a w o u l d c e r t a i n l y h a v e b r o u g h t forward t h e s e a n d similar t h i n g s , if s h e h a d not s e e n that w h i c h is invisible to u s w i t h h e r o w n e y e s . F o r s h e k n e w that t h e e n d o f the life in t h e flesh is the b e g i n n i n g o f the m o r e d i v i n e life for t h o s e w h o c r o s s o v e r : Isaac l e a v e s s h a d o w s b e h i n d , h e r e a c h e s truth, h e lets g o off d e l u s i o n s , er rors a n d n o i s e s a n d finds the g o o d t h i n g s that s u r p a s s e y e a n d ear a n d h e a r t (cf. 1 Cor. 2:9). L u s t will not t o r m e n t h i m n o r i m p u r e d e s i r e distract h i m , h e will n o t b e puffed u p w i t h p r i d e , n o r will a n y o t h e r o f t h e p a s s i o n s that t r o u b l e t h e soul h i n d e r h i m , b u t G o d b e c o m e s all t h i n g s to h i m (cf. 1 Cor. 15:28). T h a t is w h y s h e e a g e r l y g i v e s h e r son to G o d . "
4. Isaac
is willing
and he
4 9
rejoices
T h e r e is a n old a n d w i d e l y k n o w n tradition that Isaac h i m s e l f also l o o k e d for w a r d to t h e sacrifice w i l l i n g l y a n d w i t h j o y . T h i s s e e m s to fit in w i t h A b r a h a m ' s c o r r e s p o n d i n g attitude. T h e idea o f A b r a h a m ' s j o y is m o r e or less a s s u m e d in the text o f t h e G o s p e l o f J o h n ( 8 : 5 6 ) ; h o w e v e r , I s a a c ' s q u i e t n e s s o f m i n d or e v e n j o y c a n n o t b e d e r i v e d so easily from Scripture. B u t C l e m e n t o f R o m e (end o f the first c e n t u r y ) a l r e a d y w r i t e s : " I s a a c in confident k n o w l e d g e o f t h e future w a s g l a d l y led as a s a c r i f i c e . "
50
It is in the s a m e vein that M e l i t o o f S a r d e s ( s e c o n d c e n t u r y )
s p e a k s : " . . .Isaac w a s silent, b o u n d like a r a m , n o t o p e n i n g his m o u t h n o r uttering 4 5
Kontakion on Abraham and Isaac III 14 (in SC 99, cf. esp. 152/153 and 154/155). Brock, "Two Syriac verse homilies" 118 (Syriac) and 123 (English). Ibidem 122 and 125. Cp. his On the divinity of the Son and the Spirit and on Abraham, Gregorii Nysseni Opera [=GNO] X , 2 , Leiden 1996, 135 with his work In Pulcheriam, Gregorii Nysseni Opera IX, Leiden 1967, 469. Ibid. 4 6 9 , 1 0 - 2 0 . 1 Clement X X X L 3 . 4 6
4 7
4 8
4 9
5 0
A New Early Christian
201
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
a s o u n d . F o r not frightened b y the s w o r d n o r a l a r m e d b y the fire n o r sorrowful at t h e offering, h e carried w i t h fortitude the m o d e l o f the L o r d . "
51
Clement of
A l e x a n d r i a ( s e c o n d / t h i r d c e n t u r y ) p l a y s w i t h the e t y m o l o g y o f I s a a c ' s n a m e , w h i c h h e interpret as " l a u g h i n g , "
52
p r o b a b l y on t h e b a s i s o f t h e story o f I s a a c ' s
birth, e s p e c i a l l y G e n . 2 1 : 6 . H o w e v e r , C l e m e n t d o e s n o t d e v e l o p the t h e m e o f the l a u g h t e r a n d j o y from the birth story, b u t from G e n . 2 6 : 8 . T h e r e I s a a c ' s " f o n d l i n g " ( t h u s in the H e b r e w ) is t r a n s l a t e d into the G r e e k o f the S e p t u a g i n t as " s p o r t i n g " (paizon).
W e m a y w o n d e r w h e t h e r I s a a c ' s m a r i t a l bliss d e s c r i b e d
h e r e c a n n o t also b e c o n n e c t e d s o m e h o w w i t h his j o y a b o u t the sacrifice, since p r e c i s e l y his w e d d i n g is u s e d as a n i m a g e for the sacrifice, b o t h in o u r n e w text a n d e l s e w h e r e (see b e l o w ) . M o r e o v e r , C l e m e n t h i m s e l f i n d i c a t e s the possibility that the Biblical text in q u e s t i o n is u n d e r s t o o d as referring to the j o y o f the r e a d e r a b o u t his s a l v a t i o n (by J e s u s C h r i s t ) , like I s a a c , w h o " d e l i v e r e d from d e a t h , l a u g h e d , s p o r t i n g a n d rejoicing w i t h his s p o u s e . . . "
5 3
We conclude: Clement
links a d i s c u s s i o n o f t h e m e a n i n g o f I s a a c ' s n a m e w i t h a tradition o f I s a a c ' s j o y after (!) t h e c a n c e l l a t i o n o f the sacrifice, a l t h o u g h h e finds the e x e g e t i c a l b a s i s for this in the text o f G e n e s i s o n l y four c h a p t e r s further d o w n . B u t a j o y f u l Isaac before t h e sacrifice is o f c o u r s e m u c h m o r e r e m a r k a b l e . It s e e m s feasible that this m o t i f finds its e x e g e t i c a l starting p o i n t in G e n . 2 1 : 6 , b u t so far w e h a v e not found a text w h i c h explicitly m a k e s this c o n n e c t i o n . A m p h i l o c h i u s o f I c o n i u m (fourth c e n t u r y ) in his s e r m o n o n G e n . 2 2 r e c o r d s several s p e e c h e s o f the a c t o r s i n v o l v e d , i n c l u d i n g Isaac. A b r a h a m ' s son r e p r o a c h e s his father that h e is n o t frank w i t h h i m : I myself, I am ready, o m y father, but m y mind ponders: W h i c h is the s h e e p ? Or what is that w h i c h will be slain? Perhaps it is m e . I a m the s h e e p ! W h y don't y o u reveal to m e m y killing? W h y do y o u d e c e i v e m e as if I w e r e not w i l l i n g to offer m y s e l f to G o d ? Certainly I a m w i l l i n g , and I implore it, I rejoice and I take delight in it. I h a v e b e c o m e n o w the o n e w h o m y o u hide from m e ; for after a w h i l e G o d w i l l reveal everything to m e . A n d n o w , build a place o f sacrifice, and this will b e c o m e a t o m b for m e , for your s o n , and I shall ascend it w e l l . I myself, m y father, I shall help y o u eagerly to build m y t o m b . I shall heap up the stones. M a y m y tomb r e s e m b l e a temple, and g u i d e m e thereto. Slay m e for the O n e w h o has called y o u .
5 4
O n c e a g a i n w e h a v e a p a s s a g e h e r e w i t h o u t a t y p o l o g i c a l p e r s p e c t i v e : its s c o p e s e e m s to b e p u r e l y m a r t y r o l o g i c a l . T h e s a m e g o e s for a p a s s a g e in t h e s e r m o n b y Z e n o o f V e r o n a (fourth c e n t u r y ) a l r e a d y referred to a b o v e ,
5 5
which explains
I s a a c ' s j o y as a j o y a b o u t the faith o f A b r a h a m , w h o is frank w i t h Isaac: " T h e father, w h o felt safe a b o u t t h e faith o f his offspring, r e v e a l e d to his son, c o n c e r n -
5 1
5 2
5 3
5 4
5 5
Fragment 9. Paidagogos 1,5,22,3. Paidagogos 1,5,22,2. CCSG 3, 286/287. See note 38.
202
A New Early Christian
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
ing w h o m h e h a d n o d o u b t s , w h a t the L o r d h a d r e q u i r e d from h i m , a n d m a d e clear to h i m w h a t h e h i m s e l f h a d p r o m i s e d to t h e L o r d . T h e b o y rejoiced a b o u t the faithful father, b e i n g strongly faithful himself, a n d h e did not refuse the death w h i c h the G o d w h o h a d g i v e n life h a d o r d e r e d . T h e father rejoices a b o u t the j o y f u l b o y a n d h e j o y f u l l y b i n d s t h e h a n d s o f t h e o n l y p l e d g e o f his love, w h o offers t h e m w i l l i n g l y to h a v e t h e m c u f f e d . "
5. Isaac
regards
the sacrifice
as a
56
wedding
In t h e n e w text, Isaac m a k e s a s p e e c h before his p a r e n t s a n d h e c o m p a r e s t h e sacrifice w i t h a w e d d i n g . A p a r t from the G r e e k tradition referred to a b o v e that d e a t h is r e g a r d e d as a w e d d i n g w i t h the g o d o f the u n d e r w o r l d ( H a d e s ) , t h e b a c k g r o u n d o f this c o m p a r i s o n is the i n c o m p a t i b i l i t y o f the sacrifice o f his o n l y son w i t h t h e p r o m i s e to A b r a h a m that his d e s c e n d a n t s w o u l d b e n u m e r o u s . B y this c o m p a r i s o n , Isaac s h o w s that h e c o n t i n u e s to h a v e faith in G o d ' s p r o m i s e . W e h a v e f o u n d n o o t h e r a d d r e s s o f Isaac to b o t h his p a r e n t s , b u t his w e d d i n g is d i s c u s s e d a few t i m e s , also as an i m a g e o f t h e sacrifice. T h u s a s e r m o n o f G r e g o r y o f N y s s a (fourth c e n t u r y ) that c o n t a i n s a section w h i c h l o o k s like a paraphrase of a poem by Pseudo-Ephrem
5 7
on A b r a h a m a n d h i s sacrifice, tells
u s that initially A b r a h a m t h o u g h t that G o d w o u l d o r d e r h i m to let Isaac m a r r y : " F o r w i t h o u t d o u b t h e e x p e c t s s o m e t h i n g like t h e c o m m a n d to let his s o n m a r r y a n d to p r e p a r e t h e bridal c h a m b e r quickly, so that t h e b l e s s i n g on h i s seed c o u l d take effect."
58
In an i m a g i n a r y s p e e c h , A b r a h a m reacts to G o d ' s c o m m a n d : " I s
this the b r i d a l c h a m b e r I a m to b u i l d ? Is this the m a r i t a l bliss for w h i c h I a m to m a k e p r e p a r a t i o n s ? A m I to light a funeral p y r e for h i m instead o f a w e d d i n g l a m p ? Is it for this p u r p o s e that I shall p u t o n a w r e a t h ? Shall I b e a father o f m a n y n a t i o n s in this w a y , w h e n n o child is c o n c e d e d to m e ? "
5 9
E q u a l l y in a n
i m a g i n a r y s p e e c h b y A b r a h a m , this t i m e a d d r e s s e d to Isaac, Basil o f S e l e u c i a (fifth c e n t u r y ) w r i t e s : " B u t I, m y child, w a s a l r e a d y t h i n k i n g a b o u t y o u r w e d d i n g suite a n d bridal c h a m b e r . B u t u n w i t t i n g l y I h a v e raised m y d e a r e s t for the fire a n d the s w o r d : instead o f a w e d d i n g suite there is an altar, instead o f t h e w e d d i n g t o r c h t h e r e is the altar f l a m e . "
6. Around
60
the flames the Red Sea
roars
A c c o r d i n g to t h e e d i t o r s o f t h e p a p y r u s , Isaac u n d e r w e n t a s y m b o l i c b a p t i s m at t h e m o m e n t o f h i s sacrifice (cf. a b o v e , n. 2 3 ) . W e h a v e found this m o t i f n o w h e r e 5 6
57
5 8
5 9
6 0
C C S L X X I I , 115. On the divinity..., cf. note 48 above and G N O X,2, 1 0 9 - 1 1 3 . G N O X , 2 133,7-10. G N O X , 2 134,15-19. Tevel, Preken 1 8 4 - 1 8 5 .
A New Early Christian
203
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
else in this form. In s o m e e x p l i c a t i o n s o f G e n . 2 2 b a p t i s m is d i s c u s s e d , however.. Clement of Alexandria (second/third century) makes a connection between A b r a h a m ' s three d a y s j o u r n e y ( G e n . 2 2 : 3 - 4 ) a n d b a p t i s m ("the s e a l " ) in the n a m e o f the T r i n i t y .
61
Cyril o f J e r u s a l e m (fourth c e n t u r y ) w r i t e s that, b e c a u s e
A b r a h a m w a s p r e p a r e d to sacrifice his s o n , h e r e c e i v e d c i r c u m c i s i o n as the seal o f his faith. N o w the C h r i s t i a n s , w h o follow the faith o f A b r a h a m , b e c o m e c h i l d r e n o f A b r a h a m a n d " r e c e i v e like h i m t h e spiritual seal, b e i n g c i r c u m c i s e d b y the H o l y Spirit t h r o u g h b a p t i s m , n o t in t h e foreskin o f t h e b o d y , b u t in t h e heart."
62
S i n c e Isaac w a s o n l y eight d a y s old w h e n he w a s c i r c u m c i s e d (cf. G e n .
2 1 : 4 ) , o u r text c a n n o t refer to his c i r c u m c i s i o n ( w h i c h m i g h t t h e n h a v e b e e n linked w i t h C h r i s t i a n b a p t i s m ) . It w o u l d s e e m h i g h l y likely that w e h a v e h e r e s o m e kind o f prefiguration
o f C h r i s t i a n b a p t i s m . T h e R e d S e a is a v e r y c o m m o n
t y p e o f b a p t i s m in patristic t e x t s , as D a n i e l o u h a s s h o w n .
6 3
Is this w h a t t h e n e w
text hints at? D a n i e l o u a l s o d e m o n s t r a t e s that s o m e J e w i s h a n d s o m e C h r i s t i a n s o u r c e s link the sacrifice o f A b r a h a m a n d t h e e x o d u s from E g y p t together. T h e P a s c h a l L a m b a n d A b r a h a m ' s sacrifice b o t h h a v e a t o n i n g v a l u e .
7. God's
hand
holds
Abraham
6 4
back
T h e text o f G e n . 2 2 says clearly that the a n g e l o f the L o r d called A b r a h a m a n d m a d e h i m c h a n g e his m i n d at the last m i n u t e . In t h e n e w text, h o w e v e r , it is G o d ' s h a n d that h o l d s h i m b a c k . B r o c k h a s e d i t e d a S y r i a c h o m i l y that s a y s that " t h e L o r d ' s right h a n d o v e r s h a d o w e d as a v o i c e c a m e from o n h i g h . "
6 5
The
p h r a s e o l o g y is t a k e n from P s . 1 3 8 : 7 - 8 . W e a l r e a d y referred a b o v e to a n c i e n t d e p i c t i o n s o f A b r a h a m ' s sacrifice like t h o s e in t h e D u r a - E u r o p o s s y n a g o g u e , the synagogue mosaic of Beth Alpha and m a n y Christian sarcophagi and other artefacts that r e p r e s e n t G o d ' s h a n d in this s c e n e .
6 6
We probably have here a
J e w i s h m o t i f that a p p a r e n t l y influenced C h r i s t i a n tradition.
8. A goat/apple
as fruit
in the tree serves
as an
alternative
T h e t y p o l o g i c a l link b e t w e e n the near-sacrifice o f Isaac a n d the c o m p l e t e sacri fice o f J e s u s C h r i s t leads to different d e s i g n a t i o n s in G r e e k o f the r a m w h i c h is substituted for Isaac in the G e n e s i s story. T h o s e d e s i g n a t i o n s c o m e c l o s e to the n o t i o n o f "sacrificial l a m b . " " R a m " in G r e e k is krios. F r o m t h e c a t e n a tradition it 6 1
Stromateis V, 11,73. Catechesis V,5-6. Cp. J. Danielou, From Shadows to Reality. Studies in the Typology of the Fathers, London 1960, 1 7 5 - 2 0 1 . Ibid. 119-120. "Two Syriac verse homilies" 127, at line 77. Cp. E.Lucchesi Palli in E. Kirchbaum (Hrsg.), Lexikon der christlichen Ikonographie I, Freiburg 1968, col.24. 6 2
6 3
6 4
6 5
6 6
204
A New Early Christian
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
is e v i d e n t h o w t h e c h u r c h fathers w r e s t l e d to m a k e s e n s e o f t h e typology. M e l i t o o f S a r d e s ( s e c o n d c e n t u r y ) s a y s : " T h e L o r d w a s a l a m b (amnos) (krios) w h i c h A b r a h a m s a w c a u g h t in a S a b e k - t r e e . "
67
c e n t u r y ) c o n t r a d i c t s M e l i t o w h e n h e s a y s that the r a m (krios) a y o u n g l a m b (amnos
like t h e r a m
E u s e b i u s o f E m e s a (fourth
neos) like Isaac, b u t a r a m (krios)
was precisely not
that w a s full-grown like
the L o r d ; n o d o u b t h e o n c e a g a i n refers to t h e difference in v a l u e b e t w e e n the two sacrifices.
68
S e v e r i a n o f G a b a l a (fourth/fifth c e n t u r y )
69
u s e s the t e r m pro-
baton ( " s h e e p , " referring to Is. 5 3 : 7 ) ; the s a m e is true o f the s e r m o n b y B a s i l o f S e l e u c i a . Lastly, M e l i t o o f S a r d e s , s p e a k i n g a b o u t J e s u s in c o m p a r i s o n to I s a a c , b r i n g s all t e r m s t o g e t h e r : " A s a r a m h e w a s b o u n d . . . . as a l a m b h e w a s s h o r n , as a s h e e p h e w a s led to slaughter, a n d as a l a m b h e w a s c r u c i f i e d . . . "
70
Nowhere
in t h e c o n t e x t o f t h e e x e g e s i s o f G e n . 2 2 h a v e w e c o m e a c r o s s the w o r d
melon
( " g o a t " ) that is u s e d in the n e w text. In fact, this t e r m is n o t found a n y w h e r e in the G r e e k O l d T e s t a m e n t . It l o o k s as if the a u t h o r c o n s c i o u s l y c h o s e a n u n u s u a l t e r m , p e r h a p s b e c a u s e o f t h e p o e t i c effect or b e c a u s e o f the p l a y o n w o r d s w i t h " t h e fruit in the t r e e " ( m o r e specifically an a p p l e , also n a m e d melon
in G r e e k ) .
H o w e v e r , s o m e t h i n g is the m a t t e r with the tree, at least in the S y r i a c tradi tion. T h u s E p h r e m the S y r i a n (fourth c e n t u r y ) in his c o m m e n t a r y o n G e n . 2 2 : 1 3 w r i t e s : " A b r a h a m s a w a r a m in a tree a n d h e t o o k h i m a n d offered h i m as a sacrifice instead o f his son. T h a t there w a s n o r a m there is p r o v e d b y Isaac a s k i n g for the l a m b . A n d that there w a s n o tree there is confirmed b y t h e w o o d o n I s a a c ' s s h o u l d e r s . T h e m o u n t a i n spat out the tree a n d t h e tree t h e r a m , in o r d e r that in t h e r a m that w a s h u n g a n d that w a s m a d e into a sacrifice for A b r a h a m ' s son, the d a y w o u l d b e prefigured o f h i m w h o w a s h u n g o n the w o o d like a r a m a n d w h o tasted d e a t h for t h e s a k e o f the w h o l e w o r l d . "
71
T h e d i a l o g u e p o e m referred to
a b o v e e q u a l l y s p e a k s o f " t h e tree that h a s n o t b e e n c o n c e i v e d , w h i c h b e a r s a fruit that h a s n o t b e e n r e c e i v e d . "
72
S e b a s t i a n B r o c k p o i n t s o u t that, a c c o r d i n g to
a J e w i s h tradition, the r a m w a s o n e o f the ten t h i n g s c r e a t e d at t h e b e g i n n i n g o f creation;
73
h e also s h o w s h o w t h e "virgin b i r t h " o f the r a m c a m e to lead its o w n
life in S y r i a c tradition. C o u l d it b e that o u r n e w text w i t h its p l a y o n w o r d s w i t h " g o a t " a n d " a p p l e " is i n d e b t e d to this Syriac t r a d i t i o n ? 6 7
Fragment 10. Petit, La chaine 236, frg. 1277. Petit, La chaine 2 3 2 , frg. 1271. Fragment 9. R.M.Tonneau, Sancti Ephraem Syri in Genesim et in Exodum commentarii, in: CSCO 152, SS7\, Louvain 1955, 84. The "day" is of course a reference to John 8:56. Edward G.Matthews, Jr., The Armenian Commentary on Genesis Attributed to Ephrem the Syrian, CSCO 573, Leuven 1998, p. X X X I , ranges the fact that Abraham finds a ram in "a tree" and not in "a bush" among "Jewish readings or ideas" that can be found in both the Pseudo-Ephremitic work he edits and also in Ephrem's genuine works: he emphasizes (note 70) that "tree" is the reading of all the Targums, against the reading of the Peshitta. Sughyotho 10. "Genesis 2 2 in Syriac Tradition" 28 n. 72. 6 8
6 9
7 0
7 1
7 2
7 3
A New Early Christian
Poem on the Sacrifice of Isaac
205
Conclusions T h e n e w p o e m offers the f o l l o w i n g p o i n t s o f c o n t a c t w i t h the C h r i s t i a n e x e g e t i cal tradition o f G e n . 2 2 : A b r a h a m ' s j o y , a w e l l - k n o w n m o t i f that is c o n n e c t e d w i t h J o h n 8:56; the d i a l o g u e b e t w e e n A b r a h a m a n d S a r a (in t h e tradition m o s t l y i m a g i n a r y ) ; the d i a l o g u e b e t w e e n Sara a n d Isaac (in the tradition rarely attested); I s a a c ' s j o y , d e p a r t i n g from t h e e t y m o l o g y o f " I s a a c " a n d from G e n . 2 6 : 8 ; the w e d d i n g as an i m a g e o f t h e sacrifice; the linking o f the sacrifice w i t h b a p t i s m ; the h a n d o f G o d instead o f t h e v o i c e o f the a n g e l ; the r a m ( g o a t ) as fruit in the tree. B u t there are also differences w h i c h s e e m to indicate a certain originality o f o u r C h r i s t i a n p o e t : t h e d i a l o g u e s are m o r e like m o n o l o g u e s ; Isaac a d d r e s s e s b o t h his p a r e n t s ; Isaac a s k s to h a v e his h a i r plaited; t h e r e are a c t i v e b y s t a n d e r s at the sacrifice; t h e unsacrificed Isaac s m e l l s o f i n c e n s e (as if the sacrifice h a d b e e n c o m p l e t e d in s o m e s e n s e ) ; the p l a y on w o r d s w i t h g o a t / a p p l e . T h e s e motifs d e s e r v e further research. T h u s it s e e m s that w e h a v e h e r e a literary p r o d u c t that stands within the Greek poetic tradition,
74
b u t that h a s b e e n influenced b y other,
p r o b a b l y S y r i a c , traditions: e s p e c i a l l y the p r e s e n c e o f s p e e c h e s a n d the "fruit in the t r e e " s e e m to p o i n t into that direction.
7 4
J.B.Glenthej, Cain and Abel in Syriac and Greek Writers (4th-6th centuries), CSCO 567, Leuven 1997, p. 275 indicates that just as in the homiletic tradition related to Gen.4, dialogue is also more characteristic of Syriac than of Greek homilies on Gen.22.
The Role of Scripture in Cyril of Scythopolis' Lives of the Monks of Palestine S t u d y i n g the r o l e o f S c r i p t u r e in the w r i t i n g s o f Cyril o f S c y t h o p o l i s t u r n e d o u t to b e a less e a s y e n t e r p r i s e than I h a d anticipated. T h e r e a s o n s for that are t h e f o l l o w i n g . In his edition o f C y r i l ' s G r e e k text, E d u a r d S c h w a r t z i n c l u d e d an 1
a p p e n d i x w i t h a list o f biblical r e f e r e n c e s ( ' Z i t a t e u n d A n s p i e l u n g e n ' ) ; a n d in his a n n o t a t i o n s to P r i c e ' s translation o f the w o r k , J o h n B i n n s h a s d u l y listed the 2
biblical q u o t a t i o n s a n d a l l u s i o n s at t h e b o t t o m o f t h e p a g e s . S o at first sight it w o u l d s e e m that t h e g r o u n d h a d b e e n w e l l p r e p a r e d for the k i n d o f r e s e a r c h I w a n t e d to u n d e r t a k e . O n closer scrutiny, h o w e v e r , that t u r n e d o u t not to b e the 3
c a s e , for t h e s e t w o lists are far from b e i n g i d e n t i c a l . To m e n t i o n o n l y t h e m o s t i m p o r t a n t differences: S c h w a r t z h a s r e f e r e n c e s that o n e d o e s not find in B i n n s ; B i n n s h a s r e f e r e n c e s that S c h w a r t z d o e s n o t h a v e ; a n d s o m e t i m e s their refer e n c e s differ for o n e a n d the s a m e p a s s a g e in t h e text. M o r e o v e r , t h e r e are d o z e n s o f p a s s a g e s in Cyril w i t h u n m i s t a k a b l y biblical a l l u s i o n s w h e r e n e i t h e r S c h w a r t z n o r B i n n s n o t e s a n y reference. S o in o r d e r to p r o v i d e the p r e s e n t i n v e s t i g a t i o n w i t h t h e b a s i s it n e e d s , t h e w h o l e o f C y r i l ' s text h a d to b e read all o v e r a g a i n in s e a r c h o f biblical q u o t a t i o n s a n d a l l u s i o n s .
1
4
E. Schwartz, Kyrillos von Skythopolis ( T U G A L 49/2), Leipzig 1 9 3 9 , 2 5 4 - 2 5 6 . For serious criticisms o f Schwartz's edition see P. Thomsen, "Kyrillos von Skythopolis," O L Z 4 3 (1940) 4 5 7 - 4 6 3 ; cf. also E. Stein, "Cyrille de Scythopolis. A propos de la nouvelle edition de ses oeuvres," Analecta Bollandiana 62 (1944) 1 6 9 - 1 8 6 ; and F. J. Dolger, "E. Schwartz, Kyrillos von Skythopolis [TUGAL IV 4 9 , 2 ] , " Byz. Ztschr. 4 0 (1940) 4 7 4 - 4 8 4 . A s these critical reviews show, a new edition of Cyril based on all the evidence is a strongly felt desideratum. Important data about manuscripts and versions are to be found in H.-G. Beck, Kirche und theologische Literatur im byzantinischen Reich, Miinchen 1959, 410. Cyril of Scythopolis: The Lives of the Monks of Palestine, translated by R.M. Price with an Introduction and Notes by J. Binns, Kalamazoo 1991. A.-J. Festugiere's annotated French translation proved to be less helpful in tracing bibli cal quotes and reminiscences; see his Les moines d'Orient III 1-3, Paris 1 9 6 2 - 1 9 6 3 . In his introduction to Cyril, however, he claims to have found "216 citations de l'Ecriture" (III 1, 43). I have not been able to consult the Italian translation by R. Baldelli & L. Mortari, Cirillo di Scitopoli. Storie monastiche del deserto di Gerusalemme, Bresseo di Teolo 1990. For Cyril's use o f non-biblical sources the best survey to date is B. Flusin, Miracle et histoire dans I'oeuvre de Cyrille de Scythopolis, Paris 1983, 4 1 - 8 6 . 2
3
4
The Role of Scripture
in Cyril of
207
Scythopolis
Let u s b e g i n w i t h s o m e d r y statistics. A l t o g e t h e r I found 2 7 5 biblical refer 5
e n c e s in C y r i l ' s Lives:
133 from the ( G r e e k ) O l d T e s t a m e n t a n d 142 from t h e
6
7
N e w T e s t a m e n t . B y ' r e f e r e n c e ' I m e a n b o t h q u o t a t i o n s a n d a l l u s i o n s . O n the 2 4 3 p a g e s o f G r e e k in S c h w a r t z ' s edition this is slightly o v e r o n e reference a 8
p a g e on a v e r a g e . T h i s distribution is also m o r e or less reflected in the individual Lives: E u t h y m i u s has 107 r e f e r e n c e s on 8 0 p a g e s ; S a b a s 117 o n 116 p a g e s ; J o h n the H e s y c h a s t 2 3 on 2 2 p a g e s ; C y r i a c u s 21 o n 13 p a g e s ; T h e o d o s i u s 6 o n 5,5 p a g e s ; T h e o g n i u s 4 o n 2 p a g e s ; o n l y t h e p o o r A b r a a m i u s h a s 0 references on 4 p a g e s (but, admittedly, this Vita is n o t c o m p l e t e ) . T h e N e w T e s t a m e n t is referred to slightly m o r e often than the O l d ( 1 4 2 v e r s u s 133) from an a b s o l u t e p o i n t o f view, b u t in v i e w o f the fact that t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t is m u c h s m a l l e r than the O l d , it m a y b e said from a relative p o i n t o f v i e w that it is m u c h m o r e referred to t h a n t h e O l d T e s t a m e n t . O n t h e o t h e r h a n d , the biblical b o o k that is m o s t often q u o t e d or a l l u d e d to is a b o o k from the O l d T e s t a m e n t , n a m e l y the b o o k o f P s a l m s . W i t h its 4 0 r e f e r e n c e s it is g o o d for a l m o s t 1 5 % o f all q u o t a t i o n s a n d a l l u s i o n s , in the Life of Sabas
e v e n for 2 0 % : that Vita c o n t a i n s n o less than 2 2
r e f e r e n c e s to the b o o k o f P s a l m s . In a n o t h e r respect, t o o , the b o o k o f P s a l m s s t a n d s o u t a m o n g t h e biblical b o o k s in C y r i l ' s w r i t i n g s . W h a t I call 'favorite q u o t e s ' (or a l l u s i o n s ) , i.e. q u o t e s that o c c u r m o r e than o n c e , d e r i v e from 16 biblical b o o k s , 4 O l d T e s t a m e n t a n d 12 N e w T e s t a m e n t b o o k s , b u t it is o n l y the b o o k o f P s a l m s that h a s 4 p a s s a g e s that are q u o t e d m o r e t h a n o n c e a n d e v e n 9
s o m e v e r s e s that are q u o t e d 3 or 4 t i m e s : Ps. 4 : 8 ( 9 ) a n d P s . 1 4 4 [ 1 4 5 ] : 9 . G e n e s i s w i t h 18 r e f e r e n c e s a n d Isaiah w i t h 12 (9 o f t h e m in t h e Life ofSabasl),
further
M a t t h e w w i t h 25 r e f e r e n c e s , L u k e w i t h 18, a n d P a u l ' s Letter to t h e R o m a n s w i t h 13 are also great favorites, b u t t h e y all lag far b e h i n d the b o o k o f P s a l m s . N o w it m u s t b e a d d e d i m m e d i a t e l y that in this r e s p e c t C y r i l d o e s not d e v i a t e from o t h e r early m o n a s t i c w r i t e r s or w r i t i n g s , as s o m e r a n d o m c o m p a r i s o n s m a k e clear. If o n e t a k e s , for i n s t a n c e , t h e Historia
monachorum
in
Aegypto,
o n e will find that t h e b o o k o f P s a l m s is m o s t often referred t o , i m m e d i a t e l y followed b y the G o s p e l o f M a t t h e w , t h e n t h e b o o k o f G e n e s i s , a n d then the prophet Isaiah. 5
10
In T h e o d o r e t o f C y r r h u s ' w o r k on the Syrian m o n k s
(Philotheos
Schwartz has 2 4 0 references; Binns 182. For Festugiere see note 3. Although I do realize the inadequacy of the terminology when speaking of 'Old Testa ment' and ' N e w Testament,' for reasons of convenience I retain this traditional terminology. I found what I think are 115 quotations and 160 allusions, but I will come back later in this article to the problematic nature o f this distinction. In practice, one page sometimes contains a whole cluster of citations and/or allusions, whereas sometimes these are completely or almost completely absent in a large number of con secutive pages (e.g. Sab. 3 3 - 3 8 [pp. 118-128 Schw.]). Especially in the long passages that Cyril devotes to the christological controversies, scriptural references are completely lacking (which might be indicative o f the lack o f biblical support for the positions o f the warring parties). Only Gen. 25:8 is referred to 4 times as well. See the Index o f biblical passages in P. W. van der Horst, Woestijn, begeerte en geloof. De Historia monachorum in Aegypto (ca. 400 na Chr.), Kampen 1995, 1 2 4 - 1 2 6 . 6
7
8
9
1 0
208 historia),
The Role of Scripture
in Cyril of
Scythopolis
the p i c t u r e is o n l y slightly different: A g a i n the b o o k o f P s a l m s is w a y
out in front, followed b y G e n e s i s a n d M a t t h e w , b u t this t i m e the G o s p e l o f J o h n scores higher than Isaiah.
11
In J o h n C a s s i a n ' s Conlationes
the book of Psalms
easily w i n s o v e r all other biblical b o o k s in t e r m s o f frequency o f q u o t e s a n d a l l u s i o n s , f o l l o w e d b y M a t t h e w , Isaiah a n d G e n e s i s , b u t this t i m e P a u l ' s epistle to the R o m a n s s c o r e s as high as I s a i a h .
12
In P a l l a d i u s ' Historia
Lausiaca,
how
ever, t h e G o s p e l s o f M a t t h e w a n d L u k e s c o r e h i g h e s t , f o l l o w e d b y t h e b o o k o f 13
P s a l m s a n d G e n e s i s (Isaiah b e i n g a l m o s t a b s e n t ) . A n d , finally, a quite different e x a m p l e : in an a n t h o l o g y o f texts a b o u t t h e d e s e r t fathers in D u t c h translation that I c o m p i l e d r e c e n t l y a n d w h i c h c o m p r i s e s a w i d e v a r i e t y o f m a t e r i a l from t h e fourth t h r o u g h sixth c e n t u r i e s , w e find a situation that is, interestingly e n o u g h , c o m p l e t e l y parallel to w h a t w e find in Cyril: t h e r e are 2 9 0 q u o t a t i o n s a n d a l l u s i o n s in s o m e 2 8 0 p a g e s o f text (so a g a i n a p p r o x i m a t e l y o n e r e f e r e n c e a p a g e ) ; the h i g h e s t s c o r e is that o f the b o o k o f P s a l m s , f o l l o w e d b y t h e G o s p e l s o f M a t t h e w a n d L u k e , t h e n b y Isaiah a n d G e n e s i s .
1 4
A n d a look at o t h e r w o r k s
from the w o r l d o f early m o n a s t i c i s m a l m o s t invariably y i e l d s the s a m e or at least a v e r y similar p i c t u r e .
15
N o w it s h o u l d n o t surprise u s that M a t t h e w is t h e G o s p e l that is m o s t often referred to. B e i n g the first G o s p e l in t h e c a n o n i c a l order, it w a s r e a d m o s t often in s e r v i c e s a n d h e n c e b e c a m e the b e s t k n o w n a n d m o s t frequently q u o t e d o f t h e four G o s p e l s in t h e a n c i e n t c h u r c h , to b e g i n w i t h .
1 6
M o r e o v e r , it is e s p e c i a l l y t h e
S e r m o n o n the M o u n t , w i t h its h i g h d e m a n d s - w h i c h o n l y M a t t h e w h a s - that w a s a n e n o r m o u s s o u r c e o f inspiration for the early m o n k s ; h e n c e t h e n u m b e r o f 17
q u o t a t i o n s from M a t t h e w 5 - 7 in o u r s o u r c e s is relatively l a r g e . A n d it s t a n d s to r e a s o n that in g e n e r a l a G o s p e l w i t h stories a b o u t J e s u s w a s m o r e o f a favorite a n d therefore b e t t e r k n o w n a m o n g t h e desert fathers a n d their b i o g r a p h e r s t h a n 11
See the Index in P. Canivet & A. Leroy-Molinghen (edd.), Theodoret de Cyr: Histoire des moines de Syrie II (SC 257), Paris 1979, 3 1 9 - 3 2 2 . See B. Ramsey, John Cassian: The Conferences, N e w York 1997, 8 6 1 - 8 8 2 . See G.J.M. Bartelink, Palladio: La storia lausiaca, Milan 1974, 407^108. See P. W. van der Horst, De woestijnvaders, Amsterdam 1998, 2 8 1 - 2 8 5 . D. Burton-Christie, The Word in the Desert. Scripture and the Quest for Holiness in Early Christian Monasticism, N e w York - Oxford 1993, 97: "All agree that the most frequently cited Old Testament texts are the Psalms, followed by the books o f Genesis and Isaiah." Cf. H. Bacht, "Vom Umgang mit der Bibel im altesten Monchtum," Theologie und Philosophic 41 (1966) 5 5 8 - 5 5 9 : Psalms, Isaiah, and Matthew are the top three in the Apophthegmatapatrum. It should be added here that already in the N e w Testament the books o f Psalms, Isaiah and Genesis are the most often quoted books from the Old Testament, although the differences with other books are far less outspoken than in the literature of the desert fathers. E.g., E. Romero Pose, "Matthieu," in Dictionnaire encyclopedique du christianisme ancien, ed. A. di Berardino, vol. 2, Paris 1990, 1 5 8 9 - 1 5 9 0 . See K. McVey, "The Chreia in the Desert: Rhetoric and the Bible in the Apophthegmata Patrum" in A.J. Malherbe et al. (eds.), The Early Church in Its Context. Essays in Honor of Everett Ferguson, Leiden 1998, 245, who refers to L. Regnault, "The Beatitudes in the Apoph thegmata Patrum," Eastern Churches Review 6 (1974) 2 3 - 4 3 (non vidi). 1 2
1 3
14
15
1 6
1 7
The Role of Scripture
in Cyril of
209
Scythopolis
the m o r e ' t h e o r e t i c a l ' w r i t i n g s o f the N e w T e s t a m e n t . B u t w h a t m a d e the b o o k s o f G e n e s i s , P s a l m s a n d Isaiah to b e preferred to o t h e r biblical b o o k s ? A s for the b o o k o f G e n e s i s , there c a n b e little d o u b t that, a p a r t from its b e i n g b e s t k n o w n d u e to its p o s i t i o n as the first b o o k in t h e B i b l e , it w a s e s p e c i a l l y t h e stories a b o u t t h e p i o n e e r s o f faith, the P a t r i a r c h s , that m a d e this b o o k a particular favorite w i t h t h e early m o n k s . T h e P a t r i a r c h s ' r o a m i n g t h r o u g h the N e a r E a s t e r n d e s e r t s at G o d ' s c o m m a n d c a n n o t h a v e failed to m a k e i m p a c t o n the m i n d s o f the d e s e r t fathers a n d their a d m i r e r s . T h e fact that Cyril r e p e a t e d l y a l l u d e s to the w o r d i n g o f G e n . 2 5 : 8 , w h e r e A b r a h a m ' s d e a t h is d e s c r i b e d , w h e n h e w r i t e s a b o u t the d e a t h o f S a b a s (Sab. 7 0 [ 1 7 1 , 2 9 ] ) ,
18
o f E u t h y m i u s (Euth.
3 9 [59,14]),
a n d o f T h e o d o s i u s (Theod. 4 [ 2 3 9 , 2 6 ] ) , m a k e s clear that h e r e g a r d e d t h e s e saints as w o r t h y followers o f this g r e a t Patriarch. In this c o n n e c t i o n J o h n B i n n s rightly s p e a k s o f " t h e i m p o r t a n c e o f d e m o n s t r a t i n g that the lives o f t h e saints c o n f o r m to biblical m o d e l s . "
1 9
A s far as Isaiah is c o n c e r n e d , w e s h o u l d r e m i n d o u r s e l v e s o f t h e fact that " t h e c o n c e p t o f the w i l d e r n e s s b l o s s o m i n g like t h e r o s e is d e v e l o p e d in Isaiah as n o w h e r e e l s e . "
2 0
B o t h at t h e b e g i n n i n g a n d at the e n d o f the Life of
Sabas
(Sab. 6 [90,9] a n d 9 0 [200,6]) f a m o u s Isaianic p a s s a g e s s u c h as " L e t the desert rejoice a n d b l o s s o m like t h e lily" (Is. 3 5 : 1 ) a n d " t h e L o r d will m a k e h e r wilder n e s s like E d e n a n d h e r desert like t h e g a r d e n o f t h e L o r d " (Is. 5 1 : 3 ) are q u o t e d or a l l u d e d to. N o w m o s t o f t h e desert fathers will n o t h a v e p o s s e s s e d a B i b l e . e x p e n s i v e a n d s c a r c e i t e m s , u s u a l l y o n l y a c c e s s i b l e in l i b r a r i e s , o f b o o k s in g e n e r a l w a s often f r o w n e d u p o n b y t h e s e m o n k s .
2 3
22
21
Books were
and possession
B u t they certainly
k n e w t h e s e texts from their w e e k l y g a t h e r i n g s w h e r e the S c r i p t u r e s w e r e read. A n d that a p p l i e s a fortiori
to the b o o k o f P s a l m s . P s a l m s w e r e often learnt b y
heart in o r d e r to b e s u n g in the w e e k l y s e r v i c e s ,
1 8
24
but n o t o n l y that. P s a l m s w e r e
Numbers between brackets after the chapter number refer to page and line in Schwartz's edition. J. Binns, Ascetics and Ambassadors of Christ. The Monasteries of Palestine, 314-631, Oxford 1994, 6 1 . See also D. Krueger, "Typological Figuration in Theodoret of Cyrrhus's Religious History and the Art o f Postbiblical Narrative," JECS 5 (1997) 3 9 3 - 4 1 9 . J.F.A. Sawyer, The Fifth Gospel. Isaiah in the History of Christianity, Cambridge 1996, 56. See Y. Hirschfeld, The Judean Desert Monasteries in the Byzantine Period, N e w Haven and London 1992, 96. H. Y. Gamble, Books and Readers in the Early Church, N e w Haven & London 1995, 1 7 0 - 1 7 4 , on early monastic libraries. Burton-Christie, The Word in the Desert 115-116. H. Dorries, "Die Bibel im altesten Monchtum," TLZ12 (1947) 217 ( 2 1 5 - 2 2 2 ) . Burton-Christie, The Word in the Desert 117-118. See on this aspect now especially the most important monograph on Sabas ever, namely J. Patrich, Sabas, Leader of Palestinian Monasticism. A Comparative Study of Eastern Monasticism, Fourth to Seventh Centuries, Washington 1995, 2 2 9 - 2 3 9 and 264. 1 9
2 0
2 1
2 2
2 3
2 4
210
The Role of Scripture
in Cyril of
Scythopolis
also m e m o r i z e d b e c a u s e the desert fathers ( a n d also the o t h e r m o n k s ) u s e d t h e m for their m e d i t a t i o n s .
25
W h a t is i m p o r t a n t is that
"[fjirstly it w a s the Psalter alone that they used, not b e c a u s e they lacked anything e l s e but b e c a u s e there w a s a g r o w i n g c o n v i c t i o n in the fourth century in both secular and monastic circles that the ' s o n g s o f the Spirit,' as they w e r e considered to be, w e r e to b e preferred to mere ecclesiastical c o m p o s i t i o n s . ( . . . ) Secondly, this attitude towards the inspiration o f the Psalter c o u p l e d with the fact that the aim w a s to fill day and night with unbroken prayer meant that, whereas previously it had b e e n u s e d selectively, appropriate p s a l m s for different o c c a s i o n s and situations b e i n g drawn from it, it w a s n o w to be c o m m i t t e d to m e m o r y and for the first time used in its entirety, and it c a m e to b e regarded as a great and w o r t h y a c c o m p l i s h m e n t to g o through the w h o l e Psalter in the space o f twenty-four hours: in effect, the h y m n b o o k o f the secular church b e c a m e the prayer b o o k o f monasti cism."
2 6
T h i s m a d e t h e b o o k o f P s a l m s not o n l y the b e s t k n o w n b o o k o f t h e B i b l e in t h e s e circles b u t also t h e m o s t b e l o v e d , since it p l a y e d s u c h a pivotal role in their s t r u g g l e for spiritual g r o w t h . F o r o u r p u r p o s e s it is not irrelevant to n o t e that, as far as Cyril h i m s e l f is c o n c e r n e d , in an a u t o b i o g r a p h i c a l n o t e in the Vita o f S a b a s h e tells u s that t h e great saint u r g e d his [Cyril's] father: " T e a c h h i m the Psalter, for I n e e d h i m ! " (Sab. 7 5 [ 1 8 0 , 2 3 ] ) .
27
Cyril u s e s a r e m a r k a b l y w i d e variety o f f o r m u l a s to i n t r o d u c e q u o t a t i o n s from S c r i p t u r e , w h i c h i n c l u d e "that text o f S c r i p t u r e s a y s . . . " (Euth.
3 5 [53,14]),
" S c r i p t u r e calls s u c h a p e r s o n . . . " (Sab. 2 8 [ 1 1 3 , 1 4 ] ) , " t h e G o s p e l s a y i n g o f the L o r d that r u n s . . . " (Sab. 2 [ 8 8 , 8 - 9 ] ) , " t h a t terryfying threat that r u n s . . . "
(Sab.
Prol. [ 8 6 , 1 4 ] , i n t r o d u c i n g M a t . 2 5 : 2 6 - 2 7 ) , " t h e c u r s e o f the P r o p h e t w h o s a y s ..." (Sab. 2 [ 8 8 , 1 5 ] ) , " t h e D a v i d i c s a y i n g . . . " (Sab. w i t h w h a t is w r i t t e n . . . " (Sab. (Sab.
12 [95,13]), " i n a c c o r d a n c e
12 [95,17]), " w i t h the w o r d s o f t h e p r o p h e t . . . "
16 [ 9 9 , 1 5 ] ) , " w h a t t h e p r o p h e t a d v i s e s . . . " (Sab.
3 9 [ 1 2 9 , 1 8 ] ) , " a s the
a p o s t l e s a y s . . . " (Sab. 4 0 [ 1 3 1 , 1 5 ] ) , " t h e p r e c e p t that s a y s . . . " (Sab. 4 7 [ 1 3 8 , 3 ] ) , "it is w e l l said in d i v i n e Scripture that . . . " (Sab. 52 [ 1 4 4 , 2 5 ] ) , " D a v i d s a y s . . . " (Cyr. 10 [ 2 2 8 , 2 9 ] ) , " t h e G o s p e l s a y s . . . " (Cyr. 3 [ 2 2 4 , 4 - 5 ] ) e t c .
2 8
W h a t is strik
ing h e r e is that w o r d s for ' s a y i n g ' are u s e d m u c h m o r e frequently than w o r d s for ' w r i t i n g ' ('it is w r i t t e n ' o c c u r s o n l y v e r y r a r e l y ) . Is this a reflection o f the fact that t h e early m o n k s w e r e e x p o s e d to S c r i p t u r e m o r e often b y h e a r i n g t h a n b y r e a d i n g it? M o s t p r o b a b l y s o . 2 5
2 9
Burton-Christie, The Word in the Desert 97, 112-113. P. F. Bradshaw, Daily Prayer in the Early Church, London 1981, 94. Biblical books completely absent from Cyril's writings are, from the Old Testament, Leviticus, 2 Samuel, 1 and 2 Chronicles, Ezra, Nehemia, Esther, Lamentations, and 7 of the 12 Minor Prophets (Hosea, Obadiah, Micha, Nahum, Zephaniah, Haggai, Malachi); from the N e w Testament, the Epistles to Titus and Philemon, 1+2+3 John, and the Apocalypse of John. Cf. Bacht, "Vom Umgang mit der Bibel" 5 5 9 - 5 6 0 , w h o deals with the various quotation formula's in the Apophthegmata patrum. It should be borne in mind that many monks were illiterate as most other people of their times; see Gamble, Books and Readers in the Early Church 1 —4-1. Deviations from the biblical 2 6
2 7
2 8
2 9
The Role of Scripture
in Cyril of
211
Scythopolis
M o r e often, h o w e v e r , biblical q u o t a t i o n s are not m a r k e d as such, but are i n t e r w o v e n w i t h C y r i l ' s text. F o r i n s t a n c e , in his farewell a d d r e s s on his d e a t h b e d E u t h y m i u s s a y s : " W h i l e h u m i l i t y exalts to a h e i g h t , l o v e p r e v e n t s falling from this height, since h e w h o h u m b l e s h i m s e l f will b e e x a l t e d a n d love n e v e r fails" (Euth.
3 9 [ 5 8 , 9 - 1 0 ] ) , t h e latter part o f this s a y i n g b e i n g n o t h i n g else than
literal q u o t e s from L u k e 18:14 a n d 1 Cor. 13:8. In a n o t h e r story an a n g e l a p p e a r s to S a b a s , s h o w s h i m a c a v e a n d s a y s : " M a k e it y o u r h o m e a n d h e w h o g i v e s food to the a n i m a l s a n d to t h e y o u n g r a v e n s that i n v o k e h i m will h i m s e l f t a k e c a r e o f y o u " (Sab.
15 [ 9 8 , 4 - 6 ] ) , w h i c h is for the m o s t part a literal q u o t e from
P s a l m 1 4 6 [ 1 4 7 ] : 9 . O n c e S a b a s said to his d i s c i p l e A g a p e t u s , w h o h a d fallen a s l e e p : " D r i v e h e a v y sleep from y o u r e y e s a n d c a r e l e s s n e s s from y o u r h e a r t to s a v e y o u r s e l f as a gazelle from the s n a r e s a n d as a bird from t h e t r a p " (Sab.
23
[ 1 0 7 , 2 0 ] ) , a g a i n h a l f o f the s a y i n g b e i n g a q u o t e from Prov. 6:5 ( L X X ) . A n d m a n y more examples could be given. T h i s b r i n g s us to t h e slippery a r e a o f a l l u s i o n s . M a k i n g a h a r d a n d fast distinc tion b e t w e e n q u o t a t i o n s a n d a l l u s i o n s is n o t o r i o u s l y difficult. A s t h e e x a m p l e s j u s t m e n t i o n e d m a k e clear, it is t o o s i m p l e to state that o n l y citations that are m a r k e d off clearly from their c o n t e x t b y q u o t a t i o n f o r m u l a s c o u n t as q u o t a t i o n s . B u t then the q u e s t i o n arises: W h e n d o e s a q u o t a t i o n that is n o t p r e c e d e d b y a q u o t a t i o n f o r m u l a c e a s e to b e a q u o t a t i o n a n d b e c o m e a n a l l u s i o n ? T h a t is often h a r d to say, partly b e c a u s e t h e r e is so far n o g e n e r a l l y a c c e p t e d definition o f w h a t an allusion is. T h i s p r o b l e m is strikingly d e m o n s t r a t e d b y D o u g l a s B u r t o n C h r i s t i e in his i m p o r t a n t b o o k The Word in the Desert?® In this s t u d y on the role o f Scripture in the sayings o f t h e desert fathers (Apophthegmata
Patrum),
h e lists
in a v e r y r e v e a l i n g a p p e n d i x the n u m b e r s o f biblical q u o t a t i o n s a n d a l l u s i o n s as n o t e d in four editions a n d t r a n s l a t i o n s o f t h e apophthegmata.
There one can
s e e that C o t e l i e r n o t e d 145 o f t h e m , Ward 9 3 , R e g n a u l t 2 2 4 , a n d M o r t a r i n o less than 8 3 2 ! To g i v e o n e m o r e c o n c r e t e e x a m p l e : C o t e l i e r n o t e d 6 r e f e r e n c e s to the b o o k o f G e n e s i s , W a r d 4 , R e g n a u l t 2 0 , a n d M o r t a r i 5 2 . N o w , fortunately, for o u r p r e s e n t p u r p o s e it is n o t n e c e s s a r y to g o into the details o f the d e b a t e a b o u t w h a t an allusion is. Suffice it to say that a l l u s i o n s - w h e t h e r b r o a d l y or n a r r o w l y defined - far o u t n u m b e r t h e q u o t a t i o n s in C y r i l ' s w o r k . H i s l a n g u a g e is i m b u e d w i t h biblical diction, p h r a s e o l o g y , i m a g e r y , a n d all sorts o f r e m i n i s c e n c e s . " T h e B i b l e is u s e d consistently a n d frequently in all parts o f his L i v e s . "
31
A s if to m a k e
this p r o g r a m m a t i c a l l y clear, in t h e o p e n i n g p a r a g r a p h o f his w o r k Cyril m a k e s u s e o f a l o n g c o n c a t e n a t i o n o f five biblical p a s s a g e s w i t h o u t m a r k i n g t h e m as s u c h ( e x c e p t for o n e e l e m e n t ) . text in Cyril may partly be due to quoting from memory, partly also to changing the text on purpose. O f the latter w e find a fine instance in Theogn. 1 ( 2 4 3 , 1 - 2 ) where a reference to the cross o f Jesus is inserted into an otherwise literal quotation from Job 38:11. Burton-Christie, The Word in the Desert 3 0 1 - 3 0 3 . Binns, Ascetics and Ambassadors of Christ 60. 3 0
31
212
The Role of Scripture
in Cyril of
Scythopolis
L e t m e g i v e o n e or t w o o t h e r e x a m p l e s , the first o n e b o r r o w e d from J o h n B i n n s ' b o o k o n t h e J u d a e a n desert f a t h e r s .
32
In his story o f the foundation o f
C a s t e l l i o n , Cyril n o t e s that there w e r e large n u m b e r s o f d e m o n s l u r k i n g t h e r e that S a b a s h a d to struggle w i t h . S o m e s h e p h e r d s w e r e w i t n e s s e s to this s t r u g gle: " T h e r e w e r e s h e p h e r d s in the desert r o u n d that m o u n t a i n , w h o w e r e out in the fields k e e p i n g w a t c h o v e r their flock; m a r k i n g t h e t u m u l t ( . . . ) t h e y w e r e e x t r e m e l y frightened a n d said to e a c h other: ' ( . . . ) L e t u s m a k e o u r w a y to the hill a n d s e e w h a t h a s h a p p e n e d " ' (Sab.
27 [111,6-11]). T h e extremely close
v e r b a l similarity w i t h the s c e n e o f t h e s h e p h e r d s in the fields o f B e t h l e h e m in the G o s p e l o f L u k e 2 : 8 - 1 5 c a n n o t e s c a p e o n e ' s n o t i c e a n d it is clear that pur posefully Cyril h a s s h a p e d the narrative after this biblical m o d e l . T h e s e c o n d e x a m p l e is quite different. T h e o p e n i n g line o f the Life of Sabas
(Prol. [85,12])
r u n s , " B l e s s e d b e t h e G o d a n d F a t h e r o f o u r L o r d J e s u s C h r i s t , " w h i c h is a literal q u o t e o f the o p e n i n g line o f b o t h P a u l ' s S e c o n d L e t t e r to the C o r i n t h i a n s (1:3) a n d his E p i s t l e to the E p h e s i a n s (1:3). S o right from t h e start o f this w o r k on C y r i l ' s favorite saint a biblical or a p o s t o l i c n o t e is s o u n d e d . L e t us n o w h a v e a c l o s e r look at s o m e o f t h e p a s s a g e s in t h e Life of
Sabas
w h e r e C y r i l q u o t e s explicitly from S c r i p t u r e to see h o w biblical m a t e r i a l func tions in this i m p o r t a n t d o c u m e n t . T h e first p a s s a g e is s o m e w h a t a m b i g u o u s since h e r e Cyril d o e s explicitly refer to the B i b l e b u t it is n o t a real q u o t e . T h e p a s s a g e r u n s as f o l l o w s : " S a b a s [was] p r e d e s t i n e d b y G o d from t h e w o m b a n d f o r e k n o w n before his creation like the great p r o p h e t J e r e m i a h " (2 [ 8 7 , 2 1 - 2 3 ] ) . T h e r e is little verbal o v e r l a p here w i t h the G r e e k text o f Jer. 1:5, but the reference is m a d e explicit e n o u g h , as if Cyril w a n t s to m a k e s u r e that t h e r e a d e r will t a k e n o t i c e o f t h e parallel b e t w e e n S a b a s a n d ' t h e great p r o p h e t J e r e m i a h . ' M a y b e , h o w e v e r , the i m p l i c a t i o n is also that, j u s t as the a p o s t l e P a u l d r a w s a parallel b e t w e e n his o w n v o c a t i o n a n d that o f J e r e m i a h in G a l . 1:15, the s a m e c a n b e c l a i m e d for S a b a s as w e l l .
3 3
B e that as it m a y , h e r e a g a i n w e o b s e r v e " t h e i m p o r
t a n c e o f d e m o n s t r a t i n g that the lives o f the saints c o n f o r m to biblical m o d e l s . "
3 4
T h i s m o t i f is also clearly to b e s e e n in the story o f S a b a s ' h e a l i n g o f the w o m a n w i t h a h a e m o r r h a g e (Sab. 6 2 [ 1 6 3 , 1 4 - 1 6 4 , 1 0 ) w h i c h is so e v i d e n t l y p a t t e r n e d o n t h e G o s p e l story of J e s u s ' h e a l i n g o f the w o m a n w h o suffered from the s a m e a i l m e n t ( M a t . 9 : 2 0 - 2 2 ) . T h e s a m e a p p l i e s to the story o f E u t h y m i u s ' successful p r a y e r for rain d u r i n g a long p e r i o d o f d r o u g h t (Euth. 25 [ 3 8 , 1 - 3 9 , 1 7 ) w h i c h is m o d e l l e d u p o n t h e story o f E l i a h ' s p r a y e r for rain in 1 K i n g s 18:41—45. 3 2
35
Binns, Ascetics and Ambassadors of Christ 62. Cf. the references to the birth o f Samuel in the birth stories of Euthymius (Euth. 2 [ 8 - 9 ] ) and Sabas (Sab. 1 [87,4]), with the comments by Flusin, Miracle et histoire 9 1 - 9 2 . Binns, Ascetics and Ambassadors of Christ 61. Krueger, "Typological Figuration in Theodoret o f Cyrrhus's Religious History" 3 9 3 - 3 9 4 , states: "Theodoret's primary tool for placing the local saints into a context comprehensible to his readers was the device of biblical typology, the linking o f his modern-day heroes with biblical figures." See Flusin, Miracle et histoire 1 5 5 - 1 5 8 . 3 3
3 4
3 5
The Role of Scripture
in Cyril of
213
Scythopolis
In t h e s a m e c h a p t e r Cyril h a s S a b a s t h i n k o f " t h e G o s p e l s a y i n g o f the L o r d (ten euangeliken
apophasin
tou Kyriou)
w h o says, ' N o o n e w h o puts his hand
to t h e p l o u g h a n d t u r n s b a c k is fit for t h e k i n g d o m o f h e a v e n , ' " w h i c h is from 36
the G o s p e l o f L u k e 9 : 6 2 (albeit w i t h s o m e v a r i a n t s ) , a n d S a b a s also t h i n k s : " I a m afraid ( . . . ) o f e a r n i n g t h e c u r s e o f the p r o p h e t that r u n s , ' A c c u r s e d a r e t h e y w h o turn from T h y c o m m a n d m e n t s ' " ( 2 [ 8 8 , 8 - 1 5 ] ) , a c u r s e w h i c h is a q u o t e not from a p r o p h e t i c b o o k b u t from a P s a l m ( P s . 118[119]:21). H o w e v e r , on the v e r y n e x t p a g e Cyril m e n t i o n s D a v i d b y n a m e a s t h e a u t h o r o f t h e P s a l m s , w h e r e P s . 2 4 [ 2 5 ] : 1 8 is i n t r o d u c e d a s a ' D a v i d i c s o n g ' (Davitike Sab.
melodia,
in
4 [ 8 9 , 8 ] ; further Sab. 12 [ 9 5 , 1 3 ] , Cyr. 10 [ 2 2 8 , 3 0 ] ) , s o either h e m i s t a k e n l y
t h i n k s that t h e p a s s a g e d e r i v e s from o n e o f t h e p r o p h e t i c b o o k s o f the B i b l e or, m o r e probably, h e r e g a r d s D a v i d a s a p r o p h e t , w h i c h is also a N e w T e s t a m e n t motif: for i n s t a n c e , in A c t s 2 : 3 0 D a v i d is explicitly called ' a p r o p h e t , ' a n d in M a r k 12:36 (cf. M a t . 2 2 : 4 3 ^ - 5 ) D a v i d is said t o h a v e s p o k e n ' t h r o u g h t h e H o l y Spirit,' w h i c h qualifies h i m a s a p r o p h e t .
37
A g a i n s o m e c h a p t e r s later, w h e n
Cyril d e s c r i b e s S a b a s ' solitary life in t h e C o u t i l a a n d R o u b a desert, P s . 5 4 [ 5 5 ] : 8 ( " B e h o l d , I h a v e w a n d e r e d afar a n d l o d g e d in t h e d e s e r t " ) is i n t r o d u c e d a s a ' D a v i d i c s a y i n g ' (Davitikon c h a p t e r P s . 4 5 [46]:
logion),
w h e r e a s s o m e lines further o n in t h e s a m e
11 ( " B e still a n d k n o w that I a m G o d " ) is j u s t called ' w h a t is
w r i t t e n ' (to gegrammenon;
12 [ 9 5 , 1 3 - 1 7 ] ) . A s t o t h e latter c a s e , h o w e v e r , it h a s
to b e r e m a r k e d that t h e L X X text o f Ps. 5 4 d o e s m e n t i o n t h e n a m e o f D a v i d in v . l , w h e r e a s that n a m e is l a c k i n g in P s . 4 5 . Still in t h e s a m e p a r a g r a p h there is a g a i n a q u o t e from L u k e , n o w n o t i n t r o d u c e d a s a ' G o s p e l s a y i n g o f t h e L o r d ' b u t a s s o m e t h i n g " G o d h a s s a i d " (ho theos
... eipon),
w h e r e a s w h a t follows is
Jesus' word, "Behold, I have given y o u authority to tread underfoot snakes and s c o r p i o n s a n d ( a u t h o r i t y ) o v e r all t h e p o w e r o f the e n e m y " ( L u k e 10:19 in Sab. 12 [ 9 5 , 2 5 - 2 7 ] ) . N o w J e s u s is m o r e often called G o d b y C y r i l , s o ' G o d ' m a y refer to J e s u s h e r e , b u t it is also p o s s i b l e t o s e e h e r e a r e f e r e n c e t o t h e i d e a that G o d h i m s e l f is t h e o n e w h o inspired t h e biblical a u t h o r s . A l l this e v i d e n c e , h o w e v e r , also s e e m s t o p o i n t t o a certain p e n c h a n t for stylistic v a r i a t i o n w i t h Cyril. B e that a s it may, w h a t is c o m m o n t o all t h e s e q u o t e s a n d their c o n t e x t s is t h e e m i n e n t l y practical o r i e n t a t i o n in t h e u s e that is m a d e o f S c r i p t u r e . E x e g e t i c a l d e b a t e s a r e a v o i d e d , interpretive subtleties e s c h e w e d , theoretical e x e r c i s e s r e j e c t e d , for the o n l y t h i n g that c o u n t s is a strong practical a n d ethical c o m m i t m e n t to Scripture, " d o i n g t h e W o r d . "
3 8
A s B u r t o n - C h r i s t i e h a s said: " I n t e r p r e t a t i o n
for t h e desert fathers a l w a y s i n v o l v e d t h e possibility o f p e r s o n a l a n d c o m m u n a l
3 6
Schwartz prints the following text o f the quote in Cyril: ou&Eig Ejupodcbv tf)v %£IQO. avxov Ejf OQOTQOV xod axoacpEig Eig i d omaco evOexog EOXLV Eig TTJV paaiAEiav xcov ouoavcov, whereas Luke 9:62 according to the Nestle-Aland reconstruction runs: ov6eLg em|3aX(iov xrrv XEZQO. en' aooxoov xai (3A.EJT0OV Eig i d omaco Ei39Ex6g EOXIV xfi PaaiAeLq TOXJ GeoC. 3 7
3 8
On David as a prophet see also Barnabas 12:10. Burton-Christie, The Word in the Desert 1 5 1 - 1 5 2 .
214
The Role of Scripture
in Cyril of
Scythopolis
t r a n s f o r m a t i o n . H o l i n e s s in t h e desert w a s defined, finally, b y h o w d e e p l y a p e r s o n a l l o w e d h i m s e l f or h e r s e l f to b e t r a n s f o r m e d b y t h e w o r d s o f S c r i p t u r e . "
39
T h a t is w h a t S c r i p t u r e w a s m e a n t for first a n d foremost. T h e h e r m e n e u t i c s o f the desert fathers also i m p l i e d that " o n l y t h o s e w i t h e x p e r i e n c e c o u l d a d e q u a t e l y interpret the sacred texts. ( . . . ) B e c a u s e the texts are holy, o n l y a h o l y o n e - the o n e w i t h e x p e r i e n c e - c a n p r o p e r l y interpret t h e m . " T h i s is w e l l illustrated b y the role Scripture p l a y s in the Life of Sabas.
4 0
Most of
t h e biblical q u o t e s s e e m to a i m at m a k i n g t h e solitary a n d often d a n g e r o u s life in t h e desert p o s s i b l e as a p r o f o u n d spiritual e x p e r i e n c e , a n d at t h e s a m e t i m e it is this e x p e r i e n c e that m a k e s it p o s s i b l e to d i s c o v e r the r i c h e s o f t h e w o r d s o f S c r i p t u r e . F o r e x a m p l e , after h a v i n g fought t h e d e m o n s for m a n y y e a r s a n d d e f e a t e d t h e m , S a b a s r e c e i v e d the insight that t h e w o r d o f Isaiah 2:4, " B e a t y o u r s w o r d s into p l o w s h a r e s a n d y o u r s p e a r s into p r u n i n g h o o k s , " w a s to b e i m p l e m e n t e d as f o l l o w s : " H e w a s n o w ( . . . ) e n t r u s t e d b y G o d w i t h t h e c h a r g e o f s o u l s ; h e w a s p e r s u a d e d b y the w o r d o f G o d n o t to d e v o t e t i m e p o i n t l e s s l y to e n e m i e s w h o h a d b e e n defeated b u t to transfer his spiritual e n e r g i e s from a w a r like d i s p o s i t i o n to h u s b a n d i n g t h o s e w h o h a d g r o w n r a n k w i t h evil t h o u g h t s , for t h e benefit o f the m a n y " (Sab.
16 [ 9 9 : 1 0 - 1 5 ] ) . B u t later, in o n e o f the conflicts
a b o u t t h e G r e a t L a u r a , it is the o p p o s i t e w o r d from the p r o p h e t Joel (3:1 O L X X ) , " B e a t y o u r p l o w s h a r e s into s w o r d s a n d y o u r p r u n i n g h o o k s into s p e a r s , " that is a p p l i e d as follows b y S a b a s to t h o s e w h o w a n t to found a laura o f their o w n : " W h a t is t h e a d v a n t a g e in a g r i c u l t u r e w h e n t h e land is in t h e grip o f w a r ? H o w c a n y o u , w h o h a v e not y e t o v e r c o m e the p a s s i o n s o f flesh a n d soul, u n d e r t a k e t h e f o r m a t i o n o f o t h e r s , w h e n y o u are still u n d e r the s w a y o f p l e a s u r e a n d v a i n g l o r y ? " (Sab. 3 9 [ 1 2 9 , 2 1 - 2 3 ] ) . It is his o w n long ascetic struggle that h a s o p e n e d his e y e s for w h a t h e sees as the d e e p e r s e n s e o f t h e s e w o r d s o f S c r i p t u r e a n d its v a l u e for the spiritual f o r m a t i o n o f a m o n k . A m o n g t h e desert fathers a n d their b i o g r a p h e r s t h e r e is a p e r v a d i n g s e n s e o f t h e n e e d to a p p l y Scripture to o n e ' s o w n life in t h e d e s e r t a n d also a s t r o n g c o n v i c t i o n that that w a s w h a t Scripture w a s written for. S a b a s did not a l l o w n e w c o m e r s to live in a cell in the laura, b u t h a d t h e m first stay in a s m a l l c e n o b i u m , until t h e y h a d learnt the psalter a n d r e c e i v e d a strict m o n a s t i c formation. H e said: " A m o n k e n c l o s e d in a cell m u s t b e gifted w i t h d i s c e r n m e n t a n d b e z e a l o u s , a c o m b a t a n t , sober, self-controlled a n d disciplined, a t e a c h e r n o t n e e d i n g t e a c h i n g , c a p a b l e o f c u r b i n g all t h e m e m b e r s o f his b o d y a n d o f k e e p i n g a s e c u r e w a t c h o n h i s m i n d . I k n o w that such a m a n is called s i n g l e - m i n d e d b y the scriptural s a y i n g , " T h e L o r d g i v e s the s i n g l e - m i n d e d a h o m e to d w e l l i n " ( P s . 6 7 [ 6 8 ] : 7 , in 3 9
Burton-Christie, The Word in the Desert 23. Cf. Dorries, "Die Bibel" 218: "Die Schriftauslegung der Wiiste miiht sich ja nicht um den urspriinglichen Sinn eines Schriftworts, gar in seinem geschichtlichen Zusammenhang, sondern paBt es seinem Verstandnis an, darin freilich bestrebt, es im eigenen Leben zu voller Geltung zu bringen." Burton-Christie, The Word in the Desert 23. 4 0
The Role of Scripture
Sab.
in Cyril of
215
Scythopolis
2 8 [ 1 1 3 , 1 5 - 1 6 ] ) . ' T h e text o f this P s a l m - v e r s e is here reinterpreted in a v e r y
characteristic way. In its original setting, as t h e c o n t e x t m a k e s u n a m b i g u o u s l y clear, t h e p a s s a g e in this P s a l m p r a i s e d G o d for b e i n g the h e l p e r o f p e r s o n s w h o a g a i n s t their will h a d c o m e to live in solitude, for i n s t a n c e o r p h a n s , w i d o w s , p r i s o n e r s , a n d o t h e r a b a n d o n e d p e o p l e . G o d will see to it, the P s a l m says, that t h e y will g e t a h o m e a g a i n so as to m a k e an e n d to their s o l i t u d e . N o w t h e H e b r e w text o f P s . 6 8 : 7 s p e a k s a b o u t t h e s e l o n e l y p e r s o n s as yechidim
w h o are
g i v e n a h o m e b y G o d to d w e l l in. T h e text that Cyril u s e d , t h e L X X , r e n d e r s 41
this by monotropos,
w h i c h is also a c o m m o n t e r m in p r e - C h r i s t i a n G r e e k for a
p e r s o n w h o lives a l o n e . In C h r i s t i a n G r e e k the w o r d b e g i n s to d e v e l o p t h e s e n s e o f ' s i n g l e - m i n d e d p e r s o n , ' as a g l a n c e in L a m p e ' s l e x i c o n s h o w s .
4 2
It is this
s e m a n t i c d e v e l o p m e n t , fruitfully c o m b i n e d w i t h his o w n ' d e s e r t h e r m e n e u t i c s , ' that e n a b l e s S a b a s (or Cyril for that m a t t e r ) to r e a d this v e r s e in a strikingly n e w w a y : It is n o t a b o u t p e r s o n s w h o are a l o n e against
their will, it is a b o u t p e r s o n s
w h o are g i v e n by G o d a h o m e , /. e. a cell in a laura, b e c a u s e t h e y really want to live a solitary life a n d t h e y are c o m p l e t e l y s i n g l e - m i n d e d in that respect, b e c a u s e it's all t h e y h a v e learned to w a n t . O n l y if o n e h a s r e a c h e d that s t a g e o f discipline, o n e is d e e m e d w o r t h y o f a G o d - g i v e n cell. To u s m o d e r n r e a d e r s it m a y s e e m as if the original s e n s e o f the text is s t o o d u p o n its h e a d h e r e , b u t that h a s a l w a y s b e e n the fate o f the B i b l e a n d w e s h o u l d not b l a m e the d e s e r t fathers for t h a t .
43
" T h e y s a w the s a c r e d texts as p r o j e c t i n g w o r l d s o f p o s s i b l e m e a n i n g that t h e y w e r e called u p o n to enter. ( . . . ) It also m e a n t o p e n i n g o n e s e l f to the n e w possibili ties o f m e a n i n g offered by t h e s e texts, r e a l i z i n g this m e a n i n g w i t h i n oneself, a n d b e i n g t r a n s f o r m e d b y this realization. ( . . . ) T h e u l t i m a t e e x p r e s s i o n o f the desert h e r m e n e u t i c w a s a person,
o n e w h o e m b o d i e d the s a c r e d texts a n d w h o d r e w
o t h e r s out o f t h e m s e l v e s into a w o r l d o f infinite p o s s i b i l i t i e s . " the Monks
4 1
of Palestine
44
C y r i l ' s Lives
of
illustrates this v e r y w e l l .
6 Geos xaxoixi^Ei [IOVOTQOJIOUS ev ol'xco. Monotropos
is a hapax legomenon in the Greek
Bible. 4 2
G.W.H. Lampe, A Patristic Greek Lexicon, Oxford 1968, 884a. See also M. Harl, La langue deJaphet, Paris 1992, 207 (= REG 73 [1960] 468). Bacht, "Vom Umgang mit der Bibel" 5 6 1 , rightly notes that the basic conviction of the desert fathers was that the addressees o f the Bible are we. Burton-Christie, The Word in the Desert 299, 300. 4 3
4 4
Twenty-Five Questions to Corner the Jews A Byzantine Ant i-Jewish Document from the Seventh Century
Introduction P r o b a b l y in the s e c o n d q u a r t e r o f the s e v e n t h c e n t u r y C E , in the t i m e that wit n e s s e d the rise o f I s l a m , an a n o n y m o u s C h r i s t i a n s o m e w h e r e in t h e B y z a n t i n e E m p i r e w r o t e a s m a l l m a n u a l a i m e d at h e l p i n g his c o r e l i g i o n i s t s t o g a i n t h e u p p e r h a n d o v e r J e w s in r e l i g i o u s d i s p u t a t i o n s . T h e m a n u a l h a s the form o f 2 5 a r g u m e n t s p h r a s e d as q u e s t i o n s . T h i s little treatise h a d g o n e entirely u n n o t i c e d 1
until it w a s r e c e n t l y p u b l i s h e d b y a F r e n c h s c h o l a r . T h e m o d e s t a i m o f this c o n t r i b u t i o n is to p r e s e n t an E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n o f the G r e e k text ( w i t h o u t c o m m e n t a r y ) , a n d thereafter t o a t t e m p t to situate this d o c u m e n t in its historical context. T h e title o f t h e treatise is n o t e a s y to t r a n s l a t e : 'EjtajtoQTyrixd xecpdAma x a x d TOOV
'Iov&aiarv. It is c l e a r that it is a treatise a g a i n s t ( x a x d ) the J e w s w h i c h is
i n t e n d e d t o b r i n g t h e m into an ' a p o r e t i c ' situation (Ejtajroor|Tixd), /. e., a situation from w h i c h t h e r e is n o w a y o u t ( h e n c e the v e r b ' t o c o r n e r ' in the title). B u t w h a t e x a c t l y is m e a n t b y xecpdAma? T h e c u r r e n t m e a n i n g o f the w o r d is ' c h a p t e r s , ' b u t it c a n a l s o b e u s e d for p a r t s or c o m p o n e n t s o f a c h a p t e r , h e n c e ' t o p i c s ' or 2
' s u b j e c t s ' or ' p a s s a g e s from S c r i p t u r e ' e t c . In certain c o n t e x t s xecpdkxiov c a n d e v e l o p t h e s e n s e o f ' a r g u m e n t o n a specific s u b j e c t , ' as h e r e .
Translation Arguments
to corner
the
Jews
(1) If the L a w is a u n i v e r s a l g o o d , w h y t h e n w a s it n o t g i v e n to e v e r y n a t i o n b u t t o o n l y o n e ? A n d if it is n o t a u n i v e r s a l g o o d , t h e n o b v i o u s l y it is a partial g o o d . 1
e
e
V. Deroche, "La polemique anti-juda'ique au V I et au V I I siecle: Un memento inedit, Les Kephalaia," Travaux et Memoires 11 (1991) 2 7 5 - 3 1 1 . This edition is based upon nine textual witnesses from the 10th-14th centuries. It is on account o f the publication date o f this edition (1991) that one does not find a reference to this treatise in the otherwise comprehensive work by H. Schreckenberg, Die christlichen Adversus-Judaeos-Texte und ihr literarisches und historisches Umfeld (l.-ll. Jh.), Frankfurt 1990 (2. Aufl.). See G.W.H. Lampe, A Patristic Greek Lexicon, Oxford 1968, 748, and H.D. Saffrey & A.-Ph. Segonds, Marinus: Proclus ou sur le bonheur, Paris 2 0 0 1 , 6 4 note 15. 2
Twenty-Five
Questions
217
to Corner the Jews
A n d if it is a partial g o o d , it is clear that it w a s g i v e n b e c a u s e o f a certain n e e d , I m e a n b e c a u s e o f the o n e w h o w a s to arise from the p e o p l e o f Israel. If the p r o m i s e to A b r a h a m , "In y o u a n d in y o u r offspring all n a t i o n s will b e b l e s s e d , "
3
is n o t a u n i v e r s a l g o o d , is it not o b v i o u s t h e n that t h e p r o m i s e to the n a t i o n s will n o t b e r e a l i z e d t h r o u g h t h e L a w but t h r o u g h the c o m i n g o f h i m w h o w a s e x p e c t e d , n a m e l y C h r i s t ? S o it is o f n e c e s s i t y that the L a w c o m e s to an e n d a n d the p r o m i s e b e c o m e s reality w h e n C h r i s t a p p e a r s . (2) If G o d is the G o d o f all p e o p l e a n d w a n t s all p e o p l e to b e s a v e d ,
4
whereas
a c c o r d i n g to y o u it is t h r o u g h the L a w that s a l v a t i o n h a s b e e n g i v e n to all, w h y t h e n h a s H e n o t g i v e n the L a w to e v e r y n a t i o n instead o f o n l y to o n e ? 5
(3) If the A n o i n t e d O n e , /'. e. the C h r i s t , is, a s is w r i t t e n , " t h e e x p e c t a t i o n o f the 6
n a t i o n s , " then it is o b v i o u s l y t h r o u g h h i m that there will b e b l e s s i n g for the n a t i o n s . B u t if it is t h r o u g h h i m , then it is n o t t h r o u g h t h e L a w ; a n d if that is the c a s e , t h e n w i t h the c o m i n g o f t h e A n o i n t e d O n e t h e L a w a n d t h e J e w i s h w a y o f life n e c e s s a r i l y c o m e to an e n d . (4) If it is i m p o s s i b l e for the n a t i o n s , e s p e c i a l l y for t h o s e w h o live far a w a y , to 7
c o m e thrice y e a r l y to J e r u s a l e m , as the L a w d e c r e e s , is it n o t e v i d e n t then that the L a w is u n a b l e to b l e s s t h e n a t i o n s b u t r a t h e r d e c l a r e s t h e m to b e c u r s e d ? F o r ( S c r i p t u r e ) s a y s , " C u r s e d is e v e r y o n e w h o d o e s n o t r e m a i n in all that is written in the b o o k o f t h e L a w in o r d e r to d o t h a t . "
8
(5) If it is i m p o s s i b l e that all t h e n a t i o n s o f t h e w o r l d , from E a s t a n d West, from N o r t h a n d S o u t h , s h o u l d live in the p r o m i s e d c o u n t r y from D a n to B e r s e b a , is it n o t o b v i o u s t h e n that the n a t i o n s c a n n o t live in a c c o r d a n c e w i t h t h e L a w ? A n d if that is the c a s e , is it not o b v i o u s as well that t h e p r o m i s e for t h e n a t i o n s is n o t r e a l i z e d t h r o u g h t h e L a w b u t t h r o u g h a w a y o f life in a c c o r d a n c e w i t h C h r i s t ? (6) If the A n o i n t e d O n e w h o m y o u a w a i t - w h o e v e r h e m a y b e - a g a i n p r o c l a i m s the L a w o f M o s e s at his c o m i n g , is h e n o t b o u n d to b e a figure less than M o s e s to w h o m the L a w w a s g i v e n ? In w h i c h r e s p e c t d o e s this figure, w h o has b e e n p r o c l a i m e d b y so m a n y p r o p h e t s , differ from the m a n w h o is n o w y o u r teacher, 9
w h o e x p l a i n s a n d p r o c l a i m s t h e L a w , but w h o h a s n e v e r b e e n a b l e to s a v e or b l e s s a n y o f y o u or o f the n a t i o n s t h r o u g h t h e L a w ?
3
Gen. 12:3 L X X with some modifications, notably the addition of 'and in your offspring.' See 1 Tim. 2:4. The first Greek word is 'HtemnEvog, the second one Xqioxoq. Gen. 49:10 LXX. The Greek has eOvr], SO the semantic aspect of 'gentiles' is present as well. In what follows, though, E9VT) will consistently be translated by 'nations.' Deut. 16:16. Deut. 27:26, freely quoted. Who is meant here is unclear. Deroche surmises it is the Babylonian exilarch of the Jews (308). 4
5
6
7
8
9
218
Twenty-Five
Questions
to Corner the Jews
(7) If at e v e r y b a n i s h m e n t G o d h a s o r d a i n e d a fixed p e r i o d for t h e exile o f t h e J e w s , s u c h as 2 1 5 y e a r s in E g y p t , 7 0 y e a r s in B a b y l o n , a n d - let u s say - s o m e three a n d a h a l f y e a r s d u r i n g the reign o f A n t i o c h u s ,
1 0
p e r i o d s in w h i c h t h e y
w o u l d suffer terrible t h i n g s b u t w e r e still c o n s i d e r e d w o r t h y (to r e c e i v e ) t h e p r o p h e t s a n d d i v i n e o r a c l e s , w h a t is it that w o u l d n o w p r e v e n t G o d from p r o m i s ing y o u to call b a c k y o u r c o m p a t r i o t s ? B u t lo, 6 0 0 y e a r s a n d m o r e h a v e p a s s e d s i n c e y o u w e r e d r i v e n from t h e p r o m i s e d land d u r i n g w h i c h y o u r e m a i n bereft of prophets and divine oracles.
11
(8) If it is n e c e s s a r y that at the c o m i n g of the A n o i n t e d O n e the L a w s h o u l d d i s a p p e a r a n d ' t h e e x p e c t a t i o n o f the n a t i o n s '
1 2
c o m e true, h o w t h e n is it p o s s i b l e that
at the c o m i n g o f the o n e w h o is called the Christ a m o n g y o u - 1 m e a n Z e r u b b a b e l - h e h i m s e l f (re)built the t e m p l e a n d v a l i d a t e d the J e w i s h l a w s w h e r e a s n o ' e x p e c t a t i o n o f t h e n a t i o n s ' c a m e true at all b u t r a t h e r h e h i m s e l f p u t his h o p e in t h e n a t i o n s b y r e q u e s t i n g t h e m to (help h i m ) (re)build the t e m p l e ?
1 3
(9) If M o s e s a n n o u n c e s , " G o d will raise u p for y o u from a m o n g y o u r b r e t h r e n a p r o p h e t like m e , "
1 4
w h o is that p r o p h e t like M o s e s , I m e a n a p r o p h e t a n d
l a w g i v e r a n d m i r a c l e w o r k e r from the p e o p l e o f Israel? T h o s e w h o say it is Z e r u b b a b e l are m i s t a k e n , for h e w a s n e i t h e r a p r o p h e t n o r a m i r a c l e w o r k e r n o r a lawgiver, e v e n t h o u g h h e w a s a Jew. ( 1 0 ) If M o s e s a n n o u n c e s , " G o d will raise u p for y o u from a m o n g y o u r b r e t h r e n a p r o p h e t like m e ; listen to h i m in e v e r y t h i n g that h e will say to y o u , "
1 5
how could
t h e o n e w h o d o e s n o t a c c e p t this p r o p h e t n o t b e a s i n n e r ? (11) If M o s e s a n n o u n c e s , " E v e r y o n e w h o will n o t listen to this p r o p h e t will b e e x t i r p a t e d from the n a t i o n , "
16
h o w is it p o s s i b l e that a p e o p l e that p r e - e m i n e n t l y
h a s n o t listened to Isaiah, J e r e m i a h a n d t h e o t h e r p r o p h e t s , h a s n o t b e e n extir p a t e d , w h e r e a s in t h e t i m e o f o u r C h r i s t t h o s e w h o did n o t b e l i e v e in h i m w e r e e x t i r p a t e d , all o f t h e m i n d e e d ? T h e y h a v e b e e n d e p r i v e d o f their country, their city, their t e m p l e , their p r i e s t s , their sacrifices, their p r o p h e t s , their s c h o l a r s ,
17
a n d o f all o t h e r institutions o f their l a w s , so m u c h so that t h e y c o u l d not d e m o n s t r a t e in a n y r e s p e c t a n y m o r e that t h e y w e r e J e w s . S o s o b e r u p a n d learn b y
1 0
Antiochus IV Epiphanes; the author refers to the years 1 6 7 - 1 6 4 BCE. Probably the author reckons the expulsion from the promised country to have taken place not after the fall of Jerusalem in 70 but after the crucifixion of Jesus in 30, as was often done in Byzantine literature. Gen. 49:10 LXX. Cf. Ezra 6. Deut. 18:15. Deut. 18:15, with a very free rendering o f the final words (the L X X only has d k o i j dxoiioeaOe). Deut. 18:19, again very freely quoted. Or: scribes. 11
1 2
1 3
1 4
15
1 6
1 7
Twenty-Five
Questions
219
to Corner the Jews
w h a t c a u s e y o u h a v e b e e n bereft o f t h e s e t h i n g s , instead o f fooling y o u r s e l v e s w i t h idle h o p e s . (12) If G o d d e c l a r e s u n d e r o a t h , w h o e v e r it m a y b e H e is t a l k i n g t o , " Y o u are a priest for eternity a c c o r d i n g to t h e o r d e r o f M e l c h i z e d e k , "
18
a n d not a c c o r d i n g
to the o r d e r o f A a r o n , h o w c o u l d t h e o r d e r o f A a r o n b e a n y t h i n g b u t t e m p o r a r y a n d that o f M e l c h i z e d e k e t e r n a l ?
19
( 1 3 ) If t h e n the p r i e s t h o o d a c c o r d i n g to M e l c h i z e d e k a n d the o n e a c c o r d i n g to A a r o n are different in k i n d , let t h e m e x p l a i n to u s h o w it is p o s s i b l e that the t w o are identical. A n d since that is i m p o s s i b l e , let t h e m e x p l a i n to u s w h i c h o f the t w o is t e m p o r a r y a n d w h i c h is eternal. It is o f c o u r s e o b v i o u s that t h e p r i e s t h o o d a c c o r d i n g to A a r o n , w h i c h b y r e a s o n o f its h e r e d i t a r y n a t u r e w a s p r e s e r v e d a m o n g the s o n s o f p r i e s t s , w a s o f a t e m p o r a r y n a t u r e b e c a u s e o f the d y i n g out o f t h o s e to w h o m (this task) w a s e n t r u s t e d ; w h e r e a s the p r i e s t h o o d a c c o r d i n g to M e l c h i z e d e k w a s p r o m i s e d to o n l y o n e p e r s o n b e c a u s e o f its eternal n a t u r e .
20
(14) If it is i m p o s s i b l e that G o d s h o u l d lie a n d if it is p o s s i b l e to h e a r h i m s a y i n g u n d e r oath, " Y o u are a priest for e v e r a c c o r d i n g to the o r d e r o f M e l c h i z e d e k , " w h e r e a s the p r i e s t h o o d a c c o r d i n g to A a r o n is d e r i v e d from t h e L a w , i s n ' t it a b solutely i n e v i t a b l e then that a c h a n g e o f p r i e s t h o o d n e c e s s a r i l y i m p l i e s a c h a n g e o f t h e L a w as w e l l ? (15) If G o d d e c l a r e s to D a v i d , a g a i n u n d e r oath, that his offspring a n d t h e t h r o n e o f his k i n g s h i p are e t e r n a l ,
21
then s h o w u s o r tell u s w h e r e w e h a v e to look for
D a v i d ' s offspring a n d t h r o n e so that, after s u c h a long t i m e , w e will not s u r m i s e that this p r e d i c t i o n w a s a lie. (16) If, as y o u say, all n a t i o n s will p e r i s h w i t h G o g
2 2
in t h e final d a y s before the
c o m i n g o f the C h r i s t y o u e x p e c t , w h i c h t h e n are t h e n a t i o n s w h o s e e x p e c t a t i o n is the C h r i s t for their s a l v a t i o n ,
23
a n d n o t for their p e r d i t i o n ?
( 1 7 ) If, b e c a u s e o f I s r a e l ' s e x o d u s from E g y p t , the E g y p t i a n s w e r e d e s t r o y e d b y the s u p r e m e l y h e a v y p u n i s h m e n t o f d r o w n i n g , a n d if y o u , after h a v i n g r e c e i v e d t h e L a w , h a v e totally extirpated m a n y n a t i o n s as w e l l , a n d if y o u h a v e d o n e the s a m e t h i n g a g a i n d u r i n g t h e r e i g n s o f H i z k i a a n d Z e r u b b a b e l a n d also d u r i n g the rule o f the M a c e d o n i a n s a n d the M a c c a b e e s a n d on m a n y o t h e r o c c a s i o n s w i t h v e r y m a n y n a t i o n s , a p p a r e n t l y b e c a u s e o f t h e c u s t o m s in y o u r L a w a n d traditions, is it n o t overly clear on the b a s i s o f such d e e d s that it is n o t so m u c h
1 8
1 9
2 0
2 1
2 2
2 3
Ps. 110:4 (109:4 LXX). Cf. Hebr. 7:11. Ps. 110[109]:4 with Hebr. 7:23. Ps. 89:4. Ezek. 38. Cf. Gen. 49:10.
220
Twenty-Five
Questions
to Corner the Jews
a p r o m i s e that is r e a l i z e d for the n a t i o n s t h r o u g h the L a w but r a t h e r a m u l t i t u d e of torments? (18) If G o d h a s o r d e r e d that in the desert there w o u l d c o m e a first a n d a s e c o n d tabernacle,
24
a n d the first o n e is a r e p r e s e n t a t i o n
o n e a r e p r e s e n t a t i o n o f the h e a v e n l y w o r l d ,
26
25
o f this w o r l d but the s e c o n d
t h e n is it not o b v i o u s that w h e n t h e
first o n e d i s a p p e a r s the s e c o n d w o u l d a p p e a r that h a d a l w a y s r e m a i n e d i n a c c e s sible a n d invisible for the priests o f the L a w ? ( 1 9 ) If all i m p i e t y a n d injustice d o n e b y p e o p l e is d i r e c t e d a g a i n s t either G o d or o n e ' s n e i g h b o u r , is it not o b v i o u s t h e n that t h e c o m m a n d m e n t s in the L a w w h i c h d o n o t p e r t a i n to t h i s
2 7
- for e x a m p l e , c i r c u m c i s i o n , a b s t e n t i o n from w o r k o n
t h e s a b b a t h , t h e rules for food a n d d r e s s , p u r i t y r e g u l a t i o n s , sacrifices a n d the like - h a v e b e e n g i v e n for a n o t h e r p u r p o s e ? A n d if that is true, w h i c h it is, it is o b v i o u s that t h e y w e r e not g i v e n b e c a u s e o f G o d or o n e ' s n e i g h b o u r s b u t - as h a s a l r e a d y b e e n said - in o r d e r to confine a n d s a f e g u a r d t h e n a t i o n until the c o m i n g o f t h e o n e w h o is e x p e c t e d to arise from its m i d s t . N o w that h e h a s c o m e , o f n e c e s s i t y t h o s e rules o f the L a w stop b e i n g valid a n d o n l y faith a n d love o f G o d and one's neighbour remain,
28
that is to say, all that is m o r e p l e a s i n g to G o d a n d
d o e s not a b o l i s h a life in a c c o r d a n c e w i t h Christ. (20) If the C h r i s t w h o h a d b e e n p r o p h e s i e d b y t h e L a w a n d the p r o p h e t s , is t h e e x p e c t a t i o n o f the nations a n d their r u l e
2 9
a n d h o p e , h o w is it p o s s i b l e that y o u d o
n o t see that n o w all the n a t i o n s h a v e b o w e d d o w n before the C h r i s t w o r s h i p p e d b y u s , t h r o w n a w a y their idols b e c a u s e o f h i m w h i l e s e n d i n g up their A m e n to G o d , s i n c e all o f t h e m r e g a r d A b r a h a m as their father a n d - in a c c o r d a n c e w i t h w h a t is w r i t t e n , " T h e w h o l e w o r l d is filled w i t h t h e k n o w l e d g e o f t h e L o r d "
3 0
- r e a d M o s e s a n d the p r o p h e t s , a n d on the b a s i s o f t h e s e w r i t i n g s d e p e n d on C h r i s t s i n c e t h e y h a v e d i s t a n c e d t h e m s e l v e s from their old s u p e r s t i t i o n ? (21) If in e v e r y o f y o u r captivities e a c h o f y o u r tribes h a s b e e n p r e s e r v e d , h o w is it p o s s i b l e that n o w , after the c o m i n g o f h i m w h o m w e b e l i e v e to b e the Christ,
2 4
Ex. 26:33; Lev. 16. Gr. typos. Hebr. 8 - 9 . The Greek has xa jteyixxct xov vouou, which is hard to render adequately. The adjective perittos can mean 'superfluous, unnecessary,' hence Deroche's translation "les superfluites de la Loi" (306). But that is not what the author wants to say here, for he immediately adds that these laws served to safeguard the people of Israel till Christ's coming. What he means is that these rules do not pertain to, and hence go beyond, the sins people commit against God or their fellow humans. Only after Christ's coming do they become 'superfluous' indeed. At the background is Gal. 3 : 2 3 - 2 9 . Cf. 1 Cor. 13:13. Here a.Qyr\ is abstractum pro concreto in the sense of UQXOVXEC;, rulers. Is. 11:9, quoted freely. 2 5
2 6
2 7
2 8
2 9
3 0
Twenty-Five
Questions
221
to Corner the Jews
not a s i n g l e o n e ( o f y o u r tribes) h a s b e e n p r e s e r v e d a n d y o u h a v e also lost all the institutions o f y o u r L a w ? (22) If a c c o r d i n g to y o u t h e C h r i s t from the tribe o f J u d a h w h o w a s p r o c l a i m e d b y the L a w a n d the p r o p h e t s
31
h a s not c o m e , w h y d o y o u g o on e x p e c t i n g h i m
n o w that not e v e n o n e tribe h a s b e e n p r e s e r v e d or c a n b e p r e s e r v e d a n y m o r e ? (23) If it is i m p o s s i b l e for m u l e s to k n o w b y t h e m s e l v e s to w h i c h d o n k e y a n d w h i c h h o r s e they o w e their e x i s t e n c e , t h e n similarly y o u c a n n o t k n o w ( w h o y o u r forebears are) after h a v i n g b e e n fused a n d m i x e d for thirty or m o r e g e n e r a tions. ( 2 4 ) If it is b e c a u s e o f y o u r individual sins that y o u h a v e b e e n m a d e bereft o f y o u r country, city, t e m p l e , priests, p r o p h e t s , sacrifices, a n d the w h o l e w o r s h i p a c c o r d i n g to the L a w , h o w t h e n c o u l d it b e that p r e v i o u s l y , w h e n y o u - a s i d e from o t h e r individual sins - s u r r e n d e r e d y o u r s e l v e s to idolatry, b o t h privately a n d collectively, a n d o p e n l y d e m o n s t r a t e d y o u r i m p i e t y t o w a r d s G o d b y s l a u g h t e r i n g y o u r o w n children for idols, y o u w e r e not t h e n d e p r i v e d c o m p l e t e l y o f all t h e s e t h i n g s , b u t o n l y partially a n d t e m p o r a r i l y , w h e r e a s n o w , n o w that y o u n o l o n g e r s l a u g h t e r y o u r c h i l d r e n n o r m u r d e r e a c h o t h e r or c o m m i t idolatry, y o u h a v e b e e n c o m p l e t e l y d e p r i v e d o f t h e s e t h i n g s b e c a u s e o f y o u r i n d i v i d u a l sins? (25) If w e h a v e b e e n led to C h r i s t b y t h e L a w a n d the p r o p h e t s as if b y a p e d a gogue,
3 2
then it is a g o o d t h i n g that t h e L a w h a s b e e n g i v e n b y a g o o d G o d w h o
h a s t u r n e d out to b e a p e d a g o g u e for l e a d i n g the J e w s t o w a r d s t h e o n e w h o h a s been raised from their m i d s t a n d w h o t u r n e d o u t to b e the s a l v a t i o n n o t o n l y for the n a t i o n s but for the w h o l e w o r l d .
3 3
Context T h i s is not the p l a c e for an i n - d e p t h s t u d y o f this d o c u m e n t , but s o m e p r o v i s i o n a l r e m a r k s are in o r d e r h e r e . T h e h e y - d a y o f early C h r i s t i a n Adversus literature w a s the t h r e e c e n t u r i e s b e t w e e n 150 a n d 4 5 0 C E . from J u s t i n ' s Dialogus Simonem 3 1
Judaeum
cum
Try phone
et Theophilum
Judaeo 35
Christianum,
3 4
Judaeos
In t h o s e c e n t u r i e s ,
to E v a g r i u s ' Altercatio
inter
a n t i - J e w i s h p o l e m i c s is v e r y
Gen. 49:10 and Micah 5:1. Gal. 3 : 2 4 - 2 5 . I.e., including the Jews. See on this, apart from Schreckenberg's magnum opus (note 1), also the still fundamental study by Marcel Simon, Verus Israel. A Study of the Relations Between Christians and Jews in the Roman Empire (AD 135-425), Oxford 1986 (French original: Paris 1948), esp. 1 3 5 - 1 7 8 . The first important instance of this type o f literature is of course Justin's Dialogue with the Jew Trypho. See on this author (not to be confused with Evagrius Ponticus or Evagrius o f Antioch) C. Kasper, "Evagrius, antijiidischcr Polemiker," in S. Dopp & W. Geerlings (eds.), Lexikon der 3 2
3 3
3 4
3 5
222
Twenty-Five
Questions
to Corner the Jews
m u c h in the air. Thereafter, w h e n Christianity h a s b e c o m e the d o m i n a n t p o w e r in the l a t e - a n t i q u e a n d early B y z a n t i n e w o r l d , t h e c h u r c h c a n afford to b e less w o r ried a b o u t the J e w s w h o s e rights h a d in the m e a n t i m e b e e n drastically curtailed a n d w h o s e p o s i t i o n h a d for that r e a s o n b e c o m e m u c h w e a k e r . p o l e m i c s then d e c r e a s e s ( a l t h o u g h it n e v e r d i s a p p e a r s ) .
36
Anti-Jewish
37
T h e r e is, h o w e v e r , a clearly d i s c e r n i b l e revival o f Christian a n t i - J e w i s h litera ture in the s e c o n d h a l f o f t h e sixth a n d the first h a l f o f t h e s e v e n t h century, t h e p e r i o d to w h i c h o u r Kephalaia the Dialogus Athanasii gentii
Timothei
et Zacchaei
cum Herbano
Dialogus
Judaeos Papisci
( s e c o n d h a l f o f t h e sixth cent.), t h e
Judaeo
( p r o b a b l y a b o u t 6 0 0 ) , t h e Disputatio Jacobi
nuper baptizati
Gre-
de
religione
(circa 6 3 5 ) , the
Apologia
w r i t t e n b y L e o n t i u s o f N e a p o l i s on C y p r u s (circa 6 4 0 ) , et Philonis
3 8
the
(the m i d d l e o f the s e v e n t h c e n t . ) , a n d several o t h e r
less w e l l - k n o w n w o r k s o f a similar n a t u r e .
39
It h a s , m o r e o v e r , to b e k e p t in m i n d
that p r o b a b l y for the m o s t part this literature h a s not b e e n p r e s e r v e d . the Sitz im Leben
Dialogus
(also s e c o n d half o f t h e sixth cent.), the Disputatio
(also a b o u t 6 0 0 ) , the Doctrina contra
b e l o n g . F r o m that p e r i o d w e h a v e , for i n s t a n c e ,
et Aquilae
40
W h a t is
of these writings?
It s h o u l d not b e a s s u m e d that t h e s e texts, m o s t l y d i a l o g u e s , are v e r b a t i m r e p o r t s o f d i s p u t a t i o n s that h a d really t a k e n p l a c e . W h a t m i l i t a t e s a g a i n s t that a s s u m p t i o n is, inter alia, t h e e n d l e s s repetition in all t h e s e w o r k s o f the s a m e a r g u m e n t s a n d the s a m e biblical ' p r o o f t e x t s . ' T h e s e are m a n u a l s or t e x t b o o k s for interreligious p o l e m i c s , in this c a s e o f C h r i s t i a n s a g a i n s t J e w s , a l t h o u g h it h a s to b e a d d e d that the e v e r r e c u r r i n g a r g u m e n t s a n d prooftexts m u s t i n e v i t a b l y h a v e d e r i v e d from the p r a c t i c e o f really c o n d u c t e d d e b a t e s if s u c h m a n u a l s w e r e to m a k e a n y s e n s e . G i v e n that the later w o r k s s t e m from t h e s e c o n d q u a r t e r a n d the m i d d l e o f t h e s e v e n t h century, o n e c o u l d s u r m i s e their b a c k g r o u n d to h a v e b e e n the d e c r e e antiken christlichen Literatur, Freiburg 1998, 2 2 3 . See A. Linder, The Jews in Roman Imperial Legislation, Detroit-Jerusalem 1987, and K.L. Noethlichs, DieJuden im christlichen Imperium Romanum (4.-6. Jahrhundert), Berlin 2 0 0 1 . It is illustrative of the changed situation that in Schreckenberg's large survey (see note 1) the discussion o f anti-Jewish literature from the three centuries between 150 and 4 5 0 takes more than 2 0 0 pages whereas the discussion of this literature in the three centuries between 4 5 0 and 750 takes less than 100 pages. This is the only work in this series o f which w e know the author. In his Introduction to the edition of the Greek text Deroche gives a much more detailed enumeration with bibliography (for the latter see also H.G. Beck, Kirche und Theologische Literatur im hyzantinischen Zeitalter, Miinchen 1959, 3 3 2 - 3 3 3 n. 1). Information also in S. Krauss & W. Horbury, The Jewish-Christian Controversy, vol. 1, Tubingen 1996, 4 6 - 5 0 . Schreckenberg's work (note 1) is more informative than most other works. The later character of these works in comparison with earlier ones is most apparent in the greater role of Jewish polemics against veneration of the cross, o f relics, of tombs o f saints, of icons etc., which was regarded by Jews as idolatry (graven images). See B. Blumenkranz, "Vie et survie de la polemique anti-juive," Studia Patristica 1,1, Berlin 1957, 460^176. 3 6
3 7
3 8
3 9
4 0
Twenty-Five
Questions
223
to Corner the Jews
w h i c h the E m p e r o r H e r a c l i u s ( w h o ruled from 6 1 0 - 6 4 1 ) i s s u e d in 6 3 2 to the effect that all J e w s h a d to b e b a p t i z e d a n d c o n v e r t to C h r i s t i a n i t y .
41
In s u c h a
situation m a n y C h r i s t i a n s inevitably c a m e into c o n t a c t with J e w s w h o , after their c o m p u l s o r y b a p t i s m , still h a d to b e t a l k e d out o f their old beliefs a n d p r a c t i c e s (in fact m a n y o f t h e m b e c a m e M a r r a n o s avant
42
la date).
B u t that d o e s not e x
plain the i n s t a n c e s o f a n t i - J e w i s h d i s p u t e s from the p e r i o d b e f o r e H e r a c l i u s . It is i m p o r t a n t to state that at the b e g i n n i n g o f t h e p e r i o d d i s c u s s e d here, n a m e l y in 5 5 3 C E , the E m p e r o r J u s t i n i a n issued his f a m o u s Novella tled De Hebraeis).
146 (enti
In this edict Justinian d e c r e e s that in their s y n a g o g u e services
the J e w s are a l l o w e d , y e s e v e n e n c o u r a g e d , to u s e G r e e k B i b l e translations instead o f t h e H e b r e w original, p r e f e r a b l y t h e S e p t u a g i n t s i n c e t h e s e transla tors w e r e h e r a l d s o f the c o m i n g o f Christ, b u t if n e e d b e , a l s o t h e translation by Aquila.
43
M o r e o v e r the E m p e r o r p r o h i b i t s t h e u s e o f t h e p r i m a r y text o f the
r a b b i n i c m o v e m e n t , the M i s h n a h ( h e r e called deuterdsis,
w h i c h p r o b a b l y also
i n c l u d e d the T a l m u d , w h i c h w a s b a s e d u p o n the M i s h n a h ) , a n d in o t h e r edicts h e also d e p r i v e d t h e m o f their few r e m a i n i n g rights w i t h i n t h e state. U n d e r the e m p e r o r s after J u s t i n i a n , " t h e J e w s w e r e i n c r e a s i n g l y r e d u c e d to the p o s i t i o n o f a v e r y m a r g i n a l i s e d social a n d cultural e l e m e n t w i t h i n a p r e d o m i n a n t l y Christian society."
44
T h e s e m e a s u r e s c o u l d n o t b u t p r o v o k e a s t r o n g reaction, if not a
c o u n t e r a t t a c k , o n the part o f t h e J e w s (as t h e y did on t h e p a r t o f t h e S a m a r i t a n s as w e l l ) . F r o m several s o u r c e s o f this p e r i o d w e learn that i n d e e d it w a s often J e w s w h o initiated d e b a t e s in w h i c h C h r i s t i a n s w e r e c h a l l e n g e d , e s p e c i a l l y as r e g a r d s their u n t e n a b l e interpretations o f t h e J e w i s h B i b l e . E x a c t l y in the p e r i o d in w h i c h the C h u r c h , b y m e a n s o f the C h r i s t i a n E m p e r o r s , curtailed the J e w s more and more and cornered them, the Jews launched a counterattack. A s early as t h e b e g i n n i n g o f t h e fifth c e n t u r y C E , J e r o m e a l r e a d y p o i n t e d out t h e intensity o f J e w i s h a t t a c k s on Christian e x e g e s i s o f t h e J e w i s h B i b l e in Isaiam
(Comm.
7.14), for e x a m p l e w h e n it c o n c e r n e d t h e e x p l a n a t i o n o f t h e p r o p h e t i c
text a b o u t t h e ' v i r g i n ' (parthenos)
w h o w o u l d b e a r a son, w h e r e a c c o r d i n g to the
J e w s the original text s i m p l y s p o k e a b o u t a ' y o u n g w o m a n ' ( ' a l m a h ) . A n d not l o n g after t h e C o u n c i l o f C h a l c e d o n , in 4 5 2 C E , the E m p e r o r M a r c i a n u s issued a d e c r e e that the d e c i s i o n s t a k e n at that c o u n c i l s h o u l d not b e c o m e a m a t t e r o f 4 1
See A.N. Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. 1: 602-634, Amsterdam 1968, 3 0 5 - 3 0 7 ; G. Dagron & V. Deroche, "Juifs et Chretiens dans l'Orient du V i l e siecle," Travaux et Memoires 11 (1991) 2 8 - 3 2 . cf. A. Sharf, Byzantine Jewry from Justinian to the Fourth Crusade, London 1 9 7 1 , 5 3 - 5 6 . Maximus Confessor (c. 5 8 0 - 6 6 2 ) already stated clearly in his Epistula 8 (in fine) that he feared that this compulsory baptism would lead to very insincere 'conversions' on the part of the Jews. Text, translation and commentary in Linder, Jews 4 0 2 - 4 1 1 . See also M. Avi-Yonah, Geschichte der Juden im Zeitalter des Talmud in den Tagen von Rom und Byzanz, Berlin 1962, 250. J.F. Haldon, Byzantium in the Seventh Century. The Transformation of a Culture, Cam bridge 1990, 346. 4 2
4 3
4 4
224
Twenty-Five
Questions
to Corner the Jews
p u b l i c d e b a t e b e c a u s e s u c h d i s c u s s i o n s w o u l d o n l y lead to p r o f a n i z a t i o n o f the C h r i s t i a n m y s t e r i e s b y the J e w s .
4 5
It is also in t h e p e r i o d u n d e r c o n s i d e r a t i o n h e r e ( s i x t h - s e v e n t h cent.) that o n e finds v e r y o u t s p o k e n anti-Christian p o l e m i c s in J e w i s h liturgical p o e t r y .
46
The
c o n t i n u o u s a t t a c k s on ' E d o m ' in t h e s e s y n a g o g a l p o e m s a r e v e r y clearly m e a n t as p o l e m i c s a g a i n s t t h e c h u r c h o f R o m e (= E d o m = C o n s t a n t i n o p l e ) . A l s o s o m e p a s s a g e s in r a b b i n i c literature p o i n t in the d i r e c t i o n o f n o t o n l y a c t i v e J e w i s h p a r t i c i p a t i o n b u t also o f initiation o f d e b a t e s w i t h C h r i s t i a n s .
47
T h e T a l m u d tells
u s that a rabbi in C a e s a r e a M a r i t i m a said to his C h r i s t i a n fellow c i t i z e n s , in a setting o f a d e b a t e a b o u t the m e a n i n g o f biblical texts, that h e a n d his c o r e l i g i o n ists h a d so m u c h to d o w i t h C h r i s t i a n s that they studied t h o r o u g h l y the C h r i s t i a n interpretation o f the H o l y S c r i p t u r e s .
48
T h a t C h r i s t i a n s did n o t a l w a y s p r e v a i l
in s u c h c i r c u m s t a n c e s s t a n d s to r e a s o n , in spite o f w h a t t h e C h r i s t i a n
Adversus
Jwflfaeos-tractates w o u l d h a v e u s b e l i e v e . A t the b e g i n n i n g o f the s e v e n t h century, J o h n M o s c h u s tells in his f a m o u s Pratum
spirituale,
ch. 172, that the A l e x a n d r i a n m o n k C o s m a s S c h o l a s t i c u s ,
w h o o w n e d the g r e a t e s t p r i v a t e library in the city, s p e n t his d a y s in w r i t i n g p o lemical treatises a g a i n s t the J e w s , b u t J o h n r e m a r k s that C o s m a s h i m s e l f n e v e r e m b a r k e d u p o n or e x p o s e d h i m s e l f to actual d e b a t e s w i t h J e w s in t h e city b u t sent o u t o t h e r s to p e r f o r m this task, in w h i c h t h e y c o u l d gratefully m a k e u s e o f the a r g u m e n t s p e n n e d b y C o s m a s . T h i s m a n c o u l d in t h e o r y h a v e b e e n the a u t h o r o f o u r Kephalaia.
T h e B y z a n t i n e patriarch P h o t i u s r e c o r d s that in t h e s a m e city
e v e n S a m a r i t a n s e n g a g e d in d e b a t e w i t h C h r i s t i a n s w i t h a n array o f a n t i - C h r i s tian a r g u m e n t s .
49
This and other material
50
s t r o n g l y s u g g e s t s that it w a s e x a c t l y
the w e a k e n e d p o s i t i o n o f the J e w s w i t h i n the C h r i s t i a n B y z a n t i n e E m p i r e that i n d u c e d t h e m to c h a l l e n g e the C h r i s t i a n s in m a t t e r s o f interpretation o f the B i b l e . It is in this f r a m e w o r k that o u r little treatise w i t h 2 5 q u e s t i o n s to c o r n e r t h e J e w s gets a c r e d i b l e c o n t e x t , certainly if it c o u l d b e d a t e d to the y e a r s after H e r a c l i u s ' e d i c t o f 6 3 2 . It c a n n o t b e p r o v e d , b u t n o r is it to b e e x c l u d e d , that the p r o b l e m o f the a t t r a c t i v e n e s s o f t h e J e w i s h religion, as w e k n o w it so w e l l e s p e c i a l l y from
4 5
Text and translation in Linder, Jews 3 3 7 - 3 5 5 . See W.J. van Bekkum, "Anti-Christian Polemics in Hebrew Liturgical Poetry (Piyyut) o f the Sixth and Seventh Centuries," in J. den Boeft & A. Hilhorst (eds.), Early Christian Poetry, Leiden 1993, 2 9 7 - 3 0 8 ; and idem, "Jewish Messianic Expectations in the A g e o f Heraclius," in G.J. Reinink & B.H. Stolte (eds.), The Reign of Heraclius (610-641): Crisis and Confrontation, Leuven 2 0 0 2 , 9 5 - 1 1 2 . Simon, Verus Israel 1 7 9 - 2 0 1 . B. Avoda Zara 4a. Photius, Bibliotheca cod. 230 (= vol. V, pp. 6 0 - 6 4 Henry). See R. Pummer, Early Chris tian Authors on Samaritans and Samaritanism, Tubingen 2002, 425^129. Inter alia from writings of the famous abbott of the St. Catharina monastery in the Sinai, Anastasius Sinaita (seventh cent.); see Deroche, 'La polemique' 2 8 4 - 2 8 5 . 4 6
4 7
4 8
4 9
5 0
Twenty-Five
Questions
225
to Corner the Jews
the a n t i - J e w i s h s e r m o n s J o h n C h r y s o s t o m held in A n t i o c h in t h e y e a r s 3 8 6 - 3 8 7 CE,
5 1
still p l a y e d a significant role in t h e d e c a d e s a r o u n d 6 0 0 C E .
Further, it has to b e n o t e d that, e v e n if t h e a n t i - J e w i s h p o l e m i c s in t h e s e trea tises did n o t s e r v e the practical p u r p o s e o f b e a t i n g the J e w s in d e b a t e , t h e y w e r e useful w i t h i n h e C h u r c h , specifically s e r v i n g to confirm the beliefs a n d identity o f C h r i s t i a n s w h o c a m e into c o n t a c t w i t h J e w s . D e m a r c a t i o n is, a n d w a s , a l w a y s essential for self-identification.
52
T h e d o c u m e n t d i s c u s s e d h e r e , ' u n petit m a n u e l o f f e n s i f , '
53
m a k e s clear that
C h r i s t i a n s tried to b e as well p r e p a r e d as t h e y c o u l d for p o s s i b l e c o n t r o v e r s i e s w i t h J e w s . It is u n i q u e in so far as it is the only treatise k n o w n to us in w h i c h only t h e q u e s t i o n s n o t t h e a n s w e r s are g i v e n . T h i s feature is telling, for t h e implica tion is o f c o u r s e that there are n o p o s s i b l e a n s w e r s ( N . B . : epaporetika\).
That
is also i n d i c a t e d b y t h e frequently r e c u r r i n g f o r m u l a that i n t r o d u c e s t h e actual q u e s t i o n : " . . . , is it n o t o b v i o u s t h e n t h a t . . . ? "
5 4
T h e G r e e k f o r m u l a t i o n indicates
e v e n m o r e clearly (by m e a n s o f the n e g a t i v e particle ou) than t h e E n g l i s h transla tion that a n y o t h e r a n s w e r t h a n ' y e s ' is i m p o s s i b l e : the C h r i s t i a n is 1 0 0 % right, the J e w c a n o n l y say A m e n a n d c o n v e r t . T h e q u e s t i o n s d o n o t d i s p l a y a clear p r i n c i p l e o f o r d e r i n g , b u t t h e r e is a cer tain clustering. Q u e s t i o n s 1-5 deal w i t h t h e inability o f the L a w to realize the s a l v a t i o n that w a s p r o m i s e d to t h e gentiles. Q u e s t i o n s 6 - 1 1 a r g u e that it is o n l y C h r i s t w h o m e e t s t h e definition o f ' a p r o p h e t like M o s e s . ' Q u e s t i o n s 1 2 - 1 5 posit that t h e t e m p o r a r y p r i e s t h o o d o f A a r o n a n d t h e eternal o n e o f M e l c h i z e d e k are m u t u a l l y e x c l u s i v e . Q u e s t i o n s 1 6 - 2 0 e m p h a s i z e a g a i n that the L a w d o e s n o t b r i n g salvation to the g e n t i l e s w h e r e a s C h r i s t i a n faith d o e s . Q u e s t i o n s 2 1 - 2 4 state that in its p r e s e n t situation the p e o p l e o f Israel c a n n o t fulfill t h e L a w a n y l o n g e r a n d that the M e s s i a h c a n n o t arise from the tribe o f J u d a h b e c a u s e that tribe c a n n o t b e d i s t i n g u i s h e d from o t h e r Israelite tribes a n y m o r e . Q u e s t i o n 2 5 is the c r o w n i n g c o n c l u s i o n . Biblical v e r s e s from the O l d T e s t a m e n t p l a y i n g a k e y r o l e are G e n . 4 9 : 1 0 , D e u t . 1 8 : 1 5 , 18 a n d Ps. 110:4. ( F r o m t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t e s p e c i a l l y P a u l a n d the Letter to the H e b r e w s play a n i m p o r t a n t role.) T h e w e l l - k n o w n S h i l o h - p a s s a g e in G e n . 4 9 : 1 0 a b o u t the ruler from J u d a h that will not fail a n d will b e the ' e x p e c 55
tation o f t h e G e n t i l e s ' (thus t h e S e p t u a g i n t v e r s i o n that w a s u s e d b y t h e a u t h o r )
5 1
See P.W. van der Horst, 'Jews and Christians in Antioch at the End of the Fourth Century,' in S.E. Porter & B.W.R. Pearson (eds.), Jewish-Christian Relations Through the Centuries, Sheffield 2 0 0 0 , 2 2 8 - 2 3 8 . The author of the Kephalaia borrowed heavily for his anti-Jewish argumentation from Chrysostom's sermons. The invariable conversion of the Jewish interlocutor at the end of the debates serves of course exactly that purpose. Deroche, "La polemique" 297. Greek: pos ouprodelon hoti...; a real 'bluff formula.' For the significant differences between the Hebrew and the Greek text here see M. Had 5 2
5 3
5 4
5 5
226
Twenty-Five
Questions
to Corner the Jews
w a s interpreted in a m e s s i a n i c s e n s e b y b o t h J e w s a n d C h r i s t i a n s in antiquity, a n d t h e s a m e a p p l i e d to D e u t . 1 8 : 1 5 - 1 8 (a p r o p h e t like M o s e s ) a n d P s a l m 110[109]:4 (You are a priest for e v e r a c c o r d i n g to the o r d e r o f M e l c h i z e d e k ) . It is n o w o n d e r that e x a c t l y t h o s e texts that b o t h parties interpreted as p r e d i c t i o n s o f t h e m e s s i a h b e c a m e a s o u r c e o f c o n t r o v e r s y o v e r t h e q u e s t i o n w h o this m e s s i a h w a s . In q u e s t i o n s 8 a n d 9 the a u t h o r a s s u m e s , r a t h e r u n e x p e c t e d l y , that from t h e J e w i s h p o i n t o f v i e w Z e r u b b a b e l w o u l d turn out to b e the m e s s i a h or the p r o p h e t like M o s e s in D e u t . 18. T h i s interpretation o f t h e figure o f Z e r u b b a b e l , b a s e d u p o n H a g g a i 2 : 2 2 - 2 4 , is not to b e found explicitly in J e w i s h s o u r c e s , b u t the fifth-century C h r i s t i a n e x e g e t e T h e o d o r e t o f C y r r u s a l s o p o l e m i c i z e s a g a i n s t the J e w i s h o p i n i o n that (a s e c o n d ) Z e r u b b a b e l w o u l d turn out to b e t h e m e s s i a h .
56
A n d it will c e r t a i n l y not b e s h e e r c o i n c i d e n c e that p r e c i s e l y in t h e s e v e n t h c e n tury a B y z a n t i n e J e w w r o t e t h e Sefer Zerubbabel n o t a m e s s i a h , is a great a p o c a l y p t i c v i s i o n a r y ,
in w h i c h Z e r u b b a b e l , t h o u g h 57
w h i c h c o u l d b e interpreted b y
m a l e v o l e n t a n d ill-informed C h r i s t i a n c o n t e m p o r a r i e s as b e i n g a b o u t a p e r s o n w i t h a g r e a t r o l e in the e s c h a t o n , that is, a m e s s i a h . S i n c e , h o w e v e r , the a u t h o r o f o u r treatise s e e m s to b e rather w e l l - i n f o r m e d , w e certainly c a n n o t e x c l u d e t h e possibility, c o n f i r m e d b y T h e o d o r e t u s , that this i d e a w a s f a v o u r e d in certain Jewish circles.
58
M u c h m o r e r e m a i n s to b e said a b o u t t h e Kephalaia
epaporetika.
In fact t h e
s t u d y o f this treatise is still in its infancy. In this c o n t r i b u t i o n , m y m o d e s t a i m w a s to e n a b l e r e a d e r s w h o m a y n o t b e familiar w i t h this text to m a k e a first a c q u a i n t a n c e w i t h a small b u t fascinating c h a p t e r in the history o f J e w i s h - C h r i s t i a n r e l a t i o n s in t h e early B y z a n t i n e era.
e.a., La Bible d'Alexandrie, I: La Genese, Paris 1986, 3 0 8 - 3 0 9 , and J.W. Wevers, Notes on the Greek Text of Genesis, Atlanta 1993, 826. See, e.g., his Comm. inlsaiam 11.10 (PG 8 1 , 1 8 7 2 ) . Other passages from his and Jerome's works are mentioned by R.L. Wilken, "The Restoration of Israel in Biblical Prophecy: Christian and Jewish Responses in the Early Byzantine Period," in J. Neusner & E.S. Frerichs (eds.), "To See Ourselves As Others See Us. " Christians, Jews, 'Others' in Late Antiquity, Chico 1985, 4 5 4 note 17. See M. Himmelfarb, "Sefer Zerubbabel," in D. Stern & M.J. Mirsky (eds.), Rabbinic Phantasies. Imaginative Narratives from Classical Hebrew Literature, Philadelphia-New York 1990, 6 7 - 9 0 . Further Wilken, "The Restoration of Israel," 4 4 3 ^ 1 7 1 , esp. 453—461; R.L. Wilken, The Land Called Holy. Palestine in Christian History and Thought, N e w Haven-London 1992, 2 0 7 - 2 1 4 ; and Van Bekkum, "Jewish Messianic Expectations" 1 0 4 - 1 0 6 . That the interpretation of Gog and Magog plays a role in both our document (Question 16) and the Sefer Zerubbabel, as well as in other Jewish and Christian sources from this period, cor roborates the impression that the themes broached by the anonymous author of the Kephalaia played a role in real life debates. See also on this Wilken, "The Restoration o f Israel," 459. 5 6
5 7
5 8
"The Most Superstitious and Disgusting of All Nations" Diogenes of Oenoanda on the Jews
S o m e t i m e d u r i n g H a d r i a n ' s reign, p r o b a b l y in t h e t w e n t i e s o f the 2
n d
century
C E , a w e a l t h y i n h a b i t a n t o f t h e city o f O e n o a n d a (in Lycia) called D i o g e n e s h a d t h e h u g e w a l l o f the S t o a o n t h e A g o r a inscribed w i t h a g i g a n t i c inscription (ca. 8 0 x 4 m e t e r ) . H i s intention w a s to instruct his fellow-citizens, p r o b a b l y shortly before h i s d e a t h , in E p i c u r u s ' p h i l o s o p h y in o r d e r to dispel their fear o f d e a t h a n d o f the g o d s . A b o u t a c e n t u r y a n d a h a l f later this b u i l d i n g w a s d i s m a n t l e d a n d m a n y b l o c k s o f the inscription w e r e r e - u s e d for t h e c o n s t r u c t i o n o f a n e w fortification w a l l a n d o t h e r b u i l d i n g s . In 1884 the first f r a g m e n t s o f this i n s c r i p tion w e r e d i s c o v e r e d in t h e city. T h e e x c a v a t i o n s h a v e c o n t i n u e d at that site since t h e n , albeit v e r y intermittently, for s o m e 120 y e a r s , a n d t i m e a n d a g a i n n e w f r a g m e n t s o f this c u r i o u s text w e r e found. T h e b y t h e n c o m p l e t e a n d w e l l k n o w n T e u b n e r edition o f 1967 b y C. W. C h i l t o n i n c l u d e d 88 f r a g m e n t s . B u t British i n v e s t i g a t i o n s at O e n o a n d a from 1968 till 1983 m o r e t h a n d o u b l e d the n u m b e r o f k n o w n f r a g m e n t s , i n c r e a s i n g it from 88 to n o less t h a n 2 1 2 . (It s h o u l d b e a d d e d in p a r e n t h e s e s , h o w e v e r , that t h e 8 8 f r a g m e n t s a l r e a d y k n o w n c o n t a i n s o m e 3 5 5 0 w o r d s , w h e r e a s the 124 n e w f r a g m e n t s h a v e o n l y s o m e 2 3 5 0 ) . T h e s e n e w f r a g m e n t s w e r e d i s c o v e r e d a n d p u b l i s h e d in a l o n g series o f articles b y M a r t i n F. S m i t h . H e finally p u b l i s h e d a n e w edition o f all the f r a g m e n t s , t h e fullest ever, in 1 9 9 3 . ' Ten y e a r s later, in 2 0 0 3 , S m i t h p u b l i s h e d a s u p p l e m e n t b e c a u s e , d u e to his o w n i n d u s t r i o u s search for n e w f r a g m e n t s , h e w a s a b l e to p r e s e n t e l e v e n m o r e 2
n e w p i e c e s , i n c l u d i n g the largest p i e c e found so far. M o s t o f t h e s e n e w frag m e n t s yield little n e w i n f o r m a t i o n , b u t N [ e w ] F [ r a g m e n f ] 126 is o f i m p o r t a n c e . N F 126, the m o s t substantial a n d b e s t p r e s e r v e d o f all t h e f r a g m e n t s , is e n g r a v e d
1
M. F. Smith, Diogenes of Oinoanda. The Epicurean Inscription, edited with introduction, translation and notes, Napoli 1993 (see my review in Mnemosyne 48 (1995) 1 0 1 - 1 0 3 ) . In this book one also finds the remarkable story of the gradual discovery o f the text of this treatise on stone. M. F. Smith, Supplement to Diogenes of Oinoanda, The Epicurean Inscription, Napoli 2003. A s a matter of fact Smith had already published most of this new material, which was discovered in 1997, in 1998; see his 'Excavations at Oinoanda 1997: The N e w Epicurean Texts,' Anatolian Studies 48 (1998) 1 2 5 - 1 7 0 . The full commentary on these new fragments is to be found in the 1998 article, not in the book o f 2003. 2
228
Diogenes
of Oenoanda
on the Jews
o n a b l o c k o f m a r b l e w i t h a w i d t h o f 165 c m . a n d it h a s 5 c o l u m n s o f text. It d i s c u s s e s m a t t e r s o f t h e o l o g y a n d religion such as that ' t h e E p i c u r e a n c o n c e p t i o n o f t h e g o d s as living a life o f c o m p l e t e self-sufficiency a n d tranquillity a n d n o t c o n c e r n i n g t h e m s e l v e s w i t h o u r w o r l d is beneficial to h u m a n b e i n g s , w h e r e a s t h e c o n c e p t i o n o f t h e m as b e i n g s w h o c r e a t e d the w o r l d a n d h u m a n b e i n g s a n d interfere w i t h o u r affairs, p u n i s h i n g the w i c k e d a n d r e w a r d i n g t h e r i g h t e o u s , is 3
h a r m f u l . ' All o f this is w e l l - k n o w n , o f c o u r s e , but o n e o f the m o r e n o v e l a s p e c t s o f N F 126 is that D i o g e n e s h e r e attacks the J e w s a n d E g y p t i a n s . H e states the following: A clear indication o f the inability o f the g o d s to prevent w r o n g d o i n g s is provided b y the nations o f the J e w s and Egyptians, w h o , as w e l l as b e i n g the m o s t superstitious aimonestatoi)
o f all p e o p l e s , are also the m o s t disgusting (miardtatoi)
(deisid-
o f all p e o p l e s ( N F
126 III 8 - 1 V 1). 4
S o m e r e m a r k s are in o r d e r h e r e . L e t m e b e g i n b y s a y i n g s o m e t h i n g m o r e a b o u t t h e i m m e d i a t e c o n t e x t o f the s t a t e m e n t w i t h i n the d o c u m e n t itself a n d t h e n a d d s o m e o b s e r v a t i o n s a b o u t the w i d e r c o n t e x t in t e r m s o f G r e e k a n d R o m a n v i e w s o f J u d a i s m . N F 126 b e l o n g s to the section o n E p i c u r e a n p h y s i c s o f w h i c h t h e o l 5
o g y w a s a p a r t . D i o g e n e s h e r e a r g u e s that e v i l - d o e r s a p p a r e n t l y are n o t afraid o f the g o d s , o t h e r w i s e they w o u l d n o t c o m m i t their evil acts. R e a l l y r i g h t e o u s p e o p l e , o n the o t h e r h a n d , are n o t r i g h t e o u s out o f fear o f t h e g o d s b u t b e c a u s e t h e y h a v e the right set o f ideas; it is their ethical c o n v i c t i o n s that k e e p t h e m from d o i n g evil. E v e n o r d i n a r y p e o p l e are r i g h t e o u s , ' i n so far as they are r i g h t e o u s ' (II 7 - 8 ) , on a c c o u n t o f the l a w s a n d the p e n a l t i e s i m p o s e d b y the l a w s ; a n d e v e n if s o m e o f t h e m d o k e e p a w a y from evil on a c c o u n t o f t h e g o d s , t h e y form o n l y a handful. ' H a r d l y t w o or three ( o f s u c h ) i n d i v i d u a l s are to b e found a m o n g great s e g m e n t s o f the m a s s e s , a n d not e v e n t h e s e are steadfast in acting righteously, for t h e y a r e n o t fully p e r s u a d e d a b o u t P r o v i d e n c e ' (II 13 - III 7). T h e n follow t h e lines a b o u t the J e w s a n d E g y p t i a n s q u o t e d a b o v e , a n d after that a vacat
indicates
the b e g i n n i n g o f a n e w p a r a g r a p h . First it h a s to b e said that this r e m a r k a b o u t J e w s a n d E g y p t i a n s h a s n o p a r a l lels in E p i c u r e a n literature. In spite o f the m a n y critical r e m a r k s on traditional r e l i g i o u s beliefs in the w r i t i n g s o f E p i c u r u s a n d his followers, w e d o n o t find
3
Smith, Supplement to Diogenes of Oinoanda 75. 'Excavations at Oinoanda 1 9 9 7 / 1 4 0 - 1 4 2 , has some useful comments on these lines, but Diogenes' remarks deserve closer investigation. For some additional comments see also W. Ameling, Inscriptiones Judaicae Orientis II: Kleinasien, Tubingen 2004, 4 7 2 - 4 7 7 , who reprints part o f the new fragment, offers a German translation, and adds two pages of com ments. See J.M. Rist, Epicurus. An Introduction, Cambridge 1972, 1 4 0 - 1 6 3 ; A.A. Long, Helle nistic Philosophy, London 1974, 4 1 - 4 9 . A good selection o f Epicurean texts on the gods is to be found in A.A. Long & D.N. Sedley, The Hellenistic Philosophers, vol. 1, Cambridge 1987, 139-149. 4
5
Diogenes
of Oenoanda
on the Jews
229
6
s u c h s n i d e r e m a r k s o n t h e J e w s ( o r E g y p t i a n s ) , a s far a s t h e f r a g m e n t a r y s t a t e of preservation of Epicurean literature permits us to see. A s both Smith and A m e l i n g r e m a r k , it c a n n o t b e r u l e d o u t t h a t t h e g r e a t J e w i s h r e v o l t o f 1 1 5 - 1 1 7 C E in E g y p t a n d t h e C y r e n a i c a a n d a l s o t h e B a r K o c h b a w a r o f 1 3 2 - 1 3 5 C E 7
h a d a n e g a t i v e influence u p o n D i o g e n e s ' a t t i t u d e t o w a r d s t h e J e w s . T h a t m a y b e t h e c a s e , b u t t h e r e is n o w a y o f c o n f i r m i n g t h a t ( b u t s e e further b e l o w ) . W e w i l l n o w h a v e t o t a k e a c l o s e r l o o k at t h e t w o q u a l i f i c a t i o n s o f t h e J e w s as b o t h panton
deisidaimonestatoi
a n d panton
A s t o t h e u s e o f deisidaimon
miardtatoi.
for J e w s , w e h a v e t o k e e p in m i n d t h e s e m a n t i c
r a n g e o f t h a t w o r d . A s is w e l l - k n o w n , deisidaimon
has the dual aspect of 're
l i g i o u s , d e v o u t ' o n t h e o n e h a n d , a n d o f ' e x c e s s i v e l y s c r u p u l o u s in r e l i g i o u s matters, superstitious' on the other.
8
Both the positive and the negative con
n o t a t i o n s o f t h e w o r d w e r e in e v i d e n c e a l r e a d y in c l a s s i c a l t i m e s , a s is c l e a r l y d e m o n s t r a t e d b y a c o m p a r i s o n of, e . g . , A r i s t o t l e ' s u s e o f t h e t e r m in a c o n t e x t o f w o r d s d e n o t i n g r e s p e c t for t h e g o d s (in Pol. 5.11.25 [ 1 3 1 5 a l - 3 ] ) , a n d T h e o p h r a s t u s ' u s e o f it in a c o n t e x t o f w o r d s d e n o t i n g fear a n d c o w a r d i c e (in h i s f a m o u s Character
16). T h a t t h e s a m e s e m a n t i c d u a l i t y still a p p l i e d in t h e p e r i o d
m u c h c l o s e r t o t h e t i m e o f D i o g e n e s o f O e n o a n d a is p r o v e d by, for e x a m p l e , D i o d o r u s S i c u l u s 1.70.8, w h e r e deisidaimonia 9
is e q u a t e d t o a theophiles
(a g o d - l o v i n g l i f e ) o n t h e o n e h a n d a n d P l u t a r c h ' s critical t r e a t i s e Peri aiminias 6
(De superstitione)
on the other.
1 0
bios deisid-
T h e u s a g e in t h e J e w i s h h i s t o r i a n
I will leave the Egyptians out o f account here in order to focus on the Jews. I am aware o f the risk that, by doing so, I create the impression that Diogenes singles out the Jews for vitupera tion, which he does not, and the reader is requested to keep this in mind. That both Jews and Egyptians (and others) were often the victims o f ethnic biases and stereotypes is well illustrated by G. Bohak, 'The Ibis and the Jewish Question: Ancient "Anti-Semitism" in Historical Per spective,' in M. Mor et al. (eds.), Jews and Gentiles in the Holy Land in the Days of the Second Temple, the Mishnah and the Talmud, Jerusalem 2 0 0 3 , 27^13. For Greek and Roman criticism of the Egyptian religion see, e.g., K.A.D. Smelik & E.A. Hemelrijk, '"Who Knows Not What Monsters Demented Egypt Worships?" Opinions on Egyptian Animal Worship in Antiquity as Part o f the Ancient Conception o f Egypt,' in Aufstieg und Niedergang der Romischen Welt II 17, 4, Berlin 1984, 1 8 5 2 - 2 0 0 0 . Smith, 'Excavations at Oinoanda 1997,' 142; Ameling, Inscriptiones Judaicae Orientis II474 n. 14. See the t w o books of 75 years ago by m y fellow-countrymen H. Bolkestein, Theophrastos' Charakter der deisidaimonia als religionsgeschichtliche Urkunde, Giessen 1929, and P.J. Koets, Deisidaimonia. A Contribution to the Knowledge of the Religious Terminology in Greek, Purmerend 1929. For more recent literature see P.B. Colera, & J.R. Somolinos, Repertorio bibliogrdfico de la lexicografia griega, Madrid 1998, 2 3 1 . A very useful short dis cussion is C. Spicq, Notes de lexicographic neotestamentaire. Supplement, Fribourg: Editions universitaires - Gottingen 1982, 113—117. B y far the most extensive recent treatment to date is D.B. Martin, Inventing Superstition: from the Hippocratics to the Christians, Cambridge M A - London 2004. But Diodorus uses it occasionally also in a negative sense; see Martin, Inventing Supersti tion 7 9 - 9 2 . For references to passages in the works o f Plutarch apart from De superstitione see Spicq, Notes de lexicographic neotestamentaire 114-115, and Martin, Inventing Superstition 7
8
9
1 0
230
Diogenes
of Oenoanda
on the Jews
F l a v i u s J o s e p h u s , a n e a r - c o n t e m p o r a r y o f D i o g e n e s , is illustrative in t h a t h e e m p l o y s the w o r d deisidaimonia
in b o t h s e n s e s : for ' r e l i g i o n , s y s t e m o f cultic
b e l i e f a n d p r a c t i c e , faithfulness' (referring to the J e w i s h faith) on t h e o n e h a n d , a n d for ' r e l i g i o u s fanaticism, bigotry, s u p e r s t i t i o n ' o n the o t h e r .
11
Even though
the d e n i g r a t i n g s e n s e b e c o m e s d o m i n a n t in later antiquity, t h e p o s i t i v e or n e u t r a l s e n s e is still alive in the t i m e o f D i o g e n e s .
1 2
B u t in w h a t s e n s e did D i o g e n e s u s e t h e w o r d deisidaimonl
C o n t r a r y to w h a t
o n e w o u l d e x p e c t , t h e r e are n o o t h e r o c c u r r e n c e s o f this w o r d (or o f monia)
deisidai
in t h e e x t a n t f r a g m e n t s , so that o n e will h a v e to t a k e a d e c i s i o n a b o u t
t h e s e n s e o f t h e w o r d solely on the b a s i s o f this p a s s a g e . O n e m i g h t a r g u e that a p o s i t i v e s e n s e w o u l d e n h a n c e the c o n t r a s t b e t w e e n piety a n d d i s g u s t i n g or e v e n c r i m i n a l b e h a v i o u r . B u t o n e m i g h t a r g u e as w e l l that it is e x a c t l y a n e x t r e m e s c r u p u l o s i t y in t h i n g s r e l i g i o u s that w o u l d lead o n e to e x p e c t that t r a n s g r e s s i o n s o f g e n e r a l l y a c c e p t e d rules o f c o n d u c t will b e a v o i d e d by t h e p e r s o n s c o n c e r n e d out o f fear o f d i v i n e p u n i s h m e n t . It m a y b e helpful in this r e s p e c t to cast a g l a n c e at G r e e k attitudes t o w a r d s J e w i s h religion a n d see h o w the deisidaimonia
motif
is u s e d in the traditions c o n c e r n i n g t h e s e attitudes. All the r e l e v a n t m a t e r i a l h a s b e e n helpfully c o l l e c t e d b y t h e late M e n a c h e m Stern ( o f the H e b r e w U n i v e r s i t y in J e r u s a l e m ) in his m a s s i v e a n d m a g i s t e r i a l t h r e e - v o l u m e w o r k Greek and Latin Authors 12
GLAJJ).
on Jews and Judaism
(henceforth
T h e first a n c i e n t a u t h o r to b e m e n t i o n e d h e r e is t h e s e c o n d c e n t u r y
B C E historian A g a t h a r c h i d e s of C n i d u s w h o , in o r d e r to illustrate the stupidity o f all sorts o f superstition, m e n t i o n s the fact that b y a b s t a i n i n g from w o r k o n e v e r y s a b b a t h the J e w s o n c e lost the city o f J e r u s a l e m d u r i n g a w a r b e c a u s e they w e r e u n w i l l i n g to d e f e n d it d u r i n g the s e v e n t h day. H e ridicules their b e h a v i o u r as a g l a r i n g c a s e o f deisidaimonia A 8 6 F 2 0 a - b = GLAJJ
(ap. J o s e p h u s , Contra Apionem
no. 3 0 ) .
1 4
1.205-11 =
FGH
A b o u t a c e n t u r y later t h e g e o g r a p h e r S t r a b o
c a s t i g a t e s M o s e s ' s u c c e s s o r s (not M o s e s himself; see Geogr.
16.2.35-36)
1 5
for
h a v i n g i n t r o d u c e d a w i d e variety o f s u p e r s t i t i o u s p r a c t i c e s , such as c i r c u m c i sion a n d a b s t a i n i n g from the m e a t o f certain a n i m a l s (Geogr.
16.2.37 =
GLAJJ
93-108. See K.H. Rengstorf (ed.), A Complete Concordance to Flavius Josephus, vol. 1, Leiden 1973,418. See also the material collected in F.W. Danker, A Greek-English Lexicon of the New Testament and Other Early Christian Literature (based on W. Bauer), third ed., Chicago 2 0 0 0 , 216. M. Stern, Greek and Latin Authors on Jews and Judaism, 3 vols., Jerusalem 1974—1984. In vol. 3, 156, one finds the references to passages with the deisidaimonia motif. The motif of 'Jewish superstition' is discussed also by P. Schafer, Judeophohia. Attitudes Towards the Jews in the Ancient World, Cambridge MA 1997, index s.v. The same story is also to be found in Josephus, Ant. Jud. 12.6. Contrast Quintilian, Inst. 3.7.21: 'Founders of cities are detested for concentrating a race which is a curse to others, as for example the founder of the Jewish superstition [ = M o s e s ] ' (GLAJJ no. 230). 11
1 2
1 3
1 4
15
Diogenes
of Oenoanda
231
on the Jews
n o . 115). E r o t i a n u s , a first c e n t u r y C E g l o s s a t o r o f H i p p o c r a t e s , also m e n t i o n s a b s t e n t i o n from p o r k as a sign o f J e w i s h deisidaimonia s e n s e (GLAJJ
no. 196). In P l u t a r c h ' s De superstitione
t w i c e as e x a m p l e s o f a r e p r e h e n s i b l e deisidaimonia:
in a clearly d e r o g a t o r y the J e w s are m e n t i o n e d
in 3 ( 1 6 6 A ; GLAJJ no. 2 5 5 )
their k e e p i n g o f the s a b b a t h is s i n g l e d out as such; in 8 ( 1 6 9 C ; GLAJJ
no. 2 5 6 )
it is said that ' b e c a u s e it w a s the s a b b a t h , t h e J e w s sat i m m o v a b l e in their p l a c e s w h i l e t h e e n e m y w e r e p l a n t i n g l a d d e r s a g a i n s t the w a l l s a n d c a p t u r i n g the d e fenses, a n d t h e y did not g e t u p but r e m a i n e d t h e r e , b o u n d in deisidaimonia o n e g r e a t n e t . ' In Stoic,
repugn.
3 8 ( 1 0 5 0 E ; GLAJJ
as in
no. 2 5 7 ) the o p i n i o n s held
by J e w s a n d S y r i a n s a b o u t g o d s are c a t e g o r i z e d b y P l u t a r c h as
deisidaimonia.
M o r e i n s t a n c e s c o u l d b e g i v e n , b u t t h e s e few m a y suffice to s h o w that J e w i s h deisidaimonia
in G r e e k e y e s w a s a l m o s t a l w a y s s o m e t h i n g to b e d e s p i s e d or
ridiculed. M o s t o f t h e G r e e k ( a n d R o m a n )
1 6
intellectuals h a d little or n o a p p r e
ciation for the religious ideas a n d c u s t o m s o f the J e w s ; t h e y c o u l d see little else than superstition in w h a t t h e y r e g a r d e d as t h e e x c e s s i v e s c r u p u l o s i t y that this religion entailed. In their e y e s , J u d a i s m w a s r e l i g i o n carried to its e x t r e m e s . It is v e r y p r o b a b l e that D i o g e n e s o f O e n o a n d a s t a n d s in this t r a d i t i o n . B u t w h y d o e s D i o g e n e s s a y o f the J e w s : panton
eisi miarotatoP.
17
S e v e r a l ear
lier a u t h o r s d o state that t h e J e w i s h religion is a s p e c i m e n o f deisidaimonia,
but
e v e n so they refrain from d e s c r i b i n g the J e w s in s u c h n e g a t i v e t e r m s as D i o g e n e s d o e s . W h a t is the m e a n i n g o f miarotatoi
h e r e ? Miaros
c a n b e said o f a n y t h i n g or
a n y o n e stained, defiled, or p o l l u t e d in t h e literal s e n s e , b u t m o r e often it d e n o t e s i m m o r a l b e h a v i o u r or it p e r t a i n s to ' s o m e t h i n g that [or s o m e o n e w h o ] v i o l a t e s cultic or m o r a l c a n o n s to s u c h an e x t e n t as to invite r e v u l s i o n , [hence] a b o m i n a 8
b l e , w r e t c h e d , foul, d e p r a v e d , d i s g u s t i n g . " P a r k e r s a y s a b o u t t h e related w o r d miaino
that 'it c a n b e u s e d for the p o l l u t i o n o f a r e p u t a t i o n t h r o u g h u n w o r t h y
d e e d s , or o f truth t h r o u g h d i s h o n e s t y ; j u s t i c e , law, a n d p i e t y are in d a n g e r o f defilement.' miarotes
19
T h e a u t h o r w h o e m p h a s i z e s the m o t i f o f the J e w s ' miaria
or
m o r e than a n y o n e e l s e is t h e G r a e c o - E g y p t i a n priest M a n e t h o (ca.
3 0 0 B C E ) . T h i s early r e p r e s e n t a t i v e o f J e w - h a t r e d pictures the J e w s as originally a b u n c h o f lepers a n d o t h e r w i s e p o l l u t e d (miaroi)
p e r s o n s in E g y p t w h o h a d to
b e e x p e l l e d from the c o u n t r y at d i v i n e c o m m a n d b e c a u s e t h e y ritually defiled the country, w h e r e a f t e r they f o u n d e d their r o g u e - s t a t e in a n d a r o u n d J e r u s a l e m (ap. J o s e p h u s , Contra Apionem
1 . 2 2 8 - 2 5 2 = FGH C 6 0 9 F 1 0 = GLAJJ
no. 2 1 ) . T h a t
this a n t i - J e w i s h v e r s i o n o f J e w i s h b e g i n n i n g s , a p e r v e r t e d v e r s i o n o f t h e e x o d u s story w i t h a s t r o n g e m p h a s i s on J e w i s h i m p u r i t y a n d defilement, s u r v i v e d till the
1 6
For similar Roman views on Jewish superstitio see Schafer, Judeophohia 180-195. This conclusion is corroborated by Dale Martin's observation that since Theophrastus, in philosophical writings deisidaimonia is always used in a negative sense; see Inventing Superstition 2 1 - 3 5 . See Danker (Bauer), Greek-English Lexicon 650. R. Parker, Miasma. Pollution and Purification in Early Greek Religion, Oxford 1983, 3. 1 7
1 8
1 9
232
Diogenes
of Oenoanda
on the Jews
t i m e o f D i o g e n e s is p r o v e d b y the spiteful caricature o f the J e w s a n d their origins in T a c i t u s , Hist. 5 . 3 - 5 (GLAJJ
no. 2 8 1 ) .
2 0
H o w e v e r , in the d e v e l o p m e n t o f this
a n t i - J e w i s h story b e t w e e n M a n e t h o a n d Tacitus the e m p h a s i s is p u t m o r e a n d m o r e on the i m m o r a l c h a r a c t e r o f the J e w s .
2 1
T h e y are i n c r e a s i n g l y b l a c k e n e d
in a p r o c e s s o f d e m o n i z a t i o n that finds its ( p r o v i s i o n a l ) c l i m a x in the w o r k o f t h e first c e n t u r y C E A l e x a n d r i a n g r a m m a r i a n A p i o n .
2 2
H e tells a story a b o u t an
a n n u a l c a n n i b a l i s t i c ritual in w h i c h the J e w s slaughter, sacrifice a n d eat a G r e e k w h o h a s b e e n fattened for that v e r y p u r p o s e (ap. J o s e p h u s , Contra 2 . 9 1 - 9 6 = FGH C 6 1 6 F4i = GLAJJ
no. 171).
23
Apionem
T h i s utter m o r a l d e p r a v i t y w i t h
its e x t r e m e l y d i s g u s t i n g m a n i f e s t a t i o n s , a w i d e s p r e a d m o t i f in the a n t i - J e w i s h literature o f H e l l e n i s t i c a n d early R o m a n t i m e s , a n y t h i n g else c a l l i n g t h e J e w s miaroi,
2 4
is w h a t justified m o r e than
or r a t h e r miarotatoi
pantdn.
Acts of can
n i b a l i s m , a n d e a t i n g a G r e e k at that, p r o v e d b e y o n d d o u b t that the J e w s w e r e t h e m o s t a b o m i n a b l e a n d d e p r a v e d o f all n a t i o n s , so it w a s b e l i e v e d .
25
M o r e than o n e
a n c i e n t author, therefore, c o n d e m n s t h e J e w s as the w o r s t p o s s i b l e atheists a n d m i s a n t h r o p e s . E v e n t h o u g h t h e w o r d miaros
d o e s not o c c u r often in this c o n t e x t ,
t h e i d e a is e x p r e s s e d in a w i d e variety o f o t h e r d e r o g a t o r y t e r m s as w e l l . It is h i g h l y unlikely, in m y view, that D i o g e n e s o f O e n o a n d a w a s w h o l l y u n a w a r e o f all this, a n d for that r e a s o n it s e e m s v e r y p r o b a b l e that w h a t h e h a d in m i n d w a s e x a c t l y t h e m o r a l d e p r a v i t y o f the J e w s . T h i s also fits in w i t h t h e c o n t e x t , in w h i c h h e s p e a k s a b o u t his c o n v i c t i o n that t h e g o d s d o n o t p u n i s h e v i l d o e r s . In a d d i t i o n to that, if the a b o v e m e n t i o n e d s u g g e s t i o n that D i o g e n e s ' attitude t o w a r d s the J e w s m a y h a v e b e e n influenced b y r e p o r t s a b o u t the w a r b e t w e e n J e w s a n d R o m a n s a n d G r e e k s in C y r e n e a n d E g y p t in the y e a r s 1 1 5 - 1 1 7 h a s a n y m e r i t s , it m a y b e the following. L e s s t h a n a c e n t u r y after D i o g e n e s , t h e h i s t o r i a n C a s s i u s D i o relates that the J e w s o f C y r e n e h a d p u t a certain A n d r e a s at their h e a d in 115 C E a n d w e r e d e s t r o y i n g G r e e k s a n d R o m a n s . ' T h e y w o u l d eat the flesh o f their v i c t i m s , m a k e belts for t h e m s e l v e s o f their entrails, a n o i n t t h e m s e l v e s w i t h their b l o o d , a n d w e a r their skins for c l o t h i n g ; m a n y t h e y s a w e d in t w o , from t h e h e a d d o w n w a r d s ; others they g a v e to w i l d b e a s t s , a n d still o t h e r s they forced to fight as g l a d i a t o r s ' (Hist.
6 8 . 3 2 . 1 - 2 = GLAJJ
no. 437).
H o w e v e r m u c h o f this r e p o r t m a y h a v e b e e n e x a g g e r a t e d , as is to b e e x p e c t e d
2 0
On which see now esp. R.S. B\och,Antike Vorstellungen vom Judentum. Der Judenexkurs des Tacitus im Rahmen der griechisch-romischen Ethnographie, Stuttgart 2 0 0 2 . For a brief sketch of this development see P.W. van der Horst, Philo s Flaccus. The First Pogrom. Introduction, Translation and Commentary, Leiden 2 0 0 3 , 1 8 - 3 4 . See the chapter 'Who Was Apion?' in RW. van der Horst, Japheth in the Tents of Shem. Studies on Jewish Hellenism in Antiquity, Leuven 2 0 0 2 , 2 0 7 - 2 2 2 . Note that miaros often has the connotation of 'defiled by blood;' see Parker, Miasma 104-143. Tacitus, Hist. 5.5.1, speaks about the pravitas of the Jewish ritus. See Schafer, Judeophobia 58, 203. Also E. Bickermann, 'Ritualmord und Eselskult,' in his Studies in Jewish and Christian History, vol. 2, Leiden 1980, 2 2 5 - 2 5 5 . 2 1
2 2
2 3
2 4
2 5
Diogenes
of Oenoanda
on the Jews
233
o f w a r t i m e r u m o r s , if e v e n part o f this kind o f stories h a d r e a c h e d the inhabitants o f O e n o a n d a , D i o g e n e s w o u l d h a v e seen r e a s o n s e n o u g h to m a k e his s t a t e m e n t a b o u t the miaria
o f the J e w s . A s S m i t h s a y s , if the n e w s o f this revolt ' w e r e
fresh in D i o g e n e s ' m i n d w h e n h e w a s w r i t i n g the p r e s e n t p a s s a g e , a n d reports a b o u t atrocities, i n c l u d i n g acts o f c a n n i b a l i s m , a l l e g e d l y c o m m i t t e d by the r e b e l s , h a d b e e n part o f the n e w s , this w o u l d h e l p to e x p l a i n his s t r o n g w o r d s about the J e w s . '
2 6
T h i s b e c o m e s e v e n m o r e p r o b a b l e if o n e t a k e s into a c c o u n t
that t h e s e w a r r u m o r s fitted in w i t h a tradition o f s t e r e o t y p e s o f t h e J e w s as cruel cannibals.
27
E v e n t h o u g h w e d o not h a v e a n y e v i d e n c e o f J e w i s h p r e s e n c e in O e n o a n d a it self, it s h o u l d b e b o r n e in m i n d that in the i m p e r i a l p e r i o d A s i a M i n o r h a r b o u r e d a great m a n y J e w i s h c o m m u n i t i e s .
28
Lycia, t o o , h a d J e w i s h c o m m u n i t i e s as early
as t h e s e c o n d c e n t u r y B C E a c c o r d i n g to a literary s o u r c e (see 7
Maccabees
15.23), a n d there is also e p i g r a p h i c e v i d e n c e for J e w s in Lycia, in b o t h L i m y r a a n d T l o s , from the early R o m a n p e r i o d .
29
S o t h e r e is s o m e r e a s o n to b e l i e v e that
D i o g e n e s h a d s o m e , e v e n if o n l y a distant, a c q u a i n t a n c e o f J e w s . A s w e all k n o w from m o d e r n e x p e r i e n c e , ' k n o w i n g ' s o m e J e w s n e v e r suffices to rid p e o p l e o f l o n g - s t a n d i n g a n t i - S e m i t i c s t e r e o t y p e s a n d p r e j u d i c e s . S o e v e n if D i o g e n e s h a d k n o w n J e w s himself, it is fully w i t h i n the r a n g e o f w h a t is p o s s i b l e that h e still r e g a r d e d t h e m as the m o s t s u p e r s t i t i o u s a n d a b o m i n a b l e o f all n a t i o n s . N o n e t h e less, it is r e v e a l i n g that s u c h an e m i n e n t l y rational a n d o t h e r w i s e s y m p a t h e t i c p e r s o n a l i t y as D i o g e n e s w a s not a b l e to rise a b o v e the level o f the w o r s t antiJ e w i s h cliches o f his t i m e .
2 6
3 0
'Excavations at Oinoanda 1997,' 142. Pagan critics o f early Christianity repeated the same motif; see A. McGowen, 'Eating People: Accusations of Cannibalism Against Christians in the Second Century,'./ECS 2 (1994) 413^142. See P.R. Trebilco, Jewish Communities in Asia Minor, Cambridge 1991. All the relevant evidence is collected in Ameling, Inscriptiones Judaicae Orientis II 470-480. The same applies to Tacitus and other ancient (and modern!) intellectuals. 2 7
2 8
2 9
3 0
The Shadow in Hellenistic Popular Belief F r o m cultural a n t h r o p o l o g i s t s w e learn that it is a well k n o w n fact that in m a n y c u l t u r e s the s h a d o w p l a y s a m u c h m o r e i m p o r t a n t role than in o u r m o d e r n s o c i ety, e s p e c i a l l y in w h a t u s e d to b e called ' p r i m i t i v e ' c u l t u r e s , b u t n o t o n l y t h e r e .
1
T h e s h a d o w is n o t so m u c h t h e p l a c e w h e r e the light c a n n o t p e n e t r a t e , so n o t j u s t privatio,
b u t it h a s a v e r y specific m e a n i n g a n d function o f its o w n : t h e s h a d o w
o f a h u m a n b e i n g or an a n i m a l ( s o m e t i m e s also o f a n object s u c h as a tree) is his/her/its soul, vital p o w e r , d o u b l e , or alter ego?
It is p o t e n t e n o u g h to e x e r t
a p o w e r f u l influence u p o n w h o m it falls or w i t h w h o m it c o m e s into contact. O n e c a n h a r m or d a m a g e s o m e o n e if o n e d e a l s w i t h his s h a d o w v i o l e n t l y ; a n d it c a n b e d a n g e r o u s , or beneficial, if o n e is ' t o u c h e d ' b y the s h a d o w o f certain h u m a n s or a n i m a l s . S h a d o w a n d life are seen as identical to s u c h a d e g r e e that m a n y are afraid o f n o o n t i m e b e c a u s e at that m o m e n t o n e ' s s h a d o w is at its smallest. W h e n o n e ' s s h a d o w d i s a p p e a r s , o n e d i e s . M a n y m a g i c a l p r a c t i c e s are b a s e d u p o n this belief. T h e c h i l d r e n ' s g a m e in w h i c h t h e y try to t r a m p l e u p o n e a c h o t h e r ' s s h a d o w h a s its b a c k g r o u n d in this b e l i e f (often c h i l d r e n ' s g a m e s retain e l e m e n t s o f old p o p u l a r beliefs). In m a n y cultures a n d a m o n g n u m e r o u s n a t i o n s , a n t h r o p o l o g i s t s h a v e o b s e r v e d this p h e n o m e n o n a n d d e s c r i b e d it, a n d
1
See J.G. Frazer, The Golden Bough III: Taboo and the Perils of the Soul, London 1911 ( 3 ed.), 7 7 - 1 0 0 ('The Soul as a Shadow and a Reflection'); J. von Negelein, 'Bild, Spiegel und Schatten im Volksglauben,' Archiv fur Religionswissenschaft 5 (1902) 1-37; F. Pradel, 'Der Schatten im Volksglauben,' Mitteilungen der schlesischen Gesellschaft fur Volkskunde 12 (1904) 1-36; B. Ankermann, 'Totenkult und Seelenglaube bei afrikanischen Volkern,' Zeitschrift fur Ethnologie 50 (1918) 8 9 - 1 5 3 ; M. Bieler, 'Schatten,' Handworterbuch des deutschen Aberglaubens 9, Berlin 1940, 1 2 6 - 1 4 2 ; H. Fischer, Studien iiber Seelenvorstellungen in Ozeanien, Miinchen 1965, passim; for Western Europe sec the chapter 'Ohne Schatten, ohne Scele' in E.L. Rochholz, Deutscher Glaube und Brauch im Spiegel der heidnischen Vorzeit I, Berlin 1867, 5 9 - 1 3 0 . One also finds some relevant material in H.B. Alexander, 'Soul (Primi tive),' Encyclopedia of Religion and Ethics 11 (1920) 727; W. Brede Kristensen, The Meaning of Religion, The Hague 1 9 6 0 , 4 1 0 - 1 ; G. van der Leeuw, Phdnomenologie der Religion, Tubin gen 1956 ( 2 ed.), 3 2 4 - 5 , 3 2 8 - 9 . I. Levy-Bruhl, L'dmeprimitive, Paris 1927, 161: "Tres souvent, dans les representations collectives des primitives, le 'principe vital' ou 'vie' de l'individu ne se distingue pas de son ombre, de son image ou de son reflet (reflection). Les observateurs rapportent constamment qu' au dire des indigenes leur ombre est leur 'ame.'" Bieler, 'Schatten' 127: "Der Schatten gilt einer Person odcr Sachc als wesentlich zugehorig. Das aussert sich in dem Glauben, der Schatten habe dieselbe Macht zu wirken wie sein Trager, umgckehrt aber widerfahre dem Menschen, was seinem Schatten widerfahrt." rd
n d
2
The Shadow in Hellenistic
Popular
235
Belief
also for a n c i e n t c u l t u r e s s c h o l a r s h a v e b e e n a b l e to p o i n t t o literary s o u r c e s w h i c h testify to this belief. F o r a n c i e n t G r e e k a n d R o m a n c u l t u r e , h o w e v e r , the 3
r e l e v a n t m a t e r i a l h a s n e v e r b e e n c o l l e c t e d , as far as I k n o w . S o m e y e a r s a g o I p u b l i s h e d a m o d e s t c o l l e c t i o n o f this e v i d e n c e , b u t that w a s d o n e from a v e r y specific a n g l e a n d at a p l a c e w h e r e classical p h i l o l o g i s t s are n o t likely to look 4
for it. In this s h o r t c o n t r i b u t i o n , I will p r e s e n t this m a t e r i a l a n e w , b u t n o w b o t h sifted a n d w i t h s o m e n e w m a t e r i a l a d d e d , a n d hopefully in a p l a c e that is m o r e a c c e s s i b l e to classicists a n d h i s t o r i a n s o f r e l i g i o n . L e t u s b e g i n w i t h a series o f t e x t s that all deal w i t h t h e c u r i o u s topic o f the hyena's shadow:
5
A r i s t o t l e , fr. 3 6 9 R o s e ( = A e l i a n , Nat. anim.
6:14): xoig xvoi be emxiOexai r\
avxr\ (sc. f| ijaiva) xov X Q O J I O V exeivov oxav f| jrAr|Qr|g 6 xfjg a£X.r|vr|g xtixA,og, xaxojtiv Xau.|3dv£i xr)v avyr\v xai xr|V auxfjg oxidv emfiaXkei xoig xuai, xai Jiaoaxofjua
amove,
xaxeoiyaoe x a i xaxayor)xei)aaaa obg al cpac>u,axi&eg eixa djtdyei aiamurvxag xai xexQnxai 6 xi xai (3oxiXexai axixoig. P s - A r i s t o t l e , De mirab.
6
auscult.
145: hi 5e xfj 'Aoa|3iq iiaivaW xi yevog cpaaiv
eivai, 6 EJiei5dv jtQoidr] xo BnQiov f| dvOQomov, BJti(3fj em xrjv a x i d v dqpcoviav epyd^exai x a i Jtfj^iv xo\,avxr\v waxe ur) 6 i ) v a a 0 a i xiveiv xo acbu.a.
7
TOIJXO
5e jroieiv
xai em xebv xnvoov. P l i n y t h e Elder, Nat. hist. 8:106 . . . umbrae obmutescere vestigio
et quibusdam
artibus
eius (sc. hyaenae) omne
animal
quod
contactu
canes
ter lustravit
in
haerere.
S o l i n u s , Coll. sequuntur
magicis
2 7 : 2 4 qui forte
contigerint,
Geoponica
latrare
si venantes
nequeant
umbram
voce
eius (sc. hyaenae)
dum
perdita.
15, 1, 10 (p. 4 3 3 ed. B e c k h ) : tiaiva qpuaixw xivi Xoyw xfj djto aeA.r|vr|g
vuxxEQivfj axiq xoD xuvog ejtipdaa (homo bia o%oivov and vtyovc, xaxdyei axixov. P r o c l u s , In Rempublicam
I ( p . 2 9 0 ed. K r o l l ) : xai ydo al axiai, aig xd ei&aAa
au^Dyeiv qpr|ai ( s c . P l a t o ) , xoiai3xr|v kxovoi q^ijaiv x a i yag ai)xai ato^dxeov eiai xai
3
One finds some short remarks in Frazer, Golden Bough III (see n. 1); M.P. Nilsson, Geschichte der griechischen Religion, Miinchen 1955 ( 2 ed.), 398 n. 3; E. Stemplinger, Antiker Volksglaube, Stuttgart 1948, 182. J. C. Lawson, Modern Greek Folklore and Ancient Greek Religion. A Study in Survivals, N e w York 1964 (=1910), 289. In the great encyclopaedias (e. g., Pauly-Wissowa), however, one will look in vain for an entry on the shadow [Der Neue Pauly does not contain one either]. The book by V. Holzer, Umbra. Vorstellung und Symbol im Leben der Romer, diss. Marburg 1965 (typewritten), is disappointing in that the evidence is treated unsatisfactorily and from too rationalistic an angle. P.W. van der Horst, 'Peter's Shadow. The Religio-Historical Background o f Acts V 15,' New Testament Studies 23 (1976/77) 2 0 4 - 2 1 2 . [See now also my entry 'Shadow' in the Anchor Bible Dictionary 5 (1992) 1148-1150.] See also Steier in Pauly-Wissowa Suppl. IV (1924) 765. In Nat. anim. 3:7, Aelius draws on the same tradition: xuvag be acpoovoug cutocpcuveiv tatc; {icdvaig f| ami] nageoxe (sc, f| cpiioig). There is a varia lectio here: ... xdg vaivac, OTOV aiixatg xfjv axidv em|3dX.T). The text is somewhat uncertain here, but that does not affect the meaning o f the passage. n d
4
5
6
7
The Shadow in Hellenistic
236
Popular
Belief
o x n ^ d x w v e i x o v e g , x a i JtaujtoM/nv e'xouoi ngog x d dcp' cbv EXJtiJtxovoiv aiifXJidGeiav, wg br\kol x a i o a a u.dyo)v x s x v a i JtQog K a i xl keyoi xdg
EXELVCDV
XE
x d ei'&a)X.a
6QOV
ejtayy£XA,ovxai
KOU
&uvdu.£ig; a x a i xoTg dA,6yoig fjSr] c^cboig vnagxei
j t a v x o g EVEpyelv. f| y a p { j a i v a , qpaoi, xrjv xot3 x u v o g a x i d v em|3d^A,ei x a i Ooivnv jtoieixai x o v x u v a .
E V UIJJEI
xdg a x i d g . KQO
koyov
xaGnnevou jraxr|oaoa
8
T i m o t h e u s o f G a z a , in M . H a u p t , Opuscula
III, L e i p z i g 1 8 7 6 , 2 7 9 : o x i ev
oekr]vr] eo%o\ievr\ eav x u v o g o v x o g eni oxEyoug A.d(3r|xai xdxwGEV xfjg aiixoti a x i d g , avxbv xaxaqpEQEi dvcoGev x o v x i j v a .
9
A l t h o u g h t h e r e a r e m i n o r v a r i a n t s in this h y e n a t r a d i t i o n - s o m e t i m e s t h e h y e n a t r a m p l e s u p o n t h e d o g ' s s h a d o w , s o m e t i m e s it c a s t s its o w n s h a d o w u p o n t h e d o g - o n e n e v e r t h e l e s s s e e s h e r e a m o r e o r less u n i n t e r r u p t e d c h a i n o f t r a d i t i o n s o n t h e m a g i c a l p o w e r o f a n a n i m a l ' s s h a d o w from t h e 4
t h
c e n t u r y B C E till
far i n t o t h e M i d d l e A g e s . We also have unambiguous testimonies about the powers of h u m a n shadows from t h e H e l l e n i s t i c a n d R o m a n p e r i o d s : E n n i u s , ap. C i c e r o , Tusc. s e r i o u s c r i m e , s a y s : ) Nolite, bonis
umbrave
obsit.
Disp.
3 , 12, 2 6 ( T h y e s t e s , w h o h a s c o m m i t t e d a
hospites,
ad me adire,
Tanta vis sceleris
P l i n y t h e E l d e r , Nat. hist. 2 8 : 6 9 magi que nudari
aut umbram
cuiusquam
in corpore vetant
ilico istic, ne contagio
eius causa
ab ipso respergi
mea
10
haeret.
contra
solem
lunam-
(one should not urinate on
someone's shadow). In t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t w e find in A c t s 5:15 ( o n t h e i n h a b i t a n t s o f J e r u s a l e m ) : ...
WOXE
x a i eig xdg jtX,axEiag £X(peQ£iv xoiig doGEVEig x a i xiGsvai e m xXxvaQioov x a i
xQa|3dxxtt>v i v a E o x o u i v o u riEXQOu x d v r| a x i d EJtioxidar) xivl atjxcbv. Defixionum vobis
cerebrum,
8
Tabellae
commendo fruntem,
illius
11
190, 4ff. (ed. A . A u d o l l e n t , P a r i s 1 9 0 4 , 2 4 9 ) : Dii membra,
supercilia,
colorem,
figuram,
caput,
capillos,
inferi, umbram,
os etc.
See the short note in A.-J. Festugiere, Proclus. Commentaire sur la Republique II, Paris 1970, 9 8 - 9 n. 3. Timotheus is also the source o f the Aristophanis Historiae Animalium Epitome (ed. Sp. Lambros, Supplementum Aristotelicum I, Berlin 1885) 2:320 where w e find a very similar story. See H.D. Jocelyn, The Tragedies of Ennius, Cambridge 1967, 4 2 1 . In this connection, another passage in the works o f Luke deserves our attention as well, although it is not about a shadow o f a human being but o f God. In Luke 1:35, the angel Ga briel answers Mary's question o f how she could become pregnant without a man as follows: nveaj^a ctyiov ene^eiiaeTca em oe, xai 6tiva(iig viplaxov emoxidaei aor 616 xai xo yevvcbuevov dyiov xA.T)0T|aeTai, vibe, 0eoO. This is to say that Mary's pregnancy is due to her being overshadowed by God's shadow. For this idea there is no parallel in the immediate 'Umwelt' o f the NT, but there is one in ancient Egypt: an old Egyptian text speaks o f the seminal emission o f a deity's shadow(!); see the text and translation in B. George, Zu den altdgyptischen Vorstellung vom Schatten als Seele, Bonn 1970, 113-6. See on this text also my essay in NTS 23 (1976/77) 204-212. 9
1 0
11
The Shadow
in Hellenistic
Popular
Belief
237
A c u r i o u s p a s s a g e is D i o C h r y s o s t o m 6 7 : 4 - 5 , b e c a u s e h e r e D i o d e s c r i b e s a s t o o r i d i c u l o u s for w o r d s t h e b e l i e f t h a t s o m e o n e ' s h e a l t h a n d p o w e r are d e p e n d e n t u p o n t h e l e n g t h o f h i s s h a d o w , w h i c h a s a m a t t e r o f fact is a c o n c e p t i o n t h a t is c u r r e n t a m o n g m a n y n a t i o n s i n c l u d i n g t h e a n c i e n t G r e e k s . H e s a y s : ei o u v xig
EIT]
x o i o u x o g d v O p o m o g o l o g £fjv jtoog x o a u x o i ) a x i d v ,
OJOXE
at>^ou.evr|g u.ev
aajxfjg e j r a i o e a S a i x a i u.£yaA,aux£io"0ai x a i xoig Geoig Qvziv a u x o g T E x a i xovc, cpiXxrug XEA-EIIEIV,
PoaxuxEoag 6e y i y v o u i v r i g Xim£ia0ai t e x a i 6 o a a 0 a i xajtEivoxEQog, x a i
ToaoTJtq) yioXKov
OOWJTEQ
d v eXdxtoov y i y v n x a i , xaOdjtEQ aiixog qp0iva)v, 0auu.aaxf]v
d v , oi'um, JiaQEXOi &iaxQi|3r|v
xfjg yag auxfjg f|U£Qag OXE U,EV tamoix' d v , OXE 6 E
Xaigoi. JtQwi u i v EJtEiSdv lbr\ TT)V a x i d v £a)0ivr]v jtdvu uxxxodv, xcov T E xamaoixxtov x a i xarv
EV
xoig
XEIXEOI
Jtuoyarv
OXEOOV UEI^W,
6fjXov oxi xaipoi, d v cbg a u x o g E^ajtivng
yEyovcbg xoig 'AX.q)d6aig i'aog x a i Eig XT]V d y o o d v |3a&i£oi d v x a i Eig x d 0 £ a x p a x a i j t a v x a x d a e xfjg Jt6X.£0)g oncog d v vno Jtdvxcov pAijtoixo. d o x o i x ' d v axu0QO)Ji6x£Qog avxov
TIEO'I
5E JihqQovoav
dyoodv
y i y v £ a 0 a i x a i dvaxwQoir). Tfjg 6e u.ear)u,|3cuag
aiaxiJvoix' d v 6qp0fjvai dvOodmu) xivi x a i ev&ov u i v o i d v EyxX£iadu.Evog, £jr.£i&dv EV xoig j t o a i PA.ejtr| xrjv a x i d v . ITd^iv 6 E jt£Qi &£iX/nv dvaA.au,|3dvoi d v a u x o v x a i y a u p o x E o o g cpdvoix' d v aei Jtpog EOJtEoav.
12
In t h i s c o n t e x t o n e c o u l d a l s o list t h o s e t e x t s w h i c h , a l t h o u g h t h e y d o n o t m e n t i o n s h a d o w s explicitly, e x p r e s s t h e fear o f n o o n o r t h e m i d d a y h o u r ( w h e n t h e s h a d o w is s m a l l ) , e . g . , L u c a n , Phars. P o r p h y r y , De antro nymph.
26; e t c .
3 : 4 2 3 f f ; P h i l o s t r a t u s , Heroicus
1:3;
1 3
T h e r e are four p a s s a g e s w h i c h a r e s o m e t i m e s a d d u c e d in t h i s c o n n e c t i o n b u t o f w h i c h t h e i n t e r p r e t a t i o n is a m a t t e r o f d e b a t e .
1 4
T h e s e t e x t s all state t h a t ( t h e r e
is a t r a d i t i o n t o t h e effect t h a t ) o n e l o s e s o n e ' s s h a d o w t h e m o m e n t o n e e n t e r s t h e t e m p l e o f Z e u s o n M o u n t L y k a i o n in A r c a d i a : P o l y b i u s 16, 12, 7: x o y d o cpdaxEiv s v i a xoov aoouaxwv
EV
cpooxi xi0EU£va ui]
JTOIEIV
a x i d v djtr|Xyr|XTjiag eaxi iptixfJS- o Jte:n;oir|X£ ©EOJtoujtog, (pf)aag xoiig Eig x o xot3 A i o g d(3axov £u(3dvxag x a x ' ' A Q x a 6 i a v d a x i o u g yi.v£a0ai. P a u s a n i a s 8, 3 8 , 6: x o 6 E o p o g jrao£X£tcu x o A u x a i o v x a i ak~ka eg Qav\ia udX,iaxa x66e- xefxevog e a x i ev a i i x w A u x a i o u Aiog, eao6og 5 E dv0QO)jtoig- vnsQibovxa
O U X EOXIV
be xov vouov x a i EOEXOovxa d v d y x n j i d a a avxov
jiooaco uf| (3icbvai. K a i xd&£
EXI EXEYEXO,
xai
Eg avxb eviavxov
x d rvxog xoij x E u i v o u g y£vou.£va ofxoicog
j t d v x a x a i 0r|Qia x a i d v O o d m o u g oi) jtao£X£O0ai axidv. K a i 6id x o u x o Eg x o x £ U £ v o g
12
On this passage see Frazer, Golden Bough III 87: 'The rhetorician w h o thus thought to expose the vanity o f fame as an object o f human ambition by likening it to an ever-changing shadow, little dreamed that in real life there were men w h o set almost as much store by their shadows as the fool w h o m he had conjured up in his imagination to point a moral. So hard is it for the straining wings o f fancy to outstrip the folly o f mankind.' More passages in W. Drexler, 'Meridianus Daemon,' in W.H. Roscher (ed.), Ausfuhrliches Lexikon der griechischen und romischen Mythologie 11(1897) 2832 ff. (who, however, proposes a different interpretation). Nilsson, Geschichte I 398 n. 3; also Th. H. Gaster, Myth, Legend, and Custom in the Old Testament, N e w York 1969, 7 9 1 . 13
14
238
BTIQLOTJ
The Shadow in Hellenistic
Popular
Belief
xaxacpeTjyovxog ox>x eGeXei ovveomjtxeiv 6 xxivnyexrig akka xmou.evcov e x x o g
x a i ogoiv
TO
GrjQiov ovSeuiav ait' avxov Gedxai oxidv.
XQOVOV
u.ev Sf| xov I'aov ejcetoi
xe 6 fjXxog xov ev xco oiiQavco xapxlvov xai ev 2ur|vr| xfj nob AiGiomag oike and 6EV6Q(OV
oike djr.6 xcov c^tocov yeveoGai oxidv eoxi. To 6e ev xco Auxaicp xeu.evog xo
ai)xo eig xdg oxidg del xe x a i e;tl Jtaacov jteTtovGe xcov P l u t a r c h , Quaest.
COQCOV.
Graec. 39 ( 3 0 0 C ) : xo uivxoioxidv u.f| jtiJtxeiv djtoxoti eu.|3dvxog
eig xo Axwaiov Xiyexai \iev oux dXnOcog, eoxrixe 6e Jtloxiv laxuQdv. rioxepov xoxj degog eig vecpr] XQE^Ofxevot) x a i axuGQCojtdt^ovxog ejrixolg eiaiotjoiv, f\ oxi 9avaxot3xai \iev 6 e^i(3dg, xcov 6' djroGavovxcov ol n^GayoQixol Xiyouai xdg xp^xdg \ir\ Ttoielv axidv ^r|6e oxaQ6a[i.t)xxeiv. Finally, a s c h o l i o n to C a l l i m a c h u s ' Hymn
to Zeus
( 1 : 1 3 , p . 4 2 ed. Pfeiffer):
jtdv £cpov eioiov exet (into Z e u s ' t e m p l e ) u.eu,oXuou.evov dyovov eylvexo x a i oxidv xo otofxa ax)xoi) oiixexi ejtoiei. In n o n e o f t h e s e four t e x t s is it stated u n a m b i g u o u s l y that it w a s t h e loss o f o n e ' s s h a d o w that c a u s e d t h e n o x i o u s effects m e n t i o n e d . It m i g h t b e , t h e r e f o r e , that w e a r e d e a l i n g w i t h t w o different t r a d i t i o n s h e r e , o n e a b o u t t h e h a r m f u l ef fects o f e n t e r i n g this t e m p l e o f Z e u s ( d e a t h , infertility), a n o t h e r a b o u t t h e loss o f o n e ' s s h a d o w u p o n e n t e r i n g this sanctuary. N e v e r t h e l e s s it s e e m s m o r e logical to a s s u m e a c e r t a i n i n t e r c o n n e c t e d n e s s b e t w e e n t h e s e t w o e l e m e n t s , s o that w h a t is m e a n t is that t h e loss o f o n e ' s s h a d o w c o n s e q u e n t u p o n e n t e r i n g Z e u s ' t e m p l e e n t a i l e d s u c h d i s a s t r o u s effects as d e a t h or infertility. A p p a r e n t l y e n t e r i n g this t e m p l e w a s b e l i e v e d to c a u s e a p e r s o n to b e r o b b e d o f his o r h e r vital p o w e r . T h e s h a d o w l e s s c r e a t u r e w o u l d , o n this s h o w i n g , b e t h e h u m a n b e i n g o r a n i m a l a l r e a d y m a r k e d o u t for d e a t h . ' B u t , if t h e u l t i m a t e e x p l a n a t i o n o f t h e s h a d o w l e s s p r e c i n c t o n M o u n t L y k a i o n lies in t h e c o n n e x i o n o n c e t h o u g h t to e x i s t b e t w e e n s h a d o w a n d s o u l , it b y n o m e a n s f o l l o w s that this w a s t h e e x p l a n a t i o n g i v e n b y t h e G r e e k s o f t h e classical p e r i o d . T h e y m a y w e l l h a v e forgotten t h e real m e a n ing o f a b e l i e f to w h i c h t h e y still c l u n g a n d h a v e a t t r i b u t e d it to s o m e i r r e l e v a n t cause.'
1 5
T h e r e a r e s o m e o t h e r p a s s a g e s o f w h i c h it is u n c e r t a i n w h e t h e r o r n o t t h e y b e l o n g in this c o n t e x t . I refer to t h o s e t e x t s w h i c h s p e a k o f t h e f a v o u r a b l e o r u n f a v o u r a b l e influence o f t h e s h a d o w o f certain t r e e s . P l i n y t h e Elder, Nat.
hist.
1 7 : 1 8 , e x t e n s i v e l y d i s c u s s e s t h e q u a l i t i e s o f t h e s h a d o w s o f v a r i o u s t r e e s , in w h i c h t h e ' L e i t p r i n z i p ' is: umbra nat. 6 : 7 8 3 - 5 , s a y s : arboribus capitis faciant
15
ut saepe
aut nutrix
primum
dolores
aut noverca
certis gravis
/ siquis
eas subter
umbra
est. L u c r e t i u s , De rer. tributa
/usque
iacuit prostratus
in
adeo, herbis.
A . B . Cook, Zeus. A Study of Ancient Religion I, Cambridge 1914, 67. See also the discus sion by W.H. Roscher, 'Die Schattenlosigkeit des Zeus-Abatons auf dem Lykaion,' Jahrbucher fur classische Philologie 38 [145] (1892) 7 0 1 - 7 0 9 (702: 'hier w e i c h t . . . der schutzende damon von der person des gottentweihenden eindringlings und uberlasst ihn den schrecken des todes'). It should be borne in mind that many Arcadians regarded Mount Lykaion as the Olympos (Pausanias VIII 38, 2).
The Shadow
O n e m a y c o m p a r e Virgil, Ecloga bus umbra,
/ iuniperi
gravis
in Hellenistic
Popular
1 0 : 7 5 - 6 : surgamus,
umbra,
nocent
et frugibus
239
Belief
solet esse gravis b
umbrae}
cantanti-
In the light o f
t h e texts a l r e a d y d i s c u s s e d , it is n o t i m p l a u s i b l e that t h e s a m e m a g i c a l ideas are in t h e b a c k g r o u n d h e r e as w e l l , a l t h o u g h I a m n o t w h o l l y c e r t a i n .
17
T h e r e are three o t h e r texts that stricto sensu d o not b e l o n g h e r e b u t d o m e n t i o n a oxid in an u n u s u a l s e n s e . First, Papyrus
Maspero
II 6 7 1 8 8 jtaoacpi>A.a§6v u,e
djto Jtavxog Jtovr|QoiJ Jxvei>u.axos, xmoxa^ov uxru Jtdv Jtv£v\ia &aiu.ovi,cov qpGeiQOJtoicov . . . x a i Jtdoa(v) a x i d ( v ) . jtQog jtaOn 5idcpoQa xai
18
Cf. a l s o Hippiatrica
JTQOC; T O
Berolinensia
1 3 0 : 1 3 5 Por|Gr)u.a
oxidg ex xcov axd|3A,cov &ico§ai. P r o b a b l y , in t h e s e
t w o c a s e s oxid m e a n s ' e v i l spirit,' a s e n s e that d e r i v e s from t h e d e s i g n a t i o n o f t h e d e c e a s e d as ' s h a d o w s ' as found in H o m e r .
1 9
T h e s h a d o w as t h e (evil) spirit
o f t h e d e c e a s e d h a s , h o w e v e r , a different b a c k g r o u n d from t h e s h a d o w c o n c e p t that is t h e t o p i c o f this article. Finally, t h e r e is a c u r i o u s p a s s a g e in P h i l o s t r a t u s , Vita Apoll.
3:15 ( o n the B r a h m a n s ) : xmaiBQioi . . . &oxoi3vxec; ai))ac;eo0ai oxidv
Te iiJteQaiQODaiv auxtov, xai uovxog oil xpexd^ovxai, xai i m o xco f|)aq) eloiv, ejtei&dv auxoi, pouXovrai. It is v e r y h a r d to i m a g i n e w h a t is m e a n t b y their r a i s i n g their o w n s h a d o w a b o v e t h e m s e l v e s (as a c o v e r ) s o that t h e y d o n o t get w e t w h e n it rains.
2 0
T h e r e l e v a n t G r a e c o - R o m a n m a t e r i a l , as far as it is k n o w n t o m e ,
2 1
has been
p r e s e n t e d n o w . It can still b e s u p p l e m e n t e d s o m e w h a t from J e w i s h s o u r c e s o f t h e H e l l e n i s t i c - R o m a n p e r i o d . T h e O l d T e s t a m e n t h a s s o m e e l e m e n t s , albeit v e r y few, that s e e m to reflect t h e idea o f t h e s h a d o w as p o w e r .
2 2
In m o s t O T p a s
s a g e s t h e H e b r e w w o r d for s h a d o w (tsel) s i m p l y m e a n s ' p r o t e c t i o n , ' also w h e n it is u s e d o f p e r s o n s . B u t w h e n in N u m . 14:9 t h e Israelites a r e s p o k e n to a b o u t t h e C a n a a n i t e s , " D o n o t fear t h e p e o p l e o f t h e land, for t h e y a r e b r e a d for u s ; their s h a d o w h a s b e e n r e m o v e d from t h e m , " it p r o b a b l y m e a n s that their p o w e r 1 6
Other Latin passages in Holzer, Umbra 6 1 - 3 . See also Plutarch, Quaest. Conv. 3:1 (647F). But see Pradel, 'Schatten' 2 9 - 3 1 , and Bieler, 'Schatten' 1 2 9 - 1 3 3 . Quoted from J.H. Moulton & G. Milligan, The Vocabulary of the Greek New Testament, London 1930, 578. E.g., Od. 10:495, 11:207. Cf. Pradel, 'Schatten' 3 - 5 . Another enigmatic passage is Herondas, Mime 1:15-6 xo yao yf\Qac, rpeag xaBiXxti xf| oxnf) jraoeaxrixev. Perhaps the idea is here one o f a shadow as protective spirit (as in modern Greek folklore; see Pradel, 'Schatten'13-4), for which one can also have fear; cf. the expression 'to fear one's shadow' in Plato, Phaedo lOld; Aristophanes, fragm. 77 (more passages in Pradel 13). [The reader should realize that the search for this material was done in the mid-seventies when the CD-ROM o f the Thesaurus Linguae Graecae was not yet available.] A s such the OT does not stand isolated in the Ancient Near East. The role o f this shadowconcept in the Babylonian-Assyrian Empires can be seen in the entry tsillu in The Assyrian Dictionary 16 (1962) 1 8 9 - 1 9 2 . The Old-Egyptian material has been collected in George, Zu den altdgyptischen Vorstellungen (see n. 11). All OT passages about the tsalmawet (shadow o f death) are left out o f account here because this expression means 'deep darkness.' See D. Winton Thomas, 'Salmawet in the Old Testament,' Journal of Semitic Studies 7 (1962) 1 9 1 - 2 0 0 . 17
18
19
2 0
21
2 2
240
The Shadow in Hellenistic
Popular
Belief
h a s g o n e ( a l t h o u g h the m e a n i n g o f ' p r o t e c t i o n ' c a n definitely n o t b e ruled out; they hang together a n y w a y ) .
2 3
A t a n y rate, it is interesting to see that t w o early
T a r g u m s ( A r a m a i c B i b l e translations) translate this p a s s a g e e x a c t l y in this w a y a n d h e n c e w e r e familiar w i t h this c o n c e p t : B o t h O n k e l o s a n d P s e u d o - J o n a t h a n r e n d e r this v e r s e as follows: " T h e i r strength is d e p a r t e d from t h e m . "
2 4
It is also striking that the L X X v e r s i o n o f J o b 15:29 ( w h e r e t h e H e b r e w text is q u i t e u n c l e a r ) s a y s a b o u t the w i c k e d , w h o will n o t flourish: oi> ycx\ |3dX/n k t XTJV
yf\v axidv. H e r e , t o o , o n e m a y s u r m i s e that the c o n c e p t u n d e r d i s c u s s i o n
is in t h e b a c k g r o u n d .
25
P e r h a p s a c o n n e c t i o n b e t w e e n p o w e r a n d s h a d o w is
also p r e s u p p o s e d in L X X P s a l m 139:8:
XTJQIE
xvoie, dvvauxg xfjg aarniQiac; \xov,
sjtsaxiaaag tni xr\v xe(paXf)v \iov ev r|u,eQqi JtoXeuxru. H e r e o n e finds a l m o s t t h e s a m e c o n n e c t i o n b e t w e e n Sijvauxc; a n d ejuaxidi;eiv that o n e sees in L u k e 1:35 ( q u o t e d a b o v e ) . W h e t h e r the e l e m e n t o f p o w e r or r a t h e r that o f o f p r o t e c t i o n is d o m i n a n t in p a s s a g e s s u c h as D e u t . 3 3 : 1 2 (6 0e6g axid^ei ejt' avx(b utdaag xdg f|u.eoas), is h a r d to say. In r a b b i n i c s o u r c e s o n e d o e s not find v e r y m u c h o f r e l e v a n c e . In t h e M i s h n a h treatise Avodah
Zarah 3:8, it is said that o n e is n o t a l l o w e d to sit in t h e s h a d o w o f
an A s h e r a (i. e. a tree that is w o r s h i p p e d as the statue o f a female divinity); a n d in the G e m a r a (the r a b b i n i c d i s c u s s i o n o f this p a s s a g e in t h e B a b y l o n i a n T a l m u d ) , this t o p i c is e l a b o r a t e d u p o n {Avodah
Zarah
4 8 b - 4 9 a ) . B u t the v e r y s a m e text
also states that the o n e w h o d o e s sit there d o e s not b e c o m e ritually i m p u r e , w h i c h m a k e s it u n c e r t a i n w h e t h e r this p a s s a g e b e l o n g s h e r e . A n y w a y it is striking that in M i s h n a h Oholoth
ch. 2 (cf. also c h s . 5 a n d 11) it is said that e v e r y o n e w h o is
o v e r s h a d o w e d b y s o m e t h i n g that also o v e r s h a d o w s a c o r p s e , b e c o m e s i m p u r e ; so a s h a d o w c a n m a k e o n e i m p u r e after a l l .
26
W h a t m a k e s the difference b e t w e e n
s t a n d i n g in the n e i g h b o u r h o o d o f a c o r p s e in the o p e n air on the o n e h a n d a n d t h e s a m e situation in a tent o n the o t h e r is t h e fact that via its shadow c r e a t e s c o n t a c t b e t w e e n the p e r s o n c o n c e r n e d a n d t h e c o r p s e .
2 3
the tent
27
SeeGaster, Myth 301 See A. Diez Macho (ed.), Biblia Polyglotta Matritensia. Series IV: Targum Palaestinense in Pentateuchum, L. 4, Numeri, Madrid 1977, 1 2 8 - 1 2 9 . Thus at least Gaster, Myth 7 9 1 . The underlying principle is formulated as follows by H. Danby, 77ze Mishnah, Oxford 1933, 649 note 3: "From Num. 19,14 it is inferred that all (men and utensils) w h o are under the same tent or roof as a corpse (i. e. a dead human body or a part o f it), or w h o are overshadowed by something which also overshadows a corpse (...) suffer corpse-uncleanness and remain unclean for seven days." [For further discussion see my essay 'Two Short Notes on Josephus,' in my Hellenism - Judaism - Christianity: Essays on Their Interaction, Louvain 1998 ( 2 ed.), 6 0 - 6 2 . A l s o J. Finkel, 'The Guises and Vicissitudes of a Universal Folk-Belief in Jewish and Greek Tradi tion,' in H. A. Fischel (ed.), Essays in Greco-Roman and Related Talmudic Literature, N e w York 1977, 3 4 4 - 3 6 5 , with some dubious interpretations (but Finkel rightly stresses the Greek influence upon the rabbis in this matter)]. 2 4
2 5
2 6
2 7
n d
The Shadow
in Hellenistic
Popular
In T a l m u d B a v l i there are p a s s a g e s (Horayoth Yevamoth
241
Belief
12a, Keritoth
5 b - 6 a ; cf. also
122a) w h e r e it is stated explicitly or implicitly that t h e loss o f o n e ' s
s h a d o w indicates the loss o f o n e ' s soul. In the m i d r a s h i c w o r k Mekhilta, yassa'
Wa-
on E x . 15:22, the text s a y s that ' w h e n a v i p e r looks u p o n the s h a d o w o f
a flying bird, this bird i m m e d i a t e l y is w h i r l e d a r o u n d a n d falls in p i e c e s ' (vol. II p . 8 8 ed. L a u t e r b a c h ) , t h u s rivaling the p a r a d o x o g r a p h i c a c c o u n t s in G r a e c o R o m a n literature. A l s o in t h e T a l m u d , Pesachim
111b, there is a p a s s a g e on the
harmful effects o f the s h a d o w o f certain t r e e s , a g a i n p a r a l l e l e d in p a g a n s o u r c e s (see t h e p a s s a g e from P l i n y ' s Nat. hist., a b o v e ) . T h o u g h few in n u m b e r , t h e s e J e w i s h texts d o n o t l e a v e u s in a n y d o u b t that in a n c i e n t J u d a i s m , t o o , this c o n cept o f the s h a d o w as an influential p o w e r w a s w e l l k n o w n .
2 8
T h e fact that m o s t
o f the J e w i s h e v i d e n c e is from the p o s t - b i b l i c a l p e r i o d strongly s u g g e s t s that H e l l e n i s t i c influence is at w o r k h e r e . It w o u l d t a k e u s t o o far to also p r e s e n t h e r e the m a t e r i a l o n s h a d o w c o n c e p t s in G n o s t i c i s m . Suffice it to say that t h e idea o f the s h a d o w as a n alter ego p l a y s a role h e r e as w e l l ; see, e. g., t w o p a s s a g e s in t h e Hypostasis 137,23 ff a n d 142,11 ff.
29
of the
Archons
T h e G n o s t i c m a t e r i a l , e s p e c i a l l y in t h e N a g H a m m a d i
c o d i c e s , d e s e r v e s a c l o s e r i n v e s t i g a t i o n in this r e s p e c t t h a n is p o s s i b l e h e r e . T h e material from G r a e c o - R o m a n a n d J e w i s h s o u r c e s p r e s e n t e d h e r e h a s m a d e sufficiently clear that t h e c o n c e p t o f a s h a d o w as a vital p o w e r , w i d e s p r e a d as it is all o v e r the w o r l d , w a s also c u r r e n t in the H e l l e n i s t i c a n d R o m a n p e r i o d s in b o t h p a g a n , J e w i s h , a n d C h r i s t i a n c i r c l e s .
2 8
30
This is confirmed by the N T text in Acts 5:15 (quoted above) which speaks about the beliefs o f the inhabitants of Jerusalem. For material in later (medieval) rabbinic texts see J.D. Eisenstein, 'Death,' Jewish Encyclopedia IV (1903) 486; also M. Gaster in Germania 26 (1881) 21 Off. (non vidi). See R. Bullard, The Hypostasis of the Archons, Berlin 1970, 2 4 - 5 , 3 4 - 5 . For some remarks (though insufficient) see J.R Culianu, 'La femme celeste et son ombre,' Numen 23 (1976) 1 9 1 - 2 0 9 . The texts cited from Polybius and Plutarch demonstrate that there was also strong criti cism o f this idea. 2 9
3 0
The First Atheist There w a s a time w h e n the life o f human beings w a s disordered and beastly, and life w a s ruled by force, w h e n there w a s n o reward for the virtuous nor any punishment for the w i c k e d . It w a s then, I think, that humans d e c i d e d to establish l a w s to punish [ w r o n g d o ers] s o that justice m i g h t rule and b e master over crime and v i o l e n c e . A n d they punished a n y o n e w h o did w r o n g . Then, since the l a w s held public d e e d s in c h e c k and prevented m e n from o p e n acts o f v i o l e n c e , but they c o m m i t t e d them secretly, then it w a s , I b e l i e v e , that a shrewd and c l e v e r - m i n d e d man invented for mortals fear o f the g o d s , so that there might b e a deterrent for the w i c k e d , e v e n if they act or say or think anything in secret. H e n c e from this source the divine w a s introduced [with the c l a i m ] that there is a deity w h o e n j o y s imperishable life, hearing and s e e i n g with his m i n d , his thought and attention o n all things, his nature so divine that he will hear w h a t e v e r is said a m o n g mortals and be able to s e e w h a t e v e r is done. If ever y o u plot s o m e evil d e e d in silence, e v e n this will not e s c a p e the g o d s , for they h a v e k n o w l e d g e . It w a s such stories that he told w h e n he introduced this m o s t delightful teaching and hid the truth with a false tale. H e said the g o d s d w e l l there and p l a c e d them w h e r e they m i g h t m a k e the greatest impression upon human b e i n g s , there w h e r e he k n e w that fears c o m e to mortals and benefits also [to relieve] the miseries o f life, from the vault o n high, w h e r e they b e h e l d the shafts o f lightning and fearful b l o w s o f thunder and star-filled g l e a m o f h e a v e n , the beautiful d e s i g n o f T i m e , that clever builder, parade-ground for the brilliant m a s s o f the sun and source o f rainfall m o i s t e n i n g the earth b e l o w . Such w e r e the fears with w h i c h he surrounded humans and by w h i c h this c l e v e r man established the deity in the proper place, with a h a n d s o m e story, and e x t i n g u i s h e d l a w l e s s n e s s b y m e a n s o f laws. ( . . . ) It w a s thus, I think, that s o m e o n e first persuaded mortals to b e l i e v e that there is a race o f g o d s .
1
t h
th
T h i s striking atheist m a n i f e s t o d o e s not c o m e from an 1 8 or 1 9 c e n t u r y intel lectual, as o n e m i g h t b e inclined to e x p e c t . N o , it is from the s e c o n d h a l f o f t h e fifth c e n t u r y B C E ! A s a m a t t e r o f fact, this text is o n e o f t h e earliest atheist d o c u m e n t s in w o r l d history, if n o t the v e r y first. In this short c o n t r i b u t i o n I w a n t to e l u c i d a t e the historical c o n t e x t o f this text fragment in o r d e r to s h e d s o m e light o n a lasting c o n t r i b u t i o n o f a n c i e n t G r e e c e to m o d e r n c u l t u r e . For, w h e t h e r o n e
1
Greek text in H. Diels & W. Kranz, Die Fragmente der Vorsokratiker, II, Berlin 1960 (10th ed.), 3 8 6 - 3 8 9 (fr. 88B25; henceforth the abbreviation D - K will be used to refer to this work); also, with an improved text, in B. Snell (ed.), Tragicorum graecorum fragmenta 1, Gottingen 1971, 1 8 0 - 1 8 2 (fr. 43F19). The translation is by Ch. H. Kahn, "Greek Religion and Philosophy in the Sisyphus Fragment," Phronesis 4 2 [1997] 2 4 7 - 2 6 2 , at 2 4 7 - 8 (slightly modified by me); Kahn translates SnelPs text. The Greek text consists of 4 2 iambic trimeters.
The First
243
Atheist
rejects or a c c e p t s a t h e i s m , n o o n e c a n d e n y that in the p h e n o m e n o n o f a t h e i s m 2
w e h a v e r e c e i v e d a lasting c h a l l e n g e from classical A t h e n s . F o r it is in A t h e n s that w e h a v e to situate the o r i g i n o f this f r a g m e n t a n d p r o b a b l y also o f a t h e i s m . I will n o w s k e t c h briefly the historical situation in w h i c h this text c a m e into being. 3
T h e a u t h o r o f the text is C r i t i a s . Critias w a s b o r n in the fifties of the fifth c e n t u r y 4
B C E into a family that b e l o n g e d to t h e aristocratic circles o f A t h e n s . H e w a s a n e p h e w o f P l a t o ' s mother. A n t i - d e m o c r a t i c s e n t i m e n t s w e r e part o f t h e family tradition - his father a n d h e h i m s e l f p a r t i c i p a t e d in 411 in the o l i g a r c h i c r e v o l u 5
tion o f the C o u n c i l o f F o u r H u n d r e d . T h e gifted b o y r e c e i v e d a v e r y g o o d e d u cation, w i t h a h e a v y a c c e n t o n (the b y that t i m e still relatively n e w ) p h i l o s o p h y , 6
a n d h e b e c a m e a pupil o f S o c r a t e s a n d the S o p h i s t s . H e w a s also artistically gifted; h e p l a y e d the flute v e r y w e l l . After t h e fall o f t h e o l i g a r c h i c c o u n c i l , h e m a n a g e d to stay in A t h e n s for s o m e t i m e t h a n k s to his political s h r e w d n e s s , but a c o u p l e o f y e a r s later, in 4 0 6 , h e w a s d r a g g e d a l o n g in t h e d o w n f a l l o f his friend, the o p p o r t u n i s t i c politician A l c i b i a d e s , a n d h e w e n t into exile (in T h e s s a l y ) . After the c a p i t u l a t i o n o f A t h e n s in 4 0 4 (the e n d o f the P e l o p o n n e s i a n W a r w i t h S p a r t a ) , h e r e t u r n e d to his h o m e t o w n a n d w a s e v e n m a d e a m e m b e r o f the g o v e r n i n g c o u n c i l o f t h e Thirty, w h i c h w a s p r e s i d e d o v e r b y t h e S p a r t a n c o n q u e r o r o f A t h e n s , Lysander. D u r i n g the a d m i n i s t r a t i v e r e f o r m a t i o n o f the city h e v e r y s o o n t u r n e d out to b e o n e o f t h e m o s t rabid a d v e r s a r i e s o f d e m o c r a c y
2
For that reason A. Lesky, Geschichte der griechischen Literatur, Bern-Munchen 1963 (2. Aufl.), 393 rightly calls our text "ein geistesgeschichtlich wichtiges Fragment." Much ink has been spilled over the question of whether or not Euripides was the author of this so-called Sisyphus-fragment since in antiquity some aired that v i e w (see Aetius I 7,2); on that matter M. Winiarczyk, "Nochmals das Satyrspiel 'Sisyphos'," Wiener Studien 100 (1987) 35^15, is very informative. For several reasons this seems unlikely. For a balanced discussion (and refutation) of Euripidean authorship see especially M. Davies, "Sisyphus and the Invention o f Religion," Bulletin of the Institute of Classical Studies 36 (1989) 1 6 - 3 2 . Charles Kahn's recent attempt to defend again Euripides' authorship has not convinced me (see his "Greek Religion and Philosophy in the Sisyphus Fragment," Phronesis 4 2 [1997] 2 4 7 - 2 6 2 ) ; cf. now also D.T. Runia, "Atheists in Aetius," Mnemosyne 49 (1996) 554 ( 5 4 2 - 5 7 6 ) . One of the most elaborate studies of Critias is still W. Nestle, "Kritias. Eine Studie," Neue Jahrhiicher fur das klassische Altertum 11 (1903) 8 1 - 1 0 7 and 1 7 8 - 1 9 9 , reprinted in his Griechische Studien. Untersuchungen zur Religion, Dichtung und Philosophic der Griechen, Stuttgart 1948, 2 5 3 - 3 2 0 ; from the same author also Vom Mythos zum Logos. Die Selhstentfaltung des griechischen Denkens von Homer bis auf die Sophistik und Sokrates, Aalen - Stuttgart 1966 (reprint of the edition Stuttgart 1942), 400^120; see also M. Untersteiner, The Sophists, Oxford 1954, 3 1 3 - 3 2 0 ; B. Zimmermann, "Kritias," NP 6 (1999) 8 5 1 - 2 . See, e.g., J.B. Bury, A History of Greece, London 1963, 489^493. The fact that Critias was a student of Socrates was not favourable for the latter in the trial of Socrates in 399. See W . K . C . Guthrie, Socrates, Cambridge 1971, 6 0 - 6 3 , 9 4 - 9 5 . A contemporary called Critias "the layman among the philosophers and the philosopher among the laymen" (fragm. 88A3 D - K ) . 1
4
5
6
244
The First
Atheist
7
a n d h e h a d h u n d r e d s o f his political o p p o n e n t s m u r d e r e d . W h e n , in 4 0 3 , h e w a s e n g a g e d in battle with o n e o f t h e m ( T h r a s y b u l u s ) at M o u n i c h i a , h e h i m s e l f w a s killed. H e w a s h a t e d by a l m o s t e v e r y o n e as a c a l c u l a t i n g , i n h u m a n t y r a n t w i t h a r u t h l e s s personality. In spite of all that, P l a t o h a d a g r e a t a d m i r a t i o n for his u n c l e ( h e e v e n n a m e d o n e o f his d i a l o g u e s after h i m ) , a n d Aristotle followed h i m in that r e s p e c t .
8
9
Critias w a s also a m a n y - s i d e d a n d fairly g o o d w r i t e r . H e c o m p o s e d elegies a n d w r o t e p h i l o s o p h i c a l a p h o r i s m s a n d treatises (inter alia on e p i s t e m o l o g i c a l p r o b l e m s ) , e v e n a w o r k o n the n a t u r e o f love(!), as w e l l as d e s c r i p t i o n s o f the v a r i o u s forms o f g o v e r n m e n t (Politeiai),
a n d t r a g e d i e s , t o o . O f all t h e s e w o r k s ,
h o w e v e r , v e r y little has b e e n p r e s e r v e d , only a few d o z e n o f fragments. T h e frag m e n t t r a n s l a t e d at t h e b e g i n n i n g o f this article - a c t u a l l y o n e o f the largest w e h a v e - c o m e s from C r i t i a s ' satyr p l a y Sisyphus, author w h o quotes it.
10
at least a c c o r d i n g to the a n c i e n t
In G r e e k m y t h o l o g y , S i s y p h u s w a s a s h r e w d a n d sly
a r c h v i l l a i n w h o often o u t w i t t e d the g o d s b u t e v e n so e n d e d u p in H a d e s , w h e r e b y w a y o f p u n i s h m e n t h e h a d to roll a h e a v y b o u l d e r uphill a n d e v e r y t i m e h e h a d a l m o s t r e a c h e d the hilltop, the b o u l d e r rolled d o w n so that h e h a d to start all o v e r a g a i n .
11
T h i s is the o n l y f r a g m e n t w e h a v e o f C r i t i a s ' p l a y ,
12
so w e d o
n o t h a v e the c o n t e x t o f t h e f r a g m e n t a n d d o not e v e n k n o w w h o t h e s p e a k e r is, a l t h o u g h it is n o t i m p r o b a b l e that it is S i s y p h u s h i m s e l f w h o s p e a k s h e r e . B e that as it m a y , the ideas in the text h a d b e e n d e v e l o p e d a n d w r i t t e n d o w n b y Critias a n d it is r e a s o n a b l e to a s s u m e that t h e y reflect his o w n c o n v i c t i o n s .
13
The ques
tion that arises then is h o w it c a n b e e x p l a i n e d that s o m e o n e in the final d e c a d e s o f the fifth c e n t u r y B C E c o u l d d e v e l o p such ideas. W h a t w a s t h e cultural c o n t e x t in w h i c h such t h e o r i e s a b o u t the i n v e n t i o n o f religion c o u l d b e d e v e l o p e d ?
7
In the less than eight months of their terror regime the Thirty killed some 1500 citizens, all o f them advocates of democracy; see Nestle, Griechische Studien 262 with n. 51. For references see Nestle, Vom Mythos zum Logos 400^101 nn. 5 - 7 , Griechische Studien 2 5 4 n. 5, and Untersteiner, Sophists 3 1 6 - 3 1 7 . In Xcnophon's Memorabilia Socratis and Hellenica, however, Critias gets a very negative press (e.g.. Mem. I 2,12 jtdvxcov xXejtxioxaxog xe xai fhaioxaxoc; xai cpovixobxaxoq kyivEio; cf. also Hell. II 3,47); see Nestle, Mythos 4 0 0 n. 4 and Griechische Studien 2 5 3 . Critias' later biographer Philostratus calls him xdxioxoc; dvGocbjtcov ^u^jrdvxcov (Vitaesophistarum I 16). The famous orator Lysias also has nothing positive to say about Critias. See A. von Blumenthal, Der Tyrann Kritias als Dichter und Schriftsteller, Berlin 1923. Cf. also W. Schmid & O. Stahlin, Geschichte der griechischen Literatur 1/3, Munchen 1940, 1 7 0 - 1 8 5 , and Lesky, Geschichte der griechischen Literatur 3 9 3 - 3 9 4 . Sextus Empiricus, Adversus Mathematicos IX 54. For references see P. Grimal, The Dictionary of Classical Mythology, Oxford 1986, 510. It is also unknown in which year he wrote the play, although it must have been between 415 and 405 BCE. P. Decharme, La critique des traditions religieuses chez les Grecs, Paris 1904 (repr. Brussel 1966), 123: "Sisyphe (...) avait plus d'une fois exprime les idees personnclles du poete." Nestle, Griechische Studien 279: "... die offenbar seine eigene Uberzeugung wiedergeben." 8
9
1 0
11
1 2
1 3
The First
245
Atheist
T h e history o f p h i l o s o p h y h a s from t h e b e g i n n i n g a l w a y s b e e n a h i s t o r y o f criticism o f religion as w e l l . In t h e w r i t i n g s o f a l m o s t all P r e s o c r a t i c s w e find implicit or explicit criticism o f t h e traditional, often all t o o h u m a n c o n c e p t i o n s o f the g o d s in G r e e k m y t h o l o g y a n d r e l i g i o n .
14
F r o m t h e sixth c e n t u r y B C E
o n w a r d s , the g o d s o f p o p u l a r religion w e r e subjected to a p r o c e s s o f drastic reinterpretation b y t h e G r e e k p h i l o s o p h e r s , but all t h e s e early t h i n k e r s m a i n t a i n e d o n e form or a n o t h e r o f d i v i n e p r i n c i p l e . A radical or f u n d a m e n t a l a t h e i s m is not yet found a m o n g t h e m .
1 5
B u t w h e n in the c o u r s e of t h e fifth c e n t u r y the m o v e
m e n t o f t h e S o p h i s t s (originally chiefly a rhetorical m o v e m e n t that focused on t h e art o f d e b a t i n g a n d p e r s u a d i n g ) b e g a n to s p r e a d a n d to b e influenced by the I o n i a n p h i l o s o p h e r s o f n a t u r e , m a t t e r s b e g a n to c h a n g e . T h e S o p h i s t s w e r e not in a n d o f t h e m s e l v e s e n e m i e s o f religion, but their s t r o n g l y relativizing a p p r o a c h to ethics a n d l a w
1 6
e x t e n d e d also to religion in the long run.
T h e m o s t f a m o u s o f the S o p h i s t s , P r o t a g o r a s , b e c a m e w e l l - k n o w n , e v e n n o t o r i o u s , for his b o o k On the gods in w h i c h t h e o p e n i n g s e n t e n c e a l r e a d y d e c l a r e s that o n e c a n n o t k n o w w h e t h e r or n o t g o d s exist a n d , if g o d s did exist, o f w h a t n a t u r e t h e y w o u l d b e , b e c a u s e it is t o o difficult to find that o u t a n d life is t o o short for it (fr. 8 0 B 4 D - K ) .
1 7
H e r e w e s e e a l r e a d y a form o f a g n o s t i c i s m that
r e s u l t e d from t h e insight that h a d b e e n g a i n e d b y the P r e s o c r a t i c p h i l o s o p h e r s to the effect that the traditional g o d s (and, for that matter, r e l i g i o n ) w e r e c r e a t e d b y h u m a n s after their o w n i m a g e . If the t h e o r y o f a ' c o n t r a t s o c i a l ' w h i c h the S o p h i s t s h a d d e v e l o p e d on t h e b a s i s o f their p h i l o s o p h i c a l t h e o r i e s c o n c e r n i n g the o r i g i n s a n d d e v e l o p m e n t o f l a w s w a s e x t r a p o l a t e d to religion, w h i c h is w h a t w e see h a p p e n in t h e f r a g m e n t o f Critias, t h e n the step from an a g n o s t i c to an atheistic p o i n t o f v i e w s e e m s i n e v i t a b l e . It w a s , h o w e v e r , not a n e c e s s a r y step. F o r w e s e e that, d e s p i t e their s c e p t i c i s m a n d r e l a t i v i s m , o n l y v e r y few o f t h e S o p h i s t s b e c a m e radical atheists. O f c o u r s e that m a y b e d u e to t h e fact that p o s s i b l y m a n y a sceptic w a s careful n o t to p r o c l a i m his c o n v i c t i o n loudly, for a l a w s u i t b a s e d on a c h a r g e o f asebeia
w a s easily incurred, as a n u m b e r
of Athenians had experienced (Anaxagoras, Protagoras, Diagoras, Socrates
1 4
Decharme, La critique des traditions religieuses 3 9 - 1 7 9 . W.K.C. Guthrie, A History of Greek Philosophy, vol. Ill, Cambridge 1969, 2 2 6 - 2 4 9 ; W. Fahr, 0 E O Y Z NOMIZEIN. Zum Problem der Anfdnge des Atheismus bei den Griechen, Hildesheim 1969, passim. See R.C.T. Parker, "Atheism," The Oxford Classical Dictionary (3rd ed.), Oxford 1996, 2 0 1 , and Kahn, "Greek Religion and Philosophy in the Sisyphus Fragment" 250. Xenophanes of Colophon (ca. 5 7 0 - 4 7 0 BCE) combated the polytheism o f his day and advocated a doctrine with one god, as did a century later Socrates' pupil Antisthenes, although perhaps these ideas should be seen as henotheistic rather than monotheistic. See the so-called physis-nomos controversy, on which F. Heinimann, Nomos undPhysis. Herkunft und Bedeutung einer Antithese im griechischen Denken des 5. Jahrhunderts, Basel 1945, is still the standard work . See Guthrie, History of Greek Philosophy III 2 3 4 - 2 3 5 . 15
1 6
1 7
246 etc.).
The First
18
Atheist
B u t w e d o i n d e e d see that in t h e last d e c a d e s o f t h e fifth c e n t u r y u n b e l i e f
b e c a m e m o r e w i d e s p r e a d in intellectual circles, e s p e c i a l l y in A t h e n s .
1 9
The
p o e t C i n e s i a s e v e n s e e m s to h a v e f o u n d e d a c l u b o f infidels w h o c o n v e n e d o n a r e g u l a r b a s i s in o r d e r to ridicule t h e g o d s d u r i n g their s y m p o s i a ,
20
a n d several
G r e e k a u t h o r s from the d e c a d e s a r o u n d the y e a r 4 0 0 m a k e clear that t h e y k n e w p e r s o n s w h o c h e r i s h the c o n v i c t i o n that g o d s d o n o t exist at all (see, e. g., P l a t o , Leges
X 9 0 8 b - e ) . S c h o l a r s h a v e also r e p e a t e d l y p o i n t e d at the striking fact that
t h e great historian T h u c y d i d e s (a c o n t e m p o r a r y o f Critias) b a n i s h e d e a c h a n d e v e r y s u p e r n a t u r a l e l e m e n t from his h i s t o r i o g r a p h y , u n l i k e all his p r e d e c e s s o r s . A n d his f a m o u s fellow t o w n s m a n , the t r a g e d i a n E u r i p i d e s , h a s a l w a y s b e e n s u s p e c t e d to h a v e b e e n a c r y p t o - a t h e i s t .
21
T h e c o m e d i a n A r i s t o p h a n e s did not
fail to c a r i c a t u r i z e this p h i l o s o p h i c a l - t h e o l o g i c a l m o d e r n i s m , e s p e c i a l l y in his p l a y The Clouds
(from 4 2 3 ) . If this t o p i c w a s e v e n r a i s e d in s u c h p o p u l a r s t a g e
f o r m s as t h e c o m e d y , it is clear that a t h e i s m w a s in the air. T h e political a n d social c i r c u m s t a n c e s in A t h e n s w e r e c o n d u c i v e to it. T h e l o n g a n d d e v a s t a t i n g w a r w i t h Sparta, the c a t a s t r o p h i c Sicilian e x p e d i t i o n ,
22
the outbreak of a plague
in A t h e n s , a n d o t h e r factors, c r e a t e d s c e p t i c i s m as r e g a r d s the traditional beliefs, so a t t a c k s o n t h e s e beliefs w e r e well r e c e i v e d b y m a n y .
2 3
It m a y b e clear n o w that Critias did not w r i t e in a cultural v a c u u m . E v e n so h e differs from his rationalist allies. W h i l e P r o t a g o r a s v i e w s religion as a p r o d u c t that h a s b e e n b r o u g h t a b o u t g r a d u a l l y b u t i n e v i t a b l y b y the i m p e r f e c t h u m a n b r a i n , w h i l e P r o d i c u s sees religion as a p s y c h o l o g i c a l result o f h u m a n g r a t i t u d e for t h e gifts o f life, a n d w h i l e D e m o c r i t u s e x p l a i n s the p h e n o m e n o n o f r e l i g i o n as a c o n s e q u e n c e o f h u m a n fear o f natural p h e n o m e n a ,
2 4
Critias t a k e s up a m u c h
m o r e m a l i c i o u s a n d c y n i c a l m o d e l of e x p l a n a t i o n .
1 8
See Nestle, Mythos 476^185. Fahr, 0 E O Y 2 NOMIZEIN 1 8 1 - 1 8 2 , enumerates at least 12 lawsuits for asebeia between 433 and 350. See M.P. Nilsson, Geschichte der griechischen Religion, vol. I, Munchen 1967 ( 3 ed.), 770. P. A. Meijer, "Philosophers, Intellectuals and Religion in Hellas," in H. Versnel (ed.), Faith, Hope and Worship. Aspects of Religious Mentality in the Ancient World, Leiden 1981, 2 1 6 - 2 3 2 . J. N. Bremmer, Greek Religion, Oxford 1994, 9 0 - 9 1 . R. Parker, Athenian Religion, Oxford 1996, 208 with n. 37. Rich bibliography in M. Winiarczyk, Bibliografie zum antiken Atheismus 1700-1990, Bonn 1994. See E. R. Dodds, The Greeks and the Irrational, Berkeley 1966, 1 8 8 - 1 8 9 . E.g., M. Lefkowitz, "Was Euripides an Atheist?," Studi italiani di filologia classica 5 (1987) 1 4 9 - 1 6 6 . See Bury, History of Greece 466^189. W. Nestle, Griechische Religiositdt vom Zeitalter des Perikles bis auf Aristoteles, BerlinLeipzig 1933, 7 9 - 8 3 . Fahr, 0 E O Y S NOMIZEIN 9 2 - 1 0 1 . Decharme, La critique des traditions religieuses 113-120. On Prodicus especially Guthrie, History III 2 3 8 - 2 4 2 . Democritus' theory was elabo rated later by Epicurus and reaches its apotheosis in the great didactic poem De rerum natura of the Latin poet Lucretius. But note that Critias' views were criticized in Epicurean circles; see K. Kleve, Gnosis Theon. Die Lehre von der natiirlichen Gotteserkenntnis in der epikureischen Theologie, Oslo 1963, 1 0 4 - 1 0 8 . 1 9
2 0
2 1
2 2
2 3
2 4
r d
The First
247
Atheist
H e v i e w s r e l i g i o n as a deceitful i n v e n t i o n o f a p e r s o n w h o w a n t s to k e e p the m a s s e s in c h e c k . It is a t h e o r y that suits Critias better t h a n o t h e r e x p l a n a t i o n s , for he himself
c o u l d h a v e b e e n t h e d e v i s e r o f this ' n o b l e l i e ' (the y£vvaiov ipetj&og o f
the c l o s i n g p a r a g r a p h s of P l a t o ' s Respublica
III) in his a n t i d e m o c r a t i c m i n d s e t
a n d heartfelt d i s d a i n for c o m m o n p e o p l e . H e c o m b i n e d e l e m e n t s o f t h e t h e o r i e s o f his p r e d e c e s s o r s a n d c o n t e m p o r a r i e s w i t h t h e cold p s y c h o l o g i c a l calculation that w a s part o f his o w n character. H e w a s s o m e o n e for w h o m his a i m , t h e r e p r e s s i o n o f t h e m a s s e s , justified a n y m e a n s . T h e sly i n v e n t o r o f r e l i g i o n in t h e S i s y p h u s f r a g m e n t a l m o s t c e r t a i n l y s t a n d s for Critias himself. T h e r e is h e r e a u n i t y o f life a n d d o c t r i n e that e v e n i n d u c e d W i l h e l m N e s t l e to s p e a k in this c a s e " v o n e i n e m in seiner A r t h a r m o n i s c h e n G a n z e n . "
2 5
W a s it i n d e e d Critias h i m s e l f w h o t h o u g h t u p this t h e o r y on t h e i n v e n t i o n o f r e l i g i o n ? I raise this q u e s t i o n b e c a u s e W i l h e l m N e s t l e h a s a r g u e d that Critias b o r r o w e d this t h e o r y from D i a g o r a s o f M e l o s . N e s t l e ' s r e a s o n i n g is as follows. C i c e r o s a y s that " t h e r e are p e o p l e w h o h a v e a s s e r t e d that t h e w h o l e i d e a of i m m o r t a l g o d s w a s i n v e n t e d b y w i s e m e n in the interest o f the state, so that p e o p l e w h o are i m p e r v i o u s to r e a s o n c o u l d b e b r o u g h t to the fulfillment o f their duties b y m e a n s o f r e l i g i o n " (De natura
deorum
I 118.)
26
The phrase 'people w h o
h a v e a s s e r t e d ' c o u l d o f c o u r s e b e a v a g u e reference to Critias a n d t h o s e w h o s h a r e his o p i n i o n b u t it c o u l d also b e that C i c e r o h a s m o r e p e r s o n s in m i n d w h o h a v e f o r m u l a t e d s u c h t h e o r i e s . In t h e i m m e d i a t e l y p r e c e d i n g p a r a g r a p h (I 117), C i c e r o m e n t i o n s D i a g o r a s o f M e l o s a n d T h e o d o r u s o f C y r e n e , the t w o m o s t p r o v e r b i a l atheists in antiquity, the first of w h o m - like Critias - lived in t h e s e c o n d h a l f o f t h e fifth c e n t u r y .
27
O n e a n d a h a l f c e n t u r i e s after C i c e r o , Plutarch
w r i t e s in a d i s c u s s i o n of C a r t h a g i n i a n child sacrifices, " W o u l d it n o t h a v e b e e n far b e t t e r for the C a r t h a g i n i a n s to h a v e t a k e n Critias or D i a g o r a s to d r a w u p their l a w c o d e at t h e v e r y b e g i n n i n g , a n d so n o t to b e l i e v e in a n y d i v i n e p o w e r or g o d , r a t h e r than to offer s u c h sacrifices as t h e y u s e d to offer to C r o n o s ? " (De 2 5
Mythos 419. Cf. also his Griechische Studien 319. In both publications by Nestle on Critias one can discern a somewhat reserved but certainly present admiration for this tyrant who regarded himself as an Ubermensch. Elsewhere Nestle calls him "ein geborener Herrenmensch" (written in 1944!); see his Griechische Geistesgeschichte von Homer bis Lukian, Stuttgart 1944, 195. On Nestle's outspoken sympathy for Nazism see now the revealing opening paragraph in J. N. Bremmer, "Rationalization and Disenchantment in Ancient Greece: Max Weber among the Pythagoraeans and Orphics?," in R. Buxton (ed.), From Myth to Reason? Studies in the Development of Greek Thought, Oxford 1999, 7 1 - 8 3 . See the excellent commentary on this passage in A.S. Pease, M. Tulli Ciceronis de natura deorum libri tres, Darmstadt 1968 (=1955), 513^1. The few fragments of their lost works and the ancient testimonia about both authors have been conveniently collected in a new Teubncr edition by the greatest expert on ancient athe ism: M. Winiarczyk, Diagoras Melius. Theodorus Cyrenaeus, Leipzig 1981. Theodorus lived sometime between 350 and 2 5 0 BCE. The best monograph on Diagoras is still F. Jacoby, Di agoras 6 aOeog, Abhandlungen der deutschen Akademie der Wissenschaften zu Berlin 1959:3, Berlin 1959, now to be supplemented by M. Winiarczyk, "Diagoras von Melos - Wahrheit und Legende," Eos 67 (1979) 191 - 2 1 3 and 68 (1980) 51 - 7 5 . 2 6
2 7
248 superstitione
The First Atheist
12, 1 7 1 C ) . N e s t l e s a y s w i t h r e f e r e n c e t o b o t h o f t h e s e p a s s a g e s :
" W e n n n u n s o Critias u n d D i a g o r a s in d e r U b e r l i e f e r u n g n e b e n e i n a n d e r s t e h e n , s o w e r d e n w i r a n n e h m e n diirfen, dafj sie n i c h t n u r in i h r e m A t h e i s m u s , s o n d e r a u c h in d e s s e n B e g r u n d u n g e i n i g w a r e n . "
2 8
N e s t l e t h e n a s s u m e s that C r i t i a s
h a s b o r r o w e d s e v e r a l a r g u m e n t s from a w o r k b y D i a g o r a s w i t h the e n i g m a t i c title 'Ajiojivpyi^ovTeg \6yoi.
' E n t f e s t i g e n d e n R e d e n ' is N e s t l e ' s t r a n s l a t i o n . T h e
v e r b djtojtxjQYi^eiv d o e s n o t o c c u r e l s e w h e r e , n e i t h e r d o e s the s i m p l e x jruQYi^eiv, b u t the related v e r b J T V Q Y O X J V m e a n s ' t o fortify, d e f e n d , fence r o u n d , ' (litt. ' t o s u r r o u n d w i t h t o w e r s ' ) . In N e s t l e ' s view, t h e n e o l o g i s m djiojruQYi^et.v m u s t h a v e the o p p o s i t e m e a n i n g , so in this c o n t e x t 'AjtojruQYi^ovTEg Xoyoi m u s t m e a n s o m e t h i n g like ' d e s t r u c t i v e a r g u m e n t s ' or ' c o n q u e r i n g r e a s o n i n g s , ' o r the l i k e .
2 9
A n o t h e r e x p l a n a t i o n is p o s s i b l e as w e l l , h o w e v e r . F e l i x J a c o b y interprets t h e e x p r e s s i o n as ' " F o r t i f y i n g A r g u m e n t s ' - h a v i n g as their object e i t h e r m a n k i n d or g o d s a n d m e a n i n g r e s p e c t i v e l y either ' d e f e n d i n g m a n k i n d b y (a w a l l w i t h ) t o w e r s ' or ' i n c l o s i n g the g o d s , h e m m i n g t h e m in, b l o c k a d i n g t h e m b y (a w a l l with) t o w e r s ' . "
3 0
B e that as it m a y , this m u c h s e e m s t o b e c l e a r that in that w o r k D i a g o r a s , p r o b a b l y as the first b u t in a n y c a s e as o n e o f t h e v e r y first in history, p r e s e n t e d a s y s t e m a t i c a r g u m e n t a g a i n s t beliefs in g o d ( s ) . T h e w o r k is lost ( a p a r t from five lines that d o n o t e x h i b i t a n y a t h e i s m ) , b u t o n t h e b a s i s o f a n c i e n t t e s t i m o n i e s a b o u t the a u t h o r ( a n d w e h a v e m o r e t h a n h u n d r e d o f t h e s e ) w e c a n c o n c l u d e that D i a g o r a s , b e c a u s e o f the total a r b i t r a r i n e s s a n d g r e a t injustice in the ins a n d o u t s o f w o r l d h i s t o r y as h e s a w it, c o u l d n o l o n g e r b e l i e v e in t h e g o v e r n i n g h a n d o f a d e i t y or o f g o d s a n d , for that v e r y r e a s o n , a l s o n o t in their e x i s t e n c e . led to a n asebeia
31
His ideas
l a w s u i t a g a i n s t h i m in 4 1 5 in A t h e n s in w h i c h , b e c a u s e h e h a d
a l r e a d y fled t h e city, h e w a s s e n t e n c e d b y default a n d o u t l a w e d .
32
Also, a price
w a s p u t o n his h e a d b e c a u s e h e w a s said to h a v e d e s e c r a t e d the E l e u s i n i a n m y s teries ( s e e Tatian, Oratio
ad Graecos
27). That Diagoras and Critias k n e w each
o t h e r c a n n o t b e d o u b t e d . F o r a l o n g t i m e t h e y w e r e fellow t o w n s m e n - b e t w e e n 4 3 5 a n d 4 1 5 D i a g o r a s s p e n t m a n y y e a r s in A t h e n s - a n d t h e y lived a n d w o r k e d in t h e s a m e m i l i e u s . B u t that d o e s n o t c o n s t i t u t e a n y p r o o f that D i a g o r a s w a s the auctor 2 8
intellectualis
o f C r i t i a s ' t h e o r y o n the i n v e n t i o n o f religion. It w o u l d
Nestle, Mythos 416. See also Winiarczyk's edition p. 30. Jacoby, Diagoras 30. That the riddle of the prosperity o f the wicked (the theme o f Psalm 73) could in this period bring people to atheism is apparent from fragment 2 8 6 o f Euripides' Bellerophon, on which see Guthrie, History III 229, and C. Riedweg, "The 'Atheistic' Fragment from Euripides' Bellerophontes" Illinois Classical Studies 15 (1990) 3 9 - 5 3 . One should keep in mind that in 4 1 6 BCE, the total male population o f Melos, the island where Diagoras was born, was slaughtered by the Athenian army because the Melians refused to become members o f the Attic sea-league led by Athens H. Dorrie, "Diagoras," DerKleine Pauly I (1975) 1507; Fahr, 0 E O Y Z NOMIZEIN 8 9 - 9 2 ; Winiarczyk, "Diagoras von Melos," passim. 2 9
3 0
3 1
3 2
The First
Atheist
249
s e e m t o m e t h a t t h e m o t i v e s o f D i a g o r a s ' a t h e i s m w e r e different from
those
of Critias. Diagoras w a s a deeply disillusioned m a n , Critias an unscrupulous cynic.
3 3
B o t h o f t h e m did n o t b e l i e v e in t h e g o d s , b u t it is n e v e r said o f D i a g o r a s
in t h e a n c i e n t s o u r c e s t h a t a p o l i t i c a l l y m o t i v a t e d d e c e i t i n t e n d e d t o i n t i m i d a t e t h e c o m m o n p e o p l e p l a y e d a r o l e in h i s t h e o r y , n o t e v e n in t e x t s w h e r e b o t h m e n a r e m e n t i o n e d in o n e b r e a t h , a s in P l u t a r c h ( s e e a b o v e ) .
A s far a s t h i s first h i s t o r i c a l g e n e r a t i o n o f a t h e i s t s is c o n c e r n e d , w e c a n c a u t i o u s l y d r a w t h e f o l l o w i n g c o n c l u s i o n s . E v e n t h o u g h D i a g o r a s w a s t h e first outspoken atheist,
34
it w a s in all p r o b a b i l i t y C r i t i a s w h o first i n v e n t e d a t h e o r y o f
t h e o r i g i n o f r e l i g i o n t h a t w a s b a s e d o n a c y n i c a l lust for p o w e r ,
3 5
an explanation
t h a t w o u l d p l a y a n i m p o r t a n t p a r t in l a t e r h i s t o r y , a l b e i t o n l y after t h e M i d d l e Ages.
3 3
3 6
I agree with Schmid, Geschichte 180 n. 6: "D[iagoras]' Gottesleugnung hatte einen ganz personlichen Grund, und wie er sich positiv die Entstehung der Religion dachte, dariiber wissen wir nichts." Also Guthrie, History 111 2 4 4 n. 3 , disagrees with Nestle in this respect. Cf. Jacoby, Diagoras 26: "The book o f Diagoras was o f a purely negative (or, perhaps, w e had better say polemical) character, confining itself to attacking the belief in the existence o f god(s), and not developing a theory o f his o w n about the origin o f this belief." Winiarczyk, "Diagoras v o n Melos," is here too sceptic. Schmid, Geschichte 180: "Der erste, der es wagte, nicht im Affekt, sondern in kiihler Uberlegung die cpxioig der Gotter in Frage zu stellen, war der Verfasser des Sisyphos." Kahn, "Greek Religion and Philosophy" 2 5 9 , speaks o f an 'atmosphere o f moral cynicism' in the fragment o f Critias. S e e Nestle, Mythos 4 1 9 , Griechische Geistesgeschichte 1 9 8 - 1 9 9 ; Fahr, 0 E O Y Z NOMIZEIN 101; and esp. Davies, "Sisyphus" 3 0 - 3 2 . One could think of, e.g., Machiavelli, Hume, Gibbon, Holbach and Fichte. On the reasons why atheism could not be developed further in antiquity see J. N. Bremmer, "Literacy and the Origins and Limitations o f Greek Atheism," in J. den Boeft & A. H. M. Kessels (edd.), Actus. Studies in Honour o/H. L. W. Nelson, Utrecht 1982, 4 3 - 5 5 , e s p . 5 1 - 5 2 . I thank Jan Bremmer (Groningen) and David Runia (Leiden) for their valuable criticisms o f the first draft o f this article. To Charles Kahn (Philadelphia) I am grateful for sending me a copy o f his recent article on the Sisyphus fragment (see note 3). 3 4
3 5
3 6
Subtractive Versus Additive Composite Numerals in Ancient Languages 1.
Introduction
T h e n u m e r a l s y s t e m s all o v e r t h e w o r l d h a v e t h e c o m m o n characteristic that t h e l o w e s t n u m b e r s are referred to b y a b a s i c set o f (different) w o r d s w h i c h b e a r n o formal l i k e n e s s to o n e another, b u t w h i c h c a n b e g r o u p e d in a series in such a w a y that t h e m i n i m a l difference in m e a n i n g b e t w e e n t h e s u c c e s s i v e n u m b e r s is ' o n e . ' T h i s b a s i c set m a y r u n to ' t e n ' or ' f i v e , ' e v e n to ' t w o ' o r ' t h r e e ' only, but o n c e it is e x h a u s t e d , the u n i v e r s a l m e t h o d to m a k e further n u m e r a l s is to c o m b i n e t h e m e m b e r s o f the b a s i c series or to form d e r i v a t i v e s o f t h e m . In t h e I n d o - E u r o p e a n l a n g u a g e s , this p r o c e d u r e starts w i t h n u m b e r s h i g h e r than ' t e n , ' or c a n b e s h o w n to h a v e started there in f o r m e r t i m e s , b e c a u s e p h o netic c h a n g e m a y h a v e b l u r r e d the original c o h e r e n c e : ' e l e v e n ' a n d ' t w e l v e ' were once derivatives of ' o n e ' and ' t w o , ' but these pairs have phonetically drifted apart. T h e c o n n e c t i o n , h o w e v e r , b e t w e e n , e . g . , ' s i x , ' ' s i x t e e n , ' ' s i x t y ' a n d ' s e v e n , ' ' s e v e n t e e n , ' ' s e v e n t y ' is clear: C o m p o u n d s like ' s i x t e e n ' h a v e a m e a n i n g in w h i c h the n u m e r i c a l v a l u e s o f t h e c o m p o n e n t s ' s i x ' a n d ' t e e n ' (a v a r i a n t form o f ' t e n ' ) h a v e b e e n a d d e d t o g e t h e r a n d are therefore t e r m e d ad ditive
n u m e r a l s , w h i l e in the multiplicative
n u m e r a l ' s i x t y ' the v a l u e o f ' s i x ' is
m u l t i p l i e d b y ' t e n ' ( ' - t y ' b e i n g originally a v a r i a n t form o f ' t e n ' ) . O n the o t h e r h a n d , there are l a n g u a g e s in w h i c h the b a s i c set o f n u m e r a l s is m u c h earlier e x h a u s t e d . In Wolof, a l a n g u a g e s p o k e n in m o d e r n S e n e g a l , ' s i x ' is ' f i v e - o n e , ' ' s e v e n ' is ' f i v e - t w o , ' etc., ' t e n ' b e i n g a totally different w o r d ; a n d the s a m e h o l d s g o o d o f a n c i e n t S u m e r i a n .
1
A d d i t i o n a n d m u l t i p l i c a t i o n , h o w e v e r , are n o t the o n l y a r i t h m e t i c a l p r o c e d u r e s u s e d in f o r m i n g further n u m e r a l s from the b a s i c set. A third m e t h o d is subtraction.
In Y o r u b a , o n e o f the l a n g u a g e s o f m o d e r n N i g e r i a , ' e l e v e n ' u p to
' f o u r t e e n ' are referred to b y c o m p o u n d s m e a n i n g ' o n e o v e r t e n , ' ' t w o o v e r t e n ' etc., ' t w e n t y ' b y a n e w w o r d w h i c h b e a r s n o l i k e n e s s to a n y m e m b e r s o f t h e b a s i c set o f n u m e r a l s , w h i l e 'fifteen' u p to ' n i n e t e e n ' are c o m p o u n d s m e a n i n g 1
A. Falkenstein, Das Sumerische, Leiden 1959, 4CMU. The notable instance of languages not having numerals other than the basic set are those o f the natives o f the Australian Conti nent. They either count 'one, two, many' or 'one, two, three, many.' See R.M.W. Dixon, The Languages of Australia, Cambridge 1980, 1 0 7 - 8 , 120.
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
Languages
251
literally 'five short o f t w e n t y , ' ' f o u r short o f t w e n t y ' etc. T h e s e latter five are, then, subtractive
n u m e r a l s T h i s s u b t r a c t i v e p r o c e d u r e is f o l l o w e d n o t o n l y in 25
to 2 9 , 35 to 3 9 , b u t also for t h e u n e v e n tens 5 0 , 7 0 , 9 0 u p to 170, w h i c h c a n b e 2
a n a l y z e d as 10 short o f three t i m e s 2 0 , 10 short o f four t i m e s 2 0 e t c . Just as the a d d i t i o n a l m e t h o d , s u b t r a c t i o n is in s o m e l a n g u a g e s o p e r a t i v e a l r e a d y b e t w e e n ' f i v e ' a n d ' t e n . ' In m o d e r n F i n n i s h , the n u m e r a l s for ' e i g h t ' a n d ' n i n e ' are deriva tives o f the w o r d s for ' t w o ' a n d ' o n e ' respectively, a n d are therefore s u b t r a c t i v e from t h e n u m e r i c a l v a l u e o f 10. In the m o d e r n G e r m a n i c , R o m a n c e , a n d S l a v i c l a n g u a g e s , s u b t r a c t i o n is not e m p l o y e d , b u t t h e E n g l i s h w a y o f i n d i c a t i n g the t i m e c o m b i n e s a d d i t i o n a n d subtraction: ' A quarter past n i n e ' and 'half past nine' are additive, but 'a quarter to t e n ' is s u b t r a c t i v e . In t h e f o l l o w i n g s u r v e y o f the m o s t i m p o r t a n t a n d b e s t k n o w n a n c i e n t lan g u a g e s a r o u n d the M e d i t e r r a n e a n S e a , w e shall also i n t r o d u c e a further d i s t i n c tion b e t w e e n s y s t e m a t i c a l a n d incidental s u b t r a c t i v e s , for it is clear that the a d ditive ' t w e n t y n i n e ' is part o f t h e n u m e r a l s y s t e m o f the E n g l i s h l a n g u a g e , w h i l e s u b t r a c t i v e e x p r e s s i o n s like ' t h i r t y less o n e ' a n d ' o n e short o f t h i r t y ' are not.
2.
Latin
The numeral systems of the R o m a n s contained both additives and subtractives: undecim,
duodecim
deviginti
on t h e other; viginti-unus
detriginta
u p to septendecim
o n t h e o n e h a n d , a n d duodeviginti,
u p to viginti-septem,
then duodetriginta,
unun-
a n d so on in the further t e n s , t h e h i g h e s t s u b t r a c t i v e actually r e c o r d e d
b e i n g undecentum
(Pliny, Nat. hist. 7 . 2 1 4 ) .
T h e R o m a n figures u s e d to indicate t h e s e s u b t r a c t i v e n u m e r a l s d o n o t nor m a l l y c o r r e s p o n d w i t h the linguistic p e c u l i a r i t y o f the latter. Duodeviginti
is
w r i t t e n as X V I I I or X I I X (so CIL V 4 2 9 9 ) w h i c h are a d d i t i o n s o f X a n d VIII or I I X . Undeviginti
is X V I I I I or X I X ( D e s s a u n o s . 1999 a n d 2 0 0 0 ) , l i k e w i s e
a d d i t i o n s o f X a n d V i l l i or I X . A n e x a m p l e o f a R o m a n s u b t r a c t i v e figure actu ally reflecting t h e s u b t r a c t i v e v a l u e o f t h e n u m e r a l for w h i c h it s t a n d s is IIL for duodequinquaginta
in CIL X 3 4 2 7 . N o t e that the b a s i c n u m e r a l s quattuor
and
sex u p to novem are l i k e w i s e i n c o n g r u o u s l y r e p r e s e n t e d b y the subtractive a n d / o r a d d i t i v e figures IV, V I , V I I , V I I I / I I X , V I I I I / I X .
2
3
E.C. Rowlands, Yoruba, London 1969, 1 0 6 - 7 . The word for 2 0 0 is a new word and not 20 x 10; consequently, 190 is 'ten short of 2 0 0 . ' This shows by the way the danger of making inferences about the linguistic nature of a numeral system from its graphic representation by numerical symbols. In the same way the Maya figures for 6, 7, 8, 9 are combinations o f a horizontal stroke and one dot, two dots etc. The corresponding numerals, however, are four mutually different prefixes which in their turn bear no formal likeness to those for 'five and one,' 'five and two' etc. either; see A.M. Tozzer, A Maya Grammar, N e w York 1977, 9 8 - 9 9 . 3
252
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
Languages
T h i s r a t h e r striking characteristic o f Latin, w h i c h d i s t i n g u i s h e s it from m o s t o f t h e o t h e r I n d o - E u r o p e a n l a n g u a g e s , is not c o m m e n t e d on b y L e u m a n n in his 4
historical g r a m m a r , a l t h o u g h S a n s k r i t offers a c l o s e parallel. F o r b y t h e side o f the a d d i t i v e navadasa,
19, there also o c c u r r e d the s u b t r a c t i v e
' t w e n t y less o n e , ' in w h i c h una- is short for ekona,
unavimsatih,
'less one.' This alternative
m e t h o d c o u l d b e u s e d for all t h e tens p l u s n i n e u p to 9 9 , a n d h a s s u r v i v e d , a p p a r e n t l y as t h e o n l y m e t h o d , in a n u m b e r o f m o d e r n I n d i a n l a n g u a g e s . Incidentally, L a t i n a u t h o r s u s e d , instead o f t h e a d d i t i v e undecim tendecim
a n d t h e s u b t r a c t i v e duodeviginti
a n d undeviginti.
5
u p to sep-
numerals formed
in a different way. A s t h e series 1 1 - 1 9 w a s in itself h e t e r o g e n e o u s , there w e r e a t t e m p t s to r e p l a c e the t w o s u b t r a c t i v e s (18 a n d 19) b y n u m e r a l s f o r m e d on the a n a l o g y o f undecim (tetrachma (usque
Attica
- septendecim;
centum
octodecim
dum filia mea annos
a n d so L i v y u s e s octodecim
in 3 9 . 5 . 1 4
milia) as d o e s S c a e v o l a in Digesta
impleat
T h e Latin d i c t i o n a r y o f L e w i s a n d S h o r t also c o n t a i n s a l e m m a w i t h r e f e r e n c e s to L i v y 3 . 2 4 a n d Livy, Epitome haberet.
33.2.37
octodecim). novendecim
18: cum annos
H o w e v e r , at 3 . 2 4 the e d i t i o n s h a v e undeviginti,
novendecim
w h i l e the 1 8
th
periocha
th
d o e s n o t c o n t a i n the p a s s a g e q u o t e d . It is found in t h e 1 1 9 , in w h i c h it is said that O c t a v i a n w a s a p p o i n t e d c o n s u l cum XVIIII l o n g e r p r e s e n t in G l a r e ' s n e w
annos haberet.
T h e l e m m a is n o
6
OLD.
M o r e often t h e w h o l e series 1 1 - 1 9 w a s r e p l a c e d b y n u m e r a l s o f t h e t y p e s decern (et) ... or ... (et) decern, b o t h b e i n g u s e d , for i n s t a n c e , by C i c e r o in his Pro Roscio Amerino
decern et tris a n d 3 5 . 9 9 tribus et decern fundis.
Most
p r o b a b l y t h e s e n u m e r a l s w e r e formed in imitation o f the c o m p o u n d s w i t h
viginti,
triginta viginti
7.20 fundos
etc., such as viginti
et septem
... tabulas
( P l a u t u s , Merc. 4 3 0 ) , tres et viginti pondo
( C i c , Verr. 4 . 1 2 3 ) , septem (Varro, De re rustica
et
2.4.11).
F u r t h e r i n s t a n c e s u p to 19 a r e : 13: decern
tres/tria
however, he uses
17: decern septemque septem
in L i v y 2 9 . 2 . 1 7 ; 3 7 . 3 0 . 8 ; 3 7 . 4 6 . 3 ; 4 5 . 4 3 . 5 (at 3 6 . 4 5 . 3 ,
tredecim). in N e p o s , Cato
1.2; V u l g . 2 C h r o n . 12.13; decern
in Vulg. 3 R e g . 14.21; 4 R e g . 13.1 etc.; decern septem
L a t i n - G r e e k inscription from E p h e s u s o f A D 103/4: sestertia milia
nummum;
et
in a b i l i n g u a l decern
septem
t h e a m o u n t is e x p r e s s e d o t h e r w i s e in the G r e e k part: SnvdQia
TETQaxioxeilia 5iaxoaia jtevxr|xovTa ( D e s s a u n o . 7 1 9 3 ) ; septem
decern in A u l u s
G e l l i u s 10.28, p e r h a p s q u o t e d from T u b e r o , Hist. I.
4
M. Leumann, J.B. Hofmann & A. Szantyr, Lateinische
Grammatik,
I, Munchen 1963,
293. 5
M. Monier-Williams, A Sanskrit-English Dictionary, Oxford 1964, 221a. Cf. J. Beames, A Comparative Grammar of the Modern Aryan Languages, to Wit, Hindi, Panjabi, Sindhi, Gujarati, Oriya and Bangali, Delhi 1966, vol. II, 36. Ch.T. Lewis & Ch. Short, A Latin Dictionary, Oxford 1962 (= 1879), 1219b; P.G. W. Glare, Oxford Latin Dictionary, Oxford 1982, 1194c, 2092a s.v. undeviginti (Livy 3.24.10). 6
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
253
Languages
18: decern et octo in C a e s a r , Bell. Gall. 4 . 1 9 . 4 (but duodeviginti
at 2.5); E u -
t r o p i u s 1.1; V u l g . J u d i c e s 3.14; 10.8; 2 0 . 2 5 etc.; L u k e 13.4, 11, 16. 19: decern et novem
in L i v y 4 0 . 4 0 . 1 3 ; 4 5 . 4 3 . 5 (he u s e s undeviginti,
however,
at 3 . 2 4 . 1 0 ; 2 3 . 4 6 . 4 ; 3 4 . 1 0 . 4 ) ; Vulg. J o s . 1 9 . 3 8 ; 2 S a m . 2 . 3 0 ; etc. decern novem C a e s a r , Bell. Gall.
1.8; Tacitus, Hist. 2 . 5 9 (but undeviginti
at Ann.
in
12.56).
It is difficult to say to w h a t e x t e n t the m a n u s c r i p t s r e p r e s e n t in this r e s p e c t the original w o r d i n g o f the a u t h o r s . D u r i n g t h e m a n u s c r i p t tradition, fully writ ten n u m e r a l w o r d s m a y h a v e b e e n c o p i e d as figures or v i c e v e r s a , b u t if t h e m a n u s c r i p t s w e r e reliable h e r e , o u r i n s t a n c e s s e e m to i n d i c a t e that s o m e a u t h o r s u s e d different t y p e s side b y side. T h e r e a s o n for d o i n g so m a y h a v e b e e n their d e s i r e o f stylistic variation. O n e p a s s a g e , h o w e v e r , p o i n t s r a t h e r to t h e o p p o s i t e inclination: in 4 5 . 4 3 . 5 L i v y c o m b i n e s w i t h i n o n e p a s s a g e decern tria, decern novem
a n d viginti etseptem,
d i s s i m i l a r tredecim,
undeviginti
a n d viginti
et
septem.
T h e n e w f o r m a t i o n s did n o t s u c c e e d in s u p p l a n t i n g the series undecim quindecim,
et
p r o b a b l y for u n i f o r m i t y ' s s a k e , instead o f the rather u p to
w h i c h h a v e s u r v i v e d , b e it in a modified form, in Italian, F r e n c h ,
S p a n i s h , a n d P o r t u g u e s e , sedecim a n d b o t h s u b t r a c t i v e s duodeviginti
also in Italian a n d F r e n c h . O n l y a n d undeviginti
septendecim
a r e n o l o n g e r e x t a n t in the
R o m a n c e l a n g u a g e s a n d w e r e definitely r e p l a c e d b y t h e n e w e r c o m p o u n d s . T h e V u l g a t e v e r s i o n o f t h e B i b l e h a s undecim 1
decern et octo, decern et novem,
u p to sedecim,
t h e n decern et
septem,
a n d in old F r e n c h l i k e w i s e dis e set, dis e uit, dis
e nuef (ca. 1190 C E ) occur. A p p a r e n t l y t h e s e n e w f o r m a t i o n s w e r e n o t p o p u l a r for 11 to 15/16; t h e y m a y h a v e s o u n d e d s o m e w h a t l e a r n e d b e c a u s e o f their like n e s s to G r e e k t o e i a x a i & e x a (classical A t t i c ) o r S e x a x a i xgelc, a n d dexaxoeic; (both 8
H e l l e n i s t i c ) . It is, h o w e v e r , difficult to say w h y t h e n e x a c t l y septendecim,
which
is n o l o n g e r p r e s e n t in the V u l g a t e , w a s the e x c e p t i o n . O n l y in R u m a n i a n the c o m p l e t e series 1 1 - 1 9 h a s b e e n g i v e n u p a n d r e p l a c e d b y c o m p o u n d s m e a n i n g ' o n e a b o v e t e n , ' ' t w o a b o v e t e n ' etc., w h i c h are, m o r e o v e r , u s u a l l y s h o r t e n e d to ' o n e a b o v e , ' ' t w o a b o v e ' etc. T h e r e p l a c e m e n t o f the s u b t r a c t i v e s for 2 8 , 3 8 ,
98, and 29, 39,
99
is certainly to b e e x p l a i n e d from t h e a n a l o g y o f the n u m e r i c a l l y p r e c e d i n g viginti-unus
... viginti-septem
etc. A n i n s t a n c e o u t s i d e o f t h e V u l g a t e is p r e s e n t
in S e n e c a , Epist.
7 7 . 2 0 (Sattia)
nonaginta
vixisse,
novem
quae
inscribi
w h e r e a s undecentum
monumento
suo iussit
annis
se
is u s e d o n c e b y his c o n t e m p o r a r y
7
Duodeviginti at 2 Sam. 8.13 is present only in the edition of the Abbey o f St. Jerome (Biblia sacra iuxta latinam vulgatam versionem ad codicum fidem cura et studio monachorum Pont. Abbatiae S. Hieronymi in urbe, Rome 1 9 2 6 - 1 9 7 2 ) . The Sixto-Clementina has decern et octo; see B. Fischer, Novae concordantiae Stuttgart - Bad Cannstatt 1977, 1669. E. Schwyzer & A. Debrunner, Griechische Grammatik, Miinchen 1968 ( 4 ed.), 594; F. Blass & A. Debrunner, Grammatik des neutestamentlichen Griechisch, Gottingen 1965 ( 1 2 ed.), § 63. 8
th
th
254
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Pliny t h e E l d e r (Nat. hist. 1.2\4). between 20 and 100.
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
Languages
T h e V u l g a t e d o e s n o t contain a n y s u b t r a c t i v e s
9
A n o t h e r k i n d o f s u b t r a c t i v e s c o u l d b e u s e d w h e n o n e w a n t e d to e x p r e s s that a specific n u m b e r , u s u a l l y a ' r o u n d n u m b e r , ' that is a m u l t i p l e o f t e n s , w a s a l m o s t but not wholly involved. These were n o compounds but word groups as appears from t h e v a r y i n g o r d e r o f t h e c o n s t i t u e n t e l e m e n t s , a n d c o n s i s t e d o f ( a ) t h e n u m e r a l n o t attained, ( b ) t h e w o r d minus,
a n d (c) a s e c o n d n u m e r a l e x p r e s s i n g
the shortage. A w e l l - k n o w n instance is found in t h e V u l g a t e v e r s i o n o f P a u l ' s S e c o n d L e t t e r to t h e C o r i n t h i a n s 11.24: A Iudaeis
quinquies
quadragenas
una minus
accept,
' F i v e t i m e s I h a v e r e c e i v e d at t h e h a n d s o f the J e w s t h e forty [lashes] less o n e . ' A s this i n s t a n c e g o e s b a c k v i a t h e G r e e k t o a H e b r e w - A r a m a i c e x p r e s s i o n e n s u i n g from a r a t h e r specific m o t i v e , it will b e d i s c u s s e d b e l o w in § 5.2. O v i d , h o w e v e r , offers a less c o m p l e x e x a m p l e in Met. 1 2 . 5 5 3 - 5 , w h e r e N e s t o r , t h e s o n o f N e l e u s , relates that h i s e l e v e n b r o t h e r s h a d all b e e n killed b y H e r c u l e s , but does so as follows: Bis sex Nelidae fuimus, Bis sex Herculeis
conspecta
ceciderunt
iuventus!
me minus
uno
Viribus T h i s is a p o e t i c a l w a y o f s a y i n g w h a t A p o l l o d o r u s e l s e w h e r e p h r a s e d in p r o s e as: ' H e killed N e l e u s a n d h i s s o n s , e x c e p t N e s t o r ' (Bibl.
2.7.3.). T h e p h e n o m
e n o n c a n b e p a r a l l e l e d b y m a n y m o d e r n i n s t a n c e s . B u t w h y is it d o n e ? B e c a u s e p s y c h o l o g i c a l l y it is n o t t h e s a m e to s a y ' n i n e t y - n i n e ' o r ' a h u n d r e d less o n e . ' T h e f o r m e r is c e r t a i n l y less i m p r e s s i v e , a s s h o p k e e p e r s k n o w b y instinct that a n article sells m o r e easily at t h e p r i c e o f 9 9 cents t h a n for o n e d o l l a r .
10
F o r that
r e a s o n a l o n e it is less c o r r e c t to translate t h e p a s s a g e from Paul q u o t e d a b o v e as t h e N e w E n g l i s h B i b l e d o e s : ' F i v e t i m e s t h e J e w s h a v e g i v e n m e
thirty-nine
s t r o k e s ' ; b u t s e e § 5.2.
3.
Greek
A b o u t t h e n u m e r a l s in t h e oldest G r e e k that w e h a v e - M y c e n a e a n - n o t h i n g c a n b e said b e c a u s e in t h e L i n e a r B script all n u m b e r s ( a n d there a r e m a n y o f t h e m ) a r e w r i t t e n in figures. A s s o o n a s n u m b e r s w e r e w r i t t e n as w o r d s , t h a t is in H o m e r , it a p p e a r s that t h e r e a r e a d d i t i v e s for n u m b e r s b e t w e e n t e n s , n o t o n l y for t h e l o w e r u p t o ' s e v e n a n d . . . ' (ev&exa //. 2 . 7 1 3 ; 6co6exa / / . 1.25; Suto&exa / / . 2 . 6 3 7 ; & u o x a i & e x a / / . 2 . 5 5 7 ; exxai&Exd&cuQog / / . 4 . 1 0 9 ; ejrrd be x a i & s x a
5 . 2 7 8 ; sv x a i e i x o o i / / . 2 . 7 4 8 ;
KIOVQEC,
Od.
xe x a i e i x o o i Od. 1 6 . 2 4 9 ; etc.), b u t also
9
See Fischer, Novae concordantiae 1669 and 5293. See the remarks by J. Gonda,' Varia over indonesische telwoorden,' Bijdragen land- en volkenkunde 109 (1953) 2 5 - 2 7 . 1 0
tot de taal-,
Subtractive
Versus Additive
for t h o s e that c o n t a i n ' e i g h t a n d
Composite
Numerals in Ancient
'nine and
Languages
255
(dxxooxai&exdxri Od. 5.279;
Evvsaxai&exa //. 2 4 . 4 9 6 ) . P e r h a p s the latter i n s t a n c e s h o u l d b e r e a d as evvea x a i 5 e x a s i n c e o n e m a y i n d e e d ask the q u e s t i o n w h e t h e r c o m p o s i t e c a r d i n a l s in H o m e r are c o m p o u n d w o r d s a l r e a d y or w o r d g r o u p s yet. P a s s a g e s like Od. 5.278—9 (ejtxd be x a i &exa uev nkeev fju-axa JtovtocpoQettcov, oxxooxai&exdxr] 5' eqjdvr) ooea axioevxa) r a t h e r s e e m to indicate the latter (cf. Od. 16.249). S u b t r a c t i v e s a r e , o n the o t h e r h a n d , w h o l l y l a c k i n g in H o m e r , a n d so l i k e w i s e in H e s i o d , Pindar, the T r a g e d i a n s , a n d A r i s t o p h a n e s . T h i s d o e s n o t imply, h o w ever, that t h e y did n o t exist, b e c a u s e p o e t s a b a n d o n s o m e t i m e s t h e c u r r e n t w a y s o f e x p r e s s i n g n u m b e r s b y u s i n g c i r c u m s c r i p t i o n s . H e s i o d , for i n s t a n c e , u s e s TQiaEivd&a, ' 2 7
t h
d a y , ' i n s t e a d o f ejtxaxaieixoaxr|v (Op. 8 1 4 ; cf. xoeiaxaiSexdxriv
Op. 7 8 0 ) . A e s c h y l u s p a r a p h r a s e s xoiaxooiai b y xoiaxd8ac; &exa a n d &iaxoaiai x a i ejtxd b y exaxov 615 ejtxd 9' ( P e r s . 3 3 9 , 3 4 3 ) . S o w h e n P i n d a r u s e s xeaaaodxovxa x a i oxxd) (Pyth. 9.113),
this m a y b e the n u m e r a l h e u s e d in his s p o k e n l a n g u a g e ,
b u t it is a l s o p o s s i b l e that h e h a s r e p h r a s e d h e r e a s u b t r a c t i v e n u m e r a l , a n d the s a m e m a y b e said h e r e for H o m e r ' s evveaxai&exa (//. 2 4 . 4 9 6 ) , for as s o o n as w e t u r n to p r o s e w r i t e r s it a p p e a r s that s u b t r a c t i v e n u m e r a l s did exist as w e l l . If w e l e a v e a s i d e s u b t r a c t i v e e x p r e s s i o n s w h i c h c o n t a i n indefinite e l e m e n t s , s u c h as ' 1 0 0 0 d r a c h m a e b u t for a trifle' ( I s a e u s 11.43), ' a l l b u t o n e ' ( H e r o d o t u s 1.202), ' a l l b u t a f e w ' ( P l u t a r c h , Caesar
3 0 . 3 ) , w e m a y d i s c e r n w i t h i n the e x a c t
s u b t r a c t i o n s t h r e e t y p e s w h i c h differ a little in m e a n i n g : (A) pure s u b t r a c t i v e s : 'forty ships less o n e ' : t h e t h i n g s s u b t r a c t e d a n d t h o s e from w h i c h t h e y are s u b t r a c t e d b e l o n g to the same (B) impure
kind.
s u b t r a c t i v e s : ' t h r e e d r a c h m a e less t w o o b o l s ' : t h e t h i n g s s u b t r a c t e d
are o f a different (C) combinations
kind.
o f A a n d B : e . g . , H e r o d o t u s 9.30 evSexa uupid5es rjaav, uafjg
yykmboc, jtooc; be oxxaxoaiarv dv&Qwv 5eoi)aai, ' t h e r e w e r e e l e v e n m y r i a d s o f m e n less o n e t h o u s a n d a n d e i g h t h u n d r e d . ' T h i s s u b t r a c t i o n is p u r e b e c a u s e u l t i m a t e l y m e n are s u b t r a c t e d from m e n , b u t i m p u r e b e c a u s e f o r m a l l y a chiliad is s u b t r a c t e d from m y r i a d s w h i c h are different t h i n g s , a l t h o u g h the w h o l e is s e m a n t i c a l l y e q u i v a l e n t t o ' 110.000 less ( 1 . 0 0 0 + 8 0 0 ) . ' In the m a j o r i t y o f t h e c a s e s , e x c e p t t h o s e o f c l a s s B , t h e s u b t r a c t e d n u m e r a l (e. g. 2 ) is s m a l l e r than t h e o n e that o t h e r w i s e w o u l d h a v e h a d t o b e a d d e d (8 in this c a s e ) . O n l y o n c e , in ' 3 0 0 less 8 ' ( T h u c y d i d e s 4 . 3 8 . 5 ) , is t h e s u b t r a c t e d n u m b e r larger, a n d in ' 1 2 0 less 5 ' ( D i o d o r u s Sic. 13.14.4) t h e n u m b e r s w o u l d b e e q u a l . In all c a s e s , h o w e v e r , t h e s p e a k e r / a u t h o r t a k e s c a r e to m e n t i o n p r o v i s i o n a l l y a r o u n d n u m b e r w h i c h is h i g h e r t h a n the o n e h e w o u l d h a v e m e n t i o n e d o t h e r w i s e , a c c o r d i n g to the a d d i t i v e m e t h o d , that is. B u t this d o e s n o t i m p l y that in the s e n t e n c e the r o u n d n u m b e r a l w a y s p r e c e d e s the s u b t r a c t e d n u m b e r . B o t h o r d e r s o c c u r : in A r i s t o t l e , Rhet. 2 . 1 4 . 4 jieoixd evog 6e!v jtevxf)xovxa (sc. exn) the r o u n d n u m b e r follows the s m a l l s u b t r a c t e d o n e .
256
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
Languages
F o r m a l l y , t h a t is, a c c o r d i n g to t h e t e r m i n o l o g y w h i c h is u s e d , t h e s u b t r a c t i v e s s h o w the following diversity: 1. Verbs (djto-, xaxa-)6elv, almost a l w a y s a participle with the shortage in the genitive case, e. g. Plutarch, Pomp. 19 A e^r|xovxa u.ev evog 6eovxa pefhcoxcbc; exr|. Aristotle, Rhet. 2 . 1 4 . 4 , quoted a b o v e , is the only instance o f an infinitive construction. 2. Verb 6et>eiv: A p o l l o n i u s Rhod. 2.974—5 xexodxic; eig exaxov &ei)oixo xev el' xig exaoxa jteujtd^oi (sc. QeeOoa), 'four times w o u l d o n e m i s s in a hundred if o n e w o u l d count each o f the streams.' 3. Verbs (djio-)XeijteLv, participles, but in different constructions. With genitive in D i o dorus S i c . 1 3 . 1 4 . 4 XQITIQEIC; \IEV enXxiQcooav Jtevxe Xemovaac, xwv exaxov eixooi, 'they m a n n e d triremes five m i s s i n g o f the 1 2 0 ' (the s a m e in Isocrates 1 2 . 2 7 0 yeyovcbg \IEV exT) xoia uovov ajto^ebtovxa xcov exaxov). With dative in Josephus, Ant. 4 . 2 3 8 Kkr\yaq \xiq Xeinovoaq, xeooaodxovxa, litt. ' 4 0 stripes falling short b y o n e ' (the s a m e in Ant. 4.248). 4. Preposition nhr\v Herodotus 1.202 xd jtdvxa nXr\v evog. 5. Preposition jraod with accusative: Paul, 2 Cor. 1 1 . 2 4 vnb 'Iou5aicov jtevxdxic; xeaoeodxovxa ( s c . jtlnydg) jtaod ^uav ekafiov, 'five times I have received at the hands o f the J e w s the forty (lashes) less o n e . ' A l t h o u g h this p a s s a g e will b e dealt with in a special paragraph ( 5 . 2 ) b e c a u s e o f its Jewish background - together with Josephus, Ant. 4 . 2 3 8 and 2 4 8 quoted a b o v e - s o m e remarks are to b e m a d e here as to the w a y it is treated in Walter Bauer's l e x i c o n to the N e w Testament." T h e parallel material there adduced consists o f quotations from classical authors w h i c h are impure e x a m p l e s b e c a u s e ' d a y s ' are subtracted from 'years' etc. (Herodotus 9 . 3 3 ; Josephus, Ant. 4 . 1 7 6 ; P.Oxy. 2 6 4 . 4 [see b e l o w ] ) ; or there are n o definite cardinal numerals involved (Plutarch, Caes. 3 0 . 3 ; s e e a b o v e ) . O f course, they d o illustrate the u s e o f jraod in subtractive constructions, but there is a better parallel w h i c h matches Paul's w o r d i n g in every respect: C a s s i u s D i o 5 8 . 2 0 . 5 xco yovv ejuovxi exei,(...), Jtevxexai6exa oxoaxnyol eyevovxo x a i xofixo x a i era, noXka exr\ o w e p n , toaxe eoxi u.ev oxe exxai.6exa, eoxi 6' Sxe Jtao' eva r\ x a i 5i3o xeiQoxoveloOai, 'next year there were 15 praetors, ( . . . ) , and for m a n y years the f o l l o w i n g also happened, ( n a m e l y ) that at o n e time 16 praetors but at another time o n e or e v e n t w o f e w e r w e r e c h o s e n . ' A comparable remarks is m a d e b y D i o at 5 9 . 2 0 . 5 , but there it runs: eoxi 6' oxe evl jtXeiovg fi x a i eXaxxovq. -
W i t h r e g a r d to t h e m o t i v a t i o n o f t h e s u b t r a c t i o n , t h e different k i n d s t h a t w e d i s t i n g u i s h e d a b o v e (indefinite, p u r e , i m p u r e , c o m b i n e d ) a r e n o t a l i k e . T h e c a s e s in w h i c h e i t h e r t h e r o u n d n u m b e r o r t h e s u b t r a c t e d n u m b e r o r b o t h a r e r e n d e r e d b y a n indefinite n u m e r a l o r a d j e c t i v e a r e a l w a y s c l e a r l y m o t i v a t e d : ' a l l b u t a f e w ' ( P l u t a r c h , Caes.
3 0 . 3 ) , ' o n e t h o u s a n d d r a c h m a e b u t for a trifle' ( I s a e u s
11.43), 'fifteen t a l e n t s b u t for a trifle' ( L y s i a s 1 9 . 4 3 ) , ' n o t m u c h s h o r t o f n i n e t y y e a r s ' ( P o l y b i u s 1 2 . 1 6 . 1 3 ) . In t h e s e latter t h r e e t h e s h o r t a g e is c o n s i d e r e d t o b e so insignificant t h a t it is n o t d e e m e d w o r t h t o b e specified. L i k e w i s e , w h e n d i s s i m i l a r t h i n g s a r e s u b t r a c t e d ( c l a s s B ) , t h e s e t h i n g s are a l w a y s in t h e m s e l v e s r e l a t i v e l y s m a l l fractions o f t h e units from w h i c h t h e y a r e 11
W. Bauer, Griechisch-Deutsches Worterbuch zu den Schriften des Neuen Testaments, Berlin 1958 ( 5 ed.), s.v. naod. English version in W. Bauer, W.F. Arndt, F.W. Gingrich, F.W. Danker, A Greek-English Lexicon of the New Testament, Chicago & London 1979. t h
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient Languages
257
s u b t r a c t e d , s o that the m o t i v a t i o n o f the s u b t r a c t i o n is self-evident. H e r o d o t u s 2 . 1 3 4 ' H e ( P h a r a o h M y c e r i n u s ) left a p y r a m i d as well but o n e m u c h s m a l l e r than that o f his father ( C h e o p s ) ; e a c h o f its sides falls 2 0 feet s h o r t o f t h r e e p l e t h o r a (/. e. 3 0 0 feet).' J o s e p h u s , Ant. 4 . 1 7 6 ' W h e n forty y e a r s b u t for thirty d a y s h a d p a s s e d , . . . ' E s p e c i a l l y in G r a e c o - E g y p t i a n a c c o u n t s a n d c o n t r a c t s o n p a p y r u s t h e s e s u b t r a c t i o n s - u s u a l l y b y j t a o d w i t h a c c u s a t i v e - are v e r y frequent: T a g r e e that I h a v e sold to y o u t h e w e a v e r ' s l o o m b e l o n g i n g to m e m e a s u r i n g t h r e e w e a v e r ' s cubits less t w o p a l m s ' (P.Oxy. 2 6 4 . 2 - 4 ; 5 4 C E ) ; this cubit, y e p S i a x o g
jrfjxvs,
p r o b a b l y e q u a l l e d five p a l m s .
1 2
T h e m e t h o d is a l m o s t n o r m a l in the
B y z a n t i n e p e r i o d in p r i c e s e x p r e s s e d in (x) vou.iou.aTa
(XQTJOOIJ)
j r a p d (y) x e o a T i a ,
' ( x ) g o l d e n solidi less (y) s i l i q u a e ' ( i . e . 1/24 s o l i d u s ) , o f w h i c h P r e i s i g k e listed selection-wise over a hundred instances.
13
T h e keration
w a s b o t h a coin a n d a
w e i g h t , a n d at least in a n u m b e r o f t h e s e c a s e s t h e s u b t r a c t i o n is not so m u c h m o t i v a t e d b y the w i s h to m e n t i o n an a m o u n t in r o u n d n u m b e r s as by the fact that n o m i n a l l y the n u m b e r o f solidi w a s c o r r e c t i n d e e d b u t that t h e s e g o l d e n c o i n s t h r o u g h a b r a s i o n n o l o n g e r h a d their c o r r e c t w e i g h t . T h i s a p p e a r s from P.Cairo M a s p . 7 0 . 2 w h i c h c o n t a i n s the line, ' t h e solidi w e r e f o u n d t o b e s e v e n keratia less' ( 6
t h
cent. C E ) .
A v e r y special i n s t a n c e o f d i s s i m i l a r s u b t r a c t i o n , a l s o q u o t e d b y Bauer, is H e r o d o t u s 9.33 d a x e w v 8s jtevTaeB^ov J t a o d ev jtdX.aiau,a eSoau.8 v i x a v '0?a>umd5a.
A t first sight this s e e m s to s u g g e s t that the m a n w o n in four e v e n t s ( j u m p i n g , r u n n i n g , t h r o w i n g the d i s c u s a n d the j a v e l i n ) b u t lost in the w r e s t l i n g a n d h e n c e w a s n o O l y m p i c victor. T h e parallel v e r s i o n in P a u s a n i a s 3 . 1 1 . 6 - 8 , h o w e v e r , states clearly that h e ( T e i s a m e n o s ) h a d w o n in t w o e v e n t s ( r u n n i n g a n d j u m p i n g ) , w h i c h i m p l i e s that his o p p o n e n t ( H i e r o n y m u s ) h a d w o n in t h e o t h e r t w o . O n t h e o t h e r h a n d , it is k n o w n that in the final e v e n t , t h e w r e s t l i n g , o n e h a d to b e
floored
thrice to b e the looser, a n d s i n c e p a l a i s m a a l s o m e a n s ' w r e s t l i n g b o u t ' t h e m e a n ing o f the w h o l e is not so m u c h that h e w o n in t w o e v e n t s , like his o p p o n e n t , a n d lost in the final o n e , but r a t h e r that h e w o n in t w o e v e n t s a n d t w o w r e s t l i n g b o u t s , like his o p p o n e n t , b u t lost o n l y t h e third d e c i s i v e w r e s t l i n g b o u t . T h e p a s s a g e s in w h i c h n u m e r i c a l s u b s t a n t i v e s are s u b t r a c t e d from n u m e r i cal s u b s t a n t i v e s or from n u m e r a l s (class C ) a r e formally not different from t h e k i n d w h i c h w e h a v e j u s t d i s c u s s e d , b u t a s , for i n s t a n c e , u i a x^idg a n d x&ioi are s e m a n t i c a l l y h a r d l y different, w e shall d i s c u s s t h e s e c a s e s t o g e t h e r w i t h the p u r e s u b t r a c t i o n s (class A ) . T h e m o t i v a t i o n o f the f o l l o w i n g s u b t r a c t i o n s o f s m a l l n u m b e r s from large n u m b e r s in c l a s s e s A a n d C s e e m s e v i d e n t , a l s o to o u r m o d e r n m i n d : 110.000 but for 1.800 ( H e r o d o t u s 9.30); 2 0 . 0 0 0 less 2 . 0 0 0 ( D i o n y s i u s H a l i c . 7.3.2.); 1 2
That is, if it was the same as the linen weaver's cubit; see F. Preisigke, Fachworter des offentlichen Verwaltungsdienstes Agyptens, Gottingen 1915, 118. F. Preisigke, Worterbuch der griechischen Papyrusurkunden v o l . 3 , Berlin 1931, 348a-b. 13
258
Subtractive
Versus Additive Composite
Numerals in Ancient
Languages
1 0 . 0 0 0 less 3 0 0 ( T h u c y d i d e s 2.13.3.); 1.500 less 15 ( H e r o d o t u s 2.7); 3 0 0 less 8 ( T h u c y d i d e s 4 . 3 8 . 5 ) ; 160 less 2 ( A r i s t o t l e in D i o g e n e s L a e r t . 5.27); 130 less 2 ( H e r o d o t u s 1.130); 120 less 5 ( D i d o d o r u s Sic. 13.14.4); 100 less 4 ( A p o l l o n i u s R h o d . 2 . 9 7 4 - 5 ) ; 100 less 3 ( I s o c r a t e s 12.270). T h e m o s t natural m o t i v a t i o n is, o f c o u r s e , a l w a y s that o n e w h i c h is p r o v i d e d b y t h e c o n t e x t itself, as in H e r o d o t u s 9 . 7 0 , ' t h e G r e e k s w e r e in a p o s i t i o n t o kill in s u c h a w a y that o f the 3 0 0 . 0 0 0 m e n o f t h e ( P e r s i a n ) a r m y - less the 4 0 . 0 0 0 w i t h w h o m A r t a b a z u s h a d fled - n o t e v e n 3 . 0 0 0 o f the r e m a i n i n g s o l d i e r s sur v i v e d . ' T h e a b o v e q u o t e d i n s t a n c e o f ' 1 3 0 less 2 ' ( H e r o d o t u s 1.130), a l t h o u g h its m o t i v a t i o n s e e m s clear, m a y n e v e r t h e l e s s b e l o n g r a t h e r to the c a t e g o r y w i t h w h i c h w e will deal n o w , that o f ' t e n s less t w o / o n e . ' F o r a l t h o u g h the total n u m b e r o f o c c u r r e n c e s is r a t h e r s m a l l , H e r o d o t u s - in c o m p o u n d n u m e r a l s a b o v e 2 0 - a p p e a r s t o h a v e a slight p r e d i l e c t i o n for u s i n g s u b t r a c t i v e s w i t h 'less two/one,' of which he has nine instances,
14
instead o f a d d i t i v e s w i t h ' a n d
e i g h t / n i n e ' w h i c h h e u s e s o n l y five t i m e s . If w e a s s u m e the s u b t r a c t i v e s to b e t h e r u l e h e r e , w e c a n offer r e a s o n a b l e e x p l a n a t i o n s for at least four o u t o f t h e s e five ' a d d i t i v e e x c e p t i o n s . ' T w o o f the o c c u r r e n c e s o f oxxco x a i ei'xoai e x e a ( 1 . 1 0 6 ; 4.1) h a p p e n to refer to t h e s a m e s p a n o f t i m e in history, to w i t the n u m b e r o f y e a r s that t h e S c y t h i a n s w e r e r u l i n g in t h e N e a r East. In 1.106, w h e r e h e m e n t i o n s t h o s e 2 8 y e a r s for t h e first t i m e , h e e x p r e s s e s t h e m b y an a d d i t i v e n u m e r a l b e c a u s e t h e i r m e n t i o n h a p p e n s c o n s c i o u s l y in a n t i c i p a t i o n o f 4.1 - t h e first p a r a g r a p h o f his Skythikos
Logos
- w h e r e t h e 2 8 y e a r s will g e t a v e r y specific illustration. H e m e n t i o n s
t h e s e y e a r s t w i c e t h e r e , first b y u s i n g the s u b t r a c t i v e e x e a &v(hv 8eovxa xoinxovxa, w i t h t h e r e f e r e n c e cog x a i jtooxeoov u.oi eionxai b a c k to 1.106, n e x t b y u s i n g a g a i n the a d d i t i v e oxxco x a i eixoai exea, a n d telling u s w h a t w a s so c u r i o u s a b o u t t h e s e y e a r s , n a m e l y that the S c y t h i a n w i v e s , w h o h a d s t a y e d at h o m e , h a d m e a n w h i l e h a d i n t e r c o u r s e w i t h their s l a v e s a n d g i v e n birth to a n e w g e n e r a t i o n o f m e n ; a n d w h e n the S c y t h i a n s r e t u r n e d from A s i a , t h e y w e r e m e t b y an a r m y c o n s i s t i n g o f these y o u n g men. The alternating use of subtractive and additive constructions h e r e is n o c o i n c i d e n c e ; n o t e a l s o the shift in the p o s i t i o n o f the s u b s t a n t i v e e x e a in t h e s e t h r e e p h r a s e s . A c o m p a r a b l e situation is p r e s e n t in 6.27, w h e r e h e tells that t h e i n h a b i t a n t s o f C h i o s h a d sent a c o m p a n y o f a h u n d r e d y o u n g m e n to D e l phi of w h o m only t w o returned. N e x t he goes on to explain what had happened to the e v e v r | x o v x a x a i oxxco, an a d d i t i v e c o n s t r u c t i o n b e c a u s e the s u b t r a c t i v e is a l r e a d y i m p l i e d in the f o r e g o i n g . T h e s e c a s e s t h e n b e t r a y a r e l u c t a n c e to r e p e a t identical e x p r e s s i o n s , w h i c h is c e r t a i n l y a l s o r e s p o n s i b l e for the v a r y i n g o r d e r o f xeoaeodxovxa x a i XQinxoaia x a i yykia exea v e r s u s uuoioiai xe exeat x a i x ^ i o i a i x a i jiQog xoirixoaioiai xe x a i xeoaeodxovxa in 2 . 1 4 2 , a n d o f e^r|xovxa x a i xoir|x6aioi v e r s u s xoinxoaia x a i e^fjxovxa in 3.90. In short, it s e e m s that in the c o n t e x t o f
14
1.14, 16, 130, 214; 2.157; 4 . 1 , 90; 5.52; 6.57.
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
Languages
259
t h e s e s u b t r a c t i v e s it is stylistic variation that w a s r e s p o n s i b l e for the u s e o f t h e additives. In 7 . 1 8 6 , h o w e v e r , this e x p l a n a t i o n d o e s n o t w o r k . W e r e a d there that the total n u m b e r o f the Persian a r m y r e s u l t i n g from t h e f o r e g o i n g a d d i t i o n a m o u n t e d to jtevxaxooiag xe u,uoid∾ x a i el'xooi x a i oxxcb xai xi^-td∾ xpeig xai exaxovxdSag 6i)o x a i &exd&ag bvo dv&Qcov, or 5 . 2 8 3 . 2 2 0 m e n . A l t h o u g h it w o u l d h a v e b e e n p o s s i b l e to u s e h e r e xai Sucov 6eoi3oag xpidxovxa, this s u b t r a c t i o n is p r o b a b l y a v o i d e d b e c a u s e the result w o u l d n o t b e a r o u n d n u m b e r - as in 9.30 - since there are still t h r e e a d d i t i o n s to b e m a d e h e r e . N o e x p l a n a t i o n at all c a n b e g i v e n for 8.48 aQtOfxog 6e eyevexo 6 Jtag xcov vecov, jidoe^ xcov jtevxnxovxeQcov, xQinxooiai x a i ep&ouT|xovxa xai oxxcb. T h e e x c e p t i o n i n t r o d u c e d b y jtdQe^ did certainly not p r e v e n t the s u b t r a c t i o n h e r e b e c a u s e Jtdge^ a n d s u b t r a c t i o n are found t o g e t h e r e l s e w h e r e ( 1 . 1 3 0 ) ; this p a s s a g e m u s t r e m a i n a n e x c e p t i o n .
15
W i t h ' 1 8 , ' h o w e v e r , the u s a g e s e e m s to b e the o p p o s i t e o f the foregoing: H e r o 16
d o t u s u s e s six t i m e s oxxcoxai&exa, w h i l e &ucov &eovxa el'xoai is found o n l y o n c e ( 1 . 9 4 ) . N e i t h e r t h e a d d i t i v e s n o r t h e s u b t r a c t i v e s s e e m to b e u s e d for a special r e a s o n , e x c e p t p e r h a p s oxxcoxai&exa axa&ioug f| eixooi in 1.126, w h e r e variation m a y h a v e b e e n the r e a s o n for s u p p r e s s i n g a n o t h e r el'xooi (&ucov
beovxaq).
In t h e w o r k o f his y o u n g e r c o n t e m p o r a r y T h u c y d i d e s , t h e u s e o f s u b t r a c t i v e s is still m o r e p r o n o u n c e d . A d d i t i v e s w i t h ' e i g h t ' or ' n i n e ' are not found at all, a n d instead s u b t r a c t i v e s w i t h ' t w o ' or ' o n e ' are u s e d e l e v e n t i m e s , six o f w h i c h are ' 2 0 less t w o / o n e ; '
1 7
' 3 0 0 less 1' (in 4 . 1 0 2 . 3 ) is o f c o u r s e an i n s t a n c e w h i c h
is v e r y clearly m o t i v a t e d . F u r t h e r i n s t a n c e s from p r o s e are: H i p p o c r a t e s , Aff. 9 a n d Loc. horn. 6, both ' 2 0 less 2 ; ' / G 1 3 7 4 . 4 0 5 - 1 7 (=CIA 1 3 2 5 ) ' 2 0 less 1,' ' 3 0 less 1,' a l t h o u g h t h e figures a d d e d h a v e an a d d i t i v e s t r u c t u r e ; X e n o p h o n , Hell.
1.1.5 ' 2 0 less 2 , ' a l t h o u g h o n
t h e b a s i s o f T h u c . 8 . 1 0 8 . 1 - 2 o n e w o u l d e x p e c t here ' 2 2 ' instead, so there m a y b e an error h e r e ; X e n o p h o n h a s oxxcoxai&exa in Anab.
3.4.5 a n d 7 . 4 . 1 6 ; Plato, Leg.
5, 7 3 8 a h a s ' 6 7 0 less 1,' b u t oxxcoxai&exa in Leg. 2 , 6 6 6 a a n d 8, 8 3 3 d (the latter, h o w e v e r , in the c l o s e vicinity o f eixooi; cf. on H e r o d o t u s 1.126 a b o v e ) ; Aristotle, Rhet. 2 . 1 4 . 4 ( 1 3 9 0 M 0 - 1 ) ' 5 0 less \? Hist, anim.
3.20 ( 5 2 2 a 3 0 - l ) ' 2 0 less 1,'
Polit. 5.9.23 ( 1 3 1 5 b 3 6 ) &uoTv 6eovxa eixooi is p r e c e d e d in t h e s a m e p a r a g r a p h b y oxxcoxai&exa (cf. H e r o d o t u s 4 . 1 . a b o v e ) ; P l u t a r c h , Pomp.
19 A ' 6 0 less 1.'
A s c o m p a r e d to the l a n g u a g e o f t h e p o e t s , in w h i c h as far as ' 1 8 ' a n d ' 1 9 ' are c o n c e r n e d a d d i t i v e c o n s t r u c t i o n s o c c u r right from t h e start a n d s u b t r a c t i v e s are a b s e n t , it is a r e m a r k a b l e fact that so m a n y o f the latter are found in p r o s e , a n d
15
Herodotus 3.89: 70 <+ 8> ixveag has been left out because it is a conjecture; it rather had to be <8 +> 70; cf. J. Enoch Powell, A Lexicon to Herodotus, Hildesheim 1960, 100 s.v. eixooi. 1.126; 2.100, 111, 175; 3.50; 8.1; the numeral for 19 does not occur. 5.16.3; 7.31.4; 7.53.3; 8.6.5; 8.17.3; 8.102.1; the remaining are found at 2.2.1; 5.68.3; 8.7.1; 8.25.1. 1 6
17
260
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
Languages
that s o m e o f t h e a d d i t i v e c o m p e t i t o r s c a n b e s h o w n to o c c u r t h e r e in stylistic o p p o s i t i o n to s u b t r a c t i v e s . T h i s r a i s e s , o f c o u r s e , the q u e s t i o n o f w h i c h o f the t w o is to b e c o n s i d e r e d to r e p r e s e n t the m o r e original situation. In v i e w o f t h e r a t h e r l o w f r e q u e n c y o f a d d i t i v e s for ' 1 8 ' a n d ' 1 9 ' etc., o n e w o n d e r s at least w h y s o m a n y g r a m m a r s in their s u r v e y t a b l e s o f the n u m e r a l s s u g g e s t that a d d i t i o n w a s t h e n o r m h e r e a n d s u b t r a c t i o n the e x c e p t i o n . O n l y J a n n a r i s p r e s e n t s b o t h as e q u i v a l e n t p o s s i b i l i ties for o l d e r G r e e k , language.
1 8
b u t a d d s that s u b t r a c t i o n f o r m e d n o part o f t h e s p o k e n
1 9
E s p e c i a l l y w i t h r e g a r d to s u b t r a c t i o n s from l o w e r t e n s s u c h as ' 2 0 ' a n d ' 3 0 , ' o f w h i c h the m o t i v a t i o n is n o l o n g e r a p p a r e n t in c o n t e x t s w h e r e m u c h h i g h e r n u m b e r s p l a y a r o l e , w e m a y a l s o r e c k o n w i t h t h e p o s s i b i l i t y that in p r o s e s o m e o f t h e m w e r e r e p l a c e d in t h e c o u r s e o f t h e l o n g m a n u s c r i p t tradition, first b y figures w h i c h w e r e later r e w o r d e d as a d d i t i v e s , or i m m e d i a t e l y b y t h e latter. T h i s a s s u m p t i o n s e e m s q u i t e p l a u s i b l e in v i e w o f t h e v a r i a t i o n o f n u m e r a l v e r s u s figure w h i c h o c c u r s , for i n s t a n c e , in the m a n u s c r i p t s o f the G r e e k N e w T e s t a m e n t . A n i n t e r m e d i a t e s t a g e is to b e seen in IG I 3 7 4 , in w h i c h the s u b t r a c t i o n s ' 2 0 less 1' a n d ' 3 0 less 1' are a c c o m p a n i e d b y figures w h i c h in G r e e k a l w a y s h a v e a n a d d i t i v e s t r u c t u r e . F o r that r e a s o n w e b e l i e v e that s o m e c a s e s o f 6xxcoxai,8exa a n d evvEaxcu&sxa in earlier p r o s e are n o t o r i g i n a l b u t d u e to the r e p l a c e m e n t p r o c e s s j u s t s k e t c h e d , either i m m e d i a t e l y or indirectly v i a the s t a g e o f figure n o tation. O n l y w h e n a s u b t r a c t i v e w a s m o t i v a t e d , as in 2 Cor. 11.24, c o u l d it resist s u c h a r e w o r d i n g , a n d at best the h i g h e r n u m e r a l w a s w r i t t e n as a figure, in this c a s e in m s s . F a n d G: ji j t a o d uiav. In o t h e r c a s e s , h o w e v e r , r e p l a c e m e n t s are n o t e x c e p t i o n a l in t h e N e w T e s t a m e n t . A t J o h n 5.5, t h e r e a d i n g s o f the n u m e r a l v a r y b e t w e e n xoidxovxa x a i oxxco, xoidxovxa oxxco, a n d hr\', a n d instead o f the frequent 5co8exa, s o m e m s s . h a v e dexaoiio at L u k e 9.17, A c t s 19.7; 24.11 e t c .
2 0
A l t h o u g h this c a n n o t b e p r o v e d b y t e x t u a l v a r i a n t s , it s e e m s n o t farfetched t o a s s u m e that in early p r o s e t h e s e l o w e r s u b t r a c t i v e s w e r e slightly m o r e frequent t h a n it a p p e a r s from t h e p r e s e n t state o f the m s s . , also b e c a u s e t h e u n c i a l ( s t a g e o f t h e ) t r a d i t i o n o f t h e s e w o r k s m u s t h a v e b e e n t w i c e as l o n g as that o f the N e w Testament writings. W i t h r e g a r d to t h e s u b t r a c t i v e s in C l a s s i c a l A t t i c , J a n n a r i s r e m a r k s : ' T h i s c l u m s y c i r c u m l o c u t i o n w a s h a r d l y p r o p e r to p o p u l a r s p e e c h e v e n in A [/. e., C l a s s i c a l A t t i c ] t i m e s . A s a m a t t e r o f c o u r s e it is u n k n o w n to N [/'. e., N e o h e l -
1 8
A.N. Jannaris, An Historical Greek Grammar Chiefly of the Attic Dialect, Hildesheim 1968 (= 1898) §§ 6 4 2 , 6 4 3 , 645 (pp. 172-3). Historical Greek Grammar § 643. Xenophon has the Koine form 5exa jtevxe only in Anab. 7.8.26, elsewhere he uses jievTexa£6exa (4.7.16 etc.). Anab. 7.8.25-6, however, is generally considered to be an appendix added by a later editor. 19
2 0
Subtractive
lenic].'
2 1
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
Languages
261
T h i s c o n c l u s i o n d o e s n o t s e e m to follow w i t h n e c e s s i t y from t h e facts
as d e s c r i b e d a b o v e a n d is t h e r e f o r e n o t v e r y c o n v i n c i n g . It is e q u a l l y w e l l p o s s i ble that t h e u s e o f s u b t r a c t i v e s for ' 1 8 , " 1 9 ' e t c . w a s t h e o r i g i n a l situation w h i c h w a s k e p t u p in t h e e v e r y d a y s p o k e n l a n g u a g e a n d in p r o s e u p t o t h e b e g i n n i n g o f the fourth c e n t u r y B C E , parallel to t h e situation in L a t i n u p t o t h e P r i n c i p a t e . T h e m o t i v a t i o n for t h e s e s u b t r a c t i o n s from 2 0 m a y o r i g i n a l l y h a v e b e e n t h e s a m e a s that illustrated a b o v e for o t h e r n u m e r a l s . In a v e r y s i m p l e society, ' 2 0 ' m a y h a v e b e e n at first a r e l a t i v e l y h i g h n u m b e r ; n o t m a n y p e r s o n s o w n e d that m u c h cattle. B u t ' 2 0 ' lost this c o n n o t a t i o n , o f c o u r s e , as s o o n a s situations a r o s e in w h i c h h i g h e r n u m b e r s w e r e i n v o l v e d . T h e s u b t r a c t i v e s o n c e f o r m e d m a y h a v e p e r s i s t e d for a v e r y l o n g t i m e , a s L a t i n s h o w s . T h e s p o k e n l a n g u a g e as w e l l a s p r o s e w r i t i n g w a s p r o b a b l y m u c h m o r e c o n s e r v a t i v e in this r e s p e c t t h a n t h e p o e t s , w h o c a n b e s h o w n to h a v e b e e n i n n o v a tive in specific a r e a s o f style a n d l a n g u a g e . T h e y i n c r e a s e d , for i n s t a n c e , their m e a n s o f v a r y i n g their u s a g e b y a d m i t t i n g e l e m e n t s from o t h e r d i a l e c t s , s u c h as A e o l i c mouoeg b y t h e s i d e o f I o n i c x e o o a Q s g , a n d t h e y w e r e a l s o r e s p o n s i b l e for t h e birth o f m a n y n e w c o m p o u n d s , like t h o s e b e g i n n i n g w i t h T t o i x d o - , e t c . T h e y m a y h a v e b e e n t h e first to r e p l a c e t h e ' c l u m s y ' s u b t r a c t i v e s , a n d t h e n it is n o c o i n c i d e n c e that, for all w e k n o w , t h e first a d d i t i v e s w i t h ' 8 ' a n d ' 9 ' o c c u r in p o e t r y : xEooEQdxovxa x a i oxxcb in Pindar, Pyth. 9.113 ( 4 7 4 B C E ) , a n d e v v e a x a i 6exa in H o m e r , / / . 2 4 . 4 9 6 . T h e g r a d u a l s u b s t i t u t i o n o f t h e s u b t r a c t i v e s , w h i c h is h a l f w a y in H e r o d o t u s , w o u l d t h e n b e c o m p a r a b l e to w h a t h a p p e n e d to t h e o r d i n a l n u m e r a l s . In t h e A t t i c i n s c r i p t i o n s u p to t h e t i m e o f A u g u s t u s ,
2 2
the compound ordinals con
sisted o f t w o o r d i n a l s w i t h i n t e r v e n i n g x a i : xoixog x a i 6sxaxog, ' t h i r t e e n t h . ' T h i s , t o o , is a r a t h e r ' c l u m s y ' w a y o f f o r m u l a t i n g , w h i c h a g a i n h a d its e x a c t parallel in Latin tertius
decimus
etc. and w a s henceforward substituted by the
t y p e x g e i o x a i d E x a x o g . T h i s latter t y p e , h o w e v e r , w a s a l r e a d y u s e d b y H o m e r , Od. 5 . 2 7 9 oxxcoxai&Exdxr). H e r o d o t u s m a d e u s e o f b o t h t y p e s , at least a c c o r d i n g to t h e m s s . tradition: in 3 . 9 3 - 4 h e h a s in a series t h e o r d i n a l s from xgixog x a i &£xaxog u p to Etvaxog x a i &£xaxog, b u t e l s e w h e r e x £ a a £ Q £ o x a i & £ x a x o g ( 1 . 8 4 ) a n d
Exxai&exaxog ( 2 . 1 4 3 t w i c e ) . T h u c y d i d e s l i k e w i s e h a s t h e d o u b l e o r d i n a l s , n i n e times,
2 3
a n d ejrcaxai&Exaxog o n l y t w i c e , at 4 . 1 0 1 . 1 a n d 7 . 2 8 . 3 , b u t h e r e s e v e r a l
e d i t i o n s n e v e r t h e l e s s r e a d E|3&6UTI x a i &£xdxrj a n d £|3&6u.co x a i 6exdxcp, j u s t as elsewhere, following Kriiger's conjecture; these t w o exceptions m a y indeed be d u e t o later c o p y i s t s . S o if w e a s s u m e that t h e ' c l u m s y ' d o u b l e o r d i n a l t y p e w a s the original c o n s t r u c t i o n w h i c h w a s k e p t u p in t h e s p o k e n l a n g u a g e , in p r o s e 21
Historical Greek Grammar 172. At least according to K. Meisterhans & E. Schwyzer, Grammatik der attischen Inschriften, Berlin 1900 ( 3 ed.), 163. We are, o f course, waiting for Threatte'svolume on morphology to appear. 1.87.6; 2.2.1; 5.56.5; 5.81.2; 5.83.4; 6.7.4; 6.93.4; 7.18.4; 8.58.1. 2 2
r d
2 3
262
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
Languages
w r i t i n g s a n d in i n s c r i p t i o n s , it a g a i n s e e m s likely that t h e t y p e Toeiaxai5exaTos w a s i n t r o d u c e d b y t h e p o e t s ; P i n d a r ' s e(3&6u.q avv x a i 6exdrn (Pyth. 4 . 1 0 ) s h o w s , h o w e v e r , that t h e y c o u l d u s e t h e o l d e r t y p e a s w e l l . H e r o d o t u s ' u s e o f b o t h t y p e s o f o r d i n a l s , like h i s u s e o f b o t h s u b t r a c t i v e s a n d a d d i t i v e s , either reflects a transitory s t a g e in t h e s p o k e n l a n g u a g e , or it is a c o n s c i o u s e n l a r g e m e n t o f his stylistic r e p e r t o i r e .
4.
Coptic
D u r i n g t h e g r e a t e r part o f its literary e x i s t e n c e , t h e E g y p t i a n l a n g u a g e w a s writ ten in v a r i o u s c o n s o n a n t scripts. First in t h e p i c t u r e - l i k e h i e r o g l y p h s , later also in h i e r a t i c , t h e c u r s i v e form o f the h i e r o g l y p h s , still later also in d e m o t i c , w h i c h in its turn w a s a m o r e c u r s i v e form o f hieratic. T h e s e three w r i t i n g s y s t e m s w e r e u s e d side b y side a s late as t h e R o m a n p e r i o d . O n l y w h e n , b y t h e side o f t h e s e , a fourth s y s t e m , t h e G r e e k a l p h a b e t , also b e g a n t o b e u s e d for w r i t i n g E g y p t i a n , w h i c h p r o b a b l y w a s t h e c a s e a l r e a d y in t h e s e c o n d c e n t u r y C E , this l a n g u a g e s h o w e d for t h e first t i m e its v o w e l s . It is therefore o n l y from C o p t i c , a s E g y p t i a n in G r e e k letters is called, that o n e c a n g e t a clear v i s i o n o f t h e s t r u c t u r e o f t h e numeral system. T h e b a s i c set o f n u m e r a l s r a n from ' o n e ' t o ' t e n ' a n d i n c l u d e d also t h e t e n s for ' t w e n t y , ' ' t h i r t y , ' a n d ' f o r t y ' a s t h e y b e a r n o l i k e n e s s at all to ' t w o , ' ' t h r e e , ' a n d ' f o u r ; ' t h e t e n s for 'fifty' to ' n i n e t y , ' it is t r u e , b e a r s o m e l i k e n e s s to t h e n u m e r a l s from ' f i v e ' u p to ' n i n e ' b u t n o t systematically, a n d it is best, therefore, t o c o n s i d e r t h e m a s b a s i c n u m e r a l s , t o o , j u s t a s t h e w o r d s for ' 1 0 0 , ' ' 1 . 0 0 0 , ' a n d ' 1 0 . 0 0 0 . ' A l t e r n a t i v e l y , ' 8 0 ' w a s s o m e t i m e s e x p r e s s e d o r c i r c u m s c r i b e d as ' 4 ( x ) 2 0 ' (cf. q u a t r e - v i n g t s ) o r ' 5 0 ( + ) 3 0 ' (cf. s o i x a n t e - d i x ) a n d ' 1 0 0 ' a s ' 5 ( x ) 2 0 . '
2 4
T h e n u m b e r s b e t w e e n t h e tens w e r e f o r m e d in t w o different w a y s . First, t h e r e w e r e c o m p o u n d s c o n s i s t i n g o f a ten ( 1 0 - 9 0 ) a n d a b a s i c n u m e r a l ( 1 - 9 ) ; in t h e s e f o r m a t i o n s t h e t e n s 10, 2 0 , 3 0 , 8 0 , 9 0 a n d t h e b a s i c n u m e r a l s 1-8 h a d special v a r i a n t f o r m s . F o r instance, ' t e n ' w a s met, a n d ' s e v e n ' w a s sashf, b u t ' s e v e n t e e n ' w a s mnt-sashfe.
S e c o n d , it w a s also p o s s i b l e to m a k e w o r d g r o u p s c o n s i s t i n g o f
a t e n + ' a n d ' + a unit, such as maabe mabpsite.
mn psite,
' 3 9 , ' b y t h e side o f t h e c o m p o u n d
In t h e s e w o r d g r o u p s t h e c o n s t i t u e n t n u m e r a l s h a d n o special v a r i a n t
f o r m s . A third, a l t e r n a t i v e m e t h o d w a s to j u x t a p o s e a t e n a n d a c o m p o u n d . In this w a y w e r e f o r m e d ' 5 0 ( + ) 2 2 ' for ' 7 2 , ' a n d ' 5 0 ( + ) 2 9 ' for ' 7 9 ' (cf. ' 5 0 ( + ) 3 0 ' for ' 8 0 ' a b o v e ) .
2 5
O f t h e O l d - E g y p t i a n n u m e r a l s o n l y t h e b a s i c u n i t s a s w e l l a s t h o s e for ' 1 0 0 , ' ' 1 . 0 0 0 , ' ' 1 0 . 0 0 0 , ' a n d ' 1 0 0 . 0 0 0 ' w e r e s o m e t i m e s spelled in full a n d a r e therefore k n o w n t o u s , that is to s a y o f c o u r s e , o n l y their c o n s o n a n t a l s k e l e t o n . A l l o t h e r See W.C. Till, Koptische Till, Kopt. Gramm. 84.
Grammatik,
Leipzig 1955, 84 (§ 167).
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient Languages
263
n u m b e r s w e r e indicated b y figures, ' 9 3 ' for instance b y r e p e a t i n g 9 t i m e s t h e sign for ' 1 0 ' f o l l o w e d b y t h r e e vertical s t r o k e s for ' 3 . ' T h e historical g r a m m a r of C o p t i c m a k e s it clear, h o w e v e r , that t h e O l d - E g y p t i a n w o r d s to b e p o s t u l a t e d for ' 5 0 ' u p to ' 9 0 ' w e r e d e r i v a t i o n s o f s o m e k i n d from t h e b a s i c n u m e r a l s for ' 5 ' u p to ' 9 , ' p o s s i b l y p l u r a l s from the formal p o i n t o f view, as in the S e m i t i c languages.
26
T h e n u m e r a l s y s t e m of the C o p t i c l a n g u a g e did not c o n t a i n a n y subtractive f o r m a t i o n s ; o f O l d - E g y p t i a n n o t h i n g is k n o w n in this r e s p e c t . Incidentally, h o w e v e r , there o c c u r in C o p t i c s u b t r a c t i v e e x p r e s s i o n s , o n e o f t h e m b e i n g , as m i g h t b e e x p e c t e d , 2 Cor. 11.24, w h i c h is p r e s e n t in b o t h m a j o r C o p t i c v e r s i o n s o f the N e w T e s t a m e n t (in t h e S a h i d i c a n d B o h a r i c dialects). W e refer again to § 5.2 for t h e t r e a t m e n t of this p a s s a g e . In the G r e e k p a p y r i found in E g y p t , p r i c e s , w e i g h t s , a n d o t h e r m e a s u r e s are t h
often e x p r e s s e d as a w h o l e w i t h a s h o r t a g e , e s p e c i a l l y p r i c e s in t h e 5 - 8
t h
cen
turies. Lists a n d a c c o u n t s d r a w n u p in C o p t i c s h o w this p h e n o m e n o n t o o . T w o i n s t a n c e s are found o n o s t r a c a u n e a r t h e d at W a d i S a r g a a n d d a t i n g from a b o u t t h
the s a m e p e r i o d , the 6 - 7
t h
centuries.
27
T h e first is a s h i p m e n t a c c o u n t o f w i n e a n d r u n s as f o l l o w s : ' T h e list o f t h e w i n e s . W e s h i p p e d from T u h o ten hands h u n d r e d a n d s e v e n t y less o n e . '
2 8
a n d six simpula,
which m a k e seven
A p p a r e n t l y the ' h a n d s ' a n d ' s i m p u l a ' w e r e
larger w i n e m e a s u r e s , a d d i n g u p to a l m o s t the r o u n d n u m b e r o f 7 7 0 o f a m u c h s m a l l e r m e a s u r e , w h i c h n u m b e r w a s then preferred to t h e less s u r v e y a b l e 7 6 9 , or else ' 7 7 0 less 1' m i g h t indicate t h e p r i c e , a n d in that c a s e ' o n e ' p r o b a b l y r a t h e r r e p r e s e n t s a s m a l l e r unit o f c u r r e n c y s u b t r a c t e d from an a m o u n t e x p r e s s e d in larger u n i t s , c o m p a r a b l e to w h a t h a p p e n s in o u r s e c o n d o s t r a c o n . T h i s is l i k e w i s e an a c c o u n t o f a s h i p m e n t , this t i m e o f fodder a n d b a r l e y : ' L o , n i n e t e e n artabae
o f fodder less o n e oipe, a n d n i n e t e e n artabae th
oipe h a v e I sent s o u t h w a r d . W r i t t e n 1 0 o f M e s o r e , 6
t h
o f w h e a t less t w o
Indiction.'
29
O f the s a m e
k i n d are t w o m o r e i n s t a n c e s : 'Fifteen y e a r s less three m o n t h s ' (RNC ' s e v e n holokottina
(i. e. solidi) less o n e trimesion
40) and
( i . e . 1/3 s o l i d u s ) ' (P. J k o w ) .
3 0
T h e s e four i n s t a n c e s all b e t r a y t h e s a m e p r e f e r e n c e for m e n t i o n i n g r a t h e r a h i g h e r n u m b e r less s o m e t h i n g than a l o w e r n u m b e r p l u s s o m e t h i n g .
2 6
r d
A. Gardiner, Egyptian Grammar, Oxford 1957 ( 3 ed.), § 260; E. Edel, Altdgyptische Grammatik, Rome 1 9 5 5 - 1 9 6 4 , § 395; C E . Sander-Hansen, Agyptische Grammatik, Wiesbaden 1 9 6 3 , § 219. F. Preisigke, Worterbuch der griechischen Papyrusurkunden ...II, Berlin 1927, 2 3 2 b 233a, s.v. naga. W.E. Crum & H.I. Bell, Wadi Sarga. Coptic and Greek Texts, Copenhagen 1922, 118 (no. 133). Crum & Bell, Wadi Sarga 150 (no. 191). Both instances taken over from W.E. Crum, A Coptic Dictionary, Oxford 1939, 593. 2 7
2 8
2 9
3 0
264 5. Hebrew
Subtractive
and
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
Languages
Aramaic
T h e n u m e r a l s y s t e m s o f the W e s t - S e m i t i c l a n g u a g e s ( H e b r e w a n d the v a r i o u s A r a m a i c d i a l e c t s , i n c l u d i n g S y r i a c ) w e r e all o f the s a m e structure. T h e b a s i c set o f n u m e r a l s ran u p to ' t e n ; ' the w o r d s for ' e l e v e n ' to ' n i n e t e e n ' w e r e a d d i t i v e c o m p o u n d s o f the basic n u m e r a l s a n d ' t e n ; ' ' t w e n t y ' w a s formally t h e m a s c u l i n e p l u r a l o f ' t e n , ' w h i c h is s u p p o s e d to h a v e r e p l a c e d an earlier d u a l o f ' t e n . '
3 1
The
further t e n s w e r e formally m a s c u l i n e p l u r a l s o f the b a s i c n u m e r a l s from ' t h r e e ' to ' n i n e ; ' t h e n u m e r a l s in b e t w e e n w e r e a d d i t i v e w o r d g r o u p s c o n s i s t i n g o f a ten + ' a n d ' + a b a s i c , in w h i c h the ' h i g h e r ' u s u a l l y p r e c e d e d t h e ' l o w e r ' e l e m e n t . A p p a r e n t l y t h e s y s t e m did n o t c o n t a i n s u b t r a c t i v e f o r m a t i o n s . N e v e r t h e l e s s , in p o s t - b i b l i c a l H e b r e w a n d J e w i s h A r a m a i c literature o n e d o e s find a n u m b e r o f instances of subtractive numerals, mostly with the formula 'less one.' These i n s t a n c e s c a n b e d i v i d e d into t w o c a t e g o r i e s : (1) C a s e s in w h i c h t h e r e is a d e v i a tion, in the s e n s e o f a d i m i n u t i o n , from a r o u n d n u m b e r g i v e n in t h e B i b l e or from an o t h e r w i s e n o r m a t i v e c o u n t . (2) C a s e s b a s e d u p o n the p r i n c i p l e o f t h e ' f e n c e a r o u n d the L a w ' (seyag
la-Torah),
d e v e l o p e d in p o s t - b i b l i c a l J u d a i s m .
5 . 1 . C l e a r i n s t a n c e s o f d e v i a t i o n s from a biblical n u m b e r : In E x o d . 16.35, N u m . 1 3 . 3 3 ^ 4 , D e u t . 8.2, 2 9 . 5 , a n d J o s h u a 5.6, it is stated that after t h e e x o d u s the p e o p l e o f Israel w a n d e r e d t h r o u g h the desert for forty y e a r s . In t h e B a b y l o nian T a l m u d ( = B a v l i ) , Zevahim
118b, the r a b b i s say: ' T h e d u r a t i o n of the Tent
o f M e e t i n g (/. e. the T a b e r n a c l e ) in the w i l d e r n e s s w a s forty y e a r s less o n e . H o w d o w e k n o w t h a t ? B e c a u s e a m a s t e r said: In the first y e a r (sc. o f the e x o d u s ) M o s e s m a d e the T a b e r n a c l e ; ( o n l y ) in the s e c o n d y e a r t h e T a b e r n a c l e w a s set u p ' (cf. the s i m i l a r p a s s a g e ibid. 1 1 9 a ) .
32
A c o m p a r a b l e c a s e is B a v l i ,
Arakhin
13a: ' W h e n c e d o w e k n o w that it t o o k s e v e n y e a r s to c o n q u e r t h e l a n d ? C a l e b said: " F o r t y y e a r s old w a s I w h e n M o s e s , t h e s e r v a n t o f the L o r d , sent m e from K a d e s h - B a r n e a to s p y o u t the land ( J o s h u a 14.7) . . . a n d n o w lo, I a m this d a y four-score a n d five y e a r s old ( J o s h u a 1 4 . 1 0 ) . " A n d a m a s t e r said: " I n t h e first y e a r M o s e s built the T a b e r n a c l e , in the s e c o n d the T a b e r n a c l e w a s p u t u p , t h e n h e sent o u t the spies. W h e n C a l e b p a s s e d o v e r the J o r d a n , h o w old therefore w a s h e ? H e w a s t w o y e a r s less than e i g h t y y e a r s o l d .
33
W h e n he distributed
the i n h e r i t a n c e s , h e said: " N o w lo, I a m this d a y four-score a n d five y e a r s o l d " ( J o s h u a 14.10). W h e n c e it follows that it took s e v e n y e a r s for t h e m to c o n q u e r the l a n d . '
3 1
H. Bauer & P. Leander, Historische Grammatik der hebraischen Sprache des Alten Testa ments, Hildesheim 1965, vol. I, 626. Cf.Josephus,/4«f. 4.176xd)v68T£ooeQdxovxa8Ta)VKaQdTQidxovTa^eQagoaj^KEJiXTiQa)uevu)v xxL Allowing forty years for the sojourn of Israel in the wilderness. It should be noted here that when the same passage recurs in Zev. 118b the printed editions have '78' but codex Munich reads 'eighty less two.' 3 2
3 3
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
Languages
265
A n i n s t a n c e o f d e v i a t i o n from a r o u n d n u m b e r w i t h i n S c r i p t u r e itself is m e n tioned by the rabbis in T a l m u d B a v l i , Bava Bathra
123a: ' W h y d o y o u find the
n u m b e r s e v e n t y in their total (sc. o f J a c o b ' s s o n s a n d g r a n d s o n s in G e n . 4 6 . 2 7 ) a n d o n l y s e v e n t y less o n e in their detailed e n u m e r a t i o n (in G e n . 4 6 . 8 ff.)?' T h i s p r o b l e m w a s s o l v e d b y later r a b b i s as follows. Pirqe de-Rabbi
Eliezer
39 reads:
' W h e n they (sc. J a c o b a n d his d e s c e n d a n t s ) c a m e to t h e b o r d e r o f E g y p t , all the m a l e s w e r e e n r o l l e d (in g e n e a l o g i c a l t a b l e s , to the n u m b e r of) sixty-six; J o s e p h a n d his t w o s o n s in E g y p t ( m a d e a total of) s i x t y - n i n e .
34
B u t it is written: " W i t h
s e v e n t y p e r s o n s y o u r father w e n t d o w n into E g y p t " ( D e u t . 10.22). W h a t did the H o l y O n e , b l e s s e d b e H e , d o ? H e e n t e r e d into the n u m b e r w i t h t h e m a n d t h e total b e c a m e seventy, to fulfil t h a t w h i c h is said: ' I will g o d o w n w i t h t h e e into E g y p t ' ( G e n . 4 6 . 4 ) . W h e n Israel c a m e u p from E g y p t , all the m i g h t y m e n w e r e e n r o l l e d ( a m o u n t i n g to) six h u n d r e d t h o u s a n d less o n e . W h a t did t h e H o l y O n e , b l e s s e d b e H e , d o ? H e entered into t h e n u m b e r w i t h t h e m a n d their total a m o u n t e d to six h u n d r e d t h o u s a n d , to fulfil that w h i c h is said: T will g o d o w n w i t h t h e e into E g y p t a n d I will also surely b r i n g t h e e u p a g a i n ' ( G e n . 4 6 . 4 ) . '
3 5
I n s t a n c e s w i t h d e v i a t i o n s from r o u n d n u m b e r s not from S c r i p t u r e b u t from tradition i n c l u d e T a l m u d B a v l i . Yevamoth
6 4 a : ' T h e d i v i n e p r e s e n c e d o e s not
rest o n less t h a n t w o t h o u s a n d a n d t w o m y r i a d s o f Israelites. S h o u l d the n u m b e r o f Israelites h a p p e n to b e t w o t h o u s a n d a n d t w o m y r i a d s less o n e , a n d a n y p a r t i c u l a r p e r s o n h a s not e n g a g e d in the p r o p a g a t i o n o f t h e r a c e , d o e s h e not t h e r e b y c a u s e the d i v i n e p r e s e n c e to d e p a r t from I s r a e l ? ' (cf. a v e r y similar p a s s a g e in Bava Qamma
8 3 a ) . A l s o T a l m u d B a v l i , Sotah 3 6 b : '(It w a s stated a b o v e
that o n the s t o n e s o f the e p h o d ) there w e r e fifty letters, b u t t h e r e w e r e fifty less o n e ! R a b b i Isaac said: O n e letter w a s a d d e d to the n a m e o f J o s e p h , as it is said: " H e a p p o i n t e d it in J o s e p h for a t e s t i m o n y , w h e n h e w e n t o u t o v e r the land o f E g y p t " ( P s a l m 8 1 . 6 , w h e r e J o s e p h ' s n a m e is spelt w i t h five letters instead o f the u s u a l four: yhwsp
instead ofywsp).
T a l m u d B a v l i , Nedarim
3 8 a : 'Fifty g a t e s o f
u n d e r s t a n d i n g w e r e c r e a t e d in the w o r l d , all b u t o n e w e r e g i v e n to M o s e s . ' Very c u r i o u s is T a l m u d , Sanhedrin
9 5 b : ' T h e length o f his ( S a n h e r i b ' s ) a r m y w a s
four h u n d r e d p a r a s a n g s , t h e h o r s e s s t a n d i n g n e c k to n e c k f o r m e d a line forty p a r a s a n g s long, a n d the g r a n d total o f his a r m y w a s t w o m i l l i o n six h u n d r e d t h o u s a n d less o n e . A b a y e inquired: L e s s o n e ribbo (ten t h o u s a n d ) , o n e t h o u s a n d , o n e h u n d r e d , or o n e ? T h e q u e s t i o n s t a n d s o v e r . ' N o t in e v e r y c a s e it is clear h o w a tradition o f t h e s e r o u n d n u m b e r s ( 2 2 . 0 0 0 ; 5 0 ; 2 . 6 0 0 . 0 0 0 ) h a s c o m e into b e i n g , b u t for o u r p u r p o s e s that is not i m p o r t a n t .
3 4
36
So the extant mss.; the early editions, however, read 'seventy less one' probably on the basis o f mss. now lost. G. Friedlander's translation of Pirke de-Rabbi Eliezer, London 1916, 304, slightly re vised. For other instances see b.Niddah 30a (sixty less one) and Eruvin 83a (seventy less one). 3 5
3 6
266
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
Languages
It s h o u l d b e a d d e d h e r e that in s o m e isolated i n s t a n c e s in the A r a m a i c dialect o f t h e J e r u s a l e m T a l m u d (Yerushalmi) s u b t r a c t i v e m e a n i n g . Eruvin me'at:
the G r e e k l o a n w o r d j t a o d is u s e d in its
2 0 b shov 'in min shov 'in chamishah
7 0 x 7 0 = 5.000 - 100. Demai
little bit. Cf. Ketuvoth
30d.
2 4 c chada'para'tsivchad:
'alafin
para'
one minus a
3 7
In g e n e r a l t h e p r i n c i p l e is clear: a g i v e n r o u n d n u m b e r , m o s t l y either b i b l i cal o r traditional, is the p o i n t o f d e p a r t u r e , a n d d e v i a t i o n s from it to b e l o w are i n d i c a t e d by a s u b t r a c t i v e w a y o f c o u n t i n g . 5.2. T h e s a m e h o l d s for the c a t e g o r y to b e d i s c u s s e d n o w , b u t n e v e r t h e l e s s it is dealt w i t h s e p a r a t e l y b e c a u s e t h e r e l e v a n t m a t e r i a l is c o n c e r n e d w i t h the p r i n c i p l e o f ' a fence a r o u n d the T o r a h . ' T h i s p r i n c i p l e ( f o r m u l a t e d in M i s h n a h , Avot 1.1) c a n b e d e s c r i b e d as follows: In o r d e r to a v o i d that a c o m m a n d m e n t in the T o r a h b e t r a n s g r e s s e d , rules are d e v e l o p e d that c r e a t e a m a r g i n o f safety (a ' f e n c e ' ) a r o u n d the c o m m a n d m e n t s .
3 8
T h i s c a n b e s t b e illustrated b y p r e s e n t i n g
t h e m a t e r i a l u n d e r d i s c u s s i o n . In the Torah, in D e u t e r o n o m y 2 5 . 3 , it is said: ' T h e y m a y g i v e h i m forty strokes, but not m o r e . O t h e r w i s e , if they g o further a n d e x c e e d this n u m b e r , y o u r f e l l o w - c o u n t r y m a n will h a v e b e e n p u b l i c l y d e g r a d e d . ' T h e explicit a n d e m p h a t i c injunction ' n o t m o r e , ' a n d the r e a s o n s g i v e n for it, m a d e p e o p l e b e a w a r e that it w o u l d constitute a s e r i o u s t r a n s g r e s s i o n if t h e per s o n c o n c e r n e d w o u l d r e c e i v e m o r e t h a n forty s t r o k e s . H e n c e , as a ' f e n c e ' it w a s o r d a i n e d in p o s t - b i b l i c a l J u d a i s m that, for safety's s a k e , the p u n i s h m e n t w o u l d c o n s i s t o f 'forty less o n e ' s t r o k e s , so that, e v e n if t h e e x e c u t o r w o u l d m a k e a m i s t a k e in c o u n t i n g a n d inflict a stroke t o o m u c h , the m a n or w o m a n w o u l d n o t g e t m o r e t h a n forty s t r o k e s or stripes. H e n c e t h e M i s h n a h , Makkot
3.10, states:
' H o w m a n y stripes d o t h e y inflict on a m a n ? F o r t y less o n e ('arba'im 'achat),
F o r the s a m e r e a s o n the a p o s t l e Paul w r i t e s in 2 Cor. 11.24: imo Jtevxdxig T e a a e o d x o v T a H a o d uiav eXaftov,
3 7
chaser
for it is written: " b y n u m b e r forty,"(that is) a n u m b e r n e a r to f o r t y . ' 40
39
'lovbaiwv
w h i c h s h o w s that t h e p r i n c i p l e is
See G. Dalman, Grammatik des judisch-paldstinischen Aramdisch, Leipzig 1905 (repr. Darmstadt 1960), 134.. G.F. Moore, Judaism in the First Centuries of the Christian Era, 3 vols., Cambridge M A 1 9 2 7 , 1 259: 'Avoth I 1, "Make a fence for the Law," that is, protect it by surrounding it with cautionary rules to halt a man like a danger signal before he gets within breaking distance o f the divine statute itself.' This 'by number forty' is arrived at by the rabbis by linking up the final word of Deut. 25.2 b mispar, 'by number,' with the first word of Deut. 25.3 'arba 'im, 'forty.' Thus they tried to give a biblical basis to their deviation from the biblical number. See S. Krauss, Sanhedrin - Makkot (Die Mischna IV 4 - 5 ) , Giessen 1933, 3 6 9 - 7 0 . Cf. the Talmudic discussion of this mishnah in Makkot 22b: 'If it were written "forty in number," I should have said it means forty in number, but as the wording is "by number forty," it means a number coming up to the forty' (Soncino translation). On the question o f how Paul could have incurred this maximum penalty see A.E. Harvey, 'Forty Strokes Save One,' in A.E. Harvey (ed.), Alternative Approaches to New Testament Studies, London 1985, 7 9 - 9 6 . 3 8
3 9
e
4 0
Languages
267
o l d e r than t h e M i s h n a h , a s c a n a l s o b e inferred from J o s e p h u s , Ant.
4.238 6
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
Se jtaQtx x a u x a jtoir|aag JiX/nyac; u.iq \zmovoac,
in Ancient
xeoocxQaxovxa xco 6r|u.oaico oxuxei
Xa(3cbv xxA.. Cf. ibid. 4 . 2 4 8 Kh^yac, xeooaQdxovxa uiq Xemovoac, ( a n d n o t e that in Ant.
10.77 a n d Bell.
Xau,pdvcov xxL
6.270 Josephus uses xQiaxovxasvvEa!).
T a r g u m P s e u d o - J o n a t h a n (an A r a m a i c p a r a p h r a s t i c translation o f the H e b r e w B i b l e ) r e n d e r s D e u t . 2 5 . 3 as f o l l o w s : ' F o r t y (stripes) m a y b e laid u p o n h i m , but w i t h o n e less shall h e b e flogged, (the full n u m b e r ) shall n o t b e c o m p l e t e d , lest h e flog h i m m o r e than t h e s e t h i r t y - n i n e ( l a s h e s ) , excessively, a n d h e b e in d a n g e r a n d y o u r b r o t h e r b e d e s p i s e d w h i l e y o u see h i m . '
4 1
T h e r e is a n o t h e r i n s t a n c e in t h e M i s h n a h that is s o m e t i m e s referred to in this c o n t e x t , w r o n g l y in o u r o p i n i o n .
42
In Shabbath
7.2 the c o n t e x t is a d i s c u s s i o n
o f the t y p e s o f w o r k forbidden on S a b b a t h . T h e text r u n s as follows: ' T h e m a i n c l a s s e s o f w o r k are forty less o n e ( ' a r b a 'im chaser is found in the M i d r a s h , Numbers
Rabba
'achat).'
T h e s a m e tradition
1 8 . 2 1 : ' T h e principal c a t e g o r i e s o f
w o r k (forbidden o n S a b b a t h ) are forty less o n e . ' A t first sight o n e w o u l d e x p e c t that t h e r e is a fixed n u m b e r 4 0 in either S c r i p t u r e or tradition relating to this issue. B u t t h e r e is n o s u c h n u m b e r , a n d if it w e r e t h e r e , t h e M i s h n a h w o u l d m a k e n o s e n s e , for the p r i n c i p l e o f ' a fence a r o u n d the T o r a h ' w o u l d d e m a n d in that c a s e more, not less than 4 0 k i n d s o f f o r b i d d e n w o r k . S o this p r i n c i p l e c a n n o t b e at w o r k h e r e , a n d it is v e r y h a r d to say w h a t is the r e a s o n for this specific w a y of counting here. S i d n e y H o e n i g ' s s u g g e s t i o n , ' T h e 4 0 m e n t i o n e d biblically in the c a s e o f malkot
( p u n i s h m e n t b y lashes) w a s utilized for a p p l i c a t i o n in a parallel m a n n e r
for the sabbatical p r o h i b i t i o n s , '
43
is n o t a n d c a n n o t b e p r o v e d . E v e n if that w o u l d
a p p l y to t h e u s e o f t h e n u m b e r 4 0 , it definitely d o e s not a p p l y to the f o r m u l a ' 4 0 less 1,' since the ' f e n c e - p r i n c i p l e ' is o p e r a t i v e in o n l y o n e o f t h e t w o c a s e s , not in b o t h . O n e m i g h t , h o w e v e r , s u g g e s t that the u s e o f ' 4 0 less 1' instead o f 'thirtyn i n e ' in the c a s e o f forbidden k i n d s o f w o r k m a y h a v e b e e n a r a t h e r m e c h a n i c a l transfer o f t e r m i n o l o g y w h i c h existed a l r e a d y l o n g e r (for the 3 9 s t r o k e s ) to a dif4 1
See also H.L. Strack & P. Billerbeck, Kommentar zum Neuen Testament aus Talmud und Midrasch III, Munchen 1926, 5 2 7 - 8 . J. le Moyne, Les Sadduceens, Paris 1972, 239. G.F. Moore, Judaism II-III, Cambridge M A 1 9 2 7 - 3 0 , II 2 7 - 8 , III 171. Characteristically, the later Syriac version (Peshitta) of 2 Cor. 11.24 uses about the same words as the Mishnah ('arba 'in chasir chada'). It is uncertain whether the terminology in Acta Pilati (Evang. Nicodemi) 4.3 (Xiyovaiv oi 'Iou6cooi xco FIiAdxcp- 6 v6|K>g fpcov jtEQiexei' dvOocojrog eig dvBocojrov edv du«Qxr|crn, cx^iog EOXLV )i.a(i(3dv£iv xeaaaodxovxa Jiaod [iiav, 6 6e eig Oeov p^aaqprjucov X.i6oPo?dq Xi9oPoX.elaGai cmxov) depends upon 2 Cor. 11.24 or shows independent knowledge of Jewish usage. E. g., W.H. Roscher, Die Zahl 40 im Glauben, Brauch und Schrifttum der Semiten (Abh. der phil.-hist. Klasse der kon. sachs. Akad. der Wiss. 27:4), Leipzig 1909, 25. This study by Roscher is a supplement to his Die Tessarakontaden und Tessarakontadenlehren der Griechen und anderer Volker (Berichte iiber die Verhandl. der kon. sachs. Ges. der Wiss., phil.-hist. Klasse 61), Leipzig 1909. S.B. Hoenig, 'The Designated Number of Kinds of Labor Prohibited on the Sabbath,' Jewish Quarterly Review 68 (1978) 205. 4 2
4 3
268
Subtractive
Versus Additive
Composite
Numerals
in Ancient
Languages
ferent situation in w h i c h t h e s a m e n u m b e r (39) p l a y e d a role, albeit w i t h o u t the s a m e b a c k g r o u n d . It is, therefore, interesting to see that in the m i d r a s h i c w o r k Mekhilta
de-Rabbi
Yishmael,
S h a b b a t a 2 (III p . 2 0 6 ed. L a u t e r b a c h ) , it is stated
in c o n n e c t i o n w i t h E x o d . 35.1 ( ' A n d h e said to t h e m : T h e s e are the w o r d s e t c . ' ) : ' R a b b i s a y s : T h i s i n c l u d e s t h e l a w s a b o u t the t h i r t y - n i n e (sheloshim
we-tesha)
c a t e g o r i e s o f w o r k p r o h i b i t e d on the s a b b a t h w h i c h M o s e s g a v e t h e m orally.' T h e fact that in this p a s s a g e t h e usual a d d i t i v e n u m b e r is u s e d m a k e s clear that 'forty less o n e ' h a d n o t b e c o m e a fixed e x p r e s s i o n in relation to the t y p e s o f w o r k forbidden o n the S a b b a t h , u n l i k e the forty less o n e s t r o k e s . A l s o clear is t h e fact that t h e forty less o n e t y p e s o f w o r k are later t h a n t h e forty less o n e s t r o k e s ( P a u l p r e c e d e s t h e M i s h n a h b y at least o n e a n d a h a l f c e n t u r y ) . O n e m i g h t s u g g e s t that the n u m b e r of types of work prohibited on the Sabbath - performance of which m a d e o n e liable to b e a t i n g
4 4
- w a s w o r k e d o u t to m a t c h the n u m b e r o f b l o w s
in the b e a t i n g a n d therefore the s a m e form o f n u m e r a l w a s u s e d . B u t this is n o m o r e than an e d u c a t e d g u e s s .
4 5
It s e e m s to b e i m p o s s i b l e to state w i t h certainty
w h a t w a s the b a c k g r o u n d in this c a s e .
6.
Conclusion
It m a y h a v e b e c o m e clear that the p r i n c i p l e s o p e r a t i v e b e h i n d t h e u s e o f s u b tractive n u m e r a l s are definitely not the s a m e in all l a n g u a g e s d i s c u s s e d in this article. F o r Latin it w a s a l r e a d y k n o w n that s u b t r a c t i v e s w e r e v e r y old e l e m e n t s that r e m a i n e d in u s e for a l o n g t i m e (till t h e first c e n t u r i e s o f o u r era) b u t t h e n g r a d u a l l y d i s a p p e a r e d a n d h e n c e are n o l o n g e r part o f the R o m a n c e l a n g u a g e s . A s to G r e e k , s u b t r a c t i v e s h a v e either b e e n totally n e g l e c t e d b y m o d e r n s c h o l a r s or c o n s i d e r e d to b e a rare a n d c l u m s y irregularity in the o t h e r w i s e a d d i t i v e s y s t e m . N o w , h o w e v e r , it t u r n s out to h a v e b e e n a u s a g e o f m u c h w i d e r c u r r e n c y t h a n h a s a l w a y s b e e n a s s u m e d . M o s t p r o b a b l y it w a s , as in Latin, a n e l e m e n t o f the early s p o k e n l a n g u a g e that h a s p e r s i s t e d in p r o s e w r i t i n g s till t h e e n d o f t h e C l a s s i c a l p e r i o d . C o n t r a r y to the classical l a n g u a g e s , in S e m i t o - H a m i t i c languages (Egyptian, Coptic, Hebrew, Aramaic) subtractives have never been part o f t h e n u m e r a l s y s t e m . H e n c e there are c o n s i d e r a b l y fewer i n s t a n c e s , but, as far as H e b r e w a n d A r a m a i c are c o n c e r n e d , in a l m o s t all t h e s e c a s e s it c o u l d b e d e m o n s t r a t e d that the u s e o f s u b t r a c t i v e s w a s c a u s e d b y t h e e x i s t e n c e o f a n o r m a t i v e r o u n d n u m b e r from w h i c h there is a d e v i a t i o n to below. To this cat egory, a n d o n l y to this, b e l o n g s t h e o n l y p a s s a g e in t h e B i b l e w h e r e a s u b t r a c t i v e n u m e r a l is u s e d , 2 Cor. 11.24. 4 4
Flogging is the punishment for all kinds of violation, by overt act, of negative biblical injunctions (Mishnah, Makkot 3 . 1 - 9 ) ; see H.H. Colin in Encyclopaedia Judaica 6 (1972) 1349; Z.W. Falk, Introduction to the Jewish Law of the Second Commonwealth II, Leiden 1978, 160. We o w e this suggestion to Prof. Morton Smith (letter o f Sept. 25, 1985). 4 5
The Great Magical Papyrus of Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible T h e so-called ' G r e a t M a g i c a l P a p y r u s o f P a r i s ' or P ( a p y r u s ) G ( r a e c a ) M ( a g i c a ) IV is a G r e e k m a n u s c r i p t in t h e B i b l i o t h e q u e N a t i o n a l e , w h e r e it is c a t a l o g u e d as Supplement
grec 5 7 4 (or A n a s t a s i 1073). It is a large m a n u s c r i p t , c o n t a i n i n g 3 6 1
l e a v e s from a c o d e x , a n d its text runs to 3 2 7 4 lines in total. It w a s a c q u i r e d in E g y p t in the early 19th c e n t u r y b y t h e f a m o u s collector o f a n t i q u i t i e s , G i o v a n n i A n a s t a s i , a n d b o u g h t b y t h e B i b l i o t h e q u e N a t i o n a l e at a n a u c t i o n in Paris in 2
1 8 5 7 . T h i s a n d the o t h e r A n a s t a s i p a p y r i p r o b a b l y c o m e from T h e b e s w h e r e they w e r e d i s c o v e r e d in a g r a v e s o m e t i m e a r o u n d 1825, as A n a s t a s i w a s told, a l t h o u g h w e c a n n o t b e c o m p l e t e l y certain a b o u t this. B e that as it m a y , it w a s certainly w r i t t e n in E g y p t in t h e R o m a n period. T h e p a p y r u s c o n t a i n s a h a n d b o o k for a p r a c t i c i n g m a g i c i a n that w a s ' c o m p i l e d from m a n y s o u r c e s . '
3
As
H a n s - D i e t e r B e t z h a s s u g g e s t e d , the c o m p i l e r p r o b a b l y travelled a r o u n d E g y p t to visit t e m p l e libraries w h i c h often s e r v e d as d e p o s i t o r i e s o f m a g i c o - r e l i g i o u s 4
l i t e r a t u r e , a n d to e x c h a n g e m a t e r i a l s w i t h o t h e r m a g i c i a n s ; h e a s s e m b l e d d o c u m e n t s o v e r a p e r i o d o f t i m e a n d s u c c e s s i v e l y or finally c o p i e d t h e m all into a handbook.
5
W i t h its m o r e t h a n 5 0 d o c u m e n t s P G M I V is t h e single m o s t
c o m p r e h e n s i v e h a n d b o o k for m a g i c a l p r a c t i c e s k n o w n from t h e a n c i e n t w o r l d .
6
P a p y r o l o g i s t s a g r e e that t h e m a n u s c r i p t w a s w r i t t e n in t h e early fourth century, b u t t h e d o c u m e n t s c o n t a i n e d in it m a y o f c o u r s e b e older, s o m e o f t h e m e v e n m u c h older. It is clear that e a c h a n d e v e r y d o c u m e n t or tradition found in this c o m p i l a t i o n h a s a p r e h i s t o r y o f its o w n , a n d it is n o w g e n e r a l l y a g r e e d that 1
In Karl Preisendanz's edition the Greek text covers 57 pages; see K. Preisendanz (hrsg.), Papyri Graecae magicae. Die griechischen Zauberpapyri, vol. 1, Stuttgart 1973 (reprint o f the Leipzig 1928 edition, revised by A. Henrichs), 6 6 - 1 8 0 . The present author examined the manuscript in the Bibliotheque Nationale on April 1 2 - 1 3 , 2000. Almost 30 years earlier, Anastasi had sold a larger lot of these papyri to the Dutch ar chaeologist C.J.C. Reuvens, the founder and first director o f the Oudheidkundig Museum in Leiden. H.D. Betz, The 'Mithras Liturgy,' Tubingen 2 0 0 3 , 7. See G. Fowden, The Egyptian Hermes. A Historical Approach to the Late Pagan Mind, Cambridge 1986, 5 7 - 5 8 . Betz, The 'Mithras Liturgy' 7 - 8 . For the wide variety of practices dealt with in PGM IV see W. Brashear, 'The Greek Magi cal Papyri: An Introduction and Survey; Annotated Bibliography (1928-1994),M/W?JFII 18,5, Berlin & N e w York 1995, 3 4 9 7 - 3 4 9 8 . 2
3
4
5
6
270
The Great Magical Papyrus
of Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible
P G M I V c o n t a i n s m a t e r i a l that h a s a c h r o n o l o g i c a l r a n g e from t h e first t h r o u g h the third c e n t u r i e s C E . T h e scribe is certainly n o t t h e a u t h o r b u t h e is n o t j u s t a m e c h a n i c a l c o m p i l e r either. H e m a k e s it clear that h e h a s s o m e t i m e s e x a m i n e d m o r e than o n e c o p y o f his d o c u m e n t s a n d h e n c e n o t e s textual v a r i a n t s , a n d h e 7
also inserts m a r g i n a l c o m m e n t s a n d c r o s s - r e f e r e n c e s , b u t h e m a k e s n o effort to edit o r r e w r i t e t h e p r o c e d u r e s collected, o n t h e contrary, h e w a s c o n c e r n e d a b o u t a c c u r a c y . P G M I V is t h e best p o s s i b l e illustration o f t h e k i n d o f b o o k s that, a c c o r d i n g t o A c t s 19:19, w e r e p u b l i c l y b u r n e d in E p h e s u s after t h e a p o s t l e Paul h a d u n m a s k e d t h e J e w i s h m a g i c i a n s in that city. After t h e editio princeps
8
b y Carl W e s s e l y in 1 8 8 8 , t h e w h o l e d o c u m e n t w a s
r e p r i n t e d w i t h several n e c e s s a r y c o r r e c t i o n s a n d e m e n d a t i o n s b y P r e i s e n d a n z 9
in 1 9 2 8 a s nr. I V in his PGM,
a c c o m p a n i e d b y a G e r m a n translation. T h e first
E n g l i s h translation, b y a t e a m o f A m e r i c a n s c h o l a r s , w a s p u b l i s h e d in 1 9 8 6 in The Greek
Magical
Papyri
in Translation,
1987 a S p a n i s h translation a p p e a r e d .
11
edited by Hans-Dieter B e t z .
1 0
In
A n a n o n y m o u s F r e n c h translation w a s
1 2
p u b l i s h e d in 1 9 9 5 . A n d I m y s e l f p u b l i s h e d p a r t s o f t h e p a p y r u s text in a D u t c h t r a n s l a t i o n in 1 9 9 7 .
1 3
T h e s e c o n d a r y literature o n this p a p y r u s is e n o r m o u s . In a
b o o k - l e n g t h article o f m o r e t h a n 3 0 0 p a g e s p u b l i s h e d in 1 9 9 5 , t h e late W i l l i a m B r a s h e a r lists h u n d r e d s o f p u b l i c a t i o n s ( b e t w e e n 1928 a n d 1994) d e a l i n g either w i t h P G M I V a s a w h o l e or w i t h d o c u m e n t s c o n t a i n e d in it o r w i t h i n d i v i d u a l passages.
14
A c e n t u r y a g o t h e study o f t h e G r e e k m a g i c a l p a p y r i still h a d t o b e
justified a n d d e f e n d e d a g a i n s t t h e s c o r n o f w o r t h i e s s u c h a s W i l a m o w i t z - M o e l lendorff,
15
b u t in t h e m e a n t i m e t h e c l i m a t e h a s c h a n g e d drastically: t h e s t u d y
o f a n c i e n t m a g i c is n o w n o t o n l y a r e s p e c t e d s c h o l a r l y enterprise, it h a s e v e n b e c o m e p a r t a n d p a r c e l o f the study o f a n c i e n t r e l i g i o n s . M o s t o f the c o m p i l a t i o n s or a n t h o l o g i e s o f G r a e c o - R o m a n m a g i c a l formular ies w e r e p r o d u c e d in t h e first t h r e e c e n t u r i e s C . E . , a l t h o u g h t h e p a p y r i w h i c h p r e s e r v e d t h e m m o s t l y d a t e from t h e third t o sixth c e n t u r i e s . T h e i r d i s p a r a t e 7
Betz, ibid. 8 for examples. See, e.g., lines 5 0 0 and 2427. Many more examples in A . D . Nock, 'Greek Magical Papyri,' in his Essays on Religion and the Ancient World, vol. I, Oxford 1972, 1 7 8 - 1 7 9 . C. Wessely, 'Griechische Zauberpapyri von Paris und London,' Denkschrift der Kaiserlichen Akademie der Wissenschaften in Wien, Phil.-hist. Klasse 36 (1888) 4 4 - 1 2 6 . It is a rather sloppy edition with many errors. See note 1. Chicago 1 9 8 6 , 3 6 - 1 0 1 . " J.L.C. Martinez & M.D.S. Romero, Testos de magia en papiros griegos, Madrid 1987 (non vidi). 8
9
1 0
12
13
Manuel de magie egyptienne: Le papyrus magique de Paris, Paris 1995. P.W. van der Horst, Bronnen voor de studie van de wereld van het vroege Christendom, 2
vols., Kampen 1997, II 100-112. W. Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri: A n Introduction and Survey; Annotated Bibli ography ( 1 9 2 8 - 1 9 9 4 ) , ' ANRWII 18,5, Berlin & N e w York 1995, 3 3 8 0 - 3 6 8 4 , esp. 3 5 1 6 - 3 5 2 7 on PGM IV. See Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3410. 1 4
15
The Great Magical Papyrus
of Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible
271
c o n t e n t s b e t r a y their c h e c k e r e d d e v e l o p m e n t e v e r y few lines, as B r a s h e a r h a s n o t i c e d : " R e c i p e s a n d instructions for m a k i n g g e m s , c h a r m s , a m u l e t s , figurines, a n d p o t i o n s are i n t e r m i n g l e d w i t h d i v i n a t i o n b y n u m b e r s , d i c e or H o m e r i c v e r s e s . A m a t o r y m a g i c follows hard o n e x e c r a t i o n , e x o r c i s m or m a g i c o - m e d i cal r e c i p e . H e c a t e , K o r e , A p o l l o , A p h r o d i t e , a n d A t h e n a are i n v o k e d a l o n g w i t h E r e s c h i g a l , A d o n a i , J e h o v a h a n d J e s u s . S u d d e n l y there a p p e a r s a s n a t c h o f c l a s sical G r e e e k poetry, b u t it is interlarded w i t h voces magicae.
A C o p t i c section
s u c c e e d s a G r e e k o n e . It is s o m e t i m e s difficult to find a n y unifying p r i n c i p l e whatsoever."
16
A l t h o u g h this is m e a n t as a d e s c r i p t i o n o f G r e e k m a g i c a l f o r m u
laries in g e n e r a l , it a p p l i e s perfectly to P G M IV. T h a t t h e r e c i p e s a n d p r e s c r i p t i o n s o f P G M I V w e r e i n d e e d p u t into p r a c t i c e is s h o w n b y several r e c e n t finds. F o r i n s t a n c e , a find in E g y p t o f a j a r c o n t a i n i n g a lead foil inscribed w i t h a c h a r m a n d a clay figurine of a k n e e l i n g w o m a n w i t h h e r h a n d s b o u n d b e h i n d h e r b a c k a n d h e r b o d y p i e r c e d by thirteen nails c o r r e s p o n d s r a t h e r closely to t h e p r o c e d u r e s p r e s c r i b e d in P G M I V 296—434, in spite o f a n u m b e r o f d e v i a t i o n s in b o t h the praxis
a n d the logos. A l s o o t h e r love c h a r m s
on lead lamellae
17
follow p a r t s o f this t e x t .
T h e fact that o f s o m e formularies w e
h a v e parallel v e r s i o n s in t w o or t h r e e different l a n g u a g e s ( e . g . , G r e e k , C o p t i c and A r a m a i c )
1 8
is also an i n d i c a t i o n that t h e y w e r e m e a n t for practical p u r p o s e s
a n d that a diversified clientele w a s s e r v e d w i t h t h e m .
1 9
A n interesting feature o f P G M IV (and of other m a g i c a l p a p y r i ) is the insertion of metrical h y m n i c p a s s a g e s into the formularies. S o w e find a h y m n to the M o o n ( 2 2 4 1 - 2 3 4 7 ) , to t h e S u n ( 4 3 6 - 4 6 1 a n d 1 9 5 7 - 1 9 8 1 ) , to A p h r o d i t e ( 2 9 0 2 - 2 9 3 9 ) a n d several m o r e (in total 15 h y m n s ) .
2 0
T h e s o m e t i m e s p o o r linguistic a n d
m e t r i c a l qualities o f t h e s e h y m n s are i n d i c a t i v e o f a n o n - c l a s s i c a l p r o v e n a n c e a n d n o w a d a y s m o s t s c h o l a r s a s s u m e that t h e y o r i g i n a t e d in t h e early imperial p e r i o d , i.e., in t h e first t w o c e n t u r i e s C.E., m a y b e s o m e o f t h e m s o m e w h a t earlier. A l t h o u g h m u c h in t h e m a g i c a l p a p y r i h a s an E g y p t i a n or o t h e r w i s e O r i ental b a c k g r o u n d , t h e s e h y m n s are certainly o f G r e e k p r o v e n a n c e . A s B r a s h e a r s a y s , " T h e y h e a r k e n b a c k to t h e d a y s w h e n the O l y m p i a n a n d c h t h o n i a n deities r e i g n e d s u p r e m e , w h e n l a o , B a a l , E r e s c h i g a l , N e b u t o s u a l e t h a n d their likes w e r e h u n d r e d s o f m i l e s a w a y a n d still u n h e a r d of."
21
In earlier s c h o l a r s h i p it w a s
often a s s u m e d that the m a g i c a l p a p y r i w e r e , apart from s o m e G r e e k influence, 1 6
Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3414. Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3 4 1 6 - 1 7 with notes, and cf. 3446. Also Nock, 'Greek Magical Papyri' 1 7 9 - 8 0 . Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3 4 0 5 , 3419. Cf. also the almost identical text on the lead tablet SB IV 7452 and the formulae prescribed in PGM IV 341 ff. On the magical papyri as "the actual working copies of practical magicians" see Nock, 'Greek Magical Papyri' 177. For a complete survey see A. Henrichs (following E. Heitsch, Die griechischen Dichterfragmente der romischen Kaiserzeit, Gottingen 1963) in PGM, vol. 2, 266. Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3 4 2 1 . 1 7
1 8
1 9
2 0
2 1
272
The Great Magical Papyrus
of Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible
" a h o d g e - p o d g e o f oriental, G n o s t i c , M i t h r a i c a n d B a b y l o n i a n e l e m e n t s . "
22
But
in o u r d a y s it is o n l y G r e e k , E g y p t i a n , a n d J e w i s h (with p e r h a p s s o m e C h r i s t i a n ) e l e m e n t s that are s e e n as t h e m a i n c o m p o n e n t s .
2 3
A s is w e l l - k n o w n , t h e i m p o r t a n c e o f J e w i s h e l e m e n t s in the G r e e k m a g i c a l p a p y r i s h o u l d n o t b e u n d e r r a t e d : in a p p r o x i m a t e l y o n e third o f t h e rites a n d c h a r m s J e w i s h e l e m e n t s are d e t e c t a b l e .
24
N o t o n l y are Iao a n d A d o n a i a n d
S a b a o t h i n v o k e d m o r e frequently t h a n m o s t o t h e r deities e x c e p t H e l i o s , b u t also M o s e s , S o l o m o n a n d t h e P a t r i a r c h s A b r a h a m , I s a a c , a n d J a c o b figure in several p a s s a g e s in the p a p y r i , a n d " a n g e l s , a r c h a n g e l s , c h e r u b i m a n d s e r a p h i m abound."
2 5
All t h e s e biblical n a m e s s e e m to h a v e b e c o m e e l e m e n t s o f a " t r a n s -
cultural m a g i c a l l i n g o , " as M o r t o n S m i t h h a s d u b b e d i t . s t r a n g e s o u n d i n g voces magicae Aramaic background.
28
or nomina
barbara,
21
26
A l s o m a n y o f the
m a y h a v e a H e b r e w or
E v e n if that is not the c a s e , s o m e t i m e s alliterative h o c u s -
p o c u s o f several h u n d r e d w o r d s long is s i m p l y called H e b r e w b y t h e m a g i c i a n s themselves.
29
T h i s h a s to d o w i t h the great r e p u t a t i o n o f J e w i s h m a g i c i a n s a n d
m a g i c in late a n t i q u i t y .
30
J e w i s h a n d biblical e l e m e n t s , n a m e s , m o t i v e s a n d
f o r m u l a s w e r e b o r r o w e d freely b e c a u s e t h e y w e r e b e l i e v e d to b e e x c e p t i o n a l l y p o t e n t a n d effective. It is, therefore, n o t s t r a n g e that, if o n e m o v e s from p a g a n m a g i c a l texts to J e w i s h o n e s , o n e often d o e s not h a v e the feeling o f m o v i n g to a different w o r l d . If s y n c r e t i s m is to b e found a n y w h e r e , it is in t h e w o r l d o f ancient m a g i c .
2 2
3 1
Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3422. On the paucity of Latin and Roman elements see Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3425-3426. Sec M. Smith, 'The Jewish Elements in the Magical Papyri,' in his Studies in the Cult of Yahweh, vol. 2, Leiden 1996, 2 4 6 - 2 4 7 . Note that this implies that in two thirds o f the material no Jewish influence at all is to be detected. See on the importance of Jewish elements also Th. Hopfner, Griechisch-dgyptischer Offenbarungszauber, 2 vols., Amsterdam 1 9 7 4 - 1 9 8 3 (cor rected reprint of the edition of 1 9 2 1 - 1 9 2 4 ) , II 3 1 - 3 3 . Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3427. On the patriarchs also M. Rist, 'The God of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob: A Liturgical and Magical Formula,' JBL 57 (1938) 2 8 9 - 3 0 3 . Smith, 'The Jewish Elements' 245. For an extensive list see Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3 5 7 6 - 3 6 0 3 . For instances see C. Bonner, Studies in Magical Amulets, Chiefly Graeco-Egyptian, Ann Arbor 1950, 187. In PGM V 115-6 even the Egyptian name Osoronnophris (= Osiris Wennefer) is said to be 'the true name which has been transmitted to the prophets of Israel'! For Hebrew in Coptic magical papyri see M. Kropp, Ausgewdhlte Koptische Zaubertexte, vol. 3, Brussels 1930, 218. See for literature Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3426 note 222. M. Simon, Verus Israel. A Study of the Realtions Between Christians and Jews in the Roman Empire (AD 135-425), Oxford 1986, 3 3 9 - 3 6 8 . J. Gager, Moses in Greco-Roman Paganism, Nashville 1972, 134-161. Sometimes it is impossible to decide whether a magical papyrus is of Christian or Jewish provenance; e.g., P.IFAO iii 50 in R.W. Daniel & F. Maltomini (eds), Supplementum Magicum I, Opladen 1990, 4 9 - 5 2 (no. 19). 2 3
2 4
2 5
2 6
2 7
2 8
2 9
3 0
3 1
The Great Magical Papyrus
273
of Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible
In this f r a m e w o r k it is w o r t h w i l e to t a k e a c l o s e r look at a f a m o u s p a s s a g e in P G M IV, the so-called ' H e b r e w f o r m u l a ' {logos hebraikos,
3007-3086).
3 2
It is
a c h a r m o f 80 lines in w h i c h a spell to b e u s e d in c a s e o f d e m o n i c p o s s e s s i o n is p r e s e n t e d . A l t h o u g h the r e c i p e is attributed to the l e g e n d a r y E g y p t i a n m a g i c i a n P i b e c h i s , it t e e m s w i t h J e w i s h e l e m e n t s . After h a v i n g listed the i n g r e d i e n t s o f a m a g i c p o t i o n , t h e text states it s h o u l d b e p r e p a r e d w h i l e s a y i n g a f o r m u l a that b e g i n s w i t h t h e w o r d Joel, a c o m p o s i t e o f the H e b r e w J e h o - ( = Y H W H ) a n d -El ( G o d ) , that w e find e l s e w h e r e in t h e form Jael a n d J a o e l .
33
In the s a m e f o r m u l a
also t h e v a r i a n t forms J a b a , J o e a n d J a e o o c c u r ( e l s e w h e r e w e find J a b e , J a o u e , Jao, Jaou, Ja e t c . ) .
34
T h i s i n d i c a t e s h o w i m p o r t a n t the i n v o c a t i o n o f t h e n a m e
o f the G o d o f Israel w a s c o n s i d e r e d , nomina
barbara
35
e v e n t h o u g h it is h e r e part o f a string o f
that c o n c l u d e s w i t h the n a m e o f the E g y p t i a n c r e a t o r g o d P t a h .
It s h o u l d also b e n o t e d that in the n e x t line w e find t h e w e l l - k n o w n string o f the s e v e n v o w e l s o f the G r e e k a l p h a b e t (a, e, e, i, o, u, 6 ) ,
3 6
of which Eusebius,
a c o n t e m p o r a r y o f t h e scribe o f the p a p y r u s , s a y s that its p o w e r is t h o u g h t to b e e q u i v a l e n t to that o f t h e T e t r a g r a m m a t o n Y H W H (PE
11.6.36); a n d h e is
right, as is testified b y several p a s s a g e s in o t h e r m a g i c a l p a p y r i a n d in the N a g H a m m a d i c o d i c e s as w e l l . N N " ( 3 0 1 3 : exelthe
3 7
T h e f o r m u l a e n d s w i t h the i m p e r a t i v e " c o m e o u t o f
apo tou deinos),
u s i n g t h e s a m e t e r m i n o l o g y as in the story
o f J e s u s ' e x o r c i s m in L u k e 4 : 3 5 (exelthe o u t t h e nomina
barbara
ap' autou).
f o r m u l a "terrifying e v e r y d e m o n " ( 3 0 1 7 : pantos
3 2
A n d after h a v i n g spelled
to b e written on t h e a m u l e t , t h e a u t h o r a d d s that it is a daimonos
phrikton),
w h i c h is
For bibliography see Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3 5 2 6 - 3 5 2 7 . I single out for mention A. Deissmann, Licht vom Osten, Tubingen 1923, 2 1 4 - 2 2 8 ; W.L. Knox, 'Jewish Liturgical Exorcism,' HTR 31 (1938) 1 9 1 - 2 0 3 ; S. Eitrem, Some Notes on the Demonology in the New Testament, Oslo 1966, 1 5 - 3 0 ; for parallels in Jewish mystical texts see J.-H. N i g g e meyer, Beschworungsformel aus dem "Buch der Geheimnisse", Hildesheim 1975,passim; P.S. Alexander, 'Jewish Elements in Gnosticism and Magic c. CE 70 - c. CE 2 7 0 , ' in W. Horbury a. o. (eds.), The Cambridge History of Judaism, vol. 3, Cambridge 1999, 1 0 7 3 - 1 0 7 4 . Further the publications mentioned in notes 1 0 - 1 3 are relevant. See, e.g., Vita Adae et Evae (Greek version) 29:4; 33:5; Apoc. Abraham 10:3; 13:1 etc. with the comments in R. Rubinkiewicz, L 'Apocalypse d'Abraham en vieux slave, Lublin 1987, 127-129. See on these and other transcriptions of the Tetragrammaton A. Deissmann, Bibelstudien, Hildesheim - N e w York 1977 (repr. of the Marburg 1895 ed.), 1-20 ('Griechische Transskriptionen des Tetragrammaton'). Note that sometimes Iao is equated with Aion; see H. Lewy, Chaldaean Oracles and Theurgy, new ed. by M. Tardieu, Paris 1978, 4 0 9 n. 32. Quite popular is the palindrome iaoai. See D. Aune, 'Iao,' RAC 17 (1996) 1-12, esp. 5 - 6 . See H. Leclercq, 'Amulettes,' Dictionnaire d'archeologie chretienne et de liturgie I 2 (1907) 1 7 9 4 - 9 5 ( 1 7 8 4 - 1 8 6 0 ) ; F. Dornseiff, Das Alphabet in Mystik und Magie, Leipzig 1925, 3 5 - 6 0 ('Die Vokalreihen im Zauber'). See for the evidence P. Cox Miller, 'In Praise of Nonsense,' in A.H. Armstrong (ed.), Clas sical Mediterranean Spirituality: Egyptian, Greek, Roman, London 1 9 8 6 , 4 8 1 - 5 0 5 , esp. 4 8 2 - 4 . Also R. Kotansky, Greek Magical Amulets, Opladen 1993, 4 1 - 5 3 , no. 9. 3 3
3 4
3 5
3 6
3 7
274
The Great Magical
Papyrus of Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible
o f c o u r s e s t r o n g l y r e m i n i s c e n t o f J a m e s 2 : 1 9 , " T h e d e m o n s t o o b e l i e v e this a n d they are terrified
1
(phrissousin).' ''
T h e conjuration itself b e g i n s w i t h the striking o p e n i n g line, ' I c o n j u r e y o u b y t h e G o d o f t h e H e b r e w s , J e s u s ! ' ( 3 0 1 9 - 2 0 ) . T h e fact that the G o d o f t h e Hebrews
3 8
is i n v o k e d is n o t in itself s o m e t h i n g extraordinary, as w e h a v e a l r e a d y
seen. A deity w h o liberates his p e o p l e from b o n d a g e , w h o splits t h e sea for that v e r y r e a s o n a n d d e s t r o y s their e n e m i e s by that v e r y m e a s u r e , is w i t h o u t d o u b t a g o d w h o is a b l e to c h a s e out a d e m o n from a p o s s e s s e d p e r s o n . B u t w h y is that g o d called J e s u s , o f all n a m e s ? T h i s s o u n d s as u n - J e w i s h as it c o u l d b e . A n d , o f c o u r s e , several s c h o l a r s , a m o n g w h i c h e v e n P r e i s e n d a n z , h a v e s u g g e s t e d that the w o r d ' J e s u s ' is a n i n t e r p o l a t i o n .
39
B u t that is a futile o b s e r v a t i o n , for e v e n
it that w e r e true, it still s h o u l d b e said that the scribe o f t h e p a p y r u s - if h e w a s the interpolator, o t h e r w i s e it w a s his p r e d e c e s s o r - found it suitable to g i v e the g o d o f t h e H e b r e w s the n a m e o f J e s u s . T h i s is r e m a r k a b l y r e m i n i s c e n t o f the p a s s a g e in t h e B o o k o f A c t s ( 1 9 : 1 3 ) w h e r e it is J e w s in E p h e s u s , the s o n s o f t h e h i g h - p r i e s t S c e v a , w h o conjure evil spirits in t h e n a m e o f J e s u s ; a n d t h e y are not C h r i s t i a n s ! In that story, h o w e v e r , t h e evil spirit s a y s : T d o n ' t k n o w J e s u s ' , a n d h e d o e s n o t l e a v e his v i c t i m ( A c t s 19:16). B u t o n e c o u l d also refer to the freelance J e w i s h e x o r c i s t s w h o d r i v e out d e m o n s in t h e n a m e o f J e s u s in M a r k 9:38 a n d Lk. 9:49, w h o w e r e a p p a r e n t l y m o r e s u c c e s s f u l .
40
B e that as it m a y ,
I r e n a e u s informs us that b y the e n d o f the s e c o n d c e n t u r y C E J e w s w e r e still u s i n g t h e n a m e o f J e s u s in e x o r c i s m s (Adv. Haer. 2.6.2). T h e text g o e s on b y s a y i n g a b o u t this G o d that h e " a p p e a r s in fire" ( 3 0 2 3 ) , w h i c h s e e m s to b e a reference to the role o f fire in t h e o p h a n i e s as t h e y are d e p i c t e d in O l d T e s t a m e n t texts s u c h as E x . 3:2, 1 3 : 2 1 , 19:18 etc. T h i s deity is told to s e n d d o w n an i m p l a c a b l e a n g e l " t o b i n d [litt. ' c a u s e to e n t e r into its p r o p e r p l a c e ' ] the d e m o n flying a r o u n d this c r e a t u r e that G o d f o r m e d in his h o l y p a r a d i s e " ( 3 0 2 6 - 2 7 ) . It is interesting to s e e that the d e m o n that w a s first o r d e r e d to g o out o f the p o s s e s s e d is n o w said to b e flying a r o u n d h i m . A c c o r d i n g to L u k e 1 1 : 2 4 - 2 6 , J e s u s said that w h e n a n u n c l e a n spirit (a d e m o n ) h a s g o n e o u t o f a m a n , h e p a s s e s t h r o u g h w a t e r l e s s a r e a s ( n o d o u b t flying a r o u n d t h e r e ) a n d finding
n o rest so that finally it s a y s , "I will r e t u r n to m y h o u s e from w h i c h I
c a m e , " a n d t h e n t h i n g s g e t e v e n w o r s e . S u c h a d e m o n h a s to b e b o u n d in o r d e r to p r e v e n t it from c a u s i n g g r e a t e r d a m a g e to t h e h u m a n c r e a t u r e . 3 8
41
This creature
For this biblical expression see Exod. 3:18; 7:16; 9:1. For a discussion o f this issue see J.M. Hull, Hellenistic Magic and the Synoptic Tradition, London 1974, 7 1 . Hull compares a passage earlier in the same papyrus where w e find, "Hail, God of Abraham, hail, God o f Isaac, hail, God of Jacob, Jesus Chrestus [sic] etc." (PGM IV 1228-29). See D.E. Aune, 'Magic in Early Christianity,' ANRW II 23,2 (1980) 1 5 4 5 - 1 5 4 9 (The Magical Use of the Name of Jesus). Ph. S. Alexander in E. Schiirer, The History of the Jewish People in the Age of Jesus Christ, III/1, Edinburgh 1986, 357 compares this passage to Tobith 8 : 2 - 3 : when Tobias had 3 9
4 0
4 1
The Great Magical
Papyrus
of Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible
275
" G o d f o r m e d in his h o l y p a r a d i s e , " a n u n m i s t a k a b l e r e f e r e n c e to G e n e s i s 2 o f w h i c h w e find a n o t h e r o n e later o n in the p h r a s e " w h o f o r m e d from d u s t the race o f h u m a n s " ( 3 0 4 7 ) . T h e function o f this e l e m e n t is that o f a
historiola,
a reference to a p i e c e o f ( u s u a l l y foreign) m y t h o l o g y that s e r v e s to u n d e r l i n e t h e i n v i n c i b l e p o w e r o f the deity i n v o k e d a n d h e n c e to frighten t h e d e m o n .
4 2
W e find s u c h a reference a g a i n s o m e lines further w h e n t h e spell g o e s on: "I c o n j u r e y o u b y t h e o n e w h o a p p e a r e d to I s r a e l
43
in a s h i n i n g pillar a n d a c l o u d
b y day, w h o s a v e d his p e o p l e from t h e P h a r a o h a n d b r o u g h t u p o n P h a r a o h the ten p l a g u e s b e c a u s e o f his d i s o b e d i e n c e " ( 3 0 3 3 - 3 8 ) . In this historiola
the m o s t
p o w e r f u l s c e n e s from I s r a e l ' s h i s t o r y are e v o k e d a n d the idea b e h i n d it is that s u c h a r c h e t y p a l e v e n t s " r e t a i n their s u p e r n a t u r a l force a n d c a n b e r e a c t i v a t e d at a n y g i v e n t i m e b y the s i m p l e act o f r e c o u n t i n g t h e m . "
4 4
It is interesting to notice
that in the m i d d l e o f the third c e n t u r y C E the great C h r i s t i a n s c h o l a r O r i g e n r e m a r k s that " ' t h e G o d o f I s r a e l , ' a n d ' t h e G o d o f the H e b r e w s , ' a n d ' t h e G o d w h o d r o w n e d the k i n g o f E g y p t a n d t h e E g y p t i a n s in the R e d S e a ' are f o r m u l a e w h i c h are often u s e d [by n o n - J e w s ] to o v e r c o m e d e m o n s or certain evil p o w e r s " (Contra
Celsum
4.34).
45
T h e spell c o n t i n u e s b y o r d e r i n g t h e d e m o n to reveal its identity a n d to tell w h a t e v e r sort it is (lalesai
hopoion
kai an eis),
w h e t h e r it is " h e a v e n l y or
aerial, terrestrial or s u b t e r r a n e a n , or n e t h e r w o r l d l y or E b o u s a e u s or C h e r s a e u s or P h a r i s a e u s " ( 3 0 4 3 - 4 4 ) . T h i s firstly r e m i n d s u s o f t h e story o f t h e G e r a s e n e d e m o n i a c in w h i c h J e s u s ' q u e s t i o n , " W h a t is y o u r n a m e ? " ( M k . 5:9; Lk. 8:30), is a n s w e r e d w i t h the n a m e Legion.
K n o w l e d g e o f the n a t u r e or n a m e o f t h e d e m o n
is a p r e r e q u i s i t e for its e x p u l s i o n . B u t p e r h a p s a b e t t e r interpretation is to t a k e lalesai
( 3 0 3 8 ) a n d laleson
( 3 0 4 2 , 3 0 4 4 ) as u s e d absolutely, w i t h o u t c o m b i n i n g
it w i t h the f o l l o w i n g hopoion
ktl. T h e s e n s e t h e n is that t h e d e m o n h a s m a d e its
victim d u m b and w e should translate as, "speak, of whatever nature you m a y be."
4 6
T h i s w o u l d constitute a striking parallel to the story o f t h e pneuma
alalon,
the m u t e spirit w h o r o b s p e r s o n s o f their s p e e c h , in M a r k 9:17. T h e d e m o n m u s t b e m a d e to speak, a n d its v i c t i m will follow s u i t .
47
S e c o n d l y , the ' h e a v e n l y or
a e r i a l ' d e m o n s u g g e s t s c o m p a r i s o n w i t h w h a t P s e u d o - P a u l w r i t e s o n the evil spirits w h i c h h e calls ' t h e p r i n c e o f the p o w e r o f the a i r ' a n d ' p o w e r s in the
smoked the demon out of his bridal chamber, the angel Raphael pursued it to Upper Egypt and bound it to stop it from returning. Cf. Jub. 10:5. On historiolae see Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3 4 3 8 - 4 0 ; F. Graf, 'Historiola,' NP 5 (1998) 642. Aune, 'Magic in Early Christianity' 1547, coined the term 'magical Heilsgeschichte' in this connection. The papyrus has 'Osrael' but the context leaves no doubt about the correct reading. Brashear, 'The Greek Magical Papyri' 3439. Cf. Knox, 'Jewish Liturgical Exorcism' 195. Aune, 'Magic in Early Christianity' 1547. [See my "The God Who Drowned the King of Egypt," the next essay in this volume.] Eitrem, Some Notes 1 8 - 1 9 . See Hull, Hellenistic Magic 6 8 - 6 9 . 4 2
4 3
4 4
4 5
4 6
4 7
276
The Great Magical Papyrus
of Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible
h e a v e n l y p l a c e s ' ( E p h . 2:2; 3:10). T h e m o s t interesting feature h e r e , h o w e v e r , is t h e t h r e e n a m e s or c a t e g o r i e s at t h e end. T h e r e is n o d o u b t that t h e s e are bor r o w e d from G e n . 1 5 : 2 0 - 2 1 , w h e r e the ten n a t i o n s living in C a n a a n in A b r a h a m ' s d a y s are m e n t i o n e d , a m o n g w h i c h are the J e b u s i t e s , the G i r g a s h i t e s , a n d the P e r i z z i t e s . In t h e t h e L X X v e r s i o n t h e s e h a v e b e c o m e Iebousaioi, a n d Pherezaioi. Chersaios
T h e s e h a v e here b e e n garbled into Ebusaios
( p o s s i b l y an a m a l g a m o f Gergesaios
the list), a n d Pharisaios,
Gergesaioi
(well r e c o g n i z a b l e ) ,
a n d Chettaios,
Hittite, also in
' P h a r i s e e ' t h u s b e c o m i n g the n a m e o f a d e m o n c l a s s !
T h e latter d e s i g n a t i o n o f c o u r s e also s u g g e s t s familiarity w i t h N e w T e s t a m e n t stories a b o u t i n i m i c a l P h a r i s e e s .
48
A n o t h e r interesting feature is that the m a g i c i a n tries to force the d e m o n to r e v e a l its identity b e conjuring it " b y t h e seal w h i c h S o l o m o n p l a c e d o n the t o n g u e o f J e r e m i a h " ( 3 0 3 9 ^ 4 0 ) . T h e Seal of Solomon
w a s the n a m e o f a f a m o u s
a m u l e t in antiquity, often in the form o f a signet r i n g .
4 9
Of course Solomon's
r e p u t a t i o n as m a g i c i a n w a s w i d e s p r e a d in antiquity, as the stories a b o u t h i m in J o s e p h u s (Ant. 8 . 4 4 - 4 9 ) a n d the Testament
of Solomon
demonstrate,
50
b u t the
story o f the seal or r i n g b e i n g p l a c e d o n J e r e m i a h ' s t o n g u e is an o t h e r w i s e u n known haggadic motive. Deissmann
5 1
s u r m i s e s that it d e r i v e s from Jer. 1:6-10
L X X w h e r e t h e p r o p h e t p r o t e s t s to the L o r d that h e is t o o y o u n g for his task a n d that h e c a n n o t s p e a k , w h e r e u p o n the L o r d stretches out his h a n d , t o u c h e s J e r e m i a ' s m o u t h , a n d s a y s , " L o o k , I h a v e p u t m y w o r d s into y o u r m o u t h " (1:9). T h i s p a s s a g e c e r t a i n l y h a s s o m e c o n n e c t i o n w i t h t h e r e m a r k in o u r p a p y r u s , b u t t h e r e is still a l o n g w a y b e t w e e n t h e L o r d t o u c h i n g the p r o p h e t ' s m o u t h a n d S o l o m o n p u t t i n g his seal on the p r o p h e t ' s t o n g u e . Non liquet,
but a g a i n w e c a n
o b s e r v e h o w biblical or post-biblical J e w i s h m o t i v e s are h e r e t a k e n into s e r v i c e by a non-Jewish magician. T h e m a g i c i a n c o n t i n u e s c o n j u r i n g the d e m o n b y the o n e " w h o m e v e r y h e a v enly p o w e r o f a n g e l s a n d a r c h a n g e l s p r a i s e s " ( 3 0 5 0 - 5 2 ) , w h i c h m a y b e a v a g u e e c h o o f Isaiah 6 or r a t h e r a m o t i f taken o v e r from J e w i s h m y s t i c a l traditions as w e find t h e m in the earliest strata o f H e k h a l o t literature. H e also calls the divinity " t h e g r e a t g o d S a b a o t h " ( 3 0 5 2 ) , t a k i n g t h e s e c o n d e l e m e n t in YHWH
Tseva 'oth
to b e a d i v i n e n a m e , as w a s (and still is) so often d o n e . T h e n follows a n o t h e r 4 8
Deissmann, Licht vom Osten 223 n. 12. Cf. Knox, 'Jewish Liturgical Exorcism' 196: "The change o f Perizzites to Pharisees suggests that the papyrus has been edited by someone w h o knew that the Pharisees figure as the villains of the N T . " Eitrem, Some Notes 2 3 , suggests that John 8:48 ("are you a Samaritan and do you have a demon?") implies that 'Samaritan' may also have become a designation of a class of demons. Many ancient amulets are inscribed with sphragis Solomdnos. See K. Preisendanz, 'Salomo,' PW Suppl. 8 (1965) 6 6 0 - 7 0 4 (on the Seal 6 7 0 - 6 7 6 ) . Also A. Jacoby, 'Clavicula Salomonis,' Handworterbuch des deutschen Aberglaubens 2 (1930) 8 8 - 9 3 . See, apart from Prcisendanz's article in Pauly-Wissowa, A.B. Kolenkow, 'Relationships Between Miracle and Prophecy in the Greco-Roman World and Early Christianity,' ANRW II 2 3 , 2 ( 1 9 8 0 ) , 1 4 7 1 - 1 5 0 6 , esp. 1 4 8 9 - 9 1 . Deissmann, Licht vom Osten 223 n. 11. 4 9
5 0
5 1
The Great Magical
historiola
Papyrus
277
of Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible
w h e n he calls this g o d the o n e " t h r o u g h w h o m t h e J o r d a n river d r e w
b a c k a n d the R e d Sea, w h i c h Israel c r o s s e d , b e c a m e i m p a s s a b l e " ( 3 0 5 3 - 5 5 ) , w i t h clear r e f e r e n c e s to J o s h u a 3 a n d E x o d u s 14, a l t h o u g h p e r h a p s P s . 114:3 ( " T h e sea l o o k e d a n d fled, t h e J o r d a n t u r n e d b a c k " ) is a m o r e likely c a n d i d a t e b e c a u s e o f the c o l l o c a t i o n o f the t w o e v e n t s . T h e s e i m p r e s s i v e m i r a c l e s testify to s u c h a great p o w e r in the d i v i n i t y that the d e m o n c a n n o t b u t surrender. G o d is then called " t h e o n e w h o r e v e a l e d the 140 l a n g u a g e s a n d distributed t h e m b y his o w n c o m m a n d " ( 3 0 5 6 - 5 8 ) . T h i s is a n i c e e x a m p l e o f m a g i c a l bluffing out a d e m o n . T h e J e w i s h tradition r e c o g n i z e s 7 0 l a n g u a g e s (on t h e basis o f the table o f 7 0 n a t i o n s in G e n . 10), b u t t h e m a g i c i a n d o u b l e s the n u m b e r in o r d e r to i m p r e s s the evil spirit. O r - a n o t h e r i n t r i g u i n g possibility - did the a u t h o r k n o w a b o u t a n o t h e r J e w i s h tradition, that o n e finds o n l y o c c a s i o n a l l y in r a b b i n i c literature ( e . g . , Sifre Deut.
3 1 1 ) , to t h e effect that t h e r e w e r e 140 n a t i o n s in the w o r l d ?
5 2
T h a t w o u l d i m p l y an e v e n m o r e intimate k n o w l e d g e o f J e w i s h traditions than w e h a v e seen h i t h e r t o . T h e r e m a r k that G o d is t h e o n e " w h o m t h e w i n g s o f t h e c h e r u b i m p r a i s e " ( 3 0 6 1 ) b e t r a y s k n o w l e d g e o f E z e k . 10:5 or, m o r e probably, o f a H e k h a l o t tradi tion,
53
b u t the u n e x p e c t e d c o m b i n a t i o n tou cheruhin
( s i n g u l a r article w i t h the
n o u n in a H e b r e w or A r a m a i c p l u r a l ) s u g g e s t s that it is a distant a c q u a i n t a n c e . T h e text g o e s o n : "I conjure y o u by the o n e w h o p u t the m o u n t a i n s a r o u n d t h e sea [or] a w a l l o f s a n d a n d c o m m a n d e d the sea n o t to overflow; a n d the a b y s s o b e y e d " ( 3 0 6 2 - 6 4 ) . H e r e w e s e e clear e c h o e s of Jer. 5:22 a n d J o b 3 8 : 1 0 - 1 1 , a n d it s h o u l d b e n o t i c e d that " t h e p o w e r o f G o d to set b o u n d s to the sea is a g a i n suitable to o v e r a w e d e m o n s w h o are afraid of w a t e r . "
54
In the f o l l o w i n g lines w e
r e a d a b o u t " t h e o n e in h o l y J e r u s a l e m b e f o r e w h o m the u n q u e n c h a b l e fire b u r n s for all t i m e , w i t h his h o l y n a m e " ( 3 0 6 9 - 7 0 ) . T h e fact that the n a m e o f J e r u s a l e m is in t h e u n u s u a l s p e l l i n g o f Hierosolymos
(instead o f Hierosolyma)
suggests
a g a i n that t h e a u t h o r o f the spell is not a J e w himself, a n d the m e n t i o n o f the ner tamid
in t h e J e r u s a l e m t e m p l e
5 5
d o e s not c o n t r a d i c t that s u g g e s t i o n since that
u n d y i n g light " w a s l e g e n d a r y in a n t i q u i t y , "
56
a n d w e find it m e n t i o n e d several
t i m e s b y p a g a n a u t h o r s (in P G M IV it is also m e n t i o n e d in line 1 2 1 9 ) .
57
At the
e n d t h e a u t h o r urges t h e m a g i c i a n s w h o w a n t to p u t this spell into p r a c t i c e n o t to eat p o r k a n d to k e e p t h e m s e l v e s p u r e , "for this c h a r m is H e b r a i c (ho estin Hebraikos) 5 2
logos
a n d is p r e s e r v e d a m o n g p u r e m e n " ( 3 0 8 4 - 8 6 ) . H e r e o n e o f t h e
Sec L. Ginzberg, The Legends of the Jews, vol. 5, Philadelphia 1925, 195 for further references. See Alexander in Schurer, The History of the Jewish People 357 n. 27 Knox, 'Jewish Liturgical Exorcism' 199. Deissmann, Licht vom Osten 2 2 4 n. 11, thinks the reference is to the never ending burnt offering mentioned in Lev. 6 : 8 - 1 3 , which is less likely. W.C. Grese in Betz (ed.), Greek Magical Papyri 97 n. 407. E. Schurer, History of the Jewish People in the Age of Jesus Christ, vol. 2, Edinburgh 1979, 297 n. 18. 5 3
5 4
5 5
5 6
5 7
278
The Great Magical
Papyrus
of Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible
m o s t i m p o r t a n t dietary rules o f the J e w i s h p e o p l e is i n c u l c a t e d b e c a u s e t h e spell is J e w i s h , s a y s t h e author. Is that really t r u e ?
5 8
It is t e m p t i n g to say y e s b e c a u s e o f the a b u n d a n c e o f biblical a n d p o s t - b i b l i cal J e w i s h motifs in this d o c u m e n t . B u t w e s h o u l d not lose sight o f the fact that t h e d o c u m e n t also c o n t a i n s i n d i c a t i o n s o f a relatively distant a c q u a i n t a n c e w i t h t h e s e t r a d i t i o n s , as w e h a v e seen. E v e n t h o u g h t h e n a m e o f J e s u s c o u l d b e u s e d b y J e w s for exorcistic p u r p o s e s , that is still a far cry from calling J e s u s t h e G o d o f t h e H e b r e w s . T h a t s e e m s to b e far t o o m u c h a g a i n s t the v e r y n a t u r e o f J u d a i s m for u s to b e a b l e to m a i n t a i n a J e w i s h a u t h o r s h i p . B u t w h a t , t h e n , o f t h e J e w s in E l e p h a n t i n e , w h o w o r s h i p p e d several G o d s a l o n g s i d e Y H W H ? O n e c o u l d also say that m a k i n g P h a r i s e e s into a class o f d e m o n s is t o o m u c h o f a n a n t i - J e w i s h s t a t e m e n t to m a k e J e w i s h a u t h o r s h i p o f t h e spell p o s s i b l e . B u t t h e n , c o u l d w e e x p e c t a J e w i s h m a g i c i a n o f t h e E g y p t i a n c o u n t r y s i d e in t h e s e c o n d or third c e n t u r y C E to k n o w w h a t a P h a r i s e e is? H e w o u l d certainly h a v e n e v e r m e t o n e ! E v e n so, I a m inclined to think that w e h a v e h e r e a r a t h e r e x t r e m e c a s e o f p a g a n b o r r o w i n g o f J e w i s h m o t i f s . P e r h a p s w e h a v e h e r e the p r o d u c t o f a c l o s e cooperation between a pagan and a Jewish magician. The reputation of Jewish m a g i c i a n s w a s so great, as w e k n o w from several s o u r c e s ,
59
that o n e can i m a g i n e
v e r y w e l l that a p a g a n m a g i c i a n tried to i n c o r p o r a t e as m a n y J e w i s h e l e m e n t s in his o w n spells as p o s s i b l e , p o s s i b l y w i t h t h e h e l p o f a J e w i s h c o l l e a g u e . B u t it c a n n o t b e r u l e d out entirely that, after all, the spell w a s written i n d e e d b y a s y n c r e t i s t i c J e w w h o h a d n o q u a l m s a b o u t calling J e s u s the g o d o f the J e w s .
6 0
T h e o n l y t h i n g t h a t m a t t e r e d to h i m w a s that his spell w o r k e d . It is fitting to c o n c l u d e w i t h t w o characteristic q u o t e s from the late a n d unforgettable M o r t o n S m i t h ' s s t u d y o f t h e J e w i s h e l e m e n t s in the m a g i c a l p a p y r i : To speak o f the J e w i s h e l e m e n t s in the magical papyri is to b e g the question, what w a s Judaism in the t i m e s and p l a c e s w h e r e the papyri w e r e written? This question cannot b e a n s w e r e d precisely. We k n o w from preserved e v i d e n c e that Judaism took m a n y different forms, s o m e o f t h e m surprising (primitive Christianity, for instance), but w e don't k n o w w h a t more surprising forms m a y have b e e n represented by the great majority o f the e v i d e n c e - that [is] n o w l o s t .
61
A n d on o u r spell ( 3 0 0 7 - 3 0 8 6 ) M o r t o n S m i t h s a y s :
5 8
See for the following Smith, 'The Jewish Elements' 2 4 2 - 2 5 6 . The same applies to Samaritans. That he composed the charm originally in Hebrew is untenable; contra M. Gaster, 'The Logos Ebraikos in the Magical Papyrus of Paris and the Book of Enoch,' in his Studies and Texts, vol. I, N e w York 1971 (repr. of 1928), 3 5 6 - 3 6 4 . It must be conceded, however, that "knowledge of Hebrew was surely behind this stuff, though far behind" (Smith, 'The Jewish Elements' 249). For a comparable case from Hadrumetum (near Carthage) see A. Bernand, Sorciers grecs, Paris 1991, 2 9 9 - 3 0 2 . Smith, 'The Jewish Elements' 242. 5 9
6 0
6 1
The Great Magical Papyrus
of Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible
279
T h e conjuration is probably the work o f a pagan w h o u s e s a J e w i s h text - carelessly. "The g o d o f the H e b r e w s , J e s u s " s e e m s unlikely for either a Jew or a Christian, and the m a n y historical mistakes also favor pagan authorship, though o n l y slightly; the biblical ignorance o f both J e w s and Christians should not be underestimated. A g a i n the u n q u e n c h e d fire in Jerusalem s u g g e s t s a date prior to 7 0 for the text the pagan u s e d .
6 2
So
d o e s the description o f Jesus, reflecting a pagan's impression o f Christianity in its first appearance, and so d o e s the favorable attitude o f an Egyptian towards J e w s , unlikely after 1 1 5 - 1 1 7 .
6 3
It is n o t difficult to a g r e e . M u c h m o r e c o u l d a n d s h o u l d b e said o f this c h a r m a n d its relation to biblical m a t e r i a l s , b u t t i m e a n d s p a c e forbid. H o p e f u l l y t h e few d a t a p r e s e n t e d suffice to g i v e an a d e q u a t e i m p r e s s i o n o f t h e p r o b l e m s involved.
6 2
Further on the same page Smith suggests that "its extinction would have been a consider able embarrassment and would have discouraged reference to it after it had been so conspicu ously discredited." Nock, 'Greek Magical Papyri' 183, says, "the writer's Jerusalem may well be a Jerusalem o f the imagination," which I find less convincing. Smith, 'The Jewish Elements' 250. Cf. also R. Kotansky, 'Greek Exorcistic Amulets,' in M. Meyer & P. Mirecki (eds.), Ancient Magic and Ritual Power, Leiden 1995, 2 6 2 - 2 6 6 . 6 3
"The God Who Drowned the King of Egypt" A Short Note on an Exorcistic Formula
In the m i d d l e o f t h e third c e n t u r y C E , the C h r i s t i a n s c h o l a r O r i g e n w r o t e in his a p o l o g e t i c w o r k Contra
Celsum
that ' t h e f o r m u l a " t h e G o d o f A b r a h a m ,
t h e G o d o f Isaac, a n d t h e G o d o f J a c o b " is u s e d n o t o n l y b y m e m b e r s o f the J e w i s h n a t i o n in their p r a y e r s to G o d a n d in their e x o r c i s m s o f d e m o n s , b u t also b y a l m o s t all o t h e r s w h o deal in m a g i c a n d spells. F o r in m a g i c a l treatises it is 1
often to b e found that G o d is i n v o k e d b y this f o r m u l a ' ( 4 . 3 3 ) . H e then g o e s o n to s a y that ' f u r t h e r m o r e , " t h e G o d o f I s r a e l , " a n d " t h e G o d o f t h e H e b r e w s , " a n d " t h e G o d w h o d r o w n e d t h e k i n g o f E g y p t a n d the E g y p t i a n s in the R e d S e a , " are f o r m u l a e w h i c h are often u s e d to o v e r p o w e r d e m o n s a n d certain evil p o w e r s ' 2
( 4 . 3 4 ) . P a g a n use o f originally biblical or J e w i s h f o r m u l a e , i n c l u d i n g the a b o v e 3
m e n t i o n e d , is i n d e e d w i d e l y a t t e s t e d . It is u p o n the f o r m u l a last m e n t i o n e d b y O r i g e n , ' t h e G o d w h o d r o w n e d t h e k i n g o f E g y p t a n d the E g y p t i a n s in t h e R e d S e a , ' that I w a n t to focus h e r e . To b e g i n w i t h , it is to b e o b s e r v e d that this is n o t a literal q u o t e from Scripture. In E x . 15:4 L X X w e r e a d that G o d ' c a s t P h a r a o h ' s chariots a n d his a r m y into the sea, h e s u n k (xaTEJtovTioEv) his p i c k e d officers in t h e R e d S e a . ' A n d in D e u t . 1 1 : 3 - 4 L X X M o s e s s a y s to the p e o p l e o f Israel that t h e y h a v e to r e m e m b e r 'all [ G o d ' s ] s i g n s a n d t h e m i r a c l e s that h e did in E g y p t to P h a r a o h , the k i n g o f E g y p t , a n d to all his land, a n d w h a t h e did to the a r m y o f the E g y p t i a n s , to
1
A s a matter of fact, the formula "the God of Abraham, the God o f Isaac, and the God of Jacob" indeed occurs more often in the Greek Magical Papyri than the other formulae men tioned by Origen (see below in the text). For references and literature see R. Kotansky, Greek Magical Amulets. The Inscribed Gold, Silver, Copper, and Bronze Lamellae; Part I: Published Texts of Known Provenance, Opladen 1993, 2 9 1 . Translation (slightly modified) by H. Chadwick, Origen: Contra Celsum, Cambridge 1965, 2 0 9 - 2 1 0 . On Origen's own belief in the efficacy of magic see G. Bardy, 'Origene et la magie,' Recherches de science religieuselS (1928) 1 2 6 - 1 4 2 , and N. Brox, 'Magie und Aberglauben an den Anfangen des Christentums,' Trierer Theologische Zeitschrift 83 (1974) 1 5 7 - 1 8 0 , esp. 1 6 1 - 1 6 6 . See, inter multos alios, W.L. Knox, 'Jewish Liturgical Exorcism,' Harvard Theological Review3>\(1938) 1 9 1 - 2 0 3 , a n d idem, St. Paul and the Church of the Gentiles, Cambridge 1939, 2 0 8 - 2 1 1 ('Jewish Influences on Magical Literature') and M. Smith, 'The Jewish Elements in the Magical Papyri,' in his Studies in the Cult ofYahweh, vol. 2 (ed. by S.J.D. Cohen), Leiden 1996, 2 4 2 - 2 5 6 . 2
3
A Short Note on an Exorcistic
281
Formula
their c h a r i o t s a n d their cavalry, h o w h e m a d e t h e w a t e r o f the R e d S e a flow o v e r (8jt£xX,uaev) t h e m as t h e y p u r s u e d y o u . ' All t h e i n g r e d i e n t s o f t h e f o r m u l a are found in t h e s e t w o biblical p a s s a g e s , s o a l t h o u g h it is n o t a q u o t e , t h e c o n t e n t s are t h e r e . T h e w o r d i n g o f the f o r m u l a - 6 0e6g 6 xaxajtovxcoaag ev xfj eovBoq OaXdaarj xov Aiyimxicov (3aaiXea x a i xovc, Alyimxioug - is r e m i n i s c e n t o f b o t h p a s s a g e s , xaxajtovxcoaag b e i n g c l o s e r to xaxejtovxiaev in E x . 15:4 t h a n t o ejtexXuoev in D e u t . 11:4, b u t ' t h e k i n g o f t h e E g y p t i a n s ' b e i n g c l o s e r to ' t h e k i n g o f E g y p t ' in D e u t . 11:3 t h a n to ' P h a r a o h ' in E x . 15:4. B e that as it m a y , t h e i m p o r t a n t t h i n g is that t h e f o r m u l a c a p t u r e s in a n u t s h e l l the e s s e n c e o f t h e m o s t d r a m a t i c story o f I s r a e l ' s past, its liberation b y G o d from E g y p t a n d t h e c o n s e q u e n t d e s t r u c t i o n o f its e n e m i e s . In t h e f r a m e w o r k o f a m a g i c a l spell s u c h a f o r m u l a h a s the function o f a historiola,
4
a m i n i - h i s t o r y a b o u t the g r e a t d e e d s o f a d e i t y in t h e past, told in
o r d e r t o i n d u c e t h e deity c o n c e r n e d to r e m a i n true to its r e p u t a t i o n a n d r e p e a t its p o w e r f u l act(s) in the p r e s e n t . A s Fritz G r a f h a s aptly said a b o u t
historiolae,
t h e y are ' i n m a g i s c h e R e z e p t e e i n g e b a u t e k n a p p e E r z a h l u n g e n ( . . . ) , die e i n e n m y t h i s c h e n P r a z e d e n z f a l l fur e i n e m a g i s c h w i r k s a m e H a n d l u n g l i e f e r n . ' in the s a m e f r a m e w o r k D a v i d F r a n k f u r t e r w r i t e s a b o u t historiolae
5
And
in t e r m s
o f ' t h e i d e a that the m e r e r e c o u n t i n g o f certain stories situates or directs their 6
" n a r r a t i v e " p o w e r into this w o r l d . ' O f this p h e n o m o n e o n w e h a v e m a n y p a g a n , Jewish, and Christian instances.
7
In t h e f a m o u s e x o r c i s t i c c h a r m called the Hebrai'kos
logos in t h e g r e a t m a g i
cal p a p y r u s from P a r i s ( P G M I V 3 0 0 7 - 3 0 8 6 ) , w e find t h e f o l l o w i n g adjuration: T adjure y o u b y t h e g r e a t g o d S a b a o t h , t h r o u g h w h o m t h e J o r d a n river d r e w b a c k a n d the R e d Sea, w h i c h Israel c r o s s e d , b e c a m e i m p a s s a b l e ' ( 3 0 5 3 - 3 0 5 5 ) .
8
T h i s p a s s a g e m a k e s r e f e r e n c e t o b o t h J o s h u a 3 : 1 3 - 1 4 (or P s . 113:3) a n d E x o d . 14:27. H e r e w e d o n o t find t h e e x a c t f o r m u l a ' t h e g o d w h o d r o w n e d the k i n g o f E g y p t ' b u t the idea is i m p l i e d clearly in the w o r d s a b o u t t h e R e d S e a b e c o m i n g i m p a s s a b l e . In spite o f the biblical l a n g u a g e a n d e c h o e s , this spell m o s t p r o b a b l y 9
is n o t o f J e w i s h origin b u t is a c a s e o f p a g a n b o r r o w i n g o f J e w i s h m o t i f s . T h i s 4
D. Aune, 'Magic in Early Christianity,' Aufstieg und Niedergang der Romischen Welt II 23, 2 (1980) 1547, aptly calls it a 'mini-aretalogy.' F. Graf, 'Historiola,' NP 5 (1998) 6 4 2 . D. Frankfurter, 'Narrating Power: The Theory and Practice o f the Magical Historiola in Ritual Spells,' in M. Meyer & P, Mirecki (eds.), Ancient Magic and Ritual Power, Leiden 1995, 4 5 7 - 4 7 6 , here 457. See Th. Hopfher, 'MagQia; Pauly-Wissowa 14,1 (1928) 3 4 3 , and A . A . Barb, 'The Survival of Magic Arts,' in A. Momigliano (ed.), The Conflict Between Paganism and Christianity in the Fourth Century, Oxford 1963, 122. Frankfurter's is the best treatment to date. Translation by W.C. Grese in H.D. Betz (ed.), The Greek Magical Papyri in Translation, Chicago & London 1986, 97. For the Greek text see K. Preisendanz (& A. Henrichs), Papyri Graecae Magicae. Die griechischen Zauberpapyri, vol. 1, Stuttgart 1973, 1 7 0 - 1 7 2 . See my 'The Great Magical Papyrus o f Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible' (forthcoming [elsewhere in this volume]), and Smith, 'Jewish Elements' 250. 5
6
7
8
9
282
A Short Note on an Exorcistic
Formula
p a g a n m a g i c i a n h a d n o q u a l m s a b o u t e v o k i n g p o w e r f u l biblical s c e n e s ; t h e o n l y t h i n g that m a t t e r e d to h i m w a s that his spell w a s effective. W h a t c o u l d b e m o r e effective in c h a s i n g a w a y a d e m o n than i n v o k i n g t h e deity w h o m a d e t h e R e d S e a i m p a s s a b l e to t h e k i n g o f E g y p t a n d d r o w n e d h i m in it? O n e c a n o b s e r v e that in g e n e r a l the i m a g e r y o f t h e p l a g u e s o f t h e e x o d u s is s t r o n g l y e m p h a s i z e d in this spell. T h i s s h o u l d n o t surprise u s . M o r t o n S m i t h h a s figured out that out o f t h e r o u g h l y 5 6 0 spells found in t h e c o r p u s o f p a g a n G r e e k m a g i c a l p a p y r i , s o m e 2 0 0 s h o w biblical or J e w i s h m a t e r i a l o n e w a y or a n o t h e r .
10
T h i s is s t r o n g
e v i d e n c e o f the p e r v a s i v e influence o f biblical a n d p o s t - b i b l i c a l J e w i s h tradi tions in the international a n d i n t e r d e n o m i n a t i o n a l w o r l d o f late a n c i e n t m a g i c . A s t r i k i n g i n s t a n c e , w h i c h is v e r y similar to the c a s e u n d e r d i s c u s s i o n , is P G M X X X V I 2 9 5 - 3 1 1 , a l o v e spell in w h i c h the m a g i c i a n e v o k e s the i m a g e o f t h e a n g e l s o f G o d d e s c e n d i n g a n d o v e r t u r n i n g the five cities o f S o d o m , G o m o r r a h , A d m a h , Z e b o i m , a n d Segor, a n d o f t h e G o d w h o r a i n e d d o w n s u l p h u r on t h e s e cities. H e r e G e n e s i s 19 is t a k e n into service in o r d e r that t h e w o m a n d e s i r e d b y t h e client m a y c o m e to h i m a n d 'fulfil the m y s t e r y rite o f A p h r o d i t e ' ( 3 0 6 ) , i. e., h a v e sex w i t h h i m ! A l t h o u g h it is to b e e x p e c t e d that the m a g i c a l u s e o f t h e m o t i f o f ' t h e G o d w h o d r o w n e d the k i n g o f E g y p t ' started its c a r e e r in J e w i s h circles, t h e r e are h a r d l y a n y J e w i s h e x a m p l e s p r i o r to t h e p a g a n o n e s attested b y O r i g e n (third c e n t . ) .
11
F r o m the third c e n t u r y C E w e h a v e a J e w i s h lead tablet from H a d r u m e t u m in T u n i s i a c o n t a i n i n g a love c h a r m in w h i c h the s o r c e r e r casts a spell in t h e n a m e o f h i m ' w h o c r e a t e d t h e h e a v e n a n d the s e a ' (10) a n d ' w h o split t h e sea w i t h his staff ( 1 2 ) .
1 2
In v i e w o f t h e p a r a l l e l l i s m w i t h ' w h o c r e a t e d t h e h e a v e n a n d
t h e s e a , ' t h e r e c a n b e n o d o u b t that the subject o f ' w h o split . . . t h e s e a ' is h e r e G o d , n o t M o s e s . H e r e w e d o not find t h e d r o w n i n g o f the p h a r a o h explicitly m e n t i o n e d , b u t it is certainly implied. A l s o from later c e n t u r i e s w e o n l y find 1 0
Smith, 'Jewish Elements' 2 4 6 - 7 . The only 'purely Jewish' spell found in PGM is nr. XXIIb 1-26, the 'Prayer of Jacob.' Those scholars w h o regard the 'Hebrew logos' as a Jewish document dating from before 70 CE, will o f course take exception to this. On that matter see my forthcoming 'The Great Magical Papyrus of Paris (PGM IV) and the Bible' [see the previous chapter]. For the text see G. Maspero, 'Sur deux tabellae devotionis de la necriopole romaine d'Hadrumete,' Bibliotheque Egyptologique 2 (1893) 3 0 3 - 3 1 1 . It is also to be found in A. Deissmann, 'Ein epigraphisches Denkmal des alexandrinischen Alten Testaments,' in his Bibelstudien, Marburg 1895 (repr. 1977), 29; L. Blau, Das altjudische Zauberwesen, Westmead 1970 (= Budapest 1898), 97; A. Audollent, Defixionum tabellae, Paris 1904, 3 7 3 - 3 7 7 , no. 271 (cf. ibid. 3 2 3 , no. 2 4 1 , line 26 chorisas ten thalassan lad); and R. Wunsch, Antike Fluchtafeln, Bonn 1912, 2 1 - 2 6 , no. 5. For an English translation and commentary see J.G. Gager, Curse Tablets and Binding Spells from the Ancient World, N e w York - Oxford 1992, 112-115 (no. 36). Gager doubts its Jewish provenance, unrightly so; see R. Kotansky, 'Greek Exorcistic Amulets,' in M. Meyer & P, Mirecki (eds.), Ancient Magic and Ritual Power, Leiden 1 9 9 5 , 2 7 4 . Literally the text reads, 'who split his staff with the sea,' but this is obviously an error; so rightly Deiss mann 38, and P.S. Alexander, 'Jewish Elements in Gnosticism and Magic,' in W. Horbury a.o. (eds.), The Cambridge History of Judaism, vol. 3, Cambridge 1999, 1075 with note 51. 11
1 2
A Short Note on an Exorcistic
283
Formula
i n s t a n c e s that d o contain t h e m o t i f b u t n o t the e x a c t w o r d i n g o f the formula, as w a s also the c a s e in P G M I V (4th cent.). A m o n g t h e m a g i c b o w l s from late a n c i e n t B a b y l o n i a w e find a few i n s t a n c e s . In b o w l 21 p u b l i s h e d by N a v e h a n d S h a k e d ,
13
w e r e a d the f o l l o w i n g adjuration:
' H e w h o p l a c e s a c r o w n for t h e k i n g s h i p , a n d m a k e s d o m i n i o n in t h e sky, a n d w h o h a s s u b d u e d G o l i a t h b y t h e h a n d o f D a v i d , a n d P h a r a o h b y the h a n d o f M o s e s , a n d E g y p t b y t h e h a n d o f J o s e p h , a n d the wall o f J e r i c h o b y the h a n d of Joshua bar Nun, may he
( 1 0 - 1 1 ) . T h i s string o f historiolae
briefly lists
s o m e o f t h e m a i n m i g h t y d e e d s o f the G o d o f Israel, o f w h i c h the d r o w n i n g o f t h e k i n g o f E g y p t is o n l y o n e in a series. In the s e c o n d i n s t a n c e , the largest A r a m a i c incantation b o w l k n o w n so f a r ,
14
the e x o r c i s m starts w i t h the w o r d s , ' I n
the fulness o f thy t r i u m p h t h o u o v e r t h r o w e s t thy a d v e r s a r i e s , t h o u s e n d e s t forth t h y fury, it c o n s u m e s t h e m like s t u b b l e ' ( E x o d . 15:7). To b e sure t h e p h a r a o h a n d his a r m y are not m e n t i o n e d h e r e explicitly, but t h e s e w o r d s , q u o t e d from the S o n g at the Sea, are a l m o s t a direct c o n t i n u a t i o n o f the w o r d s ' P h a r a o h ' s c h a r i o t s a n d his a r m y h e cast into the s e a ' ( E x o d . 15:4), a n d there is n o d o u b t that it w a s e x a c t l y t h e s e a d v e r s a r i e s the m a g i c i a n h a d in m i n d . S o a g a i n w e see h o w i m p o r t a n t the e v o c a t i o n o f this m i g h t y d e e d o f G o d w a s for e x o r c i s t s , j u s t as O r i g e n m e n t i o n e d , the parallel b e t w e e n t h e t w o - e x o r c i s m a n d e x o d u s - o f c o u r s e r e s i d i n g in the e l e m e n t o f liberation from a n evil p o w e r .
15
N o w o n d e r that in C h r i s t i a n circles, b o t h in E g y p t a n d e l s e w h e r e , m a n y o f t h e s e o r i g i n a l l y J e w i s h e l e m e n t s w e r e a d o p t e d for e x o r c i s t i c p u r p o s e s .
1 6
Typi
cally C h r i s t i a n e l e m e n t s w e r e a d d e d , h o w e v e r , the cross a n d t h e r e s u r r e c t i o n o f c o u r s e f o r e m o s t a m o n g t h e m , b e i n g t h e C h r i s t i a n c o u n t e r p a r t s o f the e x o d u s from E g y p t . H e n c e they c o u l d s e r v e t h e s a m e p u r p o s e . Trypho
1 7
In his Dialogue
from a n e x o r c i s t i c formula, as K n o x h a s c o n v i n c i n g l y a r g u e d . Celsum
with
85.2 Justin q u o t e s a s u m m a r y o f t h e C r e e d w h i c h h a s b e e n t a k e n o v e r 18
A n d in
Contra
1.6, O r i g e n s a y s that C h r i s t i a n e x o r c i s t s s u b d u e d e m o n s ' b y the n a m e
o f J e s u s w i t h the recital o f t h e histories a b o u t h i m . ' W h a t else is the C r e e d t h a n
1 3
J. Naveh & Sh. Shaked, Magic Spells and Formulae. Aramaic Incantations of Late Antiquity, Jerusalem 1993, 1 2 7 - 1 3 0 . J. Naveh & Sh. Shaked, Amulets and Magic Bowls. Aramaic Incantations of Late Antiq uity, Jerusalem - Leiden 1985, 1 9 8 - 1 9 9 , nr. 13 line 2. I did not find any instances in the three volumes Magische Texte aus der Kairoer Geniza edited by P. Schafer & Sh. Shaked, Tubingen 1 9 9 4 - 1 9 9 9 . E.g, the death of the Egyptians at the exodus is mentioned (as part of a long series of megaleia tou theou, all from the OT) in an exorcistic formula said to have been composed by Gregory Thaumatourgos; see for the Greek text Th. Schermann, Griechische Zauherpapyri und das Gemeinde- und Dankgebet im 1. Klemensbrief Leipzig 1909, 20. Note that the motif occurs also in Hebrews 11:29; and cf. Justin, Dialogus 131.3, and the prayer in Constitutions Apostolicae 8.12.12. See K. Thraede, 'Exorzismus,' RAC 7 (1969) 4 4 - 1 1 7 , esp. 1 0 9 - 1 1 4 . St. Paul 209. After the quote it is added that in this name (sc. o f Jesus Christ whose life has just been summarized) every demon will be defeated and conquered. 1 4
15
1 6
1 7
18
284
A Short Note on an Exorcistic
a recital o f t h e histories (historiolae)
Formula
a b o u t J e s u s ? ' T h e s e credal e x o r c i s m s are
surely f o r m e d on the earlier J e w i s h m o d e l o f r e c i t i n g the historia
of the God of
9
I s r a e l . " T h e r e is a b u n d a n t e v i d e n c e indeed that in exorcistic f o r m u l a e C h r i s t i a n historiolae them.
1 9
2 0
v e r y s o o n b e g a n to b e a d d e d to t h o s e o f J e w i s h origin, or to s u p p l a n t
B u t that is a n o t h e r story.
Kotansky, 'Greek Exorcistic Amulets,' in Meyer & Mirecki (eds.), Ancient Magic and Ritual Power, 263 n. 47. Also Kotansky, Greek Magical Amulets 1 7 4 - 1 8 0 . See Aune, 'Magic' 1 5 4 7 - 8 . See also W. Heitmuller, "Im Namen Jesu ": Eine sprach- und religionsgeschichtliche Untersuchung zum Neuen Testament, speziell zur altchristlichen Taufe, Gottingen 1903, 3 3 4 - 3 3 6 ('Die Entstehung des Tauf-Symbols'). 2 0
Original places of publication ' T h e J e w s o f A n c i e n t C r e t e , ' Journal
of Jewish
'The J e w s o f A n c i e n t Cyprus,' Zutot: Perspectives
Studies
39 (1988) 183-200
on Jewish
Culture
2 0 0 3 [published in
on Jewish
Culture
2 0 0 4 [published in
2004]110-120 'The J e w s o f A n c i e n t Sicily,' Zutot:
Perspectives
2005] 54-59 'The S y n a g o g u e o f Sardis and Its Inscriptions.' Dutch original in Nederlands Tijdschrift
Theologisch
56 (2002) 1 6 - 2 6
' J e w s and B l u e s in Late Antiquity,' in D . Accorinti & P. C h u v i n (eds.), Des Geants Dionysos.
Melanges
de mythologie
et de poesie
grecques
offerts
a Francis
a
Vian,
Alessandria: Edizioni dell' Orso, 2 0 0 3 , 5 6 5 - 5 7 2 ' A N o t e o n the Evil Inclination and Sexual D e s i r e in Talmudic Literature,' in U . Mittmann-Richert, F. A v e m a r i e & G . S . O e g e m a ( e d s . ) , Der Mensch zum Menschenbild Lichtenberger
in Bibel,
antikem
zum 60. Geburtstag),
Judentum
und Koran
vor Gott.
(Festschrift
Forschungen fur
Hermann
Neukirchen: N e u k i r c h e n e r Verlag, 2 0 0 3 , 9 9 - 1 0 6
' H i s D a y s Shall B e O n e Hundred and T w e n t y Years': G e n e s i s 6:3 in Early Judaism and A n c i e n t Christianity,' Zutot: Perspectives
on Jewish
Culture
2 0 0 2 [published in 2 0 0 3 ]
18-23 'Inscriptiones
Judaicae
Orientis:
A R e v i e w Article,' Journal for the Study of Judaism
36
(2005)65-83 'Huldah's T o m b in Early J e w i s h Tradition.' Dutch original in Nederlands Tijdschrift
' P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s o n the Afterlife: A Rejoinder to John J. C o l l i n s , ' Journalfor of Judaism
Theologisch
55 (2001) 9 1 - 9 6 the Study
35 (2004) 7 0 - 7 5
'Philo's In Flaccum und das Neue
and the B o o k o f A c t s , ' in: R. D e i n e s & K.-W. N i e b u h r (eds.),
Testament.
Wechselseitige
Wahrnehmungen
Philo
( W i s s e n s c h a f t l i c h e Unter-
s u c h u n g e n z u m N e u e n Testament 172), Tubingen: M o h r S i e b e c k , 2 0 0 4 , 9 5 - 1 0 5 ' C o m m o n Prayer in Philo's In Flaccum
1 2 1 - 1 2 4 , ' Kenishta:
Studies
of the
Synagogue
World, e d . J. Tabory, v o l . 2 , Bar Ilan University Press, 2 0 0 3 , 2 1 - 2 8 'Philo and the Rabbis o n G e n e s i s : Similar Q u e s t i o n s , Different A n s w e r s , ' in: A . Vblgers & C. Z a m a g n i (eds.), Erotapokriseis. in Context
Early Christian
Question-and-Answer
Literature
(Contributions to Biblical E x e g e s i s and T h e o l o g y 3 7 ) , L e u v e n : Peeters,
2004, 5 5 - 7 0 'Philo o f Alexandria o n the Wrath o f G o d . ' D u t c h original in A . d e Jong & A . d e Jong (eds.), Kleine
encyclopedie
van de toorn,
Utrecht: Universitaire pers, 1 9 9 3 , 7 7 - 8 2
'Anti-Samaritan Propaganda in Early Judaism,' in P.W. v a n der Horst, M.J.J. M e n k e n , J.F.M. Smit & G. v a n O y e n (eds.), Persuasion Ancient
Judaism,
and Hellenism
L e u v e n : Peeters, 2 0 0 3 , 2 5 ^ 1 4
and Dissuasion
in Early
Christianity,
(Contributions to Biblical E x e g e s i s and T h e o l o g y 3 3 ) ,
286
Original places of
publication
'Jacques B a s n a g e ( 1 6 5 3 - 1 7 2 3 ) on the Samaritans. Or: H o w m u c h did o n e k n o w about the Samaritans three centuries a g o in the Netherlands?' (unpublished) ' O n c e More: the Translation o f ol hi in M a t t h e w 2 8 : 1 7 , ' Journal for the Study of the Testament
New
27 (1986) 2 7 - 3 0
'Abraham's B o s o m , the Place Where H e B e l o n g e d . A Short N o t e o n djtevexOfjvai in Luke 1 6 : 2 2 , ' New Testament
Studies
5 2 ( 2 0 0 6 ) [forthcoming]
'"Snorting Threat and Murder." T h e Hellenistic Background o f A c t s 9 : 1 , ' German original in Novum
Testamentum
12 ( 1 9 7 0 ) 2 5 7 - 2 6 9
'"Only T h e n Will A l l Israel B e Saved": A Short N o t e o n the M e a n i n g o f x a i otixcog in R o m a n s 11:26,' Journal
of Biblical
Literature
119 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 5 2 1 - 5 2 5
'Macarius M a g n e s and the U n n a m e d Anti-Christian P o l e m i c i s t . A R e v i e w Article,' Vigiliae
Christianae
58 ( 2 0 0 4 ) 3 3 2 - 3 4 1
' A N e w Early Christian P o e m o n the Sacrifice o f Isaac (Pap. B o d m e r 3 0 ) , ' in A . Hurst & J. Rudhardt (eds.), Le Codex
des
Visions
( R e c h e r c h e s et rencontres 18), G e n e v e :
Librairie D r o z , 2 0 0 2 , 1 5 5 - 1 7 2 'The R o l e o f Scripture in Cyril o f S c y t h o p o l i s ' Lives Patrich ( e d . ) , The Sabaite the Present,
Heritage
in the Orthodox
of the Monks Church from
of Palestine,'
in J.
the Fifth Century
to
L e u v e n : Peeters, 2 0 0 1 [published in 2 0 0 2 ] , 1 2 7 - 1 4 5
' T w e n t y - F i v e Q u e s t i o n s to Corner the Jews: A B y z a n t i n e A n t i - J e w i s h D o c u m e n t from the S e v e n t h Century,' in E.G. C h a z o n , D . Satran & R.A. C l e m e n t s (eds.), Things Studies
in Early Jewish
and Christian
Literature
in Honor
of Michael
Revealed.
E. Stone
(Sup
p l e m e n t s to the Journal for the Study o f Judaism 8 9 ) , Leiden: Brill, 2 0 0 4 , 2 8 9 - 3 0 2 " T h e M o s t Superstitious and D i s g u s t i n g o f All N a t i o n s . " D i o g e n e s o f O e n o a n d a o n the J e w s ' in: A . P. M . H. Lardinois e. a. (edd.), Land of Dreams. Honour
ofA.H.
M. Kessels,
Greek and Latin Studies
in
Leiden: Brill, 2 0 0 6 , 2 9 1 - 2 9 8
'The S h a d o w in Hellenistic Popular Belief.' G e r m a n original in M . J. Vermaseren (ed.), Studies
in Hellenistic
Religions
(Etudes Preliminaires des R e l i g i o n s Orientales dans
l'Empire R o m a i n 7 8 ) , Leiden: Brill, 1 9 7 9 , 2 7 - 3 6 ' T h e First A t h e i s t . ' D u t c h original in Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
53 (1999)
42-49 'Subtractive Versus A d d i t i v e C o m p o s i t e N u m e r a l s in Antiquity,' Illinois
Classical
Studies
13(1988)183-202 'The Great M a g i c a l Papyrus o f Paris ( P G M IV) and the B i b l e ' (unpublished) '"The G o d W h o D r o w n e d the K i n g o f Egypt." A Short N o t e on an Exorcistic Formula,' in A . Hilhorst & G.H. van K o o t e n (eds.), The Wisdom stian,
and Gnostic
135-140
Studies
in Honour
of Gerard
of Egypt.
P. Luttikhuizen,
Jewish,
Early
Chri
Leiden: Brill, 2 0 0 5 ,
Bibliography of Pieter W. van der Horst, 1970-2005 A . Articles
and
books
1970 1. ' D r o h u n g und M o r d s c h n a u b e n d ( A c t a I X 1),' Novum
Testamentum
12 ( 1 9 7 0 )
257-269 1971 2. ' A Pagan Platonist and a Christian Platonist o n S u i c i d e , ' Vigiliae
Christianae
25
(1971)282-288 1972 3. 'Can a B o o k End With TAP?,' Journal
of Theological
Studies
n.s. 2 3 ( 1 9 7 2 ) 1 2 1 -
124 4. ' A Wordplay in 1 John 4 : 1 2 ? , ' Zeitschrift
fur die neutestamentliche
Wissenschaft
63
(1972)280-282 1973 5. 'Observations o n a Pauline E x p r e s s i o n , ' New
Testament
Studies
19 ( 1 9 7 2 / 7 3 ) 1 8 1 -
187 6. 'Macrobius and the N e w Testament. A Contribution to the Corpus H e l l e n i s t i c u m , ' Novum
Testamentum
15 ( 1 9 7 3 ) 2 2 0 - 2 3 2
1974 7. (with J. Mansfeld) An Alexandrian Treatise
"Critique
and Notes,
Platonist
of the Doctrines
Against
of Manichaeus
Dualism.
Alexander
" Translated
of
with an
Lycopolis' Introduction
Leiden: Brill, 1 9 7 4 ; 9 9 pp.
8. ' M u s o n i u s Rufus and the N e w Testament. A Contribution to the Corpus H e l l e n i s t i c u m , ' Novum
Testamentum
16 ( 1 9 7 4 ) 3 0 6 - 3 1 5
1975 9. ' H i e r o c l e s the Stoic and the N e w Testament. A Contribution to the Corpus H e l l e n i s t i c u m , ' Novum
Testamentum
1 7 ( 1 9 7 5 ) 156—160
7976 10. 'Peter's Shadow. T h e Religio-Historical B a c k g r o u n d o f A c t s V 15,' New Studies
23 (1976/77) 2 0 4 - 2 1 2
Testament
288
Bibliography
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
1970-2005
1977 11. 'Rabbi D o w Marmur over het Christendom,' Ter Herkenning 12. ' A Classical Parallel to Isaiah 5 : 8 , ' The Expository
5 (1977) 125-127
Times 8 9 ( 1 9 7 7 / 7 8 ) 1 1 9 - 1 2 0
1978 13. 'In M e m o r i a m Prof. Dr. W. C. van U n n i k , ' Areopagus 14. The Sentences
of Pseudo-Phocylides
11,3 (1978) 24
with Introduction
and Commentary
(Studia in
Veteris Testamenti Pseudepigrapha 4 ) , Leiden: Brill, 1 9 7 8 ; 2 9 6 pp. 15. 'Is Wittiness Unchristian? A N o t e o n dhpajteMa in Eph. V 4 , ' in T. Baarda, A.F.J. Klijn, W.C. v a n Unnik (edd.), Miscellanea
Neotestamentica
II, Leiden: Brill, 1 9 7 8 ,
163-177 16. ' P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s and the N e w Testament,' Zeitschrift Wissenschaft
fur die
neutestamentliche
69 (1978) 187-202
17. ' S e v e n M o n t h s ' Children in J e w i s h and Christian Literature from Antiquity,' rides
Theologicae
Lovanienses
Epheme-
54 (1978) 3 4 6 - 3 6 0
7979 18. ' H e t ' g e h e i m e M a r k u s e v a n g e l i e ' . O v e r e e n n i e u w e vondst,' Nederlands Tijdschrift
Theologisch
33 (1979) 2 7 - 5 1
19. ' D e r Schatten im hellenistischen Volksglauben,' in M . J. Vermaseren (ed.), Studies Hellenistic
Religions,
in
E P R O 7 8 , Leiden: Brill, 1 9 7 9 , 2 7 - 3 6
2 0 . 'Jezus in d e j o o d s e literatuur v a n d e o u d h e i d , ' Kerk
en Theologie
30 (1979) 1 0 5 -
114 2 1 . ' S o m e Late Instances of Inceptive A E , ' Mnemosyne
(ser. I V ) 3 2 ( 1 9 7 9 ) 3 7 7 - 3 7 9
1980 22. Aelius
Aristides
and the New Testament
(Studia ad Corpus H e l l e n i s t i c u m N o v i
Testamenti 6 ) , Leiden: Brill, 1 9 8 0 , X + l 15 pp. 2 3 . ' N o t e s o n the Aramaic B a c k g r o u n d o f Luke II 4 1 - 5 2 , ' Journal New Testament
for
the Study
of the
7 (1980) 6 1 - 6 6
1981 2 4 . 'Cornutus and the N e w Testament. A Contribution to the Corpus H e l l e n i s t i c u m , ' Novum
Testamentum
23 (1981) 165-172
2 5 . ' C h a e r e m o n , E g y p t i s c h priester en antisemitisch Stoicijn in d e tijd v a n het N i e u w e Testament,' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
35 (1981) 2 6 5 - 2 7 2
1982 2 6 . ' D e j o o d s e toneelschrijver E z e c h i e l , ' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
36 (1982)
97-112 2 7 . ' T h e Secret H i e r o g l y p h s in Classical Literature,' in J. d e n B o e f t and A . H . M . K e s s e l s (edd.), Actus.
Studies
in Honour
of H.L. W. Nelson,
Utrecht: Instituut v o o r K l a s s i e k e
Talen, 1 9 8 2 , 1 1 5 - 1 2 3 2 8 . ' D e correspondentie v a n Hans Lietzmann,' Kerk & Theologie
33 (1982) 2 9 1 - 3 0 0
2 9 . ' T h e W a y o f Life o f the Egyptian Priests A c c o r d i n g to C h a e r e m o n , ' in M . H e e r m a van Voss e.a. (edd.), Studies Leiden: Brill, 1 9 8 2 , 6 1 - 7 1
in Egyptian
Religion
in Honour
of Professor
Jan
Zandee,
Bibliography
3 0 . (with T. Baarda) De spreuken ander,
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
van Pseudo-Phocylides.
289
1970-2005
De spreuken
van
Pseudo-Men-
K a m p e n : Kok, 1 9 8 2 , 9 0 pp.
1983 3 1 . 'Het eerste c o n g r e s van de European A s s o c i a t i o n for J e w i s h Studies,' Ter
Herkenning
11,2 ( 1 9 8 3 ) 2 8 - 2 9 3 2 . ' M o s e s ' Throne V i s i o n in E z e k i e l the Dramatist,' Journal
of Jewish
Studies
34 (1983)
21-29 3 3 . 'Hellenistic Parallels to the A c t s o f the A p o s t l e s : I 1 - 2 6 , ' Zeitschrift mentliche
Wissenschaft
fur die
neutesta-
74 (1983) 17-26
3 4 . 'Openbaring,' Moderne
Encyclopedic
3 5 . 'Philo van Alexandria,' Moderne
van de Wereldliteratuur Encyclopedic
1 (1983) 78
van de Wereldliteratuur
1 (1983)
228-229 36. 'Chariton and the N e w Testament. A Contribution to the Corpus H e l l e n i s t i c u m , ' Novum
Testamentum
25 ( 1 9 8 3 ) 3 4 8 - 3 5 5
1984 3 7 . Chaeremon, Translated
Egyptian
Priest
with Explanatory
and Stoic Notes
Philosopher.
The Fragments
Collected
and
( E P R O 101), Leiden: Brill, 1984; X X + 8 0 pp.
3 8 . ' N i e u w e K e u l s e en W e e n s e publicaties o v e r het v r o e g e j o d e n d o m , ' Kerk en
Theologie
35 ( 1 9 8 4 ) 1 2 9 - 1 3 7 3 9 . ' S o m e N o t e s o n the Exagoge
o f E z e k i e l , ' Mnemosyne
(ser. I V ) 3 7 ( 1 9 8 4 ) 3 5 4 - 3 7 5
4 0 . ' H i e r o g l i e f e n in de o g e n van Grieken en R o m e i n e n , ' Phoenix
30 (1984) 4 4 - 5 3
1985 4 1 . 'Het h e i d e n s e antisemitisme in de o u d h e i d , ' Ter Herkenning 4 2 . 'Korte notities o v e r v r o e g - j o o d s e e p i e k , ' Nederlands
13,1 ( 1 9 8 5 ) 4 5 - 5 3
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
39
(1985) 102-109 4 3 . ' P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s , ' in J. H. Charlesworth (ed.), The Old Testament
Pseudepigrapha
II, N e w York: D o u b l e d a y , 1 9 8 5 , 5 6 5 - 5 8 2 4 4 . 'Hellenistic Parallels to the A c t s o f the A p o s t l e s ( 2 : 1 - 4 7 ) , ' Journal the New Testament
for
the Study
of
25 (1985) 4 9 - 6 0
4 5 . 'Schriftgebruik bij drie v r o e g e j o o d s - h e l l e n i s t i s c h e historici: D e m e t r i u s , Artapanus, E u p o l e m u s , ' Amsterdamse
Cahiers
voor
exegese
en bijbelse
theologie
6 (1985)
144-161 1986 4 6 . (with A . H . M . K e s s e l s ) 'Het V i s i o e n van D o r o t h e u s (Papyrus B o d m e r X X I X ) , ' lands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
Neder
40 (1986) 97-111
4 7 . 'Het Christendom in het R o m e i n s e rijk in d e eerste e e u w : E n k e l e s o c i a l e en g o d s diensthistorische aspecten,' Hermeneus
58 (1986) 5 8 - 6 7
4 8 . ' O n c e More: T h e Translation o f oi Se in M a t t h e w 2 8 : 1 7 , ' Journal for the Study of the New Testament
21 ( 1 9 8 6 ) 2 7 - 3 0
4 9 . 'The R o l e o f W o m e n in the Testament o f Job,' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
40
5 0 . 'Het oorlogsvraagstuk in het Christendom van de eerste drie e e u w e n , ' Lampas
19
(1986) 2 7 3 - 2 8 9 (1986)405-420
Bibliography
290
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
1970-2005
1987 5 1 . ' D e Birkat
ha-minim
in het recente onderzoek,' Ter Herkenning
15, 1 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 3 8 - 4 6
5 2 . '"Lord, H e l p the Rabbi." T h e Interpretation o f S E G X X X I 1 5 7 8 b , ' Journal Studies
3& (19*1)
5 3 . 'Profetisch charismaticus met farizeese inslag,' in: Wie is Jezus? Rondom
of
Jewish
102-106 T h e m a n u m m e r van
het Woord 2S/29 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 1 7 - 2 1
5 4 . Joods-hellenistische
poezie,
K a m p e n : Kok, 1987; 9 0 pp.
5 5 . ' A d d e n d a et Corrigenda to the first edition,' in P. W. van der Horst, Egyptian
Priest
and Stoic Philosopher,
Chaeremon,
s e c o n d edition, Leiden: Brill, 1 9 8 7 , 8 1 - 8 5
5 6 . ' E e n merkwaardige anti-joodse l e g e n d e in e e n m i d d e l e e u w s l e x i c o n , ' Ter
Herkenning
15 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 1 8 5 - 1 9 2 57. 'The Measurement o f the Body. A Chapter in the History o f A n c i e n t Jewish M y s t i c i s m , ' in D . van der Plas (ed.), Effigies
Dei. Essays
on the History
of Religions
(Supplements
to N u m e n 5 1 ) , Leiden: Brill, 1 9 8 7 , 5 6 - 6 8 5 8 . (with A . H . M . K e s s e l s ) 'The V i s i o n o f D o r o t h e u s (Pap. B o d m e r 2 9 ) . Edited with Introduction, Translation and N o t e s , ' Vigiliae
Christianae
41 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 3 1 3 - 3 5 9
1988 5 9 . ' N o v u m Testamentum et Orbis Antiquus. N o t i t i e s bij e e n n i e u w e serie,' Theologisch
Tijdschrift
6 0 . De onbekende Christendom
Nederlands
42 (1988) 6 0 - 6 6
god. Essays
over de joodse
en hellenistische
achtergrond
van het
vroege
(Utrechtse T h e o l o g i s c h e R e e k s 2 ) , Utrecht: Universiteitsdrukkerij, 1988;
2 8 5 pp. 6 1 . ' D e Samaritaanse diaspora in de oudheid,' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
42
(1988) 134-144 6 2 . ' H o e leesbaar m o e t e e n wetenschappelijke publicatie zijn?,' Areopagus
21,2 (1988)
11-12 6 3 . ' T h e U n k n o w n G o d ( A c t s 17:23),' in R. van den Broek, T. Baarda, J. M a n s f e l d (edd.), Knowledge
of God in the Graeco-Roman
World ( E P R O 112), Leiden: Brill, 1 9 8 8 ,
19-42 6 4 . ' T h e Interpretation o f the B i b l e by the M i n o r Hellenistic J e w i s h Authors,' in M . J. Mulder ( e d . ) , Mikra. Bible
in Ancient
Text, Translation,
Judaism
and Early
Reading
and Interpretation
Christianity
of the
Hebrew
( C o m p e n d i a Rerum Iudaicarum
ad N o v u m Testamentum II 1), A s s e n - Philadelphia: Van G o r c u m - Fortress, 1 9 8 8 , 519-546 6 5 . ' T h e J e w s o f A n c i e n t Crete,' Journal
of Jewish
Studies
39 (1988) 183-200
6 6 . ' E z e c h i e l Tragicus en A n o n y m u s , ' in H. Warren, M . M o l e g r a a f (edd.), Spiegel Griekse
poezie
van de oudheid
6 7 . 'Gustaaf A d o l f van den Bergh van Eysinga,' Biografisch van het Nederlandse
van de
tot heden, A m s t e r d a m : Meulenhof, 1 9 8 8 , 1 9 5 - 1 9 7
Protestantisme
Lexicon
voor de
geschiedenis
III, K a m p e n : Kok, 1 9 8 8 , 3 7 - 3 9
6 8 . ( w i t h G. M u s s i e s ) 'Subtractive Versus A d d i t i v e C o m p o s i t e N u m e r a l s in Antiquity,' Illinois
Classical
Studies
13 ( 1 9 8 8 ) 1 8 3 - 2 0 2
1989 6 9 . 'Mijn vijf favoriete r o m a n s , ' Areopagus
22, 1 (1989)48-50.
7 0 . 'Hellenistic Parallels to A c t s (Chapters 3 and 4 ) , ' Journal Testament
35 (1989) 37^16
for
the Study
of the
New
Bibliography
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
291
1970-2005
7 1 . ' J e w s and Christians in Aphrodisias in the Light o f Their Relations in Other Cities o f A s i a M i n o r , ' N e d e r l a n d s Theologisch
Tijdschrift
43 (1989) 106-121
7 2 . ' D e reis van A l e x a n d e r de Grote naar het Paradijs. E e n m i d d e l e e u w s - j o o d s e l e g e n d e o v e r A l e x a n d e r de Grote,' Ter Herkenning
17 ( 1 9 8 9 ) 1 6 - 2 4
7 3 . 'The Altar o f the ' U n k n o w n G o d ' in A t h e n s ( A c t s 17:23) and the Cult o f U n k n o w n G o d s ' in the Hellenistic and R o m a n Periods,' in Aufstieg mischen
und Niedergang
der
R6-
Welt II 18, 2 , B e r l i n - N e w York: W. de Gruyter, 1 9 8 9 , 1 4 2 6 - 1 4 5 6
7 4 . ' P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s R e v i s i t e d , ' Journal for the Study of the Pseudepigrapha
3 (1988
[appeared in 1 9 8 9 ] ) 3 - 3 0 7 5 . ' N i e u w e literatuur o v e r het)odex\Aom,'' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
43 (1989)
229-236 7 6 . 'Introduction,' in M. A . Knibb and P. W. van der Horst (edd.), Studies
on the
Testament
of Job ( S N T S M o n o g r a p h series 6 6 ) , Cambridge, Cambridge University Press, 1 9 8 9 , 1-6 77. ' I m a g e s o f W o m e n in the Testament o f Job,' ibidem
93-116
7 8 . ' G e e n ander e v a n g e l i e ? N o t i t i e s o v e r verdeeldheid in het oudste Christendom,' in A . H o u t e p e n (ed.), Breekpunten factoren
in het oecumenische
en keerpunten. proces,
Beslissende
historische
momenten
en
L e i d e n - Utrecht, IIMO, 1 9 8 9 , 5 5 - 7 0 .
1990 7 9 . (with G. M u s s i e s ) , Studies
on the Hellenistic
Background
of the New
Testament
(Utrechtse T h e o l o g i s c h e R e e k s 10), Utrecht: Rijksuniversiteit, 1 9 9 0 ; 2 4 2 pag. 8 0 . 'Het onderzoek van de v r o e g e j o o d s e m y s t i e k sinds S c h o l e m , ' Nederlands logisch
Tijdschrift
Theo
44 (1990) 121-138
8 1 . 'Sara's zaad,' MARA 3 ( 1 9 9 0 ) 4 4 - 5 2 8 2 . De Bijbelse
Geschiedenis
uit de eerste
van Pseudo-Philo;
eeuw van onze jaartelling
een joodse
hervertelling
van de
Bijbel
( N a de Schriften 7), K a m p e n : Kok, 1990; 174
pag8 3 . Essays
on the Jewish
World of Early
Christianity
( N T O A 14), Fribourg-Gottingen:
Universitatsverlag - V a n d e n h o e c k & Ruprecht, 1990; 2 5 5 pag. 8 4 . ' Z o e k d e Wijsheid. Een n i e u w v r o e g - j o o d s Wijsheidsgeschrift uit het H e b r e e u w s vertaald,' Ter Herkenning
18 ( 1 9 9 0 ) 1 7 4 - 1 9 4
8 5 . ' D i p l o m a t i c in de antieke w e r e l d , ' BZ: maandblad zaken,]x%.
van het ministerie
van
buitenlandse
17 n o . 7, sept. 1 9 9 0 , 9 - 1 0
86. 'Sarah's Seminal E m i s s i o n . H e b r e w s 11:11 in the Light o f A n c i e n t E m b r y o l o g y , ' in D . L. B a l c h - E. Ferguson - W. A . M e e k s (edd.), Greeks, says in Honor
of Abraham
J. Malherbe),
Romans,
and Christians
(Es
M i n n e a p o l i s , Fortress Press, 1990, 2 8 7 - 3 0 2
87. 'Juden und Christen in A p h r o d i s i a s im Licht ihrer B e z i e h u n g e n in anderen Stadten K l e i n a s i e n s , ' in J. van Amersfoort - J. van Oort (edd.), Juden Antike,
und Christen
in
der
K a m p e n , Kok, 1 9 9 0 , 1 2 5 - 1 4 3
88. 'Portraits o f Biblical W o m e n in P s e u d o - P h i l o ' s Liber Journal for the Study of the Pseudepigrapha
Antiquitatum
Biblicarum,''
5 ( 1 9 8 9 [appeared in 1 9 9 0 ] ) 2 9 ^ 6
8 9 . ' N i m r o d in Early J e w i s h H a g g a d a , ' in A . Kuyt - E.G.L. Schrijver - N . A . van U c h e l e n (edd.), Variety of Forms.
Dutch
Studies
in Midrash,
A m s t e r d a m : Palache Instituut,
1990, 5 9 - 7 5 9 0 . (with K. van der Toorn) ' N i m r o d Before and After the B i b l e , ' Harvard Review
83 ( 1 9 9 0 ) 1 - 2 9
Theological
292
Bibliography
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
1970-2005
1991 9 1 . ' " D e waarachtige en niet met handen gemaakte God": naar aanleiding van e e n n i e u w e inscriptie,' Nederlands 9 2 . Ancient Jewish Epigraphy
Epitaphs.
Theologisch
An Introductory
Tijdschrift
45 (1991) 177-182
Survey ofa Millennium
of Jewish
Funerary
(300 BCE - 700 CE), K a m p e n : Kok-Pharos, 1 9 9 1 ; 180 pag.
9 3 . Het Nieuwe
Testament
en de Joodse
grafinscripties
uit de hellenistisch-romeinse
tijd
(Utrechtse T h e o l o g i s c h e R e e k s 12), Utrecht: Rijksuniversiteit, 1 9 9 1 ; 3 0 pag. 9 4 . 'Jacob Frank: de bizarre ware Jacob,' Trouw 10 d e c e m b e r 1 9 9 1 , 10 9 5 . ' W i l l e m Cornells van Unnik,' Random
het Woord33,A
(1991) 3 0 - 3 4
1992 9 6 . ' D i d Sarah H a v e a Seminal E m i s s i o n ? , ' Bible Review
8,1 ( 1 9 9 2 ) 3 5 - 3 9
9 7 . 'Israel, d e Bijbel en de hellenistische culruur en instituties,' Schrift
139 ( 1 9 9 2 )
26-30 9 8 . ' A N e w Altar o f a Godfearer?,' Journal
of Jewish
Studies
43 (1992) 3 2 - 3 7
9 9 . 'Notifies bij het thema: v r o u w e n in het v r o e g e j o d e n d o m , ' Kerk
& Theologie
43
(1992)113-129 100. 'Gij zult van g o d e n g e e n k w a a d spreken.' D e Septuaginta-vertaling van E x o d u s 2 2 : 2 7 ( 2 8 ) , haar achtergrond en i n v l o e d , ' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
46
(1992)192-198 101. ' J e w i s h Funerary Inscriptions: M o s t are in Greek,' Biblical
Archaeology
Review
18,5 ( 1 9 9 2 ) 4 6 - 5 7 102. 'Corpus H e l l e n i s t i c u m N o v i Testamenti,' The Anchor
Bible Dictionary
(= ABD)
I
(1992)1157-1161 103. 'Ezekiel the Tragedian,',4 5 D 2 ( 1 9 9 2 ) 7 0 9 104. ' P h o c y l i d e s , P s e u d o - , ' ABD 5 ( 1 9 9 2 ) 3 4 7 - 3 4 8 105. ' S h a d o w , ' ABD 5 ( 1 9 9 2 ) 1 1 4 8 - 1 1 5 0 106. ' D a s N e u e Testament und die jiidische Grabinschriften aus hellenistisch-romischer Zeit,' Biblische
Zeitschrift
N F 36 (1992) 161-178
107. 'Het recept van G a m a l i e l , ' Ter Herkenning
20 (1992) 118-122
108. ' D e b o r a h and S e i l a in Ps-Philo's Liber Antiquitatum Biblicarum,' in I. Gruenwald, S. Shaked, G. Stroumsa (edd.), Messiah of Christianity 109. Studies
Presented
over het jodendom
to David
and Christos.
Flusser,
in de oudheid,
Studies
in the Jewish
Origins
Tubingen 1992, 111-118 K a m p e n : Kok, 1 9 9 2 ; 2 2 4 pp.
110. "I G a v e T h e m L a w s That Were N o t G o o d . ' Ezekiel 2 0 : 2 5 in A n c i e n t Judaism and Early Christianity,' in J. N . B r e m m e r & F. Garcia Martinez (edd.), Sacred
History
and Sacred
Woude,
Texts in Early Judaism.
A Symposium
in Honour
of A. S. van der
K a m p e n , K o k Pharos, 1 9 9 2 , 9 4 - 1 1 8 111. 'Wat m o e t e n wij met Paulus?,' in H. P o o l e.a. (edd.), Honderd sexualiteit
vragen
over
homo-
en kerk, G o r i n c h e m 1 9 9 2 , 1 3 - 1 4
112. ' T w o Short N o t e s o n Josephus,' Studia Philonica
Annual
4 (1992) 5 9 - 6 4
1993 113. Vorwort, Einleitung, FuBnoten, A p p e n d i z e s und Register in: W i l l e m Cornells van Unnik, Das Selbstverstdndnis Zeit,
der jiidischen
Diaspora
in der
hellenistisch-romischen
aus d e m NachlaB h e r a u s g e g e b e n und bearbeitet v o n P. W. van der Horst
(Arbeiten zur G e s c h i c h t e des Antiken Judentums und d e s Urchristentums X V I I ) , Leiden: Brill, 1 9 9 3 ; 2 0 0 pag.
Bibliography
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
293
1970-2005
114. ' H o w M a n y J e w s S p o k e Greek? A R e p l y to Mr. C h a p m a n , ' Biblical Review
Archaeology
19(1993)70-72
115. (under p s e u d o n y m [ W i m S l e n k ] ) Epafras.
Het verhaal
van een vreemde
bekering,
G o r i n c h e m : Narratio, 1 9 9 3 ; 4 8 pag. 116. 'Einige B e o b a c h t u n g e n z u m T h e m a 'Frauen im antiken Judentum',' Berliner logische
Zeitschrift
117. 'Tamar in P s e u d o - P h i l o ' s Biblical panion
Theo-
10 ( 1 9 9 3 ) 7 7 - 9 3
to Genesis
History,''
in A . Brenner (ed.), A Feminist
Com
[The F e m i n i s t C o m p a n i o n to the B i b l e 2 ] , Sheffield: Sheffield
A c a d e m i c Press, 1 9 9 3 , 3 0 0 - 3 0 5 118. ' A N o t e o n the Judas Curse in Early Christian Inscriptions,' Orientalia Periodica
Christiana
59 (1993) 211-215
119. 'Jesus and the J e w s according to the Suda,' Zeitschrift Wissenschaft
fur die
neutestamentliche
84 (1993) 2 6 8 - 2 7 7
120. 'Philo Alexandrinus o v e r de toorn G o d s , ' in A . de Jong & A . de Jong (edd.), encyclopedic
van de toorn,
Kleine
Utrecht: Universitaire pers, 1 9 9 3 , 7 7 - 8 2
121. '"Thou shalt not revile the g o d s . " T h e LXX-translation o f Ex. 2 2 : 2 8 ( 2 7 ) , its back ground and influence,' Studia
Philonica
Annual
5 ( 1 9 9 3 ) 1-8
122. 'Johann Jakob Wettstein nach 3 0 0 Jahren: Erbe und Auftrag,' Theologische schrift
Zeit
49 (1993)267-281
123. ' H e l l e n i s m , ' in A . D . C r o w n , R. P u m m e r & A . Tal (edd.), A Companion
to
Samaritan
124. 'Jewish Metrical Epitaphs,' in J. den B o e f t & A . Hilhorst (edd), Early
Christian
Studies,
Tubingen: Mohr, 1 9 9 3 , 1 1 7 - 1 1 8
Poetry,
Leiden: Brill, 1 9 9 3 , 1 - 1 4 .
125. ' D e pelgrim van Bordeaux: het oudste verslag van e e n christelijke p e l g r i m a g e naar het H e i l i g e Land ( A D 3 3 3 ) , ' Ter Herkenning 126. ' W o m e n in A n c i e n t Judaism,' Theology
21 ( 1 9 9 3 ) 2 1 7 - 2 2 5
Digest
40 (1993) 211-216
1994 127. 'Introduction,' in J. W. van Henten & P. W. van der Horst (edd.), Studies Jewish
Epigraphy
in
Early
( A G A J U 2 1 ) , Leiden: Brill, 1 9 9 4 , 1-8
128. 'Jewish Poetical Tomb Inscriptions,' in J. W. van Henten & P. W. van der Horst (edd.), Studies
in Early Jewish
Epigraphy
129. 'Silent Prayer in Antiquity,' Numen
( A G A J U 2 1 ) , Leiden: Brill, 1 9 9 4 , 1 2 9 - 1 4 7 41 ( 1 9 9 4 ) 1 - 2 5
130. 'Johann Jakob Wettstein na 3 0 0 jaar: erfenis en opdracht,' Nederlands Tijdschrift4$
(\994)
Theologisch
1-11
131. 'Het lot van Judas in vroegchristelijke grafinscripties,' Kerk en Theologie
45 (1994)
138-142 132. ' O n t w i k k e l i n g e n in de v r o e g e j o o d s e a n g e l o l o g i e , ' Nederlands schrift
Theologisch
Tijd
48(1994)141-150
133. ' T w o N o t e s o n H e l l e n i s t i c Lore in Early R a b b i n i c Literature,' Jewish Quarterly 134. Hellenism
Studies
1 (1993/94) 2 5 2 - 2 6 2 - Judaism
- Christianity.
Essays
on Their Interaction
(Contributions to
Biblical E x e g e s i s and T h e o l o g y 8), K a m p e n : K o k Pharos, 1994; 3 0 0 pp. 135. Gebeden
uit de antieke
sten in het Nederlands
wereld. vertaald
Grieks-Romeinse, en toegelicht,
Joodse
en Christelijke
136. ' T h e Birkat h a - m i n i m in R e c e n t R e s e a r c h , ' The Expository 363-368
gebedstek-
K a m p e n : K o k , 1994; 115 pp. Times
105 ( 1 9 9 4 )
294
Bibliography
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
1970-2005
137. ' T h e o l o g i e als niet-kerkelijke w e t e n s c h a p , ' in F.G.M. Broeyer & T. van Willigenburg (red.), Facultas
Theologica:
soror sororum!
Opstellen
over theologie
en
universiteit
(Utrechtse T h e o l o g i s c h e R e e k s 2 7 ) , Utrecht: Universiteit, 1 9 9 4 , 7 3 - 8 5 . 138. 'Samaritans and H e l l e n i s m , ' Studia Philonica
Annual
6 (1994) 2 8 - 3 6
1995 139. ' S e x , Birth, Purity and A s c e t i s m in the Protevangelium Journal
of the New Testament
Society
of South Africa
Jacobi,''
in
Neoteslamentica:
28,3 (1994/5) 2 0 5 - 2 1 8
140. ' M a x i m u s van Tyrus' tractaat o v e r het g e b e d , ' Hermeneus
67 (1995) 11-16
141. ' H e r m i a s ' satire o p de Griekse filosofie. E e n N e d e r l a n d s e vertaling van de gentilium
philosophorum,'
Kerk en Theologie
Irrisio
46 (1995) 155-164
142. ' M a x i m u s van Tyrus o v e r het g e b e d , ' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
49 (1995)
12-23 143. ' I m a g e s o f W o m e n in A n c i e n t Judaism,' in: R. K l o p p e n b o r g & W. J. Hanegraaff ( e d d . ) , Female
Stereotypes
in Religious
Traditions
( S t u d i e s in the History o f
R e l i g i o n s 6 6 ) , Leiden: Brill, 1 9 9 5 , 4 3 - 6 0 144. Het leven taald,
van Simeon
ingeleid
de pilaarheilige.
en toegelicht
De twee Griekse
levensbeschrijvingen
ver-
(Utrechtse T h e o l o g i s c h e R e e k s 3 0 ) , Utrecht: Univer
siteit, 1 9 9 5 ; 6 0 pag. 145. ' G e b e d e n uit de antieke w e r e l d , ' Rondom
het Woord 3 7 , 2 ( 1 9 9 5 ) 2 1 - 2 5
146. ' D e J o d e n v a n N a p e l s in de R o m e i n s e keizertijd,' Ter Herkenning
23 (1995)
55-64 147. Woestijn,
begeerte
en geloof. Het leven van de eerste
monniken
in Egypte.
D e Hi
storia m o n a c h o r u m in A e g y p t o (ca. 4 0 0 na Chr.) vertaald e n t o e g e l i c h t (Christelijke bronnen 8), K a m p e n : Kok, 1 9 9 5 ; 126 pp. 148. ' A n a n k e , ' in K. van der Toorn, B . B e c k i n g & P. W. van der Horst (edd.), of Deities
and Demons
149. ' C h a o s , ' DDD 150. ' D i k e , ' DDD
in the Bible (= DDD),
354-356 476-480
1 5 1 . ' D o m i n i o n , ' DDD
498-500
152. 'Father o f the Lights,' DDD 153. ' G o d (II),' DDD
156. ' L a m b , ' DDD
620-621
692-699
154. ' H o s i o s kai D i k a i o s , ' DDD 155. ' H y l e , ' DDD
Dictionary
Leiden: Brill, 1 9 9 5 , 6 0 - 6 2
810-812
819-820 938-941
157. ' M a m m o n , ' D D D 1 0 1 2 - 1 0 1 4 158. ' T h a n a t o s , ' D D D 1 6 0 9 - 1 6 1 3 159. ' T h e m i s , ' D D D 1 6 1 3 - 1 6 1 4 160. ' U n k n o w n G o d , ' D D D 1 6 6 4 - 1 6 7 0 1 6 1 . ' Introduction,' in P. W. van der Horst (ed.), Aspects in the Ancient
of Religious
Contact
and
Conflict
World (Utrechtse T h e o l o g i s c h e R e e k s 3 1 ) , Utrecht: T h e o l o g i s c h e
Faculteit, 1 9 9 5 , 1 1 - 1 5 162. ' J e w i s h Self-Definition by Way o f Contrast in Oracula ibidem
Sibyllina
III 2 1 8 - 2 4 7 , '
147-166
163. ' Gottesfurchtige,' Lexikon fur Theologie
und Kirche
4(1995)914—915
Bibliography
ofPieter
W. van der Horst, 1970-2005
295
1996 164. (with G. M u s s i e s ) ' A Greek Christian Epitaph in Utrecht,' Zeitschrift und Epigraphik 110 ( 1 9 9 6 ) 2 8 5 - 2 8 9
fur
Papyrologie
165. 'Sarah's Seminal E m i s s i o n : H e b r e w s 11:11 in the Light o f A n c i e n t E m b r y o l o g y , ' in A . Brenner (ed.), A Feminist Companion to the Hebrew Bible in the New Testament, Sheffield: Sheffield A c a d e m i c Press, 1 9 9 6 , 1 1 2 - 1 3 4 [ s e e n o . 8 6 ] 166. ' E x e g e t i s c h e notities o v e r Maria in het Protevangelium logisch Tijdschrift 5 0 ( 1 9 9 6 ) 1 0 8 - 1 2 1 167. ' N i e z e n als o m e n in d e antieke w e r e l d , ' Hermeneus
Jacobi'
Nederlands
Theo
68 (1996) 179-181
168. 'Korte notities over het g o d s b e g r i p bij Grieken e n R o m e i n e n e n d e vergoddelijking van Jezus in het N i e u w e Testament,' Bijdragen: tijdschrift voorfilosofie en theologie 57 (1996) 1 4 9 - 1 5 7 169. '"A S i m p l e Philosophy." A l e x a n d e r o f L y c o p o l i s o n Christianity,' in K. A . Algra, P. W. v a n der Horst & D . T. Runia (edd.), Polyhistor. Studies in the History and Historiography of Ancient Philosophy Presented to Jaap Mansfeld on his Sixtieth Birthday (Philosophia Antiqua 7 2 ) , L e i d e n - N e w York-Koln: Brill, 1 9 9 6 , 3 1 3 - 3 2 9 170. 'Inscriptions (Greek),' in: J. N e u s n e r and W.S. Green (edd.), Dictionary of in the Biblical Period, 2 v o l s . , N e w York: M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 9 6 , 1 : 3 1 5 - 3 1 6
Judaism
171. 'The Distinctive Vocabulary o f J o s e p h u s ' Contra Apionem,' in L.H. Feldman & J.R. L e v i s o n (edd.), Josephus' Contra A p i o n e m : Studies in its Character and Context ( A G A J U 3 4 ) , Leiden: Brill, 1 9 9 6 , 8 3 - 9 3 172. 'Johannes v o n Gischala,' Lexikon fur Theologie 173. 'Judas der Galilaer,' Lexikon fur Theologie
undKirche
und Kirche
5 (1996) 910
5 (1996) 1024
174. ' M a x i m u s o f Tyre o n Prayer. A n Annotated Translation o f Ei 6e! EvyzoQai (Dissertatio 5 ) , ' in H. Cancik, H. Lichtenberger & P. Schafer (edd.), Geschichte Tradition - Reflexion: Festschrift fur Martin Hengel zum 70. Geburtstag, 3 v o l s . , Tubingen: Mohr, 1996, Vol. 2: 3 2 3 - 3 3 8 1997 175. 'Plato's angst als m o t i e f in d e oudchristelijke apologetiek,' Nederlands Tijdschrift 51 ( 1 9 9 7 ) 1 - 1 2 176. Bronnen bronnen,
voor de studie van de wereld van het vroege K a m p e n : K o k , 1997; 2 6 8 pp.
177. Bronnen bronnen,
voor de studie van de wereld van het vroege K a m p e n : K o k , 1997; 2 7 2 pp.
178. ' D e hel: e e n proces v a n loutering,' Rondom
Theologisch
Christendom, deel 1: Christendom, deel 2:
Joodse Pagane
het Woord 3 9 ( 1 9 9 7 ) 34—39
179. 'Hellenistic Parallels to the A c t s o f the A p o s t l e s , ' in: C. A . E v a n s & S. E. Porter (edd.), New Testament Backgrounds. A Sheffield Reader, Sheffield: Sheffield A c a d e m i c Press, 1997, 2 0 7 - 2 2 9 180. ' N o t e s o n the Aramaic B a c k g r o u n d o f Luke 2 : 4 1 - 5 2 , ' in: S. E. Porter & C. A . Evans (edd.), New Testament Text and Language. A Sheffield Reader, Sheffield: Sheffield A c a d e m i c Press, 1997, 2 3 5 - 2 4 0 181. ' H e t g e b e d in het v r o e g e j o d e n d o m , ' Nieuwsbulletin Stichting 1997,4-15 182. ' P s e u d o - P h i l o , ' Theologische
Realenzyklopddie
van de Willem
C. van
Unnik
XXVII (1997) 670-672
183. ' T h e Finger o f G o d . M i s c e l l a n e o u s N o t e s o n Luke 11:20 and its Umwelt? in: W. L. Petersen, J. S. V o s , H. J. d e Jonge (edd.), Sayings of Jesus: Canonical & Non-
296
Bibliography
Canonical.
Essays
of Pieter
in Honour
W. van der Horst,
ofTjitze
Baarda
1970-2005
( S u p p l e m e n t s to N o v u m Testamentum
8 9 ) , Leiden: Brill, 1 9 9 7 , 8 9 - 1 0 4 1998 184. 'Plato's Fear as a Topic in Early Christian A p o l o g e t i c s , ' Journal Studies
of Early
Christian
6 (1998) 1-14
185. 'Het A c h t t i e n g e b e d in het Grieks?,' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
52 (1998)
124-138 186. 'Herman van der Horst,' Biografisch landse
Protestantisme
Lexicon
voor de Geschiedenis
187. 'Papyrus Egerton 5: Christian or J e w i s h ? , ' Zeitschrift graphik
van het
Neder-
4 , K a m p e n : Kok, 1998, 2 2 0 - 2 2 1 fur
Papyrologie
und
Epi-
121 ( 1 9 9 8 ) 1 7 3 - 1 8 2
188. Hellenism
- Judaism
- Christianity:
Essays
on Their Interaction,
s e c o n d enlarged
edition, L e u v e n : Peeters, 1998; 3 4 2 pp. [see n o . 134] 189. ' N e g l e c t e d Greek E v i d e n c e for Early Jewish Liturgical Prayer,' Journal for the of Judaism
Study
29 (1998) 2 7 8 - 2 9 6
190. 'Laat staan de hartstochten,' Trouw 5 sept. 1 9 9 8 , 19 191. De
Woestijnvaders.
Levensverhalen
van kluizenaars
uit het vroege
Christendom,
A m s t e r d a m : Prometheus, 1998; 2 8 5 pp. 192. 'Maria, d e j o o d s e a l c h e m i s t e , ' Areopagus 193. ' D e Septuaginta,' Hermeneus 194. ' A g n o s t o s T h e o s , ' Religion
n.s. 2,3 ( 1 9 9 8 ) 13
70 (1998) 266-271 in Geschichte
und Gegenwart,
B a n d I, 4. Aufl.
(=RGG
4
I ) , T u b i n g e n 1 9 9 8 , 188 4
195. ' A l e x a n d e r v o n L y k o p o l i s , ' RGG I , 2 8 8 4
196. ' A p h r o d i s i a s , ' RGG I , 5 8 4 4
197. ' A p o l o g e t i k (Judentum, hellenistisch),' RGG I , 6 1 2 4
198. ' A r e o p a g r e d e , ' i ? G G I , 7 1 8 - 7 1 9 4
199. 'Aristeas ( E x e g e t ) , ' RGG I , 7 2 6 4
2 0 0 . 'Aristobul,' RGG I , 7 2 8 4
2 0 1 . ' Artapanos,' RGG I , 7 9 7 2 0 2 . 'Sortes:
Sacred B o o k s as Instant Oracles in Late Antiquity,' in L.V. Rutgers, P.W. van
der Horst, H.W. Havelaar, L. Teugels (eds.), The Use of Sacred
Books
in the
Ancient
World (Contributions to Biblical E x e g e s i s and T h e o l o g y 2 2 ) , L e u v e n : Peeters, 1 9 9 8 , 143-174 2 0 3 . ' H o e H e n o c h g o d w e r d , ' Prana: der wetenschappen
tijdschrift
voor spiritualiteit
en de
randgebieden
110 ( d e c e m b e r 1 9 9 8 ) 5 8 - 6 0
1999 2 0 4 . ' A d a m , ' in K. van der Toorn, B . B e c k i n g & P. W. van der Horst (eds.), of Deities
and Demons
in the Bible,
2
Leiden: Brill - Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1 9 9 9 , 5 - 6 2
205. ' A m a z o n s , ' D D D , 2 7 - 2 8 2
2 0 6 . 'Eros,' D D D , 3 0 4 - 3 0 6 2
2 0 7 . 'Evil Inclination,' D D D , 3 1 7 - 3 1 9 2
208. 'Hypnos,' D D D , 438^139 2 0 9 . ' D e eerste atheist,' Nederlands
Dictionary
s e c o n d e x t e n s i v e l y revised edition ( = D D D ) ,
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
53 (1999) 4 2 - 4 9
Bibliography
2 1 0 . Het Boek der Hemelse oudheid,
of Pieter
Paleizen
W. van der Horst,
(3 Henoch):
297
J970-2005
een joods
mystiek
geschrift
uit de
late
uit het H e b r e e u w s vertaald en toegelicht (Joodse B r o n n e n 2 ) , K a m p e n :
Kok, 1999; 116 pp. 2 1 1 . ' W e g van de w e r e l d , ' Rondom
het Woord41,1
(1999) 4 7 - 5 7
2 1 2 . 'The Greek S y n a g o g u e Prayers in the A p o s t o l i c Constitutions, b o o k VII,' in J. Tabory ( e d . ) , From Qumran
to Cairo.
Studies
in the History
of Prayer,
Jerusalem:
Orchot, 1 9 9 9 , 19^16 2 1 3 . Sortes:
hetgebruik
van heilige
boeken
als lotsorakels
in de
oudheid(Mededelingen
van d e A f d e l i n g Letterkunde van d e Koninklijke N e d e r l a n d s e A k a d e m i e van Wetenschappen, N i e u w e reeks, deel 6 2 , no. 3 ) , A m s t e r d a m : K N A W , 1999; 4 0 pp. 2 1 4 . 'Was the S y n a g o g u e a P l a c e o f Sabbath Worship B e f o r e 7 0 C E ? , ' in S. Fine (ed.), Jews, during
Christians,
and Polytheists
the Graeco-Roman
Period,
in the Ancient
Synagogue.
Cultural
Interaction
L o n d o n - N e w York: R o u t l e d g e , 1 9 9 9 , 1 8 - 4 3
2 1 5 . 'Was de s y n a g o g e v o o r 7 0 e e n plaats van eredienst op sabbat?,' Bijdragen
60 (1999)
125-146 2 1 6 . ' D e woestijnvaders: spiritualiteit, begeerte en a s c e s e in de v r o e g e kerk,' Kunst wetenschap
en
8, nr.3 ( 1 9 9 9 ) 9 - 1 0
2 1 7 . (with J. Laenen) ' D e h e m e l s e reis,' Rondom
het Woord A\, nr.3 ( 1 9 9 9 ) 3 8 - 4 3
2 1 8 . " L e e r h e m de P s a l m e n , want ik heb h e m n o d i g ! ' D e Bijbel in het werk van Cyrillus van S k y t h o p o l i s , ' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
53 ( 1 9 9 9 ) 2 7 4 - 2 8 5
2000 2 1 9 . ' A n c i e n t J e w i s h B i b l i o m a n c y , ' Journal
of Graeco-Roman
Christianity
and
Judaism
1(2000)9-17 2 2 0 . Mozes,
Plato, Jezus. Studies
over de wereld
van het vroege Christendom,
Amsterdam:
Prometheus, 2 0 0 0 ; 2 8 2 pp. 2 2 1 . ' M e s s i a n i s m e en g e b e d in de rollen van de D o d e Z e e . Een bespreking,' Theologisch
Tijdschrift
Nederlands
54 (2000) 35-47
2 2 2 . ' J o z e f en A s e n e t , ' Schrift
187 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 2 5 - 2 7
2 2 3 . ' E v e in the N e w Testament,' 'Rebekah in the N e w Testament,' ' W i f e o f Lot,' 'Pro p h e s y i n g Daughters,' in C. M e y e r s e.a. (eds.), Women in Scripture,
Boston - N e w
York: H o u g h t o n Mifflin C o m p a n y , 2 0 0 0 , 8 4 , 1 4 4 - 5 , 4 4 8 , 4 5 7 - 8 2 2 4 . (with L. Teugels) ' D e t o e k o m s t van d e j o o d s e studien aan N e d e r l a n d s e t h e o l o g i s c h e faculteiten,' Areopagus
4,2 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 1 8 - 2 0
2 2 5 . 'Christelijke w o e s t i j n h e i l i g e n in het antieke Nabije O o s t e n , ' Phoenix
46 (2000)
26-37 2 2 6 . '"Pas dan zal heel Israel gered w o r d e n . " H o e m o e t R o m e i n e n 11:26 vertaald w o r d e n ? , ' Kerk en Theologie
51 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 1 8 3 - 1 8 8
2 2 7 . ' J e w s and Christians in A n t i o c h at the End o f the Fourth Century,' in S.E. Porter & B.W.R. Pearson (eds.), Christian-Jewish
Relations
Through the Centuries,
Sheffield:
Sheffield A c a d e m i c Press, 2 0 0 0 , 2 2 8 - 2 3 8 2 2 8 . 'Telkens n i e u w e v o r m e n , ' Rondom
het Woord42,
2 (2000) 50-55
2 2 9 . '"Only Then Will All Israel B e Saved": A Short N o t e o n the M e a n i n g o f x a i oikcog in R o m a n s 1 1 : 2 6 , ' J o u r n a l of Biblical
Literature
119 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 5 2 1 - 5 2 5
230. 'Wisdom From Time Immemorial: Ancient Speculations About K n o w l e d g e , ' in: C. Kroon & D . den H e n g s t (eds.), Ultima Transience
in the Ancient
World. Studies
V U University Press, 2 0 0 0 , 9 5 - 1 0 6
in Honour
Aetas:
Antediluvian
Time, Tense
of Jan den Boeft,
and
Amsterdam:
298
Bibliography
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
1970-2005
2 3 1 . ' B i b l i o m a n c y , ' in C.A. E v a n s & S.E. Porter (eds.), Dictionary Background,
of New
Testament
D o w n e r s G r o v e & Leicester: InterVarsity Press, 2 0 0 0 , 1 6 5 - 1 6 7
2 3 2 . ' J e w i s h Literature: Historians and P o e t s , ' in C.A. E v a n s & S.E. Porter ( e d s . ) , Dictionary
of New Testament
Background,
D o w n e r s G r o v e & Leicester: InterVarsity
Press, 2 0 0 0 , 5 8 0 - 5 8 4 2 3 3 . 'Maria the J e w i s h A l c h e m i s t , ' in C.A. E v a n s & S.E. Porter (eds.), Dictionary New Testament
Background,
of
D o w n e r s G r o v e & Leicester: InterVarsity Press, 2 0 0 0 ,
679-680 2 3 4 . (with M.F.G. Parmentier) 'Een n i e u w oudchristelijk geschrift o v e r het offer van Izaak,' Bijdragen
61 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 2 4 3 - 2 6 0
2 3 5 . ' D e t o e k o m s t van de j o o d s e studien aan N e d e r l a n d s e t h e o l o g i s c h e faculteiten,' in R. Fontaine, E. Schrijver & I. Z w i e p (red.), De toekomst Nederland,
van de joodse
studies
in
A m s t e r d a m : M e n a s s e h ben Israel Instituut, 2 0 0 0 , 2 9 - 3 7
2001 2 3 6 . 'Celibaat in het v r o e g e j o d e n d o m , ' Kerk & Theologie
52 (2001) 2 2 - 3 2
2 3 7 . ' V r o e g j o o d s e m y s t i e k e interpretaties van m o t i e v e n in E x o d u s , ' Schrift
194 ( 2 0 0 1 )
56-58 2 3 8 . ' H e t graf van de profetes Hulda in de j o o d s e traditie,' Nederlands Tijdschrift
Theologisch
55 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 9 1 - 9 6
2 3 9 . ' W i l l e m Cornelis van Unnik,' Biografisch Nederlandse 2 4 0 . Deprofeten.
Protestantisme Joodse
Lexicon
voor de Geschiedenis
van
het
V, K a m p e n : Kok, 2 0 0 1 , 5 1 4 - 5 1 6
en christelijke
legenden
uit de oudheid,
Amsterdam: A t h e n a e u m
- Polak & van G e n n e p , 2 0 0 1 ; 188 pp. 2 4 1 . 'The Samaritan L a n g u a g e s in the Pre-Islamic Period,' Journal Judaism
for
the Study
of
32 (2001) 178-192
2 4 2 . 'Greek in J e w i s h Palestine in Light o f J e w i s h Epigraphy,' in J.J. C o l l i n s & G.E. Sterling (eds.), Hellenism
in the Land of Israel,
N o t r e D a m e : University o f N o t r e
D a m e Press, 2 0 0 1 , 1 5 4 - 1 7 4 2 4 3 . Die Prophetengrdber
im antiken Judentum
(Franz-Delitzsch-Vorlesung 2 0 0 0 ) , M u n -
ster: Institutum Judaicum D e l i t z s c h i a n u m , 2 0 0 1 ; 2 8 pp. 2 4 4 . 'Judaica en Samaritana: e e n besprekingsartikel,' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
55 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 3 2 8 - 3 3 2 2 4 5 . ' D e Magistro: W i l l e m Cornelis van Unnik ( 1 9 1 0 - 1 9 1 % ) , ' Areopagus
5 , 4 (dec. 2 0 0 1 )
26-28 2002 2 4 6 . ' D e s y n a g o g e van Sardis en haar inscripties,' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
56
(2002)16-26 2 4 7 . ' T h e R o l e o f Scripture in Cyril o f S c y t h o p o l i s ' Lives of the Monks of Palestine,'' Patrich ( e d . ) , The Sabaite to the Present,
Heritage
in the Orthodox
Church from
the Fifth
in J. Century
L e u v e n : Peeters, 2 0 0 1 [published in 2 0 0 2 ] , 1 2 7 - 1 4 5
2 4 8 . 'Jezus in de j o o d s e literatuur van de oudheid,' Spiegel
Historiael
3 7 ( 2 0 0 2 ) 122—
127 2 4 9 . Japheth
in the Tents of Shem.
Studies
on Jewish
Hellenism
in Antiquity
(Con
tributions to Biblical E x e g e s i s and T h e o l o g y 3 2 ) , L e u v e n : Peeters, 2 0 0 2 ; 2 7 2 pp. 2 5 0 . ' W h o W a s A p i o n ? , ' in Japheth
in the Tents of Shem
2 5 1 . 'Samaritans at R o m e ? , ' in Japheth
207-221
in the Tents of Shem
251-260
Bibliography
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
299
1970-2005
2 5 2 . (with M.F.G. Parmentier) ' A N e w Early Christian P o e m o n the Sacrifice o f Isaac,' in A . Hurst & J. Rudhardt ( e d s . ) , Le Codex des Visions ( R e c h e r c h e s et rencontres 18), G e n e v e : Librairie D r o z , 2 0 0 2 , 1 5 5 - 1 7 2 2 5 3 . ' A p i o n , 'cimbaal van de w e r e l d ' , ' Lampas
35 (2002) 2 2 8 - 2 4 1
2 5 4 . ' C e l i b a c y in Early Judaism,' Revue Biblique 2 5 5 . 'Celibato en el Judaismo A n t i g u o , ' Sefarad
109 ( 2 0 0 2 ) 3 9 0 - 4 0 2 62 (2002) 8 5 - 9 8
2 5 6 . ' S h o m r o n i m w e - h i t y a w a n u t ' [Hebr.], in E. Stern & H. Eshel (eds.), Sefer
ha-Shom-
ronim [ B o o k o f the Samaritans], Jerusalem: Yad B e n - Z v i Press, 2 0 0 2 , 1 8 4 - 1 9 1 2 5 7 . 'Maria A l c h e m i s t a , the First F e m a l e J e w i s h Author,' Zutot: Culture
Perspectives
on
Jewish
2 0 0 1 [published in 2 0 0 2 ] , 4 4 - 4 7
2 5 8 . 'Antediluvian K n o w l e d g e : J e w i s h Speculations A b o u t W i s d o m From Before the F l o o d in Their A n c i e n t C o n t e x t , ' in H. Lichtenberger & G.S. O e g e m a (eds.), Jiidische
Schriften
in ihrem
antik-judischen
und urchristlichen
Kontext,
Gutersloh:
Gutersloher Verlagshaus, 2 0 0 2 , 1 6 3 - 1 8 1 2 5 9 . ' M a m m o n , ' Religion
in Geschichte
und Gegenwart,
B a n d V, 4. Aufi., Tubingen:
M o h r Siebeck, 2 0 0 2 , 7 2 0 - 7 2 1 2 6 0 . 'Joden en h o o l i g a n s in de late o u d h e i d , ' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
56
(2002)273-279 2 6 1 . 'The First P o g r o m : Alexandria 3 8 C E , ' European
Review
10 ( 2 0 0 2 ) 4 6 9 ^ 8 4
2003 2 6 2 . 'Het grafschrift van Jakobus, de broer van J e z u s ? , ' Nederlands schrift
Theologisch
Tijd
5 7 ( 2 0 0 3 ) 1-9
2 6 3 . 'The Last J e w i s h Patriarch(s) and G r e c o - R o m a n M e d i c i n e , ' in M . M o r a . o . (eds.), Jews and Gentiles
in the Holy Land in the Days of the Second
Temple,
the
Mishnah
and the Talmud, Jerusalem: Yad B e n - Z v i Press, 2 0 0 3 , 8 7 - 9 6 2 6 4 . ' N o v a Judaica. Een overzicht van e n k e l e belangrijke recente publicaties,' Kerk Theologie
2 6 5 . ' C o m m o n Prayer in Philo's In Flaccum agogue
en
54 (2003) 143-159 1 2 1 - 1 2 4 , ' Kenishta:
Studies
of the
Syn
World, ed. J. Tabory, vol. 2 , Bar Ilan University Press, 2 0 0 3 , 2 1 - 2 8
2 6 6 . 'Anti-Samaritan Propaganda in Early Judaism,' in P.W. van der Horst e.a. (eds.), Persuasion
and Dissuasion
in Early
Christianity,
Ancient
Judaism,
and
Hellenism
(Contributions to Biblical E x e g e s i s and T h e o l o g y 3 3 ) , L e u v e n : Peeters, 2 0 0 3 , 25-44 2 6 7 . " H i s D a y s Shall B e O n e Hundred and T w e n t y Years': G e n e s i s 6:3 in Early Judaism and A n c i e n t Christianity,' Zutot: Perspectives
on Jewish
Culture
2 0 0 2 [published in
2003] 18-23 2 6 8 . ' A N o t e o n the Evil Inclination and Sexual D e s i r e in Talmudic Literature,' in U. Mittmann-Richert, F. A v e m a r i e & G . S . O e g e m a ( e d s . ) , Der Forschungen
zum Menschenbild
fur Hermann
Lichtenberger
in Bibel, antikem
zum 60. Geburtstag),
Judentum
Mensch
und Koran
vor
Gott.
(Festschrift
Neukirchen: Neukirchener Verlag,
2003,99-106 2 6 9 . ' J e w s and B l u e s in Late Antiquity,' in D . Accorinti & P. C h u v i n (edd.), Des a Dionysos.
Melanges
de mythologie
et de poesie
grecques
offerts
Geants
a Francis
Vian,
Alessandria: Edizioni dell' Orso, 2 0 0 3 , 5 6 5 - 5 7 2 2 7 0 . Philo's
Flaccus: The First
Pogrom.
Introduction,
Translation
and
Commentary
(Philo o f Alexandria C o m m e n t a r y Series 2 ) , Leiden: Brill, 2 0 0 3 ; X I I + 2 7 8 pp.
300
Bibliography
2 7 1 . Joden
of Pieter
in de Grieks-Romeinse
W. van der Horst,
wereld.
Vijftien
1970-2005
miniaturen
(Utrechtse Studies 5 ) ,
Zoetermeer: M e i n e m a , 2 0 0 3 ; 170 pp. 2 7 2 . 'Der Zolibat im Fruhjudentum,' i n W . Kraus & K.-W. N i e b u h r ( h r s g g . ) , F r i i h j u d e n t u m und Neues
Testament
im Horizont
Biblischer
Theologie
(Wissenschaftliche Unter-
s u c h u n g e n z u m N e u e n Testament 162), Tubingen: M o h r S i e b e c k , 2 0 0 3 , 3 - 1 4 2004 2 7 3 . ' N o g m a a l s : het grafschrift van Jakobus, de broer van Jezus,' Nederlands logisch
Tijdschrift
Theo
58 (2004) 18-27
2 7 4 . ' P s e u d o - P h o c y l i d e s o n the Afterlife: A Rejoinder to John J. C o l l i n s , ' Journal for Study of Judaism
the
35 (2004) 7 0 - 7 5
2 7 5 . ' D e studie van het j o d e n d o m en het N i e u w e Testament,' Areopagus
8,1 ( 2 0 0 4 )
39^11 2 7 6 . 'Vijfentwintig vragen o m j o d e n in het n a u w te drijven: E e n Byzantijns anti-joods d o c u m e n t uit de z e v e n d e e e u w , ' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
58 ( 2 0 0 4 )
89-99 2 7 7 . 'Ha-nasi' ha-acharon weha-rephu'ah ha-yewanit-romit,' in L e e I. L e v i n e (ed.), u-temunah:
Yehudim we-yahaduth
be 'erets Yisra 'el ha-byzantit-notsrit
Retsef
[Continuity
and R e n e w a l . J e w s and Judaism in Byzantine-Christian Palestine], Jerusalem: Yad B e n - Z w i & T h e J e w i s h T h e o l o g i c a l Seminary o f A m e r i c a , 2 0 0 4 , 2 3 3 - 2 4 1 2 7 8 . 'Een m e i in L i t o u w e n , ' Nieuw
Israelitisch
Weekblad
14 m e i 2 0 0 4 , 14
2 7 9 . ' J o o d s e miniatuurtjes (1): G e z o n d h e i d ! , ' Chadashot. Joodse
Gemeente
2 8 0 . De Samaritanen.
Utrecht
Maandblad
van de
Liberaal
6, nr. 7 (sept. 2 0 0 4 ) 1 9 - 2 1
Geschiedenis
en godsdienst
van een vergeten
groepering,
Kampen:
Kok, 2 0 0 4 ; 128 pag. 2 8 1 . ' T h e J e w s o f A n c i e n t Cyprus,' Zutot:
Perspectives
on Jewish
Culture
2 0 0 3 [pu
blished in 2 0 0 4 ] 1 1 0 - 1 2 0 2 8 2 . 'Vertaling k o m t rabbijnen slecht uit,' Trouw 1 okt. 2 0 0 4 , 15 2 8 3 . 'Philo's In Flaccum
and the B o o k o f A c t s , ' in: R. D e i n e s & K.-W. N i e b u h r ( e d s ) ,
Philo und das Neue Testament.
Wechselseitige
Wahrnehmungen
(Wissenschaftliche
U n t e r s u c h u n g e n z u m N e u e n Testament 1 7 2 ) , T u b i n g e n : M o h r S i e b e c k , 2 0 0 4 , 95-105 2 8 4 . R e v i e w article o n R. Goulet, ( e d . ) , Macarios Vigiliae
Christianae
de Magnesie:
2 8 5 . ' J o o d s e miniatuurtjes (2): A m u l e t t e n , ' Chadashot. Joodse
Gemeente
Le Monogenes
(2003),
58 (2004) 3 3 2 - 3 4 1 Utrecht
Maandblad
van de
Liberaal
6, nr. 8 (okt. 2 0 0 4 ) 2 3 - 2 5
2 8 6 . 'Philo and the Rabbis o n G e n e s i s : Similar Q u e s t i o n s , Different A n s w e r s , ' in: A . Volgers & C. Zamagni (eds.), Erotapokriseis. Literature
in Context
Early Christian
Question-and-Answer
(Contributions to Biblical E x e g e s i s and T h e o l o g y 3 7 ) , L e u v e n :
Peeters, 2 0 0 4 , 5 5 - 7 0 2 8 7 . 'Joods in L i t o u w e n , ' A r e o p a g u s 8,3 (oct. 2 0 0 4 ) 1 7 - 1 8 2 8 8 . ' J o o d s e miniatuurtjes (3): N B V en N I K , ' Chadashot. Joodse
Gemeente
Utrecht
Maandblad
van de
Liberaal
6, nr. 9 (nov. 2 0 0 4 ) 2 3 - 2 5
2 8 9 . ' T w e n t y - F i v e Q u e s t i o n s to Corner the J e w s : A B y z a n t i n e A n t i - J e w i s h D o c u m e n t from the S e v e n t h Century,' in E.G. C h a z o n , D . Satran & R . A . C l e m e n t s (eds.), Things Michael
Revealed.
Studies
in Early
Jewish
and
Christian
Literature
in Honor
of
E. Stone ( S u p p l e m e n t s to the Journal for the Study o f Judaism 8 9 ) , Leiden:
Brill, 2 0 0 4 , 2 8 9 - 3 0 2
Bibliography
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
301
1970-2005
2 9 0 . ' D e oorsprong van het k w a a d v o l g e n s e e n v r o e g j o o d s e v i s i e , ' in: C. van der Burg & L. M i n n e m a (eds.), In de ban van het kwaad. wereldwijd,
Het kwaad
in religieuze
2 9 1 . 'Joodse miniatuurtjes (4): Tiberius Julius Alexander,' Chadashot. de Liberaal
verhalen
Zoetermeer: M e i n e m a , 2 0 0 4 , 1 1 3 - 1 2 0 Joodse
Gemeente
Utrecht
Maandblad
van
6, nr. 10 (dec. 2 0 0 4 ) 2 3 - 2 5
2005 2 9 2 . ' D e o n t w i k k e l i n g van het Grieks en het N i e u w e Testament. O p m e r k i n g e n naar aanleiding van een recente publicatie,' Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
59 (2005)
21-30 2 9 3 . ' J o o d s e miniatuurtjes (5): Het grafschrift van R e g i n a , ' Chadashot. de Liberaal
Joodse
Gemeente
Utrecht
Maandblad
2 9 4 . 'Joodse miniatuurtjes (6): Jacob Frank: verlossing door z o n d e , ' Chadashot. blad van de Liberaal
Joodse
van
7, nr. 1 (febr. 2 0 0 5 ) 9 - 1 1
Gemeente
Utrecht
Maand
7, nr. 2 (mrt. 2 0 0 5 ) 9 - 1 2
2 9 5 . 'Jannes R e i l i n g ( 1 9 2 3 - 2 0 0 5 ) : e e n persoonlijke herinnering,' Areopagus
9,1 ( 2 0 0 5 )
7 2 9 6 . Jnscriptiones
Judaicae
Orientis:
A R e v i e w Article,' Journalfor
the Study of
Judaism
36 (2005) 6 5 - 8 3 2 9 7 . 'Joodse miniatuurtjes (7): Waarom e n g e l e n niet eten,' Chadashot.
Maandblad
van
2 9 8 . '"Vroom maar m i s d a d i g . ' E e n Griekse f i l o s o o f o v e r het j o o d s e v o l k , ' Kerk &
Theo
de Liberaal logie
Joodse
Gemeente
Utrecht
7, nr. 3 (apr. 2 0 0 5 ) 2 5 - 2 7
56(2005)143-150
2 9 9 . " T h e G o d W h o D r o w n e d the K i n g o f Egypt.' A Short N o t e o n an Exorcistic Formula,' in: A . Hilhorst & G.H. van K o o t e n (eds.), The Wisdom Early
Christian,
and Gnostic
Studies
in Honour
of Gerard
of Egypt.
P. Luttikhuizen,
Jewish, Leiden:
Brill, 2 0 0 5 , 1 3 5 - 1 4 0 3 0 0 . 'Joodse miniatuurtjes (8): Serveerde Abraham e e n niet4cosjere maaltijd?, ' dashot.
Maandblad
van de Liberaal
Joodse
Gemeente
Utrecht
Cha
7, nr. 4 (mei 2 0 0 5 )
7-11 3 0 1 . 'Joodse miniatuurtjes (9): J o o d s e ' f e e s t n a m e n ' , ' Chadashot. Liberaal
Joodse
Gemeente
Utrecht
3 0 2 . ' S e x , Birth, Purity and A s c e t i s m in the Protevangelium (ed.), A Feminist
Companion
Maandblad
van
de
7, nr. 5 (juni 2 0 0 5 ) 9 - 1 1
to Mariology
Jacobi^
in A m y - J i l l L e v i n e
( F e m i n i s t C o m p a n i o n to the N e w
Testament and Early Christian Writings 10), L o n d o n - N e w York: T. & T. Clark, 2 0 0 5 , 5 6 - 6 6 [see no. 1 3 9 ] 3 0 3 . ' A a n Abrahams dis: J o o d s e interpretaties van G e n e s i s 18:8,' Nederlands logisch
Tijdschrift
Theo
59 (2005) 2 0 7 - 2 1 4
3 0 4 . 'Unnik, W i l l e m Cornells v a n , ' Religion
in Geschichte
und Gegenwart
( 4 . Aufl.) 8
(2005) 794-795 3 0 5 . ' D e hellenistische cultuur en de Joden,' Lampas
38 (2005) 2 1 4 - 2 2 5
3 0 6 . ' J o o d s e miniatuurtjes ( 1 0 ) : 'Joodse t e m p e l s , ' Chadashot. aal Joodse
Gemeente
3 0 7 . Het vroege jodendom jaar 3 0 8 . Paula
Utrecht
van A tot Z. Een kleine
(350 v.C. - 650 n.C), in Palestina.
Maandblad
van de
Liber
7, nr. 6 (September 2 0 0 5 ) 9 - 1 1 encyclopedic
over de eerste
duizend
Zoetermeer: M e i n e m a (forthcoming in 2 0 0 6 )
Hieronymus'
400) (forthcoming in 2 0 0 6 )
biografie
van een rijke Romeinse
christin
(rond
302
Bibliography
B. Book
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
1970-2005
reviews
1. W. H a m m , Der Septuaginta-Text
des Buches
Daniel
( 1 9 6 9 ) , Mnemosyne
(ser. I V ) 2 6
(1973)194-195 2. H . C . C . Cavallin, Life After Death.
Paul's Argument
in 1 Cor. 15, Part I ( 1 9 7 4 ) , Bijdragen 3. R. Kieffer, Essais
de methodologie
for the Resurrection
of the
Dead
36 (1975) 3 3 0 - 3 3 1 neotestamentaire
( 1 9 7 2 ) , Mnemosyne
(ser. IV) 2 8
(1975)432-434 4 . H. Jagersma, Ten derden
dage ( 1 9 7 6 ) , Areopagus
5. F. O. van G e n n e p , School
voor koningen
6. W. H. Z u i d e m a , God's partner 7. N . Baumert, Tdglich ( 1 9 7 3 ) , Mnemosyne
sterben
9,5 ( 1 9 7 6 ) 3 0
( 1 9 7 6 ) , Areopagus
( 1 9 7 7 ) , Areopagus und auferstehen.
10,1 ( 1 9 7 7 ) 5 2 - 5 3
10,5 ( 1 9 7 7 ) 6 2
Der Literalsinn
von 2 Kor.
4,12-5,10
(ser. I V ) 3 0 ( 1 9 7 7 ) 3 2 2 - 3 2 4
8. B.M.F.van lersel, M. de Jonge, J. N e l i s (edd.), Van Taal tot Taal. Opstellen vertalen
van de Schriften
aangeboden
aan W. K. Grossouw
over
het
( 1 9 7 7 ) , Areopagus
11,1
(1978)62 9. L. Grollenberg, Die moeilijke
Paulus
10. H. W. Attridge, First-Century for the Study of Judaism
( 1 9 7 7 ) , Areopagus
Cynicism
in the Epistles
(1977),
Journal
9 (1978) 90-91
11. G. H. ter S c h e g g e t , Het lied van de Mensenzoon Tijdschrift
11,1 ( 1 9 7 8 ) 6 2 - 6 4 of Heraclitus
( 1 9 7 5 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
32 (1978) 3 3 4 - 3 3 6
12. B . V u y s j e , De nieuwe jazz
( 1 9 7 8 ) , Areopagus
13. D . K a i m a k i s , Der Physiologus
11,5 ( 1 9 7 8 ) 6 2
nach der ersten
Redaktion
( 1 9 7 4 ) , Mnemosyne
(ser.
( 1 9 7 7 ) , Areopagus
12,1
IV) 31 ( 1 9 7 8 ) 3 1 9 - 3 2 0 14. L. van Hartingsveld, Het huwelijk
in het Nieuwe
Testament
(1979) 5 5 - 5 6 15. Plato.
Verzameld
werk,
vertaald door X . de W i n ( 1 9 7 8 ) , Areopagus
12,1 ( 1 9 7 9 )
56-57 16. U. Fischer, Eschatologie ( 1 9 7 8 ) , Nederlands
und Jenseitserwartung
Theologisch
17. B . J o n g e l i n g , Een Aramees
Tijdschrift
boek Job
im hellenistischen
Diasporajudentum
33 (1979) 2 4 4 - 2 4 5
( 1 9 7 4 ) , Religious
Studies
Review
5 (1979)
221-222 18. G. Q u i s p e l , Het
Geheime
Boek
der
Openbaring
( 1 9 7 9 ) , Areopagus
12,5 ( 1 9 7 9 )
79-81 19. E. Verhoef, Er staat Galaten
geschreven
( 1 9 7 9 ) , Nederlands
2 0 . Text and Interpretation. ( 1 9 8 0 ) , Nederlands 2 1 . J. Hani, La religion
...De
oudtestamentische
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
citaten
in de brief aan
F S M. Black ( 1 9 7 9 ) en Text-Wort-Glaube.
Theologisch egyptienne
Tijdschrift
de
34 (1980) 3 2 6 - 3 2 7 F S K. A l a n d
35 (1981) 2 4 4 - 2 4 5
dans lapensee
de Plutarque
( 1 9 7 6 ) , Mnemosyne
(ser.
IV) 3 4 ( 1 9 8 1 ) 1 6 5 - 1 6 6 2 2 . B . van Ginkel - J. A . Picard, Het Evangelie Tijdschrift
vanjezus
( 1 9 8 0 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
35 ( 1 9 8 1 ) 3 4 2 - 3 4 3
2 3 . H. M. Matter, Wederkomst
en wereldeinde
( 1 9 8 0 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
35 ( 1 9 8 1 ) 3 4 3 2 4 . F. Siegert, Drei hellenistisch-jildische
Predigten
{1980),
Kerk en Theologie
32(1981)
315-316 2 5 . W. S. Vorster, Wat is 'n Evangelie? (1982)97-98
( 1 9 8 1 ) , Gereformeerd
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
82
Bibliography
of Pieter W. van der Horst,
2 6 . B . M. Metzger, New Testament Theologische
Literaturzeitung
Studies.
Philological,
303
1970-2005
Versional,
and Patristic
(1980),
107 ( 1 9 8 2 ) 5 1 1 - 5 1 3
2 7 . G. W. B o w e r s o c k , Julian
the Apostate
( 1 9 7 8 ) , Mnemosyne
(ser. IV) 35 ( 1 9 8 2 )
207-208 2 8 . P. Schafer, Synopse schrift
zur Hekhalot-Literatur
( 1 9 8 1 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijd
36(1982) 338-339
2 9 . V. Messori, Wat te zeggen Jezus Messias; de Messias; Oecumene;
van Jezus;
B . Giertz, Met eigen
W.G. O v e r b o s c h , De Messias J.P. Versteeg, Evangelie
ogen;
W.S. D u v e k o t ,
en zijn stad; L. van Hartingsveld, Jezus
in viervoud;
(all from 1980 and 1 9 8 1 ) , Nederlands
P.A. Elderenbosch, Israel, Theologisch
Kerk,
Tijdschrift
37 (1983)
en de rijken bij Lucas ( 1 9 8 1 ) , Kerk en Theologie
34 (1983)
69-71 3 0 . C. H. Lindijer, De armen 59-60 3 1 . H. van Vliet, Did Greek-Roman-Hellenistic Witness?
( 1 9 8 0 ) , Kerk en Theologie
3 2 . M. S i m o n , Le christianisme logie
Law Know
the Exclusion
of the
Single
34 (1983) 60
antique
et son contexte
religieux
( 1 9 8 1 ) , Kerk en
Theo
34(1983)60-61
3 3 . L. Prijs, Inleiding
in de joodse
godsdienst
( 1 9 8 0 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
3 7 ( 1 9 8 3 ) 155 3 4 . R. Riesner, Jesus als Lehrer
( 1 9 8 1 ) , Kerk en Theologie
34 (1983) 2 3 8 - 2 3 9
3 5 . J. J. Collins and G. W. E. Nickelsburg (edd.), Ideal Figures Bibliotheca
Orientalis
3 6 . J. S w e t n a m , Jesus
in Ancient
Judaism
(1980),
40 (1983) 443^145
and Isaac
( 1 9 8 1 ) , Journal
for
the Study
of Judaism
14 ( 1 9 8 3 )
225-227 3 7 . H. Jacobson, The Exagoge
of Ezekiel
( 1 9 8 3 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
38
(1984)238 3 8 . M. J. Vermaseren (ed.), Die orientalischen
Religionen
im Rdmerreich
(1981),
Mnemo
des Geistes
beiHeiden,
Juden und
Christen
syne (ser. I V ) 3 7 ( 1 9 8 4 ) 2 5 2 - 2 5 6 3 9 . W. Speyer, BuchervernichtungundZensur ( 1 9 8 1 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
4 0 . A . Casurella, The Johannine tribution
of British
13:16-18;
Paraclete
Writers Between
A . H. Jones, Independence
in the Work of A. Loisy, Theologie
Tijdschrift
3 8 ( 1 9 8 4 ) 241
in the Church
Fathers;
D . Brady, The
1560 and 1830 to the Interpretation and Exegesis.
Ch. Guignebert
The Study of Early
and M. Goguel
Con
ofRevelation Christianity
(all from 1 9 8 3 ) , Kerk
en
35 ( 1 9 8 4 ) 3 4 0 - 3 4 1
4 1 . D . Winston and J. D i l l o n (edd.), Two Treatises for the Study of Judaism 4 2 . R . - A . Turcan, Mithra
of Philo of Alexandria
(1983),
Journal
15 ( 1 9 8 4 ) 2 1 4 - 2 1 7 et le mithriacisme
( 1 9 8 1 ) , Mnemosyne
(ser. I V ) 3 7 ( 1 9 8 4 )
460^61 4 3 . N . A . van U c h e l e n , Joodse thaliana
mystiek.
Merkawa,
tempel
en troon ( 1 9 8 3 ) , Studia
Rosen-
17 ( 1 9 8 4 ) 1 8 9 - 1 9 1
4 4 . D . Flusser (red.), De laatste Tijdschrift
dagen
in Jeruzalem
( 1 9 8 3 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
39 (1985) 60-61
4 5 . C. Verhoeven e.a., Porphyrius,
De grot van de nimfen ( 1 9 8 4 ) , Areopagus
18,1 ( 1 9 8 5 )
61 4 6 . E. L o h s e , Het getuigschrift schrift
3 9 ( 1 9 8 5 ) 142
van de christenen
( 1 9 8 2 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijd
304
Bibliography
4 7 . P. Cornelius
Tacitus,
( 1 9 8 2 ) , Nederlands
of Pieter W. van der Horst,
Die Historien Theologisch
Tijdschrift
V, K o m m e n t a r v o n H. Heubner und W. Fauth
Tijdschrift
4 8 . P. Schafer, Geniza-Fragmentezur
1970-2005
39 (1985) 145-146
Hekhalot-Literatur
( 1 9 8 4 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
39 (1985) 146-147
4 9 . Th. C. de K r u i j f - M.J.H.M. Poorthuis, Abinoe Het Onzevader
uitgelegd
- Onze
Vader ( 1 9 8 4 ) and F. de Grijs,
aan Peter B. ( 1 9 8 4 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
39
(1985) 2 4 3 - 2 4 4 5 0 . D . T. Runia, Philo of Alexandria logisch
Tijdschrift
and the Timaeus
of Plato
( 1 9 8 3 ) , Nederlands
Theo
39 (1985) 247
5 1 . H. Bietenhard, Der tannaitische ( 1 9 8 4 ) , Nederlands
Midrasch
Theologisch
Sifre Deuteronomium
Tijdschrift
ubersetzt
underkldrt
39 (1985) 2 4 7 - 2 4 8
5 2 . P. A t h a n a s s i a d i - F o w d e n , Julian andHellenism
( 1 9 8 1 ) , Mnemosyne
(ser. IV) 3 8 ( 1 9 8 5 )
218-220 5 3 . M . van L o g g e m , Paulus
(z.j.), Areopagus
18,4 ( 1 9 8 5 ) 5 1 - 5 2
5 4 . R. B u l t m a n n , Der Stil der paulinischen (repr. 1 9 8 4 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
5 5 . M . S. C o h e n , The Shi'ur logisch
Tijdschrift
Qomah:
Diatribe
39 (1985) 3 4 1 - 3 4 2
Texts and Recensions
Studien
zur antiken
( 1 9 8 3 - 8 4 ) , Kerk en Theologie
5 7 . H. Cancik (ed.), Markus-Philologie evangelium
und die kynisch-stoische
Tijdschrift
( 1 9 8 5 ) , Nederlands
Theo
39 (1985) 3 4 3 - 3 4 4
56. H. H o m m e l , Sebasmata. Christentum
Predigt
und zum
( 1 9 8 4 ) and M . Reiser, Syntax und Stil im
( 1 9 8 4 ) , Kerk en Theologie
5 8 . J. N e u s n e r , Das pharisdische
Religionsgeschichte
fruhen
36 (1985) 3 3 6 - 3 3 7 Markus-
36 (1985) 337-338
und talmudische
Judentum
( 1 9 8 4 ) , Kerk en
Theologie
3 7 ( 1 9 8 6 ) 76 5 9 . C. A . Wauters, Mithras
( 1 9 8 5 ) , Nederlands
6 0 . W. S. D u v e k o t , De Pastorale Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
6 1 . H. J. Eckstein, Der Begriff mann von Kafarnaum
Brieven
Theologisch
4 0 ( 1 9 8 6 ) 174 (1984),
40 (1986) 243
Syneidesis
bei Paulus
( 1 9 8 3 ) and U . Wegner, Der
( 1 9 8 5 ) , Kerk en Theologie
6 2 . J. Jervell, The Unknown
Tijdschrift
( 1 9 8 4 ) and Th. Naastepad, Jacobus
Haupt-
37 (1986) 2 7 0 - 2 7 2
Paul ( 1 9 8 4 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
40 (1986)
336-337 6 3 . M. Himmelfarb, Tours of Hell ( 1 9 8 5 ) and M. Dean-Otting, Heavenly Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
6 4 . P. Fornaro, La voce fuori 6 5 . R. R a d i c e , Filone
scena
( 1 9 8 2 ) , Mnemosyne
di Alessandria.
Journeys
(1984),
40 (1986) 3 3 9 - 3 4 0 Bibliografia
(ser. IV) 3 9 ( 1 9 8 6 ) 4 8 2 - 4 8 3
generate
1937-1982
(1983),
Mnemo
syne (ser. I V ) 3 9 ( 1 9 8 6 ) 4 9 6 6 6 . T. Rajak, Josephus
( 1 9 8 3 ) , Mnemosyne
6 7 . D . Sperber, A Dictionary ( 1 9 8 4 ) , Mnemosyne 6 8 . G. Luck, Arcana
of Greek
Mundi ( 1 9 8 5 ) , Mnemosyne
Tijdschrift
Outside
and
Theologisch
Christian
Tijdschrift
World
Graeco-Roman
Testament
Literature
(1984-85),
Nederlands
200
BC to AD 200
(1984); M.
Views ( 1 9 8 4 ) ; M. de J o n g e (ed.),
( 1 9 8 5 ) ; J. R. Bartlett, Jews in the Hellenistic Tijdschrift
World ( 1 9 8 5 ) ,
41 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 8 1 - 8 2
7 1 . Y. van der G o o t - K . A . D . S m e l i k (red.), Joods Theologisch
in Rabbinic
(ser. IV) 3 9 ( 1 9 8 6 ) 5 6 9 - 5 7 0
van het Nieuwe
and Christians:
the Old Testament
Nederlands
Terms
41 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 7 8 - 7 9
7 0 . A . R . C . Leany, The Jewish Whittaker, Jews
Legal
(ser. IV) 3 9 ( 1 9 8 6 ) 5 6 8 - 5 6 9
6 9 . A.F.J. Klijn (red.), Apokriefen Theologisch
(ser. IV) 3 9 ( 1 9 8 6 ) 4 9 7 ^ 1 9 9
and Latin
41 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 8 4
leven in Nederland(1986),
Nederlands
Bibliography
of Pieter
7 2 . B . C h i e s a - B . L o c k w o o d , Ya'qub ( 1 9 8 4 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
7 3 . K. Beyer, The Aramaic
W. van der Horst,
al-Qirqisani
Tijdschrift
Language
on Jewish
( 1 9 8 6 ) , Kerk en Theologie
( 1 9 8 5 ) , Nederlands
7 5 . H. E n g e l , Die
Sects
Theologisch
Susanna-Erzdhlung
and
Christianity
41 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 158
7 4 . H. W. Hollander and M. de Jonge, The Testaments Commentary
305
1970-2005
38 (1987) 1 7 2 - 1 7 3
of the Twelve
Tijdschrift
( 1 9 8 5 ) , Nederlands
Patriarchs.
A
41 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 2 4 3 - 2 4 4 Theologisch
Tijdschrift
41
(1987)244-245 7 6 . A . Kasher, The Jews in Hellenistic Tijdschrift
and Roman Egypt ( 1 9 8 5 ) , Nederlands
7 7 . R. Kuntzmann - J. S c h l o s s e r (edd.), Etudes Bibliotheca
Orientalis
Tijdschrift
Controversies
(1984),
in Early
Christianity
( 1 9 8 5 ) , Nederlands
Theo
lezen in de Bijbel
( 1 9 8 5 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijd
(1986),
Neder
41 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 3 2 1 - 3 2 2
8 0 . N . de L a n g e , Atlas lands
hellenistique
41 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 3 2 0 - 3 2 1
7 9 . A . U l e y n , Psychoanalytisch schrift
sur le juda'isme
43 (1986) 477^179
7 8 . T. V. Smith, Petrine logisch
Theologisch
41 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 2 4 5 - 2 4 6
Theologisch
van de joodse Tijdschrift
8 1 . G. A . W e w e r s , Terumoth Nederlands
wereld
- Priesterhebe
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
8 2 . J. van Laarhoven, Wijsheid
( 1 9 8 6 ) , and i d e m , Judaism
41 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 3 2 4 - 3 2 5 ( 1 9 8 5 ) , and i d e m , Pea - Ackerecke
(1986),
41 ( 1 9 8 7 ) 3 2 5 - 3 2 6
per post
( 1 9 8 6 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
41
(1987)329 8 3 . H. C. K e e , Miracle
in the Early
Christian
World ( 1 9 8 3 ) , Mnemosyne
(ser. IV) 4 0
(1987) 467^169 8 4 . J. H. Charlesworth, The Old ( 1 9 8 5 ) , Nederlands
Testament
Theologisch
Pseudepigrapha
Tijdschrift
and
the New
Testament
42 ( 1 9 8 8 ) 7 3 - 7 4
8 5 . E. J. Schnabel, Law and Wisdom from Ben Sira to Paul ( 1 9 8 5 ) and G. S c h i m a n o w s k i , Weisheit
und Messias
( 1 9 8 5 ) , Nederlands
86. G. S c h w a r z , 'Und Jesus WorteJesu
sprach'.
( 1 9 8 5 ) , Nederlands
87. G. F o w d e n , The Egyptian
Theologisch
Untersuchungen
Theologisch
Hermes
Tijdschrift
42 ( 1 9 8 8 ) 74—76
zur aramdischen
Tijdschrift
Urgestalt
der
42 ( 1 9 8 8 ) 7 6 - 7 7
( 1 9 8 6 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
42
(1988)147 8 8 . R. B e c k w i t h , The Old Testament B. M. Metzger, The Canon Tijdschrift
of the New Testament
Testament
Church
( 1 9 8 7 ) , Nederlands
( 1 9 8 5 ) and Theologisch
42 (1988) 154-156
8 9 . C. J. den Heyer, Marcus 9 0 . E. B a m m e l , Judaica
( 1 9 8 5 ) , Nederlands
( 1 9 8 6 ) , Nederlands
9 1 . G. R e e g , Die Geschichte Tijdschrift
Canon
of the New
Theologisch
Theologisch
von den Zehn Mdrtyrern
Tijdschrift
Tijdschrift
42 ( 1 9 8 8 ) 157
42 ( 1 9 8 8 ) 1 5 9 - 1 6 0
( 1 9 8 5 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Theologisch
42 ( 1 9 8 8 )
42 (1988) 160-161
9 2 . S. Safrai, Een volk met een land(1986),
Nederlands
Tijdschrift
161 9 3 . P. Lapide, Het leerhuis
van de hoop ( 1 9 8 6 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
42
( 1 9 8 8 ) 161 9 4 . J. J. P e t u c h o w s k i , Zoals Tijdschrift
9 5 . I. B . H. A b r a m , Joodse Tijdschrift
onze meesters
leerden
... ( 1 9 8 6 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
leren ( 1 9 8 6 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
4 2 ( 1 9 8 8 ) 161 - 1 6 2 traditie
als permanent
42 ( 1 9 8 8 ) 1 6 2
9 6 . R. Naftaniel - S. S c h o o n , Dezaak 4 2 ( 1 9 8 8 ) 162
Goeree
( 1 9 8 6 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
306
Bibliography
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
9 7 . G. J. M. Bartelink, Het vroege Christendom Theologisch
Tijdschrift
en de antieke
cultuur ( 1 9 8 6 ) ,
Nederlands
42 ( 1 9 8 8 ) 1 6 3 - 1 6 4
9 8 . P. M . M . Geurts, Plutarchus straffen.
1970-2005
van Chaeronea:
Over godsdienstige
angst,
Waarom
( 1 9 8 6 ) , Nederlands
God zo lang Theologisch
wacht
met
Tijdschrift
42
(1988)246 9 9 . B . Palmer (ed.), Medicine
in the Bible
( 1 9 8 6 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
42 (1988) 258 100. D . S. R u s s e l l , The Old Testament Tijdschrift
101. J. N e u s n e r , De joodse Tijdschrift
Pseudepigrapha
( 1 9 8 7 ) , Nederlands
wieg
van het Christendom as a Political
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
103. M . Lattke, Die Oden Salomos III ( 1 9 8 6 ) , Nederlands
( 1 9 8 7 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
in het Nieuwe
105. F. Watson, Paul,
Testament
Judaism
Concept
in Hasmonean
Tijdschrift
fur Neues
Hetgebruik
van het
( 1 9 8 7 ) , Kerk en Theologie
and the Gentiles
Testament
und
Gnosis
42 (1988) 343 lidwoordbijpersoons-
39 (1988) 355
( 1 9 8 6 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijd
43 (1989) 5 8 - 5 9
106. S. S c h o o n , Leven in een wereld, D . C o h n - S h e r b o c k , Jews, Theologisch
Tijdschrift
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
een uitdaging
Christians,
voor joden
and Liberation
Nederlands
en het Evangelie
van Jezus
Christus
(1986),
Nederlands
4 3 ( 1 9 8 9 ) 71
109. B . Engelhart - J. W. Klein, 50 eeuwen ( 1 9 8 8 ) , Rondom
Religion
schrift.
40 (1989) 7 6 - 7 7
Een inleiding
tot de geschiedenis
van
het Woord 31,1 ( 1 9 8 9 ) 7 7 - 7 9
in Geschichte
Religion(\9Sl),
( 1 9 8 7 ) and
(1987),
108. G. S c h w a r z , Jesus und Judas ( 1 9 8 7 ) , Kerk en Theologie het schrift
en christenen
Theology
43 (1989) 63
107. J. Verkuyl, Antroposofie
110. Die
Literature
42 (1988) 342
in ihrer Bedeutung
Theologisch
104. L. B . Schelhaas, Wie't kleine niet eert...
schrift
Theologisch
42 (1988) 263-264
102. D . M e n d e l s , The Land of Israel
namen
( 1 9 8 7 ) , Nederlands
42 (1988) 263
Nederlands
und
Gegenwart
Theologisch
111. J. T. Sanders, The Jews in Luke-Acts
( 1 9 8 6 3 ) and The Encyclopedia
Tijdschrift
of
43 (1989) 2 3 8 - 2 4 0
( 1 9 8 7 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
43
(1989)248-249 112. L. Moraldi, Nach Christentum.
dem
Tode.
( 1 9 8 7 ) , Nederlands
113. O. S c h w a n k l , Die Sadduzderfrage logisch
Tijdschrift Theologisch
Tijdschrift
115. G. Rohser, Metaphorik und paulinische
Theologisch
von
Tijdschrift
(Mk. 12:18-27parr)
den
Babyloniern
zum
4 3 ( 1 9 8 9 ) 331 ( 1 9 8 7 ) , Nederlands
Theo
43 (1989) 3 3 5 - 6
114. W. Pratscher, Der Herrenbruder lands
Jenseitsvorstellungen
Jakobus
und die Jakobustraditionen
undPersonifikation
Hamartia
(1987),
Neder
43 (1989) 3 3 6 - 3 3 7 der Siinde. Antike
( 1 9 8 7 ) , Nederlands
Sundenvorstellungen
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
43 (1989)
337-338 116. G. Mayer, Die jiidische lands
Theologisch
Frau in der hellenistisch-romischen
Tijdschrift
117. R. H. Popkin - M . H. Signer, Spinoza's Theologisch
Tijdschrift
118. D . G o o d i n g , According
(1987),
Neder
Earliest
Publication?
(1987),
Nederlands
43 (1989) 340-341 to Luke ( 1 9 8 7 ) , Kerk en Theologie
119. G. J. M . Bartelink, De geboorte 29 (maart 1 9 9 0 ) 7
Antike
43 (1989) 3 3 9 - 3 4 0
van Europa
40 (1989) 3 4 5 - 3 4 6
( 1 9 8 9 ) , Vrienden
van het
gymnasium
Bibliography
of Pieter
120. M . N . Ebertz, Das Charisma ( 1 9 8 7 ) , Nederlands Tijdschrift Nederlands
op de Bijbel in de Nieuwe Tijdschrift
Rejoice;
by First-Century
der
44 (\990)
verzehrendes
Vertaling
Feuer'(De
125. R. Hachlili, Ancient Nederlands
van het NBG ( t w e e d e druk, 1 9 8 8 ) ,
Paul's
Letter
to the Philippians
and Luke-Acts
Women ( 1 9 8 8 ) , Nederlands
as Tijd
An Annotated
von Alexandrien.
Bibliography
1937-1986
Uber die Gottesbezeichnung
'wohltdtig
Deo) ( 1 9 8 8 ) ; R. W i l l i a m s o n , Jews in the Hellenistic Theologisch
Jewish
Theologisch
126. J. B a s n a g e , Vervolg
op Flavius
127. H. Frohnhofen, Apatheia
Tijdschrift
in the Land
Josephus;
Of Algemeene
Theologisch
tou theou.
Historie
Tijdschrift
(1988),
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
der
Joodsche
44 ( 1 9 9 0 ) 2 6 5 - 2 6 6
Uber die Affektlosigkeit
und bei den griechischsprachigen
Gottes
Kirchenvdtern
in der
(1987),
griechi Nederlands
44 ( 1 9 9 0 ) 2 6 8 - 2 6 9
128. D . A . Carson - G. M . W i l l i a m s o n (edd.), / / Is Written: Scripture B. Lindars, 1 9 8 8 ) , Nederlands Theologisch
of Israel
44 ( 1 9 9 0 ) 2 6 4 - 2 6 5
schen Antike
129. W. van B e k k u m , Mozes
World:
44 (1990) 2 6 2 - 2 6 4
Art and Archaeology
Tijdschrift
( 1 7 2 6 = 1 9 8 8 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
onze leraar.
Tijdschrift
Tijdschrift
Mozes
Citing Scripture
(FS
44 ( 1 9 9 0 ) 3 4 0 - 1
in de rabbijnse
traditie
(1988),
Neder
44 (1990) 342
130. C. Marcheselli-Casale, Risorgeremo,
ma come?
( 1 9 8 8 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
44 ( 1 9 9 0 ) 3 4 2 - 3 4 3
131. J. A . van B e l z e n - J. M. van der Lans (edd.), Rond godsdienst ( 1 9 8 7 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
theca Orientalis
en
psychoanalyse
44 ( 1 9 9 0 ) 3 5 6 - 7 .
132. A . Caquot - M. Hadas-Lebel - J. Riaud (edd.), Hellenica
et Judaica
(1986),
Biblio-
4 6 ( 1 9 8 9 ) 4 4 7 - 8 [published in 1990]
133. L. H. F e l d m a n , Josephus. Orientalis
Theologisch
257-258
Philo ( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Tijdschrift
Theologisch
44 (1990) 255
Philippian
( 1 9 8 8 ) ; F. Siegert, Philon
lands
Jesusbewegung
II ( 1 9 8 7 ) , Nederlands
124. R. Radice & D . T. Runia, Philo of Alexandria:
Naatsie
Zur Soziologie
44 (1990) 162-3
der Hekhalot-Literatur
Theologisch
123. L. Portefaix, Sisters schrift
Tijdschrift
307
1970-2005
44 (1990) 168-9
122. Concordantie
Received
des Gekreuzigten.
Theologisch
121. P. Schafer, Ubersetzung
W. van der Horst,
A Supplementary
Bibliography
(1986),
Bibliotheca
46 ( 1 9 8 9 ) 4 4 8 ^ 1 4 9 [published in 1 9 9 0 ]
134. E. Will - C. Orrieux, Ioudaismos-Hellenismos. I 'epoque
hellenistique
( 1 9 8 6 ) , Mnemosyne
135. A . Linder, The Jews
in Roman
Essay
sur le judaisme
judeen
a
43 (1990) 2 6 8 - 2 7 0
Imperial
Legislation
from
the Cambridge
( 1 9 8 7 ) , Mnemosyne
43 (1990)
270-272 136. S. C. Reiff, Published Nederlands
Material
Theologisch
137. T. S. Beall, Josephus ( 1 9 8 8 ) , Nederlands
Tijdschrift
'Description Theologisch
of the Essenes Tijdschrift
Illustrated
Orientalis
139. D . Zeller (ed.), Menschwerdung
-
Theologisch
140. B. E g o , Im Himmel discher
Tijdschrift
Gottes
(1988),
by the Dead Sea
Scrolls
47 (1990) 2 0 3 - 2 0 4
Vergottlichung
von Menschen
(1988),
45 (1991) 1 4 9 - 1 5 0
wie auf Erde. Studien
Welt im rabbinischen
Collection
45 (1991) 7 1 - 7 2
138. H. Gross, Tobit. Judit ( 1 9 8 7 ) , Bibliotheca Nederlands
Genizah
45 (1991) 70-71
Judentum
zum
Verhdltnis
von himmlischer
( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
und irTijdschrift
45 ( 1 9 9 1 ) 1 5 0 - 1 5 1 141. I. Shamir - Sh. Shavit (edd.), Encyclopedic Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
van de joodse
45 ( 1 9 9 1 ) 1 5 1 - 1 5 2
geschiedenis
(1989),
308
Bibliography
142. N . Smart, The World's
of Pieter
Religions
W. van der Horst,
1970-2005
( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
45
(1991)242 143. M . Ktichler - Chr. U e h l i n g e r (edd.), Jerusalem. lands
Theologisch
144. La Bible
Tijdschrift
d'Alexandrie
Nederlands
2: L'Exode,
Theologisch
(1987),
Neder
edd. A . le B o u l l u e c et P. Sandevoir ( 1 9 8 9 ) ,
Tijdschrift
145. M . H e n g e l , The Zealots
Texte-Bilder-Steine
45 (1991) 2 5 1 - 2 5 2 45 (1991) 2 5 2 - 2 5 3
( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
45 (1991)
254-255 146. M . E. M i l l s , Human Agents optic
Tradition
of Cosmic
( 1 9 9 0 ) , Theologische
Power
in Hellenistic
Literaturzeitung
147. A . D . C r o w n ( e d . ) , The Samaritans
Judaism
and the
Syn
116 ( 1 9 9 1 ) 431—432
( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
45
(1991)341-342 148. P. Trebilco, Jewish Judaism
Communities
149. M. Frey, Untersuchungen ( 1 9 8 9 ) , Bibliotheca
zur Religion
Orientalis
150. H. Schwier, Tempel schrift
Minor
( 1 9 9 1 ) , Journal
for
the Study
of
und zur Religionspolitik
des Kaisers
Elagabal
48 (1991) 2 6 8 - 2 7 0
und Tempelzerstorung
( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijd
46(1992)65-66
151. D . Trobisch, Die Entstehung logisch
in Asia
22 (1991) 292-295
Tijdschrift
152. T. Onuki, Gnosis
der Paulusbriefsammlung
( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Theo
46 (1992) 67 und Stoa{\9%9),
Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
46 (1992)
(1989),
Nederlands
67-68 153. G. T h e i s s e n , Lokalkolorit Theologisch
Tijdschrift
154. E. L e v i n e , The Aramaic schrift
undZeitgeschichte
Version of the Bible ( 1 9 8 8 ) , Nederlands
Tijdschrift
der Hekhalot-Literatur
Tijdschrift
Tijdschrift
Tijdschrift
( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Theo
46 (1992) 162-163 groeperingen
ten tijde van Jezus ( 1 9 8 9 ) ,
Nederlands
46 (1992) 163-164
159. P. Kuhn, Offenbarungsstimmen
im antiken
Judentum
( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Theo
46 (1992) 167-168
160. J.-C. Kaiser & M. Greschat (edd.), Der Holocaust Nederlands
Theologisch
39 (1992) 150-151
Tora des Menschensohnes
158. M. J.H.M. Poorthuis, De joodse Theologisch
III ( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Roms ( 1 9 9 1 ) , Numen
157. D . K o s c h , Die eschatologische
161. Flavius
Tijd
46 (1992) 72-73
156. G. J. Baudy, Die Brdnde
logisch
Theologisch
46 (1992)71-72
155. P. Schafer, Ubersetzung
logisch
in den Evangelien
46 (1992) 6 8 - 6 9
Theologisch
Josephus,
Tijdschrift
De Joodse
und die Protestanten
(1988),
46 (1992) 169-170
Oorlog
& Uit mijn leven,
vertaald, ingeleid en van
aantekeningen v o o r z i e n door F.J.A.M. Meijer en M . A . W e s ( 1 9 9 2 ) , Hermeneus
64
(1992)218-19 162. J. Ernst, Johannes
der Tdufer ( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
46 (1992)
234 163. C. J. Hemer, The Book of Acts in the Setting lands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
164. A . J. D r o g e , Homer Culture
or Moses?
Early
Christian
( 1 9 8 9 ) and P. Pilhofer, Presbyteron
und christlichen logisch
Tijdschrift
Apologeten
of Hellenistic
History
(1989),
Neder
46 (1992) 234-5
und seine
46 (1992) 239^11
kreitton.
Interpretations
of the History
Der Altersbeweis
Vorgeschichte
der
( 1 9 9 0 ) , Nederlands
of
jiidischen Theo
Bibliography
of Pieter
165. J. M u r p h y - 0 ' C o n n o r , The Ecole Scholarship
(1890-1990)
W. van der Horst, Biblique
and the New
( 1 9 9 0 ) , Nederlands
309
1970-2005 Testament:
Theologisch
A Century
Tijdschrift
of
46 (1992)
241 166. A . K u y t & N . A . van U c h e l e n , History ( 1 9 8 8 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
167. S. Beller, Vienna and the Jews, schrift
Dutch
Studies
in the
Mishnah
46 (1992) 2 4 1 - 2
1867-1938
( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijd
46(1992)242-3
168. A . G. H a m m a n , Das Tijdschrift
Gebet
in der alten
Kirche
( 1 9 8 9 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
46 (1992) 245
169. A . Strotmann, Mein
Voter bist Du! (Sir 51, 10). Zur Bedeutung
Gottes
in kanonischen
und nichtkanonischen
schrift
voor Theologie
Twelve Patriarchs
Eschatology,
Early
( 1 9 9 1 ) , Nederlands
171. H. Schreckenberg, Die christlichen Nederlands
Theologisch
Christology
Theologisch
Vaterschaft ( 1 9 9 1 ) , Tijd the
(2 v o l s . , 1 9 8 8 - 1 9 9 0 ) ,
to the Dead
Be Silent: First Century Jewish
174. D . B. Garlington, 'The Obedience
Sea Scrolls
(1991),
Neder
Portraits
of Biblical
Women
33 (1992) 2 4 9 - 2 5 0
of Faith'.
( 1 9 9 1 ) ; W. T. W i l s o n , Love without
A Pauline
Pretence.
Romans
Phrase
in Historical
12, 9-21
Context
and Hellenistic
( 1 9 9 1 ) ; C. C. N e w m a n , Paul's Glory-Christology.
( 1 9 9 2 ) , Journal for the Study of Judaism
175. A . F. J. Klijn, Jewish
of
46 (1992) 344-5
46 (1992) 3 4 7 - 8
( 1 9 9 2 ) , Journal for the Study of Judaism
wish Wisdom Literature
and the Testaments
Tijdschrift
46 (1992) 346-7
Concordance
Tijdschrift
173. C. A. B r o w n , No Longer
and Rhetoric
der
Schriften
Adversus-Judaeos-Texte
Tijdschrift
172. J. H. Charlesworth, Graphic Theologisch
fruhjiidischen
32 (1992) 3 0 9 - 3 1 0
170. M. d e Jonge, Jewish
lands
and Form:
Tijdschrift
Christian
Gospel
Tradition
Je
Tradition
33 (1992) 2 5 7 - 2 6 0
( 1 9 9 2 ) , Vigiliae
Christianae
46
(1992) 4 3 5 ^ 3 7 176. C. Hezser, Lohnmetaphorik Theologisch
Tijdschrift
und Arbeitswelt
in Mt 20,1-16
(1990),
Nederlands
Tijdschrift
47 (1993)
4 7 ( 1 9 9 3 ) 65
177. I. Taatz, Friihjudische
Briefe
( 1 9 9 1 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
67 178. M. Lattke, Hymnus. Nederlands
Materialien
Theologisch
zu einer Geschichte
Tijdschrift
der antiken Hymnologie
179. M . van Loopik, The Ways of the Sages and the Way of the World ( 1 9 9 1 ) , Theologisch
Tijdschrift
Nederlands
47 (1993) 6 9 - 7 0
180. M . D . Swartz, Mystical setzung
(1991),
47 (1993) 6 8 - 9
Prayer
der Hekhalot-Literatur
in Ancient
Judaism
( 1 9 9 1 ) and P. Schafer,
/ y ( 1 9 9 1 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Uber
Tijdschrift
47
(1993)164-165 181. D . S. Potter, Prophecy Commentary
182. J. C o h e n , "Be Fertile Medieval
and History
on the Thirteenth Career
in the Crisis
Sibylline
and Increase,
of a Biblical
Oracle
of the Roman
Empire.
( 1 9 9 0 ) , Numen
Fill the Earth and Master
Text ( 1 9 9 2 ) , History
A
Historical
4 0 ( 1 9 9 3 ) 198 It". The Ancient
of European
Ideas
and
17 ( 1 9 9 3 )
394-395 183. G. E. Sterling, Historiography getic Historiography
and Self-Definition.
( 1 9 9 2 ) , Vigiliae
184. E. Ruckstuhl & P. D s c h u l n i g g , Stilkritik ( 1 9 9 1 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
185. F. Siegert, Drei hellenistisch-judische 5 (1993)219-222
Christianae
Josephos,
und Verfasserfrage
Tijdschrift
Luke-Acts
and
Apolo
47 (1993) 2 0 3 - 2 0 6 im
Johannesevangelium
47 (1993) 3 1 8 - 3 1 9
Predigten
II ( 1 9 9 2 ) , Studia
Philonica
Annual
310
Bibliography
of Pieter
186. D . I . Brewer, Techniques Nederlands
W. van der Horst,
and Assumptions
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
in Jewish
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
Exegesis
Before
70 CE ( 1 9 9 2 ) ,
48 (1994) 7 1 - 7 2 .
187. C. D o g n i e z & M . Harl, La Bible d'Alexandrie lands
1970-2005
5: Le Deuteronome
(1992),
Neder
48 (1994) 161-162.
188. M Franzmann, The Odes of Solomon
( 1 9 9 1 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
48
(1994)163-164 189. L. P. H o g a n , Healing Tijdschrift
190. D . N o y , Jewish logical
in the Second
Temple Period
( 1 9 9 2 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
48 (1994) 167-168
Studies
Inscriptions
of Western
191. W. Horbury & D . N o y , Jewish for the Study of Judaism
vol. 1 ( 1 9 9 3 ) , Journal
of
Theo
for the Study of Judaism 193. W. Schottroff, Das
of Graeco-Roman
Egypt ( 1 9 9 2 ) ,
Journal
of'Jannes
andJambres
the Magicians
(1994),
Journal
25 ( 1 9 9 4 ) 3 2 8 - 3 3 0
Reich
Theologie
Inscriptions
25 ( 1 9 9 4 ) 3 2 0 - 3 2 3
192. A . Pietersma, The Apocryphon
christlichen
Europe,
n.s. 4 5 ( 1 9 9 4 ) 7 0 1 - 7 0 4
Gottes
und der Menschen.
zum Judentum
Studien
( 1 9 9 1 ) , Nederlands
zum
Verhdltnis
Theologisch
der
Tijdschrift
4 8 ( 1 9 9 4 ) 340 194. M . F. Smith, Diogenes
of Oenoanda.
The Epicurean
Inscription
(1993),
Mnemosyne
48(1995) 101-103 195. S. J. Friesen, Twice Neokoros. Family
( 1 9 9 3 ) , Mnemosyne
Ephesus,
Asia and the Cult of the Flavian
196. R. F e l d m e i e r & U. H e c k e l (edd.), Die Heiden. Fremden
( 1 9 9 4 ) , Vigiliae
Imperial
48 (1995) 2 5 4 - 2 5 6 Christianae
197. E. Testa, The Faith of the Mother
Juden,
Christen
und das Problem
des
49 (1995) 9 3 - 9 5
Church
( 1 9 9 2 ) , Bibliotheca
Orientalis
52 (1995)
zum
Hebrderbrief
121-123 198. E. Grasser, Aufbruch ( 1 9 9 2 ) , Nederlands
und
Verheissung.
Theologische
199. K. Ch. W o n g , Interkulturelle thdusevengelium
Theologie
( 1 9 9 2 ) , Nederlands
2 0 0 . W. T. W i l s o n , The Mysteries
Gesammelte
Tijdschrift
und multikulturelle
Theologisch
of Righteousness.
of the S e n t e n c e s of Pseudo-Phocylides
Aufsdtze
4 9 ( 1 9 9 5 ) 75 Gemeinde
Tijdschrift
The Literary
im
Mat-
49 (1995) 163-164 Composition
and
Genre
( 1 9 9 4 ) , Journal for the Study of Judaism
26
(1995)231-234 2 0 1 . R. E i s e n m a n & M. W i s e , De Dode-Zeerollen logisch
Tijdschrift
2 0 2 . Y. L i e b e s , Studies Theologisch
in Jewish
Tijdschrift
Tijdschrift
2 0 5 . T. Ilan, Jewish Judaism
Theo
Myth
and Jewish
Messianism
(1993),
Nederlands
of Pharisaic
Traditions
( 1 9 9 3 ) , Nederlands
Theo
49 (1995) 3 2 9 - 3 3 0
2 0 4 . H. Vorgrimler, Geschichte Hell ( 1 9 9 3 ) , Numen
( 1 9 9 3 ) , Nederlands
49 (1995) 242-243
2 0 3 . Uriel da Costa, Examination logisch
onthuld
49 (1995) 240-241
der Holle
( 1 9 9 3 ) and A . E. Bernstein, The Formation
of
42 (1995) 319-321
Women in Graeco-Roman
Palestine
( 1 9 9 5 ) , Journal for the Study
of
26 ( 1 9 9 5 ) 3 6 4 - 3 6 6
2 0 6 . J. N . B r e m m e r , Greek
Religion
( 1 9 9 4 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
50
Tijdschrift
50
(1996) 66 2 0 7 . G. H. Twelftree, Jesus (1996)71-72
the Exorcist
( 1 9 9 3 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Bibliography
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
2 0 8 . K. P. Donfried & I. H. Marshall, The Theology and J.D.G. D u n n , The Theology lands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
2 0 9 . H. A . M c K a y , Sabbath Judaism Journal
lands
Theologisch
Epistles
1993)
(1993),
Neder
Europe,
steht':
Worship in
Ancient
Vol. 2: The City of Rome
Studien zu einer besonderen Theologisch
Tijdschrift
van de Marcusredactie
Tijdschrift
of Sabbath
50 (1996) 161-162 (1995),
n.s. 4 7 ( 1 9 9 6 ) 2 5 6 - 2 5 9
( 1 9 9 3 ) , Nederlands
2 1 2 . G. van O y e n , De studie
Tijdschrift
of Western
Studies
2 1 1 . R. Liebers, 'Wie geschrieben Schriftbezuges
Pauline
to the Galatians
The Question
Theologisch
Inscriptions
of Theological
of the Shorter
Letters
50 (1996) 160-161
and Synagogue.
( 1 9 9 4 ) , Nederlands
2 1 0 . D . N o y , Jewish
of Paul's
311
1970-2005
Art
fruhchristlicher
50 (1996) 246.
in de twintigste
eeuw ( 1 9 9 3 ) ,
Neder
50 (1996) 2 4 6 - 7
2 1 3 . M . C . de B o e r (ed.), From Jesus to John ( 1 9 9 3 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
5 0 ( 1 9 9 6 ) 247. 2 1 4 . J. C. Thorn, The Pythagorean
Golden
Verses ( 1 9 9 5 ) , Mnemosyne
49 (1996) 3 5 1 -
352 2 1 5 . L. B o f f o , Iscrizioni
greche
e latineper
lo studio delta Bibbia
( 1 9 9 4 ) , Mnemosyne
49
(1997)511-512 2 1 6 . O. Cullmann, Das Tijdschrift
Gebet
im Neuen
2 1 7 . R.E. D e M a r i s , The Colossian schrift
with English schrift
Controversy
Translation,
( 1 9 9 4 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Theologisch
Sea Scrolls:
Hebrew,
Aramaic,
v o l s . 1+2 ( 1 9 9 4 - 1 9 9 5 ) , Nederlands
Tijd
and Greek
Texts
Theologisch
Tijd
World ( 1 9 9 5 ) and W. Fauth,
Helios
50(1996)339-340
2 1 9 . S.A. Takacs, Is is and Sarapis Megistos.
Zur synkretistischen Tijdschrift Tijdschrift
in the Roman Theologie
der Spdtantike
( 1 9 9 5 ) , Nederlands
Theo
4: Les Nombres
( 1 9 9 4 ) , Nederlands
Theo
51 ( 1 9 9 7 ) 5 0 - 5 1
2 2 0 . G. Dorival e.a., La Bible logisch
( 1 9 9 4 ) , Nederlands
50 (1996)336-337
2 1 8 . J.H. Charlesworth (ed.), The Dead
logisch
Testament
50 (1996) 3 3 5 - 3 3 6
d'Alexandrie
51 ( 1 9 9 7 ) 5 9 - 6 0
2 2 1 . A.F.J. Klijn, De brieven
van Paulus
aan Timoteils,
K o u w e n h o v e n , De brief aan de Colossenzen
Titus en Filemon
C.A. N e w s o m & S.H. R i n g e (red.), Met eigen ogen: Commentaar het perspectief
van vrouwen
( 1 9 9 4 ) ; H.J.
( 1 9 9 5 ) ; W. Weren, Matteiis
( 1 9 9 5 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
(1994);
op de bijbel Tijdschrift
vanuit
51 ( 1 9 9 7 )
60-61 2 2 2 . J. Wijchers & S. Kat, Bijbels
namenboek
( 1 9 9 4 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
51 ( 1 9 9 7 ) 6 1 2 2 3 . R. Riesner, Die Fruhzeit
( 1 9 9 4 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
2 2 4 . L. B o r m a n , K. del Tredici, A . Standhartinger (eds.), Religious
Propaganda
schrift
Missionary logisch
des Apostels
Paulus
Competition
Tijdschrift
2 2 5 . D . Sanger, Die
in the New
Testament
World
und Israel
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
des Gekreuzigten
bei Paulus
und Israel.
und im frtihen
and Theo
Studien
Christentum
zum
(1994),
Verhdltnis Nederlands
51 ( 1 9 9 7 ) 6 5 - 6 6
2 2 6 . P. Schafer & K. Herrmann (edd.), Ubersetzung ( 1 9 9 5 ) , Nederlands
2 2 7 . G. S. O e g e m a , Der Gesalbte schrift
( 1 9 9 4 ) , Nederlands
51 ( 1 9 9 7 ) 6 2 - 6 3
Verkundigung
von Kirche
§§ 1-80
Tijd
51 ( 1 9 9 7 ) 6 1 - 6 2
51 ( 1 9 9 7 ) 1 4 9 - 1 5 0
Theologisch und sein
Tijdschrift
der Hekhalot-Literatur,
Band
I:
51 ( 1 9 9 7 ) 6 6
Volk ( 1 9 9 4 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijd
314
Bibliography
ofPieter
2 7 1 . J. Moatti-Fine, La Bible logisch
Tijdschrift
W. van der Horst,
d'Alexandrie
6: Jesus
(Josue)
( 1 9 9 6 ) , Nederlands
Theo
52 (1998) 332
2 7 2 . P. Schafer & H.-J. B e c k e r (edd.), Synopse Nashim
1970-2005
( 1 9 9 8 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
zum
Talmud
Tijdschrift
2 7 3 . Flavius Josephus, De oude geschiedenis
Yerushalmi
III:
Ordnung
52 (1998) 3 3 2 - 3 3 3
van de joden,
deel II: B o e k VIII-XIII, ver
taald d o o r F.J.A.M. Meijer en M . A . W e s ( 1 9 9 7 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
52 (1998) 3 3 3 - 3 3 4 2 7 4 . M . van Loopik (red.), Tweespalt perspectief
2 7 5 . G. Wohrle, Hypnos Theologisch
Tijdschrift
Tijdschrift
Joden en christenen
Tijdschrift
in
historisch
52 ( 1 9 9 8 ) 3 3 4
( 1 9 9 5 ) , Mnemosyne
undEndgericht
2 7 7 . R . D . A n d e r s o n , Ancient logisch
Theologisch
der Allbezwinger
2 7 6 . W. Zager, Gottesherrschaft lands
en verbondenheid:
'(1998), Nederlands
(ser. iv) 51 ( 1 9 9 8 ) 7 6 0
in der Verkundigung
Jesu ( 1 9 9 6 ) ,
Neder
53 (1999) 5 5 - 5 6
Rhetorical
Theory
and Paul
( 1 9 9 6 ) , Nederlands
Theo
53 (1999) 5 6 - 5 7
2 7 8 . E. B a m m e l , Judaica
et Paulina
( 1 9 9 7 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
53
(1999)57-58 2 7 9 . J.T. Fitzgerald (ed.), Friendship, Friendship
in the New
Flattery,
Testament
and Frankness
of Speech.
World ( 1 9 9 6 ) , Mnemosyne
Studies
on
(ser. iv) 5 2 ( 1 9 9 9 )
226-227 2 8 0 . H. Meisinger, Liebesgebot Dialog
zwischen
Tijdschrift
und Naturwissenschaft
to New
Testament
Neuen
( 1 9 9 7 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
of John ( 1 9 9 8 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Theology
in the Gospel of Paul
the Apostle
( 1 9 9 8 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
53 ( 1 9 9 9 ) 1 4 6 - 1 4 7
2 8 4 . N . Walter, Praeparatio des
zum
Theologisch
53 (1999) 1 4 5 - 1 4 6
2 8 3 . J.D.G. D u n n , The Theology Tijdschrift
Beitrag
53 ( 1 9 9 9 ) 1 4 4 - 1 4 5
2 8 2 . J.J. Kanagaraj, Mysticism Tijdschrift
Ein exegetischer ( 1 9 9 6 ) , Nederlands
53 ( 1 9 9 9 ) 1 4 3 - 1 4 4
2 8 1 . P. Balla, Challenges Tijdschrift
und Altruismusforschung.
Theologie
Evangelica.
Testaments
Studien
zur Umwelt,
( 1 9 9 7 ) , Nederlands
Exegese
Theologisch
und
Tijdschrift
Hermeneutik 53
(1999)
147-148 2 8 5 . T h . Silverstein & A . Hilhorst, Apocalypse Tijdschrift
2 8 6 . L.T. Stuckenbruck, The Book logisch
of Paul ( 1 9 9 7 ) , Nederlands
Tijdschrift
of Giants from
Qumran
( 1 9 9 7 ) , Nederlands
Theo
53 ( 1 9 9 9 ) 1 4 8 - 1 4 9
2 8 7 . R. Hachlili, Ancient Jewish Art and Archaeology Theologisch
Theologisch
53 ( 1 9 9 9 ) 148
Tijdschrift
2 8 8 . W. H a n s e n , Phlegon
in the Diaspora
(1998),
Nederlands
53 ( 1 9 9 9 ) 1 5 0 - 1 5 1 of Thralles'
Book of Marvels
( 1 9 9 7 ) , Mnemosyne
52 ( 1 9 9 9 )
382 2 8 9 . A . Keller, Translationes
Patristicae
Graecae
et Latina
( 1 9 9 7 ) , Mnemosyne
52
(1999)480-481 2 9 0 . A.W. Z w i e p , The Ascension Theologisch
Tijdschrift
of the Messiah
in Lukan Christology
2 9 1 . G. T h e i s s e n & D . Winter, Die Kriterienfrage lands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
Nederlands
in der Jesusforschung
(1997),
Neder
53 (1999) 2 5 0 - 2 5 1
2 9 2 . S. Krauss - W. Horbury, The Jewish-Christian (1998) 462
(1997),
53 ( 1 9 9 9 ) 2 4 9 - 2 5 0
Controversy
( 1 9 9 6 ) , Bijdragen
59
Bibliography
of Pieter
W. van der Horst,
315
1970-2005
2 9 3 . M. Bar-Ilan, Some Jewish Women in Antiquity ( 1 9 9 8 ) , Journal for the Study of Judaism 3 0 ( 1 9 9 9 ) 3 2 5 - 3 2 7 2 9 4 . D.K. Falk, Daily, Sabbath, and Festival Prayers in the Dead Sea Scrolls ( 1 9 9 8 ) , The H-Judaic Jewish Studies Book Review 21 Sept. 1999, 1-5 ( o n l i n e ) 2 9 5 . E. T r o c m e , De vroege jaren van het Christendom ( 1 9 9 9 ) , Nederlands Theologisch Tijdschrift 5 3 ( 1 9 9 9 ) 3 1 7 - 3 1 8 2 9 6 . E.S. Gruen, Heritage and Hellenism: The Reinvention Journal of Biblical Literature 119(1999) 729-731
of Jewish
Tradition
(1998),
2 9 7 . R. Brandle & V. Jegher-Bucher, Johannes Chrysostomus: Acht Juden(\995), Zeitschrift fur Antikes Christentum 3 (1999) 307-308
Reden
gegen
2 9 8 . R. Kieffer & J. B e r g m a n (eds.), La main de Dieu. Die Hand Gottes lands Theologisch Tijdschrift 5 4 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 7 1 - 7 2
(1997),
Neder
2 9 9 . RJ. M a d d e n , Jesus' 54 (2000) 72
Walking on the Sea ( 1 9 9 7 ) , Nederlands
3 0 0 . B . M . Winter, Philo and Paul Among Tijdschrift 5 4 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 7 2 - 7 3
the Sophists
Theologisch
( 1 9 9 7 ) , Nederlands
Tijdschrift Theologisch
3 0 1 . Flavius Josephus, De Oude Geshiedenis van de Joden, vol. Ill ( 1 9 9 8 ) , and Flavius Josephus, Tegen de Grieken ( 1 9 9 9 ) , vert, door F.J.A.M. Meijer & M . A . W e s , Neder lands Theologisch Tijdschrift 5 4 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 7 6 - 7 7 3 0 2 . H. Schreckenberg, Die christlichen Adversus-Judaeos-Bilder Theologisch Tijdschrift 5 4 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 7 7
(1999),
3 0 3 . S. Fine, This Holy Place. On the Sanctity of the Synagogue During the Period ( 1 9 9 7 ) , Biblical Archaeology Review 2 6 , 1 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 5 8 - 6 0 3 0 4 . H . D . B e t z , Antike und Christentum: Gesammelte Study of Judaism 31 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 6 9 - 7 0
Aufsdtze
Nederlands Greco-Roman
IV ( 1 9 9 8 ) , Journalfor
3 0 5 . L.I. L e v i n e , The Ancient Synagogue: The First Thousand Years(\999), Jewish Studies Book Review 17 April 2 0 0 0 , 1—4 ( o n line)
the
TheH-Judaic
3 0 6 . P. Harle, Les Juges ( 1 9 9 9 ) , and M. Harl e.a., Les douzeprophetes ( 1 9 9 9 ) [La B i b l e d ' A l e x a n d r i e 7 and 2 3 ] , Nederlands Theologisch Tijdschrift 5 4 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 1 6 5 - 1 6 6 3 0 7 . E.J. Vledder, Conflict in the Miracle schrift 5 4 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 1 6 8 - 1 6 9 3 0 8 . W. Aalders, De Septuaginta 171-172
(X999),
Stories
( 1 9 9 7 ) , Nederlands
Nederlands
3 0 9 . M . F i e d r o w i c z , Prinzipien der Schriftauslegung lands Theologisch Tijdschrift 5 4 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 173
Theologisch
in Novo,\o\.2
3 1 2 . S.E. Porter (ed.), Handbook to Exegesis Theologisch Tijdschrift 5 4 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 2 5 6
Christentum
3 1 3 . M . S c h n e e m e l c h e r (ed.), Neutestamentliche Apokryphen, lands Theologisch Tijdschrift 5 4 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 2 5 7
3 1 5 . M. G o o d m a n (ed.), Jews in a Graeco-Roman 494-497
(2000),
Theologisch
(1997),
in
Neder
Tijdschrift
Nederlands
2 vols. (1997/99).
Bibelforschung 54 (2000) 257
Tijd
54 (2000)
(1998),
( 1 9 9 7 ) , Nederlands
of the New Testament
3 1 4 . Chr. Bottrich (ed.), Tischendorf-Lesebuch. ( 1 9 9 9 ) , Nederlands Theologisch Tijdschrift
Tijdschrift
in der Alten Kirche
3 1 0 . W. Reinbold, Propaganda und Mission im dltesten voor geschiedenis 113 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 3 9 6 - 3 9 7 3 1 1 . H. Hiibner, Vetus Testamentum Tijdschrift 5 4 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 2 5 5 - 2 5 6
Theologisch
Neder
Reiseabenteuern
World ( 1 9 9 8 ) , Mnemosyne
53 (2000)
316
Bibliography
3 1 6 . E. Verhoef, De Brieven Brief des Paulus
of Pie ter W. van der Horst, aan de Tessalonicenzen
an die Thessalonicher
1970-2005
( 1 9 9 8 ) . and G. Haufe, Der
( 1 9 9 9 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
erste
Tijdschrift
54 ( 2 0 0 0 ) 3 4 8 3 1 7 . S. Bieberstein, Verschwiegene Konzepte
Jungerinnen
im Lukasevangelium
- vergessene
( 1 9 9 8 ) , Nederlands
Zeuginnen:
Theologisch
Gebrochene
Tijdschrift
54 (2000)
349 3 1 8 . G . N . Stanton & G.G. Stroumsa (eds.), Tolerance and Christianity
( 1 9 9 8 ) , Nederlands
3 1 9 . S.M. M c D o n o u g h , YHWH at Patmos. Setting
( 1 9 9 9 ) , Nederlands
3 2 0 . D . H o l w e r d a , De Schrift Tijdschrift
in Early
Tijdschrift
Judaism
54 (2000) 3 4 9 - 3 5 0 and Early
Jewish
54 (2000) 353
een vergezicht
( 1 9 9 8 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
55 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 7 5
3 2 1 . N . A . B e c k , Mundiges des
Tijdschrift
Rev. 1:4 in its Hellenistic
Theologisch opent
and Intolerance
Theologisch
Neuen
Christentum
Testaments
Tijdschrift
im 21. Jahrhundert.
und ihre
Uberwindung
Die antijiidische
( 1 9 9 8 ) , Nederlands
Polemik Theologisch
55 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 7 6 - 7 7
3 2 2 . H.-J. Becker, Die grofien rabbinischen Theologisch
Tijdschrift
Sammelwerke
Paldstinas
(1999),
Nederlands
55 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 7 7 - 7 8
3 2 3 . R. Baumgarten, Heiliges
Wort undHeilige
Schrift bei den Griechen
(1998),
Mnemo
( 2 0 0 0 ) , Nederlands
Theo
of the Bible ( 2 0 0 0 ) , Nederlands
Theo
syne 5 4 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 2 3 5 - 2 3 7 3 2 4 . J.S. Park, Conceptions logisch
Tijdschrift
of Afterlife
in Jewish
3 2 5 . D . N . Freedman (ed.), Eerdmans logisch
Tijdschrift
Dictionary
55 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 161
3 2 6 . E. van D i g g e l e , Een volk dat alleen staat Israel
( 2 0 0 0 ) , Nederlands
woont.
De strijd
Theologisch
3 2 7 . Chr. Fahner (transl.), Eusebius' Eusebius:
Inscriptions
55 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 160
The Church History
om de joodse
Tijdschrift
Kerkgeschiedenis
identiteit
van de
55 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 162
( 2 0 0 0 ) and P.L. Maier (transl.),
( 1 9 9 9 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
55 ( 2 0 0 1 )
164 3 2 8 . L. Wells, The Greek ( 1 9 9 8 ) , Nederlands
Language
of Healing
from
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
55 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 2 5 6
3 2 9 . Randall Stewart (ed.), Sortes Review
Astrampsychi,
Homer
to New
Testament
Times
vol. II ( 2 0 0 1 ) , Bryn Mawr
Classical
o f 1 Oct. 2 0 0 1 o n Internet (http://ccat.sas.upenn.edu/bmcr/)
3 3 0 . G.W. D a w e s ( e d . ) , The Historical Nederlands
Theologisch
Jesus
Tijdschrift
3 3 1 . A . Lehnardt, Rosh ha-Shana:
Quest:
A Foundational
Anthology
(1999),
55 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 3 4 2 - 3 4 3
Neujahr
( 2 0 0 0 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
55 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 3 4 6 3 3 2 . P. L e u p e n , Het meetlint Nederlands
over Jerusalem.
Theologisch
3 3 3 . P. Pilhofer, Philippi, Interpretation
Tijdschrift
BandII:
Defatale
mythe van een heilige
stad
(2001),
(2000),
Biblical
55 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 3 4 9 - 3 5 0
Katalog
der Inschriften
von Philippi,
9 (2001) 4 4 4 - 4 4 6
3 3 4 . D . H . Hannah, Michael
and Christ
( 1 9 9 9 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
56
(2002)70 3 3 5 . J.N. B r e m m e r , The Rise schiedenis
3 3 6 . E. H o t n u n g , The Secret Classical
Review
Fall
of the Afterlife
( 2 0 0 2 ) , Tijdschrift
voor
Ge-
Lore of Egypt.
Its Impact
on the West ( 2 0 0 1 ) , Bryn
Mawr
1 8 . 0 4 . 2 0 0 2 (http://ccat.sas.upenn.edu/bmcr/)
3 3 7 . S.E. Porter (ed.), Diglossia Nederlands
and
115 ( 2 0 0 2 ) 2 7 6 - 2 7 8
Theologisch
and Other Tijdschrift
Topics
in New Testament
56 (2002) 150-151
Lingistics
(2000),
Bibliography
3 3 8 . N . Forster, Marcus
of Pieter
Magus
W. van der Horst,
( 1 9 9 9 ) , Nederlands
317
1970-2005
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
56 ( 2 0 0 2 )
155-156 3 3 9 . J.C. O ' N e i l l , The Point of It All: Essays logisch
Tijdschrift
3 4 0 . H. W. Basser, Studies Responses
on Jesus
Christ
( 2 0 0 0 ) , Nederlands
Theo
56 (2002) 1 5 6 - 1 5 7 in Exegesis.
70—300
CE
Christian
Critiques
( 2 0 0 0 ) , Nederlands
of Jewish
Theologisch
Law and
Tijdschrift
Rabbinic 56
(2002)
157-158 3 4 1 . J.C. VanderKam, An Introduction Tijdschrift
to Early Judaism
( 2 0 0 1 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
5 6 ( 2 0 0 2 ) 158
3 4 2 . K.L. N o e t h l i c h s , Die Juden im christlichen Berlin 2 0 0 1 , in Bryn Mawr
Classical
Imperium
Review
Romanum
(4.-6.
Jahrhundert),
1 1 - 0 6 - 2 0 0 2 (http://ccat.sas.upenn.
edu/bmcr/) 3 4 3 . Chr. Burchard, Der Jakobusbrief
( 2 0 0 0 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
56
(2002)261-262 3 4 4 . M. Fieger, K. S c h m i d & P. S c h w a g m e i e r (edd.), Qumran Toten Meer ( 2 0 0 1 ) , Nederlands 3 4 5 . M . Lattke, Oden Salomos. Theologisch
Tijdschrift
Text, Ubersetzung,
Classical
von Messene.
Review
Classical
Review
3 4 8 . A.F. N o r m a n , Antioch
( 2 0 0 0 ) , Bijdragen
Tijdschrift
vol. 1 (1999),
Nederlands
Leben,
Werk und Nachwirkung
(2002),
Une selection
de papyrus
(2000),
of Hellenic Saints:
Culture
as Observed
The Lives of Plotinus
by
Libanius
and Proclus
by
62 ( 2 0 0 1 ) 4 7 1 ^ 1 7 2
of Greek
Rhetorical
Terms
( 2 0 0 0 ) , Nederlands
Theo
56 ( 2 0 0 2 ) 3 4 2
3 5 0 . Ch. H e m p e l , The Damascus Nederlands
Kommentar,
greco-romaine.
as a Centre
3 4 9 . R . D . A n d e r s o n , Glossary logisch
vom
o f 0 6 / 0 9 / 0 2 ((http://ccat.sas.upenn.edu/bmcr/)
( 2 0 0 0 ) and M . Edwards, Neoplatonic Their Students
- Die Schriftrollen
56 (2002) 2 6 2 - 2 6 3
o f ' 2 1 / 0 7 / 0 2 (http://ccat.sas.upenn.edu/bmcr/)
3 4 7 . P. Schubert ( e d . ) , Vivre en Egypte Bryn Mawr
Tijdschrift
56 (2002) 263
3 4 6 . M . Winiarczyk, Euhemeros Bryn Mawr
Theologisch
Theologisch
Texts ( 2 0 0 0 ) , and J.R. Davila, Liturgical
Tijdschrift
3 5 1 . D . - M . d ' H a m o n v i l l e , La Bible d'Alexandrie e.a., La Bible d'Alexandrie
23.1:
Works ( 2 0 0 0 ) ,
56 ( 2 0 0 2 ) 3 4 4 - 3 4 5 17: Les Proverbes
Osee ( 2 0 0 2 ) , Nederlands
( 2 0 0 2 ) , and E. B o n s
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
56 ( 2 0 0 2 ) 3 4 5 - 3 4 6 3 5 2 . S.T. Kat, Kontinuitat stischem
undDiskontinuitdt
Antisemitismus
3 5 3 . R . S . B l o c h , Antike Rahmen Review
zwischen
( 2 0 0 1 ) , Nederlands
Vorstellungen
vom Judentum.
der griechisch-romischen
Ethnographie
undnationalsoziali-
Tijdschrift
56 ( 2 0 0 2 ) 3 4 6
Der Judenexkurs ( 2 0 0 2 ) , Bryn
des Tacitus
im
Mawr
Classical
Law and
Rabbinic
o f 1 N o v . 2 0 0 2 (http://ccat.sas.upenn.edu/bmcr/)
3 5 4 . H.W. Basser, Studies Responses
70-300
in Exegesis:
Christian
CE ( 2 0 0 0 ) , Vigiliae
3 5 5 . W.D. Furley & J.M. Bremer, Greek schrift
christlichem
Theologisch
Critiques
of Jewish
Christrianae
Hymns
56 ( 2 0 0 2 ) 3 1 9 - 3 2 1
( 2 0 0 1 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijd
57(2003)66-67
3 5 6 . S. B y r s k o g , Story as History of Ancient
History
3 5 7 . B.T. V i v i a n o , Trinity Nederlands
- History
( 2 0 0 0 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
- Kingdom Tijdschrift
as Story:
The Gospel
Theologisch
- Church.
Tradition
Tijdschrift
Essays
in Biblical
in the
Theology
Tijdschrift
(2001),
57 (2003) 7 7 - 7 8
3 5 8 . Azariah d e ' R o s s i , The Light of the Eyes, transl. b y J. Weinberg ( 2 0 0 1 ) , Theologisch
Context
57 (2003) 7 6 - 7 7
57 (2003) 7 9 - 8 0
Nederlands
318
Bibliography
ofPieter
W. van der Horst,
3 5 9 . H . D . Saffrey & A.-P. S e g o n d s (edd.), Marinus: Mnemosyne
Theologisch
3 6 1 . T. Eskola, Messiah stian
Proclus
ou sur le bonheur
(2001),
56 (2003) 9 7 - 9 9
3 6 0 . N . B e l a y c h e , Iudaea-Palaestina: Nederlands
1970-2005
Exaltation
The Pagan
Tijdschrift
and the Throne. Jewish
Discourse
Cults
of Roman
Palestine
(2001),
51 ( 2 0 0 3 ) 1 5 3 - 1 5 4 Merkabah
( 2 0 0 1 ) , Nederlands
Mysticism
Theologisch
and Early
Tijdschrift
Chri
57 (2003)
159-160 3 6 2 . A . S a m e l l a s , Death Nederlands
in the Mediterranean
Theologisch
3 6 3 . J. Leonhardt, Jewish logisch
Tijdschrift
Tijdschrift Worship
in Philo
of Alexandria
( 2 0 0 1 ) , Nederlands
Theo
Identity
and Culture
( 2 0 0 1 ) , Frankfurter
Judaistische
29 ( 2 0 0 2 [publ. in 2 0 0 3 ] ) 1 5 5 - 1 5 7
3 6 5 . H. G o r g e m a n n s (ed.), Plutarch. Bryn Mawr
Classical
3 6 6 . M . H e n g e l , Paulus logisch
of the East ( 2 0 0 2 ) ,
51 ( 2 0 0 3 ) 1 6 1 - 1 6 2
3 6 4 . M . Niehoff, Philo on Jewish Beitrdge
- The Christianization
51 ( 2 0 0 3 ) 1 6 0 - 1 6 1
Tijdschrift
Review
Drei religionsphilosophische
und Jakobus.
Tijdschrift
Kleine
Schriften
III ( 2 0 0 2 ) , Nederlands
Theo
Tijdschrift
II.8) ( 2 0 0 1 ) ,
Nederlands
in the Hellenistic
and Roman
Cities
(2002),
Nederlands
51 ( 2 0 0 3 ) 2 4 6 - 2 4 7
3 6 9 . C. ClauBen, Versammlung, derfruhchristlichen
des Talmud Yerushalmi
51 ( 2 0 0 3 ) 2 4 5 - 2 4 6
3 6 8 . J.R. Bartlett ( e d . ) , Jews Theologisch
( 2 0 0 3 ) , in
57 (2003) 2 4 3 - 2 4 4
3 6 7 . A . Lehnardt, Besa. Ei (Ubersetzung Theologisch
Schriften
2 0 0 3 . 0 6 . 0 9 (online: http://ccat.sas.upenn.edu/bmcr/)
Gemeinde,
Gemeinde
Synagoge.
Das hellenistisch-jiidische
( 2 0 0 2 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Umfeld
Tijdschrift
51 ( 2 0 0 3 )
Teil 2 ( 2 0 0 1 ) ,
Nederlands
247-248 3 7 0 . M . Lattke, Oden Salomos. Theologisch
Tijdschrift
Text, Ubersetzung,
3 7 1 . M . Finkelberg, G.G. Stroumsa (edd.), Homer, Religious
Canons
Kommentar,
51 ( 2 0 0 3 ) 2 4 8 - 2 4 9
in the Ancient
the Bible,
and Beyond.
World ( 2 0 0 3 ) , Bryn Mawr
Literary
Classical
and
Review
o f 13
Theologisch
Tijd
Sept. 2 0 0 3 (online: http://ccat.sas.upenn.edu/bmcr/) 3 7 2 . D.J. van U d e n e.a., Sjabbat: schrift
een dag apart
( 2 0 0 2 ) , Nederlands
51(2003)342
3 7 3 . C. H e m p e l , A . L a n g e & H. Lichtenberger (eds), The Wisdom Texts from the Development
of Sapiential
Qumran
Thought
( 2 0 0 2 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Authors
on Samaritan
Samaritanism
and
Tijdschrift
51 ( 2 0 0 3 ) 3 4 3 - 3 4 4 3 7 4 . R. P u m m e r , Early Nederlands
3 7 5 . F. Jung, SOTER. Testament
Christian
Theologisch Studien
Tijdschrift
zur Rezeption
( 2 0 0 2 ) , Mnemosyne
3 7 6 . H . D . B e t z , The
'Mithras
and
(2002),
51 ( 2 0 0 3 ) 3 4 4 - 3 4 5 eines hellenistischen
Ehrentitels
im
Neuen
56 (2003) 7 4 5 - 7 4 7
Liturgy'
( 2 0 0 3 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
58
(2004)160-161 3 7 7 . F. Vinel, La Bible d'Alexandrie, Tijdschrift
3 7 8 . G.W.E. N i c k e l s b u r g , Ancient and
18: L'Ecclesiaste
( 2 0 0 2 ) , Nederlands
Transformation
Judaism
( 2 0 0 3 ) , Review
and Christian of Biblical
Origins: Literature
Diversity,
Continuity,
6 July 2 0 0 4 (http://
w w w . b o o k r e v i e w s . o r g / b o o k d e t a i l . a s p ? T i t l e l d = 3 9 5 6 ) ; also in Journal Literature
Theologisch
5 8 ( 2 0 0 4 ) 165
of
Biblical
124 ( 2 0 0 5 ) 1 7 6 - 1 7 8
3 7 9 . W. D e m i n g , Paul on Marriage
and Celibacy
( 2 0 0 4 ) , Bryn Mawr
2 3 . 0 8 . 2 0 0 4 ( o n internet: (http://ccat.sas.upenn.edu/bmcr/)
Classical
Review
Bibliography
3 8 0 . V.D. Arbel, Beholders Merkavah
of Pieter
of Divine
Literature
W. van der Horst,
Secrets:
Mysticism
( 2 0 0 3 ) , in: Review
319
1970-2005
and Myth in the Hekhalot
of Biblical
Literature
and
Oct. 3 , 2 0 0 4 ( s e e
http://www.bookreviews.org/BookDetail. asp?Titleld=4078) 3 8 1 . J.E. Taylor, Jewish Gnomon
Women Philosophers
in First-Century
3 8 2 . S. Liekis, A State within a State? Jewish
Autonomy
and H. Kruk, The Last Days of the Jerusalem Ghetto
Alexandria
( 2 0 0 3 ) , in:
76 (2004) 6 3 4 - 6 3 5
and the Camps
1939-1944
in Lithuania
ofLithuania.
1918-1925
Chronicles
( 2 0 0 3 ) , in Nederlands
(2003),
from the Vilna
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
58
(2004)343-344 3 8 3 . C. C o l p e , Iranier logisch
- Aramaer
Tijdschrift
3 8 4 . H. Lohr, Studien Theologisch
- Hebrder
- Hellenen
( 2 0 0 3 ) , in Nederlands
Theo
58 (2004) 3 4 4 - 3 4 5 zum fruhchristlichen
Tijdschrift
undfruhjudischen
Gebet
(2003),
Nederlands
58 (2004) 3 4 9 - 3 5 0 .
3 8 5 . N . de L a n g e , Judaism
( 2 0 0 3 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
58
(2004)
350-351 3 8 6 . A . - M . D e n i s e.a., Introduction Vigiliae
Christianae
a la litterature
3 8 7 . U. Hackl e.a., Quellen zur Geschichte Tijdschrift
judeo-hellenistique
(2000),
der Nabataer
( 2 0 0 3 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
59 (2005) 6 1 - 6 2
3 8 8 . I. Peres, Griechische Nederlands
Grabinschriften
Theologisch
Tijdschrift
3 8 9 . M . H a d a s - L e b e l , Philon Theologisch
Tijdschrift
3 9 0 . E. Kessler, Bound Bryn
religieuse
58 (2004) 4 5 2 - 4 5 5
Mawr
und neutestamentliche
Eschatologie
(2003),
59 (2005) 7 1 - 7 2
d'Alexandrie:
unpenseur
en diaspora
(2003),
Nederlands
59 (2005) 72
by the Bible: Jews,
Classical
Review
Christians
and the Sacrifice
of Isaac
(2004),
2 . 0 3 . 2 0 0 5 ( o n internet: http://ccat.sas.upenn.edu/
bmcr/) 3 9 1 . F. Blanchetiere, Les premiers
chretiens
Journal for the Study of Judaism
etaient-ils
3 9 2 . P. J. W i l l i a m s a. o. (eds.), The New Testament Context Review
and Background of Biblical
in Honour
Literature
missionaries
(30-135)?
(2002),
36 (2005) 8 9 - 9 0 in Its First Century
Setting:
Essays
of B. W. Winter on His 65th Birthday
on
(2004),
13 April 2 0 0 5 (at: h t t p : / / w w w . b o o k r e v i e w s . o r g / B o o k -
Detail.asp?TitleId=4424) 3 9 3 . G e o r g e H. van K o o t e n ( e d . ) , The Creation of Genesis Modern Review
1 in the Context
Physics.
Julianus
Theologisch
3 9 5 . W. Harmless, Desert
en Saloustios:
Tijdschrift
Christians:
( 2 0 0 4 ) , Nederlands Empire
An Introduction
Theologisch
( 2 0 0 3 ) , Mnemosyne
Over de wereld
Mawr
and Classical
Period
( 2 0 0 3 ) , Nederlands and Christian
59 (2005) 2 5 8 - 2 5 9
(2003),
Culture
of Early
Mona
59 (2005) 1 6 6 - 1 6 7 and Society
Under
the
Christian
58 (2005) 1 5 3 - 1 5 6 Theologisch
of Biblical
Literature
Interpretation,
Tijdschrift
3 9 8 . P.J. T o m s o n & D . Lambers-Petry (eds.), The Image Jewish
en haar goden
to the Literature
Tijdschrift
3 9 7 . A.J. Hauser & D.F. Watson (eds.), A History
Ancient
Re-interpretations Christianity,
5 9 ( 2 0 0 5 ) 158
3 9 6 . R. K a l m i n & S. Schwartz (eds.), Jewish
Ancient
Philosophy,
3 1 - 0 4 - 2 0 0 5 ( o n internet at: http://ccat.sas.upenn.edu/bmcr/)
Nederlands
Roman
and Earth.
Ancient
T h e m e s in Biblical Narrative 8 ( 2 0 0 5 ) , Bryn
3 9 4 . R. Ferwerda, Keizer
sticism
of Heaven
of Judaism,
vol. I: The
59 (2005) 2 5 2 - 2 5 3
of the Judaeo-Christians
( 2 0 0 3 ) , Nederlands
Theologisch
in
Tijdschrift
320
Bibliography
3 9 9 . J. Taylor, Pythagoreans logisch
Tijdschrift
ofPieter
andEssenes:
opfer ( 2 0 0 4 ) , Nederlands 4 0 1 . S. Krauter, Burgerrecht the Study of Judaism
- Schabbat Theologisch
Poleis,
( 2 0 0 4 ) , Nederlands
Yetsira:
Tijdschrift
Pesach-
und kultische
Judentum
Rechte
( 2 0 0 4 ) , Journal
und for
of Early
Anti-Christian
Polemic
Translation,
Tijdschrift
im Zeitalter
and Text-Critical
Commentary
59 ( 2 0 0 5 ) 3 4 9 - 3 5 0 des zweiten
Tempels
(2004),
Nederlands
59 ( 2 0 0 5 ) 3 5 0 to Diogenes
of Oenoanda,
The Epicurean
Inscription
in Greco-Roman
Paganism
ser. IV 5 8 ( 2 0 0 5 ) 6 0 3 - 6 0 5
4 0 6 . J.G. C o o k , The Interpretation Christianae
of the Old
Testament
59 ( 2 0 0 5 ) 4 6 5 ^ 6 7
4 0 7 . P. Pilhofer, M. B a u m b a c h , J. Gerlach & D . U . H a n s e n , Lukian: ( 2 0 0 5 ) , Bryn Mawr
upenn. edu/bmcr/)
-
59 (2005) 2 6 1 - 2 6 2
Politische
The Rise
Edition,
Theologisch
4 0 5 . M.F. S m i t h , Supplement
grinos
Theo
59 ( 2 0 0 5 ) 2 0 5 - 2 0 7
4 0 4 . R.G. Kratz, Das Judentum
( 2 0 0 3 ) , Mnemosyne
( 2 0 0 4 ) , and A . Lehnardt, Pesahim
Rom und antikem
the Christians.
Christianae
4 0 3 . A.P. H a y m a n , Sever
( 2 0 0 4 ) , Vigiliae
( 2 0 0 4 ) , Nederlands
36 (2005) 3 5 5 - 3 5 8
4 0 2 . J.W. Hargis, Against
Theologisch
Parallels
Tijdschrift
und Kultteilnahme.
in griechischen
( 2 0 0 1 ) , Vigiliae
Structural
1970-2005
59 (2005) 260-261
4 0 0 . F.G. Huttenmeister, Shabbat
Pflichten
W. van der Horst,
Classical
Review
Der Tod des
Pere-
o n line o f 1 6 - 1 1 - 2 0 0 5 (http.//ccat.sas.
Index of passages Old
Testament 14:27
281
59 61,62
15:4 L X X
280, 281
15:7
282
64
16:35
264
2:17
119, 121, 1 2 2
19:18
274
3:3
119 122
20:17 23:4-5
146
3:9
220
Genesis 1:27 1:28 1:31
111
4:7
60
4:15
123
26:33 32:10-2
5:24
125
34:7
84
6:3
66-70
35:1
268
6:5
60
8:21
60
128
Leviticus 6:8-13
277
12:3 ( L X X )
217
15:1
113
20:2
119
21:4
203
21:6
201
13:33^1
264
22
191-6
14:9
239
203
19:14
240
22:11
194
22:22
128
22:11-12
195
23:19
131, 132
22:13
204
25:3^1
128
22:3^1
16
220
Numbers
22:17
193
25:8
207, 209
26:8
201,205
4:26
112
46:4
265
6:5
60, 65
46:27
265
8:2
264
49:9
51
8:5
132
10:17 10:22
112 265
11:3^1 L X X
280,281
49:10
217,218,219, 221,225
Exodus
Deuteronomy
3:2
274
11:13
60, 65
3:20
141
16:16
217
4:8
124
18:15
218, 225
4:14
128
18:15-8
21
13:21
274
18:19
218, 225
Index of
322
passages
25:3
266-7
17:27-8
135
27:4
146, 156
17:29
135,
27:26
217
17:30
136
28
84
17:34
157
29:5
264
17:40-1
135
30:19
112
22:14-20
87
31:21
60
22:15
89
31:28
112
24:19-20
128
32:1-3
39
34:6
125
3
34:7
66
14:21 (Vulg.)
Kings
4
Joshua 3
277
3:13^
281
252
Kings
13:1 ( V u l g . )
5:6
264
I
7:1
128
21:1
7:26
128
252
Chronicles 129,
10:40
173
2
14:7
264
12:13 (Vulg.)
Chronicles 252
14:10
264
34:22-28
87
19:38 ( V u l g . )
253 Ezra
Judges
6
3:8
128
218
3:14 (Vulg.)
253
Ne hernia
4:4
90
13:28-29
4:6
89
139
Job
10:7
128
10:8 (Vulg.)
253
15:29 ( L X X )
240
20:25 (Vulg.)
253
38:10-1
277
2
Psalms
Samuel 2:30 (Vulg.)
253
2:5
6:7
128
2:12
129
8:13 (Vulg.)
253
4:8
207
7:10
60
22:16
171
24:1
129,133
/
Kings
129
18:16
171
25:18 ( L X X )
213
27:10
62
18:41-5
212
27:12
171
19:18
158
39:7 ( L X X )
198
46:11 ( L X X )
213
2
Kings
51:5
62
125
55:8 ( L X X )
213
13:21
87
68:7 ( L X X )
214
17
156
265
17:25
135
81:6 82:1
2:11
112
New
Testament
89:4
219
Jeremiah
95:3
112 60
1:5 1:6-10 (LXX)
212
103:14 109:4 ( L X X )
219,225
1:9
276
113:3
281
5:22
277
114:3
277
119:21 ( L X X )
213
138:7-8
203
10:5
139:8 ( L X X )
240
21:36
171
145:9 ( L X X )
207,211
24:16
126
36:26
61
38
219
Ezekiel
Proverbs 6:5 ( L X X )
276
277
211
12:17
171
Joel
24:17-8
111
3:10
30:16 (LXX)
63
214
Obadiah Song of Songs 1:6
20
44
171
Micah Isaiah
5:1
221
2:4
214
5:14
129
6:5-7
141
7:15
20
11:9
220
13:3
129
Zephania
13:5
129
2-3
13:9
129
13:13
129
Haggai
35:1
209
2:22-24
51:3
209
53:7
204
New Matthew
129
226
Testament 28:16
161
28:17
161-3
5:26
164
6:1
164
6:2 6:5
164 164
5:9
275
6:16
164
9:17
275
212
9:38
274
20:8
164
12:36
213
22:43-5
213
25:26-7
210
26:67
161
1:35
236, 240
27:5
101
2:8-15
212
4:35
273
9:20-22
Mark
Luke
324
Index of
passages
6:20
166
24:11
260
7:42
164
27:17
179
8:30
275
27-8
103
9:17
260
28:4
107
9:49
274 Romans
9:51-3
134
9:62
213
2:6
164
10:19
213
7:13-25
61
11:24-6
274
13: 4 (Vulg.)
253
13:11 (Vulg.)
253
1
16:22
164-6
10:1-2
194
18:14
211
13:8
211
22:24
163
13:13
220
15:28
200
11:26
176-180
Corinthians
John 4:9
134
2
4:20
145
1:3
Corinthians 212
4:22
158
11:24
254,
5:5
260
8:56
197
20:24
163
266-8 Galatians 212
1:15 Acts 2:9-11
16
3:23-29
220
3:24-25
221
2:11
107
2:12-3
163
2:30
213
1:3
4:36
30
2:2
275-6
5:15
236,241
3:10
275-6
6:9
103
7:8
179
Colossians
9:1
167-175
4:11
Ephesians 212
172
11:19-20
30
12:2-3
100
/
12:22-3
100,101
4:16-7
13:5
78
13:5-6
30
I
15:39
30
2:4
217
16:13
106
5:4
164
16:13^4
84
Thessalonians 179
Timothy
17:18
163
Philemon
19:7
260
24
19:13
274
19:16
274
Hebrews
19:19
270
7:11
219
20:11
179
8-9
220
22:3
107
11:29
282
172
25(
Jewish
Literature
James
5:5
2:19
1
274
8
:
51
6
1
6
4
Apocalypse 2:17
173
Pre-Rabbinic
Jewish
Literature
A p o c r y p h a and Pseudepigrapha
Martyrium
Ben
3:1-12
141
5:1-14
141
Sira
21:11
61
50:26
140
51:12
113
Isaiae
Paralipomena
Jeremiae
8 Epistle
of
142
Aristeas
305
107
Ps-Eupolemos 146
fr.3 Esther
(additions
C23
in LXX) 112
Ps-Phocylides 100-1
94
Jubilees
102
94
5:8
103-115
93
103^1
93-5
104b
94
67
Liber Antiquitatum
Biblicarum
18:5
194
105-8
30-33
90
106
96
32:2-3
194
111
96 96 63
33:4
92
115
40:2
194
193^1
40:6
196
48:1
69
Testament
96
of Abraham
7:11 1
16-20
Maccabees 3:10
178 96
140
15:15
28
Testament
15:17
13
1:3-9
15:22-23
13,28
of
60
Testament 2
140
9
101
5:25
of
Solomon
4:1
Maccabees
6:2
3
Asher
Maccabees 110
Vitae
172 Prophetarum
Jeremiah 6
179
Isaiah 8
91
D e a d Sea Scrolls 1QS 3 : 1 3 ^ 1
60
4Q252 I 2-3
67
(rec.
326
Index of
passages Contra
Josephus Antiquitates
Judaicae
Apionem
1.205-11
230
1:75
68
1:228-252
231
1:98-9
69
2:91-6
232
1:152 1:232
69 194-5
Vita
4:40
110
427
4:176
256,257
4:238
256, 267
Philo A l e x a n d r i n u s
256, 267
De
4:305
146
202
5:200-9
90
5:203
90
De 108
4:248
15
Abrahamo 131 Congressu 170
8:44-49
276
9:277-291
136, 137, 139
9:278
137
9:290
137
26
102, 103 103 107
In
Flaccum
137,138
31
10:77
267
41
11:302-347
138
53
103
138
56
106
82
100
9:291
11:346 12:7-10
144
12:148-152
44
124
112-3
13:74-79
144
101
99
13:78
144
102-3
99
13:284
29
103
100, 103
13:287
29
104
107
13:324-333
29
116
100
14:223-7
45
121-124
108-113
14:258
106
122
106
14:259-61
45
125
110
14:260
46
138
107
18:85-7
21
152-6
102
18:131
29
158
107
19:343-52
101
170
109
20:97-8
21
190
112
191
110
20:142
29
20:167-172
21
20:188
21
De
Josepho
21 Bellum
170
Judaicum
2:101-116
15
Legatio
6:270
267
3
ad
6:285
21
261-348
100
7:437-^1
21
282
15, 3 0
De mutatione 215
Gaium 110
nominum 170
Rabbinic
Quaestiones 1:16
in Genesim 120
327
Literature
De somniis 1:107
170
1:35
121
2:177-9
131
1:45
122
2:234-7
132
1:75-6
123
1:82
125
De specialibus
1:86
125
2:165
1:91
68
4:60
119
legibus 112
VitaMosis
Quod deus sit immutabilis
1:6
131
1:55
170 112
59
131
1:113
60
131
2:34
106
61-9
131-2
2:37
112
170
2:240
170
174 De
sacrificiis
95-6
131
Rabbinic
literature
Mishnah
Shabbat
Avoda
7:2
Zara
3:8
267
240 Yevamot
1:1
266
3:15
59
4:1
62
6:6
Avot
61
Tosefta Bava
Bathra
1:11 Berakhot 7:1
147
Nega 'im
9:5
6 0 , 65
6:2
266
4:14
Terumot
Makkot 3:10
147, 148
B a b y l o n i a n Talmud
Middot
Arakhin
1:3
264
13a Oholot 240
Avoda
5
240
4a
224
11
240
5a
62
2
Sanhedrin 10:1
148
Zara
5b
61
9a-b
20
31a-b
149
48b-49a
240
328 Bava
Index of
Bathra
passages
95b
265
16a
61
97a-b
20
123a
265
99a
20
Bava
Qamma
Shabbat
82b
88
83a
265
61
105b Sotah
Berakhot
36b
5a
61
265
17a
61
Sukkot
24b
106
52a
61
61a
60,61
52a-b
60,61
Gittin 56b
Yevamot 101
64a
265
122a
241
Horayoth 12a
241
Hullin 6a
Zevahim 118b
264
119a
264
149 Jerusalem Talmud
Keritot 5b-6a
Avoda 241
44d
Megillah
Berakhot
14a
lib
Zara 149
147
14b Demai Nedarim
24c
20b
63
38a
265
266
Eruvin 20b
266
Niddah 56b
137, 147
Gittin 43c
137, 147
Pesachim 111b
241
Ketuvot 30d
266
Qiddushin 30b
61
Nazir
75a-76a
149
57d
75b
136, 137, 147
76a
147
Nedarim 41b
Sanhedrin 85b
137, 147
61
Rabbinic Ta 'anit
329
literature
Pirqe de-R.
66c
60
Midrashim Canticles
Si/re Rabba
1.2.4
265 Deuteronomium
33 61
Ecclesiastes
Eliezer
39
61
45
60,61
311
277
Rabba
9:7
61
Tanhuma
B
Wayyikra 12 Exodus
61
Rabba 61
41:17
Targumim Neofiti
Genesis
Rabba
G e n 6:3
9:7
67
61,64
10:7
101
Onkelos
16:6
119
G e n 6:3
68
19:3
121
N u m 14:9
240
19:9
122
22:12
123
Ps-Jonathan
22:13
124
G e n 3:9
122
22:6
61
G e n 6:3
68
25:1
125
Gen 22:7-11
195
27:4
60
N u m 14:9
240
Deut 25:3
267
Rabba
Deut 30:6
61
Lamentations 1.16.45
31 N o n - T a l m u d i c Rabbinic treatises
Leviticus
Rabba
14:5
Avoth de-Rabbi 62
1
Ishmael
35:1
Nathan 122
16 Mekhilta
de-R.
Beshallach 5
68
Shabbata 2
267
Wayassa 3
241
Numbers
Kuthim 1:1
134
2:9
149
Rabba
18:21
267
Megillat
22 Pesiqta
2 26:1-2
62
Ta 'anit 147
Rabbati 91
Semachot
89
14:10
88
(rec. A)
330
Index of
Early Augustine De civitate 15:24
Christian
Literature 70
209
75
210
70
90
209
200
2
Dei
1 Clement 31:3
passages
Theodosius 209
C l e m e n t o f Alexandria
Cyril o f Jerusalem
Paedagogus
Catechesis 201
5:6
1.21.141
116
De
4.11.68.3
132
16:7-9
1.5.22.2-3
Epiphanius
Stromateis
73.73.73
203
mensibus 148
203 Eusebius
Constitutiones A p o s t o l i c a e 8.12.12 20.20
282
Historia
Ecclesiastica
3:2
31
188 Praeparatio
Ev
angelica
Cyril o f S c y t h o p o l i s
9.17.5-6
146
Cyriacus
9.19.4
116
3 10
210
9.21.1-19
116
210,213
3.3.3-3
116
9.29.15
116
Euthymius 25
212
35
210
39
209,211
16.16.16
116
11.6.36
273
Eutychius A l e x a n d r i n u s Annales
Sabas Prol.
2:220-3
32
212
2
210,212,213
Gregory the Great
4
213
Epistulae
6
209
6.33
12
210,213
8.21
41 41
15
211
9.38
41
16
210,214
23
211
Irenaeus
27
212
Adversus
28
210,214-5
1.30.14
179
33-8
207
2.6.2
274
39
210,214
4.5.4-5
197
40
210
47
210
62
212
Haereses
Early Christian
Jerome
Literature
Melito
Comm.
in Is.
7:14
223
Quaest.
204
fragm. 10
204
Origenes
in Gen.
6:3
Contra
69
Johannes M o s c h u s Pratum
fragm. 9
spirituale
172
Celsum
1:6
282
4:33
280
4:34
275
4:71-2
224
133
Horn. 8 in Julius Africanus fragm.
1
Horn.
197
inJer.
18-20
69
133
Orosius
Justin Martyr Dialogus
Gen.
cum Tryphone
85:2
282
131:3
282
Judaeo
Historia
adv.
paganos
7.12.8
31
Photius Justinian Novella
Bibliotheca 146
105,223
Lactantius De mortibus
cod.
224
32
Romanos Melodos persecutorum
50:1
101
Kontakion 3.14
200
Macarius M a g n e s
Socrates S c h o l a s t i c u s
Monogenes
Historia
(Apokritikos)
2.7.10
184
2.16.26-9
184
Ecclesiastica
7:38
18
3.42.6
186
Sophronius
4.5.1
184
Laudatio
4.5.2
184
55
Cyr. et Joh. 31-2
Tatian
Malalas
Oratio
Chronographia 10.20
55
15.15
55
16.6
55-6
ad
Graecos
27
248
Z e n o o f Verona De 1.43
Abrahamo 198,:
332
Index of
Pagan Aelian De natura
Greek
passages
and Latin
Literature
Apollodorus animalium
3:7
235
6:14
235
Bibliotheca 2.7.3
254
Apollonius Rhodius Aeschylus
Argonautica 2:974-5
Agamemnon
256,
187
168
219
168
Aristophanes
374-5
168
Aves
1206
169
1121
1235
169
169
Ranae 1016
Choephoroi 391-2
169
952
169
169
Aristaenetus Epist.
1:5
171
Eumenides 840
169
Aristotle Historia
animalium
3:20 ( 5 2 2 a 3 0 -
Persae 339
255
343
255
1062
193
31)
259
Poetica 17(1455bl)
178
Septem 169
52-3
Politica 5.9.23 (1315b36)
Supplices
1-1
169
259
5.11.25 (1315al-3)
229
Andocides De
Mysteriis
38 105
Rhetorica 162 162-3
2.14.4 (1390bl0-ll) fragm. 3 6 9 R o s e
255, 235
A n t h o l o g i a Palatina 2:233
170
Aulus Gellius
2:451
170
Nodes
5:259
170
10:28
7:25
170
9:159
170, 174
Caesar
174
De Bello
11:240 Antiphon fragm. 4 9
170
Atticae 252
Gallico
1:8
253
2:5
253
4:19
253
Pagan Greek and Latin Cassius Dio
Literature
D i o g e n e s Laertius
58.20.5
256
68.32.1-2
31,232
Lives of the eminent philosophe 5:27 258
Chion
D i o n y s i u s o f Halicarnassus
Epistula
Antiquitates
3:3
170, 174
Romanae
7.3.2
257
7.51.3
170
Cicero De natura
Epictetus
deorum
1.17.45
130
Dissertationes
1:117
247
2.15.8
178
1:118
247
3.23.1-2
178
171
Andromache
In
Euripides
Catilinam
2:1 In
Verrem
189-90
169
326-7
169, 174
252
4:123
Bacchae Pro Roscio
Amerino
620
169
7:20
252
640
169
35:99
252
1348
130
Tusculanae
disputationes
3.12.26
236
Cornutus
Bellerophon fragm. 2 8 6
248
Hecuba
Compendium
162
1161-3
35
97 Hercules
Critias
635-6
fr. 8 8 A 3 D - K
243
fr. 8 8 B 2 5 D - K
242
Iphigeneia 458-9
furens 162 Aulensis 196
Digesta 252
37.37.37
Iphigeneia 288
Taurensis 169
Dio Chrysostom Oratio
Phoenissae
67:4-5
237
454
169
876
169
D i o d o r u s Siculus Bibliotheca
historica
1.1.1.1
229
4.4.4
255, 256, 258
Rhesus 785
169
334
Index of
passages Hippocrates
Eutropius 1:1
253
De
affectibus
9
259
Geoponica 15.1.10
235
Homer Iliad
Heliodorus
1:25
254
Aethiopica
1:297
168
170
1.2.1
2:356
168
2:557
254
Herodotus
2:637
254
Historiae
2:713
254 254
1:84
261
2:748
1:94
259
3:8
168
1:106
258
4:109
254
1:126
259
11:508
168
1:130
258, 259
21:386
167
1:196
165
21:395
168
1:202
255,256
24:364
168
2:7
258
24:496
255
2:134
257
24:496
261
2:142
258
2:143
261
Odyssee
3:90
258
5:278
54, 255
3:93^1
261
5:279
255,261
4:1
258
10:495
239
4:35
65
11:207
239
5:84
165
16:249
254, 255
6:27
258
19:138-9
168
7:186
259
8:48
259
9:30
255,257
Carmina
9:33
256, 257
4.13.19
9:70
258
Horatius 171
Isaeus Herondas
Orationes
Mimiambe 8:58
170
255 256
Isocrates
Hesiod Opera
11:43 12:270
et
dies
Orationes
780
255
814
255
12:270
258
Livy Hippiatrica 130:135
Berolinensia 239
History 3:24
252
3.24.10
253
Pagan Greek and Latin
Literature
23.46.4
253
Vitae
29.2.17
252
1:16
34.10.4
253
36.45.3
252
Pindar
37.30.8
252
Nemean
3.3.3
252
3:41-2
14.14.14
252
40.40.13
253
Pythian
45.43.3
253
4:10
262
45.43.5
252
9:113
255,261
Lucian
Sophistarum 244
Odes 170 Odes
10:44
169, 174
11:29-30
169
Lexiphanes
2
163
Plato Gorgias
Lucretius De rerum
177-8
457d natura
5:392
171
Leges
6:783-5
238
666a
Lysias Orationes 12:18
165
19:43
256
259
828b-c
162
833d
259
908b-e
246
910c
165
Phaedo Nepos
58b
165
Cato 1:2
252
Protagoras 177
314c Nonnus Respublica
Dionysiaca 48:650
171
178
368d Plautus
Ovid
Mercator
Metamorphoses 12:553-5
254
252
430
Pausanias
Pliny the Elder
Descriptio
Naturalis
Graeciae
Historia
3.11.6-8
257
7:214
8.38.6
237
7:214
251 254
8:106
235
Philostratus
17:18
Heroicus
19.1.3
102
28:69
236
30:11
35
1:3 Vita 3:15
237 Apollonii 239
238
336
Index
ofpassages
Plutarch
Ps-Callisthenes
De sera numinis
vindicta
Historia
12
130
46
20
130
Alexandri
Magni 170
Ps-Hesiod De Stoicorum
repugnantiis
Aspis
231
23-5
3,166A
231
Institutiones
8,169C
231
3.7.21
38, 1050E De
Quintilian
superstitione
12.171C
168,174
230
247-8 Sappho
Quaestiones
Graecae
39,300C
fragm. 4 7
168
238 Scholion on Callimachus Hymn to Zeus
Caesar 255,256
1:13
Pompeius
Sextus Empiricus
79:4
256, 259
Pyrrhoneiai
30:3
238
1:162
Hypotyposeis 130
Polybius Solinus
Historia 12.16.13
256
Collectanea
16.12.7
237
27:24 Sophocles
Porphyry De antro
nympharum
26
237
Proclus In
237
Antigone 806-8
196
30-30
169
1177
174
Rempublicam
I p . 2 9 0 (Kroll)
235
Electra 169
610 Propertius Strabo
Elegiae
Geographica 1.3.7
171
Protagoras
6.3.7
102
16.2.35-6
230
16.2.37
230
fragm. 8 0 B 4 D - K 2 4 5 Tabula 19:1
Ps-Aristotle De mirabilibus
auscultationibus
145
235
Cebetis 178
rec.A
Inscriptions
De re 253
2.4.11
253
Aeneid
5.2.1-3
16-7
7:510
5.3-5
232
5.5.1
232
rustica 252
Virgil
Historiae 2.59
337
Papyri
Varro
Tacitus Annates 12:56
and
253
Eclogae 10:75-6
239
Themistius Xenophon
Oratio 1:7
171
Anabasis 1.3.14
165
Theocritus
1.10.3
162
Idylle
2.3.10
162
3.4.5
259
5.4.31
162
18:54-5
170
22:82
170
Theophrastus Characteres 16
229
18
177
7.1.4
178
7.4.16
259
7.5.2
162
Cyropaedia
Thucydides
2.1.1
178
3.2.12
162
Historiae 1.37.1
177
Hellenica
2.13.3
258
1.1.5
1.1.1.1
177
1.2.14
162
4.38.5
255,258
2.3.47
244
4.101.1
261
7.5.12
170
4.102.3
259
5:31
165
7.28.3
261
8.108.1-2
259
259
Memorabilia 1.2.12
Inscriptions
and
Socratis 244
Papyri
CIJ718
105
CIL 5 : 4 2 9 9
251
CIJ725
110
CIL 10:3427
251
CD 731c
25
CPJ513
75
CIJ735
33
DF 82
33
CIJ736
32
D F 83
32
CIJ737
34
DF 84
34
CIJ754
105
D F 85
33
338
Index of
passages
GMA32
39-41
IJO II 7 7
IG 1.374
259, 260
IJO II 7 8
83
IG II 2 . 6 5 2
162
IJO II 8 0 - 8 5
83
IJO I A c h 1^1
76
IJO II 129
83
D O I A c h 15
73
IJO II 131
83
IJO I A c h 3 0
77
IJO II 156
84
IJO I A c h 3 5
75
IJO II 180
84
IJO I A c h 3 6
75
IJO II 191
84
IJO I A c h 3 7
75
IJO II 2 0 9 - 2 9 7
81
IJOIAch41
75
IJO II 2 1 3
84
IJO I A c h 5
76
IJO II 2 1 8
84
IJO I A c h 6
76
IJO II 2 2 2
85
IJOIAch8-14
76
IJO II 2 2 4
85
IJO I A c h 5 0
73
IJO II 2 4 0
85
IJO I A c h 6 0 - 6 4
76
IJO III C y p 3
78
IJO I A c h 6 6 - 6 7
76
IJO III C y p 6 - 8
78
IJO I A c h 6 7
13
IJO III Syr3
78
IJO I A c h 6 8
76
IJO III S y r 5 - 8
79
IJO I A c h 7 2
77
IJO III Syr6
78
IJO I A c h 7 3
77
IJO III Syr 10
79
IJOIBS16
77
IJO III S y r l l
78
IJO I B S 2 0
77
IJO III Syr 1 7 - 1 9
79
IJO I Cre3
25
IJO III S y r 2 5 - 2 6
79
IJO I D a l 2
75
IJO III S y r 3 2
79
IJO I D a l 4
75
IJO III S y r 5 1 - 5 2
79
IJO I M a c l
75
IJO III S y r 5 3 - 7 2
79
IJO I M a c 8
75
IJO III Syr58
79
IJO I M a c 9
75
IJO III S y r 6 1 - 7 1
79
IJO I Pan 1
75
IJO III Syr 121
79
IJO I Pan2
75
IJO III Syr 1 2 4 - 1 2 5 7 9
IJO I Thr3
81
IK M i l e t 7 4 0 h
54
IJO I Thr4
81
I n s c r C r e t 1:5,17
24
IJO II 5a
81
Inscr Cret 2:8
23
IJO II 12
81
Inscr Cret 2 : 2 4 , 1 2
23
IJO II 13
81
Inscr Cret 4 : 5 0 9
22, 77
IJO II 15
54
JIWE I 3 6
80
IJO II 16
54
JIWE I 143
37
IJO II 3 2
82
JIWE I 144
37
IJO II 3 3
82
JIWE I 145
37,40,41
IJO II 35
82
JIWE I 146
38
IJO II 3 7
82
JIWE I 147
38
IJO II 4 0
82
JIWE I 148
38,41
IJO II 41
82
JIWE I 149
38,41
IJO II 5 3 - 1 4 3
47-52
JIWE I 150
38
IJO II 6 3
83
JIWE I 151
38
IJO II 6 9
83
JIWE I 152
38,40
IJO II 7 0 - 1 2 3
81
J I W E I 153
38,41
IJO II 71
83
JIWE I 154
38
83
Inscriptions
and
339
Papyri
J I W E I 155
38
JIWE II 5 7 7
104
J I W E I 156
38, 40
JIWE II 5 7 8
105
J I W E I 157
38,41
JIWE II 5 7 9
105
J I W E I 158
38
JIWE II 5 8 4
104
J I W E I 159
38
KAI 260
44
J I W E I 160
38
N a v e h - S h a k e d I 13
283
J I W E I 161
38,41
Pap. M a s p e r o 7 0 : 2
257
JIWE II 1
104
Pap. M a s p e r o 6 7 1 8 8
239
JIWE II 2
105
Pap. Oxyrrhynchus
JIWE II 3 3
105
JIWE II 6 9
104
Pap. B o d m e r 3 0
190-205
J I W E II 9 6
104
P G M IV
269-279
JIWE II 9 8
104
P G M IV 2 9 6 - 4 3 4
271
JIWE II 100
7 6 , 104
P G M IV 4 3 6 - 4 6 1
271
JIWE II 106
105
P G M IV 1219
277
JIWE II 113
104
P G M IV 1 9 5 7 - 1 9 8 1
271
JIWE II 114
105
P G M IV 2 2 4 1 - 2 3 4 7
271
JIWE II 117
105
P G M IV 2 9 0 2 - 2 9 3 9
271
JIWE II 1 3 0
104
P G M IV 3 0 0 7 - 3 0 8 6
273,281
JIWE II 163
104
PGM IV 3013
273
JIWE II 165
104
P G M IV 3 0 1 7
274
JIWE II 166
104
P G M IV 3 0 1 9 - 2 0
274
JIWE II 167
104
P G M IV 3 0 2 3
274
JIWE II 169
104
P G M IV 3 0 2 6 - 7
274
J I W E II 170
104
P G M IV 3 0 3 3 - 8
275
JIWE II 189
104
P G M IV 3 0 3 8
275
JIWE II 194
104
P G M IV 3 0 3 9 - 4 0
276
JIWE II 2 8 8
7 6 , 104
P G M IV 3 0 4 2
275
JIWE II 3 3 8
104
P G M IV 3 0 4 3 - *
275
JIWE II 4 0 6
104
P G M IV 3 0 4 4
275
JIWE II 4 2 8
104
P G M IV 3 0 4 7
275
JIWE II 4 5 1
104
P G M IV 3 0 5 0 - 1
276
JIWE II 4 5 2
104
P G M IV 3 0 5 2
276
JIWE II 4 8 8
104
P G M IV 3 0 5 3 - 5
277, 281
JIWE II 5 2 7
104
P G M IV 3 0 5 6 - 8
277
JIWE II 5 4 0
105
P G M IV 3 0 6 1
277
JIWE II 5 4 2
104
P G M IV 3 0 6 2 ^ 1
277
JIWE II 5 4 7
104
P G M IV 3 0 6 9 - 7 0
277
JIWE II 5 4 9
104
P G M IV 3 0 8 4 - 6
277
JIWE II 5 5 7
104
PGM X X X V I 295-311
282
JIWE II 5 5 8
104
PGM X X X V I 306
282
JIWE II 5 6 0
104
S E G 8:269
13
JIWE II 5 7 6
104
264:2-4
256, 257
Index of modern authors Accorinti, D . 6, 7 9 Adler,W.
70
B e k k u m , W.J. van 2 2 4 , 2 2 6 B e l k i n , S.
Alexander, H . B .
234
116
B e l l , H.I. 2 6 3
Alexander, Ph. S. 126, 2 7 3 , 2 7 4 , 2 7 7 , 2 8 2
B e n S a s s o n , H.
Alexiou, M.
B e n k o , S.
196
A m e l i n g , W. 4 3 , 5 1 , 7 1 , 7 4 , 8 0 - 8 5 , 2 2 8 , 229, 233
19
181
Benoit, A. 27 Berard, F. 7 2
A n k e r m a n n , B.
234
Bernand, A .
A p p l e b a u m , S.
17,29
Bernhardt, K . H .
Armstrong, A . H .
273
278
B e t t e n s o n , H.
19
70
Athanassiadi, P. 3 5 , 7 4
Betz, H.D.
Aune, D. 273, 274, 275, 280, 284
B i c k e r m a n n , E. 116, 2 3 2
A v e m a r i e , F. 4
Bie,J.P. de
A v i g a d , N . 71
Bieler,M.
Avi-Yonah, M.
223
166
Bacht, H. Baldelli, R.
206
Bandy, A . C . Barb, A . A .
281
Bardy, G.
Brass, F.
180 161,253
Blau, L. 2 8 2
22,24,25
Barclay, J.G.M.
206,207,209,211,212,
Blaise, A .
208,210,215
152 234,239
Billerbeck, P. 146, 148, 2 6 7 B i n n s , J.
Baarda,T.
269,270
Bleeker, C.J. Bloch, R.S.
6,43,45
116,280
20 232
B l o e d h o r n , H. BlondehCh.
22,71,73 182
Barnett, P.W. 2 0
B l o w e r s , P.M.
Baron, S.W.
Blumenkranz, B .
19,41
133 18,222
Barr, J. 9 3
Blumenthal, A . v o n
Barrett, C.K. 9 8 , 1 0 1 - 2 , 105, 177
B o e f t , J . den
Bartelink, G.J.M. 2 0 8
Bogaert, M.
B a s n a g e , J.
Bohak,G.
Bauer, H.
151-160 264
92 229
B o h m , M . 136, 137
Bauer, W. 2 5 6 Baumann, U.
244
191,224,249
B o i d , R. 12
149
B o l k e s t e i n , H. 2 2 9
Baumgartel, F. 171
Bonnard, P. 161
Baumgartner, W.
Bonner, C. 2 7 2
171
B e a m e s , J. 2 5 2
B o r g e n , P. 109, 114
Beatrice, P.F.
B o u s s e t , W. 9 6
181
B e c k , H.-G.
206,222
B o x , H. 106, 112
Becking, B.
136
Boyarin, D.
61,62-5
Bozzo, G.B.
181
Bees, N.A.
27
Index of modern
341
authors
Bradshaw, P.F. 2 1 0
Cox, D.H.
Brashear, W.
Crater, T.W.
269-273
Braun, H.E.
29 183
Cranfield, C.E.B.
191
177
B r e d e Kristensen, W. 2 3 4
Creed, J.L.
Bremmer, J.N. 7, 1 9 1 , 2 4 6 , 2 4 7 , 2 4 9
Cross, F.M. 4 7
Brock, S.P. 196, 199, 2 0 0 , 2 0 3 , 2 0 4
C r o w n , A . D . 4 , 1 4 , 3 8 , 134, 139, 154
Bronner, L.L. 8 9 Brooten, B.J.
25-26,55
Crum, W.E. 2 6 3 C u m o n t , F. 9 7
B r o w n , P. 6 0 , 9 2 Brox,N.
101
280
Bruneau, Ph. 1 3 - 1 4 , 2 8 , 145
Dagron,G.
Bullard, R. 2 4 1
D a l m a n , G.
Bunte,W.
Danby, H.
91
Burton-Christie, D . 2 0 8 , 2 1 0 , 2 1 1 , 2 1 3 ,
266 88,240
D a n i e l , R.W.
273
D a n i e l o u , J. 2 0 3
214,215 Bury,J.B.
56,223
Danker, F.W.
243,246
B u x t o n , R. 2 4 7
230,231
D a t e m a , C.
199
D a v i e s , M.
243
Cadbury, H.
172
Debrunner,A.
161, 1 7 4 , 2 5 3
Cameron, A .
53-56
D e c h a r m e , P.
244,245,246
Camp,C.V.
D e i n e s , R.
87
5,9
Cancik, H. 8
Deissmann, A.
Canivet, P.
184,208
D e l l i n g , G.
C a s s o n , L.
103
D e n n i s t o n , J.D. 9 4 , 9 7 , 162
164, 2 7 3 , 2 7 6 , 2 7 7 , 2 8 2
139
Cavallin, H . C . C . 9 3
D e P a l m a Digeser, E.
C a z e a u x , J.
Derda, T. 7 7
Cerny, G.
122 152-155
Charlesworth, J.H. C h a z o n , E.
Deroche,V. 7,67
10
Chesnut, G.F.
56,216,220,223,224
Dexinger,F.
134,136,138,139,146,
148, 158 18
Di Berardino, A .
208
Chirat, H.
180
D i S e g n i , L.
147
C h u v i n , P.
6,79
D i b e l i u s , M.
16
ClauBen, C. 3 4 , 105, 106
DiezMacho,A.
C l e m e n t s , R.
10
D i l l o n , J. 1 3 1 , 1 3 2 ,
C o g g i n s , R.J.
136
C o h e n Stuart, G. Cohen, A.
Dinur, B.
59
D o d d s , E.R.
C o h e n , J. 6 2
240
152
D i x o n , R.M.W.
134
250
246
Dolger, F.J. 2 0 6
C o h e n , S.J.D. C o h n , H.H.
185
32,33
268
D o p p , S. 2 2 1 Dornseiff, F. 2 7 3
Cohn-Sherbock, D.
117
Dorrie, H.
114,248
Colera,P.B.
229
Dorries, H.
Collins, J.J.
93-7
Dragona-Monachou, M. 48
Colson,F.H.
Ill
C o n z e l m a n n , H. Cook,A.B.
114,209,214
Drexler,W. 16
238
Dreyer,0.
237 115, 1 2 9
D r o n k e , P. 196
C o o k , J.G. 133, 1 8 1 , 189
Dunn,J.D.G.
C o x Miller, P. 2 7 3
During, I.
174
177
342
Index of modern
E b e l i n g , H.
authors
Gardiner, A . 2 6 3
174
Edel, E. 2 6 3
Gartner, H . A .
Egger, R. 14, 138, 145
Gaster, M.
Eisenstein, J.D. 241
Gaster,T.H.
Eissfeldt, 0 .
Geerlings, W. 2 2 1
Eitrem, S.
16 273,275,276
Elior, R.
E v a n s , C.A.
237,240
Geiger, B. 7 9 George, B.
126
115
278
236,239
G e r s c h m a n n , K.H.
96
E y n d e , C. van den
G i b s o n , E.L. Fahr,W.
245,246,248
Falk,Z.W.
110
Gerth, B. 162, 174, 178
199
72,77
Gildersleeve, B.L.
268
Gill, D.W.J.
161
30
250
Ginzberg, L. 5 4 , 6 8 , 7 0 , 8 7 , 8 8 , 196,
Feldman, D.M.
65
Glare, P.W. 2 5 2
F e l d m a n , L.H.
51,68,90
Falkenstein, A .
276
Fauth, W. 17
Fernandez M a r c o s , N .
39
Glempf, C. 3 0 Glenth0j, J.B. 2 0 5
Festugiere, A.-J. 2 0 6 , 2 0 7 , 2 3 6
GleBmer,U.
Fine, S. 51
Goldin,J.
67
Finkel, J. 2 4 0 Fischel, H . A . 2 4 0
Goldstein, J.A.
62
GondaJ.
13,28
254
Fischer, B .
253,254
G o o d m a n , M.
12
Fischer, H.
234
Gordon, R.L.
109
Fitzgerald, J.T.
178
Fitzmyer, J.A. Flusin, B.
147
206,212
F o s s u m , J.
Goulet, R.
181-189
Grabbe, L.L. 135, 136, 140 Graf, F. 2 7 5 , 2 8 1 Grayston, K.
149
161
Foucart, P. 182
Grese,W.C.
F o w d e n , G.
G r e s s m a n n , H. 9 6
Fram, E.
269
277,281
Grimal, P. 2 4 4
117
Frankfurter, D . 281
G r o s s , K.
Fraser, P.M.
Grossfeld, B . 6 7
12
110, 195
Frazer, J.G. 2 3 4 , 2 3 5 , 2 3 7
Grundmann, W.
Frede,M.
Guarducci, M.
12, 2 2 115,117
35,74
Freedman, H.
120
Gudemann, A.
Frerichs, E.S.
226
G u l k o w i t s c h , L.
Frey, J.-B. 6 , 3 2 , 7 1 , 104,
161
134
Guthrie, W . K . C . 2 4 3 , 2 4 5 , 2 4 6 , 2 4 8 , 249
Frick, P. 109 Friedlander, G.
265
Frohnhofen, H.
128
Haag, E.
152
Fuks, A . 71
Haas, L.
117
Fuks,L.
153
Hachlili,R.
9 6 , 195
Fuks,R.
153
Hackett, J.
172
Hagner, D .
163
Gager,J.G.
35,282
Haldon,J.F.
Galling, K.
104
HalfB.W.
G a m b l e , H.Y.
209,210
Garcia Martinez, F. 7, 6 7 , 9 3
223 146, 148, 149
Hamilton, A .
155
H a m o n v i l l e , D . M . d' 6 3
Index of modern
Hansen, G.C.
18
Horsley, R.A.
Hanson, J.S. 2 0 Hargis,J.W. Harl,M.
181
33, 34, 37, 39, 40, 4 1 , 47, 49, 59, 62, 63, 71, 73, 75, 77, 8 1 - 8 5 , 9 0 - 9 5 , 98,
Harnack, A . ( v o n )
182
Harrington, D.J. Harvey, G. Hay, D .
147
266
1 0 3 - 5 , 107, 108, 113, 116, 126, 139, 1 4 3 , 145, 190, 192, 2 0 7 , 2 0 8 , 2 2 5 , 2 3 2 , 235,240
76
Hauser, A.J.
20-21
Horst, RW. van der 1 - 1 1 , 2 6 , 2 8 , 3 2 ,
66,225
Harvey, A . E .
343
authors
Hospers-Jansen, A . M . A .
117
17
Howard, W.F. 1 6 1 , 165
114
HulLJ.M. 2 7 4 , 2 7 5
Hayward, C.T.R. 6 9 , 195
Humbert, J.
H e i n e , R.
Hunt, E . D .
133
H e i n e , S. 2 5
174 102
Hurst, A . 9, 190, 191
H e i n e m a n n , I.
Ill
H e i n i m a n n , F. 2 4 5
Hussey, R.
18
H y m a n , N . M . 8 9 , 121
Heitmuller, W. 2 8 4 Heitsch, E. 271 Helbing, R.
Isaac, B. 4 8
173
Hemelrijk, E.A. Hempel,Ch.
229
126
Hengel,M.
271
Herion, G . A .
168
Jacobs, L. 61
13,20,31,
Henrichs,A.
Jackson, F.
Jacobson, H. 2 0 , 6 9 , 194 Jacoby, A .
129
276
Jacoby, F. 2 4 7 , 2 4 8 , 2 4 9
Hermann, A . 53
James, M.R.
Herrmann, P. 5 4
Jamin, H.
Herzer,J.
Jannaris, A . N .
142-143
Heubner, H.
17
Heurtebize, B .
27
155
152
Jeffreys, M . 55
Hezser, C. 8 4
Jellinek,A.
Hilgert, E.
Jensen, R.M.
114
Hilhorst,A. Hill, G.
10,224
28,29 226
Hirschberg, H.Z.
17
Hirschfeld, Y. 2 0 9
H o e n i g , S.B.
267
Hoffmann, R.J.
181
H o f m a n n , J.B. 2 5 2 Holladay, C.R.
14, 116, 146
117
H o l t z m a n n , O. 8 8 Holwerda,D. H6lzer,V.
177, 179
235,239
Hopfner,Th.
272,281
Horbury,W.
32,71,91,110,222,273,
282
196
Jeremias, J. 2 1 , 8 7 , 9 1 , 147 Johnson, E. Jones, S.
236 129
106
Juster, J. 2 0 , 3 4
196
H j e l m , I. 134, 140
Holtz, B.W.
54
Jocelyn, H . D .
Himmelfarb, M.
Hirshman, M.
260,261
Jeffreys, E. 55
Kahn, Ch. H. 2 4 2 , 2 4 3 , 2 4 5 , 2 4 9 Kaibel, G.
172
K a m e s a r , A . 6 6 , 7 0 , 115, 116, 117 Karlin-Hayter, P. 5 6 Kartveit, M.
141
K a s e m a n n , E. Kasper,C.
177
221
Kessels, A.H.M. Kessler, E.
10, 1 9 0 , 2 4 9
197
Kiley.M. 7 Kippenberg, H. 147, 148 Kirchbaum, E. 2 0 3
344
Index of modern
K l e i n , M.
Lesky,A.
68
Kleinknecht, H. K l e v e , K.
authors
243,244
L e u m a n n , M.
168
252
L e v i , I. 21
246
K n o x , L.W. 2 7 3 , 2 7 6 , 2 7 7 , 2 8 0 , 2 8 3
L e v i n e , L.I.
K o c h , H.
L e v i n s k a y a , I. 6, 7 2
131
Koehler, L.
33,41,45
L e v y - B r u h l , I. 2 3 4
171
K o e t s , P.J. 2 2 9
L e w i s , Ch. T. 2 5 2
Kolenkow,A.
L e w i s , D . M . 71
276
K o n d o l e o n , Ch. 55
L e w y , H. 2 7 3
K o o t e n , G.H. van
Lichtenberger, H. 8, 6 0
Korpel, M . C . A .
10
Lichtenstein, H.
136
Kotansky, R. 3 7 - 8 , 3 9 , 2 7 3 , 2 7 9 , 2 8 0 , 282, 284
147
Lieberman, S. 91 Lifshitz, B. 6, 2 2 - 3 , 3 2 , 3 3 , 4 7 , 5 1 , 71
Kraabel, A.T. 14, 2 7 , 4 3 , 4 6 , 4 7 , 4 8 , 145 Kraeling, C H .
7 9 , 195
Lightstone, J.N. 91 Linder, A . 2 0 , 2 2 2 , 2 2 3 , 2 2 4
Kraemer, R . S . 2 2 , 2 5 , 3 4 , 73
Lipinski, E.
Kraft, R.A.
Livrea, E.
134
44 191
Krauss, S.
31,32,34,222,266
L o h m e i e r , E.
Kroll, J.H.
43,47,49,51,52,72
L6hr,H.
Kropp, M.
272
Krueger,D.
209,212
Kuchler, M .
26
161
7
Long, A.A.
228
L o o s j e s , J.
152
Louth, A . 6 9 , 122, 123
K u g e l , J.L. 7 , 6 7 , 1 1 8 - 1 2 0 , 125
L u c c h e s i Palli, E.
Kuhner, R.
Liideritz, G. 71
162, 174, 178
Kundert, L.
194
Luttikhuizen, G.P. 6 7 , 93
Kushnir-Stein, A . Labrousse, E. Lake, K.
102-3
152
Lamberton, R.
Luz, U.
177
M a a s , P. 177
168, 172
L a m b r o s , S.
M a c d o n a l d , J. 141
115
M a g e n , Y.
236
139
Maher, M. 6 8 , 195
Lampe,G.W.H.
83,215,216
Maier, J. 6 7
Lankhorst, O.S.
153
Malherbe, A.J.
Larson, C.W. Latte.K.
203
113
208
M a l t o m i n i , F. 2 7 3
177, 179, 180
Mansfeld,J.
123
L a w s o n , J.C. 2 3 5
Maraval, P. 18
Layton, B.
M a r c u s , R. 4 5 , 120
180
L e B o h e c , Y. 71
Marcus, S.
L e D e a u t , R. 6 8
Martin, D . B .
LeMoyne,J.
Masaracchia, E.
148,267
12 229,231 181
Leander, P. 2 6 4
M a s p e r o , G.
Leclercq, H. 2 7 3
M a t t h e w s , E.G.
L e e u w , G. van der 2 3 4
Mazar, B.
L e f k o w i t z , M.
McArthur, H. 6 2
246
McGowen, A.
Leonhardt, J. 4 6 , 106
M c K a y , K.L.
196
Leroy-Molinghen, A.
204
71,87
L e o n , H.J. 71 Lerch, D .
282
233 161
M c L e a n , B.H. 6 208
M c N a m a r a , M.
67
Index of modern McVey,K.
208
Measson, A.
122
Meijer, P.A.
246
Meisterhans, K. 261
OrcibalJ.
151
Osborn, E.
133
Panayotov, A . 2 2 , 7 1 , 7 3
M e l e z e - M o d r z e j e w s k i , J. Menken, M.
345
authors
31,108
166
Parker, R.
231,245,246
Parmentier, M.F.G. 9, 196
Mercier, Ch. 6 8 , 120
Patrich,J.
9,209
Meredith, A .
Pearce, S.
106
181
Meyer, M.
279,281,284
Pearson, B.W.R. 2 2 5
M i c h e l , O.
177
Pease, A . S .
247
Millar, F. 1 2 , 2 8 , 4 4 , 104,
Pelletier,A.
108
Milligan, G.
Perichon, P. 18
239
Perrot, Ch. 9 2
Miranda, E. 7 2 Mirecki, P.
279,281,284
P e s c h , R. Petit, F.
Mirsky, M.J.
226
Mitchell, S.
35,74
16 114,204
Popkin, R.H.
Mitford, T.B. 2 8 , 3 2 , 3 3 , 3 4 , 3 5
Porter, F.C.
Mittmann-Richert, U. 4
Porter, S.E.
M o n i e r - W i l l i a m s , M.
Porton,G.
M o n t g o m e r y , J.A. M o o r e , G.F. Mor, M .
252
145
60-2,266,267
155 59-61 225
117
P o w e l l , J.E. 2 5 9 Pradel, F.
234,239
Preisendanz, K.
229
269,276,281
Preisigke, F. 2 5 7 , 2 6 3
Morabito, V. 141 Mortari, L. 2 0 6
Preuschen, E. 1 7 2 , 173
M o u l t o n , J.H. 1 6 1 , 1 6 5 , 2 3 9
Price, J. 8 6
M u s s i e s , G. 4 , 1 7 , 5 0
Price, R . M .
206
Pulleyn, S.
110
Naveh,J.
283
Pummer, R. 14, 3 8 , 134, 139, 140, 145,
N e g e l e i n , J. v o n
234
N e s t l e , W. 1 0 1 , 1 7 2 , 2 4 3 , 2 4 4 , 2 4 5 , 2 4 6 ,
154,224 Purvis, J.D. 134, 136, 140
247, 248, 249 N e w m a n , J.H. 7
Rabello,A.M.
Nickelsburg, G . W . E . 1 3 4
Radt, S.
Niebuhr, K.-W.
5,9
20
180
Rahmani, L.Y.
72,96
N i g g e m e y e r , J.-H. 2 7 3
Rajak,T.
N i k i p r o w e t z k y , V. 110, 111, 114
R a m s e y , B. 2 0 8
N i l s s o n , M.P. 2 3 5 , 2 3 7 , 2 4 6
Regnault, L. 2 0 8
Nobbs,A.
Rehkopf, F. 161
30
Nock,A.D.
93,270,271,279
N o e t h l i c h s , K.
32,222
46,48,52
Reifenberg, A . Reinink, G.J.
28,31,32,34 224
N o y , D . 2 2 , 2 3 , 3 7 , 4 0 , 5 0 , 7 1 - 8 6 , 104
Reland,A.
N y s t r o m , B. 2 3
Rengstorf, K.H.
155
Reverdin, O. Odeberg, H.
124
O e g e m a , G.S. O l s s o n , B.
4
106
Onians, R . B .
167-8
Oppenheimer, A . 4 8
230
190
R e y - C o q u a i s , J.-P. 5 4 R e y n o l d s , J.
48,54,81
R i e d w e g , C. 2 4 8 Rinaldi, G. Rist,J.M.
181 228
346 Rist, M.
Index of modern
272
R i z z o , S.
Segonds, A.-Ph.
181
Robert, L.
authors
Seligsohn, M.
24,43,47,50-1
Robertson, A.T.
161
R o c h h o l z , E.L.
216
18
Shaked, Sh. 2 8 3 Shanks, H. 88
234
Sharf, A .
56,223
R o m e r o P o s e , E. 2 0 8
Sherif, M.
R o m p a y , L. van
Short, Ch. 2 5 2
199
57-8
Roscher, W.H. 2 3 7 , 2 3 8 , 2 6 7
Silver, A . H .
19
Roth, L.
Silvera, M.
152
29,78
R o u e c h e , Ch.
54,57-8,82
S i m o n , M.
20,35,221,224
R o w l a n d s , E.C. 2 5 1
S i m o n , R.
154
R u b i n k i e w i c z , R. 2 7 3
S i m o n s o h n , S. 3 7
Rudhardt, J. 9, 190, 191
Sirinjan, M.
18
Ruiten, J.T.A.G.M.
Sjoberg, E.
129
Runesson, A.
67
106
Skard, E. 177, 179
Runia, D.T. 5, 114, 120, 125, 130, 132,
Sly, D .
133, 2 4 3 Saffrey, H . D . Safrai, S.
216
12 62
Salvesen, A.
29,31,36 229
Sanders, I.F.
115, 182 39,46,91,268,272,278-9,
280, 282
Sander-Hansen, C E .
Sauer, G.
S m a l l w o o d , M. Smelik, K . A . D . Smith, M.
123
114
123
Smith, A .
Saldarini, A.J.
Satran, D .
Skarsten, R.
263
12,25,26
10,90,91 129
Smith, M.F. 8 5 , 2 2 7 , 2 2 9 , 2 3 3 Snell,B.
242
Solin,H.
23
S o m o l i n o s , J.R.
Sawyer, J.F.A.
209
Sperber, A .
229
68
Schafer, P. 8, 10, 8 5 , 108, 2 3 0 , 2 3 2 , 2 8 3
Speyart van Woerden, I.
Schechter, S.
Speyer, W.
Schenkl, H.
59-61
Spicq, C.
178
16,229
Schermann, Th. 2 8 3
S p i e g e l , S.
Schiffman, L.H.
Stahlin,G.
129 244
136,147,149,150
195
S c h m i d , W.
244,249
Stahlin,0.
Schmidt, F.
179
Stanton, G.N. Starr, J.
Schnabel, E.J. 5 0 Schneider, G.
110
32,58
Stein, E. 2 0 6
16
Schreckenberg, H.
196
101
32,216,222
Stemberger, G. 19, 117, 148
Schurer, E. 1 2 , 3 1 , 4 2 , 2 7 4 , 2 7 7
Stemplinger, E. 2 3 5
S c h w a b e , M. 71
Sterling, G.E. 5 , 6 4 , 9 8 , 114
Schwartz, D . 9 9 , 100, 102, 103
Stern, D . 2 2 6
Schwartz, E.
Stern, E.
206,207,213
S c h w a r z f u c h s , S. 21 Schwemer, A.M. S c h w y z e r , E.
174,253,261
12,14,17,23,29,31,35,42,
71,230 S t i e g m a n n , E. Stolte, B.H.
Scott, R. 55 Seager,A.R.
43
Sedley, D . N .
228
Segal, A.F.
31,90,179
139
Stern, M .
195
59,62,65
224
Stone, M . E . 4 6 Stratos,A.N.
223
Stroumsa, G.G.
110
Index of modern S w e t n a m , J.
195
347
authors
Wagenaar, W.A. Wander, B. 4 8
58
Swidler, L. 2 6 Szantyr, A .
Washburn, D . L .
118
252
Watson, D.F.
117
Tabory, J. 5, 8, 113
Weinberger, L.J. 21
Tal, A .
Wendt,H.H.
154
173
Tannenbaum, R. 4 8 , 5 4 , 81
Wessely, C. 2 7 0
Tardieu, M.
Wevers,J.W.
225
White, L.M.
178
Wigoder,G.
117
273
Tcherikover, V.A. Terian, A .
14,22,71
114
Tevel,J.M.
198,202
W i l a m o w i t z - M o e l l e n d o r f f , U. v o n
T h o m s e n , P. 2 0 6
Wilckens,U.
Thornhill,R.
Wilken, R.
142
Thraede, K.
283
181,226
Wilkinson, J. 9 2
Thurn, J. 55
Williams, M.H. 55, 72, 77, 86
Tiede, D . L . 21
W i l l i a m s o n , R. 9 8
Till,W.C.
Wineland, J.D. 4 4
262
Tonneau, R.M. 2 0 4 Tournay, R. 146
Winiarczyk, M. 2 4 3 , 2 4 6 , 2 4 7 , 2 4 8 ,
Tozzer, A . M .
Winston, D . 6 4 , 131
251
249
Trafton, J.L. 6 7
Winter, B.W.
Trebilco, P.R.
Winton T h o m a s , D .
Turner, N . Unger, D.J.
162
176
43,44,51,233
161
98
Wolff, H.W.
44
W u n s c h , R.
282
239
180
Unnik, W.C. van 2
Yadin,Y.
Untersteiner, M. 2 4 3 , 2 4 4
Yardeni, M.
87 154, 155
Urbach, E.E. 2 0 , 5 9 , 121 Zahn,Th.
177, 186
Van der Horst, s e e Horst, van der
Z a m a g n i , C. 4
VanderKam, J.C.
Zangenberg, J. 137, 140, 1 4 1 , 144, 146,
Verdenius, W.J. Vermes, G.
126 168
12, 195
147 Zeller, D .
124
Versnel, H. 2 4 6
Zgusta, L. 8 0
Ville-Patlagean, E. 5 4
Z i m m e r m a n n , B. 2 4 3
V6geli,A.
Z w i Werblowski, R.J.
172
Volgers, A . 4 Voste,J.-M.
199
20,117
Index of names and subjects 120 years
66-70
Abraham
190-205,209
Abu'lFath
Asia Minor 8 0 - 8 5
acrostichon
131
Assyrians
191
atheism
A c t s o f the A p o s t l e s
135
242-249
98-105
122
BarKochbawar
additive numerals afterlife
157
a s s u m p t i o n s (in J e w i s h e x e g e s i s )
accommodation
Adam
Asima
155
250-68
93-7
229
Barnabas 3 0 B a s i l i u s o f Seleucia
Agrippa I 3 0 , 9 9 - 1 0 3
198,202
B a s n a g e , Jacques 151 - 1 6 0
air 9 6 - 7 , 2 7 5
B a y l e , Pierre
'al tiqre
beach ( w o r s h i p o n the)
123
A l e x a n d e r the Great Alexandria allusions
138-9
99-105
211-2
151-2
Beliar
141-2
Belkira
141
B e n j a m i n o f Tudela 4 2 , 157
alphabet 2 7 3
Beth Alpha
alter ego
biblical interpretation
234-5
195
Amidah
113
biblical quotes 2 0 6 - 1 5
amulets
39-10,85
blowing
anagnostes
106-7
84
116-20
167-175
Blues 5 3 - 8 , 79
A n a s t a s i u s Sinaita 2 2 4
B o d m e r papyri
anthropomorphism
bouleutai
49
breathing
167-175
128-33
anti-Christian p o l e m i c s anti-Jewish p o l e m i c s
181-9
216-26,227-33
190
bridal c h a m b e r
196
A n t i o c h 55 A n t i o c h u s III 4 4
Caecilius o f Calacte 4 2
apenthesia
Cain
82
123-4
Aphrodisias 4 6 , 4 8 , 8 1 - 2 ,
Caligula
Aphrodite 2 8 2
cannibalism
Apollinaris
Cassian 2 0 8
186
apopyrgizein apple
Aqedah Aqiva
248
203-4 191
CUP 86 Cinesias 2 4 6 circus factions
124
Aristophanes Ashera 2 4 0
185
charms 271
Aquila 39, 223 archisynagogos
231-2
C h a l c e d o n , Council o f 2 2 3
147
Aramaic
Celsus
99-103
25,33,81 246
53-8
Cleopatra III 2 9 C n o s s o s 14, 145 condescensio
131
118-20
Index of names and
349
subjects
corpse impurity 2 4 0
evil inclination
Crete
e x o d u s 21
12-27
Critias 2 4 3 - 9
exorcism
cryptic nature o f the B i b l e Cyprus
59-65
273-8,280-4
118
28-36,78
fear (in d i v i n e p e d a g o g y )
Cyrene 232
132-3
Felix 2 9
Cyril o f S c y t h o p o l i s
206-215
fence around the Torah
121-2,264-8
Flaccus 9 9 D a p h n e 55
Flood
David 213
forty less one
death, t w o kinds o f Deborah
266-8
freedmen 1 0 3 , 105
89-91
deisidaimon Delos
120
66-70
85,229-31
Garizim ( M o u n t )
145
Genesis
D e m e t r i u s (the chronographer) Democritus
115-6
246
genitive Ge'ula
172^4 113
demon 63
goat
demonic possession 2 7 3 - 8 , 2 8 0 - 4
Godfearers
Diagoras
245,247-9
grain transport
diakonos
79
Greens
dignumdeo Dike
129,130
107
14,142-4,156
207-9
203-4 48-9 102-3
53-8
Gregory o f N y s s a 2 0 2 Gregory the Great 41
Diogenes o f Oenoanda 85, 2 2 7 - 2 3 3 disputations 2 2 2 divine authorship Doctrina
Jacobi
Dorotheus
Hades 119 56
190 79-80
195,203
hands (stretched out in prayer) hazzan
Drusilla 2 9 Dura Europos
96-7
hand o f G o d
110
79
hebra'ike
33—\, 7 8
hebraikos
logos
273-9,281
H e b r e w 3 7 , 4 0 , 4 7 , 7 5 - 6 , 105, 2 7 2 Ebal
Hekhalot 2 7 7
146
Egypt 2 6 9 , 2 8 0 , 2 8 2
Henri IV 151
Egyptians 2 2 9
heptamyxion
elements
Heraclius
elpizein
112 95
Herman van der Horst 83
enemies of God Enoch
50 32,223
100-1
125-6
hermeneutics
Entolios 3 4
Hesiod
129
Ephraim the Syrian 156, 2 0 4
hiereus
49
Epicurus 8 5 , 130, 2 2 7 - 9
Hierocles
Epimenides
Historia
16
epitaphs 3 7 - 8
185
monachorum
historiola
eros 6 3 erotapokriseis
H o m e r 115, 129 114-6
houtos
207
275,281,283-4 176-180
e s c h a t o l o g y 95
Huguenots
Euripides 2 4 6
Huldah
151-3
87-92
Euthymius 211
hyena
Eve
h y m n s 271
120-2
214-5
Herod the Great 2 9 , 8 7
235-6
350 Iao
Index of names and
subjects
magic bowls 283
271,272,273
idolatry 1 4 2 ^ 1 , 1 4 8 - 9 , 158
magical papyri
image o f God 59, 64
magicians 29, 30, 3 4 - 5 , 2 6 9 - 2 8 4
inscriptions
m a l i c i o u s pleasure
13-4,22-6,32^,37-9,
4 7 - 5 2 , 5 4 , 7 1 - 8 6 , 145, 2 2 7 - 2 3 3 intergroup relations
57-8
intermarriage 7 6 , 1 3 9 - 4 0 Isaac
110-1
Manetho 231 manumission
77
Marcianus 2 2 3 Marinus o f N e a p o l i s
190-205
Isaiah
269-284
Mamas
141,207-8
Isho'dad o f Merv
Marranos 2 2 3
199
Matthew Jephtha's daughter
207-9
Mediterranean S e a
194
102-3
Jeremiah 8 9 , 1 4 2 , 2 7 6
mellopresbyteros
Jerusalem
M e n a s s e h ben Israel
148,277
76
Jewish magic
m e s s i a n i c impostors
278-9
J e w i s h n e s s ( o f inscriptions) 2 2 , 7 3 , 7 4
Messianism
Joel 2 7 3
Methodius 137-140
Judah ha-Nasi Julius Africanus
186
miaros 116, 185
231-3
m i d d a y hour, fear o f 2 3 7 millenarianism
69
Julius Caesar 4 5
Mishnah 223
Justinian 2 2 3
mnema
216
215
m o s a i c s (in s y n a g o g u e s )
Kidron Valley 8 8 K i n g o f the g o d s
195
M o s c h u s , Johannes 2 2 4 112
M o s e s (as a J e w i s h n a m e ) 7 7
134, 136, 1 4 8 - 9
lamellae
154
81
monotropos
Kuthim
18-21
18-21
metrical epitaphs 8 4
148
Julian (the Emperor)
kephalaia
154
menorah 5 0
Jesus 2 7 4
Josephus
157
17
M o s e s 126, 132, 1 4 1 , 2 7 2
271 names o f synagogues
Latin 4 0
N a n t e s , Edict o f
laura 2 1 4
navigation
lector
ner tumid
84
Leontii
Nero
50-1,83
102-3 277
156
Leontius o f N e a p o l i s 3 2
nomina
Levite 85
nomophylakion
barbara
272 4 7 - 8 , 83
normative count 2 6 4
libraries 2 0 9 lion proselytes
103-5
151
numerals
137
250-68
lions 5 0 - 1 liturgical poetry (Jewish) 2 2 4 Louis X I V
151
O e n o a n d a 85 omnisignificance o f the Bible
Luke
98-107
Origen
lungs
167-8
ossuaria 9 6
186
Lykaion, M o u n t 2 3 7 - 8 Palladius 2 0 8 Macarius o f M a g n e s i a magic 2 6 9 - 2 8 4
181-9
particles (Greek) 9 4 patellas
82
119
Index of names and
Patriarchs
37,209
persecution
351
subjects
revolt o f 1 1 5 - 1 1 7 31
99-101
R o m e 1 9 , 4 5 , 1 0 2 - 3 , 104
Pharaoh 2 8 0 - 3 Pharisees
276,278
philargyria Philistines Philo
Sabaoth 2 7 6
82
Sabas
17
207-14
sabbath
98-133
37,267-8
Sacrifice o f Isaac
190-205
Photius 2 2 4
sacrifices 4 6 , 4 9
Phylactery o f M o s e s 39—10
Sadducees
piafraus
Salamis (at Cyprus) 3 0 , 31
133
pilgrimage
92
Samaritan Chronicles
Plato 115, 130, 1 3 2 , 2 4 3 Plutarch pneo
130 alalon
Sambathion 2 3 275
Sarah 1 9 2 - 3 , 1 9 8 - 2 0 0
p o g r o m 9 9 , 108
Sarapion
polytheism
Sardis 4 3 - 5 2 , 8 3 ^ 1
112
13-4
Porphyry 116, 1 8 5 - 7
Schadenfreude
prayer
scholastikos
108-113
presbytera
2 5 , 81
presbyteros
110-1
76
sea ( w o r s h i p near the)
3 8 , 4 1 , 4 9 , 81
principles o f e x e g e s i s
118-20
Seal of Solomon Sefer Zerubbabel
pronoia
Sepharad 4 4
4 8 , 83 88-9
106-7
276
seat-markers 5 4
Prodicus 2 4 6 prophetesses
156,157
Samaritans 1 3 - 4 , 3 8 - 9 , 4 1 , 7 5 , 7 6 , 7 8 , 8 1 , 134-160, 224
167-175
pneuma
148
226
Septuagint 2 2 3
prophets 8 9 - 9 0 , 141
sexual desire 5 9 - 6 5
Protagoras
seyag
245,246
la-Torah
121,264-8
Prounikios 8 2
s h a d o w 234—41
p r o v i d e n c e 4 8 , 1 0 9 - 1 1 0 , 113
Shield o f Abraham
Psalms
S h i m o n ben G a m l i e l
207-210
Pseudo-Eupolemos
145-6
Shomea'
Tefillah
Pseudo-Phocylides
93-97
Sicily 37^12
113 147
113
Ptah 2 7 5
sign o f Cain
P t o l e m y VI 12, 13
S i m o n the M a c c a b e e 2 8
124-5
P t o l e m y IX 2 9
Sisyphus 2 4 4
purity 106, 1 3 9 ^ 1 0 , 143
snorting
167-175
Puteoli
Socrates
243,245
102
Solomon quaestiones
literature
quotations
206-211
114-6
54,272,276
Sophia ( o f Gortyn) sophodidaskalos
rabbinic e x e g e s i s
116-120
rabbis 3 2 - 3 , 1 1 6 - 1 2 6 , 1 4 6 - 1 5 0 , 2 4 0 Red Sea 2 8 0 - 3 Reds 53
49
Sophronius 31 soul 9 6 spirit 9 6 spiritual death
Reland, Adriaan
155
Stobi
120
75
religion, invention o f 2 4 2
subtractive numerals
resurrection
superstition
94-6
25-6
Sophists 2 4 5
229-31
250-268
352
Index of names and
subjects
synagogues 4 1 , 4 3 , 4 6 - 7 , 103-6
trading v e s s e l s
synkatabasis
trees, s h a d o w o f 2 3 8 - 9
131
S y n o d o f the Oak Syria
102-3
183 Valens
78-80
184
Vision o f D o r o t h e u s tacha
Voltaire
Tacitus 2 3 2 Temple
152
87-8
temple, Samaritan 1 3 8 - 9 , 1 4 4 - 6 , 147
water ( w o r s h i p near)
Tetragrammaton
W h i t e s 53
273
Theodoret ofCyrrus
w o m e n 2 5 - 6 , 123
207
wrath ( G o d ' s )
Theodorus o f Cyrene 247
128-33
T h e o d o s i u s II 19 theomachos
101
theophoric n a m e s theoprepes
14
129-30
Thucydides
246
t o m b s ( o f biblical persons) 50,51,61
Torah-shrine 5 1 , 83
Xenophanes
129
yetserhara'
59-65
yetsertov
Theos Hypsistos 35, 76
Torah
190-1
vital p o w e r 2 3 4
95
59-65
Z e n o (emperor) 55 87-92
Zerubbabel zetemata
226
115
Z e u s Cretagenes
17
106-7
Wissenschaftliche Untersuchungen zum Neuen Testament Alphabetical Index of the First and Second Series
Adna, Jostein:
Jesu Stellung zum Tempel.
2 0 0 0 . Volume
11/119.
Adna, Jostein (Ed.): The Formation o f the Early Church. 2005. Volume 183. - and Kvalbein, Hans (Ed.): The Mission of
the Early Church to Jews and Gentiles. 2000. Volume 127. Alkier, Stefan: Wunder und Wirklichkeit in
den Briefen des Apostels Paulus. 2001. Volume 134. Anderson, Paul N.: The Christology o f the
Fourth Gospel. 1996. Volume 11/78. Appold, Mark L.: The Oneness Motif in the Fourth Gospel. 1976. Volume 11/1. Arnold, Clinton E.: The Colossian Syncretism. 1995. Volume 11/77.
Conflicts As Juridical Controversy. 2001. Die Tauferzahlungen der
Apostelgeschichte. 2002. Volume Avemarie,
Friedrich
and
139.
Hermann
Lichtenberger (Ed.): Auferstehung Ressurection. 2001. Volume 135. - Bund und Tora. 1996. Volume 92. Baarlink, Heinrich: Verkiindigtes Heil. 2004. Volume
Bachmann,
Sunder oder Obertreter.
1992. Volume 59. Bachmann, Michael (Ed.):
Lutherische
und Neue Paulusperspektive. 2005. Volume
182.
Back, Frances: Verwandlung durch Offenbarung bei Paulus. 2002. Volume 11/153. Baker, William R.: Personal Speech-Ethics in the Epistle of James. 1995. Volume 11/68. Bakke, OddMagne: 'Concord and Peace'. 2 0 0 1 . Volume Baldwin, Matthew 2 0 0 5 . Volume
Balla,
Peter:
11/143. C: Whose Acts of Peter"? 11/196.
Challenges to N e w Testament
Theology. 1997. Volume
-
11/95.
The Child-Parent Relationship in the N e w Testament and its Environment. 2 0 0 3 . Volume
Bammel,
155.
Ernst:
Volume
37.
11/92.
Baum,
Armin
Daniel:
Pseudepigraphie und
literarische Falschung im friihen Christentum. 2 0 0 1 . Volume Bayer, Hans Friedrich:
11/138. Jesus' Predictions o f
Vindication and Resurrection. 1986. Volume 11/20. Becker, Eve-Marie and Peter
Pilhofer
(Ed.):
Biographie und Personlichkeit des Paulus. 2005. Volume 187. Becker, Michael: Wunder und Wundertater Volume 11/144. Becker, Michael and Markus
Ohler
(Ed.):
Apokalyptik als Herausforderung neutestamentlicher Theologie. 2006. Volume 194. Bell, Richard H.: The Irrevocable Call of God. 2005. Volume 184. - N o One Seeks for God. 1998. Volume 106. - Provoked to Jealousy. 1994. Volume 11/63. Bennema, Cornells: The Power o f Saving Wisdom. 2 0 0 2 . Volume 11/148. Bergman,
Bergmeier,
Jan: see Kieffer,
Roland:
Rene
Das Gesetz im Romerbrief
und andere Studien zum Neuen Testament.
168.
Michael:
Volume
Bauernfeind, Otto: Kommentar und Studien zur Apostelgeschichte. 1980. Volume 22.
im friih-rabbinischen Judentum. 2002.
Ascough, RichardS.: Paul's Macedonian Associations. 2 0 0 3 . Volume 11/161. Asiedu-Peprah, Martin: Johannine Sabbath Volume 11/132. Avemarie, Friedrich:
- Volume II 1997. Volume 91. Bash, Anthony: Ambassadors for Christ. 1997.
Judaica. Volume I 1986.
2 0 0 0 . Volume 121. Betz, Otto: Jesus, der Messias Israels. 1987. Volume
42.
- Jesus, der Herr der Kirche. 1990. Volume 52. Beyschlag, Karlmann: Simon Magus und die christliche Gnosis. 1974. Volume 16. Bittner, Wolfgang J.: Jesu Zeichen im Johannesevangelium. 1987. Volume
Bjerkelund, Volume Blackburn,
11/26.
Carl J.: Tauta Egeneto. 1987. 40. Barry
Lee: Theios Ane- r and the
Markan Miracle Traditions. 1991. Volume
Bock,
Darrell
11/40.
L.: Blasphemy and Exaltation in
Judaism and the Final Examination of Je sus. 1998. Volume 11/106. Bockmuehl, Markus N.A.: Revelation and
Mystery in Ancient Judaism and Pauline Christianity. 1990. Volume
11/36.
Wissenschaftliche Untersuchungen zum Neuen Testament Bee, Sverre: Gog and Magog. 2 0 0 1 . Volume 11/135. Bohlig, Alexander: Gnosis und Synkretismus. Volume 1 1989. Volume 47-Volume
2
1989. Volume 48. Bohm, Martina: Samarien und die Samaritai bei Lukas. 1999. Volume 11/111. Bottrich, Christfried: Weltweisheit - Menschheitsethik - Urkult. 1992. Volume 11/50. Bolyki, Jdnos: Jesu Tischgemeinschaften. 1997. Volume 11/96. Bosman, Philip: Conscience in Philo and Paul. 2003. Volume 11/166. Bovon, Francois: Studies in Early Christiani
ty. 2 0 0 3 . Volume 161. Brocke, Christoph vom: Thessaloniki - Stadt des Kassander und Gemeinde des Paulus.
2001. Volume 11/125. Brunson, Andrew: Psalm 118 in the Gospel of John. 2 0 0 3 . Volume II/158. Biichli, Jorg: Der Poimandres - ein paganisiertes Evangelium. 1987. Volume 11/27. Buhner, Jan A.: Der Gesandte und sein Weg im
4. Evangelium. 1977. Volume II/2. Burchard, Christoph: Untersuchungen zu Jo -
seph undAseneth. 1965. Volume 8. Studien zur Theologie, Sprache und Umwelt des Neuen Testaments. Ed. by D. San
ger. 1998. Volume 107. Burnett, Richard: Karl Barth's Theological
Exegesis. 2 0 0 1 . Volume 11/145. Byron, John: Slavery Metaphors in Early Judaism and Pauline Christianity. 2003.
Volume 11/162. Byrskog, Samuel: Story as History - History as Story. 2000. Volume 123.
Cancik, Hubert (Ed.): Markus-Philologie. 1984. Volume 33. Capes, David B.: Old Testament Yaweh Texts
in Paul's Christology. 1992. Volume 11/47. Caragounis, Chrys C: The Development of Greek and the New Testament. 2004.
Volume 167. - T h e S o n o f M a n . 1986. Volume38. - see Fridrichsen, Anton. Carleton Paget, James: The Epistle of Barnabas. 1994. Volume 11/64. Carson, D.A., O'Brien, Peter T. and Mark Seifrid (Ed.): Justification and Variegated Nomism. Volume 1: The Complexities of Second
Temple Judaism. 2 0 0 1 . Volume 11/140. Volume 2: The Paradoxes of Paul. 2004.
Volume 11/181. Ciampa, Roy E.: The Presence and Function of Scripture in Galatians 1 and 2. 1998.
Volume 11/102.
Classen, Carl Joachim: Rhetorical Criticsm of the N e w Testament. 2000. Volume 128. Colpe, Carsten: I r a n i e r - A r a m a e r - H e b r a e r Hellenen. 2 0 0 3 . Volume 154.
Crump, David: Jesus the Intercessor. 1992. Volume 11/49. Dahl, Nils Alstrup: Studies in Ephesians. 2000. Volume 131. Deines, Roland: Die Gerechtigkeit der Tora -
im Reich des Messias. 2004. Volume 177. Jiidische SteingefaBe und pharisaische
Frommigkeit. 1993. Volume 11/52. - Die Pharisaer. 1997. Volume 101. Deines, Roland and Karl- Wilhelm Niebuhr (Ed.): Philo und das Neue Testament.
2004. Volume 172. Dettwiler, Andreas and Jean Zumstein (Ed.): Kreuzestheologie im Neuen Testament.
2002. Volume 151. Dickson, John P.: Mission-Commitment in Ancient Judaism and in the Pauline
Communities. 2003. Volume 11/159. Dietzfelbinger, Christian: DerAbschied des Kommenden. 1997. Volume 95. Dimitrov, Ivan Z., James D.G. Dunn, Ulrich Luz and Karl-Wilhelm Niebuhr (Ed.): Das Alte Testament als christliche Bibel in orthodoxer und westlicher Sicht. 2004.
Volume 174. Dobbeler, Axel von: Glaube als Teilhabe. 1987. Volume 11/22. Dryden, J. de Waal: Theology and Ethics in 1 Peter. 2006. Volume 11/209. Du Toit, DavidS.: Theios Anthropos. 1997. Volume 11/91. Dubbers, Michael: Christologie und Existenz im Kolosserbrief. 2005. Volume 11/191. Dunn, James D.G: The New Perspective on Paul. 2 0 0 5 . Volume 185. Dunn , James D.G. (Ed.): Jews and Christians.
1992. Volume 66. -
Paul and the Mosaic Law. 1996. Volume 89.
- see Dimitrov, Ivan Z. -, Hans Klein, Ulrich Luz and Vasile Mihoc (Ed.): Auslegung der Bibel in orthodoxer und westlicher Perspektive. 2000. Volume 130. Ebel, Eva: Die Attraktivitat friiher christlicher Gemeinden. 2004. Volume 11/178.
Ebertz, Michael N.: Das Charisma des Gekreuzigten. 1987. Volume 45. Eckstein, Hans-Joachim: Der Begriff Syneidesis bei Paulus. 1983. Volume 11/10. - VerheiBung und Gesetz. 1996. Volume 86. Ego, Beate: Im Himmel wie auf Erden. 1989.
Volume 11/34. Ego, Beate, Armin Lange and Peter Pilhofer (Ed.): Gemeinde ohne Tempel - C o m m u nity without Temple. 1999. Volume 118.
Wissenschaftliche
-
and Helmut
Merkel
Untersuchungen
(Ed.): Religioses Ler-
nen in der biblischen, fruhjudischen und fruh-christlichen Uberlieferung. 2005. Henning.
Ensor, Peter Eskola,
11/142.
Theodicy and Predestination in Pauline Soteriology. 1998. Volume
11/100.
Fatehi, Mehrdad: The Spirit's Relation to the Risen Lord in Paul. 2000. Volume 11/128. Feldmeier, Reinhard: Die Krisis des Gottessohnes. 1987. Volume
-
Gemiinden, Annette.
Reinhard
and Ulrich
Die Heiden. 1994. Volume Fletcher-Louis,
Forster,
Crispin
Volume
-
Heckel
Green,
(Ed.):
70.
Das Vermachtnis des Apostels.
Volume
Volume
11/33.
11/207.
Andrew:
The Reception of Luke and
Acts in the Period before Irenaeus. 2003. Volume
Inspired Speech in Early Christianity and its Hellenistic Environment. 1995.
137.
Brian Han: The Historical Jesus and
Gregory,
Prophecy and
35.
the Final Judgment Sayings in Q. 2005.
H. T.: Luke-Acts: An
Brian:
11/99.
Joel B.: The Death of Jesus. 1988.
Gregg,
Marcus Magus. 1999.
Volume 114. Forbes, Christopher
Weissenrieder,
Forschungen zur Apostelgeschichte. 2001. Volume
64.
11/94.
Niclas:
von (Ed.): see
Gheorghita, Radu: The Role of the Septuagint in Hebrews. 2003. Volume 11/160. Grabe, Petrus J.: The Power of God in Paul's Letters. 2000. Volume 11/123. Grafter, Erich: Der Alte Bund im Neuen. 1985.
gels, Christology and Soteriology. 1997. Volume
Petra
Gese, Michael:
11/21.
Die Christen als Fremde. 1992. Volume
Feldmeier,
79.
1997. Volume
Timo: Messiah and the Throne. 2 0 0 1 .
11/38.
Faith, Obedience, and Perseverance. 1994.
Garnet, Paul: Salvation and Atonement in the Qumran Scrolls. 1977. Volume 11/3.
11/85.
Volume
-
11/62.
76.
Faith'. 1991. Volume
-
Volume
W.: Jesus and His 'Works'. 1996.
Volume
Exegetical Writings.
Gackle, Volker: Die Starken und die Schwachen in Korinth und in Rom. 2005. Volume 200. Garlington, Don B.: 'The Obedience of
54.
Creation and Christology. 149. Die 'Minor Agreements'.
1994. Volume
Anton:
1994. Volume
The Old Testament in Early Christianity. 1991. Volume
125.
Fridrichsen,
CD.: Life after Death in Early
Endo, Masanobu: 2 0 0 2 . Volume Ennulat, Andreas:
Sean: Galilee and Gospel. 2000.
Volume
Judaism. 2006. Volume 11/208. Ellis, E. Earle: Prophecy and Hermeneutic in Early Christianity. 1978. Volume 18.
-
Freyne,
Testament
Edited by C.C. Caragounis and T. Fornberg.
Volume 180. Eisen, Ute E.: see Paulsen,
Elledge,
zum Neuen
Grindheim,
11/169.
Sigurd:
2 0 0 5 . Volume
Gundry,
Robert
The Crux of Election. 11/202.
H.: The Old is Better. 2005.
Volume 11/75. Fornberg, Tord: see Fridrichsen, Anton. Fossum, Jarl E.: The Name of God and the
Volume 178. Gundry Volf, Judith M.: Paul and Persever ance. 1990. Volume 11/37.
Angel of the Lord. 1985. Volume 36. Foster, Paul: Community, Law and Mission in Matthew's Gospel. Volume 11/177. Fotopoulos, John: Food Offered to Idols in Roman Corinth. 2 0 0 3 . Volume 11/151.
Haufier, Detlef: Christusbekenntnis und Jesusiiberlieferung bei Paulus. 2006. Volume 210. Hafemann, Scott J.: Suffering and the Spirit.
Frenschkowski,
Marco:
Offenbarung und
Epiphanie. Volume 1 1995. Volume 11/79 Volume 2 1997. Volume 11/80. Frey, Jorg: Eugen Drewermann und die biblische Exegese. 1995. Volume 11/71.
-
Die johanneische Eschatologie. Volume I. 1997. Volume 96. - Volume II. 1998. Volume 110. - Volume III. 2000. Volume 117.
Frey, Jorg
-
and Lido Schnelle
(Ed.):
Kontexte
des Johannesevangeliums. 2004. Volume 175. and Jens Schroter (Ed.): Deutungen des
Todes Jesu im Neuen Testament. 2005. Volume
181.
1986. Volume
-
11/19.
Paul, Moses, and the History of Israel. 1995. Volume
Hahn,
81.
Ferdinand:
Studien zum Neuen Testa
ment. Volume I: Grundsatzfragen, Jesusforschung, Evangelien. 2006. Volume 191. - Volume II: Bekenntnisbildung und Theolo gie in urchristlicherZeit. 2006. Volume 192. Hahn,
Johannes
(Ed.):
Zerstorungen des Jeru-
salemer Tempels. 2002. Volume 147. Hamid-Khani, Saeed: Relevation and Con cealment of Christ. 2000. Volume 11/120. Hannah, Darrel D.: Michael and Christ. 1999. Volume
11/109.
Wissenschaftliche
Harrison;
James
Untersuchungen
R.: Paul's Language of Grace
in Its Graeco-Roman Context. 2003. Volume
Hartman,
11/172.
Lars:
zum Neuen
Testament
Hoegen-Rohls, Christina: Der nachosterliche Johannes. 1996. Volume 11/84. Hoffmann, Matthias Reinhard: The Destro
yer and the Lamb. 2005. Volume
Text-Centered N e w Testa
11/203.
ment Studies. Ed. von D. Hellholm. 1997.
Hofius,
Volume
-
Der Vorhang vor dem Thron Gottes. 1972.
-
Der Christushymnus Philipper 2,6-11.
Hartog,
102.
Paul:
Volume
Polycarp and the N e w Testa
ment. 2 0 0 1 . Volume
11/134.
Otfried:
Katapausis. 1970. Volume
14. 2
-
1 9 7 6 , 1 9 9 1 . Volume 17. Paulusstudien. 1 9 8 9 , 1 9 9 4 . Volume
Vom Evangelium des Markus zum vierge-
-
Neutestamentliche Studien. 2000.
staltigen Evangelium. 1999. Volume 120. Heckel, Ulrich: Kraft in Schwachheit. 1993.
-
Paulusstudien II. 2002. Volume
-
and Hans-Christian
Heckel,
Theo K.: Der Innere Mensch. 1993.
Volume
-
Volume
11/53.
11/56.
-
Der Segen im Neuen Testament. 2002.
-
Volume 150. see Feldmeier,
-
see Hengel,
Reinhard. Martin.
Heiligenthal,
Roman:
Werke als Zeichen.
Hemer,
Volume
Horbury,
Lars.
Setting o f Hellenistic History. 1989.
Judaica et Hellenistica.
-
Judaica, Hellenistica et Christiana.
Kleine Schriften I. 1996. Volume
90.
Kleine Schriften II. 1999. Volume
109.
-
Paulus und Jakobus. Kleine Schriften III. 2002. Volume 141.
-
and Anna Maria
Horst,
32.
William:
Pieter
Schwemer:
Paulus zwi-
Volume
Hvalvik,
Herodian Judaism and New
193.
W. van der: Jews and Christians in
108.
Der messianische Anspruch Jesu und die Anfange der Christologie. 2001.
Volume 138. Hengel, Martin and Ulrich
196.
Reidar:
The Struggle for Scripture
and Covenant. 1996. Volume 11/82. Jauhiainen, Marko: The Use o f Zechariah in
Revelation. 2005. Volume 11/199. Johns, Loren L.: The Lamb Christology of the Apocalypse o f John. 2 0 0 3 . Volume 11/167. Joubert, Stephan: Paul as Benefactor. 2000. Volume
11/124.
Jungbauer,
schen Damaskus und Antiochien. 1998.
Harry:
2 0 0 2 . Volume
„Ehre Vater und Mutter". 11/146.
Kahler, Christoph: Jesu Gleichnisse als Poesie undTherapie. 1995. Volume 78. Kamlah,
Ehrhard:
Die Form der
katalogischen Paranese im Neuen Testa Heckel
ment. 1964. Volume
(Ed.):
Paulus und das antike Judentum. 1991. Volume
143.
Kammler:
Their Graeco-Roman Context. 2006.
-
Volume
132.
Testament Study. 2006. Volume
49.
Hengel, Martin: Judentum und Hellenismus. 1969, M988. Volume 10. - Die johanneische Frage. 1993. Volume 67.
-
51.
Johannesstudien. 1996. Volume 88. Holtz, Traugott: Geschichte und Theologie des Urchristentums. 1991. Volume 57. Hommel, Hildebrecht: Sebasmata. Volume 1 1983. Volume 31 - V o l u m e 2 1984.
Colin J.: The Book of Acts in the
Volume
2
Volume
1983. Volume 11/9. Hellholm, D.: see Hartman,
11.
Kammler,
Hans-Christian:
7. Christologie und
Eschatologie. 2000. Volume
58.
126.
Lohr (Ed.): Schriftauslegung
-
Kreuz und Weisheit. 2003. Volume 159.
im antiken Judentum und im Urchristen-
-
see Hofius,
tum. 1994. Volume 73. and Anna Maria Schwemer
herrschaft Gottes und himm-lischer Kult.
Kelhoffer, James A.: The Diet o f John the Baptist. 2005. Volume 176. Miracle and Mission. 1999. Volume 11/112.
1991. Volume
Kieffer,
-
and Hermut
-
(Ed.): Konigs-
55.
-
Die Septuaginta. 1994. Volume
72.
-,
Siegfried
Maria
Schwemer
Mittmann
and Anna
1990. Volume
Herzer,
Jens:
Volume
11/41.
Paulus oder Petrus? 1998. 103.
Hill, Charles E.: From the Lost Teaching o f Polycarp. 2005. Volume 186.
Rene and Jan Bergman
(Ed.):
La Main
de Dieu / Die Hand Gottes. 1997. Volume 94. Kim,
Seyoon: The Origin o f Paul's Gospel. 1 9 8 1 , 1 9 8 4 . Volume II/4.
-
Paul and the N e w Perspective. 2002.
-
"The 'Son of Man'" as the Son of God.
(Ed.): La Cite de Dieu / Die Stadt
Gottes. 2000. Volume 129. Herrenbruck, Fritz: Jesus und die Zollner.
Otfried.
2
Volume
140.
1983. Volume
30.
Klauck, Hans-Josef: Religion und Gesellschaft im friihen Christentum. 2003. Volume 152. Klein,
Hans:
see Dunn,
James
D. G.
Wissenschaftliche Untersuchungen zum Neuen Testament Kleinknecht, Karl Th.: Der leidende Gerechtfertigte. 1 9 8 4 , 1 9 8 8 . Volume 11/13.
Lau, Andrew: Manifest in Flesh. 1996.
Klinghardt, Matthias: Gesetz und Volk Gottes.
Lawrence, Louise: An Ethnography of the
Volume 11/86.
2
1988. Volume 11/32. Kloppenborg, John S.: The Tenants in the
Gospel of Matthew. 2003. Volume 11/165. Lee, Aquila H.I.: From Messiah to Preexistent
Son. 2005. Volume 11/192.
Vineyard. 2006. Volume 195.
Koch, Michael: Drachenkampf und Sonnenfrau. 2004. Volume 11/184. Koch, Stefan: Rechtliche Regelung von Kon-
Lee, Pilchan: The N e w Jerusalem in the Book
of Relevation. 2000. Volume 11/129. Lichtenberger, Hermann: Das Ich Adams und
flikten im friihen Christentum. 2004.
Volume 11/174. Kohler, Wolf-Dietrich: Rezeption des Matthausevangeliums in der Zeit vor
Irenaus. 1987. Volume 11/24. Kohn, Andreas: Der Neutestamentler Ernst Lohmeyer. 2004. Volume 11/180. Kooten, George H. van: Cosmic Christology in Paul and the Pauline School. 2003.
das Ich der Menschheit. 2004. Volume 164.
-
see Avemarie, Friedrich.
Herman, John: The N e w Testament Moses. 2004. Volume 11/173. Lieu, Samuel N.C.: Manichaeism in the Later Roman Empire and Medieval China. 2
1 9 9 2 . Volume 63.
Lindgdrd, Fredrik: Paul's Line of Thought in 2 Corinthians 4:16-5:10. 2004.
Volume 11/171.
Volume 11/189.
Korn, Manfred: Die Geschichte Jesu in veran-
Loader, William R.G.: Jesus'Attitude Towards
derterZeit. 1993. Volume 11/51. Koskenniemi, Erkki: Apollonios von Tyana in
Lohr, Gebhard: Verherrlichung Gottes durch
der neutestamentlichen Exegese. 1994.
Volume 11/61. The Old Testament Miracle-Workers in Early Judaism. 2 0 0 5 . Volume 11/206. Kraus, Thomas J.: Sprache, Stil und historischer Ort des zweiten Petrusbriefes. 2 0 0 1 .
the Law. 1997. Volume 11/97. P h i l o s o p h i c 1997. Volume 97. Lohr, Hermut: Studien zum fruhchristlichen
-
Volume 11/136.
und fruhjudischen Gebet. 2003. Volume 160.
-
see Hengel, Martin.
Lohr, Winrich Alfried: Basilides und seine Schu-
le. 1995. Volume 83.
Kraus, Wolfgang: Das Volk Gottes. 1996.
Luomanen, Petri: Entering the Kingdom of Heaven. 1998. Volume 11/101.
Volume 85. Kraus, Wolfgang and Karl-Wilhelm Niebuhr
Mackay, Ian D.: John's Raltionship with
-
Luz, Ulrich: see Dunn, James D.G. Mark. 2004. Volume 11/182.
(Ed.): Friihjudentum und Neues Testament im Horizont Biblischer Theologie. 2003.
Maier, Gerhard: Mensch und freier Wille.
Volume 162. see Walter, Nikolaus.
-
Kreplin, Matthias: Das Selbstverstandnis Jesu.
2001. Volume 11/141. Kuhn, Karl G.: Achtzehngebet und Vaterunser u n d d e r R e i m . 1950. Volume 1.
1971. Volume 12. Die Johannesoffenbarung und die Kirche.
1981. Volume 25. Markschies, Christoph: Valentinus Gnosticus?
1992. Volume 65.
Kvalbein, Hans: see Adna, Jostein.
Marshall, Peter: Enmity in Corinth: Social Conventions in Paul's Relations with the
Kwon, Yon-Gyong: Eschatology in Galatians. 2004. Volume 11/183.
Corinthians. 1987. Volume 11/23. Mayer, Annemarie: Sprache der Einheit im
Laansma, Jon: I Will Give You Rest. 1997.
Volume 11/98.
Epheserbrief und in der Okumene. 2002.
Volume 11/150.
Labahn, Michael: Offenbarung in Zeichen und Wort. 2 0 0 0 . Volume 11/117.
Mayordomo, Moises: Argumentiert Paulus
Lambers-Petry, Doris: see Tomson, Peter J. Lange, Armin: see Ego, Beate.
McDonough, Sean M.: Y H W H at Patmos:
Lampe, Peter: Die stadtromischen Christen in
Setting. 1999. Volume 11/107. McGlynn, Moyna: Divine Judgement and
den ersten beiden Jahrhunderten. 1987, 2
1 9 8 9 . Volume 11/18. Landmesser, Christof: Wahrheit als Grundbegriff neutestamentlicher Wissenschaft.
1999. Volume 113. -
Jiingerberufung und Zuwendung zu Gott.
2000. Volume 133.
logisch? 2005. Volume 188. Rev. 1:4 in its Hellenistic and Early Jewish
Divine Benevolence in the Book of
Wisdom. 2 0 0 1 . Volume 11/139. Meade, David G.: Pseudonymity and Canon.
1986. Volume 39. Meadors, Edward P.: Jesus the Messianic Herald of Salvation. 1995. Volume 11/72.
Wissenschaftliche Untersuchungen zum Neuen Testament Meiftner, Stefan: Die Heimholung des Ketzers.
Onuki, Takashi: Heil und Erlosung. 2004.
1996. Volume If/87. Mell, Ulrich: Die „anderen" Winzer. 1994.
Volume 165. Oropeza, B. J.: Paul and Apostasy. 2000.
Volume 77. Mengel, Berthold: Studien zum Philipperbrief.
1982. Volume 11/8. Merkel, Helmut: Die Widerspriiche zwischen den Evangelien. 1971. Volume 13.
-
Geschichte des friihen Christentums. Ed.
see Ego, Beate.
Merklein, Helmut: Studien zu Jesus und Paulus. Volume 1 1987. Volume 43. - V o l u m e 2
1998. Volume 105. Metzdorf Christina: Die Tempelaktion Jesu. 2003. Volume 11/168. Metzler, Karin: Der griechische Begriff des Verzeihens. 1991. Volume 11/44. Metzner, Rainer: Die Rezeption des Matthausevangeliums im 1. Petrusbrief. 1995.
Volume 11/74. -
Volume 11/115. Ostmeyer, Karl-Heinrich: Taufe und Typos. 2000. Volume 11/118. Paulsen, Henning: Studien zur Literatur und von Ute E. Eisen. 1997. Volume 99. Pao, David W.: Acts and the Isaianic New Exo
dus. 2000. Volume 11/130. Park, Eung Chun: The Mission Discourse in Matthew's Interpretation. 1995.
Volume 11/81. Park, Joseph S.: Conceptions of Afterlife in Jewish Insriptions. 2000. Volume 11/121.
Pate, C. Marvin: The Reverse of the Curse. 2000. Volume 11/114. Peres, Imre: Griechische Grabinschriften und
Das Verstandnis der Siinde im Johannesevangelium. 2000. Volume 122.
Mihoc, Vasile: see Dunn, James D. G.. Mineshige, Kiyoshi: Besitzverzicht undAlmosenbei Lukas. 2003. Volume 11/163.
neutestamentliche Eschatologie. 2003.
Volume 157. Philip, Finny: The Origins of Pauline Pneumatology. 2005. Volume 11/194. Philonenko, Marc (Ed.): Le Trone de Dieu.
Mittmann, Siegfried: see Hengel, Martin. Mittmann-Richert, Ulrike: Magnifikat und Benediktus. 1996. Volume 11/90. Mournet, Terence C.: Oral Tradition and
1993. Volume 69. Pilhofer, Peter: Presbyteron Kreitton. 1990.
Volume 11/39.
Literary Dependency. 2005. Volume II/195. Mufiner, Franz: Jesus von Nazareth im Umfeld Israels und der Urkirche. Ed. von M. Theo
-
Philippi. Volume 1 1995. Volume 87. Volume 2 2000. Volume 119. Die friihen Christen und ihre Welt. 2002.
bald. 1998. Volume 111. Mutschler, Bernhard: Das Corpus Johanneum
-
Volume 145. see Becker, Eve-Marie. see Ego, Beate.
bei Irenaus von Lyon. 2005. Volume 189.
Niebuhr, Karl-Wilhelm: Gesetz und Paranese.
1987. Volume 11/28. -
Heidenapostel aus Israel. 1992. Volume 62.
-
see Deines, Roland see Dimitrov, Ivan Z. see Kraus, Wolfgang
Nielsen, Anders E.: "Until it is Fullfilled". 2000. Volume 11/126. Nissen, Andreas: Gott und der Nachste im antiken Judentum. 1974. Volume 15.
Noack, Christian: GottesbewuGtsein. 2000.
Volume 11/116. Noormann, Rolf: Irenaus als Paulusinterpret.
1994. Volume 11/66. Novakovic, Lidija: Messiah, the Healer of the Sick. 2003. Volume 11/170. Obermann, Andreas: Die christologische Erfullung der Schrift im Johannesevangelium.
1996. Volume 11/83. Ohler, Markus: Barnabas. 2003. Volume 156.
-
see Becker, Michael
Okure, Teresa: The Johannine Approach to Mission. 1988. Volume 11/31.
-
Pitre, Brant: Jesus, the Tribulation, and the End of the Exile. 2005. Volume 11/204. Plumacher, Eckhard: Geschichte und Geschichten. 2004. Volume 170.
Pohlmann, Wolfgang: Der Verlorene Sohn unddasHaus. 1993. Volume 68.
Pokorny, Petr and Josef B. Soueek: Bibelauslegung als Theologie. 1997. Volume 100.
Pokorny, Petr and Jan Roskovec (Ed.): Philosophical Hermeneutics and Biblical Exegesis. 2002. Volume 153.
Popkes, Enno Edzard: Die Theologie der Liebe Gottes in den johanneischen Schriften.
2005. Volume 11/197. Porter, Stanley E.: The Paul of Acts. 1999.
Volume 115. Prieur, Alexander: Die Verkiindigung der Gottesherrschaft. 1996. Volume 11/89. Probst, Hermann: Paulus und der Brief. 1991.
Volume 11/45. Rdisdnen, Heikki: Paul and the Law. 1983, 1987. Volume 29. Rehkopf, Friedrich: Die lukanische Sonderquelle. 1959. Volume 5. 2
Wissenschaftliche
Rein, Matthias:
Die Heilung des Blindgebore-
n e n ( J o h 9 ) . 1995. Volume
Reinmuth,
Eckart:
1994. Volume
Reiser, Marius: James
11/73.
Pseudo-Philo und Lukas.
II/'11.
N.: The Epistle o f Barnabas
Volume 60. Schwemer, Anna Maria:
Scott,
and the Deuteronomic Tradition. 2004.
3
-
Die Friihzeit des Apostels Paulus. 1994. Volume
Jan: see Pokorny,
Petr.
1992. Volume
et son contexte religieux I/I I. 1981. Volume
Luke Acts and the Rhetoric o f History. 2 0 0 4 . Volume
61.
- Nag-Hammadi-Register. 1982. Volume 26. - Argumentation bei Paulus. 1985. Volume 34. - Philon von Alexandrien. 1988. Volume 46. Simon, Marcel: Le christianisme antique
11/60.
Rothschild, Clare K.: Baptist Traditions and Q. 2005. Volume 190.
-
11/48.
- Paul and the Nations. 1995. Volume 84. Shum, Shiu-Lun: Paul's Use o f Isaiah in Ro mans. 2002. Volume 11/156. Siegert, Folker: Drei hellenistisch-jiidische
Predigten. Teil I 1980. Volume 20 - T e i l II
Rohser, Giinter: Metaphorik und Personifikation der Sunde. 1987. Volume 11/25. Rose, Christian: Die Wolke derZeugen. 1994. Volume
M.: Adoption as Sons of God.
1992. Volume
71.
Rissi, Mathias: Die Theologie des Hebraerbriefs. 1987. Volume 41. Roskovec,
23.
Snodgrass, Klyne: The Parable of the Wicked Tenants. 1983. Volume 27. Soding, Thomas: Das Wort vom Kreuz. 1997.
11/175.
Volume 93. see Thiising,
Riiegger, Hans-Ulrich: Verstehen, was Markus erzahlt. 2002. Volume 11/155.
-
Ruger,
Markusevangeliums. 1993. Volume Soueek, Josef B.: see Pokorny, Petr.
Hans Peter:
Die Weisheitsschrift aus
der Kairoer Geniza. 1991. Volume 53. Sanger, Dieter: Antikes Judentum und die Mysterien. 1980. Volume 11/5.
-
Die Verkundigung des Gekreuzigten und Israel. 1994. Volume
75.
see Burchard, Christoph Salter, Willis Hedley: The Rhetorical Impact o f
the Se-meia in the Gospel of John. 2004. Volume 11/186. Salzmann, Jorg Christian: Lehren und Ermahnen. 1994. Volume 11/59. Sandnes, Karl Olav: Paul - One o f the Prophets? 1991. Volume 11/43. Sato, Migaku: Q und Prophetie. 1988. Volume 11/29.
Schafer,
Ruth: Paulus bis zum Apostelkonzil.
2 0 0 4 . Volume
Schaper,
Joachim:
11/179.
Eschatology in the Greek
Psalter. 1995. Volume Schimanowski, Gottfried:
11/76. Die himmlische Li-
turgie in der Apokalypse des Johannes. 2 0 0 2 . Volume
Sommer,
Spangenberg,
Volker:
Spanje,
11/55.
T.E. van: Inconsistency in Paul?
1999. Volume
Speyer,
11/58.
Herrlichkeit des Neuen
Bundes. 1993. Volume 11/110.
Wolfgang:
Friihes Christentum im an-
tiken Strahlungsfeld. Volume I: 1989. Volume
50.
- Volume II: 1999. Volume 116. Stadelmann, Helge: Ben Sira als Schriftgelehrter. 1980. Volume II/6. Stenschke, Christoph W.: Luke's Portrait o f
Gentiles Prior to Their Coming to Faith. Volume
11/108.
Sterck-Degueldre, Jean-Pierre: mens Lydia. 2 0 0 4 . Volume Stettler, Christian: 2 0 0 0 . Volume
Stettler,
Hanna:
Eine Frau na11/176.
Der Kolosserhymnus. 11/131.
Die Christologie der Pastoral-
briefe. 1998. Volume 11/105. Stokl Ben Ezra, Daniel: The Impact o f Yom Volume
Strobel,
163.
August:
Die Stunde der Wahrheit.
1980. Volume
24.
Schnahel, EckhardJ.: Law and Wisdom from Ben Sirato Paul. 1985. Volume 11/16.
Stroumsa,
Schnelle, Schrdter,
Stuckenbruck,
Udo: see Frey, Jens: see Frey,
Wilhelm.
Urs: Die Passionsgeschichte des
Kippur on Early Christianity. 2003.
11/154.
- Weisheit und Messias. 1985. Volume 11/17. Schlichting, Giinter: Einjiidisches Leben Jesu. 1982. Volume
Martin
Letters o f Paul. 2005. Volume ///205.
The Secretary in the
11/7.
see Hengel,
Ian W.: Implicit Epistemology in the
Scott, James
Letters of Paul. 1991. Volume 11/42. Riesner, Rainer: Jesus als Lehrer. 1 9 8 1 , 1 9 8 8 . Volume
Testament
Background of Christianity. 1992.
Syntax und Stil des Markus-
Volume 11/188. Richards, E. Randolph:
zum Neuen
Schutter, William L.: Hermeneutic and Com position in I Peter. 1989. Volume 11/30. Schwartz, Daniel R.: Studies in the Jewish
74.
evangeliums. 1984. Volume
Rhodes,
Untersuchungen
Jorg. Jorg.
21.
Guy G: Barbarian Philosophy.
1999. Volume
112.
Loren
T.: Angel Veneration and
Christology. 1995. Volume
11/70.
Wissenschaftliche Untersuchungen zum Neuen Testament Stuhlmacher, Peter (Ed.): Das Evangelium und die Evangelien. 1983. Volume 28. -
Walter, Nikolaus: Praeparatio Evangelica. Ed. von Wolfgang Kraus und Florian Wilk.
1997. Volume 98.
Biblische Theologie und Evangelium.
2002. Volume 146. Sung, Chong-Hyon: Vergebung der Siinden.
1993. Volume 11/57.
Wander, Bernd: Gottesfurchtige und Sympathisanten. 1998. Volume 104. Watts, Rikki: Isaiah's New Exodus and Mark.
1997. Volume 11/88.
Tajra, Harry W.: The Trial of St. Paul. 1989.
Volume 11/35. -
The Martyrdom of St.Paul. 1994.
Volume 11/67. Theifien, Gerd: Studien zur Soziologie des Ur3
christentums. 1 9 7 9 , 1 9 8 9 . Volume 19.
Wedderburn, A.J.M.: Baptism and Resurrection. 1987. Volume 44. Wegner, Uwe: Der Hauptmann von Kafarnaum. 1985. Volume 11/14. Weissenrieder, Annette: Images of Illness in the
Theobald, Michael: Studien zum Romerbrief.
Gospel of Luke. 2003. Volume 11/164.
2001. Volume 136. Theobald, Michael: see Mufiner, Franz.
-, Friederike Wendt and Petra von
Thornton, Claus-Jiirgen: Der Zeuge des Zeu-
ment. 2005. Volume 11/193. Welck, Christian: Erzahlte ,Zeichen'. 1994.
gen. 1991. Volume 56. Thusing, Wilhelm: Studien zur neutestamentlichen Theologie. Ed. von Thomas Soding.
1995. Volume 82. Thuren, Lauri: Derhethorizing Paul. 2000.
Gemiinden (Ed.): Picturing the N e w Testa
Volume 11/69. Wendt, Friederike (Ed.): see Weissenrieder, Annette. Wiarda, Timothy: Peter in the Gospels. 2000.
Volume 11/127.
Volume 124. Tolmie, D. Francois: Persuading the Galatians. 2005. Volume 11/190.
Tomson, Peter J. and Doris Lambers-Petry
Wifstrand, Albert: Epochs and Styles. 2005.
Volume 179. Wilk, Florian: see Walter, Nikolaus.
(Ed.): The Image of the Judaeo-Christians in Ancient Jewish and Christian Literature.
Williams, Catrin H.: I am He. 2000.
2003. Volume 158.
Wilson, Walter T.: Love without Pretense.
Trebilco, Paul: The Early Christians in Ephesus from Paul to Ignatius. 2004. Volume 166.
Treloar, Geoffrey R.: Lightfootthe Historian.
1998. Volume 11/103. Tsuji, Manabu: Glaube zwischen Vollkommen-
heit und Verweltlichung. 1997. Volume 11/93. Twelftree, Graham H.: Jesus the Exorcist.
1993. Volume 11/54. Urban, Christina: Das Menschenbild nach dem Johannesevangelium. 2001. VolumeII/137. Visotzky, Burton L.: Fathers of the World.
1995. Volume 80. Vollenweider, Samuel: Horizonte neutestamentlicher Christologie. 2002. Volume 144. Vos, Johan S.: Die Kunst der Argumentation bei Paulus. 2002. Volume 149.
Wagener, Ulrike: Die Ordnung des „Hauses Gottes". 1994. Volume 11/65. Wahlen, Clinton: Jesus and the Impurity of Spirits in the Synoptic Gospels. 2004.
Volume 11/185.
Volume 11/113. 1991. Volume 11/46. Wischmeyer, Oda: Von Ben Sira zu Paulus.
2004. Volume 173. Wisdom, Jeffrey: Blessing for the Nations and the Curse of the Law. 2001. Volume 11/133. Wold, Benjamin G: Women, Men, and Angels. 2005. Volume 11/2001. Wright, Archie T: The Origin of Evil Spirits.
2005. Volume 11/198. Wucherpfennig, Ansgar: Heracleon Philologus. 2002. Volume 142. Yeung, Maureen: Faith in Jesus and Paul.
2002. Volume 11/147. Zimmermann, Alfred E.: Die urchristlichen Lehrer. 1 9 8 4 , 1 9 8 8 . Volume 11/12. Zimmermann, Johannes: Messianische Texte ausQumran. 1998. Volume 11/104. Zimmermann, Ruben: Christologie der Bilder 2
-
im Johannesevangelium. 2004. Volume 171. Geschlechtermetaphorik und Gottesver-
haltnis. 2 0 0 1 . Volume 11/122.
Walker, Donald D.: Paul's Offer of Leniency
(2 Cor 10:1). 2002. Volume 11/152.
Zumstein, Jean: see Dettwiler, Andreas Zwiep, Arie W: Judas and the Choice of Matthias. 2004. Volume 11/187.
For a complete catalogue please write to the publisher Mohr Siebeck • P.O. Box 2030 • D-72010 Tubingen/Germany Up-to-date information on the internet at www.mohr.de